This is a modern-English version of The History of England in Three Volumes, Vol. I., Part B.: From Henry III. to Richard III., originally written by Hume, David. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.










spines (154K)









cover (124K)









cover_egraving_th (140K)





THE HISTORY OF ENGLAND

Volume One of Three

FROM THE INVASION OF JULIUS CÆSAR

TO THE END OF THE REIGN OF JAMES THE SECOND,

BY DAVID HUME, ESQ.

1688





London: James S. Virtue, City Road and Ivy Lane
New York: 26 John Street
1860

And

Philadelphia:
J. B. Lippincott & Co.
March 17, 1901





In Three Volumes:

VOLUME ONE: The History Of England From The Invasion Of Julius Cæsar To
The End Of The Reign Of James The Second............ By David Hume, Esq.

VOLUME TWO: Continued from the Reign of William and Mary to the Death of
George II........................................... by Tobias Smollett.

VOLUME THREE: From the Accession of George III. to the Twenty-Third Year
of the Reign of Queen Victoria............... by E. Farr and E.H. Nolan.

VOLUME ONE: The History of England From the Invasion of Julius Cæsar to
the End of the Reign of James II.............. By David Hume, Esq.

VOLUME TWO: Continued from the Reign of William and Mary to the Death of
George II........................................... by Tobias Smollett.

VOLUME THREE: From the Accession of George III to the Twenty-Third Year
of the Reign of Queen Victoria............... by E. Farr and E.H. Nolan.





VOLUME ONE

Part B.

From Henry III. to Richard III.





Frontispiece.jpg  Portrait of Hume.
Titlepage.jpg Boadicea Haranguing the Britons
titlepage_v1 (125K)























CHAPTER XII.

1_155_henry3.jpg Henry III.




HENRY III.

1216.

1216.

Most sciences, in proportion as they increase and improve, invent methods by which they facilitate their reasonings, and, employing general theorems, are enabled to comprehend, in a few propositions, a great number of inferences and conclusions. History, also, being a collection of facts which are multiplying without end, is obliged to adopt such arts of abridgment, to retain the more material events, and to drop all the minute circumstances, which are only interesting during the time, or to the persons engaged in the transactions. This truth is nowhere more evident than with regard to the reign upon which we are going to enter. What mortal could have the patience to write or read a long detail of such frivolous events as those with which it is filled, or attend to a tedious narrative which would follow, through a series of fifty-six years, the caprices and weaknesses of so mean a prince as Henry? The chief reason why Protestant writers have been so anxious to spread out the incidents of this reign, is in order to expose the rapacity, ambition, and artifices of the court of Rome, and to prove, that the great dignitaries of the Catholic church, while they pretended to have nothing in view but the salvation of souls, had bent all their attention to the acquisition of riches, and were restrained by no sense of justice or of honor in the pursuit of that great object.[*] But this conclusion would readily be allowed them, though it were not illustrated by such a detail of uninteresting incidents; and follows indeed, by an evident necessity, from the very situation in which that church was placed with regard to the rest of Europe. For, besides that ecclesiastical power, as it can always cover its operations under a cloak of sanctity, and attacks men on the side where they dare not employ their reason, lies less under control than civil government; besides this general cause, I say, the pope and his courtiers were foreigners to most of the churches which they governed; they could not possibly have any other object than to pillage the provinces for present gain; and as they lived at a distance, they would be little awed by shame or remorse in employing every lucrative expedient which was suggested to them. England being one of the most remote provinces attached to the Romish hierarchy, as well as the most prone to superstition, felt severely, during this reign, while its patience was not yet fully exhausted, the influence of these causes, and we shall often have occasion to touch cursorily upon such incidents. But we shall not attempt to comprehend every transaction transmitted to us: and till the end of the reign, when the events become more memorable, we shall not always observe an exact chronological order in our narration.

Most sciences, as they grow and get better, create methods that make their reasoning easier, and by using general theories, they manage to explain a lot of conclusions and insights in just a few statements. History, being a collection of facts that keep piling up, also has to use summarizing techniques to focus on the most important events and drop the minor details that are only relevant at the time or to those involved. This is especially true for the reign we are about to discuss. Who would have the patience to write or read a long account of such trivial events as those that fill this period, or to follow a tedious narrative that would span fifty-six years covering the whims and weaknesses of such a mediocre ruler as Henry? The main reason Protestant writers have been so eager to detail the events of this reign is to reveal the greed, ambition, and schemes of the Roman court, and to demonstrate that the high-ranking officials of the Catholic Church, while claiming to focus only on saving souls, were actually fixated on acquiring wealth, with no regard for justice or honor in pursuing that goal. But this conclusion would easily be accepted without needing a long list of uninteresting events, as it clearly follows from the very situation of that church in relation to the rest of Europe. Besides the fact that ecclesiastical power can always disguise its actions under a façade of holiness and attacks people where they hesitate to use their reason, it is less restrained than civil government. In addition to this general issue, the pope and his courtiers were largely outsiders to most of the churches they managed; their only goal was to exploit the provinces for quick profit. Living far away, they were unlikely to feel any shame or guilt in using every profitable tactic available to them. England, being one of the most distant provinces linked to the Roman hierarchy, as well as being particularly susceptible to superstition, felt the effects of these factors intensely during this reign, while its patience was not yet completely worn out, and we will often touch on such events briefly. However, we will not try to cover every transaction that has been recorded for us, and until the end of the reign, when the events become more significant, we won't always maintain a strict chronological order in our narrative.

     * M. Paris, p. 623.
* M. Paris, p. 623.

The earl of Pembroke, who at the time of John’s death, was mareschal of England, was, by his office, at the head of the armies, and consequently, during a state of civil wars and convulsions, at the head of the government; and it happened, fortunately for the young monarch and for the nation, that the power could not have been intrusted into more able and more faithful hands. This nobleman, who had maintained his loyalty unshaken to John during the lowest fortune of that monarch, determined to support the authority of the infant prince; nor was he dismayed at the number and violence of his enemies. Sensible that Henry, agreeably to the prejudices of the times, would not be deemed a sovereign till crowned and anointed by a churchman, he immediately carried the young prince to Glocester, where the ceremony of coronation was performed, in the presence of Gualo, the legate, and of a few noblemen, by the bishops of Winchester and Bath.[*] As the concurrence of the papal authority was requisite to support the tottering throne, Henry was obliged to swear fealty to the pope, and renew that homage to which his father had already subjected the kingdom:[**] and in order to enlarge the authority of Pembroke, and to give him a more regular and legal title to it, a general council of the barons was soon after summoned at Bristol, where that nobleman was chosen protector of the realm.

The Earl of Pembroke, who was the Marshal of England at the time of John’s death, was in charge of the armies and, during a period of civil wars and chaos, effectively leading the government. Fortunately for the young king and the nation, this power was entrusted to someone as capable and loyal as he was. This nobleman had stayed loyal to John even during his darkest times and was determined to support the authority of the young prince. He wasn’t intimidated by the number or aggressiveness of his enemies. Knowing that Henry wouldn’t be considered a sovereign until he was crowned and anointed by a church official, he took the young prince to Gloucester right away, where the coronation ceremony was held in front of Gualo, the legate, and a few noblemen, by the bishops of Winchester and Bath.[*] Since the backing of the pope was necessary to stabilize the shaky throne, Henry had to pledge loyalty to the pope and reaffirm the allegiance that his father had already established with the kingdom:[**] To strengthen Pembroke’s authority and give him a more official and legal title, a general council of barons was soon called in Bristol, where that nobleman was appointed protector of the realm.

     * M. Paris, p. 290. Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 474. W. Heming. p.
     562. Privet, p. 168.

     ** M. Paris, p. 200.
     * M. Paris, p. 290. Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 474. W. Heming. p.
     562. Privet, p. 168.

     ** M. Paris, p. 200.

Pembroke, that he might reconcile all men to the government of his pupil, made him grant a new charter of liberties, which, though mostly copied from the former concessions extorted from John, contains some alterations which may be deemed remarkable.[*] The full privilege of elections in the clergy, granted by the late king, was not confirmed, nor the liberty of going out of the kingdom without the royal consent: whence we may conclude, that Pembroke and the barons, jealous of the ecclesiastical power, both were desirous of renewing the king’s claim to issue a congé d’élire to the monks and chapters, and thought it requisite to put some check to the frequent appeals to Rome. But what may chiefly surprise us is, that the obligation to which John had subjected himself, of obtaining the consent of the great council before he levied any aids or scutages upon the nation, was omitted; and this article was even declared hard and severe, and was expressly left to future deliberation. But we must consider, that, though this limitation may perhaps appear to us the most momentous in the whole charter of John, it was not regarded in that light by the ancient barons, who were more jealous in guarding against particular acts of violence in the crown than against such general impositions which, unless they were evidently reasonable and necessary, could scarcely, without general consent, be levied upon men who had arms in their hands, and who could repel any act of oppression by which they were all immediately affected. We accordingly find, that Henry, in the course of his reign, while he gave frequent occasions for complaint with regard to his violations of the Great Charter, never attempted, by his own will, to levy any aids or scutages, though he was often reduced to great necessities, and was refused supply by his people.

Pembroke aimed to win everyone over to the government of his pupil by getting him to approve a new charter of liberties. While this charter largely copied the earlier concessions forced from John, it included some noteworthy changes. The full voting rights for the clergy, granted by the late king, were not confirmed, nor was the freedom to leave the kingdom without royal permission. This suggests that Pembroke and the barons were wary of the church’s power and wanted to restore the king's authority to issue a congé d’élire to the monks and chapters, while also wanting to limit the frequent appeals to Rome. What might surprise us the most is that the obligation which John had imposed on himself to get the great council's consent before he could levy any taxes or scutages on the nation was omitted. In fact, this requirement was labeled as harsh and put off for future discussion. However, we should note that while this limitation might seem the most significant part of John's charter to us, the ancient barons didn't view it that way. They were more focused on preventing specific acts of violence from the crown than on general impositions, which, unless clearly reasonable and necessary, could hardly be imposed on men with arms who could resist any oppression that directly impacted them. We see that Henry, during his reign, often gave reasons for complaints regarding his breaches of the Great Charter but never tried to levy any taxes or scutages willingly, even when he faced serious difficulties and his people refused to provide support.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 215.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 215.

So much easier was it for him to transgress the law, when individuals alone were affected, than even to exert his acknowledged prerogatives, where the interest of the whole body was concerned.

It was much easier for him to break the law when it only affected individuals than to actually use his recognized authority when the interests of everyone were at stake.

This charter was again confirmed by the king in the ensuing year, with the addition of some articles to prevent the oppressions by sheriffs; and also with an additional charter of forests, a circumstance of great moment in those ages, when hunting was so much the occupation of the nobility, and when the king comprehended so considerable a part of the kingdom within his forests, which he governed by peculiar and arbitrary laws. All the forests, which had been enclosed since the reign of Henry II., were disafforested, and new perambulations were appointed for that purpose; offences in the forests were declared to be no longer capital, but punishable by fine, imprisonment, and more gentle penalties; and all the proprietors of land recovered the power of cutting and using their own wood at their pleasure.

This charter was confirmed again by the king the following year, with some added articles to stop the abuses by sheriffs; it also included an additional charter concerning forests, which was very important at that time when hunting was a major pastime for the nobility, and when the king controlled a significant portion of the kingdom through his forests, governed by specific and arbitrary laws. All the forests that had been enclosed since the reign of Henry II were declared open again, and new boundaries were set for that purpose; offenses in the forests were no longer considered capital crimes but could be punished by fines, imprisonment, and lesser penalties; and all landowners regained the right to cut and use their own wood as they wished.

Thus these famous charters were brought nearly to the shape in which they have ever since stood; and they were, during many generations, the peculiar favorites of the English nation, and esteemed the most sacred rampart to national liberty and independence. As they secured the rights of all orders of men, they were anxiously defended by all, and became the basis, in a manner, of the English monarchy, and a kind of original contract which both limited the authority of the king and insured the conditional allegiance of his subjects. Though often violated, they were still claimed by the nobility and people; and as no precedents were supposed valid that infringed them, they rather acquired than lost authority, from the frequent attempts made against them in several ages by regal and arbitrary power.

Thus, these famous charters were shaped into the form they have remained ever since; for many generations, they were the unique favorites of the English nation and regarded as the most sacred defense of national liberty and independence. They protected the rights of all social classes, leading everyone to defend them passionately, and in a way, they became the foundation of the English monarchy, serving as a sort of original contract that both limited the king's power and ensured the conditional loyalty of his subjects. Although they were often violated, the nobility and the people continued to claim them; since no precedents were considered valid that went against them, they gained more authority rather than losing it due to the countless attempts made against them over the years by royal and arbitrary power.

While Pembroke, by renewing and confirming the Great Charter, gave so much satisfaction and security to the nation in general, he also applied himself successfully to individuals; he wrote letters, in the king’s name, to all the malcontent barons; in which he represented to them that, whatever jealousy and animosity they might have entertained against the late king, a young prince, the lineal heir of their ancient monarchs, had now succeeded to the throne, without succeeding either to the resentments or principles of his predecessor; that the desperate expedient, which they had employed, of calling in a foreign potentate, had, happily for them as well as for the nation, failed of entire success, and it was still in their power, by a speedy return to their duty, to restore the independence of the kingdom, and to secure that liberty for which they so zealously contended; that as all past offences of the barons were now buried in oblivion, they ought, on their part, to forget their complaints against their late sovereign, who, if he had been anywise blamable in his conduct had left to his son the salutary warning, to avoid the paths which had led to such fatal extremities: and that having now obtained a charter for their liberties, it was their interest to show, by their conduct, that this acquisition was not incompatible with their allegiance, and that the rights of king and people, so far from being hostile and opposite, might mutually support and sustain each other.[*]

While Pembroke, by renewing and confirming the Great Charter, brought a lot of satisfaction and security to the nation as a whole, he also focused successfully on individuals; he wrote letters, in the king’s name, to all the rebellious barons. In these letters, he pointed out that, regardless of any jealousy and animosity they might have felt toward the late king, a young prince, the direct heir of their ancient monarchs, had now taken the throne, without inheriting the resentments or principles of his predecessor. He reminded them that the drastic measure they had taken, inviting a foreign ruler, had fortunately not succeeded entirely, which was a good thing for them as well as for the country. He urged them that by quickly returning to their responsibilities, they could restore the kingdom’s independence and secure the liberty they had fought for so passionately. He emphasized that all past grievances of the barons were now forgotten, and they should also let go of their complaints against their former sovereign, who, if he had made any mistakes, had passed on a crucial lesson to his son to avoid the mistakes that had led to such disastrous outcomes. With their new charter for liberties secured, it was in their interest to demonstrate through their actions that this achievement was not at odds with their loyalty, and that the rights of the king and the people could actually support and strengthen each other.

These considerations, enforced by the character of honor and constancy which Pembroke had ever maintained, had a mighty influence on the barons; and most of them began secretly to negotiate with him, and many of them openly returned to their duty. The diffidence which Lewis discovered of their fidelity, forwarded this general propension towards the king; and when the French prince refused the government of the castle of Hertford to Robert Fitz-Walter, who had been so active against the late king, and who claimed that fortress as his property, they plainly saw that the English were excluded from every trust, and that foreigners had engrossed all the confidence and affection of their new sovereign.[**] The excommunication, too, denounced by the legate against all the adherents of Lewis, failed not, in the turn which men’s dispositions had taken, to produce a mighty effect upon them; and they were easily persuaded to consider a cause as impious, for which they had already entertained an unsurmountable aversion.[***] Though Lewis made a journey to France, and brought over succors from that kingdom [****] he found, on his return, that his party was still more weakened by the desertion of his English confederates, and that the death of John had, contrary to his expectations, given an incurable wound to his cause. The earls of Salisbury Arundel, and Warrenne, together with William Mareschal, eldest son of the protector, had embraced Henry’s party; and every English nobleman was plainly watching for an opportunity of returning to his allegiance.

These factors, reinforced by Pembroke's long-standing reputation for honor and loyalty, had a significant impact on the barons. Most of them started to negotiate with him secretly, and many openly returned to their duties. Lewis's uncertainty about their loyalty only fueled this general shift toward the king. When the French prince denied Robert Fitz-Walter, who had been very active against the late king and claimed the castle of Hertford as his own, the barons realized that the English were being excluded from all positions of trust, while foreigners held the complete confidence and support of their new ruler. Additionally, the excommunication declared by the legate against all supporters of Lewis had a strong impact on people's attitudes; they were easily swayed to view a cause they already disliked as sinful. Although Lewis made a trip to France and brought back reinforcements from that kingdom, he found upon his return that his supporters were even more weakened by the defection of his English allies, and John’s death had, contrary to his expectations, dealt a severe blow to his cause. The earls of Salisbury, Arundel, and Warrenne, along with William Mareschal, the eldest son of the protector, had aligned themselves with Henry’s side, and every English noble was clearly looking for a chance to return to their loyalty.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 215. Brady’s App. No. 143.

     ** M. Paris, p. 200, 202.

     *** Ibid. p. 200 M. West, p. 277

     **** Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 79.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 215. Brady’s App. No. 143.

     ** M. Paris, p. 200, 202.

     *** Ibid. p. 200 M. West, p. 277

     **** Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 79.

Pembroke was so much strengthened by these accessions, that he ventured to invest Mount Sorel; though, upon the approach of the count of Perche with the French army, he desisted from his enterprise, and raised the siege.[*] The count, elated with this success, marched to Lincoln; and being admitted into the town, he began to attack the castle, which he soon reduced to extremity. The protector summoned all his forces from every quarter, in order to relieve a place of such importance; and he appeared so much superior to the French, that they shut themselves up within the city, and resolved to act upon the defensive.[**] But the garrison of the castle, having received a strong reënforcement, made a vigorous sally upon the besiegers; while the English army, by concert, assaulted them in the same instant from without, mounted the walls by scalade, and bearing down all resistance, entered the city sword in hand. Lincoln was delivered over to be pillaged; the French army was totally routed; the count de Perche, with only two persons more, was killed, but many of the chief commanders, and about four hundred knights, were made prisoners by the English.[***] So little blood was shed in this important action, which decided the fate of one of the most powerful kingdoms in Europe; and such wretched soldiers were those ancient barons, who yet were unacquainted with every thing but arms!

Pembroke gained so much strength from these reinforcements that he decided to lay siege to Mount Sorel. However, when the Count of Perche approached with the French army, he gave up the siege. The count, thrilled by this success, marched to Lincoln and was let into the town, where he started attacking the castle, quickly pushing it to its limits. The protector summoned all his forces from every direction to save such an important location; he seemed so much stronger than the French that they retreated into the city and decided to play defense. But the castle's garrison, having received a strong reinforcements, launched a bold attack on the besiegers, while the English army simultaneously assaulted them from outside, scaling the walls and overpowering all resistance, entering the city with swords drawn. Lincoln was left open to looting; the French army was completely defeated, and the Count de Perche was killed along with two others, while many top commanders and about four hundred knights were captured by the English. Remarkably, so little blood was shed in this crucial battle, which determined the fate of one of the most powerful kingdoms in Europe; and those ancient barons were such poor soldiers, still unfamiliar with anything besides fighting!

     * M. Paris, p. 203

     ** Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 81.

     *** M. Paris, p. 204, 205.

     **** Chron. de Mailr. p. 195.
     * M. Paris, p. 203

     ** Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 81.

     *** M. Paris, p. 204, 205.

     **** Chron. de Mailr. p. 195.

Prince Lewis was informed of this fatal event while employed in the siege of Dover, which was still valiantly defended against him by Hubert de Burgh. He immediately retreated to London, the centre and life of his party; and he there received intelligence of a new disaster, which put an end to all his hopes. A French fleet, bringing over a strong, reënforcement, had appeared on the coast of Kent; where they were attacked by the English under the command of Philip d’Albiney, and were routed with considerable loss. D’Albiney employed a stratagem against them, which is said to have contributed to the victory: having gained the wind of the French, he came down upon them with violence; and throwing in their faces a great quantity of quick lime, which he purposely carried on board, he so blinded them, that they were disabled from defending themselves.[*]

Prince Lewis found out about this disastrous event while he was involved in the siege of Dover, which was still bravely defended against him by Hubert de Burgh. He quickly retreated to London, the heart and source of support for his party; and there he learned of another disaster that shattered all his hopes. A French fleet, bringing a strong reinforcement, had appeared off the coast of Kent; where they were attacked by the English forces led by Philip d’Albiney, and were defeated with significant losses. D’Albiney used a clever tactic against them, which is said to have helped secure the victory: having gained the wind advantage over the French, he struck them fiercely; and by throwing a large amount of quicklime in their faces, which he had deliberately brought on board, he blinded them so much that they couldn't defend themselves.[*]

After this second misfortune of the French, the English barons hastened every where to make peace with the protector, and, by an early submission, to prevent those attainders to which they were exposed on account of their rebellion. Lewis, whose cause was now totally desperate, began to be anxious for the safety of his person, and was glad, on any honorable conditions, to make his escape from a country where he found every thing was now become hostile to him. He concluded a peace with Pembroke, promised to evacuate the kingdom, and only stipulated in return an indemnity to his adherents, and a restitution of their honors and fortunes, together with the free and equal enjoyment of those liberties which had been granted to the rest of the nation.[**] Thus was happily ended a civil war which seemed to be founded on the most incurable hatred and jealousy, and had threatened the kingdom with the most fatal consequences.

After this second setback for the French, the English barons rushed everywhere to make peace with the protector, and by quickly submitting, they aimed to avoid the penalties they faced due to their rebellion. Lewis, whose situation was now completely hopeless, started to worry for his safety and was eager to escape from a country that had turned entirely against him, even on any honorable terms. He made peace with Pembroke, agreed to leave the kingdom, and only asked for compensation for his supporters, along with the restoration of their titles and properties, as well as the same freedoms that had been granted to the rest of the nation.[**] Thus, a civil war that seemed rooted in deep-seated hatred and jealousy, and that had threatened the kingdom with disastrous outcomes, came to a fortunate end.

The precautions which the king of France used in the conduct of this whole affair are remarkable. He pretended that his son had accepted of the offer from the English barons without his advice, and contrary to his inclination: the armies sent to England were levied in Lewis’s name: when that prince came over to France for aid, his father publicly refused to grant him any assistance, and would not so much as admit him to his presence: even after Henry’s party acquired the ascendant, and Lewis was in danger of falling into the hands of his enemies, it was Blanche of Castile his wife, not the king his father, who raised armies and equipped fleets for his succor.[***]

The precautions that the king of France took in handling this entire situation are noteworthy. He claimed that his son accepted the offer from the English barons without his guidance and against his wishes: the armies sent to England were raised in Lewis’s name. When that prince came to France for help, his father publicly refused to provide any assistance and didn’t even let him see him. Even after Henry’s side gained the upper hand, and Lewis was at risk of falling into the hands of his enemies, it was his wife, Blanche of Castile, not the king, who gathered armies and equipped fleets to support him.[***]

     *. M. Paris, p. 206. Ann. Waverl. p. 183. W. Heming. p. 563.
     Trivet, p. 109. M. West. p. 277. Knyghton, p. 2428.

     **. Rhymer, vol. i. p. 221. M. Paris, p. 207. Chron. Dunst.
     vol. i. p. 83. M. West. p. 278. Knyghton, p. 2429.

     *** M, Paris, p. 256. Chron. Dunst, vol. i. p. 82.
     *. M. Paris, p. 206. Ann. Waverl. p. 183. W. Heming. p. 563.
     Trivet, p. 109. M. West. p. 277. Knyghton, p. 2428.

     **. Rhymer, vol. i. p. 221. M. Paris, p. 207. Chron. Dunst.
     vol. i. p. 83. M. West. p. 278. Knyghton, p. 2429.

     *** M, Paris, p. 256. Chron. Dunst, vol. i. p. 82.

All these artifices were employed, not to satisfy the pope; for he had too much penetration to be so easily imposed on: nor yet to deceive the people; for they were too gross even for that purpose: they only served for a coloring to Philip’s cause; and in public affairs men are often better pleased that the truth, though known to every body, should be wrapped up under a decent cover, than if it were exposed in open daylight to the eyes of all the world.

All these tricks were used, not to fool the pope; he was too wise to be so easily misled. Nor were they meant to deceive the people; they were too obvious for that. They only provided a facade for Philip's cause; in public matters, people often prefer that the truth, even if everyone knows it, be presented under a respectable guise rather than laid bare for all to see.

After the expulsion of the French, the prudence and equity of the protector’s subsequent conduct contributed to cure entirely those wounds which had been made by intestine discord. He received the rebellious barons into favor; observed strictly the terms of peace which he had granted them; restored them to their possessions; and endeavored, by an equal behavior, to bury all past animosities in perpetual oblivion. The clergy alone, who had adhered to Lewis, were sufferers in this revolution. As they had rebelled against their spiritual sovereign, by disregarding the interdict and excommunication, it was not in Pembroke’s power to make any stipulations in their favor; and Gualo, the legate, prepared to take vengeance on them for their disobedience.[*] Many of them were deposed; many suspended; some banished; and all who escaped punishment made atonement for their offence, by paying large sums to the legate, who amassed an immense treasure by this expedient.

After the French were driven out, the careful and fair actions of the protector helped heal the wounds caused by internal conflict. He welcomed the rebellious barons back into his good graces; he strictly observed the terms of peace he had offered them; he restored them to their lands; and he tried to bury all past grudges through fair treatment. The clergy, who had supported Lewis, were the only ones to suffer in this shift. Since they had rebelled against their spiritual leader by ignoring the interdict and excommunication, Pembroke couldn’t negotiate any terms for them; and Gualo, the legate, was ready to take revenge for their disobedience. Many were deposed, many were suspended, some were banished, and those who avoided punishment had to make amends by paying large sums to the legate, who accumulated an immense fortune through this method.

The earl of Pembroke did not long survive the pacification, which had been chiefly owing to his wisdom and valor;[*] and he was succeeded in the government by Peter des Roches, bishop of Winchester, and Hubert de Burgh, the justiciary. The counsels of the latter were chiefly followed; and had he possessed equal authority in the kingdom with Pembroke, he seemed to be every way worthy of filling the place of that virtuous nobleman. But the licentious and powerful barons, who had once broken the reins of subjection to their prince, and had obtained by violence an enlargement of their liberties and independence, could ill be restrained by laws under a minority; and the people, no less than the king, suffered from their outrages and disorders. They retained by force the royal castles, which they had seized during the past convulsions, or which had been committed to their custody by the protector;[**] they usurped the king’s demesnes;[***] they oppressed their vassals; they infested their weaker neighbors; they invited all disorderly people to enter in their retinue, and to live upon their lands; and they gave them protection in all their robberies and extortions.

The Earl of Pembroke didn’t live long after the peace was achieved, which was largely due to his wisdom and bravery;[*] he was succeeded in leadership by Peter des Roches, the Bishop of Winchester, and Hubert de Burgh, the justiciar. The advice of the latter was mostly followed; and had he held equal power in the kingdom as Pembroke, he seemed more than capable of stepping into the shoes of that noble man. However, the unruly and powerful barons, who had once shed the bonds of loyalty to their prince and had violently expanded their freedoms and autonomy, could hardly be kept in check by laws during a period of minority; the people, as much as the king, suffered from their abuses and chaos. They forcefully held onto the royal castles they had taken during the recent turmoil, or those entrusted to them by the protector;[**] they claimed the king’s lands;[***] they mistreated their vassals; they preyed on their weaker neighbors; they welcomed all troublemakers to join their ranks and live off their lands; and they provided them with protection in all their thefts and extortions.

     * Brady’s App. No. 144. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 83.

     ** M. Paris, p. 210. * Trivet, p. 174

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 276.
     * Brady’s App. No. 144. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 83.

     ** M. Paris, p. 210. * Trivet, p. 174

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 276.

No one was more infamous for these violent and illegal practices than the earl of Albemarle; who, though he had early returned to his duty, and had been serviceable in expelling the French, augmented to the utmost the general disorder, and committed outrages in all the counties of the north. In order to reduce him to obedience, Hubert seized an opportunity of getting possession of Rockingham Castle, which Albemarle had garrisoned with his licentious retinue: but this nobleman, instead of submitting, entered into a secret confederacy with Fawkes de Breauté, Peter de Mauleon, and other barons, and both fortified the Gastle of Biham for his defence, and made himself master by surprise of that of Fotheringay. Pandulf, who was restored to his legateship, was active in suppressing this rebellion; and with the concurrence of eleven bishops, he pronounced the sentence of excommunication against Albemarle and his adherents:[*] an army was levied: a scutage of ten shillings a knight’s fee was imposed on all the military tenants. Albemarle’s associates gradually deserted him; and he himself was obliged at last to sue for mercy. He received a pardon, and was restored to his whole estate.

No one was more notorious for these violent and illegal actions than the earl of Albemarle. Even though he had initially returned to his duties and had been helpful in driving out the French, he contributed significantly to the overall chaos and committed atrocities throughout the northern counties. To bring him under control, Hubert took the chance to seize Rockingham Castle, which Albemarle had fortified with his unruly followers. Instead of complying, this nobleman secretly allied himself with Fawkes de Breauté, Peter de Mauleon, and other barons, fortifying Biham Castle for his defense and unexpectedly taking over Fotheringay Castle. Pandulf, who had regained his position as legate, was actively involved in suppressing this rebellion; with the support of eleven bishops, he declared Albemarle and his supporters excommunicated: an army was raised, and a tax of ten shillings per knight's fee was imposed on all military tenants. Albemarle's allies slowly abandoned him, and he eventually had to plead for mercy. He was granted a pardon and had his entire estate restored.

This impolitic lenity, too frequent in those times, was probably the result of a secret combination among the barons, who never could endure to see the total ruin of one of their own order: but it encouraged Fawkes de Breauté, a man whom King John had raised from a low origin, to persevere in the course of violence to which he had owed his fortune and to set at nought all law and justice. When thirty-five verdicts were at one time found against him, on account of his violent expulsion of so many freeholders from their possessions, he came to the court of justice with an armed force, seized the judge who had pronounced the verdicts, and imprisoned him in Bedford Castle. He then levied open war against the king; but being subdued and taken prisoner, his life was granted him; but his estate was confiscated, and he was banished the kingdom.[**]

This unwise leniency, common in those times, was likely the result of a secret alliance among the barons, who could never stand to see one of their own completely ruined. However, it encouraged Fawkes de Breauté, a man King John had raised from humble beginnings, to continue with the violence that had earned him his fortune and disregard all law and justice. When thirty-five verdicts were issued against him at once for violently removing numerous landowners from their holdings, he came to the court of justice with an armed group, captured the judge who had delivered the verdicts, and imprisoned him in Bedford Castle. He then waged open war against the king, but when he was defeated and captured, his life was spared; however, his estate was confiscated, and he was exiled from the kingdom.[**]

     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 102.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 198. M. Paris, p. 221, 224. Ann. Waverl
     p. 188, Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 141, 146. M. West, p. 283.
     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 102.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 198. M. Paris, p. 221, 224. Ann. Waverl
     p. 188, Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 141, 146. M. West, p. 283.

1222.

1222.

Justice was executed with greater severity against disorders less premeditated, which broke out in London. A frivolous emulation in a match of wrestling, between the Londoners on the one hand, and the inhabitants of Westminster and those of the neighboring villages on the other, occasioned this commotion. The former rose in a body, and pulled down some houses belonging to the abbot of Westminster: but this riot, which, considering the tumultuous disposition familiar to that capital, would have been little regarded, seemed to become more serious by the symptoms which then appeared of the former attachment of the citizens to the French interest. The populace, in the tumult, made use of the cry of war commonly employed by the French troops: “Mountjoy, Mountjoy, God help us and our lord Lewis.” The justiciary made inquiry into the disorder; and finding one Constantine Fitz-Arnulf to have been the ring-*leader, an insolent man, who justified his crime in Hubert’s presence, he proceeded against him by martial law, and ordered him immediately to be hanged, without trial or form of process. He also cut off the feet of some of Constantine’s accomplices.[*]

Justice was enforced more harshly against less planned disturbances that broke out in London. A petty rivalry during a wrestling match between the Londoners on one side and the residents of Westminster and nearby villages on the other sparked this unrest. The Londoners banded together and tore down some houses owned by the abbot of Westminster. However, this riot, which would typically have been overlooked given the chaotic nature of the city, seemed to escalate due to growing signs of the citizens' previous loyalty to the French cause. Amid the chaos, the crowd shouted a war cry commonly used by French troops: “Mountjoy, Mountjoy, God help us and our lord Lewis.” The authorities investigated the incident, and upon discovering that a man named Constantine Fitz-Arnulf was the ringleader—an arrogant individual who defended his actions in front of Hubert—they took action against him under martial law, ordering him to be hanged immediately without trial or formal process. They also amputated the feet of some of Constantine’s accomplices.[*]

This act of power was complained of as an infringement of the Great Charter: yet the justiciary, in a parliament summoned at Oxford, (for the great councils about this time began to receive that appellation,) made no scruple to grant in the king’s name a renewal and confirmation of that charter. When the assembly made application to the crown for this favor,—as a law in those times seemed to lose its validity if not frequently renewed,—William de Briewere, one of the council of regency, was so bold as to say openly, that those liberties were extorted by force, and ought not to be observed: but he was reprimanded by the archbishop of Canterbury, and was not countenanced by the king or his chief ministers.[**] A new confirmation was demanded and granted two years after; and an aid, amounting to a fifteenth of all movables, was given by the parliament, in return for this indulgence. The king issued writs anew to the sheriffs, enjoining the observance of the charter; but he inserted a remarkable clause in the writs, that those who paid not the fifteenth should not for the future be entitled to the benefit of those liberties.[***]

This act of power was criticized as a violation of the Great Charter; however, the justiciar, during a parliament called at Oxford (as the great councils began to be called around this time), had no hesitation in granting a renewal and confirmation of that charter in the king’s name. When the assembly requested this favor from the crown—since laws back then seemed to lose their validity unless renewed frequently—William de Briewere, a member of the regency council, boldly stated that those liberties were obtained by force and shouldn’t be followed. Still, he was reprimanded by the archbishop of Canterbury and was not supported by the king or his leading ministers.[**] A new confirmation was requested and granted two years later, and the parliament provided an aid amounting to a fifteenth of all movable goods in exchange for this concession. The king issued new writs to the sheriffs, instructing them to uphold the charter; but he added a notable clause stating that those who did not pay the fifteenth would no longer be entitled to the benefits of those liberties.[***]

     * M. Paris, p. 217, 218, 259. Ann. Waverl. p. 187. Chron.
     Dunst. vol. i. p. 129.

     ** M. West. p. 282.

     *** Clause ix. H. 3, m. 9, and m. 6, d.
     * M. Paris, p. 217, 218, 259. Ann. Waverl. p. 187. Chron.  
     Dunst. vol. i. p. 129.

     ** M. West. p. 282.

     *** Clause ix. H. 3, m. 9, and m. 6, d.

The low state into which the crown was fallen, made it requisite for a good minister to be attentive to the preservation of the royal prerogatives, as well as to the security of public liberty. Hubert applied to the pope, who had always great authority in the kingdom, and was now considered as its superior lord, and desired him to issue a bull, declaring the king to be of full age, and entitled to exercise in person all the acts of royalty.[*] In consequence of this declaration, the justiciary resigned into Henry’s hands the two important fortresses of the Tower and Dover Castle, which had been intrusted to his custody; and he required the other barons to imitate his example. They refused compliance: the earls of Chester and Albemarle, John Constable of Chester, John de Lacy, Brian de l’Isle, and William de Cantel, with some others, even formed a conspiracy to surprise London, and met in arms at Waltham with that intention: but finding the king prepared for defence, they desisted from their enterprise. When summoned to court in order to answer for their conduct, they scrupled not to appear, and to confess the design: but they told the king that they had no bad intentions against his person, but only against Hubert de Burgh, whom they were determined to remove from his office.[**] They appeared too formidable to be chastised; and they were so little discouraged by the failure of their first enterprise, that they again met in arms at Leicester, in order to seize the king, who then resided at Northampton: but Henry, informed of their purpose, took care to be so well armed and attended, that the barons found it dangerous to make the attempt; and they sat down and kept Christmas in his neighborhood.[***] The archbishop and the prelates, finding every thing tend towards a civil war, interposed with their authority, and threatened the barons with the sentence of excommunication, if they persisted in detaining the king’s castles. This menace at last prevailed: most of the fortresses were surrendered; though the barons complained that Hubert’s castles were soon after restored to him, while the king still kept theirs in his own custody. There are said to have been one thousand one hundred and fifteen castles at that time in England.[****]

The weakened condition of the crown made it necessary for a good minister to focus on protecting the royal powers as well as ensuring public freedom. Hubert reached out to the pope, who already held significant authority in the kingdom and was now seen as its higher lord, and asked him to issue a bull declaring the king to be of full age and entitled to personally perform all royal duties.[*] As a result of this declaration, the justiciary handed over the two critical fortresses of the Tower and Dover Castle, which had been under his care, to Henry; he also urged the other barons to do the same. They refused to comply: the earls of Chester and Albemarle, John Constable of Chester, John de Lacy, Brian de l’Isle, William de Cantel, and a few others even plotted to take London by force, gathering armed at Waltham with that aim. However, realizing the king was ready to defend himself, they abandoned their plan. When called to court to explain their actions, they had no qualms about appearing and admitting their scheme; but they insisted to the king that they meant no harm against him personally, only against Hubert de Burgh, whom they were determined to get rid of.[**] They seemed too powerful to be punished; and they were so undeterred by the failure of their first plot that they gathered arms again at Leicester, intent on capturing the king, who was then staying at Northampton. But Henry, warned of their intentions, made sure to be well-armed and accompanied, making the barons think twice about their attempt, and they ended up spending Christmas nearby instead.[***] The archbishop and other church leaders, seeing everything heading towards a civil war, intervened with their authority, warning the barons with excommunication if they continued to hold onto the king’s castles. This threat finally worked: most of the fortresses were given up; although the barons complained that Hubert’s castles were quickly returned to him while the king kept theirs under his control. It is said that there were one thousand one hundred and fifteen castles in England at that time.[****]

     * M. Paris, p. 220.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 137.

     *** M. Paris, p. 221. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 138.

     **** Coke’s Comment on Magna Charta, chap. 17.
     * M. Paris, p. 220.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 137.

     *** M. Paris, p. 221. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 138.

     **** Coke’s Comment on Magna Charta, chap. 17.

It must be acknowledged that the influence of the prelates and the clergy was often of great service to the public.

It should be recognized that the influence of the church leaders and clergy was often very helpful to the community.

Though the religion of that age can merit no better name than that of superstition, it served to unite together a body of men who had great sway over the people, and who kept the community from falling to pieces, by the factions and independent power of the nobles. And what was of great importance, it threw a mighty authority into the hands of men, who by their profession were averse to arms and violence, who tempered by their mediation the general disposition towards military enterprises; and who still maintained, even amidst the shock of arms, those secret links, without which it is impossible for human society to subsist.

Though the religion of that time can hardly be called anything but superstition, it helped unite a group of people who had significant influence over the population and who prevented the community from falling apart due to the rivalries and independent power of the nobles. Most importantly, it placed considerable authority in the hands of individuals who, by their profession, were against weapons and violence, who moderated the general attitude towards military actions; and who still maintained, even amid the chaos of conflict, those hidden connections essential for human society to survive.

Notwithstanding these intestine commotions in England, and the precarious authority of the crown, Henry was obliged to carry on war in France; and he employed to that purpose the fifteenth which had been granted him by parliament. Lewis VIII., who had succeeded to his father Philip, instead of complying with Henry’s claim, who demanded the restitution of Normandy and the other provinces wrested from England, made an irruption into Poictou, took Rochelle[*] after a long siege, and seemed determined to expel the English from the few provinces which still remained to them. Henry sent over his uncle, the earl of Salisbury, together with his brother, Prince Richard, to whom he had granted the earldom of Cornwall, which had escheated to the crown. Salisbury stopped the progress of Lewis’s arms, and retained the Poictevin and Gascon vassals in their allegiance: but no military action of any moment was performed on either side. The earl of Cornwall, after two years’ stay in Guienne, returned to England.

Despite the internal conflicts in England and the unstable authority of the crown, Henry had to continue the war in France and used the fifteenth he received from parliament for that purpose. Louis VIII, who succeeded his father Philip, instead of agreeing to Henry’s claim for the return of Normandy and other territories taken from England, invaded Poitou, captured Rochelle after a long siege, and seemed set on driving the English out of the few territories they still held. Henry sent his uncle, the Earl of Salisbury, along with his brother, Prince Richard, whom he had made the Earl of Cornwall since the title had come back to the crown. Salisbury halted Louis’s advances and kept the Poitevin and Gascon vassals loyal; however, no significant military actions took place on either side. The Earl of Cornwall returned to England after two years in Guyenne.

     * Rymer, vol i. p. 269. Trivet, p. 179.
     * Rymer, vol i. p. 269. Trivet, p. 179.

1227.

1227.

This prince was nowise turbulent or factious in his disposition: his ruling passion was to amass money, in which he succeeded so well as to become the richest subject in Christendom: yet his attention to gain threw him sometimes into acts of violence, and gave disturbance to the government. There was a manor, which had formerly belonged to the earldom of Cornwall but had been granted to Waleran de Ties, before Richard had been invested with that dignity, and while the earldom remained in the crown. Richard claimed this manor, and expelled the proprietor by force: Waleran complained: the king ordered his brother to do justice to the man, and restore him to his rights: the earl said that he would not submit to these orders, till the cause should be decided against him by the judgment of his peers: Henry replied, that it was first necessary to reinstate Waleran in possession, before the cause could be tried; and he reiterated his orders to the earl.[*] We may judge of the state of the government, when this affair had nearly produced a civil war The earl of Cornwall, finding Henry peremptory in his commands, associated himself with the young earl of Pembroke who had married his sister, and who was displeased on account of the king’s requiring him to deliver up some royal castles which were in his custody. These two malecontents took into the confederacy the earls of Chester, Warrenne, Glocester, Hereford, Warwick, and Ferrers, who were all disgusted on a like account. [**] They assembled an army, which the king had not the power or courage to resist; and he was obliged to give his brother satisfaction, by grants of much greater importance than the manor, which had been the first ground of the quarrel.[***]

This prince wasn't at all turbulent or troublesome by nature: his main passion was to accumulate wealth, and he did so successfully enough to become the richest subject in Christendom. However, his focus on gaining money sometimes led him to acts of violence and disrupted the government. There was a manor that had once belonged to the earldom of Cornwall but had been granted to Waleran de Ties before Richard received that title, while the earldom was still part of the crown. Richard claimed this manor and forcefully removed its owner. Waleran complained, and the king instructed his brother to right this wrong and restore him to his property. The earl stated he would not comply with these orders until his case was decided by his peers. Henry responded that it was necessary to restore Waleran's possession first before the case could be tried, and he repeated his commands to the earl.[*] We can see the state of the government when this issue almost led to a civil war. The earl of Cornwall, finding Henry adamant in his orders, allied himself with the young earl of Pembroke, who was married to his sister and was upset about the king's demand for him to hand over some royal castles under his charge. These two discontented nobles rallied the earls of Chester, Warrenne, Glocester, Hereford, Warwick, and Ferrers, all of whom shared similar grievances. [**] They gathered an army that the king lacked the power or courage to oppose, and he was forced to satisfy his brother with grants far more significant than the manor, which had sparked the initial conflict.[***]

The character of the king, as he grew to man’s estate, became every day better known; and he was found in every respect unqualified for maintaining a proper sway among those turbulent barons, whom the feudal constitution subjected to his authority. Gentle, humane, and merciful even to a fault, he seems to have been steady in no other circumstance of his character; but to have received every impression from those who surrounded him, and whom he loved, for the time, with the most imprudent and most unreserved affection. Without activity or vigor, he was unfit to conduct war; without policy or art, he was ill fitted to maintain peace: his resentments, though hasty and violent, were not dreaded, while he was found to drop them with such facility; his friendships were little valued, because they were neither derived from choice, nor maintained with constancy: a proper pageant of state in a regular monarchy, where his ministers could have conducted all affairs in his name and by his authority; but too feeble in those disorderly times to sway a sceptre, whose weight depended entirely on the firmness and dexterity of the hand which held it.

The king's character, as he matured into adulthood, became increasingly apparent; he was found to be lacking in every way necessary to effectively rule over the rebellious barons who were subject to his authority due to the feudal system. He was gentle, compassionate, and merciful, perhaps to a fault, but seemed to be consistent in no other aspect of his character. He easily absorbed the influences of those around him, whom he loved with an excessive and unreserved affection. Without any energy or decisiveness, he was unfit to lead in battle; lacking strategy or cunning, he was poorly equipped to maintain peace. His quick and intense anger was not feared, as he was known to let it go easily; his friendships were undervalued because they were not based on genuine choice or maintained with loyalty. He could have been a fitting figurehead in a stable monarchy, where his ministers could have managed all affairs in his name and under his authority. However, he was too weak for the chaotic times, unable to wield a scepter whose power relied entirely on the strength and skill of the person holding it.

     * M. Paris, p. 233.

     ** M. Paris, p. 233.

     *** M. Paris, p. 233.
     * M. Paris, p. 233.

     ** M. Paris, p. 233.

     *** M. Paris, p. 233.

The ablest and most virtuous minister that Henry ever possessed was Hubert de Burgh;[*] a man who had been steady to the crown in the most difficult and dangerous times, and who yet showed no disposition, in the height of his power, to enslave or oppress the people. The only exceptionable part of his conduct is that which is mentioned by Matthew Paris,[**] if the fact be really true, and proceeded from Hubert’s advice, namely, the recalling publicly and the annulling of the charter of forests, a concession so reasonable in itself, and so passionately claimed both by the nobility and people: but it must be confessed that this measure is so unlikely, both from the circumstances of the times and character of the minister, that there is reason to doubt of its reality, especially as it is mentioned by no other historian. Hubert, while he enjoyed his authority, had an entire ascendant over Henry, and was loaded with honors and favors beyond any other subject.

The most skilled and honorable minister that Henry ever had was Hubert de Burgh; a man who remained loyal to the crown during the toughest and most dangerous times, yet showed no inclination, at the peak of his power, to enslave or oppress the people. The only questionable aspect of his actions is the one noted by Matthew Paris, if it's actually true, and stemmed from Hubert’s advice, which is the public recall and annulment of the charter of forests, a demand that was both reasonable and fervently sought by both the nobility and the people. However, it must be acknowledged that this action seems so unlikely, given the circumstances of the time and the character of the minister, that there are reasons to doubt its authenticity, especially since no other historian mentions it. While he held his position of authority, Hubert had complete control over Henry and was showered with honors and privileges unlike any other subject.

1231.

1231.

Besides acquiring the property of many castles and manors, he married the eldest sister of the king of Scots, was created earl of Kent, and, by an unusual concession, was made chief justiciary of England for life; yet Henry, in a sudden caprice, threw off his faithful minister, and exposed him to the violent persecutions of his enemies. Among other frivolous crimes objected to him, he was accused of gaining the king’s affections by enchantment, and of purloining from the royal treasury a gem which had the virtue to render the wearer invulnerable, and of sending this valuable curiosity to the prince of Wales.[***] The nobility, who hated Hubert on account of his zeal in resuming the rights and possessions of the crown, no sooner saw the opportunity favorable, than they inflamed the king’s animosity against him, and pushed him to seek the total ruin of his minister. Hubert took sanctuary in a church: the king ordered him to be dragged from thence: he recalled those orders: he afterwards renewed them: he was obliged by the clergy to restore him to the sanctuary: he constrained him soon after to surrender himself prisoner, and he confined him in the castle of the Devizes. Hubert made his escape, was expelled the kingdom, was again received into favor, recovered a great share of the king’s confidence, but never showed any inclination to reinstate himself in power and authority.[****]

Besides acquiring the properties of many castles and estates, he married the eldest sister of the King of Scots, was named Earl of Kent, and, through an unusual concession, was appointed Chief Justiciar of England for life. Yet Henry, in a sudden whim, dismissed his loyal minister and exposed him to harsh persecution from his enemies. Among other trivial charges brought against him, he was accused of winning the king’s favor through sorcery, stealing a gem from the royal treasury that was said to make the wearer invulnerable, and sending this valuable curiosity to the Prince of Wales.[***] The nobility, who despised Hubert for his eagerness in reclaiming the rights and possessions of the crown, wasted no time in seizing the opportunity to stoke the king’s anger against him and urged him to seek the complete destruction of his minister. Hubert sought refuge in a church; the king ordered him to be dragged out, then rescinded that order, and later repeated it. He was compelled by the clergy to restore Hubert to the church sanctuary, but soon thereafter forced him to surrender and imprisoned him in the castle of the Devizes. Hubert escaped, was banished from the kingdom, was later welcomed back into favor, regained much of the king’s trust, but never showed any desire to restore himself to power and authority.[****]

     * Ypod. Neust. p. 464.

     ** Page 232. M. West (p. 216) ascribes this counsel to
     Peter, bishop of Winchester.

     *** M. Paris, p. 259.

     **** M. Paris, p. 259, 260, 261, 266. Chron. T. Wykes, p.
     41, 47 Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 220, 221. M. West, p. 291,
     301.
     * Ypod. Neust. p. 464.

     ** Page 232. M. West (p. 216) credits this advice to
     Peter, bishop of Winchester.

     *** M. Paris, p. 259.

     **** M. Paris, p. 259, 260, 261, 266. Chron. T. Wykes, p.
     41, 47 Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 220, 221. M. West, p. 291,
     301.

The man who succeeded him in the government of the king and kingdom, was Peter, bishop of Winchester, a Poictevin by birth, who had been raised by the late king, and who was no less distinguished by his arbitrary principles and violent conduct, than by his courage and abilities. This prelate had been left by King John justiciary and regent of the kingdom during an expedition which that prince made into France; and his illegal administration was one chief cause of that great combination among the barons, which finally extorted from the crown the charter of liberties, and laid the foundation of the English constitution. Henry, though incapable, from his character, of pursuing the same violent maxims which had governed his father, had imbibed the same arbitrary principles; and in prosecution of Peter’s advice, he invited over a great number of Poictevins and other foreigners, who, he believed, could more safely be trusted than the English, and who seemed useful to counterbalance the great and independent power of the nobility.[*] Every office and command was bestowed on these strangers; they exhausted the revenues of the crown, already too much impoverished;[**] they invaded the rights of the people; and their insolence, still more provoking than their power, drew on them the hatred and envy of all orders of men in the kingdom.[***]

The man who took over the government from him was Peter, the bishop of Winchester, originally from Poitou, who had been raised by the late king. He was known for his harsh principles and aggressive behavior, as well as his bravery and skills. This bishop had been appointed justiciar and regent of the kingdom by King John during a campaign in France, and his unlawful rule was a major reason behind the strong opposition from the barons, which ultimately forced the crown to grant the charter of liberties and laid the groundwork for the English constitution. Henry, despite not being able to adopt the same ruthless policies as his father, had absorbed the same arbitrary beliefs. Acting on Peter's counsel, he called over a large number of Poitevins and other foreigners who he thought could be trusted more than the English and seemed useful to balance the significant and independent power of the nobility. Every position and responsibility was given to these outsiders; they drained the already impoverished royal treasury; they infringed on the rights of the people; and their arrogance, even more irritating than their power, stirred the resentment and envy of all social classes in the kingdom.

1233.

1233.

The barons formed a combination against this odious ministry, and withdrew from parliament, on pretence of the danger to which they were exposed from the machinations of the Poictevins. When again summoned to attend, they gave for answer, that the king should dismiss his foreigners, otherwise they would drive both him and them out of the kingdom, and put the crown on another head, more worthy to wear it: [****] such was the style they used to their sovereign. They at last came to parliament, but so well attended, that they seemed in a condition to prescribe laws to the king and ministry.

The barons banded together against this detestable government and pulled out of parliament, claiming they were in danger from the schemes of the Poictevins. When they were summoned to return, they responded that the king needed to get rid of his foreign advisors, or they would force him and them out of the kingdom and place the crown on someone more deserving: [****] such was the tone they took with their ruler. Eventually, they returned to parliament, but their presence was so strong that they appeared ready to dictate laws to the king and his administration.

     * M. Paris, p. 263

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 151.

     *** M. Paris, p. 258

     **** M. Paris, p 265.
     * M. Paris, p. 263

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 151.

     *** M. Paris, p. 258

     **** M. Paris, p. 265.

Peter des Roches, however, had in the interval found means of sowing dissension among them, and of bringing over to his party the earl of Cornwall, as well as the earls of Lincoln and Chester. The confederates were disconcerted in their measures: Richard, earl Mareschal, who had succeeded to that dignity on the death of his brother William, was chased into Wales; he thence withdrew into Ireland, where he was treacherously murdered by the contrivance of the bishop of Winchester.[*] The estates of the more obnoxious barons were confiscated, without legal sentence or trial by their peers; [**] and were bestowed with a profuse liberality on the Poictevins. Peter even carried his insolence so far as to declare publicly, that the barons of England must not pretend to put themselves on the same foot with those of France, or assume the same liberties and privileges: the monarch in the former country had a more absolute power than in the latter. It had been more justifiable for him to have said, that men so unwilling to submit to the authority of laws, could with the worst grace claim any shelter or protection from them.

Peter des Roches, however, had in the meantime found ways to create conflict among them and to win over the Earl of Cornwall, as well as the Earls of Lincoln and Chester. The allies were thrown off balance in their plans: Richard, Earl Mareschal, who had taken on that title after the death of his brother William, was forced to flee to Wales; he then escaped to Ireland, where he was treacherously murdered through the scheming of the Bishop of Winchester.[*] The estates of the more disliked barons were seized without a legal sentence or trial by their peers; [**] and were generously given to the Poictevins. Peter even had the audacity to declare publicly that the barons of England shouldn’t think they could stand on the same level as those in France, or claim the same freedoms and privileges: the king in the former country had more absolute power than in the latter. It would have been more justifiable for him to say that men so unwilling to submit to the authority of laws could hardly claim any shelter or protection from them.

When the king at any time was checked in his illegal practices, and when the authority of the Great Charter was objected to him, he was wont to reply, “Why should I observe this charter, which is neglected by all my grandees, both prelates and nobility?” It was very reasonably said to him, “You ought, sir, to set them the example.” [***]

When the king was ever confronted about his unlawful activities, and when the Great Charter was brought up, he often responded, “Why should I follow this charter that all my nobles, both church leaders and aristocrats, ignore?” It was quite rightly pointed out to him, “You should, sir, show them the way.” [***]

So violent a ministry as that of the bishop of Winchester could not be of long duration; but its fall proceeded at last from the influence of the church, not from the efforts of the nobles. Edmond, the primate, came to court, attended by many of the other prelates, and represented to the king the pernicious measures embraced by Peter des Roches, the discontents of his people, the ruin of his affairs; and after requiring the dismission of the minister and his associates, threatened him with excommunication in case of his refusal. Henry, who knew that an excommunication so agreeable to the sense of the people could not fail of producing the most dangerous effects, was obliged to submit: foreigners were banished; the natives were restored to their place in council;[****] the primate, who was a man of prudence, and who took care to execute the laws and observe the charter of liberties, bore the chief sway in the government.

A ministry as violent as that of the Bishop of Winchester couldn’t last long; however, its downfall ultimately came from the church's influence, not the nobles' efforts. Edmond, the archbishop, came to the court with many other bishops and pointed out to the king the harmful actions taken by Peter des Roches, the unrest among his people, and the resulting chaos of his rule. After demanding the dismissal of the minister and his associates, he warned him of excommunication if he refused. Henry, knowing that an excommunication widely supported by the people would lead to serious repercussions, had no choice but to comply: foreigners were expelled; locals were reinstated in the council;[****] the archbishop, a wise man who ensured the laws were enforced and the charter of liberties respected, took the lead in the government.

1236.

1236.

But the English in vain flattered themselves that they should be long free from the dominion of foreigners. The king, having married Eleanor, daughter of the count of Provence,[*****] was surrounded by a great number of strangers from that country, whom he caressed with the fondest affection, and enriched by an imprudent generosity.[******]

But the English foolishly believed they would be free from foreign control for a long time. The king, having married Eleanor, the daughter of the count of Provence,[*****] was surrounded by many foreigners from that region, whom he treated with great affection and showered with careless generosity.[******]

     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i p. 219.

     ** M. Paris, p. 265.

     *** M. Paris, p. 608.

     **** M. Paris, p. 271, 272

     ****** M. Paris, p. 286.
     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i p. 219.

     ** M. Paris, p. 265.

     *** M. Paris, p. 608.

     **** M. Paris, p. 271, 272

     ****** M. Paris, p. 286.

The bishop of Valence, a prelate of the house of Savoy, and maternal uncle to the queen, was his chief minister, and employed every art to amass wealth for himself and his relations. Peter of Savoy, a brother of the same family, was invested in the honor of Richmond, and received the rich wardship of Earl Warrenne; Boniface of Savoy was promoted to the see of Canterbury: many young ladies were invited over to Provence, and married to the chief noblemen of England, who were the king’s wards. [*] And, as the source of Henry’s bounty began to fail, his Savoyard ministry applied to Rome, and obtained a bull, permitting him to resume all past grants; absolving him from the oath which he had taken to maintain them; even enjoining him to make such a resumption, and representing those grants as invalid, on account of the prejudice which ensued from them to the Roman pontiff, in whom the superiority of the kingdom was vested.[**] The opposition made to the intended resumption prevented it from taking place; but the nation saw the indignities to which the king was willing to submit, in order to gratify the avidity of his foreign favorites. About the same time he published in England the sentence of excommunication, pronounced against the emperor Frederic, his brother-in-law;[***] and said in excuse, that, being the pope’s vassal, he was obliged by his allegiance to obey all the commands of his holiness. In this weak reign, when any neighboring potentate insulted the king’s dominions, instead of taking revenge for the injury, he complained to the pope as his superior lord, and begged him to give protection to his vassal.[****]

The bishop of Valence, a member of the Savoy family and the queen's uncle, was his main advisor and used every trick to gather wealth for himself and his relatives. Peter of Savoy, another brother from the same family, was given the honor of Richmond and received the lucrative wardship of Earl Warrenne; Boniface of Savoy was promoted to the position of Archbishop of Canterbury. Many young women were brought over to Provence and married off to the leading noblemen of England, who were under the king's guardianship. [*] As Henry’s generosity began to fade, his Savoyard advisors turned to Rome and got a papal bull that allowed him to reclaim previous grants; they exempted him from the oath he had taken to uphold them; they even pressured him to do so, claiming those grants were invalid because they harmed the pope, who held the kingdom's superiority. [**] The resistance to this intended reclamation stopped it from happening; however, the nation witnessed the humiliations the king was willing to endure to satisfy the greed of his foreign favorites. Around the same time, he announced in England the excommunication of Emperor Frederic, his brother-in-law; [***] he justified it by saying that, as the pope’s vassal, he was obligated by his loyalty to follow all of his holiness's commands. During this weak reign, when any neighboring ruler insulted the king's lands, instead of seeking revenge, he complained to the pope as his overlord and asked him to protect his vassal. [****]

     * M. Paris, p. 236, 301, 305, 316, 541.

     **M. West. p. 302, 304.

     *** M. Paris, p. 484.

     ****M. West.p. 338.
     * M. Paris, p. 236, 301, 305, 316, 541.

     **M. West. p. 302, 304.

     *** M. Paris, p. 484.

     ****M. West.p. 338.

1247.

1247.

The resentment of the English barons rose high at the preference given to foreigners; but no remonstrance or complaint could ever prevail on the king to abandon them, or even to moderate his attachment towards them. After the Provencals and Savoyards might have been supposed pretty well satiated with the dignities and riches which they had acquired, a new set of hungry foreigners were invited over, and shared among them those favors which the king ought in policy to have conferred on the English nobility, by whom his government could have been supported and defended. His mother Isabella, who had been unjustly taken by the late king from the count de la Marche, to whom she was betrothed, was no mistress of herself by the death of her husband, than she married that nobleman;[*] and she had born him four sons, Guy, William, Geoffrey, and Aymer, whom she sent over to England, in order to pay a visit to their brother. The good-natured and affectionate disposition of Henry was moved at the sight of such near relations; and he considered neither his own circumstances, nor the inclinations of his people, in the honors and riches which he conferred upon them.[**] Complaints rose as high against the credit of the Gascon, as ever they had done against that of the Poictevin and of the Savoyard favorites; and to a nation prejudiced against them, all their measures appeared exceptionable and criminal. Violations of the Great Charter were frequently mentioned; and it is indeed more than probable, that foreigners, ignorant of the laws, and relying on the boundless affections of a weak prince, would, in an age when a regular administration was not any where known, pay more attention to their present interest than to the liberties of the people. It is reported that the Poictevins and other strangers, when the laws were at any time appealed to in opposition to their oppressions, scrupled not to reply, “What did the English laws signify to them? They minded them not.” And as words are often more offensive than actions, this open contempt of the English tended much to aggravate the general discontent, and made every act of violence committed by the foreigners appear not only an injury, but an affront to them.[***]

The anger of the English barons grew intensely due to the favoritism shown to foreigners, but no protests or complaints could ever persuade the king to let go of them or even tone down his loyalty to them. Just when it seemed like the Provencals and Savoyards had been satisfied with the titles and wealth they gained, a new group of eager foreigners was invited over, sharing the perks that the king should have ideally given to the English nobility, who could have supported and defended his rule. His mother, Isabella, who had been wrongfully taken from the count de la Marche, to whom she was engaged, was not really in control of her own life after her husband's death when she married that nobleman; and she had four sons with him: Guy, William, Geoffrey, and Aymer, whom she sent to England to visit their brother. The kind and loving nature of Henry was touched by the sight of such close relatives, and he didn't consider his own situation or the feelings of his people when he awarded them honors and wealth. Complaints rose sharply against the influence of the Gascon, just as they had against the Poictevin and Savoyard favorites; and to a nation that was already biased against them, all their actions seemed wrong and questionable. Violations of the Great Charter were often brought up; and it is very likely that foreigners, unaware of the laws and relying on the blind affection of a weak king, would, in a time when a proper administration was unheard of, focus more on their immediate interests than on the people's freedoms. It was said that the Poictevins and other outsiders, when the laws were invoked against their abuses, would boldly reply, “What do English laws mean to us? We don’t care about them.” And since words can often be more hurtful than actions, this blatant disregard for the English worsened the overall discontent and made every violent act carried out by the foreigners feel not only like an injury but also an insult to the English.

I reckon not among the violations of the Great Charter some arbitrary exertions of prerogative to which Henry’s necessities pushed him, and which, without producing any discontent, were uniformly continued by all his successors, till the last century. As the parliament often refused him supplies, and that in a manner somewhat rude and indecent,[****] he obliged his opulent subjects, particularly the citizens of London, to grant him loans of money; and it is natural to imagine that the same want of economy which reduced him to the necessity of borrowing, would prevent him from being very punctual in the repayment.[*****] He demanded benevolences, or pretended voluntary contributions, from his nobility and prelates.[******]

I don't think some arbitrary exercises of power, which Henry's needs forced him into, were among the violations of the Great Charter. These actions, which didn't cause any discontent, were consistently carried out by all his successors until the last century. Since Parliament often refused to give him funding, and did so in a rather rude and inappropriate way,[****] he compelled his wealthy subjects, especially the citizens of London, to lend him money. It's reasonable to believe that the same lack of financial management that led him to borrow would also make him less reliable in paying it back.[*****] He requested benevolences, or so-called voluntary contributions, from his nobles and bishops.[******]

     * Trivet, p. 174.

     ** M. Paris, p. 491. M. West. p. 338. Knyghton, p. 2436.

     *** M. Paris, p. 566, 666. Ann. Waverl. p. 214. Chron.
     Dunst. vol. i. p. 335.

     **** M. Paris, p. 301

     ****** M. Paris, p. 507
     * Trivet, p. 174.

     ** M. Paris, p. 491. M. West. p. 338. Knyghton, p. 2436.

     *** M. Paris, p. 566, 666. Ann. Waverl. p. 214. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 335.

     **** M. Paris, p. 301

     ****** M. Paris, p. 507

He was the first king of England, since the conquest, that could fairly be said to lie under the restraint of law; and he was also the first that practised the dispensing power, and he employed the clause of “non obstante” in his grants and patents. When objections were made to this novelty, he replied that the pope exercised that authority, and why might not he imitate the example? But the abuse which the pope made of his dispensing power, in violating the canons of general councils, in invading the privileges and customs of all particular churches, and in usurping on the rights of patrons, was more likely to excite the jealousy of the people than to reconcile them to a similar practice in their civil government. Roger de Thurkesby, one of the king’s justices, was so displeased with the precedent, that he exclaimed, “Alas! what times are we fallen into? Behold, the civil court is corrupted in imitation of the ecclesiastical, and the river is poisoned from that fountain.”

He was the first king of England, since the conquest, who could honestly be said to be under the rule of law; and he was also the first to practice the dispensing power, using the clause of “non obstante” in his grants and patents. When people raised concerns about this new approach, he responded that the pope had that authority, so why shouldn’t he follow that example? However, the way the pope abused his dispensing power by ignoring the canons of general councils, intruding on the privileges and customs of individual churches, and overstepping the rights of patrons, was more likely to make people suspicious than to get them to accept a similar practice in their civil government. Roger de Thurkesby, one of the king’s justices, was so upset by the precedent that he exclaimed, “Alas! what times have we fallen into? Look, the civil court is corrupted by imitating the ecclesiastical, and the river is poisoned from that fountain.”

The king’s partiality and profuse bounty to his foreign relations, and to their friends and favorites, would have appeared more tolerable to the English, had any thing been done meanwhile for the honor of the nation, or had Henry’s enterprises in foreign countries been attended with any success or glory to himself or to the public; at least, such military talents in the king would have served to keep his barons in awe, and have given weight and authority to his government. But though he declared war against Lewis IX. in 1242, and made an expedition into Guienne, upon the invitation of his father-in-law, the count de la Marche, who promised to join him with all his forces, he was unsuccessful in his attempts against that great monarch, was worsted at Taillebourg, was deserted by his allies, lost what remained to him of Poictou, and was obliged to return with loss of honor into England.[*]

The king’s favoritism and lavish gifts to his foreign allies, along with their friends and supporters, might have seemed more acceptable to the English if anything had been done during that time to boost the country’s reputation or if Henry’s ventures abroad had brought him or the public any success or glory. At the very least, his military skills could have kept his barons in check and lent strength and authority to his rule. However, even though he declared war on Lewis IX in 1242 and launched an expedition into Guienne at the urging of his father-in-law, the Count de la Marche, who promised to support him with all his forces, he failed in his efforts against the powerful monarch, was defeated at Taillebourg, abandoned by his allies, lost what little he still had in Poictou, and had to return to England in disgrace.[*]

1253.

1253.

The Gascon nobility were attached to the English government, because the distance of their sovereign allowed them to remain in a state of almost total independence; and they claimed, some time after, Henry’s protection against an invasion which the king of Castile made upon that territory. Henry returned into Guienne, and was more successful in this expedition; but he thereby involved himself and his nobility in an enormous debt, which both increased their discontents, and exposed him to greater danger from their enterprises.[**]

The Gascon nobility were loyal to the English government because their distance from their king allowed them to enjoy almost complete independence. Later on, they sought Henry’s protection against an invasion from the king of Castile in their territory. Henry returned to Guienne and had more success in this campaign; however, he ended up putting himself and his nobility in a huge amount of debt, which only fueled their discontent and put him in greater danger from their actions. [**]

     * M. Paris, p. 393, 394, 398, 399, 405. W. Heming. p. 574.
     Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 153.

     ** M. Paris, p. 414.
     * M. Paris, p. 393, 394, 398, 399, 405. W. Heming. p. 574.
     Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 153.

     ** M. Paris, p. 414.

Want of economy and an ill-judged liberality were Henry’s great defects; and his debts, even before this expedition, had become so troublesome, that he sold all his plate and jewels, in order to discharge them. When this expedient was first proposed to him, he asked where he should find purchasers. It was replied, the citizens of London. “On my word,” said he, “if the treasury of Augustus were brought to sale, the citizens are able to be the purchasers: these clowns, who assume to themselves the name of barons, abound in every thing, while we are reduced to necessities.”[*] And he was thenceforth observed to be more forward and greedy in his exactions upon the citizens.[**]

Henry's major flaws were his lack of financial sense and poor generosity. His debts had become such a hassle, even before this mission, that he sold all his silverware and jewels to pay them off. When this plan was first suggested to him, he asked where he would find buyers. It was answered that the citizens of London would buy them. "Honestly," he replied, "if the treasury of Augustus were up for sale, these citizens could buy it: these fools who call themselves barons have everything they need, while we are struggling to get by." From then on, he was seen as being more eager and greedy in his demands from the citizens.

But the grievances which the English during this reign had reason to complain of in the civil government, seem to have been still less burdensome than those which they suffered from the usurpations and exactions of the court of Rome. On the death of Langton, in 1228, the monks of Christ-church elected Walter de Hemesham, one of their own body, for his successor: but as Henry refused to confirm the election, the pope, at his desire, annulled it;[***] and immediately appointed Richard, chancellor of Lincoln, for archbishop, without waiting for a new election. On the death of Richard, in 1231, the monks elected Ralph de Neville, bishop of Chichester; and though Henry was much pleased with the election, the pope, who thought that prelate too much attached to the crown, assumed the power of annulling his election.[****] He rejected two clergymen more, whom the monks had successively chosen; and he at last told them that, if they would elect Edmond, treasurer of the church of Salisbury, he would confirm their choice; and his nomination was complied with. The pope had the prudence to appoint both times very worthy primates; but men could not forbear observing his intention of thus drawing gradually to himself the right of bestowing that important dignity.

But the complaints that the English had about their civil government during this time seemed to be even less burdensome than those caused by the usurpations and demands of the court of Rome. After Langton died in 1228, the monks of Christchurch elected Walter de Hemesham, one of their own, as his successor. However, Henry refused to confirm the election, so the pope, at his request, annulled it; and immediately appointed Richard, the chancellor of Lincoln, as archbishop without waiting for a new election. When Richard died in 1231, the monks elected Ralph de Neville, the bishop of Chichester; and although Henry was pleased with this choice, the pope, believing that the bishop was too loyal to the crown, took it upon himself to annul the election. He turned down two more clergymen that the monks chose afterward, and finally told them that if they elected Edmond, the treasurer of the church of Salisbury, he would confirm their decision; so they went along with his suggestion. The pope wisely appointed very worthy primates each time, but people couldn’t help but notice his intention to gradually take control of the right to grant that important position.

     * M. Paris, p. 501.

     ** M. Paris, p. 501, 507, 518, 578, 606, 625, 548.

     *** M. Paris, p. 244.

     **** M. Paris, p. 254.
     * M. Paris, p. 501.

     ** M. Paris, p. 501, 507, 518, 578, 606, 625, 548.

     *** M. Paris, p. 244.

     **** M. Paris, p. 254.

The avarice, however, more than the ambition of the see of Rome, seems to have been in this age the ground of general complaint. The papal ministers, finding a vast stock of power amassed by their predecessors, were desirous of turning it to immediate profit, which they enjoyed at home, rather than of enlarging their authority in distant countries, where they never intended to reside. Every thing was become venal in the Romish tribunals: simony was openly practised; no favors, and even no justice, could be obtained without a bribe; the highest bidder was sure to have the preference, without regard either to the merits of the person or of the cause; and besides the usual perversions of right in the decision of controversies, the pope openly assumed an absolute and uncontrolled authority of setting aside, by the plenitude of his apostolic power, all particular rules, and all privileges of patrons, churches, and convents. On pretence of remedying these abuses, Pope Honorius, in 1226, complaining of the poverty of his see as the source of all grievances, demanded from every cathedral two of the best prebends, and from every convent two monks’ portions, to be set apart as a perpetual and settled revenue of the papal crown; but all men being sensible that the revenue would continue forever, and the abuses immediately return, his demand was unanimously rejected. About three years after, the pope demanded and obtained the tenth of all ecclesiastical revenues, which he levied in a very oppressive manner; requiring payment before the clergy had drawn their rents or tithes, and sending about usurers, who advanced them the money at exorbitant interest. In the year 1240, Otho the legate, having in vain attempted the clergy in a body, obtained separately, by intrigues and menaces, large sums from the prelates and convents, and on his departure is said to have carried more money out of the kingdom than he left in it This experiment was renewed four years after with success by Martin the nuncio, who brought from Rome powers of suspending and excommunicating all clergymen that refused to comply with his demands. The king, who relied on the pope for the support of his tottering authority, never failed to countenance those exactions.

The greed, more than the ambition for the position in Rome, seems to have been the main complaint during this time. The papal officials, with a huge amount of power accumulated by their predecessors, were eager to make immediate gains at home instead of expanding their authority in far-off lands where they never planned to live. Everything had become up for sale in the Roman courts: simony was openly practiced; no favors or even justice could be gained without a bribe; the highest bidder always got priority, regardless of the person's merits or the specifics of the case; and beyond the usual injustices in handling disputes, the pope openly claimed complete and unrestricted power to disregard all specific rules and the privileges of patrons, churches, and monasteries by the fullness of his apostolic authority. Under the guise of fixing these issues, Pope Honorius, in 1226, complained about the poverty of his see as the root of all troubles and demanded that each cathedral provide two of its best prebends and each convent two monk's portions to create a permanent revenue for the papal crown; however, everyone realized that this income would last forever, and the abuses would return quickly, leading to a unanimous rejection of his request. About three years later, the pope demanded and took a tenth of all ecclesiastical income, collecting it in a very oppressive way; he required payment before the clergy received their rents or tithes and sent around moneylenders who offered cash at exorbitant interest. In 1240, Otho the legate, after failing to convince the clergy as a group, managed to extract large sums from bishops and convents through schemes and threats, reportedly leaving with more money than he brought into the kingdom. This tactic was repeated four years later with success by Martin the nuncio, who came from Rome with the authority to suspend and excommunicate any clergyman who wouldn’t meet his demands. The king, relying on the pope to support his shaky authority, always backed these demands.

Meanwhile all the chief benefices of the kingdom were conferred on Italians; great numbers of that nation were sent over at one time to be provided for; non-residence and pluralities were carried to an enormous height; Mansel, the king’s chaplain, is computed to have held at once seven hundred ecclesiastical livings; and the abuses became so evident, as to be palpable to the blindness of superstition itself. The people, entering into associations, rose against the Italian clergy; pillaged their barns; wasted their lands; insulted the persons of such of them as they found in the kingdom;[*] and when the justices made inquiry into the authors of this disorder, the guilt was found to involve so many, and those of such high rank, that it passed unpunished.

Meanwhile, all the major church positions in the kingdom were given to Italians; a large number of people from that country were brought over at one time to be supported; non-residency and holding multiple positions reached outrageous levels; Mansel, the king's chaplain, is estimated to have held seven hundred church roles at once; and the abuses became so obvious that even the blind superstition couldn’t ignore them. The people formed associations and rebelled against the Italian clergy; they looted their warehouses, destroyed their lands, and harassed any of them they found in the kingdom; and when the justices investigated who was responsible for this unrest, it turned out that so many high-ranking individuals were involved that it went unpunished.

* Rymer, vol. i. p. 323. M. Paris, p. 255, 257.

* Rymer, vol. i. p. 323. M. Paris, p. 255, 257.

At last, when Innocent IV., in 1245, called a general council at Lyons, in order to excommunicate the emperor Frederic, the king and nobility sent over agents to complain, before the council, of the rapacity of the Romish church. They represented, among many other grievances, that the benefices of the Italian clergy in England had been estimated, and were found to amount to sixty thousand marks[*] a year, a sum which exceeded the annual revenue of the crown itself.[**] They obtained only an evasive answer from the pope; but as mention had been made, before the council, of the feudal subjection of England to the see of Rome, the English agents, at whose head was Roger Bigod, earl of Norfolk, exclaimed against the pretension, and insisted that King John had no right, without the consent of his barons, to subject the kingdom to so ignominious a servitude.[***] The popes, indeed, afraid of carrying matters too far against England, seem thenceforth to have little insisted on that pretension.

Finally, when Innocent IV convened a general council in Lyons in 1245 to excommunicate Emperor Frederick, the king and nobility sent representatives to voice their complaints about the greed of the Roman church. They highlighted several grievances, including that the income of the Italian clergy in England was estimated at sixty thousand marks a year, a figure that surpassed the crown's annual revenue itself. They received only a vague response from the pope; however, since the council discussed England's feudal subjection to the papacy, the English representatives, led by Roger Bigod, Earl of Norfolk, protested this claim. They argued that King John had no right to impose such humiliating subjugation on the kingdom without their barons' consent. From that point on, the popes seemed hesitant to press that claim too hard against England.

This check, received at the council of Lyons, was not able to stop the court of Rome in its rapacity: Innocent exacted the revenues of all vacant benefices, the twentieth of all ecclesiastical revenues without exception; the third of such as were exceeded a hundred marks a year; the half of such as were possessed by non-residents.[****] He claimed the goods of all intestate clergymen;[*****] he pretended a title to inherit all money gotten by usury: he levied benevolences upon the people; and when the king, contrary to his usual practice, prohibited these exactions, he threatened to pronounce against him the same censures which he had emitted against the emperor Frederic.[******]

This check, received at the council of Lyons, couldn't stop the court of Rome from its greed: Innocent demanded the income from all vacant positions, one-fifth of all church revenues without exception; one-third of any earnings over a hundred marks a year; and half of what was held by non-residents.[****] He claimed the assets of all clergymen who died without a will;[*****] he asserted a right to inherit all money gained from usury; he raised funds from the people; and when the king, unlike his usual approach, forbade these demands, he threatened to impose the same penalties on him that he had issued against Emperor Frederic.[******]

1255.

1255.

But the most oppressive expedient employed by the pope, was the embarking of Henry in a project for the conquest of Naples, or Sicily on this side the Fare, as it was called; an enterprise which threw much dishonor on the king, and involved him, during some years, in great trouble and expense. The Romish church, taking advantage of favorable incidents, had reduced the kingdom of Sicily to the same state of feudal vassalage which she pretended to extend over England; and which, by reason of the distance, as well as high spirit of this latter kingdom, she was not able to maintain. After the death of the emperor Frederic II., the succession of Sicily devolved to Conradine, grandson of that monarch; and Mainfroy, his natural son, under pretence of governing the kingdom during the minority of the prince, had formed a scheme of establishing his own authority. Pope Innocent, who had carried on violent war against the emperor Frederic, and had endeavored to dispossess him of his Italian dominions, still continued hostilities against his grandson; but being disappointed in all his schemes by the activity and artifices of Mainfroy, he found that his own force alone was not sufficient to bring to a happy issue so great an enterprise. He pretended to dispose of the Sicilian crown, both as superior lord of that particular kingdom, and as vicar of Christ, to whom all kingdoms of the earth were subjected; and he made a tender of it to Richard, earl of Cornwall, whose immense riches, he flattered himself, would be able to support the military operations against Mainfroy. As Richard had the prudence to refuse the present,[*] he applied to the king, whose levity and thoughtless disposition gave Innocent more hopes of success; and he offered him the crown of Sicily for his second son, Edmond.[**] Henry, allured by so magnificent a present, without reflecting on the consequences, without consulting either with his brother or the parliament, accepted of the insidious proposal, and gave the pope unlimited credit to expend whatever sums he thought necessary for completing the conquest of Sicily. Innocent, who was engaged by his own interests to wage war with Mainfroy, was glad to carry on his enterprises at the expense of his ally: Alexander IV., who succeeded him in the papal throne, continued the same policy, and Henry was surprised to find himself on a sudden involved in an immense debt, which he had never been consulted in contracting. The sum already amounted to a hundred and thirty-five thousand five hundred and forty-one marks, beside interest;[***] and he had the prospect, if he answered this demand, of being soon loaded with more exorbitant expenses if he refused it, of both incurring the pope’s displeasure, and losing the crown of Sicily, which he hoped soon to have the glory of fixing on the head of his son.

But the most oppressive tactic used by the pope was getting Henry involved in an attempt to conquer Naples or Sicily on this side of the Fare, as it was called; a venture that brought a lot of dishonor to the king and caused him great trouble and expense for several years. The Roman Catholic Church, seizing on favorable circumstances, had reduced the kingdom of Sicily to the same state of feudal subservience that it pretended to impose over England; which, due to the distance and the high spirits of England, it couldn't maintain. After the death of Emperor Frederick II, the succession of Sicily passed to Conradine, the grandson of that monarch; and Mainfroy, his illegitimate son, under the guise of ruling the kingdom during the prince's minority, planned to establish his own authority. Pope Innocent, who had waged fierce war against Emperor Frederick and sought to strip him of his Italian territories, continued his hostilities against his grandson. However, after failing in all his plans due to Mainfroy's quick thinking and schemes, he realized that his own forces were not enough to successfully complete such a large undertaking. He pretended to have the right to grant the Sicilian crown, both as the lord of that particular kingdom and as the vicar of Christ, to whom all kingdoms of the earth were subject; and he offered it to Richard, Earl of Cornwall, whose immense wealth he thought would help support the military efforts against Mainfroy. When Richard wisely declined the offer,[*] he turned to the king, whose careless and thoughtless nature gave Innocent more hope of success; and he offered him the crown of Sicily for his second son, Edmond.[**] Henry, tempted by such a grand offer, without considering the consequences and without consulting his brother or parliament, accepted the deceitful proposal and gave the pope unlimited authority to spend whatever amount he deemed necessary to complete the conquest of Sicily. Innocent, who had his own interests in waging war against Mainfroy, was happy to carry on his plans at the expense of his ally. Alexander IV, who succeeded him as pope, continued the same approach, and Henry was shocked to suddenly find himself deep in debt that he had never agreed to incur. The total was already at a hundred and thirty-five thousand five hundred and forty-one marks, not including interest;[***] and he faced the prospect, if he paid this debt, of soon being burdened with even larger expenses, or if he refused, of incurring the pope’s anger and losing the crown of Sicily, which he hoped to soon place on his son’s head.

     * M. Paris, p.650.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 502, 512, 530. M. Paris, p. 599, 613

     *** Rymer, vol i. p. 587. Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 319.
     * M. Paris, p.650.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 502, 512, 530. M. Paris, p. 599, 613

     *** Rymer, vol i. p. 587. Chron. Dunst vol. i. p. 319.

He applied to the parliament for supplies; and that he might be sure not to meet with opposition, he sent no writs to the more refractory barons: but even those who were summoned, sensible of the ridiculous cheat imposed by the pope, determined not to lavish their money on such chimerical projects; and making a pretext of the absence of their brethren, they refused to take the king’s demands into consideration.[*] In this extremity the clergy were his only resource; and as both their temporal and spiritual sovereign concurred in loading them, they were ill able to defend themselves against this united authority.

He asked parliament for funds, and to avoid opposition, he didn't send any writs to the more stubborn barons. Even those who were called to attend, aware of the ridiculous scheme being pushed by the pope, decided not to waste their money on such futile projects. They used the absence of their fellow barons as an excuse and refused to consider the king’s requests.[*] In this desperate situation, the clergy were his only option; and since both their earthly and spiritual leaders were against them, they struggled to defend themselves against this combined power.

The pope published a crusade for the conquest of Sicily; and required every one who had taken the cross against the infidels, or had vowed to advance money for that service, to support the war against Mainfroy, a more terrible enemy, as he pretended, to the Christian faith than any Saracen.[**] He levied a tenth on all ecclesiastical benefices in England for three years; and gave orders to excommunicate all bishops who made not punctual payment. He granted to the king the goods of intestate clergymen; the revenues of vacant benefices, the revenues of all non-residents.[***] But these taxations, being levied by some rule, were deemed less grievous than another imposition, which arose from the suggestion of the bishop of Hereford, and which might have opened the door to endless and intolerable abuses.

The pope announced a crusade to conquer Sicily and required everyone who had pledged to fight against the infidels or had promised to contribute financially to support the war against Manfred, who he claimed was a more serious threat to the Christian faith than any Saracen. He imposed a tax of ten percent on all church incomes in England for three years and ordered the excommunication of any bishops who failed to pay on time. He also granted the king the belongings of clergy who died without a will, the income from vacant church positions, and the revenues from all non-residing clergy. However, these taxes, being collected according to specific rules, were considered less burdensome than another tax proposed by the bishop of Hereford, which could have led to endless and unbearable abuses.

This prelate, who resided at the court of Rome by a deputation from the English church, drew bills of different values but amounting on the whole to a hundred and fifty thousand five hundred and forty marks on all the bishops and abbots of the kingdom; and granted these bills to Italian merchants, who, it was pretended, had advanced money for the service of the war against Mainfroy.[****] As there was no likelihood of the English prelates’ submitting, without compulsion, to such an extraordinary demand, Rustand the legate was charged with the commission of employing authority to that purpose, and he summoned an assembly of the bishops and abbots whom he acquainted with the pleasure of the pope and of the king.

This church official, who was stationed at the Roman court on behalf of the English church, issued various bills totaling one hundred fifty thousand five hundred forty marks against all the bishops and abbots in the kingdom. He granted these bills to Italian merchants, who supposedly had provided funds for the war against Mainfroy. Since it was unlikely that the English prelates would agree to such an unusual demand without pressure, Rustand the legate was tasked with using his authority to enforce it, and he called a meeting of the bishops and abbots to inform them of the wishes of both the pope and the king.

     * M. Paris, p. 614

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 547, 548, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 597, 598.

     **** M. Paris, p. 612, 628. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 54.
     * M. Paris, p. 614

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 547, 548, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 597, 598.

     **** M. Paris, p. 612, 628. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 54.

Great were the surprise and indignation of the assembly: the bishop of Worcester exclaimed, that he would lose his life rather than comply: the bishop of London said, that the pope and king were more powerful than he; but if his mitre were taken off his head, he would clap on a helmet in its place.[*] The legate was no less violent on the other hand; and he told the assembly, in plain terms, that all ecclesiastical benefices were the property of the pope, and he might dispose of them, either in whole or in part, as he saw proper.[**] In the end, the bishops and abbots, being threatened with excommunication, which made all their revenues fall into the king’s hands, were obliged to submit to the exaction; and the only mitigation which the legate allowed them was, that the tenths already granted should be accepted as a partial payment of the bills. But the money was still insufficient for the pope’s purpose: the conquest of Sicily was as remote as ever: the demands which came from Rome were endless: Pope Alexander became so urgent a creditor, that he sent over a legate to England, threatening the kingdom with an interdict, and the king with excommunication, if the arrears, which he pretended to be due to him, were not instantly remitted;[***] and at last Henry, sensible of the cheat, began to think of breaking off the agreement, and of resigning into the pope’s hands that crown which it was not intended by Alexander that he or his family should ever enjoy.[****]

The assembly was shocked and outraged; the Bishop of Worcester declared that he would rather die than comply. The Bishop of London said that the pope and king had more power than he did, but if they took off his mitre, he would put on a helmet instead. The legate was equally forceful and bluntly told the assembly that all church benefits belonged to the pope, who could distribute them however he wanted. In the end, the bishops and abbots, faced with the threat of excommunication—which would make all their income go to the king—had no choice but to comply with the demands. The only concession the legate allowed was that the tenths already granted would count as a partial payment. However, the money was still not enough for the pope’s needs; the conquest of Sicily was still far away, and the demands from Rome were endless. Pope Alexander became an urgent creditor, sending a legate to England, threatening to place the kingdom under interdict and the king under excommunication if the overdue payments, which he claimed were owed to him, weren't paid immediately. Eventually, Henry, realizing he was being cheated, began to consider breaking off the agreement and handing over the crown to the pope, which Alexander never intended for him or his family to keep.

     * M. Paris, p. 614.

     ** M. Paris, p. 619

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 624. M. Paris, p. 648.

     **** Rymer, vol. i. p. 630.
     * M. Paris, p. 614.

     ** M. Paris, p. 619

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 624. M. Paris, p. 648.

     **** Rymer, vol. i. p. 630.

The earl of Cornwall had now reason to value himself on his foresight, in refusing the fraudulent bargain with Rome, and in preferring the solid honors of an opulent and powerful prince of the blood of England, to the empty and precarious glory of a foreign dignity. But he had not always firmness sufficient to adhere to this resolution: his vanity and ambition prevailed at last over his prudence and his avarice; and he was engaged in an enterprise no less expensive and vexatious than that of his brother, and not attended with much greater probability of success. The immense opulence of Richard having made the German princes cast their eye on him as a candidate for the empire, he was tempted to expend vast sums of money on his election; and he succeeded so far as to be chosen king of the Romans, which seemed to render his succession infallible to the imperial throne. He went over to Germany, and carried out of the kingdom no less a sum than seven hundred thousand marks, if we may credit the account given by some ancient authors,[*] which is probably much exaggerated.[**] His money, while it lasted, procured him friends and partisans; but it was soon drained from him by the avidity of the German princes; and, having no personal or family connections in that country, and no solid foundation of power, he found, at last, that he had lavished away the frugality of a whole life in order to procure a splendid title; and that his absence from England, joined to the weakness of his brother’s government, gave reins to the factious and turbulent dispositions of the English barons, and involved his own country and family in great calamities.

The Earl of Cornwall now had every reason to take pride in his foresight for rejecting the shady deal with Rome and choosing the solid honors of a wealthy and powerful English prince over the uncertain glory of a foreign title. However, he didn’t always have the resolve to stick to this decision; his vanity and ambition ultimately overwhelmed his caution and greed. This led him to get involved in an endeavor that was just as costly and troublesome as his brother's, with no better chance of succeeding. The immense riches of Richard had attracted the German princes, who saw him as a contender for the empire. He was tempted to spend huge amounts of money on his election and managed to be chosen king of the Romans, which seemed to make his succession to the imperial throne a sure thing. He traveled to Germany, taking with him a staggering sum of seven hundred thousand marks, according to some ancient authors,[*] though this figure is likely greatly inflated.[**] While his money lasted, it gained him friends and supporters, but it quickly vanished due to the greed of the German princes. Lacking personal or family ties in that country, and with no solid power base, he ultimately realized that he had wasted the savings of a lifetime to acquire a flashy title. Moreover, his absence from England, combined with the weakness of his brother's rule, allowed the restless factions among the English barons to gain traction, leading to serious troubles for his country and family.

     * M. Paris, p. 638. The same author, a few pages before,
     makes Richard’s treasures amount to little more than half
     the sum, (p. 634.) The king’s dissipations and expenses,
     throughout this whole reign, according to the same author,
     had amounted only to about nine hundred and forty thousand
     marks, (p. 638.)

     ** The sums mentioned by ancient authors, who were almost all
     monks, are often improbable, and never consistent. But we
     know from an infallible authority, the public remonstrance
     to the council of Lyons, that the king’s revenues were below
     sixty thousand marks a year: his brother, therefore, could
     never have been master of seven hundred thousand marks;
     especially as he did not sell his estates in England, as we
     learn from the same author; and we hear afterwards of his
     ordering all his woods to be cut, in order to satisfy the
     rapacity of the German princes: his son succeeded to the
     earldom of Cornwall and his other revenues.
     * M. Paris, p. 638. The same author, a few pages earlier, claims Richard's treasures amounted to just over half that sum, (p. 634.) According to the same author, the king’s spending and expenses throughout his entire reign totaled only about nine hundred and forty thousand marks, (p. 638.)

     ** The amounts referenced by ancient authors, who were almost all monks, are often unlikely and never consistent. But we know from a reliable source, the public statement to the council of Lyons, that the king’s income was below sixty thousand marks a year: therefore, his brother could never have controlled seven hundred thousand marks; especially since he did not sell his estates in England, as the same author indicates; and later, we hear about him ordering all his woods to be cut down to appease the greed of the German princes: his son inherited the earldom of Cornwall and his other income.

The successful revolt of the nobility from King John, and their imposing on him and his successors limitations of their royal power, had made them feel their own weight and importance, had set a dangerous precedent of resistance, and being followed by a long minority, had impoverished as well as weakened that crown which they were at last induced, from the fear of worse consequences, to replace on the head of young Henry. In the king’s situation, either great abilities and vigor were requisite to overawe the barons, or great caution and reserve to give them no pretence for complaints; and it must be confessed, that this prince was possessed of neither of these talents. He had not prudence to choose right measures; he wanted even that constancy which sometimes gives weight to wrong ones; he was entirely devoted to his favorites, who were always foreigners; he lavished on them, without discretion, his diminished revenue; and finding that his barons indulged their disposition towards tyranny, and observed not to their own vassals the same rules which they had imposed on the crown, he was apt, in his administration, to neglect all the salutary articles of the Great Charter; which he remarked to be so little regarded by his nobility. This conduct had extremely lessened his authority in the kingdom; had multiplied complaints against him; and had frequently exposed him to affronts, and even to dangerous attempts upon his prerogative. In the year 1244, when he desired a supply from parliament, the barons, complaining of the frequent breaches of the Great Charter, and of the many fruitless applications which they had formerly made for the redress of this and other grievances, demanded in return, that he should give them the nomination of the great justiciary and of the chancellor, to whose hands chiefly the administration of justice was committed: and, if we may credit the historian,[*] they had formed the plan of other limitations, as well as of associations to maintain them, which would have reduced the king to be an absolute cipher, and have held the crown in perpetual pupillage and dependence. The king, to satisfy them, would agree to nothing but a renewal of the charter, and a general permission to excommunicate all the violators of it; and he received no supply, except a scutage of twenty shillings on each knight’s fee for the marriage of his eldest daughter to the king of Scotland; a burden which was expressly annexed to their feudal tenures.

The successful rebellion of the nobility against King John, and their imposition of limits on his and his successors' royal power, made them realize their own significance and weight, set a risky precedent for resistance, and, followed by a long period of minority rule, weakened and impoverished the crown. Eventually, out of fear of worse outcomes, they were persuaded to place the crown on the head of young Henry. In the king's position, he needed either significant skill and energy to assert control over the barons or great caution and restraint to avoid giving them reasons for complaint; it must be acknowledged that this prince lacked both. He did not have the wisdom to choose the right actions; he also lacked the determination that could sometimes lend strength to wrong decisions. He was completely devoted to his favorites, who were always foreigners, and he squandered his reduced income on them without judgment. Noticing that his barons indulged their tyrannical tendencies and did not apply the same standards to their own vassals that they insisted the crown follow, he tended to overlook all the beneficial provisions of the Great Charter, which he saw as being disregarded by his nobility. This behavior severely diminished his authority in the kingdom, increased complaints against him, and often exposed him to insults and even dangerous challenges to his power. In 1244, when he sought funding from Parliament, the barons complained about the frequent violations of the Great Charter and the many unsuccessful requests they had previously made for addressing this and other grievances. In return, they demanded that he allow them to nominate the great justiciary and the chancellor, who were primarily responsible for administering justice. If we can believe the historian,[*] they had devised a plan for other limitations, along with associations to uphold them, which would effectively reduce the king to a complete figurehead and keep the crown in constant state of dependency and oversight. To appease them, the king would agree to nothing more than a renewal of the charter and a general allowance to excommunicate all who violated it; he received no funds except for a scutage of twenty shillings on each knight's fee for the marriage of his eldest daughter to the king of Scotland, a burden expressly linked to their feudal tenures.

     * M. Paris, p. 432.
* M. Paris, p. 432.

Four years after, in a full parliament, when Henry demanded a new supply, he was openly reproached with the breach of his word, and the frequent violations of the charter. He was asked whether he did not blush to desire any aid from his people, whom he professedly hated and despised; to whom on all occasions he preferred aliens and foreigners, and who groaned under the oppressions which he either permitted or exercised over them. He was told that, besides disparaging his nobility by forcing them to contract unequal and mean marriages with strangers, no rank of men was so low as to escape vexations from him or his ministers; that even the victuals consumed in his household, the clothes which himself and his servants wore, still more the wine which they used, were all taken by violence from the lawful owners, and no compensation was ever made them for the injury; that foreign merchants, to the great prejudice and infamy of the kingdom shunned the English harbors as if they were possessed by pirates, and the commerce with all nations was thus cut off by these acts of violence; that loss was added to loss, and injury to injury, while the merchants, who had been despoiled of their goods, were also obliged to carry them at their own charge to whatever place the king was pleased to appoint them; that even the poor fishermen on the coast could not escape his oppressions and those of his courtiers; and finding that they had not full liberty to dispose of their commodities in the English market, were frequently constrained to carry them to foreign ports, and to hazard all the perils of the ocean, rather than those which awaited them from his oppressive emissaries; and that his very religion was a ground of complaint to his subjects, while they observed, that the waxen tapers and splendid silks, employed in so many useless processions, were the spoils which he had forcibly ravished from the true owners.[*] Throughout this remonstrance, in which the complaints derived from an abuse of the ancient right of purveyance may be supposed to be somewhat exaggerated, there appears a strange mixture of regal tyranny in the practices which gave rise to it, and of aristocratical liberty, or rather licentiousness, in the expressions employed by the parliament. But a mixture of this kind is observable in all the ancient feudal governments, and both of them proved equally hurtful to the people.

Four years later, in a full parliament, when Henry called for new funding, he was openly called out for breaking his promises and frequently violating the charter. People asked him if he didn’t feel embarrassed asking for help from his subjects, whom he openly hated and looked down on; whom he always preferred over aliens and foreigners, and who suffered under the oppression he either allowed or enforced. They told him that, besides demeaning his nobility by forcing them to make poor and degrading marriages with outsiders, there was no one so low that they escaped troubles from him or his ministers; that even the food consumed in his household, the clothes he and his servants wore, and especially the wine they drank were all taken by force from the rightful owners, with no compensation for the harm done; that foreign merchants, to the great detriment and shame of the kingdom, avoided English ports as if they were run by pirates, cutting off trade with all nations because of these violent acts; that losses piled on losses, and injuries on injuries, while the merchants, robbed of their goods, had to transport them at their own expense to wherever the king decided; that even poor fishermen on the coast couldn’t escape his oppressions and those of his courtiers; and realizing they didn’t have full freedom to sell their goods in the English market, they were often forced to take them to foreign ports, risking all the dangers of the sea rather than facing those from his oppressive agents; and that even his religion was a source of complaints from his subjects, as they noticed the wax candles and fancy silks used in so many pointless ceremonies were the spoils taken by force from the true owners.[*] Throughout this complaint, which likely exaggerates the abuse of the ancient right of purveyance, there’s a strange mix of royal tyranny in the actions that led to it, and of aristocratic freedom, or rather lawlessness, in the language used by parliament. But this kind of mix can be seen in all ancient feudal governments, and both proved equally harmful to the people.

As the king, in answer to their remonstrance, gave the parliament only good words and fair promises, attended with the most humble submissions, which they had often found deceitful, he obtained at that time no supply; and therefore, in the year 1253, when he found himself again under the necessity of applying to parliament, he had provided a new pretence, which he deemed infallible, and taking the vow of a crusade, he demanded their assistance in that pious enterprise.[**] The parliament, however, for some time hesitated to comply, and the ecclesiastical order sent a deputation consisting of four prelates, the primate and the bishops of Winchester Salisbury, and Carlisle, in order to remonstrate with him on his frequent violations of their privileges, the oppressions with which he had loaded them and all his subjects,[***] and the uncanonical and forced elections which were made to vacant dignities.

As the king responded to their complaints with only nice words and empty promises, along with the most humble submissions—which they had often found to be misleading—he received no support at that time. Therefore, in 1253, when he needed to approach parliament again, he came up with a new excuse that he thought would work perfectly. By declaring a crusade, he asked for their help in that noble cause. The parliament, however, hesitated for a while to agree, and the church sent a delegation of four leaders: the archbishop and the bishops of Winchester, Salisbury, and Carlisle, to confront him about his frequent violations of their rights, the burdens he placed on them and all his subjects, and the unlawful and forced elections that took place for vacant positions.

     * M. Paris, p. 498. See further, p. 578. M. West. p. 348.

     ** M. Paris, p. 518, 558, 568. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 293.
     * M. Paris, p. 498. See more on p. 578. M. West, p. 348.

     ** M. Paris, p. 518, 558, 568. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 293.
     *** M. Paris, p. 568.
*** M. Paris, p. 568.

“It is true,” replied the king, “I have been somewhat faulty in this particular: I obtruded you, my lord of Canterbury, upon your see; I was obliged to employ both entreaties and menaces, my lord of Winchester, to have, you elected; my proceedings, I confess, were very irregular, my lords of Salisbury and Carlisle, when I raised you from the lowest stations to your present dignities; I am determined henceforth to correct these abuses; and it will also become you, in order to make a thorough reformation, to resign your present benefices; and try to enter again in a more regular and canonical manner.”[*] The bishops, surprised at these unexpected sarcasms, replied, that the question was not at present how to correct past errors, but to avoid them for the future. The king promised redress both of ecclesiastical and civil grievances; and the parliament in return agreed to grant him a supply, a tenth of the ecclesiastical benefices, and a scutage of three marks on each knight’s fee: but as they had experienced his frequent breach of promise, they required that he should ratify the Great Charter in a manner still more authentic and more solemn than any which he had hitherto employed. All the prelates and abbots were assembled: they held burning tapers in their hands: the Great Charter was read before them: they denounced the sentence of excommunication against every one who should thenceforth violate that fundamental law: they threw their tapers on the ground, and exclaimed, “May the soul of every one who incurs this sentence so stink and corrupt in hell!” The king bore a part in this ceremony, and subjoined, “So help me God, I will keep all these articles inviolate, as I am a man, as I am a Christian, as I am a knight, and as I am a king crowned and anointed.”[**] Yet was the tremendous ceremony no sooner finished, than his favorites, abusing his weakness, made him return to the same arbitrary and irregular administration; and the reasonable expectations of his people were thus perpetually eluded and disappointed.[***]

“It’s true,” the king replied, “I have made mistakes in this regard. I forced you, my lord of Canterbury, into your position; I had to use both pleading and threats, my lord of Winchester, to get you elected. I admit my actions were quite irregular, my lords of Salisbury and Carlisle, when I lifted you from the lowest ranks to your current positions. I’m committed to fixing these issues going forward; it would also be wise for you, for a complete reform, to resign your current positions and try to re-enter in a more proper and canonical way.”[*] The bishops, taken aback by these unexpected jabs, replied that the issue wasn’t how to fix past mistakes but how to prevent them in the future. The king promised to address both church and civil grievances; in return, parliament agreed to provide him a subsidy, a tenth of church revenues, and a scutage of three marks on each knight's fee. However, given his history of breaking promises, they insisted he confirm the Great Charter in a manner more authentic and solemn than he had done before. All the bishops and abbots gathered, holding lit candles. The Great Charter was read aloud to them; they condemned anyone who violated that fundamental law, declaring a sentence of excommunication. They dropped their candles to the ground and shouted, “May the soul of anyone who incurs this sentence rot in hell!” The king participated in this ceremony, adding, “So help me God, I will uphold all these articles without fail, as a man, as a Christian, as a knight, and as a crowned and anointed king.”[**] Yet, as soon as the tremendous ceremony concluded, his favorites took advantage of his weakness, leading him back to arbitrary and irregular governance, leaving the reasonable expectations of his people continually unmet and disappointed.[***]

     * M. Paris, p. 579.

     ** Ibid. p. 580. Ann. Burt. p. 323. Ann. Waverl. p. 210. W
     Heming. p. 571. M. West. p. 353.

     *** M. Paris, p. 597, 608.
     * M. Paris, p. 579.

     ** Ibid. p. 580. Ann. Burt. p. 323. Ann. Waverl. p. 210. W
     Heming. p. 571. M. West. p. 353.

     *** M. Paris, p. 597, 608.

1258.

1258.

All these imprudent and illegal measures afforded a pretence to Simon de Mountfort, earl of Leicester, to attempt an innovation in the government, and to wrest the sceptre from the feeble and irresolute hand which held it. This nobleman was a younger son of that Simon de Mountfort who had conducted with such valor and renown the crusade against the Albigenses, and who, though he tarnished his famous exploits by cruelty and ambition, had left a name very precious to all the bigots of that age, particularly to the ecclesiastics. A large inheritance in England fell by succession to this family; but as the elder brother enjoyed still more opulent possessions in France, and could not perform fealty to two masters, he transferred his right to Simon, his younger brother, who came over to England, did homage for his lands, and was raised to the dignity of earl of Leicester. In the year 1238, he espoused Eleanor, dowager of William, earl of Pembroke, and sister to the king;[*] but the marriage of this princess with a subject and a foreigner, though contracted with Henry’s consent, was loudly complained of by the earl of Cornwall and all the barons of England; and Leicester was supported against their violence by the king’s favor and authority alone.[**] But he had no sooner established himself in his possessions and dignities, than he acquired, by insinuation and address, a strong interest with the nation, and gained equally the affections of all orders of men. He lost, however, the friendship of Henry from the usual levity and fickleness of that prince; he was banished the court; he was recalled; he was intrusted with the command of Guienne,[***] where he did good service and acquired honor; he was again disgraced by the king, and his banishment from court seemed now final and irrevocable. Henry called him traiter to his face; Leicester gave him the lie, and told him that, if he were not his sovereign, he would soon make him repent of that insult. Yet was this quarrel accommodated, either from the good nature or timidity of the king, and Leicester was again admitted into some degree of favor and authority. But as this nobleman was become too great to preserve an entire complaisance to Henry’s humors, and to act in subserviency to his other minions, he found more advantage in cultivating his interest with the public, and in inflaming the general discontents which prevailed against the administration. He filled every place with complaints against the infringement of the Great Charter, the acts of violence committed on the people, the combination between the pope and the king in their tyranny and extortions, Henry’s neglect of his native subjects and barons; and though himself a foreigner, he was more loud than any in representing the indignity of submitting to the dominion of foreigners.

All these reckless and illegal actions gave Simon de Montfort, Earl of Leicester, a reason to push for change in the government and to take control from the weak and indecisive ruler holding it. This nobleman was the younger son of Simon de Montfort, who had bravely led the crusade against the Albigenses and, despite tarnishing his renowned exploits with cruelty and ambition, left a name highly regarded by the bigots of that time, especially among the clergy. The family inherited a substantial estate in England, but since the older brother had even more wealth in France and couldn’t pledge loyalty to two masters, he transferred his rights to Simon, his younger brother. Simon came to England, pledged allegiance for his lands, and became the Earl of Leicester. In 1238, he married Eleanor, the widow of William, Earl of Pembroke, and sister to the king; but this marriage, although agreed upon by Henry, was heavily criticized by the Earl of Cornwall and all the barons of England. Leicester only had the king’s favor and authority to support him against their hostility. However, as soon as he secured his lands and title, he cleverly built a strong rapport with the nation and gained the support of all social classes. He did lose the king’s friendship, though, due to Henry's usual fickleness; he was banished from court, then recalled, given command of Guienne, where he served well and earned honor, but was again disgraced by the king, resulting in what seemed to be a permanent banishment from court. Henry called him a traitor to his face; Leicester countered, stating that if he weren't the king, he would soon make him regret that insult. Yet, this conflict was resolved, whether due to the king's good nature or his fear, and Leicester was allowed back into some favor. But since Leicester had grown too powerful to keep fully accommodating Henry’s whims and to serve his other favorites, he found it more beneficial to build his support with the public and fuel the widespread discontent against the administration. He filled every space with complaints about the violations of the Great Charter, the violence inflicted on the people, the alliance between the pope and the king in their tyranny and extortion, and Henry’s neglect of his own subjects and barons; and even though he was a foreigner, he was one of the loudest in denouncing the shame of submitting to foreign rule.

     * M. Paris, p. 314.

     ** Ibid, p. 315.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 459, 513.
     * M. Paris, p. 314.

     ** Ibid, p. 315.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 459, 513.

By his hypocritical pretensions to devotion he gained the favor of the zealots and clergy: by his seeming concern for public good he acquired the affections of the public: and besides the private friendships which he had cultivated with the barons, his animosity against the favorites created a union of interests between him and that powerful order.

Through his phony displays of devotion, he won the support of the zealots and clergy; by appearing to care about the public good, he gained the affection of the masses. Additionally, the personal relationships he built with the barons, along with his hostility towards the favorites, forged a connection of interests between him and that influential group.

A recent quarrel which broke out between Leicester and William de Valence, Henry’s half brother and chief favorite, brought matters to extremity,[*] and determined the former to give full scope to his bold and unbounded ambition, which the laws and the king’s authority had hitherto with difficulty restrained. He secretly called a meeting of the most considerable barons, particularly Humphrey de Bohun, high constable, Roger Bigod, earl mareschal, and the earls of Warwick and Glocester; men who by their family and possessions stood in the first rank of the English nobility. He represented to this company the necessity of reforming the state, and of putting the execution of the laws into other hands than those which had hitherto appeared, from repeated experience, so unfit for the charge with which they were intrusted. He exaggerated the oppressions exercised against the lower orders of the state, the violations of the barons’ privileges, the continued depredations made on the clergy; and in order to aggravate the enormity of this conduct, he appealed to the Great Charter, which Henry had so often ratified, and which was calculated to prevent forever the return of those intolerable grievances. He magnified the generosity of their ancestors, who, at a great expense of blood, had extorted that famous concession from the crown; but lamented their own degeneracy, who allowed so important an advantage, once obtained, to be wrested from them by a weak prince and by insolent strangers. And he insisted that the king’s word, after so many submissions and fruitless promises on his part, could no longer be relied on; and that nothing but his absolute inability to violate national privileges could henceforth insure the regular observance of them.

A recent argument between Leicester and William de Valence, Henry’s half-brother and favorite, escalated tensions and pushed Leicester to fully embrace his ambitious nature, which the laws and the king’s authority had previously struggled to control. He secretly organized a meeting with the most influential barons, especially Humphrey de Bohun, the high constable, Roger Bigod, the earl mareschal, and the earls of Warwick and Gloucester; these were men of significant status and wealth within the English nobility. He explained to them the urgent need to reform the state and to entrust the enforcement of laws to more capable hands than those who had repeatedly shown themselves unfit for the responsibilities they held. He highlighted the abuses faced by the lower classes, the infringement of barons’ rights, and the ongoing exploitation of the clergy; to underscore the seriousness of these issues, he referenced the Great Charter, which Henry had repeatedly ratified and which was intended to prevent such intolerable grievances from returning. He praised the valor of their ancestors, who had sacrificed much to secure this important concession from the crown, but lamented their own decline in allowing such a crucial benefit, once secured, to be taken away by a weak king and arrogant outsiders. He insisted that the king's promises could no longer be trusted after so many failures and empty assurances, and that only the king’s absolute incapacity to violate national rights could guarantee their future enforcement.

     * M. Paris, p. 649.
M. Paris, p. 649.

These topics, which were founded in truth, and suited so well the sentiments of the company, had the desired effect, and the barons embraced a resolution of redressing the public grievances, by taking into their own hands the administration of government. Henry having summoned a parliament, in expectation of receiving supplies for his Sicilian project, the barons appeared in the hall, clad in complete armor, and with their swords by their side: the king, on his entry, struck with the unusual appearance, asked them what was their purpose, and whether they pretended to make him their prisoner.[*] Roger Bigod replied in the name of the rest, that he was not their prisoner, but their sovereign; that they even intended to grant him large supplies, in order to fix his son on the throne of Sicily; that they only expected some return for this expense and service; and that, as he had frequently made submissions to the parliament, had acknowledged his past errors, and had still allowed himself to be carried into the same path, which gave them such just reason of complaint, he must now yield to more strict regulations, and confer authority on those who were able and willing to redress the national grievances. Henry, partly allured by the hopes of supply, partly intimidated by the union and martial appearance of the barons, agreed to their demand, and promised to summon another parliament at Oxford, in order to digest the new plan of government, and to elect the persons who were to be intrusted with the chief authority.

These topics, grounded in truth and aligned with the feelings of the group, had the intended effect, leading the barons to decide to take matters into their own hands to address the public issues. Henry called a parliament, hoping to get funding for his Sicilian campaign. The barons showed up in the hall fully armored, with their swords at their sides. When the king entered and noticed their strange appearance, he asked what they were doing and if they intended to make him their prisoner. Roger Bigod responded for the others, stating that he was not their prisoner, but their ruler; that they planned to give him substantial funds to help secure the throne of Sicily for his son; that they only expected some return for this investment and service; and that, since he had often submitted to the parliament and admitted his past mistakes yet continued to follow the same path that had caused them so many grievances, he now needed to agree to stricter regulations and grant authority to those capable and willing to address the national issues. Partly swayed by the promise of support and partly intimidated by the united and military presence of the barons, Henry agreed to their request and promised to call another parliament at Oxford to work out the new government plan and to choose the individuals who would be given the main authority.

This parliament, which the royalists, and even the nation, from experience of the confusions that attended its measures, afterwards denominated the “mad parliament,” met on the day appointed; and as all the barons brought along with them their military vassals, and appeared with an armed force, the king, who had taken no precautions against them, was in reality a prisoner in their hands, and was obliged to submit to all the terms which they were pleased to impose upon him. Twelve barons were selected from among the king’s ministers; twelve more were chosen by parliament: to these twenty-four unlimited authority was granted to reform the state; and the king himself took an oath, that he would maintain whatever ordinances they should think proper to enact for that purpose.[**] Leicester was at the head of this supreme council, to which the legislative power was thus in reality transferred; and all their measures were taken by his secret influence and direction.

This parliament, which the royalists and even the nation later referred to as the “mad parliament” because of the chaos surrounding its decisions, convened on the scheduled day. Since all the barons brought their military followers and showed up with armed forces, the king, who had made no preparations to counter them, was effectively a prisoner. He had no choice but to accept all the terms they imposed on him. Twelve barons were chosen from the king’s ministers, and twelve more were selected by parliament. These twenty-four were given complete authority to reform the state, and the king himself swore to uphold any regulations they decided to enact for that purpose. Leicester led this supreme council, effectively transferring legislative power to it, and all their actions were influenced and directed by his secret guidance.

     * Annal. Theokesoury.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 655. Chron. Dunst. vol.i. p. 334.
     Knyghton p. 2445.
     * Annal. Theokesoury.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 655. Chron. Dunst. vol.i. p. 334.
     Knyghton p. 2445.

Their first step bore a specious appearance, and seemed well calculated for the end which they professed to be the object of all these innovations; they ordered that four knights should be chosen by each county; that they should make inquiry into the grievances of which their neighborhood had reason to complain, and should attend the ensuing parliament, in order to give information to that assembly of the state of their particular counties;[*] a nearer approach to our present constitution than had been made by the barons in the reign of King John, when the knights were only appointed to meet in their several counties, and there to draw up a detail of their grievances. Meanwhile the twenty-four barons proceeded to enact some regulations, as a redress of such grievances as were supposed to be sufficiently notorious. They ordered, that three sessions of parliament should be regularly held every year, in the months of February, June, and October; “that a new sheriff should be annually elected by the votes of the freeholders in each county;[**] that the sheriffs should have no power of fining the barons who did not attend their courts, or the circuits of the justiciaries; that no heirs should be committed to the wardship of foreigners, and no castles intrusted to their custody; and that no new warrens or forests should be created, nor the revenues of any counties or hundreds be let to farm.” Such were the regulations which the twenty-four barons established at Oxford, for the redress of public grievances.

Their first step had a misleading appearance and seemed carefully designed to achieve the goals they claimed for all these changes. They decided that each county should choose four knights to investigate the grievances that their communities had, and they should attend the upcoming parliament to inform the assembly about the situation in their counties; this was a closer approach to our current constitution than what the barons had achieved during King John's reign, when knights were only appointed to meet in their counties and list their grievances there. Meanwhile, the twenty-four barons enacted some regulations to address issues that were widely recognized. They mandated that three parliamentary sessions should be held each year, in February, June, and October; that a new sheriff should be elected annually by the freeholders in each county; that sheriffs should not have the power to fine barons for not attending their courts or the justices' circuits; that no heirs should be placed under the care of outsiders, and no castles should be entrusted to their control; and that no new hunting grounds or forests should be established, nor should the revenues of any counties or hundreds be rented out. These were the regulations the twenty-four barons established at Oxford to address public grievances.

     * M. Paris, p. 657. Addit. p. 140. Ann. Burt, p, 412.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 336.
     * M. Paris, p. 657. Addit. p. 140. Ann. Burt, p. 412.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 336.

But the earl of Leicester and his associates, having advanced so far to satisfy the nation, instead of continuing in this popular course, or granting the king that supply which they had promised him, immediately provided for the extension and continuance of their own authority. They roused anew the popular clamor which had long prevailed against foreigners; and they fell with the utmost violence on the king’s half brothers, who were supposed to be the authors of, all national grievances, and whom Henry had no longer any power to protect. The four brothers, sensible of their danger, took to flight, with an intention of making their escape out of the kingdom; they were eagerly pursued by the barons; Aymer, one of the brothers, who had been elected to the see of Winchester took shelter in his episcopal palace, and carried the others along with him; they were surrounded in that place, and threatened to be dragged out by force, and to be punished for their crimes and misdemeanors; and the king, pleading the sacredness of an ecclesiastical sanctuary, was glad to extricate them from this danger by banishing them the kingdom. In this act of violence, as well as in the former usurpations of the barons, the queen and her uncles were thought to have secretly concurred; being jealous of the credit acquired by the brothers, which, they found, had eclipsed and annihilated their own.

But the earl of Leicester and his allies, having made significant progress to appease the nation, instead of continuing with this popular approach or providing the king with the support they had promised, quickly focused on extending and maintaining their own power. They reignited the public outcry that had long existed against foreigners and violently attacked the king’s half-brothers, who were seen as the source of all national issues and whom Henry could no longer protect. The four brothers, aware of their peril, fled, intending to escape the kingdom; they were eagerly chased by the barons. Aymer, one of the brothers, who had been chosen as the bishop of Winchester, took refuge in his episcopal palace and brought the others with him. They were surrounded there, facing the threat of being forcibly removed and punished for their offenses. The king, invoking the sanctity of a church sanctuary, was relieved to save them from this danger by expelling them from the kingdom. In this act of violence, as well as in the previous power grabs by the barons, the queen and her uncles were believed to have secretly collaborated, feeling threatened by the influence gained by the brothers, which overshadowed and diminished their own.

But the subsequent proceedings of the twenty-four barons were sufficient to open the eyes of the nation, and to prove their intention of reducing forever both the king and the people under the arbitrary power of a very narrow aristocracy., which must at last have terminated either in anarchy, or in a violent usurpation and tyranny. They pretended that they had not yet digested all the regulations necessary for the reformation of the state, and for the redress of grievances; and that they must still retain their power, till that great purpose were thoroughly effected: in other words, that they must be perpetual governors, and must continue to reform, till they were pleased to abdicate their authority. They formed an association among themselves, and swore that they would stand by each other with their lives and fortunes; they displaced all the chief officers of the crown, the justiciary, the chancellor, the treasurer; and advanced either themselves or their own creatures in their place: even the offices of the king’s household were disposed of at their pleasure: the government of all the castles was put into hands in whom they found reason to confide: and the whole power of the state being thus transferred to them, they ventured to impose an oath, by which all the subjects were obliged to swear, under the penalty of being declared public enemies, that they would obey and execute all the regulations, both known and unknown, of the twenty-four barons: and all this, for the greater glory of God, the honor of the church, the service of the king, and the advantage of the kingdom.[*]

But the actions of the twenty-four barons afterward were enough to awaken the nation and show their plan to permanently place both the king and the people under the arbitrary power of a very small aristocracy, which would ultimately lead to either chaos or violent takeover and oppression. They claimed that they hadn't fully figured out all the rules needed to reform the state and address grievances; they insisted on keeping their power until that major goal was completely achieved—in other words, they believed they had to be permanent rulers, continuing to reform until they decided to give up their authority. They formed a pact among themselves and swore to support each other with their lives and fortunes; they ousted all the key officials of the crown, including the justiciary, the chancellor, and the treasurer, and replaced them with either themselves or their own allies. Even the offices of the king’s household were handled as they saw fit; they put the management of all the castles into the hands of those they could trust. With all the power of the state transferred to them, they dared to impose an oath, forcing all subjects to swear, under the threat of being declared public enemies, that they would obey and execute all the rules, both known and unknown, of the twenty-four barons. And all this was done for the greater glory of God, the honor of the church, the service of the king, and the benefit of the kingdom.[*]

     * Chron. T. Wykes, p. 52.
* Chron. T. Wykes, p. 52.

No one dared to withstand this tyrannical authority: Prince Edward himself, the king’s eldest son, a youth of eighteen, who began to give indications of that great and manly spirit which appeared throughout the whole course of his life, was, after making some opposition, constrained to take that oath, which really deposed his father and his family from sovereign authority.[*] Earl Warrenne was the last person in the kingdom that could be brought to give the confederated barons this mark of submission.

No one dared to stand up to this oppressive power: Prince Edward himself, the king’s eldest son, an eighteen-year-old, who started to show signs of that strong and brave character that defined his entire life, was eventually forced to take an oath that effectively removed his father and his family from power.[*] Earl Warrenne was the last person in the kingdom who could be persuaded to give the united barons this sign of submission.

But the twenty-four barons, not content with the usurpation of the royal power, introduced an innovation in the constitution of parliament, which was of the utmost importance. They ordained, that this assembly should choose a committee of twelve persons, who should, in the intervals of the sessions, possess the authority of the whole parliament, and should attend, on a summons, the person of the king, in all his motions. But so powerful were these barons, that this regulation was also submitted to; the whole government was overthrown or fixed on new foundations; and the monarchy was totally subverted, without its being possible for the king to strike a single stroke in defence of the constitution against the newly-erected oligarchy.

But the twenty-four barons, not satisfied with taking royal power, made a significant change to the constitution of parliament. They decided that this assembly would select a committee of twelve people who, during the breaks between sessions, would have the authority of the entire parliament and would attend to the king whenever called upon. These barons were so powerful that this rule was accepted; the entire government was either overturned or rebuilt on new foundations, and the monarchy was completely undermined, leaving the king unable to take any action to protect the constitution against the newly established oligarchy.

1259.

1259.

The report that the king of the Romans intended to pay a visit to England, gave alarm to the ruling barons, who dreaded lest the extensive influence and established authority of that prince would be employed to restore the prerogatives of his family, and overturn their plan of government.[**] They sent over the bishop of Worcester, who met him at St. Omars; asked him, in the name of the barons, the reason of his journey, and how long he intended to stay in England; and insisted that, before he entered the kingdom he should swear to observe the regulations established at Oxford. On Richard’s refusal to take this oath, they prepared to resist him as a public enemy; they fitted out a fleet, assembled an army, and exciting the inveterate prejudices of the people against foreigners, from whom they had suffered so many oppressions, spread the report that Richard, attended by a number of strangers, meant to restore by force the authority of his exiled brothers, and to violate all the securities provided for public liberty. The king of the Romans was at last obliged to submit to the terms required of him. [***]

The report that the king of the Romans planned to visit England alarmed the ruling barons, who feared that his significant influence and established power would be used to restore his family's rights and disrupt their system of government.[**] They sent the bishop of Worcester to meet him at St. Omars, asking him, on behalf of the barons, the purpose of his visit and how long he intended to stay in England. They insisted that before he entered the country, he should pledge to follow the rules set at Oxford. When Richard refused to take this oath, they prepared to treat him as a public enemy; they organized a fleet, gathered an army, and tapped into the longstanding resentment of the people against foreigners, who had caused them much suffering, spreading the rumor that Richard, accompanied by many outsiders, intended to forcibly restore the power of his exiled brothers and undermine the safeguards established for public freedom. In the end, the king of the Romans had no choice but to accept the terms demanded of him. [***]

     * Ann. Burt. p. 411.

     ** M. Paris, p. 661.

     *** Ibid p. 661, 662. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 53.
     * Ann. Burt. p. 411.

     ** M. Paris, p. 661.

     *** Ibid p. 661, 662. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 53.

But the barons, in proportion to their continuance in power, began gradually to lose that popularity which had assisted them in obtaining it; and men repined, that regulations, which were occasionally established for the reformation of the state, were likely to become perpetual, and to subvert entirely the ancient constitution. They were apprehensive lest the power of the nobles, always oppressive, should now exert itself without control, by removing the counterpoise of the crown; and their fears were increased by some new edicts of the barons, which were plainly calculated to procure to themselves an impunity in all their violences. They appointed that the circuits of the itinerant justices, the sole check on their arbitrary conduct, should be held only once in seven years, and men easily saw that a remedy which returned after such long intervals, against an oppressive power which was perpetual, would prove totally insignificant and useless.[*] The cry became loud in the nation, that the barons should finish their intended regulations. The knights of the shires, who seem now to have been pretty regularly assembled, and sometimes in a separate house, made remonstrances against the slowness of their proceedings. They represented that, though the king had performed all the conditions required of him, the barons had hitherto done nothing for the public good, and had only been careful to promote their own private advantage, and to make inroads on royal authority; and they even appealed to Prince Edward, and claimed his interposition for the interests of the nation, and the reformation of the government.[**] The prince replied that, though it was from constraint, and contrary to his private sentiments, he had sworn to maintain the provisions of Oxford, he was determined to observe his oath: but he sent a message to the barons, requiring them to bring their undertaking to a speedy conclusion, and fulfil their engagements to the public: otherwise, he menaced them, that at the expense of his life, he would oblige them to do their duty, and would shed the last drop of his blood in promoting the interests and satisfying the just wishes of the nation.[***]

But as the barons stayed in power longer, they started to lose the popularity that helped them get there. People became frustrated, fearing that regulations meant to improve the state would become permanent and completely undermine the old constitution. They worried that the nobles, who were always oppressive, would now act unchecked by removing the balance of the crown. Their concerns grew due to new baron edicts that seemed designed to grant them immunity for their abuses. They decided that the circuits of the traveling justices—the only check on their arbitrary actions—would only occur once every seven years. It was clear to everyone that a remedy that came around so infrequently against an ongoing oppressive power would be totally ineffective and useless. The nation loudly called for the barons to complete their proposed regulations. The knights of the shires, who appeared to be regularly gathering and sometimes in a separate house, expressed frustration about the slow pace of their work. They pointed out that while the king had met all his obligations, the barons had done nothing for the public good, focusing only on their own interests and encroaching on royal authority. They even appealed to Prince Edward, asking him to intervene for the nation’s interests and government reform. The prince replied that, although he had sworn to uphold the provisions of Oxford out of obligation and against his personal beliefs, he was committed to keeping his promise. However, he sent a message to the barons demanding they wrap up their efforts quickly and fulfill their commitments to the public. Otherwise, he warned that at the cost of his life, he would force them to do their duty and would shed the last drop of his blood to promote the interests and fulfill the rightful wishes of the nation.

The barons, urged by so pressing a necessity, published at last a new code of ordinances for the reformation of the state: [****] but the expectations of the people were extremely disappointed when they found that these consisted only of some trivial alterations in the municipal law; and still more, when the barons pretended that the task was not yet finished and that they must further prolong their authority, in order to bring the work of reformation to the desired period.

The barons, driven by urgent needs, finally released a new set of rules for reforming the state: [****] but the public's hopes were greatly let down when they realized that these were just minor changes to local laws. It was even more frustrating when the barons claimed that their work wasn't complete and that they needed to extend their control to finish the reform process.

     * M. Paris, p. 667. Trivet, p. 209.

     ** Ann. Burt. p. 427.

     *** Ann Burt. p. 427.

     **** Ann. Burt. p. 428, 439
     * M. Paris, p. 667. Trivet, p. 209.

     ** Ann. Burt. p. 427.

     *** Ann Burt. p. 427.

     **** Ann. Burt. p. 428, 439

The current of popularity was now much turned to the side of the crown; and the barons had little, to rely on for their support besides the private influence and power of their families, which, though exorbitant, was likely to prove inferior to the combination of king and people. Even this basis of power was daily weakened by their intestine jealousies and animosities; their ancient and inveterate quarrels broke out when they came to share the spoils of the crown; and the rivalship between the earls of Leicester and Glocester, the chief leaders among them, began to disjoint the whole confederacy. The latter, more moderate in his pretensions, was desirous of stopping or retarding the career of the barons’ usurpations; but the former, enraged at the opposition which, he met with in his own party, pretended to throw up all concern in English affairs; and he retired into France.[*]

The tide of popularity had shifted significantly in favor of the crown, and the barons had little to depend on for their support besides the personal influence and power of their families, which, although substantial, seemed likely to be outmatched by the alliance of the king and the people. Even this foundation of power was being gradually undermined by their internal jealousies and conflicts; their long-standing and deep-rooted disputes flared up when it came time to divide the crown's wealth, and the rivalry between the earls of Leicester and Gloucester, the two main leaders among them, started to unravel the entire coalition. The latter, more moderate in his ambitions, wanted to curb or slow down the barons’ power grabs, while the former, furious at the opposition he faced within his own ranks, claimed to withdraw from all involvement in English matters and retreated to France.[*]

The kingdom of France, the only state with which England had any considerable intercourse, was at this time governed by Lewis IX., a prince of the most singular character that is to be met with in all the records of history. This monarch united to the mean and abject superstition of a monk all the courage and magnanimity of the greatest hero; and, what may be deemed more extraordinary, the justice and integrity of a disinterested patriot, the mildness and humanity of an accomplished philosopher. So far from taking advantage of the divisions among the English, or attempting to expel those dangerous rivals from the provinces which they still possessed in France, he had entertained many scruples with regard to the sentence of attainder pronounced against the king’s father, had even expressed some intention of restoring the other provinces, and was only prevented from taking that imprudent resolution by the united remonstrances of his own barons, who represented the extreme danger of such a measure,[**] and, what had a greater influence on Lewis, the justice of punishing by a legal sentence the barbarity and felony of John. Whenever this prince interposed in English affairs, it was always with an intention of composing the differences between the king and his nobility: he recommended to both parties every peaceable and reconciling measure; and he used all his authority with the earl of Leicester, his native subject, to bend him to a compliance with Henry.

The kingdom of France, the only country that had significant interaction with England at this time, was ruled by Louis IX, a prince with one of the most unique characters in all of history. This king combined the lowly and superstitious nature of a monk with the bravery and nobility of a great hero; and, perhaps even more remarkably, he had the fairness and integrity of a selfless patriot, along with the gentleness and compassion of a well-educated philosopher. Far from exploiting the divisions among the English or trying to drive those dangerous rivals out of the territories they still held in France, he had serious concerns about the sentence of attainder against the king’s father and even showed some intentions to restore the other provinces. He was only dissuaded from taking that rash step by the combined protests of his own barons, who warned him of the extreme danger such a move would present, and, more importantly to Louis, the fairness of punishing through legal means the brutality and crimes of John. Whenever this king got involved in English affairs, it was always with the aim of resolving the conflicts between the king and his nobles: he encouraged both sides to pursue peaceful and conciliatory approaches; and he exerted all his influence on the Earl of Leicester, a subject of his own, to persuade him to cooperate with Henry.

     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 348.

     ** M. Paris, p. 604.
     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 348.

     ** M. Paris, p. 604.

He made a treaty with England at a time when the distractions of that kingdom were at the greatest height, and when the king’s authority was totally annihilated; and the terms which he granted might, even in a more prosperous state of their affairs, be deemed reasonable and advantageous to the English. He yielded up some territories which had been conquered from Poictou and Guienne; he insured the peaceable possession of the latter province to Henry; he agreed to pay that prince a large sum of money; and he only required that the king should, in return, make a final cession of Normandy and the other provinces, which he could never entertain any hopes of recovering by force of arms.[*] This cession was ratified by Henry, by his two sons and two daughters, and by the king of the Romans and his three sons: Leicester alone, either moved by a vain arrogance, or desirous to ingratiate himself with the English populace, protested against the deed, and insisted on the right, however distant, which might accrue to his consort.[**] Lewis saw in his obstinacy the unbounded ambition of the man; and as the barons insisted that the money due by treaty should be at their disposal, not at Henry’s, he also saw, and probably with regret, the low condition to which this monarch, who had more erred from weakness than from any bad intentions, was reduced by the turbulence of his own subjects.

He made a treaty with England at a time when the problems in that kingdom were at their peak, and when the king's authority was completely undermined. The terms he offered might, even in a better situation for them, be seen as fair and beneficial to the English. He gave up some territories that had been taken from Poitou and Guienne; he ensured that Henry would have peaceful control of the latter province; he agreed to pay that prince a large sum of money; and he only asked that the king, in return, fully give up Normandy and the other provinces, which he could never realistically hope to recover through military force. This cession was confirmed by Henry, along with his two sons, two daughters, the king of the Romans, and his three sons. Only Leicester, either driven by empty pride or wanting to win favor with the English people, protested against the agreement and insisted on the right, no matter how distant, that might belong to his wife. Lewis saw in his stubbornness the man's boundless ambition; and as the barons insisted that the money agreed upon in the treaty should be under their control, not Henry’s, he also recognized, probably with regret, the low position to which this monarch, who had erred more from weakness than from any ill intent, had been brought by the turmoil of his own subjects.

1261.

1261.

But the situation of Henry soon after wore a more favorable aspect. The twenty-four barons had now enjoyed the sovereign power near three years; and had visibly employed it, not for the reformation of the state, which was their first pretence, but for the aggrandizement of themselves and of their families. The breach of trust was apparent to all the world: every order of men felt it, and murmured against it: the dissensions among the barons themselves, which increased the evil, made also the remedy more obvious and easy: and the secret desertion in particular of the earl of Glocester to the crown, seemed to promise Henry certain success in any attempt to resume his authority. Yet durst he not take that step, so reconcilable both to justice and policy, without making a previous application to Rome, and desiring an absolution from his oaths and engagements.[***]

But Henry's situation soon started to look more promising. The twenty-four barons had now held power for nearly three years, and they clearly had not used it to reform the state, as they had initially claimed, but to benefit themselves and their families instead. The betrayal of trust was obvious to everyone: all social classes felt it and complained about it. The infighting among the barons, which made matters worse, also made the solution more clear and attainable. Moreover, the secret shift of the Earl of Glocester to support the crown seemed to give Henry a good chance of successfully regaining his authority. However, he did not dare to take that step, both just and politically wise, without first seeking approval from Rome and asking for a release from his oaths and commitments.[***]

     * Rymer, vol. i. p 675. M. Paris, p. 566. Chron. T. Wykes,
     p, 53. Trivet, p. 208 M. West. p. 371.

     ** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 53.

     *** Ann. Burt. p. 389.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p 675. M. Paris, p. 566. Chron. T. Wykes,
     p, 53. Trivet, p. 208 M. West. p. 371.

     ** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 53.

     *** Ann. Burt. p. 389.

The pope was at this time much dissatisfied with the conduct of the barons; who, in order to gain the favor of the people and clergy of England, had expelled all the Italian ecclesiastics, had confiscated their benefices, and seemed determined to maintain the liberties and privileges of the English church, in which the rights of patronage belonging to their own families were included. The extreme animosity of the English clergy against the Italians was also a source of his disgust to the order; and an attempt which had been made by them for further liberty and greater independence on the civil power, was therefore less acceptable to the court of Rome.[*] About the same time that the barons at Oxford had annihilated the prerogatives of the monarchy, the clergy met in a synod at Merton, and passed several ordinances, which were no less calculated to promote their own grandeur at the expense of the crown. They decreed, that it was unlawful to try ecclesiastics by secular judges; that the clergy were not to regard any prohibitions from civil courts; that lay patrons had no right to confer spiritual benefices; that the magistrate was obliged, without further inquiry, to imprison all excommunicated persons; and that ancient usage, without any particular grant or charter, was a sufficient authority for any clerical possessions or privileges.[**] About a century before, these claims would have been supported by the court of Rome beyond the most fundamental articles of faith: they were the chief points maintained by the great martyr Becket; and his resolution in defending them had exalted him to the high station which he held in the catalogue of Romish saints. But principles were changed with the times: the pope was become somewhat jealous of the great independence of the English clergy, which made them stand less in need of his protection, and even imboldened them to resist his authority, and to complain of the preference given to the Italian courtiers, whose interests, it is natural to imagine, were the chief object of his concern. He was ready, therefore, on the king’s application, to annul these new constitutions of the church of England.[***] And, at the same time, he absolved the king and all his subjects from the oath which they had taken to observe the provisions of Oxford.[****]

The pope was really unhappy with how the barons were acting at this time. To gain the support of the people and clergy of England, they had kicked out all the Italian church officials, seized their income, and seemed determined to protect the liberties and privileges of the English church, which included the rights of patronage that belonged to their own families. The strong hostility of the English clergy towards the Italians also disgusted him, and the barons' push for more freedom and independence from the civil authority made them even less appealing to the court of Rome. Around the same time that the barons in Oxford had dismantled the monarchy’s powers, the clergy gathered in a synod at Merton and created several rules aimed at boosting their own power at the expense of the crown. They declared that it was illegal to try church officials in secular courts, that clergy had to ignore any restrictions from civil courts, that lay patrons had no right to grant spiritual benefices, that the magistrate had to imprison anyone who was excommunicated without any further investigation, and that longstanding traditions, without any specific grant or charter, were enough to justify any clerical property or privileges. About a century earlier, these claims would have been supported by the court of Rome beyond the most basic articles of faith: they were the main points defended by the great martyr Becket, whose strong stance on these issues had elevated him to a revered position among Roman saints. However, beliefs changed over time: the pope became a bit jealous of the English clergy's growing independence, which made them less reliant on his protection and even encouraged them to challenge his authority and complain about the favoritism shown to the Italian courtiers, whose interests he was primarily concerned with. Therefore, when the king asked, he was ready to annul these new regulations of the Church of England. At the same time, he released the king and all his subjects from the oath they had taken to uphold the provisions of Oxford.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 755.

     ** Ann. Burt. p. 389.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 755.

     **** Rymer, vol. i. p. 722. M. Paris, p. 666. W. Heming. p,
     580. Ypod. Neust. p; 468. Knyghton, p. 2446.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 755.

     ** Ann. Burt. p. 389.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 755.

     **** Rymer, vol. i. p. 722. M. Paris, p. 666. W. Heming. p. 580. Ypod. Neust. p. 468. Knyghton, p. 2446.

Prince Edward, whose liberal mind, though in such early youth, had taught him the great prejudice which his father had incurred by his levity, inconstancy, and frequent breach of promise, refused for a long time to take advantage of thus absolution; and declared that the provisions of Oxford, how unreasonable soever in themselves, and how much soever abused by the barons, ought still to be adhered to by those who had sworn to observe them:[*] he himself had been constrained by violence to take that oath; yet was he determined to keep it. By this scrupulous fidelity the prince acquired the confidence of all parties, and was afterwards enabled to recover fully the royal authority, and to perform such great actions both during his own reign and that of his father.

Prince Edward, whose progressive mindset, even at such a young age, had made him aware of the significant issues his father faced due to his careless behavior, inconsistency, and frequent broken promises, took a long time to accept this release from his obligations. He stated that the terms set at Oxford, no matter how unreasonable they might be or how much they were exploited by the barons, should still be respected by those who had vowed to uphold them. Although he had been forced to take that oath under duress, he was committed to honoring it. This sense of integrity earned him the trust of all sides, and later allowed him to fully restore royal power and accomplish significant deeds during his reign and that of his father.

The situation of England, during this period, as well as that of most European kingdoms, was somewhat peculiar. There was no regular military force maintained in the nation: the sword, however, was not, properly speaking, in the hands of the people; the barons were alone intrusted with the defence of the community; and after any effort which they made, either against their own prince or against foreigners, as the military retainers departed home, the armies were disbanded, and could not speedily be reassembled at pleasure. It was easy, therefore, for a few barons, by a combination, to get the start of the other party, to collect suddenly their troops, and to appear unexpectedly in the field with an army, which their antagonists, though equal or even superior in power and interest, would not dare to encounter. Hence the sudden revolutions which often took place in those governments; hence the frequent victories obtained without a blow by one faction over the other; and hence it happened, that the seeming prevalence of a party was seldom a prognostic of its long continuance in power and authority.

The situation in England during this time, similar to many other European kingdoms, was quite unusual. There wasn't a regular military force in the country; however, the power wasn't really in the hands of the people. Only the barons were responsible for the community's defense, and after any effort they made—whether against their own ruler or foreign threats—once their military retainers went home, the armies were disbanded and couldn't be quickly reassembled. This made it easy for a few barons to team up, gather their troops unexpectedly, and show up in the field with an army that their rivals, even if equal or stronger in power and resources, would hesitate to confront. This led to the sudden changes that often occurred in those governments; it explained the frequent victories won effortlessly by one faction over another; and it meant that the apparent dominance of a party was rarely a sign of its lasting hold on power and authority.

1262.

1262.

The king, as soon as he received the pope’s absolution from his oath, accompanied with menaces of excommunication against all opponents, trusting to the countenance of the church, to the support promised him by many considerable barons, and to the returning favor of the people, immediately took off the mask. After justifying his conduct by a proclamation, in which he set forth the private ambition and the breach of trust conspicuous in Leicester and his associates, be declared that he had resumed the government, and was determined thenceforth to exert the royal authority for the protection of his subjects.

The king, as soon as he got the pope’s approval to break his oath, along with threats of excommunication against anyone who opposed him, relied on the backing of the church, the support promised to him by several important barons, and the renewed favor of the people. He immediately dropped the pretense. After defending his actions in a proclamation, where he highlighted the personal ambitions and betrayal of trust evident in Leicester and his allies, he announced that he had taken back the government and was set on using his royal power to protect his subjects.

     * M. Paris. D. 667.
* M. Paris. D. 667.

He removed Hugh le Despenser and Nicholas de Ely, the justiciary and chancellor appointed by the barons; and put Philip Basset and Walter de Merton in their place. He substituted new sheriffs in all the counties, men of character and honor; he placed new governors in most of the castles; he changed all the officers of his household; he summoned a parliament, in which the resumption of his authority was ratified, with only five dissenting voices; and the barons, after making one fruitless effort to take the king by surprise at Winchester, were obliged to acquiesce in those new regulations.[*]

He removed Hugh le Despenser and Nicholas de Ely, the justiciary and chancellor chosen by the barons, and replaced them with Philip Basset and Walter de Merton. He appointed new sheriffs in all the counties, choosing men of integrity and respect; he installed new governors in most of the castles; he changed all the staff in his household; he called a parliament where his authority was confirmed, with only five people opposing; and the barons, after making one unsuccessful attempt to catch the king off guard in Winchester, had to accept these new changes.[*]

The king, in order to cut off every objection to his conduct, offered to refer all the differences between him and the earl of Leicester to Margaret, queen of France.[**] The celebrated integrity of Lewis gave a mighty influence to any decision which issued from his court; and Henry probably hoped, that the gallantry on which all barons, as true knights, valued themselves, would make them ashamed not to submit to the award of that princess. Lewis merited the confidence reposed in him. By an admirable conduct, probably as political as just, he continually interposed his good offices to allay the civil discords ol the English: he forwarded all healing measures which might give security to both parties: and he still endeavored, though in vain, to soothe by persuasion the fierce ambition of the earl of Leicester, and to convince him how much it was his duty to submit peaceably to the authority of his sovereign.

The king, to eliminate any objections to his actions, proposed to have all the disputes between him and the Earl of Leicester referred to Margaret, the Queen of France. The well-known integrity of Lewis gave significant weight to any decision coming from his court; and Henry likely hoped that the sense of honor that all barons, as true knights, took pride in would make them reluctant to disregard the judgment of that princess. Lewis deserved the trust placed in him. Through a mix of political savvy and fairness, he consistently stepped in to help ease the civil conflicts in England. He supported all reconciliation efforts that could bring security to both sides, and he still tried, although unsuccessfully, to persuade the ambitious Earl of Leicester to recognize his duty to peacefully submit to the authority of his ruler.

     * M. Paris, p. 668. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 55.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 724.
     * M. Paris, p. 668. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 55.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 724.

1263.

1263.

That bold and artful conspirator was nowise discouraged by the bad success of his past enterprises. The death of Richard, earl of Glocester, who was his chief rival in power, and who, before his decease, had joined the royal party seemed to open a new field to his violence, and to expose the throne to fresh insults and injuries. It was in vain that the king professed his intentions of observing strictly the great charter, even of maintaining all the regulations made by the reforming barons at Oxford or afterwards, except those with entirely annihilated the royal authority; these powerful chieftains, now obnoxious to the court, could not peaceably resign the hopes of entire independence and uncontrolled power with which they had flattered themselves, and which they had so long enjoyed. Many of them engaged in Leicester’s views, and among the rest, Gilbert, the young earl of Glocester, who brought him a mighty accession of power, from the extensive authority possessed by that opulent family. Even Henry, son of the king of the Romans, commonly called Henry d’Allmaine, though a prince of the blood, joined the party of the barons against the king, the head of his own family Leicester himself, who still resided in France, secretly formed the links of this great conspiracy, and planned the whole scheme of operations.

That bold and crafty conspirator was not discouraged by the poor outcomes of his past ventures. The death of Richard, the earl of Glocester, who was his main rival for power and had joined the royal side before he died, seemed to open up new opportunities for his aggression and exposed the throne to more insults and harm. It was pointless for the king to insist on his commitment to strictly uphold the Magna Carta and to maintain all the regulations set by the reforming barons in Oxford or later, except those that completely destroyed royal authority; these powerful leaders, now in trouble with the court, couldn’t easily give up the hopes of total independence and unrestricted power that they had nurtured and enjoyed for so long. Many of them aligned with Leicester’s plans, including Gilbert, the young earl of Glocester, who brought significant power from his wealthy family. Even Henry, the son of the king of the Romans, commonly known as Henry d’Allmaine, though he was of royal blood, joined the barons against the king. The head of his own family, Leicester, who was still living in France, secretly established connections for this major conspiracy and devised the entire operation.

The princes of Wales, notwithstanding the great power of the monarchs both of the Saxon and Norman line, still preserved authority in their own country. Though they had often been constrained to pay tribute to the crown of England, they were with difficulty retained in subordination or even in peace; and almost through every reign since the conquest, they had infested the English frontiers with such petty incursions and sudden inroads, as seldom merit to have place in a general history. The English, still content with repelling their invasions, and chasing them back into their mountains, had never pursued the advantages obtained over them, nor been able, even under their greatest and most active princes, to fix a total, or so much as a feudal subjection on the country. This advantage was reserved to the present king, the weakest and most indolent. In the year 1237, Lewellyn, prince of Wales, declining in years and broken with infirmities, but still more harassed with the rebellion and undutiful behavior of his youngest son Griffin, had recourse to the protection of Henry; and consenting to subject his principality, which had so long maintained, or soon recovered, its independence to vassalage under the crown of England, had purchased security and tranquillity on these dishonorable terms. His eldest son and heir, David, renewed the homage to England; and having taken his brother prisoner, delivered him into Henry’s hands, who committed him to custody in the Tower. That prince, endeavoring to make his escape, lost his life in the attempt; and the prince of Wales, freed from the apprehensions of so dangerous a rival, paid thenceforth less regard to the English monarch, and even renewed those incursions by which the Welsh, during so many ages, had been accustomed to infest the English borders. Lewellyn, however, the foil of Griffin, who succeeded to his uncle, had been obliged to renew the homage which was now claimed by England as an established right; but he was well pleased to inflame those civil discords, on which he rested his present security and founded his hopes of future independence. He entered into a confederacy with the earl of Leicester, and collecting all the force of his principality, invaded England with an army of thirty thousand men. He ravaged the lands of Roger de Mortimer, and of all the barons who adhered to the crown;[*] he marched into Cheshire, and committed like depredations on Prince Edward’s territories; every place where his disorderly troops appeared was laid waste with fire and sword; and though Mortimer, a gallant and expert soldier, made stout resistance, it was found necessary that the prince himself should head the army against this invader. Edward repulsed Prince Lewellyn, and obliged him to take shelter in the mountains of North Wales: but he was prevented from making further progress against the enemy by the disorders which soon after broke out in England.

The princes of Wales, despite the significant power of the monarchs from both the Saxon and Norman lines, still held authority in their own country. Even though they often had to pay tribute to the crown of England, keeping them in check or even at peace was a challenge; throughout almost every reign since the conquest, they frequently launched petty raids and sudden attacks on the English borders, which rarely made it into the official history books. The English were content to fend off their invasions and push them back into their mountains, but they never pursued their victories enough to establish complete or even feudal control over the region. This opportunity was left to the current king, who was the weakest and most lazy. In 1237, Lewellyn, the prince of Wales, who was getting old and struggling with health issues, but even more troubled by the rebellion and disobedience of his youngest son Griffin, turned to Henry for protection. He agreed to submit his principality, which had long been independent, to vassalage under the crown of England, trading his dignity for safety and peace. His eldest son and heir, David, renewed the loyalty to England and, after capturing his brother, handed him over to Henry, who imprisoned him in the Tower. That prince tried to escape but lost his life in the attempt, and the prince of Wales, no longer fearing such a dangerous rival, paid less attention to the English monarch and even resumed the raids that the Welsh had carried out against the English for centuries. However, Lewellyn, who was the successor to his uncle Griffin, was compelled to renew the homage that England claimed as its right; yet he was pleased to stir up the civil conflicts that he believed would ensure his current security and future independence. He teamed up with the earl of Leicester and gathered all the forces of his principality, launching an invasion of England with an army of thirty thousand men. He devastated the lands of Roger de Mortimer and all the barons who supported the crown; he moved into Cheshire and wreaked similar havoc on Prince Edward’s lands. Wherever his unruly troops went, it was left in ruins by fire and sword; although Mortimer, a brave and skilled soldier, put up strong resistance, it became necessary for the prince himself to lead the army against this invader. Edward pushed back Prince Lewellyn, forcing him to take refuge in the mountains of North Wales; however, he was soon hindered from advancing further against the enemy due to turmoil that erupted in England shortly afterward.

The Welsh invasion was the appointed signal for the malecontent barons to rise in arms; and Leicester, coming over secretly from France, collected all the forces of his party, and commenced an open rebellion. He seized the person of the bishop of Hereford, a prelate obnoxious to all the inferior clergy, on account of his devoted attachment to the court of Rome.[**] Simon, bishop of Norwich, and John Mansel, because they had published the pope’s bull, absolving the king and kingdom from their oaths to observe the provisions of Oxford, were made prisoners, and exposed to the rage of the party. The king’s demesnes were ravaged with unbounded fury,[***] and as it was Leicester’s interest to allure to his side, by the hopes of plunder, all the disorderly ruffians in England he gave them a general license to pillage the barons of the opposite party, and even all neutral persons.

The Welsh invasion was the signal for the discontented barons to take up arms; and Leicester, secretly returning from France, rallied all his supporters and began an open rebellion. He captured the bishop of Hereford, a clergyman disliked by all the lower clergy due to his strong loyalty to the Roman court.[**] Simon, the bishop of Norwich, and John Mansel, who had published the pope’s decree that released the king and kingdom from their oaths to adhere to the provisions of Oxford, were taken prisoner and became targets of the group’s anger. The king’s lands were brutally ravaged,[***] and to attract all the unruly thugs in England with the promise of loot, Leicester granted them a general license to plunder the opposing barons and even neutral parties.

     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 354.

     ** Trivet, p. 211. M. West. p. 382, 392.

     *** Trivet, p. 211. M. West. p. 382.
     * Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 354.

     ** Trivet, p. 211. M. West. p. 382, 392.

     *** Trivet, p. 211. M. West. p. 382.

But one of the principal resources of his faction was the populace of the cities, particularly of London; and as he had, by his hypocritical pretensions to sanctity, and his zeal against Rome, engaged the monks and lower ecclesiastics in his party, his dominion over the inferior ranks of men became uncontrollable. Thomas Fitz-Richard, mayor of London, a furious and licentious man, gave the countenance of authority to these disorders in the capital; and having declared war against the substantial citizens, he loosened all the bands of government, by which that turbulent city was commonly but ill restrained. On the approach of Easter, the zeal of superstition, the appetite for plunder, or what is often as prevalent with the populace as either of these motives, the pleasure of committing havoc and destruction, prompted them to attack the unhappy Jews, who were first pillaged without resistance, then massacred, to the number of five hundred persons.[*] The Lombard bankers were next exposed to the rage of the people; and though, by taking sanctuary in the churches, they escaped with their lives, all their money and goods became a prey to the licentious multitude. Even the houses of the rich citizens, though English, were attacked by night; and way was made by sword and by fire to the pillage of their goods, and often to the destruction of their persons. The queen, who, though defended by the Tower, was terrified by the neighborhood of such dangerous commotions, resolved to go by water to the Castle of Windsor; but as she approached the bridge, the populace assembled against her: the cry ran, “Drown the witch;” and besides abusing her with the most opprobrious language, and pelting her with rotten eggs and dirt, they had prepared large stones to sink her barge, when she should attempt to shoot the bridge; and she was so frightened, that she returned to the Tower[**]

But one of the main resources of his faction was the urban population, especially in London. Through his fake claims of holiness and his eagerness against Rome, he managed to get the monks and lower church officials on his side, which gave him uncontrollable power over the lower classes. Thomas Fitz-Richard, the mayor of London, a furious and unruly man, supported these disturbances in the city. He declared war on the prominent citizens and loosened the restrictions of governance that poorly managed that unruly city. As Easter approached, the mix of superstition, greed for plunder, and the thrill of chaos led them to attack the unfortunate Jews, who were first robbed without any resistance and then massacred, with about five hundred killed. The Lombard bankers then faced the mob's fury; although they took refuge in the churches and escaped with their lives, all their money and belongings were taken by the unruly crowd. Even the homes of wealthy citizens, despite being English, were targeted at night; swords and fire cleared the way for looting and often brutal attacks on their residents. The queen, protected by the Tower, was still afraid of the nearby chaos and decided to travel by boat to Windsor Castle. However, when she got close to the bridge, the crowd gathered against her, shouting, “Drown the witch.” They hurled insults at her, bombarded her with rotten eggs and dirt, and prepared heavy stones to sink her barge when she tried to pass under the bridge. Terrified, she turned back to the Tower.

The violence and fury of Leicester’s faction had risen to such a height in all parts of England, that the king, unable to resist their power, was obliged to set on foot a treaty of peace, and to make an accommodation with the barons on the most disadvantageous terms.[***]

The violence and anger of Leicester’s faction had escalated so much across England that the king, unable to counter their power, was forced to initiate a peace treaty and reach an agreement with the barons on the least favorable terms.[***]

     * Chron T. Wykes, p. 59.

     ** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 57.

     *** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 358. Trivet, p. 211.
* Chron T. Wykes, p. 59.

** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 57.

*** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 358. Trivet, p. 211.

He agreed to confirm anew the provisions of Oxford, even those which entirely annihilated the royal authority; and the barons were again reinstated in the sovereignty of the kingdom. They restored Hugh le Despenser to the office of chief justiciary: they appointed their own creatures sheriffs in every county of England; they took possession of all the royal castles and fortresses; they even named all the officers of the king’s household; and they summoned a parliament to meet at Westminster, in order to settle more fully their plan of government. They here produced a new list of twenty-four barons, to whom they proposed that the administration should be entirely committed; and they insisted that the authority of this junto should continue not only during the reign of the king, but also during that of Prince Edward.

He agreed to reaffirm the terms of Oxford, even those that completely eliminated royal authority; and the barons were once again restored to power over the kingdom. They reinstated Hugh le Despenser as the chief justiciar: they appointed their own supporters as sheriffs in every county of England; they took control of all the royal castles and fortresses; they even named all the officers of the king's household; and they called a parliament to meet at Westminster, to discuss their government plans in greater detail. They presented a new list of twenty-four barons, to whom they proposed that the administration should be fully handed over; and they insisted that this group's authority should last not only during the king's reign but also during Prince Edward's reign.

This prince, the life and soul of the royal party, had unhappily, before the king’s accommodation with the barons, been taken prisoner by Leicester in a parley at Windsor;[*] and that misfortune, more than any other incident, had determined Henry to submit to the ignominious conditions imposed upon him. But Edward, having recovered his liberty by the treaty, employed his activity in defending the prerogatives of his family; and he gained a great party even among-those who had at first adhered to the cause of the barons. His cousin, Henry d’Allmaine, Roger Bigod, earl mareschal, Earl Warrenne, Humphrey Bohun, earl of Hereford, John Lord Basset, Ralph Basset, Hammond l’Estrange, Roger Mortimer, Henry de Piercy, Robert de Brus, Roger de Leybourne, with almost all the lords marchers, as they were called, on the borders of Wales and of Scotland, the most warlike parts of the kingdom, declared in favor of the royal cause; and hostilities, which were scarcely well composed, were again renewed in every part of England. But the near balance of the parties, joined to the universal clamor of the people, obliged the king and barons to open anew the negotiations for peace; and it was agreed by both sides to submit their differences to the arbitration of the king of France.[**]

This prince, the life of the royal party, had unfortunately, before the king made peace with the barons, been captured by Leicester during a meeting at Windsor;[*] and that misfortune, more than anything else, made Henry decide to accept the humiliating terms imposed on him. But Edward, having regained his freedom through the treaty, focused on defending his family's rights; he built a strong following even among those who had initially supported the barons' cause. His cousin, Henry d’Allmaine, Roger Bigod, Earl Marshal, Earl Warrenne, Humphrey Bohun, Earl of Hereford, John Lord Basset, Ralph Basset, Hammond l’Estrange, Roger Mortimer, Henry de Piercy, Robert de Brus, Roger de Leybourne, and almost all the lords marchers, as they were known, along the borders of Wales and Scotland, the most militarily active areas of the kingdom, declared their support for the royal cause; and hostilities, which were barely organized, broke out again in every part of England. However, the close balance of power between the factions, combined with the widespread outcry from the people, forced the king and barons to reopen negotiations for peace; it was agreed by both sides to submit their disputes to the arbitration of the king of France.[**]

     * M. Paris, p. 669. Trivet, p. 213.

     ** M. Paris, p. 668, Chron. T. Wykes, p. 58. W. Heming, p.
     580. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 363.
     * M. Paris, p. 669. Trivet, p. 213.

     ** M. Paris, p. 668, Chron. T. Wykes, p. 58. W. Heming, p.
     580. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 363.

1264.

1264.

This virtuous prince, the only man, who, in like circumstances, could safely have been intrusted with such an authority by a neighboring nation, had never ceased to interpose his good, offices between the English factions, and had, even, during the short interval of peace, invited over to Paris both the king and the earl of Leicester, in order to accommodate the differences between them, but found that the fears and animosities on both sides, as well as the ambition of Leicester, were so violent, as to render all his endeavors ineffectual. But when this solemn appeal, ratified by the oaths and subscriptions of the leaders in both factions, was made to his judgment, he was not discouraged from pursuing his honorable purpose: he summoned the states of France at Amiens; and there, in the presence of that assembly, as well as in that of the king of England and Peter de Mountfort, Leicester’s son, he brought this great cause to a trial and examination. It appeared to him, that the provisions of Oxford, even had they not been extorted by force, had they not been so exorbitant in their nature and subversive of the ancient constitution, were expressly established as a temporary expedient, and could not, without breach of trust, be rendered perpetual by the barons. He therefore annulled these provisions; restored to the king the possession of his castles, and the power of nomination to the great offices; allowed him to retain what foreigners he pleased in his kingdom, and even to confer on them places of trust and dignity; and, in a word, reestablished the royal power in the same condition on which it stood before the meeting of the parliament at Oxford. But while he thus suppressed dangerous innovations, and preserved unimpaired the prerogatives of the English crown, he was not negligent of the rights of the people; and besides ordering that a general amnesty should be granted for all past offences, he declared, that his award was not anywise meant to derogate from the privileges and liberties which the nation enjoyed by any former concessions or charters of the crown.[*]

This virtuous prince, the only person who could have been trusted with such authority by a neighboring nation under similar circumstances, had always stepped in to mediate between the English factions. Even during the brief period of peace, he had invited both the king and the Earl of Leicester to Paris to resolve their differences, but the fears and hostilities on both sides, along with Leicester's ambition, were so intense that all his efforts were in vain. However, when this formal appeal, confirmed by the oaths and signatures of the leaders from both factions, was made to his judgment, he did not give up on his honorable goal. He summoned the states of France in Amiens, and there, in front of that assembly, as well as the King of England and Peter de Mountfort, Leicester's son, he brought this significant issue to trial and examination. He concluded that the provisions of Oxford, even if they hadn't been imposed by force and weren't so extreme that they undermined the ancient constitution, were clearly established as a temporary measure and couldn't, without breaking trust, be made permanent by the barons. Therefore, he annulled these provisions, returned control of the castles to the king, and restored his power to appoint officials to high offices; he allowed the king to keep any foreign individuals he wanted in his kingdom and even to give them positions of trust and honor; in short, he reestablished royal power in the same state it had been in before the parliament met at Oxford. While he suppressed dangerous changes and maintained the prerogatives of the English crown, he also paid attention to the rights of the people; in addition to ordering a general amnesty for all past offenses, he declared that his decision was not meant to undermine the privileges and liberties that the nation had gained from previous concessions or charters from the crown.[*]

This equitable sentence was no sooner known in England, than Leicester and his confederates determined to reject it and to have recourse to arms, in order to procure to themselves more safe and advantageous conditions.[**]

This fair decision was barely heard in England when Leicester and his allies decided to ignore it and resort to violence to secure better and safer terms for themselves.[**]

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 776, 777, etc. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 58.
     Knyghton, p. 2446.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 363.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 776, 777, etc. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 58.
     Knyghton, p. 2446.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 363.

Without regard to his oaths and subscriptions, that enterprising conspirator directed his two sons, richard and Peter de Mountfort, in conjunction with Robert de Ferrers, earl of Derby, to attack the city of Worcester; while Henry and Simon de Mountfort, two others of his sons, assisted by the prince of Wales, were ordered to lay waste the estate of Roger de Mortimer. He himself resided at London; and employing as his instrument Fitz-Richard, the seditious mayor, who had violently and illegally prolonged his authority, he wrought up that city to the highest ferment and agitation. The populace formed themselves into bands and companies; chose leaders; practised all military exercises; committed violence on the royalists; and to give them greater countenance in their disorders, an association was entered into between the city and eighteen great barons, never to make peace with the king but by common consent and approbation. At the head of those who swore to maintain this association, were the earls of Leicester, Glocester, and Derby, with Le Despenser, the chief justiciary; men who had all previously sworn to submit to the award of the French monarch. Their only pretence for this breach of faith was, that the latter part of Lewis’s sentence was, as they affirmed, a contradiction to the former. He ratified the charter of liberties, yet annulled the provisions of Oxford, which were only calculated, as they maintained, to preserve that charter; and without which, in their estimation, they had no security for its observance.

Disregarding his oaths and commitments, that ambitious conspirator instructed his two sons, Richard and Peter de Mountfort, along with Robert de Ferrers, the Earl of Derby, to attack the city of Worcester. Meanwhile, Henry and Simon de Mountfort, two other sons, assisted by the Prince of Wales, were ordered to devastate the estate of Roger de Mortimer. He himself stayed in London and, using Fitz-Richard, the rebellious mayor, who had illegitimately extended his time in office, stirred the city into a frenzy. The people organized themselves into groups, chose leaders, practiced military drills, and committed acts of violence against royalists. To give themselves more support in their chaos, the city formed an alliance with eighteen powerful barons, agreeing never to make peace with the king without mutual consent. Leading those who swore to uphold this alliance were the earls of Leicester, Gloucester, and Derby, along with Le Despenser, the chief justiciar—men who had all previously sworn to abide by the decision of the French king. Their only justification for this betrayal was that the latter part of Louis’s decree contradicted the former. He confirmed the charter of liberties but nullified the provisions of Oxford, which they claimed were meant to protect that charter; without those provisions, they believed they had no guarantee for its enforcement.

The king and prince, finding a civil war inevitable, prepared themselves for defence; and summoning the military vassals from all quarters, and being reinforced by Baliol, lord of Galloway, Brus, lord of Annandale, Henry Piercy, John Comyn,[*] and other barons of the north, they composed an army, formidable as well from its numbers as its military prowess and experience. The first enterprise of the royalists was the attack of Northampton, which was defended by Simon de Mountfort, with many of the principal barons of that party: and a breach being; made in the walls by Philip Basset, the place was carried by assault, and both the governor and the garrison were made prisoners. The royalists marched thence to Leicester and Nottingham; both which places having opened their gates to them, Prince Edward proceeded with a detachment into the county of Derby, in order to ravage with fire and sword the lands of the earl of that name, and take revenge on, him for his disloyalty. Like maxims of war prevailed with both parties throughout England; and the kingdom was thus exposed in a moment to greater devastation, from the animosities of the rival barons, than it would have suffered from many years of foreign or even domestic hostilities, conducted by more humane and more generous principles.

The king and prince, seeing a civil war was unavoidable, got ready for defense. They called on military vassals from all over and were joined by Baliol, lord of Galloway, Brus, lord of Annandale, Henry Piercy, John Comyn,[*] and other northern barons, forming an army strong in both numbers and military skill. The royalists' first move was to attack Northampton, defended by Simon de Montfort and many leading barons from that faction. A breach was made in the walls by Philip Basset, and the place was taken by storm, with both the governor and his garrison captured. The royalists then marched to Leicester and Nottingham, which welcomed them, and Prince Edward led a group into Derbyshire to raid the earl’s lands and take revenge for his disloyalty. Similar wartime tactics were used by both sides across England, exposing the kingdom to greater destruction from the rival barons' conflicts than it would have faced from many years of foreign or even domestic wars conducted with more humane and generous principles.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 772. M. West. p. 385. Ypod. Neust. p.
     469.
* Rymer, vol. i. p. 772. M. West. p. 385. Ypod. Neust. p. 469.

The earl of Leicester, master of London, and of the counties in the south-east of England, formed the siege of Rochester, which alone declared for the king in those parts, and which, besides Earl Warrenne, the governor, was garrisoned by many noble and powerful barons of the royal party. The king and prince hastened from Nottingham, where they were then quartered, to the relief of the place; and on their approach, Leicester raised the siege and retreated to London, which, being the centre of his power, he was afraid might, in his absence, fall into the king’s hands, either by force or by a correspondence with the principal citizens, who were all secretly inclined to the royal cause. Reënforced [**unusual spelling but that is what it looks like] by a great body of Londoners, and having summoned his partisans from all quarters, he thought himself strong enough to hazard a general battle with the royalists, and to determine the fate of the nation in one great engagement, which, if it proved successful, must be decisive against the king, who had no retreat for his broken troops in those parts, while Leicester himself, in case of any sinister accident, could easily take shelter in the city. To give the better coloring to his cause, he previously sent a message with conditions of peace to Henry, submissive in the language, but exorbitant in the demands;[*] and when the messenger returned with the lie and defiance from the king, the prince, and the king of the Romans, he sent a new message, renouncing, in the name of himself and of the associated barons, all fealty and allegiance to Henry. He then marched out of the city with his army, divided into four bodies: the first commanded by his two sons, Henry and Guy de Mountfort, together with Humphrey de Bohun, earl of Hereford, who had deserted to the barons; the second led by the earl of Glocester, with William de Montchesney and John Fitz-John; the third, composed of Londoners, under the command of Nicholas de Segrave; the fourth headed by himself in person. The bishop of Chichester gave a general absolution to the army, accompanied with assurances, that, if any of them fell in the ensuing action, they would infallibly be received into heaven, as the reward of their suffering in so meritorious a cause.

The Earl of Leicester, master of London and the southeastern counties of England, laid siege to Rochester, which was the only place in that region that remained loyal to the king. Besides Earl Warrenne, the governor, it was garrisoned by many noble and influential barons supporting the royal cause. The king and prince hurried from Nottingham, where they were staying, to help the city; as they approached, Leicester lifted the siege and retreated to London, which was central to his power. He feared that, in his absence, it might fall into the king’s hands, either by force or through connections with prominent citizens, who all secretly favored the royal cause. Reinforced by a large group of Londoners and having summoned his allies from all directions, he believed he was strong enough to risk a general battle with the royalists, aiming to decide the nation’s fate in one major fight, which, if successful, would be a decisive blow against the king. The king had no safe haven for his defeated troops in that area, while Leicester could easily find refuge in the city if things went wrong. To strengthen his position, he first sent a message offering terms of peace to Henry, using humble language but making excessive demands. When the messenger returned with a lie and defiance from the king, the prince, and the king of the Romans, he sent a new message, renouncing, on behalf of himself and the allied barons, all loyalty and allegiance to Henry. He then marched out of the city with his army, divided into four groups: the first led by his two sons, Henry and Guy de Montfort, along with Humphrey de Bohun, Earl of Hereford, who had joined the barons; the second led by the Earl of Gloucester, with William de Montchesney and John Fitz-John; the third, made up of Londoners, commanded by Nicholas de Segrave; and the fourth led by Leicester himself. The Bishop of Chichester offered a general absolution to the army, assuring them that if any fell in the upcoming battle, they would surely be received into heaven as a reward for their sacrifice in such a noble cause.

     * M. Paris, p. 669. W. Heming. p. 583.
     * M. Paris, p. 669. W. Heming. p. 583.

Leicester, who possessed great talents for war, conducted his march with such skill and secrecy, that he had well nigh surprised the royalists in their quarters at Lewes, in Sussex, but the vigilance and activity of Prince Edward soon repaired this negligence; and he led out the king’s army to the field in three bodies. He himself conducted the van, attended by Earl Warrenne and William de Valence; the main body was commanded by the king of the Romans and his son Henry; the king himself was placed in the rear at the head of his principal nobility. Prince Edward rushed upon the Londoners who had demanded the post of honor in leading the rebel army, but who, from their ignorance of discipline and want of experience, were ill fitted to resist the gentry and military men, of whom the prince’s body was composed. They were broken in an instant; were chased off the field; and Edward, transported by his martial ardor, and eager to revenge the insolence of the Londoners against his mother,[*] put them to the sword for the length of four miles, without giving them any quarter, and without reflecting on the fate which in the mean time attended the rest of the army. The earl of Leicester, seeing the royalists thrown into confusion by their eagerness in the pursuit, led on his remaining troops against the bodies commanded by the two royal brothers: he defeated with great slaughter the forces headed by the king of the Romans; and that prince was obliged to yield himself prisoner to the earl of Glocester: he penetrated to the body where the king himself was placed, threw it into disorder, pursued his advantage, chased it into the town of Lewes, and obliged Henry to surrender himself prisoner.[**]

Leicester, who had impressive skills in warfare, marched with such expertise and stealth that he nearly caught the royalists off guard at their camp in Lewes, Sussex. However, Prince Edward's vigilance and quick action fixed this oversight; he organized the king’s army into three groups for battle. He led the front, accompanied by Earl Warrenne and William de Valence; the main force was commanded by the king of the Romans and his son Henry; while the king himself was stationed at the rear with his top nobility. Prince Edward charged at the Londoners, who had insisted on leading the rebel army, but their lack of discipline and experience made them unprepared to face the well-trained gentry and soldiers of the prince’s forces. They were swiftly overwhelmed, chased from the battlefield, and Edward, fueled by his fighting spirit and wanting to avenge the Londoners' disrespect towards his mother,[*] relentlessly pursued them for four miles, giving no mercy and not considering the fate of the rest of the army. Observing the royalists disoriented by their pursuit, the Earl of Leicester advanced his remaining forces against the armies led by the two royal brothers. He inflicted severe defeats on the troops led by the king of the Romans, who had to surrender to the Earl of Gloucester. He broke through to the segment where the king was stationed, threw it into chaos, continued his assault, drove them into the town of Lewes, and forced Henry to surrender as well.[**]

Prince Edward, returning to the field of battle from his precipitate pursuit of the Londoners, was astonished to find it covered with the dead bodies of his friends, and still more to hear that his father and uncle were defeated and taken prisoners, and that Arundel, Comyn, Brus, Hamond l’Estrange, Roger Leybourne, and many considerable barons of his party were in the hands of the victorious enemy. Earl Warrenne, Hugh Bigod, and William de Valence, struck with despair at this event, immediately took to flight, hurried to Pevencey, and made their escape beyond sea:[***] but the prince, intrepid amidst the greatest disasters, exhorted his troops to revenge the death of their friends, to relieve the royal captives, and to snatch an easy conquest from an enemy disordered by their own victory.[****] He found his followers intimidated by their situation, while Leicester, afraid of a sudden and violent blow from the prince, amused him by a feigned negotiation, till he was able to recall his troops from the pursuit, and to bring them into order.[*****]

Prince Edward, returning to the battlefield after rushing after the Londoners, was shocked to find it filled with the dead bodies of his friends. He was even more stunned to learn that his father and uncle had been defeated and captured, and that Arundel, Comyn, Brus, Hamond l’Estrange, Roger Leybourne, and many important barons from his side were now in the hands of the victorious enemy. Earl Warrenne, Hugh Bigod, and William de Valence, overcome with despair at this news, immediately fled to Pevensey and escaped abroad. But the prince, brave in the face of such disasters, encouraged his troops to avenge their fallen friends, to rescue the royal captives, and to achieve an easy victory over an enemy disorganized by their own success. He found his followers intimidated by their circumstances, while Leicester, fearing a sudden and violent attack from the prince, distracted him with a fake negotiation until he could regroup his troops and restore order.

     * M. Paris, p. 670. Chron. T. Wykes, P 62

     ** W. Heming. p. 583 M. West p. 337. Ypod. Neust. p. 469.

     *** Kynghton, p. 2450.

     **** M. Paris, p. 670.

     ****** Chron. T. Wyke, p. 63. W. Heming. p. 584.

     ******* W. Heming. p. 581.
     * M. Paris, p. 670. Chron. T. Wykes, P 62

     ** W. Heming. p. 583 M. West p. 337. Ypod. Neust. p. 469.

     *** Kynghton, p. 2450.

     **** M. Paris, p. 670.

     ****** Chron. T. Wyke, p. 63. W. Heming. p. 584.

     ******* W. Heming. p. 581.

There now appeared no further resource to the royal party, surrounded by the armies and garrisons of the enemy, destitute of forage and provisions, and deprived of their sovereign, as well as of their principal leaders, who could alone inspirit them to an obstinate resistance. The prince, therefore, was obliged to submit to Leicester’s terms, which were short and severe, agreeably to the suddenness and necessity of the situation. He stipulated that he and Henry d’Allmaine should surrender themselves prisoners as pledges in lieu of the two kings; that all other prisoners on both sides should be released;[*] and that in order to settle fully the terms of agreement, application should be made to the king of France, that he should name six Frenchmen, three prelates and three noblemen; these six to choose two others of their own country, and these two to choose one Englishman, who, in conjunction with themselves, were to be invested by both parties with full powers to make what regulations they thought proper for the settlement of the kingdom. The prince and young Henry accordingly delivered themselves into Leicester’s hands, who sent them under a guard to Dover Castle. Such are the terms of agreement, commonly called the Mise of Lewes, from an obsolete French term of that meaning; for it appears that all the gentry and nobility of England, who valued themselves on their Norman extraction, and who disdained the language of their native country, made familiar use of the French tongue till this period, and for some time after.

There seemed to be no more options left for the royal party, surrounded by the enemy's armies and garrisons, lacking food and supplies, and cut off from their sovereign as well as their main leaders, who were the only ones capable of encouraging them to resist stubbornly. Therefore, the prince had no choice but to accept Leicester’s terms, which were brief and harsh, given the urgency and necessity of the situation. He agreed that he and Henry d’Allmaine would surrender as hostages in place of the two kings; that all other prisoners from both sides would be released; and that to finalize the terms of the agreement, there should be a request made to the king of France to appoint six Frenchmen, three church leaders and three nobles; these six would then select two more from their country, and those two would choose one Englishman, who, together with the others, would be granted full authority by both parties to establish whatever rules they deemed appropriate for settling the kingdom. The prince and young Henry consequently turned themselves over to Leicester, who sent them under guard to Dover Castle. These are the terms of the agreement, commonly referred to as the Mise of Lewes, from an old French term meaning that; for it seems that all the gentry and nobility of England, who prided themselves on their Norman descent and looked down on their native language, were familiar with the French language up until this time, and for a while afterwards.

Leicester had no sooner obtained this great advantage and gotten the whole royal family in his power, than he openly violated every article of the treaty, and acted as sole master, and even tyrant of the kingdom. He still detained the king in effect a prisoner, and made use of that prince’s authority to purposes the most prejudicial to his interests, and the most oppressive of his people.[**] He every where disarmed the royalists, and kept all his own partisans in, a military posture:[***] he observed the same partial conduct in the deliverance of the captives, and even threw many of the royalists into prison, besides those who were taken in the battle of Lewes; he carried the king from place to place, and obliged all the royal castles, on pretence of Henry’s commands, to receive a governor and garrison of his own appointment.

Leicester had hardly secured this major advantage and taken the entire royal family into his control when he openly broke every part of the treaty, acting as the sole ruler and even tyrant of the kingdom. He continued to hold the king effectively as a prisoner, using the prince’s authority for goals that were highly detrimental to his interests and incredibly oppressive to his people. He disarmed royalists everywhere and kept all his own supporters in a military stance. He showed the same biased behavior in releasing captives and even imprisoned many royalists, in addition to those captured in the battle of Lewes. He moved the king around from place to place and forced all the royal castles, under the pretense of Henry’s orders, to accept a governor and garrison of his own choosing.

     * M. Paris, p. 671. Knyghton, p. 2451.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 790, 791, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 795. Brady’s Appeals, No. 211, 212.
     Chron. T. Wykes, p. 63.
     * M. Paris, p. 671. Knyghton, p. 2451.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 790, 791, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. i. p. 795. Brady’s Appeals, No. 211, 212. Chron. T. Wykes, p. 63.

All the officers of the crown and of the household were named by him, and the whole authority, as well as arms of the state, was lodged in his hands: he instituted in the counties a new kind of magistracy, endowed with new and arbitrary powers, that of conservators of the peace;[*] his avarice appeared bare-faced, and might induce us to question the greatness of his ambition, at least the largeness of his mind, if we had not reason to think that he intended to employ his acquisitions as the instruments for attaining further power and grandeur. He seized the estates of no less than eighteen barons as his share of the spoil gained in the battle of Lewes: he engrossed to himself the ransom of all the prisoners; and told his barons, with a wanton insolence, that it was sufficient for them that he had saved them by that victory from the forfeitures and attainders which hung over them:[**] he even treated the earl of Glocester in the same injurious manner, and applied to his own use the ransom of the king of the Romans, who in the field of battle had yielded himself prisoner to that nobleman. Henry, his eldest son, made a monopoly of all the wool in the kingdom, the only valuable commodity for foreign markets which it at that time produced.[***] The inhabitants of the cinque ports, during the present dissolution of government, betook themselves to the most licentious piracy, preyed on the ships of all nations, threw the mariners into the sea, and by these practices, soon banished all merchants from the English coasts and harbors. Every foreign commodity rose to an exorbitant price, and woollen cloth, which the English had not then the art of dyeing, was worn by them white, and without receiving the last hand of the manufacturer. In answer to the complaints which arose on this occasion, Leicester replied that the kingdom could well enough subsist within itself, and needed no intercourse with foreigners. And it was found that he even combined with the pirates of the cinque ports, and received as his share the third of their prizes.[****]

All the crown and household officials were appointed by him, and he held all the authority, as well as the military power of the state: he created a new type of magistrate in the counties, called conservators of the peace, equipped with new and arbitrary powers; his greed was obvious and might lead us to doubt the greatness of his ambition, if we didn’t have reason to believe he intended to use his gains to achieve even more power and glory. He took the lands of at least eighteen barons as his portion of the spoils gained in the battle of Lewes: he kept the ransom of all the prisoners for himself and told his barons, with brazen arrogance, that it was enough for them that he had saved them by that victory from the forfeitures and penalties that threatened them: he even treated the earl of Glocester in the same disrespectful way, and claimed the ransom for the king of the Romans, who had surrendered himself as a prisoner to that nobleman on the battlefield. Henry, his oldest son, created a monopoly on all the wool in the kingdom, the only valuable export for foreign markets at that time. The inhabitants of the cinque ports, during this breakdown of government, resorted to rampant piracy, attacking ships from all nations, throwing the mariners into the sea, and through these actions soon drove all merchants away from English coasts and harbors. The price of every foreign commodity skyrocketed, and woolen cloth, which the English didn’t yet know how to dye, was worn by them in its natural white state, without finishing. In response to the complaints that arose from this situation, Leicester claimed that the kingdom could survive just fine on its own and didn’t need any trade with foreigners. It was found that he even collaborated with the pirates of the cinque ports and took a third of their loot as his share.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 792.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2451.

     *** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 65.

     **** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 6.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 792.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2451.

     *** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 65.

     **** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 6.

No further mention was made of the reference to the king of France, so essential an article in the agreement of Lewes; and Leicester summoned a parliament, composed altogether of his own partisans, in order to rivet, by their authority, that power which he had acquired by so much violence, and which he used with so much tyranny and injustice. An ordinance was there passed, to which the king’s consent had been previously extorted, that every act of royal power should be exercised by a council of nine persons, who were to be chosen and removed by the majority of three, Leicester himself, the earl of Glocester, and the bishop of Chichester.[*] By this intricate plan of government, the sceptre was really put into Leicester’s hands; as he had the entire direction of the bishop of Chichester, and thereby commanded all the resolutions of the council of three, who could appoint or discard at pleasure every member of the supreme council.

No further mention was made of the reference to the king of France, a crucial part of the agreement of Lewes; and Leicester called a parliament made up entirely of his own supporters, to solidify, with their authority, the power he had gained through so much violence, which he wielded with such tyranny and injustice. An ordinance was passed, to which the king had previously been forced to agree, stating that every act of royal power should be handled by a council of nine people, who were to be chosen and removed by a majority of three: Leicester himself, the Earl of Gloucester, and the Bishop of Chichester.[*] Through this complex system of government, the power was effectively placed in Leicester's hands; he had complete control over the Bishop of Chichester and, therefore, commanded all the decisions of the council of three, who could appoint or remove any member of the supreme council at will.

But it was impossible that things could long remain in this strange situation. It behoved Leicester either to descend with some peril into the rank of a subject, or to mount up with no less into that of a sovereign; and his ambition, unrestrained either by fear or by principle, gave too much reason to suspect him of the latter intention. Meanwhile he was exposed to anxiety from every quarter; and felt that the smallest incident was capable of overturning that immense and ill-cemented fabric which he had reared. The queen, whom her husband had left abroad, had collected in foreign parts an army of desperate adventurers, and had assembled a great number of ships, with a view of invading the kingdom, and of bringing relief to her unfortunate family. Lewis, detesting Leicester’s usurpations and perjuries, and disgusted at the English barons, who had refused to submit to his award, secretly favored all her enterprises, and was generally believed to be making preparations for the same purpose. An English army, by the pretended authority of the captive king, was assembled on the sea-coast, to oppose this projected invasion;[**] but Leicester owed his safety more to cross winds, which long detained and at last dispersed and ruined the queen’s fleet, than to any resistance which, in their present situation, could have been expected from the English.

But it was impossible for things to stay in this strange situation for long. Leicester had to either risk becoming a subject or try to rise up as a sovereign; his ambition, unchecked by fear or principles, made it easy to suspect he was leaning toward the latter. Meanwhile, he faced anxiety from all sides and understood that the slightest incident could topple the unstable structure he had built. The queen, who had been left abroad by her husband, gathered an army of desperate adventurers and a large number of ships in foreign lands to invade the kingdom and rescue her unfortunate family. Lewis, hating Leicester's usurpations and lies, and frustrated with the English barons who refused to accept his decisions, secretly supported her efforts and was widely believed to be preparing for the same goal. An English army, claiming the authority of the captive king, was assembled on the coast to counter this planned invasion; but Leicester's safety relied more on unfavorable winds that delayed and ultimately scattered the queen's fleet than on any resistance that could have been expected from the English under the circumstances.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 793. Brady’s Appeals, No. 213.

     ** Brady’s Appeals, No. 216, 217. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p
     373 M. West, p. 385.
* Rymer, vol. i. p. 793. Brady’s Appeals, No. 213.

** Brady’s Appeals, No. 216, 217. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p 373 M. West, p. 385.

Leicester found himself better able to resist the spiritual thunders which were levelled against him. The pope, still adhering to the king’s cause against the barons, despatched Cardinal Guido as his legate into England, with orders to excommunicate by name the three earls, Leicester, Glocester, and Norfolk, and all others in general, who concurred in the oppression and captivity of their sovereign.[*] Leicester menaced the legate with death if he set foot within the kingdom; but Guido, meeting in France the bishops of Winchester, London, and Worcester, who had been sent thither on a negotiation, commanded them, under the penalty of ecclesiastical censures, to carry his bull into England, and to publish it against the barons. When the prelates arrived off the coast, they were boarded by the piratical mariners of the cinque ports, to whom probably they gave a hint of the cargo which they brought along with them: the bull was torn and thrown into the sea; which furnished the artful prelates with a plausible excuse for not obeying the orders of the legate. Leicester appealed from Guido to the pope in person; but before the ambassadors appointed to defend his cause could reach Rome, the pope was dead; and they found the legate himself, from whom they had appealed, seated on the papal throne, by the name of Urban IV. That daring leader was nowise dismayed with this incident; and as he found that a great part of his popularity in England was founded on his opposition to the court of Rome, which was now become odious, he persisted with the more obstinacy in the prosecution of his measures.

Leicester found himself better able to withstand the spiritual attacks directed at him. The pope, still supporting the king against the barons, sent Cardinal Guido as his representative to England, with instructions to excommunicate by name the three earls—Leicester, Gloucester, and Norfolk—and anyone else who participated in the oppression and imprisonment of their sovereign. Leicester threatened the legate with death if he entered the kingdom; however, Guido, meeting the bishops of Winchester, London, and Worcester in France—who had been sent there for negotiations—ordered them, under the threat of church punishments, to take his bull to England and announce it against the barons. When the bishops arrived off the coast, they were boarded by the pirate sailors of the cinque ports, to whom they probably hinted about the cargo they carried: the bull was ripped up and tossed into the sea, which gave the crafty bishops a convincing reason for not following the legate's orders. Leicester appealed from Guido to the pope directly; but before the ambassadors he had chosen to represent him could reach Rome, the pope had died. They found the legate, whom they had appealed to, sitting on the papal throne as Urban IV. That bold leader was not discouraged by this turn of events; recognizing that much of his popularity in England was based on his opposition to the court of Rome, which had become unpopular, he stubbornly continued with his plans.

1265.

1265.

That he might both increase and turn to advantage his popularity, Leicester summoned a new parliament in London, where he knew his power was uncontrollable; and he fixed this assembly on a more democratical basis than any which had ever been summoned since the foundation of the monarchy. Besides the barons of his own party, and several ecclesiastics, who were not immediate tenants of the crown, he ordered returns to be made of two knights from each shire, and, what is more remarkable, of deputies from the boroughs, an order of men which, in former ages, had always been regarded as too mean to enjoy a place in the national councils.[**] This period is commonly esteemed the epoch of the house of commons in England; and it is certainly the first time that historians speak of any representatives sent to parliament by the boroughs and even in the most particular narratives delivered of parliamentary transactions, as in the trial of Thomas à Becket, where the events of each day, and almost of each hour, are carefully recorded by contemporary authors,[***] there is not, throughout the whole, the least appearance of a house of commons.

That he could boost his popularity and make it work to his advantage, Leicester called for a new parliament in London, where he knew his power was unmatched. He structured this assembly on a more democratic foundation than any that had ever been formed since the monarchy began. In addition to the barons from his own faction and several clergy members who weren't direct tenants of the crown, he mandated that two knights be elected from each county and, notably, deputies from the boroughs, a group that had always been seen as too lowly to have a place in national decision-making. This period is generally considered the beginning of the House of Commons in England; it marks the first time historians mention representatives sent to parliament by the boroughs. Even in detailed accounts of parliamentary events, such as the trial of Thomas à Becket, where contemporary writers meticulously document the happenings of each day, and nearly every hour, there is no indication of a House of Commons at all.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 798. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 373.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 802.

     *** Fitz-Stephen, Hist. Quadrip. Hoveden, etc.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 798. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 373.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 802.

     *** Fitz-Stephen, Hist. Quadrip. Hoveden, etc.

In all the general accounts given in preceding times of those assemblies, the prelates and barons only are mentioned as the constituent members. But though that house derived its existence from so precarious and even so invidious an origin as Leicester’s usurpation, it soon proved, when summoned by the legal princes, one of the most useful, and, in process of time, one of the most powerful members of the national constitution; and gradually rescued the kingdom from aristocratical as well as from regal tyranny. But Leicester’s policy, if we must ascribe to him so great a blessing, only forwarded by some years an institution, for which the general state of things had already prepared the nation; and it is otherwise inconceivable, that a plant, set by so inauspicious a hand, could have attained to so vigorous a growth, and have flourished in the midst of such tempests and convulsions. The feudal system, with which the liberty, much more the power of the commons, was totally incompatible, began gradually to decline; and both the king and the commonalty, who felt its inconveniencies, contributed to favor this new power, which was more submissive than the barons to the regular authority of the crown, and at the same time afforded protection to the inferior orders of the state.

In all the general accounts from earlier times about those assemblies, only the bishops and lords are mentioned as the main members. But although that house came into being from such a shaky and even contemptible source as Leicester’s takeover, it quickly showed itself to be one of the most helpful, and over time, one of the most powerful parts of the national government when called upon by the rightful leaders; it gradually freed the kingdom from both aristocratic and royal oppression. Leicester’s strategy, if we must credit him with such a significant achievement, only brought forward by a few years an institution that the overall situation had already set the nation up for; otherwise, it's hard to imagine how something initiated by such an unfavorable hand could have grown so robustly and thrived amid so many storms and upheavals. The feudal system, which was completely incompatible with the liberty, let alone the power, of the common people, began to fade away; both the king and the common folks, who recognized its drawbacks, helped support this new power, which was more obedient to the established authority of the crown and also provided protection to the lower levels of society.

Leicester, having thus assembled a parliament of his own model, and trusting to the attachment of the populace of London, seized the opportunity of crushing his rivals among the powerful barons. Robert de Ferrers, earl of Derby, was accused in the king’s name, seized, and committed to custody, without being brought to any legal trial.[*] John Gifford, menaced with the same fate, fled from London, and took shelter in the borders of Wales. Even the earl of Glocester, whose power and influence had so much contributed to the success of the barons, but who of late was extremely disgusted with Leicester’s arbitrary conduct, found himself in danger from the prevailing authority of his ancient confederate; and he retired from parliament.[**] This known dissension gave courage to all Leicester’s enemies and to the king’s friends; who were now sure of protection from so potent a leader.

Leicester, having gathered a parliament of his own design and relying on the loyalty of the people of London, took the chance to eliminate his rivals among the powerful barons. Robert de Ferrers, the earl of Derby, was accused in the king’s name, captured, and placed in custody without any legal trial. John Gifford, threatened with the same fate, fled London and sought refuge in the borders of Wales. Even the earl of Gloucester, whose power and influence played a significant role in helping the barons succeed but who had recently grown very frustrated with Leicester’s authoritarian actions, found himself in danger from the dominant authority of his former ally; and he stepped down from parliament. This known conflict encouraged all of Leicester’s enemies and the king’s supporters, who were now confident of protection from such a strong leader.

     * Chron. T. Wykes, p. 66. Ann. Waverl. p. 216.

     ** M. Paris, p. 671. Ann. Waverl. p. 211.
     * Chron. T. Wykes, p. 66. Ann. Waverl. p. 216.

     ** M. Paris, p. 671. Ann. Waverl. p. 211.

Though Roger Mortimer, Hamond l’Estrange, and other powerful marchers of Wales, had been obliged to leave the kingdom, their authority still remained over the territories subjected to their jurisdiction; and there were many others who were disposed to give disturbance to the new government. The animosities inseparable from the feudal aristocracy, broke out with fresh violence, and threatened the kingdom with new convulsions and disorders.

Though Roger Mortimer, Hamond l’Estrange, and other influential figures from Wales had to leave the kingdom, their power over the lands they controlled still remained. Many others were also eager to challenge the new government. The conflicts that came with the feudal aristocracy erupted with renewed intensity, posing new threats of upheaval and chaos to the kingdom.

The earl of Leicester, surrounded with these difficulties, embraced a measure, from which he hoped to reap some present advantages, but which proved in the end the source of all his future calamities. The active and intrepid Prince Edward had anguished in prison ever since the fatal battle of Lewes; and as he was extremely popular in the kingdom there arose a general desire of seeing him again restored to liberty.[*] Leicester, finding that he could with difficulty oppose the concurring wishes of the nation, stipulated with the prince, that, in return, he should order his adherents to deliver up to the barons all their castles, particularly those on the borders of Wales; and should swear neither to depart the kingdom during three years, nor introduce into it any foreign forces.[**] The king took an oath to the same effect, and he also passed a charter in which he confirmed the agreement or Mise of Lewes; and even permitted his subjects to rise in arms against him, if he should ever attempt to infringe it.[***] So little care did Leicester take, though he constantly made use of the authority of this captive prince, to preserve to him any appearance of royalty or kingly prerogatives.

The Earl of Leicester, faced with these challenges, decided on a course of action that he hoped would provide some immediate benefits, but it ended up being the cause of all his future misfortunes. The active and fearless Prince Edward had been suffering in prison ever since the disastrous battle of Lewes; since he was widely popular in the kingdom, there was a strong desire among the people to see him freed. Leicester, realizing he could hardly resist the shared wishes of the nation, made an agreement with the prince. In return for his release, Edward would instruct his supporters to hand over all their castles to the barons, especially those along the Welsh borders, and swear not to leave the kingdom for three years or bring in any foreign troops. The king also swore the same oath and issued a charter confirming the agreement of the Mise of Lewes, allowing his subjects to take up arms against him if he ever attempted to break it. Leicester showed little concern for preserving any semblance of royal dignity or powers for this imprisoned prince, despite frequently invoking his authority.

     * Knyghton, p. 2451.

     ** Ann. Waverl. p. 216.

     *** Blackstone’s Mag. Chart. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 378.
     * Knyghton, p. 2451.

     ** Ann. Waverl. p. 216.

     *** Blackstone’s Mag. Chart. Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 378.

In consequence of this treaty, Prince Edward was brought into Westminster Hall, and was declared free by the barons: but instead of really recovering his liberty, as he had vainly expected, he found that the whole transaction was a fraud on the part of Leicester; that he himself still continued a prisoner at large, and was guarded by the emissaries of that nobleman; and that, while the faction reaped all the benefit from the performance of his part of the treaty, care was taken that he should enjoy no advantage by it. As Glocester, on his rupture with the barons, had retired for safety to his estates on the borders of Wales, Leicester followed him with an army to Hereford,[*] continued still to menace ana negotiate, and that he might add authority to his cause, he carried both the king and prince along with him. The earl of Glocester here concerted with young Edward the manner of that prince’s escape. He found means to convey to him a horse of extraordinary swiftness; and appointed Roger Mortimer who had returned into the kingdom, to be ready at hand with a small party to receive the prince, and to guard him to a place of safety. Edward pretended to take the air with some of Leicester’s retinue, who were his guards; and making matches between their horses, after he thought he had tired and blown them sufficiently, he suddenly mounted Glocester’s horse, and called to his attendants that he had long enough enjoyed the pleasure of their company, and now bade them adieu. They followed him for some time without being able to overtake him; and the appearance of Mortimer with his company put an end to their pursuit.

As a result of this treaty, Prince Edward was brought into Westminster Hall and declared free by the barons. However, instead of actually gaining his freedom as he had naively hoped, he realized that the whole situation was a trick set up by Leicester. He still remained a prisoner at large, watched over by Leicester's agents, and while the faction benefited from him keeping his part of the treaty, they ensured he took no advantage from it. When Gloucester broke away from the barons, he had retreated for safety to his estates near the Welsh border. Leicester pursued him with an army to Hereford, continuing to threaten and negotiate. To strengthen his position, he brought both the king and prince with him. The Earl of Gloucester coordinated with young Edward on how to help the prince escape. He managed to get him a remarkably fast horse and arranged for Roger Mortimer, who had returned to the kingdom, to be ready with a small group to meet the prince and escort him to safety. Edward pretended to take a stroll with some of Leicester's guards. After he thought their horses were sufficiently tired from racing, he quickly mounted Gloucester's horse and told his attendants he had enjoyed their company long enough and was saying goodbye. They chased after him for a while but couldn't catch him, and Mortimer's appearance with his group ended their pursuit.

     * Chron. T. Wykes, p. 67. Ann. Waverl. p. 218. W. Heming, p.
     585. Chron Durst. vil. i i. p. 383, 384.
     * Chron. T. Wykes, p. 67. Ann. Waverl. p. 218. W. Heming, p. 
     585. Chron Durst. vil. i i. p. 383, 384.

The royalists, secretly prepared for this event, immediately flew to arms; and the joy of this gallant prince’s deliverance, the oppressions under which the nation labored, the expectation of a new scene of affairs, and the countenance of the earl of Glocester, procured Edward an army which Leicester was utterly unable to withstand. This nobleman found himself in a remote quarter of the kingdom; surrounded by his enemies; barred from all communication with his friends by the Severn, whose bridges Edward had broken down; and obliged to fight the cause of his party under these multiplied disadvantages. In this extremity he wrote to his son, Simon de Mountfort, to hasten from London with an army for his relief; and Simon had advanced to Kenilworth with that view, where, fancying that all Edward’s force and attention were directed against his father, he lay secure and unguarded. But the prince, making a sudden and forced march, surprised him in his camp, dispersed his army, and took the earl of Oxford and many other noblemen prisoners, almost without resistance. Leicester, ignorant of his son’s fate, passed the Severn in boats during Edward’s absence, and lay at Evesham, in expectation of being every hour joined by his friends from London; when the prince, who availed himself of every favorable moment, appeared in the field before him. Edward made a body of his troops advance from the road which led to Kenilworth, and ordered them to carry the banners taken from Simon’s army; while he himself, making a circuit with the rest of his forces, purposed to attack the enemy on the other quarter. Leicester was long deceived by this stratagem, and took one division of Edward’s army for his friends; but at last, perceiving his mistake, and observing the great superiority and excellent disposition of the royalists, he exclaimed, that they had learned from him the art of war; adding, “The Lord have mercy on our souls, for I see our bodies are the prince’s!” The battle immediately began, though on very unequal terms. Leicester’s army, by living in the mountains of Wales without bread, which was not then much used among the inhabitants, had been extremely weakened by sickness and desertion, and was soon broken by the victorious royalists; while his Welsh allies, accustomed only to a desultory kind of war, immediately took to flight, and were pursued with great slaughter. Leicester himself, asking for quarter, was slain in the heat of the action, with his eldest son Henry, Hugh le Despenser, and about one hundred and sixty knights, and many other gentlemen of his party. The old king had been purposely placed by the rebels in the front of the battle, and being clad in armor, and thereby not known by his friends, he received a wound, and was in danger of his life; but crying out, “I am Henry of Winchester, your king,” he was saved, and put in a place of safety by his son, who flew to his rescue.

The royalists, secretly ready for this moment, quickly grabbed their weapons; and the joy of this brave prince’s rescue, the suffering the nation endured, the anticipation of a new situation, and the support of the Earl of Gloucester gave Edward an army that Leicester could not fight against. This nobleman found himself in a remote part of the kingdom; surrounded by enemies; cut off from all communication with his allies by the Severn, which Edward had destroyed the bridges of; and forced to fight for his cause under these multiple disadvantages. In this critical situation, he wrote to his son, Simon de Montfort, urging him to rush from London with an army to help; Simon went to Kenilworth with that intention, believing that all of Edward’s forces and focus were directed at his father, making him feel safe and unguarded. But the prince, making a sudden and forced march, surprised him in his camp, scattered his army, and captured the Earl of Oxford and many other nobles almost without resistance. Ignorant of his son’s fate, Leicester crossed the Severn in boats during Edward’s absence and settled at Evesham, expecting to be joined any moment by his friends from London; when Edward, seizing every favorable moment, appeared on the battlefield before him. Edward sent a group of his troops to advance from the road leading to Kenilworth and instructed them to carry the banners taken from Simon’s army; while he himself, flanking with the rest of his forces, planned to attack the enemy from a different direction. Leicester was misled by this trick for a long time, mistaking one division of Edward’s army for his allies; but eventually realizing his mistake and noticing the overwhelming strength and excellent organization of the royalists, he exclaimed that they had learned the art of war from him; adding, “Lord have mercy on our souls, for I see our bodies belong to the prince!” The battle began immediately, though under very unfair conditions. Leicester’s army, weakened by living in the mountains of Wales without bread, which was not commonly used by the locals, suffered greatly from illness and desertion, and was soon crushed by the victorious royalists; while his Welsh allies, used only to a scattered type of warfare, quickly fled, facing heavy losses in the pursuit. Leicester himself, asking for mercy, was killed in the heat of battle, along with his eldest son Henry, Hugh le Despenser, and about one hundred sixty knights, as well as many other gentlemen from his side. The old king had been deliberately placed by the rebels at the front lines of the battle, and being in armor, he was not recognized by his own men; he was wounded and faced a life-threatening situation; but shouting, “I am Henry of Winchester, your king,” he was rescued and taken to safety by his son, who rushed to help him.

The violence, ingratitude, tyranny, rapacity, and treachery of the earl of Leicester, give a very bad idea of his moral character, and make us regard his death as the most fortunate event which, in this conjuncture, could have happened to the English nation: yet must we allow the man to have possessed great abilities, and the appearance of great virtues, who, though a stranger, could, at a time when strangers were the most odious and the most universally decried, have acquired so extensive an interest in the kingdom, and have so nearly paved his way to the throne itself. His military capacity, and his political craft, were equally eminent: he possessed the talents both of governing men and conducting business; and though his ambition was boundless, it seems neither to have exceeded his courage nor his genius; and he had the happiness of making the low populace, as well as the haughty barons, coöperate towards the success of his selfish and dangerous purposes. A prince of greater abilities and vigor than Henry might have directed the talents of this nobleman either to the exaltation of his throne or to the good of his people but the advantages given to Leicester, by the weak and variable administration of the king, brought on the ruin of royal authority, and produced great confusions in the kingdom which, however, in the end, preserved and extremely improved national liberty and the constitution. His popularity, even after his death, continued so great, that, though he was excommunicated by Rome, the people believed him to be a saint; and many miracles were said to be wrought upon his tomb.[*]

The violence, ingratitude, tyranny, greed, and betrayal of the Earl of Leicester paint a very negative picture of his character and make us see his death as the best thing that could have happened for the English nation at that time. Still, we have to acknowledge that he had great skills and the appearance of admirable qualities, as he was able to gain such a significant position in the kingdom at a time when outsiders were viewed with suspicion and contempt. His military prowess and political cunning were equally remarkable: he had the ability to both lead people and manage affairs. Although his ambition was limitless, it didn’t surpass his courage or talent; he skillfully got both the common people and the proud lords to support his selfish and dangerous aims. A more capable and vigorous prince than Henry could have channeled this nobleman’s talents either to elevate his own rule or benefit his subjects. However, the weaknesses and inconsistencies in the king's rule allowed Leicester to rise, leading to the downfall of royal authority and creating significant turmoil in the kingdom, which ultimately strengthened and significantly improved national freedom and the constitution. Even after his death, his popularity remained so high that, despite being excommunicated by Rome, people viewed him as a saint, and many miracles were said to occur at his tomb.[*]

1266.

1266.

The victory of Evesham, with the death of Leicester, proved decisive in favor of the royalists, and made an equal though an opposite impression on friends and enemies, in every part of England. The king of the Romans recovered his liberty: the other prisoners of the royal party were not only freed, but courted by their keepers; Fitz-Richard, the seditious mayor of London, who had marked out forty of the most wealthy citizens for slaughter, immediately stopped his hand on receiving intelligence of this great event; and almost all the castles, garrisoned by the barons, hastened to make their submissions, and to open their gates to the king. The Isle of Axholme alone, and that of Ely, trusting to the strength of their situation, ventured to make resistance; but were at last reduced, as well as the Castle of Dover, by the valor and activity of Prince Edward.[**] Adam de Gourdon, a courageous baron, maintained himself during some time in the forests of Hampshire, committed depredations in the neighborhood, and obliged the prince to lead a body of troops into that country against him. Edward attacked the camp of the rebels; and being transported by the ardor of battle, leaped over the trench with a few followers, and encountered Gourdon in single combat. The victory was long disputed between these valiant combatants; but ended at last in the prince’s favor, who wounded his antagonist, threw him from his horse, and took him prisoner. He not only gave him his life; but introduced him that very night to the queen at Guildford, procured him his pardon, restored him to his estate, received him into favor, and was ever after faithfully served by him.[***]

The victory at Evesham, along with Leicester's death, was a game-changer for the royalists and had a strong, but opposite, effect on both supporters and opponents across England. The king of the Romans regained his freedom, and the other royalist prisoners were not only released but also courted by their captors. Fitz-Richard, the rebellious mayor of London, who had targeted forty of the wealthiest citizens for execution, immediately halted his plans upon hearing this major news. Almost all the castles held by the barons quickly submitted and opened their gates to the king. Only the Isle of Axholme and Ely, confident in their strong positions, attempted to resist, but they were eventually overcome, as was Dover Castle, through the bravery and quick action of Prince Edward.[**] Adam de Gourdon, a brave baron, held out for some time in the Hampshire forests, raiding the area and forcing the prince to send troops against him. Edward attacked the rebels' camp, and fueled by the heat of battle, he jumped over the trench with a few followers and faced Gourdon in a one-on-one fight. The contest was fiercely contested between these two warriors but ultimately ended in favor of the prince, who injured his opponent, unseated him, and took him prisoner. He not only spared Gourdon's life but also introduced him that very night to the queen at Guildford, secured his pardon, restored his lands, welcomed him back into favor, and was consistently supported by him thereafter.[***]

     * Chron. de Mailr. p. 232.

     ** M. Paris p. 676. W. Heming. p. 588.

     *** M. Paris, p 575
     * Chron. de Mailr. p. 232.

     ** M. Paris p. 676. W. Heming. p. 588.

     *** M. Paris, p 575

A total victory of the sovereign over so extensive a rebellion commonly produces a revolution of government, and strengthens, as well as enlarges, for some time, the prerogatives of the crown; yet no sacrifices of national liberty were made on this occasion; the Great Charter remained still inviolate; and the king, sensible that his own barons, by whose assistance alone he had prevailed, were no less jealous of their independence than the other party, seems thenceforth to have more carefully abstained from all those exertions of power which had afforded so plausible a pretence to the rebels. The clemency of this victory is also remarkable; no blood was shed on the scaffold; no attainders, except of the Mountfort family, were carried into execution; and though a parliament, assembled at Winchester, attainted all those who had borne arms against the king, easy compositions were made with them for their lands;[*] and the highest sum levied on the most obnoxious offenders exceeded not five years’ rent of their estate. Even the earl of Derby, who again rebelled, after having been pardoned and restored to his fortune, was obliged to pay only seven years’ rent, and was a second time restored. The mild disposition of the king, and the prudence of the prince, tempered the insolence of victory and gradually restored order to the several members of the state, disjointed by so long a continuance of civil wars and commotions.

A total victory of the king over such a large rebellion usually leads to a change in government and temporarily increases the powers of the crown. However, no sacrifices of national freedom were made this time; the Great Charter remained untouched. The king, aware that his barons—who were the only reason he won—were just as protective of their independence as the opposing side, seemed to be more careful afterward about using the power that had previously given the rebels a valid reason to rise against him. The mercy shown in this victory is also notable; no one was executed, and no accusations were enforced except against the Mountfort family. Although a parliament was called at Winchester that condemned everyone who fought against the king, lenient arrangements were made with them regarding their lands, and the most anyone had to pay didn't exceed five years' rent of their property. Even the Earl of Derby, who rebelled again after being pardoned and having his fortune restored, only had to pay seven years' rent before being restored once more. The king’s gentle nature and the prince's wisdom tempered the arrogance that often comes with victory and gradually brought order back to the various parts of the state, which had been disrupted by prolonged civil wars and unrest.

The city of London, which had carried farthest the rage and animosity against the king, and which seemed determined to stand upon its defence after almost all the kingdom had submitted, was, after some interval, restored to most of its liberties and privileges; and Fitz-Richard, the mayor, who had been guilty of so much illegal violence, was only punished by fine and imprisonment. The countess of Leicester, the king’s sister, who had been extremely forward in all attacks on the royal family, was dismissed the kingdom with her two sons, Simon and Guy, who proved very ungrateful for this lenity. Five years afterwards, they assassinated, at Viterbo in Italy, their cousin Henry d’Allmaine, who at that very time was endeavoring to make their peace with the king; and by taking sanctuary in the church of the Franciscans, they escaped the punishment due to so great an enormity.[**]

The city of London, which had taken the lead in expressing anger and hostility toward the king, and seemed determined to defend itself after nearly the entire kingdom had given in, was, after some time, restored to most of its freedoms and privileges; and Fitz-Richard, the mayor, who had committed numerous illegal acts, was only punished with a fine and imprisonment. The countess of Leicester, the king’s sister, who had actively participated in attacks against the royal family, was exiled from the kingdom with her two sons, Simon and Guy, who turned out to be very ungrateful for this leniency. Five years later, they assassinated their cousin Henry d’Allmaine in Viterbo, Italy, while he was trying to make peace with the king; and by seeking refuge in the church of the Franciscans, they avoided the punishment that such a terrible crime deserved.[**]

     * M. Paris, p. 675.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 879; vol. ii. p. 4, 6. Chron. T. Wykes,
     p. 94 W. Heming. p. 589. Trivet, p. 240.
     * M. Paris, p. 675.

     ** Rymer, vol. i. p. 879; vol. ii. p. 4, 6. Chron. T. Wykes,
     p. 94 W. Heming. p. 589. Trivet, p. 240.

1267.

1267.

The merits of the earl of Glocester, after he returned to his allegiance, had been so great, in restoring the prince to his liberty, and assisting him in his victories against the rebellious barons, that it was almost impossible to content him in his demands; and his youth and temerity as well as his great power, tempted him, on some new disgust, to raise again the flames of rebellion in the kingdom. The mutinous populace of London at his instigation took to arms; and the prince was obliged to levy an army of thirty thousand men in order to suppress them. Even this second rebellion did not provoke the king to any act of cruelty; and the earl of Glocester himself escaped with total impunity. He was only obliged to enter into a bond of twenty thousand marks, that he should never again be guilty of rebellion; a strange method of enforcing the laws, and a proof of the dangerous independence of the barons in those ages! These potent nobles were, from the danger of the precedent, averse to the execution of the laws of forfeiture and felony against any of their fellows; though they could not, with a good grace, refuse to concur in obliging them to fulfil any voluntary contract and engagement into which they had entered.

The earl of Glocester's achievements after he returned to his loyalty were so significant, particularly in freeing the prince and helping him win battles against the rebellious barons, that it became nearly impossible to satisfy him with his demands. His youth and recklessness, combined with his considerable power, led him to reignite the flames of rebellion in the kingdom after some new offense. The rebellious crowds in London, spurred by him, took up arms; as a result, the prince had to raise an army of thirty thousand men to put them down. Even this second rebellion didn't push the king to act harshly, and the earl of Glocester himself faced no consequences. He only had to enter a bond of twenty thousand marks promising never to rebel again—a peculiar way of enforcing the laws and a clear sign of the dangerous independence the barons had in those times! These powerful nobles, fearful of setting a dangerous precedent, were reluctant to enforce the laws regarding forfeiture and felony against any of their peers; however, they could not politely refuse to ensure that their peers honored any voluntary agreements and obligations they had made.

1270.

1270.

The prince, finding the state of the kingdom tolerably composed, was seduced by his avidity for glory, and by the prejudices of the age, as well as by the earnest solicitations of the king of France, to undertake an expedition against the infidels in the Holy Land;[*] and he endeavored previously to settle the state in such a manner, as to dread no bad effects from his absence. As the formidable power and turbulent disposition of the earl of Glocester gave him apprehensions, he insisted on carrying him along with him, in consequence of a vow which that nobleman had made to undertake the same voyage: in the mean time, he obliged him to resign some of his castles, and to enter into a new bond not to disturb the peace of the kingdom.[**]

The prince, seeing that the kingdom was relatively stable, was tempted by his desire for glory, the biases of the time, and the strong requests from the king of France to launch a campaign against the infidels in the Holy Land;[*] and he tried to arrange things so that he wouldn’t have to worry about negative consequences during his absence. Concerned about the powerful and unpredictable nature of the earl of Glocester, he insisted on bringing him along, due to a vow that the nobleman had made to undertake the same journey: in the meantime, he made him give up some of his castles and enter into a new agreement not to disturb the peace of the kingdom.[**]

     * M. Paris, p. 677

     ** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 90.
     * M. Paris, p. 677

     ** Chron. T. Wykes, p. 90.

He sailed from England with an army; and arrived in Lewis’s camp before Tunis in Africa, where he found that monarch already dead, from the intemperance of the climate and the fatigues of his enterprise. The great, if not only weakness of this prince, in his government, was the imprudent passion for crusades; but it was this zeal chiefly that procured him from the clergy the title of St. Lewis, by which he is known in the French history and if that appellation had not been so extremely prostituted as to become rather a term of reproach, he seems, by his uniform probity and goodness, as well as his piety, to have fully merited the title. He was succeeded by his son Philip, denominated the Hardy; a prince of some merit, though much inferior to that of his father.

He set sail from England with an army and arrived at Lewis’s camp before Tunis in Africa, where he found that the king had already died due to the harsh climate and the exhaustion from his campaign. The major, if not only, flaw in this king’s rule was his reckless passion for crusades; however, it was this fervor that earned him the title of St. Lewis from the clergy, which is how he’s known in French history. If that title hadn’t been so widely misused to the point of becoming a term of contempt, he truly seemed to have deserved it because of his consistent integrity, goodness, and piety. He was succeeded by his son Philip, known as the Hardy, a prince of some merit, although he was much less capable than his father.

1271.

1271.

Prince Edward, not discouraged by this event, continued his voyage to the Holy Land, where he signalized himself by acts of valor; revived the glory of the English name in those parts; and struck such terror into the Saracens, that they employed an assassin to murder him, who wounded him in the arm, but perished in the attempt.[*] Meanwhile his absence from England was attended with many of those pernicious consequences which had been dreaded from it. The laws were not executed: the barons oppressed the common people with impunity: they gave shelter on their estates to bands of robbers, whom they employed in committing ravages on the estates of their enemies: the populace of London returned to their usual licentiousness: and the old king, unequal to the burden of public affairs, called aloud for his gallant son to return,[**] and to assist him in swaying that sceptre which was ready to drop from his feeble and irresolute hands. At last, overcome by the cares of government and the infirmities of age, he visibly declined, and he expired at St. Edmondsbury in the sixty-fourth year of his age, and fifty-sixth of his reign;[***] the longest reign that is to be met with in the English annals.

Prince Edward, undeterred by this incident, continued his journey to the Holy Land, where he distinguished himself with acts of bravery; he renewed the prestige of the English name in those regions and instilled such fear in the Saracens that they hired an assassin to kill him, who managed to wound him in the arm but ultimately failed.[*] In the meantime, his absence from England led to many of the harmful effects that were feared. The laws were not enforced: the barons exploited the common people without consequence: they harbored gangs of robbers on their estates, using them to attack their enemies' lands: the people of London returned to their usual unruliness: and the elderly king, unable to handle public affairs, called loudly for his brave son to come back,[**] to help him manage the crown that was about to slip from his weak and indecisive hands. Eventually, weighed down by the burdens of governance and the weaknesses of old age, he visibly deteriorated and passed away at St. Edmondsbury in his sixty-fourth year and fifty-sixth year of reign;[***] the longest reign recorded in English history.

     * M. Paris, p. 678, 679. W. Heming, p. 520.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 404.

     *** Kymer, vol. i. p. 869. M. Paris, p. 678.
     * M. Paris, p. 678, 679. W. Heming, p. 520.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. i. p. 404.

     *** Kymer, vol. i. p. 869. M. Paris, p. 678.

1272.

1272.

His brother, the king of the Romans, (for he never attained the title of emperor,) died about seven months before him.

His brother, the king of the Romans, (since he never got the title of emperor,) died about seven months before him.

The most obvious circumstance of Henry’s character is his incapacity for government, which rendered him as much a prisoner in the hands of his own ministers and favorites, and as little at his own disposal, as when detained a captive in the hands of his enemies. From this source, rather than from insincerity or treachery, arose his negligence in observing his promises; and he was too easily induced, for the sake of present convenience, to sacrifice the lasting advantages arising from the trust and confidence of his people. Hence too were derived his profusion to favorites, his attachment to strangers, the variableness of his conduct, his hasty resentments, and his sudden forgiveness and return of affection.

The most obvious thing about Henry’s character is his inability to govern, which made him as much a prisoner to his own ministers and favorites, and as little in control of his own fate, as if he were captured by his enemies. His carelessness in keeping his promises came more from this situation than from insincerity or betrayal. He was often too easily persuaded, for the sake of immediate convenience, to give up the long-term benefits of his people's trust and confidence. This is also why he was generous to his favorites, attached to outsiders, inconsistent in his behavior, quick to anger, and then suddenly forgiving and affectionate again.

Instead of reducing the dangerous power of his nobles, by obliging them to observe the laws towards their inferiors, and setting them the salutary example in his own government, he was seduced to imitate their conduct, and to make his arbitrary will, or rather that of his ministers, the rule of his actions. Instead of accommodating himself, by a strict frugality, to the embarrassed situation in which his revenue had been left by the military expeditions of his uncle, the dissipations of his father, and the usurpations of the barons, he was tempted to levy money by irregular exactions, which, without enriching himself, impoverished, at least disgusted, his people. Of all men, nature seemed least to have fitted him for being a tyrant, yet are there instances of oppression in his reign, which, though derived from the precedents left him by his predecessors, had been carefully guarded against by the Great Charter, and are inconsistent with all rules of good government. And on the whole, we may say, that greater abilities, with his good dispositions, would have prevented him from falling into his faults, or with worse dispositions, would have enabled him to maintain and defend them.

Instead of limiting the dangerous power of his nobles by forcing them to follow the laws toward their subjects and leading by example with his own governance, he was led to mimic their behavior and made his arbitrary wishes, or rather those of his ministers, the guideline for his actions. Rather than adapting to his financial struggles, caused by his uncle's military campaigns, his father's extravagances, and the barons' takeovers, he was tempted to collect money through irregular taxes that, while not enriching him, at least left his people drained and discontent. Of all people, he seemed least suited to be a tyrant, yet there are examples of oppression during his reign that, although based on the practices of his predecessors, were specifically prevented by the Great Charter and clash with all principles of good governance. Overall, we can say that greater skills and his good intentions would have kept him from making these mistakes, or with worse intentions, would have helped him uphold and justify them.

This prince was noted for his piety and devotion, and his regular attendance on public worship; and a saying of his on that head is much celebrated by ancient writers. He was engaged in a dispute with Lewis IX. of France, concerning the preference between sermons and masses: he maintained the superiority of the latter, and affirmed, that he would rather have one hour’s conversation with a friend, than hear twenty of the most elaborate discourses pronounced in his praise.[*]

This prince was known for his piety and devotion, regularly attending public worship; a saying of his on that topic is well-remembered by ancient writers. He was involved in a debate with Louis IX of France about the preference between sermons and masses: he argued that the latter was superior and stated that he would rather have one hour of conversation with a friend than hear twenty of the most elaborate speeches made in his honor.[*]

     * Walsing. Edw. I. p. 43.
     * Walsing. Edw. I. p. 43.

Henry left two sons, Edward, his successor, and Edmond earl of Lancaster; and two daughters, Margaret, queen of Scotland, and Beatrix, duchess of Brittany. He had five other children, who died in their infancy.

Henry left behind two sons, Edward, who became his successor, and Edmond, the earl of Lancaster; and two daughters, Margaret, the queen of Scotland, and Beatrix, the duchess of Brittany. He had five other children who passed away in their infancy.

The following are the most remarkable laws enacted during this reign. There had been great disputes between the civil and ecclesiastical courts concerning bastardy. The common law had deemed all those to be bastards who were born before wedlock; by the canon law they were legitimate: and when any dispute of inheritance arose, it had formerly been usual for the civil courts to issue writs to the spiritual, directing them to inquire into the legitimacy of the person. The bishop always returned an answer agreeable to the canon law, though contrary to the municipal law of the kingdom. For this reason, the civil courts had changed the terms of their writ; and instead of requiring the spiritual courts to make inquisition concerning the legitimacy of the person, they only proposed the simple question of fact, whether he were born before or after wedlock. The prelates complained of this practice to the parliament assembled at Merton in the twentieth of this king, and desired that the municipal law might be rendered conformable to the canon; but received from all the nobility the memorable reply, “Nolumus leges Angliae mutare.” We will not change the laws of England.[*]

The following are the most notable laws passed during this reign. There had been significant disagreements between the civil and religious courts regarding illegitimacy. Common law viewed anyone born before marriage as a bastard, while canon law considered them legitimate. When inheritance disputes arose, it was common for civil courts to send writs to the spiritual courts, asking them to investigate a person's legitimacy. The bishop would always provide an answer in line with canon law, even if it contradicted the kingdom's municipal law. Because of this, civil courts changed the wording of their writs; instead of asking the spiritual courts to investigate legitimacy, they simply asked whether the person was born before or after marriage. The bishops complained about this practice to the parliament gathered at Merton in the twentieth year of this king and requested that municipal law be aligned with canon law. However, they received the famous response from the nobility, “Nolumus leges Angliae mutare.” We will not change the laws of England.

After the civil wars, the parliament summoned at Marlebridge gave their approbation to most of the ordinances which had been established by the reforming barons, and which though advantageous to the security of the people, had not received the sanction of a legal authority. Among other laws, it was there enacted, that all appeals from the courts of inferior lords should be carried directly to the king’s courts, without passing through the courts of the lords immediately superior.[**] It was ordained, that money should bear no interest during the minority of the debtor.[***] This law was reasonable, as the estates of minors were always in the hands of their lords, and the debtors could not pay interest where they had no revenue. The charter of King John had granted this indulgence: it was omitted in that of Henry III., for what reason is not known; but it was renewed by the statute of Marlebridge. Most of the other articles of this statute are calculated to restrain the oppressions of sheriffs, and the violence and iniquities committed in distraining cattle and other goods. Cattle and the instruments of husbandry formed at that time the chief riches of the people.

After the civil wars, the parliament convened at Marlebridge approved most of the rules set by the reforming barons. These rules, while beneficial for the people’s safety, hadn’t been endorsed by a legal authority. One of the laws enacted there stated that all appeals from the courts of lower lords should go straight to the king’s courts, bypassing the courts of the higher lords.[**] It was also decided that money would not accrue interest during the debtor's minority.[***] This law was fair since minors’ estates were always controlled by their lords, and debtors couldn’t pay interest when they had no income. King John’s charter had granted this relief, but it was left out of Henry III’s charter for reasons unknown; however, it was reinstated by the statute of Marlebridge. Most other provisions of this statute aimed to limit the harassment by sheriffs and the wrongful actions taken in seizing cattle and other goods. At that time, cattle and farming tools were the main wealth of the people.

In the thirty-fifth year of this king, an assize was fixed of bread, the price of which was settled according to the different prices of corn, from one shilling a quarter to seven shillings and sixpence,[****] money of that age. These great variations are alone a proof of bad tillage:[*****] yet did the prices often rise much higher than any taken notice of by the statute.

In the thirty-fifth year of this king, a standard price for bread was set, which was determined based on the varying prices of grain, ranging from one shilling a quarter to seven shillings and sixpence,[****] money of that time. These significant fluctuations are clear evidence of poor farming practices:[*****] however, the prices often climbed much higher than what was mentioned in the law.

     * Statute of Merton, chap. 9.

     ** Statute of Marlb. chap. 20.

     *** Ibid. chap. 16.

     **** Statutes at large, p. 6.

     iii. cap. 81, 92,) that the price of corn in Sicily was,
     during the preetorship of Sacerdos five denarii amodius;
     during that of Verres, which immediately succeeded, only two
     sesterces; that is, ten times lower; a presumption, or
     rather a proof, of the very bad state of tillage in ancient
     times.
     * Statute of Merton, chap. 9.

     ** Statute of Marlb. chap. 20.

     *** Ibid. chap. 16.

     **** Statutes at large, p. 6.

     iii. cap. 81, 92,) that the price of grain in Sicily was,
     during the term of Sacerdos, five denarii per amodius;
     during the term of Verres, which followed immediately, only two
     sesterces; that is, ten times lower; a sign, or rather a clear indication, of the very poor condition of farming in ancient times.

The Chronicle of Dunstable tells us, that in this reign wheat was once sold for a mark, nay, for a pound a quarter; that is, three pounds of our present money.[*] The same law affords us a proof of the little communication between the parts of the kingdom, from the very different prices which the same commodity bore at the same time. A brewer, says the statute, may sell two gallons of ale for a penny in cities, and three or four gallons for the same price in the country. At present, such commodities, by the great consumption of the people, and the great stocks of the brewers, are rather cheapest in cities. The Chronicle above mentioned observes, that wheat one year was sold in many places for eight shillings a quarter, but never rose in Dunstable above a crown.

The Chronicle of Dunstable tells us that during this time, wheat was sometimes sold for a mark, even up to a pound a quarter; that's three pounds in today's money.[*] The same law shows us how little communication there was between different parts of the kingdom, as the prices for the same item varied significantly at the same time. According to the statute, a brewer could sell two gallons of ale for a penny in cities, but three or four gallons for the same price in the countryside. Nowadays, because of the high demand and the large supplies from the brewers, such goods are actually cheaper in cities. The Chronicle mentioned earlier notes that one year, wheat sold for eight shillings a quarter in many places, but never rose above a crown in Dunstable.

     * So also Knyghton, p. 2444.
     * So also Knyghton, p. 2444.

Though commerce was still very low, it seems rather to have increased since the conquest; at least, if we may judge of the increase of money by the price of corn. The medium between the highest and lowest prices of wheat, assigned by the statute, is four shillings and threepence a quarter; that is, twelve shillings and ninepence of our present money. This is near half of the middling price in our time. Yet the middling price of cattle, so late as the reign of King Richard, we find to be above eight, near ten times lower than the present. Is not this the true inference, from comparing these facts, that, in all uncivilized nations, cattle, which propagate of themselves, bear always a lower price than corn, which requires more art and stock to render it plentiful than those nations are possessed of? It is to be remarked, that Henry’s assize of corn was copied from a preceding assize established by King John; consequently, the prices which we have here compared of corn and cattle may be looked on as contemporary; and they were drawn, not from one particular year, but from an estimation of the middling prices for a series of years. It is true, the prices assigned by the assize of Richard were meant as a standard for the accompts of sheriffs and escheators and as considerable profits were allowed to these ministers, we may naturally suppose that the common value of cattle was somewhat higher: yet still, so great a difference between the prices of corn and cattle as that of four to one, compared to the present rates, affords important reflections concerning the very different state of industry and tillage in the two periods.

Although trade was still quite low, it seems to have increased since the conquest; at least, if we can judge the rise in money by the price of grain. The average price of wheat, set by the law, is four shillings and threepence per quarter; that translates to twelve shillings and ninepence in today’s money. This is almost half of the average price now. However, the average price of livestock, as recently as King Richard's reign, is found to be more than eight, almost ten times lower than it is today. Isn't the obvious conclusion from comparing these facts that in all uncivilized nations, livestock, which reproduce by themselves, is always priced lower than grain, which requires more skill and resources to produce than those nations possess? It's important to point out that Henry’s corn prices were based on an earlier set established by King John; therefore, the prices we are comparing for grain and livestock can be considered contemporary, drawn not from a single year but from an average over several years. It’s true that the prices set by Richard were intended as a standard for the accounts of sheriffs and tax collectors, and since these officials were allowed significant profits, we can reasonably assume that the common value of livestock was a bit higher; nonetheless, such a large difference in the prices of grain and livestock, like four to one compared to current rates, highlights the very different conditions of agricultural practices and farming in the two eras.

Interest had in that age mounted to an enormous height, as might be expected from the barbarism of the times and men’s ignorance of commerce. Instances occur of fifty per cent. paid for money.[*] There is an edict of Philip Augustus, near this period, limiting the Jews in France to forty-eight per cent.[**] Such profits tempted the Jews to remain in the kingdom, notwithstanding the grievous oppressions to which, from the prevalent bigotry and rapine of the age, they were continually exposed. It is easy to imagine how precarious their state must have been under an indigent prince, somewhat restrained in his tyranny over his native subjects, but who possessed an unlimited authority over the Jews, the sole proprietors of money in the kingdom, and hated on account of their riches, their religion, and their usury; yet will our ideas scarcely come up to the extortions which in fact we find to have been practised upon them. In the year 1241, twenty thousand marks were exacted from them;[***] two years after money was again extorted; and one Jew alone, Aaron of York, was obliged to pay above four thousand marks;[****] in 1250, Henry renewed his oppressions; and the same Aaron was condemned to pay him thirty thousand marks upon an accusation of forgery;[*****] the high penalty imposed upon him, and which, it seems, he was thought able to pay, is rather a presumption of his innocence than of his guilt.

Interest during that time had reached an incredibly high level, which makes sense given the barbarism of the era and people's lack of knowledge about commerce. There are cases where loans had interest rates of fifty percent.[*] Philip Augustus issued an edict around this time that limited Jewish interest rates in France to forty-eight percent.[**] These high profits led the Jews to stay in the kingdom, despite the severe oppression they faced due to the widespread bigotry and greed of the time. It's easy to imagine how unstable their situation must have been under a needy king, who, while slightly restricted in his cruelty towards his own people, had complete power over the Jews, the only moneylenders in the kingdom, who were despised for their wealth, their faith, and their lending practices; yet our understanding likely falls short of the actual extortions they suffered. In 1241, they were forced to pay twenty thousand marks;[***] two years later, money was again extorted from them, and one Jew, Aaron of York, had to pay more than four thousand marks;[****] in 1250, Henry resumed his oppression, and Aaron was ordered to pay thirty thousand marks under a charge of forgery;[*****] the hefty fine imposed on him, which he was thought capable of paying, suggests more about his innocence than any wrongdoing.

     * M. Paris, p. 586.

     ** Brussel, Traité des Fiefs, vol. i, p. 576.

     *** M. Paris, p. 372.

     **** M. Paris, p. 410.

     * M. Paris, p. 586.

     ** Brussels, Treaty of the Fiefs, vol. i, p. 576.

     *** M. Paris, p. 372.

     **** M. Paris, p. 410.

In 1255, the king demanded eight thousand marks from the Jews, and threatened to hang them if they refused compliance. They now lost all patience, and desired leave to retire with their effects out of the kingdom. But the king replied, “How can I remedy the oppressions you complain of? I am myself a beggar. I am spoiled, I am stripped of all my revenues; I owe above two hundred thousand marks; and if I had said three hundred thousand, I should not exceed the truth; I am obliged to pay my son, Prince Edward, fifteen thousand marks a year; I have not a farthing; and I must have money from any hand, from any quarter, or by any means.” He then delivered over the Jews to the earl of Cornwall, that those whom the one brother had flayed, the other might embowel, to make use of the words of the historian.[*] King John, his father, once demanded ten thousand marks from a Jew of Bristol; and on his refusal, ordered one of his teeth to be drawn every day till he should comply. The Jew lost seven teeth, and then paid the sum required of him.[**] One talliage laid upon the Jews, in 1243, amounted to sixty thousand marks;[***] a sum equal to the whole yearly revenue of the crown.

In 1255, the king demanded eight thousand marks from the Jews and threatened to hang them if they didn’t comply. They lost all patience and asked to leave the kingdom with their belongings. But the king replied, “How can I fix the problems you’re complaining about? I’m a beggar myself. I’ve been robbed of all my income; I owe over two hundred thousand marks, and if I said three hundred thousand, I wouldn’t be exaggerating. I have to pay my son, Prince Edward, fifteen thousand marks a year; I don’t have a penny; I need money from anyone, from any source, by any means.” He then handed the Jews over to the earl of Cornwall so that those whom one brother had exploited, the other might further exploit, to quote the historian.[*] King John, his father, once demanded ten thousand marks from a Jew in Bristol; and when the Jew refused, he ordered one of his teeth to be pulled out every day until he agreed. The Jew lost seven teeth and then paid the amount required.[**] One tax imposed on the Jews in 1243 totaled sixty thousand marks,[***] which was equivalent to the entire yearly revenue of the crown.

To give a better pretence for extortions, the improbable and absurd accusation, which has been at different times advanced against that nation, was revived in England, that they had crucified a child in derision of the sufferings of Christ. Eighteen of them were hanged at once for this crime;[****] though it is nowise credible that even the antipathy borne them by the Christians, and the oppressions under which they labored, would ever have pushed them to be guilty of that dangerous enormity. But it is natural to imagine, that a race exposed to such insults and indignities, both from king and people, and who had so uncertain an enjoyment of their riches, would carry usury to the utmost extremity, and by their great profits make themselves some compensation for their continual perils.

To create a better excuse for extortion, the unbelievable and ridiculous accusation that has been made at various times against that nation was brought back in England, claiming that they had crucified a child to mock the sufferings of Christ. Eighteen of them were hanged at once for this crime;[****] although it is hardly believable that even the hatred they faced from Christians and the oppression they endured would ever lead them to commit such a terrible act. However, it’s easy to think that a group subjected to such slurs and mistreatment, both from the king and the public, and who had such an unstable hold on their wealth, would resort to charging exorbitant interest rates and use their significant profits to compensate for their constant risks.

Though these acts of violence against the Jews proceeded much from bigotry, they were still more derived from avidity and rapine. So far from desiring in that age to convert them, it was enacted by law in France, that if any Jew embraced Christianity, he forfeited all his goods, without exception, to the king or his superior lord. These plunderers were careful lest the profits accruing from their dominion over that unhappy race should be diminished by their conversion.[*****]

Though these acts of violence against the Jews were mainly fueled by bigotry, they were even more driven by greed and pillaging. Rather than wanting to convert them during that time, French law stated that if any Jew converted to Christianity, he would lose all his possessions to the king or his lord. These plunderers were careful to ensure that their profits from ruling over that unfortunate group wouldn't be reduced by their conversion.[*****]

Commerce must be in a wretched condition where interest was so high, and where the sole proprietors of money employed it in usury only, and were exposed to such extortion and injustice. But the bad police of the country was another obstacle to improvements, and rendered all communication dangerous, and all property precarious. The Chronicle of Dunstable says,[******] that men were never secure in their houses, and that whole villages were often plundered by bands of robbers, though no civil wars at that time prevailed in the kingdom.

Commerce must be in a terrible state when interest rates were so high, and when the sole owners of money only used it for usury, facing such exploitation and unfairness. But the poor law enforcement in the country was another barrier to progress, making all communication risky and all property uncertain. The Chronicle of Dunstable says,[******] that people were never safe in their homes, and that entire villages were often looted by groups of robbers, even though there were no civil wars happening in the kingdom at that time.

     *M. Paris, p. 606.

     **M. Paris, p. 160.

     ***Madox, p. 152.

     ****M. Paris, p. 613.

     ******Vol. i. p. 155.
     *M. Paris, p. 606.

     **M. Paris, p. 160.

     ***Madox, p. 152.

     ****M. Paris, p. 613.

     ******Vol. i. p. 155.

In 1249, some years before the insurrection of the barons, two merchants of Brabant came to the king at Winchester, and told him that they had been spoiled of all their goods by certain robbers, whom they knew, because they saw their faces every day in his court; that like practices prevailed all over England, and travellers were continually exposed to the danger of being robbed, bound, wounded, and murdered; that these crimes escaped with impunity, because the ministers of justice themselves were in a confederacy with the robbers; and that they, for their part, instead of bringing matters to a fruitless trial by law, were willing, though merchants, to decide their cause with the robbers by arms and a duel. The king, provoked at these abuses, ordered a jury to be enclosed, and to try the robbers: the jury, though consisting of twelve men of property in Hampshire, were found to be also in a confederacy with the felons, and acquitted them. Henry, in a rage, committed the jury to prison, threatened them with severe punishment, and ordered a new jury to be enclosed, who, dreading the fate of their fellows, at last found a verdict against the criminals. Many of the king’s own household were discovered to have participated in the guilt; and they said for their excuse, that they received no wages from him, and were obliged to rob for a maintenance.[*] “Knights and esquires,” says the Dictum of Kenilworth, “Who were robbers, if they have no land, shall pay the half of their goods, and find sufficient security to keep henceforth the peace of the kingdom.” Such were the manners of the times!

In 1249, a few years before the baron uprising, two merchants from Brabant visited the king in Winchester and told him they had been robbed of all their belongings by some thieves they recognized, as they saw their faces daily in his court. They explained that this was happening all over England, leaving travelers at constant risk of being robbed, bound, injured, or killed. These crimes went unpunished because the justice officials were in cahoots with the robbers. The merchants, instead of dragging the matter through frustrating legal trials, were willing, despite being merchants, to settle the issue with the robbers through a duel. The king, furious about these wrongdoings, ordered a jury to be assembled to try the robbers. However, this jury, comprised of twelve respected men from Hampshire, turned out to be in league with the criminals and acquitted them. In a fit of rage, Henry imprisoned the jury, threatened them with harsh consequences, and arranged for a new jury to be formed. Fearing the same fate as their predecessors, the new jury finally found the criminals guilty. It was revealed that many in the king’s own household were also guilty, and they justified their actions by claiming they received no pay from him and had to steal to survive. “Knights and squires,” the Dictum of Kenilworth states, “who were robbers, if they own no land, shall pay half of their goods and provide adequate security to maintain the peace of the kingdom.” Such were the ways of the times!

One can the less repine, during the prevalence of such manners, at the frauds and forgeries of the clergy; as it gives less disturbance to society to take men’s money from them with their own consent, though by deceits and lies, than to ravish it by open force and violence. During this reign the papal power was at its summit, and was even beginning insensibly to decline, by reason of the immeasurable avarice and extortions of the court of Rome, which disgusted the clergy as well as laity in every kingdom of Europe. England itself, though sunk in the deepest abyss of ignorance and superstition, had seriously entertained thoughts of shaking off the papal yoke;[**] and the Roman pontiff was obliged to think of new expedients for rivetting it faster upon the Christian world.

One can be less upset, during the dominance of such behaviors, at the frauds and forgeries of the clergy; because it's less disruptive to society to take people's money with their consent, even if through deceit and lies, than to seize it through outright force and violence. During this reign, papal power was at its peak, but it was also starting to decline due to the immense greed and exploitation of the Roman court, which repelled both clergy and laity in every European kingdom. England itself, even though it was deep in ignorance and superstition, had seriously considered breaking free from papal control; and the Roman pope was forced to come up with new strategies to tighten his hold on the Christian world.

     * M. Paris, p. 509.

     ** M. Paris, p. 421.
     * M. Paris, p. 509.

     ** M. Paris, p. 421.

For this purpose, Gregory IX. published his decretals,[*] which are a collection of forgeries favorable to the court of Rome, and consist of the supposed decrees of popes in the first centuries. But these forgeries are so gross, and confound so palpably all language, history, chronology, and antiquities,—matters more stubborn than any speculative truths whatsoever,—that even that church, which is not startled at the most monstrous contradictions and absurdities, has been obliged to abandon them to the critics. But in the dark period of the thirteenth century, they parsed for undisputed and authentic; and men, entangled in the mazes of this false literature, joined to the philosophy, equally false, of the times, had nothing wherewithal to defend themselves, but some small remains of common sense, which passed for profaneness and impiety, and the indelible regard to self-interest, which, as it was the sole motive in the priests for framing these impostures, served also, in some degree, to protect the laity against them.

For this reason, Gregory IX published his decrees,[*] which are a collection of fakes that benefit the Roman court, and consist of supposed decrees from popes in the early centuries. However, these forgeries are so blatant and so clearly confuse language, history, chronology, and antiquities—things more rigid than any speculative truths—that even the church, which isn’t fazed by the most outrageous contradictions and absurdities, had to hand them over to critics. But during the dark time of the thirteenth century, they passed as undisputed and authentic; and people, caught up in the complexities of this false literature, combined with the equally false philosophy of the era, had nothing to defend themselves with except some remnants of common sense, which was considered blasphemy and impiety, and the undeniable focus on self-interest that, since it was the main motivation for the priests to create these deceptions, also somewhat shielded the laypeople from them.

     * Trivet, p. 191.
* Trivet, p. 191.

Another expedient, devised by the church of Rome, in this period, for securing her power, was the institution of new religious orders, chiefly the Dominicans and Franciscans, who proceeded with all the zeal and success that attend novelties; were better qualified to gain the populace than the old orders, now become rich and indolent; maintained a perpetual rivalship with each other in promoting their gainful superstitions; and acquired a great dominion over the minds, and consequently over the purses, of men, by pretending a desire of poverty and a contempt for riches. The quarrels which arose between these orders, lying still under the control of the sovereign pontiff, never disturbed the peace of the church, and served only as a spur to their industry in promoting the common cause; and though the Dominicans lost some popularity by their denial of the immaculate conception,—a point in which they unwarily engaged too far to be able to recede with honor,—they counterbalanced this disadvantage by acquiring more solid establishments, by gaining the confidence of kings and princes, and by exercising the jurisdiction assigned them of ultimate judges and punishers of heresy. Thus the several orders of monks became a kind of regular troops or garrisons of the Romish church; and though the temporal interests of society, still more the cause of true piety, were hurt, by their various devices to captivate the populace, they proved the chief supports of that mighty fabric of superstition, and, till the revival of true learning, secured it from any dangerous invasion.

Another strategy created by the Church of Rome during this time to maintain its power was the establishment of new religious orders, mainly the Dominicans and Franciscans. These groups approached their missions with all the enthusiasm and success typical of new initiatives; they were better at connecting with the public than the older orders, which had become wealthy and complacent. They were in constant competition with each other, trying to promote their own profitable superstitions, and they gained significant influence over people's minds and, by extension, their wallets, by pretending to seek poverty and showing disdain for wealth. The disputes that arose between these orders, while still under the authority of the pope, never disrupted the church's peace; instead, they motivated each group to work harder for their shared goals. Although the Dominicans lost some favor by rejecting the idea of the immaculate conception—a stance they took too far to backtrack from honorably—they made up for this setback by establishing more solid foundations, earning the trust of kings and princes, and exercising their role as ultimate judges and punishers of heresy. Consequently, the various orders of monks became like organized troops or garrisons for the Roman church. Despite the harm their various tactics did to the genuine interests of society and true piety, they became the main pillars of that vast structure of superstition, ensuring its protection from any serious threats until the revival of real learning.

The trial by ordeal was abolished in this reign by order of council; a faint mark of improvement in the age.[*]

The trial by ordeal was abolished during this reign by a council order; a slight sign of progress in the era.[*]

Henry granted a charter to the town of Newcastle, in which he gave the inhabitants a license to dig coal. This is the first mention of coal in England.

Henry granted a charter to the town of Newcastle, allowing the residents to mine coal. This is the first reference to coal in England.

We learn from Madox,[**] that this king gave at one time one hundred shillings to Master Henry, his poet; also the same year he orders this poet ten pounds.

We learn from Madox,[**] that this king once gave one hundred shillings to Master Henry, his poet; also that same year he ordered this poet to receive ten pounds.

It appears from Selden, that in the forty-seventh of this reign, a hundred and fifty temporal and fifty spiritual barons were summoned to perform the service, due by their tenures.[***] In the thirty-fifth of the subsequent reign, eighty-six temporal barons, twenty bishops, and forty-eight abbots, were summoned to a parliament convened at Carlisle.[****]

It seems from Selden that in the forty-seventh year of this reign, one hundred and fifty secular and fifty spiritual barons were called to fulfill the duties required by their tenures. In the thirty-fifth year of the next reign, eighty-six secular barons, twenty bishops, and forty-eight abbots were summoned to a parliament held in Carlisle.

     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 228. Spelman, p. 326.

     ** Page 208.

     *** Titles of Honor, part ii. chap. 3.

     **** Parliamentary Hist. vol. i. p. 151.
     * Rymer, vol. i. p. 228. Spelman, p. 326.

     ** Page 208.

     *** Titles of Honor, part ii. chap. 3.

     **** Parliamentary Hist. vol. i. p. 151.




CHAPTER XIII.

1_176_edward1.jpg Edward I.

EDWARD I.

1272.

1272.

The English were as yet so little inured to obedience under a regular government, that the death of almost every king, since the conquest, had been attended with disorders, and the council, reflecting on the recent civil wars, and on the animosities which naturally remain after these great convulsions, had reason to apprehend dangerous consequences from the absence of the son and successor of Henry. They therefore hastened to proclaim Prince Edward, to swear allegiance to him, and to summon the states of the kingdom, in order to provide for the public peace in this important conjuncture.[*]

The English were still not very accustomed to obeying a regular government, so the death of almost every king since the conquest had caused chaos. The council, thinking about the recent civil wars and the tensions that always follow such major upheavals, had good reason to worry about the dangerous consequences of Henry's son and successor being absent. They quickly moved to declare Prince Edward as king, swore loyalty to him, and called for the kingdom's states to meet in order to ensure public peace during this critical time.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 1 Walsing, p. 43. Trivet, p. 239.
* Rymer, vol. ii. p. 1 Walsing, p. 43. Trivet, p. 239.

Walter Giffard, archbishop of York, the earl of Cornwall, son of Richard, king of the Romans, and the earl of Glocester, were appointed guardians of the realm, and proceeded peaceably to the exercise of their authority, without either meeting with opposition from any of the people, or being disturbed with emulation and faction among themselves. The high character acquired by Edward during the late commotions, his military genius, his success in subduing the rebels, his moderation in settling the kingdom, had procured him great esteem, mixed with affection, among all orders of men; and no one could reasonably entertain hopes of making any advantage of his absence, or of raising disturbance in the nation. The earl of Glocester himself, whose great power and turbulent spirit had excited most jealousy, was forward to give proofs of his allegiance; and the other malecontents, being destitute of a leader, were obliged to remain in submission to the government.

Walter Giffard, archbishop of York, the earl of Cornwall, son of Richard, king of the Romans, and the earl of Glocester were appointed as guardians of the realm and smoothly began exercising their authority, facing no opposition from the people and without internal conflict among themselves. Edward had earned a strong reputation during the recent turmoil, with his military skill, success in defeating the rebels, and his fairness in stabilizing the kingdom, which gained him significant respect and affection from all social classes; no one could realistically expect to benefit from his absence or to incite unrest in the nation. The earl of Glocester himself, whose considerable power and rebellious nature had caused the most envy, was eager to demonstrate his loyalty; and the other discontented individuals, lacking a leader, had no choice but to remain compliant with the government.

Prince Edward had reached Sicily in his return from the Holy Land, when he received intelligence of the death of his father; and he discovered a deep concern on the occasion. At the same time, he learned the death of an infant son, John whom his princess, Eleanor of Castile, had born him at Acre, in Palestine; and as he appeared much less affected with that misfortune, the king of Sicily expressed a surprise at this difference of sentiment; but was told by Edward, that the death of a son was a loss which he might hope to repair; the death of a father was a loss irreparable.[*]

Prince Edward had arrived in Sicily on his way back from the Holy Land when he heard about his father's death, and he showed great sorrow over it. At the same time, he found out that his infant son, John, born to his princess, Eleanor of Castile, in Acre, Palestine, had also died; and since he seemed much less affected by this tragedy, the king of Sicily was surprised by this difference in his feelings. Edward explained that losing a son was a grief he might be able to overcome; losing a father was an irreplaceable loss.[*]

Edward proceeded homeward; but as he soon learned the quiet settlement of the kingdom, he was in no hurry to take possession of the throne, but spent near a year in France, before he made his appearance in England.

Edward headed home, but after realizing how peaceful the kingdom was, he wasn't in a rush to take the throne. Instead, he spent almost a year in France before showing up in England.

1273.

1273.

In his passage by Chalons, in Burgundy, he was challenged by the prince of the country to a tournament which he was preparing; and as Edward excelled in those martial and dangerous exercises, the true image of war, he declined not the opportunity of acquiring honor in that great assembly of the neighboring nobles. But the image of war was here unfortunately turned into the thing itself. Edward and his retinue were so successful in the jousts, that the French knights, provoked at their superiority, made a serious attack upon them, which was repulsed, and much blood was idly shed in the quarrel.[**] This rencounter received the name of the petty battle of Chalons.

During his visit to Chalons in Burgundy, he was challenged by the local prince to a tournament he was organizing, and since Edward was skilled in those combat and risky events, truly emblematic of war, he did not pass up the chance to earn honor in front of the gathered nobles from the area. Unfortunately, the emblem of war turned into the real thing here. Edward and his group were so successful in the jousts that the French knights, annoyed by their dominance, launched a serious attack on them, which was fended off, resulting in a lot of unnecessary bloodshed in the conflict. This encounter became known as the minor battle of Chalons.

1274.

1274.

Edward went from Chalons to Paris, and did homage to Philip for the dominions which he held in France.[***] He thence returned to Guienne, and settled that province, which was in some confusion. He made his journey to London through France; in his passage, he accommodated at Montreuil a difference with Margaret, countess of Flanders, heiress of that territory;[****] he was received with joyful acclamations by his people, and was solemnly crowned at Westminster by Robert, archbishop of Canterbury.

Edward traveled from Chalons to Paris and paid homage to Philip for the lands he owned in France.[***] He then returned to Guienne and sorted out the issues in that province. He made his way to London through France; during his trip, he settled a dispute with Margaret, the countess of Flanders and heiress of that territory, in Montreuil;[****] he was welcomed with cheers by his people and was officially crowned at Westminster by Robert, the archbishop of Canterbury.

     * Walsing. p. 44. Trivet. p. 240.

     ** Walsing. p. 44. Trivet. p. 241. M. West. p. 402.

     *** Walsing p. 45.

     **** Rymer. vol. ii. p. 32, 33.
     * Walsing. p. 44. Trivet. p. 240.

     ** Walsing. p. 44. Trivet. p. 241. M. West. p. 402.

     *** Walsing p. 45.

     **** Rymer. vol. ii. p. 32, 33.

The king immediately applied himself to the reestablishment of his kingdom, and to the correcting of those disorders which the civil commotions and the loose administration of his father had introduced into every part of government. The plan of his policy was equally generous and prudent. He considered the great barons both as the immediate rivals of the crown and oppressors of the people; and he purposed, by an exact distribution of justice, and a rigid execution of the laws, to give at once protection to the inferior orders of the state, and to diminish the arbitrary power of the great, on which their dangerous authority was chiefly founded. Making it a rule in his own conduct to observe, except on extraordinary occasions, the privileges secured to them by the Great Charter, he acquired a right to insist upon their observance of the same charter towards their vassals and inferiors; and he made the crown be regarded by all the gentry and commonalty of the kingdom, as the fountain of justice, and the general asylum against oppression.

The king quickly focused on restoring his kingdom and fixing the issues that the civil unrest and his father's poor rule had caused throughout the government. His policy was both generous and wise. He viewed the powerful barons as both direct challengers to the crown and oppressors of the people. His goal was to ensure fair justice and strictly enforce the laws to protect the lower classes and reduce the arbitrary power of the elite, which was the basis of their dangerous influence. He made it a rule to respect the privileges granted to them by the Great Charter, except in extraordinary situations, which gave him the authority to demand they do the same for their vassals and those beneath them. He made the crown recognized by all the nobility and common people of the kingdom as the source of justice and a safe haven against oppression.

1275.

1275.

Besides enacting several useful statutes, in a parliament which he summoned at Westminster, he took care to inspect the conduct of all his magistrates and judges, to displace such as were either negligent or corrupt, to provide them with sufficient force for the execution of justice, to extirpate all bands and confederacies of robbers, and to repress those more silent robberies which were committed either by the power of the nobles or under the countenance of public authority. By this rigid administration, the face of the kingdom was soon changed; and order and justice took place of violence and oppression: but amidst the excellent institutions and public-spirited plans of Edward, there still appears somewhat both of the severity of his personal character and of the prejudices of the times.

Besides passing several useful laws during a parliament he called at Westminster, he made sure to review the actions of all his magistrates and judges, replacing those who were either careless or corrupt. He ensured they had enough power to enforce justice, aimed to eliminate all groups and alliances of robbers, and worked to curb those quieter thefts committed either by the nobility or with the backing of public authority. Through this strict governance, the kingdom quickly transformed; order and justice replaced violence and oppression. However, alongside Edward's impressive reforms and public-minded initiatives, traces of his strict personal nature and the biases of the era are still evident.

As the various kinds of malefactors, the murderers, robbers, incendiaries, ravishers, and plunderers, had become so numerous and powerful, that the ordinary ministers of justice, especially in the western counties, were afraid to execute the laws against them, the king found it necessary to provide an extraordinary remedy for the evil; and he erected a new tribunal, which, however useful, would have been deemed in times of more regular liberty, a great stretch of illegal and arbitrary power. It consisted of commissioners, who were empowered to inquire into disorders and crimes of all kinds, and to inflict the proper punishments upon them. The officers charged with this unusual commission, made their circuits throughout the counties of England most infested with this evil, and carried terror into all those parts of the kingdom. In their zeal to punish crimes, they did not sufficiently distinguish between the innocent and guilty; the smallest suspicion became a ground of accusation and trial; the slightest evidence was received against criminals; prisons were crowded with malefactors, real or pretended; severe fines were levied for small offences; and the king, though his exhausted exchequer was supplied by this expedient, found it necessary to stop the course of so great rigor, and after terrifying and dissipating by this tribunal the gangs of disorderly people in England, he prudently annulled the commission;[*] and never afterwards renewed it.

As the various types of criminals like murderers, robbers, arsonists, rapists, and looters had become so numerous and powerful that the regular law enforcement, especially in the western counties, were afraid to enforce the laws against them, the king found it necessary to provide an extraordinary solution to the problem. He established a new tribunal, which, although useful, would have been seen in times of greater freedom as a significant expansion of illegal and arbitrary power. It was made up of commissioners who were authorized to investigate all kinds of disorder and crime and to impose appropriate punishments. The officers assigned to this unusual task traveled through the counties of England most affected by this problem, spreading fear throughout those areas of the kingdom. In their eagerness to punish crimes, they often blurred the lines between the innocent and the guilty; even the slightest suspicion could lead to accusations and trials; minimal evidence was accepted against alleged criminals; prisons were filled with offenders, whether real or imagined; hefty fines were imposed for minor offenses; and the king, although this approach helped to replenish his depleted treasury, found it necessary to put an end to such harsh measures. After scaring off and dispersing the gangs of troublemakers in England, he wisely disbanded the commission and never reinstated it.

Among the various disorders to which the kingdom was subject, no one was more universally complained of than the adulteration of the coin; and as this crime required more art than the English of that age, who chiefly employed force and violence in their iniquities, were possessed of, the imputation fell upon the Jews.[**] Edward also seems to have indulged a strong prepossession against that nation; and this ill-judged zeal for Christianity being naturally augmented by an expedition to the Holy Land, he let loose the whole rigor of his justice against that unhappy people. Two hundred and eighty of them were hanged at once for this crime in London alone, besides those who suffered in other parts of the kingdom.[***]

Among the various problems facing the kingdom, none was more widely complained about than the counterfeiting of coins. Since this crime required more skill than the English of that time—who mostly relied on force and violence for their wrongdoings—blame was placed on the Jews.[**] Edward also seemed to hold a strong bias against that group; his misguided zeal for Christianity, further intensified by a campaign to the Holy Land, led him to unleash the full force of his justice against these unfortunate people. Two hundred and eighty of them were executed at once for this crime in London alone, not counting those who suffered in other parts of the kingdom.[***]

     * Spel. Gloss, in verbo Trailbaston. But Spelman was either
     mistaken in placing this commission in the fifth year of the
     king, or it was renewed in 1305. See Rymer, vol. ii. p. 960.
     Trivet, p. 838., M. West. p. 450.

     ** Walsing. p. 48 Heming. vol. i. p. 6.

     *** T. Wykes, p. 107.
     * Spel. Gloss, in the word Trailbaston. But Spelman was either wrong to place this commission in the fifth year of the king, or it was renewed in 1305. See Rymer, vol. ii. p. 960. Trivet, p. 838, M. West. p. 450.

     ** Walsing. p. 48 Heming. vol. i. p. 6.

     *** T. Wykes, p. 107.

The houses and lands, (for the Jews had of late ventured to make purchases of that kind,) as well as the goods of great multitudes, were sold and confiscated; and the king, lest it should be suspected that the riches of the sufferers were the chief part of their guilt, ordered a moiety of the money raised by these confiscations to be set apart, and bestowed upon such as were willing to be converted to Christianity. But resentment was more prevalent with them than any temptation from their poverty; and very few of them could be induced by interest to embrace the religion of their persecutors. The miseries of this people did not here terminate. Though the arbitrary talliages and exactions levied upon them had yielded a constant and a considerable revenue to the crown, Edward prompted by his zeal and his rapacity, resolved some time after[*] to purge the kingdom entirely of that hated race, and to seize to himself at once their whole property as the reward of his labor.[**] He left them only money sufficient to bear their charges into foreign countries, where new persecutions and extortions awaited them: but the inhabitants of the cinque ports, imitating the bigotry and avidity of their sovereign, despoiled most of them of this small pittance, and even threw many of them into the sea; a crime for which the king, who was determined to be the sole plunderer in his dominions, inflicted a capital punishment upon them. No less than fifteen thousand Jews were at this time robbed of their effects, and banished the kingdom: very few of that nation have since lived in England: and as it is impossible for a nation to subsist without lenders of money, and none will lend without a compensation, the practice of usury, as it was then called, was thenceforth exercised by the English themselves upon their fellow-citizens, or by Lombards and other foreigners. It is very much to be questioned, whether the dealings of these new usurers were equally open and unexceptionable with those of the old. By a law of Richard, it was enacted, that three copies should be made of every bond given to a Jew; one to be put into the hands of a public magistrate, another into those of a man of credit, and a third to remain with the Jew himself.[***] But as the canon law, seconded by the municipal, permitted no Christian to take interest, all transactions of this kind must, after the banishment of the Jews, have become more secret and clandestine, and the lender, of consequence, be paid both for the use of his money, and for the infamy and danger which he incurred by lending it.

The houses and lands, (since the Jews had recently started making such purchases,) along with the property of countless individuals, were sold and seized; and the king, worried that it might seem the wealth of the victims was the main reason for their guilt, ordered that half of the money raised from these confiscations be set aside and given to those willing to convert to Christianity. However, resentment was stronger among them than the temptation from their poverty, and very few could be persuaded by financial gain to adopt the religion of their oppressors. The suffering of this people didn’t stop here. Although the arbitrary taxes and demands imposed on them had provided a steady and significant income to the crown, Edward, driven by his zeal and greed, later decided to completely eliminate that despised group from the kingdom and seize all their property as his reward. He left them just enough money to cover their travel costs to foreign lands, where new persecutions and extortions awaited them: but the people of the cinque ports, mirroring the intolerance and greed of their king, robbed most of them of this small amount and even threw many into the sea; a crime for which the king, determined to be the only plunderer in his realms, punished them with death. At this time, no less than fifteen thousand Jews were robbed of their belongings and expelled from the kingdom: very few from that community have since lived in England: and since it’s impossible for a nation to function without lenders of money, and nobody lends without compensation, the practice of usury, as it was then called, was subsequently carried out by the English themselves on their fellow citizens or by Lombards and other foreigners. It’s questionable whether the dealings of these new moneylenders were as open and aboveboard as those of the old. A law enacted by Richard stated that three copies should be made of every bond given to a Jew; one to be given to a public official, another to a trustworthy individual, and a third to be kept by the Jew himself. However, since canon law, backed by municipal law, prohibited any Christian from charging interest, all transactions of this nature must have become more secretive and hidden after the expulsion of the Jews, and consequently, the lender would need to be compensated both for the use of his money and for the shame and risk he faced by lending it.

     * In the year 1290.

     ** Walsing. p. 54. Heming. vol. i. p. 20. Trivet, p 266.

     *** Trivet, p. 128.
     * In the year 1290.

     ** Walsing. p. 54. Heming. vol. i. p. 20. Trivet, p 266.

     *** Trivet, p. 128.

The great poverty of the crown, though no excuse, was probably the cause of this egregious tyranny exercised against the Jews; but Edward also practised other more honorable means of remedying that evil. He employed a strict frugality in the management and distribution of his revenue: he engaged the parliament to vote him a fifteenth of all movables; the pope to grant him the tenth of all ecclesiastical revenues for three years; and the merchants to consent to a perpetual imposition of half a mark on every sack of wool exported, and a mark on three hundred skins. He also issued commissions to inquire into all encroachments on the royal demesne; into the value of escheats, forfeitures, and Wardships; and into the means of repairing or improving every branch of the revenue.[*] The commissioners, in the execution of their office, began to carry matters too far against the nobility, and to question titles to estates which had been transmitted from father to son for several generations. Earl Warrenne, who had done such eminent service in the late reign, being required to show his titles, drew his sword; and subjoined, that William the bastard had not conquered the kingdom for himself alone: his ancestor was a joint adventurer in the enterprise; and he himself was determined to maintain what had from that period remained unquestioned in his family. The king, sensible of the danger, desisted from making further inquiries of this nature.

The significant lack of money in the crown, while not an excuse, likely led to the harsh treatment of the Jews. However, Edward also used more honorable ways to address this issue. He managed his income with strict frugality and got parliament to approve a tax of a fifteenth on all movable property. He persuaded the pope to grant him a tenth of all church revenues for three years, and he secured an agreement from merchants for a permanent tax of half a mark on every sack of exported wool and a mark on every three hundred skins. He also issued commissions to investigate any encroachments on the royal estate, the value of escheats, forfeitures, and wardships, and ways to repair or improve every part of the revenue.[*] However, the commissioners, in carrying out their duties, began to push too hard against the nobility, questioning ownership of estates that had been passed down for generations. Earl Warrenne, who had provided significant service in the previous reign, was asked to prove his titles and drew his sword, declaring that William the Conqueror didn’t take the kingdom for himself alone; his ancestor was a co-adventurer in that endeavor, and he was determined to uphold what had remained unchallenged in his family since then. The king, aware of the potential danger, stopped further inquiries of this sort.

1276.

1276.

But the active spirit of Edward could not long remain without employment. He soon after undertook an enterprise more prudent for himself, and more advantageous to his people. Lewellyn, prince of Wales, had been deeply engaged with the Mountfort faction; had entered into all their conspiracies against the crown; had frequently fought on their side; and, till the battle of Evesham, so fatal to that party, had employed every expedient to depress the royal cause, and to promote the success of the barons. In the general accommodation made with the vanquished, Lewellyn had also obtained his pardon; but as he was the most powerful, and therefore the most obnoxious vassal of the crown, he had reason to entertain anxiety about his situation, and to dread the future effects of resentment and jealousy in the English monarch. For this reason he determined to provide for his security by maintaining a secret correspondence with his former associates; and he even made his addresses to a daughter of the earl of Leicester, who was sent to him from beyond sea, but being intercepted in her passage near the Isles of Scilly, was detained in the court of England.[**]

But Edward's restless spirit couldn't stay idle for long. He soon took on a more sensible mission for himself and one that would benefit his people. Lewellyn, the prince of Wales, had been heavily involved with the Mountfort faction; he had participated in all their plots against the crown, often fighting on their side. Until the battle of Evesham, which was disastrous for that group, he had tried every tactic to undermine the royal cause and help the barons succeed. In the overall settlement made with the defeated, Lewellyn received a pardon as well; however, since he was the most powerful and thus the most undesirable vassal of the crown, he had reasons to be anxious about his position and to fear the future consequences of resentment and jealousy from the English monarch. For this reason, he decided to ensure his safety by keeping a secret connection with his former allies. He even sought to court a daughter of the earl of Leicester, who was sent to him from overseas, but she was intercepted on her way near the Isles of Scilly and ended up being held in the English court.[**]

     * Ann. Waverl.p. 235.

     ** Walsing. p. 46, 47. Heming. vol. i. p. 5. Trivet, p. 248
     * Ann. Waverl.p. 235.

     ** Walsing. p. 46, 47. Heming. vol. i. p. 5. Trivet, p. 248

This incident increasing the mutual jealousy between Edward and Lewellyn, the latter, when required to come to England, and do homage to the new king, scrupled to put himself in the hands of an enemy, desired a safe-conduct from Edward, insisted upon having the king’s son and other noblemen delivered to him as hostages, and demanded that his consort should previously be set at liberty.[*] The king, having now brought the state to a full settlement, was not displeased with this occasion of exercising his authority, and subduing entirely the principality of Wales. He refused all Lewellyn’s demands, except that of a safe-conduct; sent him repeated summons to perform the duty of a vassal; levied an army to reduce him to obedience; obtained a new aid of a fifteenth from parliament; and marched out with certain assurance of success against the enemy.

This situation escalated the rivalry between Edward and Lewellyn. When Lewellyn was called to England to pledge loyalty to the new king, he hesitated to put himself in the hands of an enemy. He requested a safe passage from Edward, insisted that the king’s son and other noblemen be given to him as hostages, and demanded that his wife be released first. The king, having stabilized the state, welcomed the chance to assert his authority and completely conquer Wales. He denied all of Lewellyn’s demands except for the safe passage, sent him repeated orders to fulfill his duties as a vassal, raised an army to enforce compliance, secured a new tax from parliament, and marched out with a strong belief in his success against the enemy.

1277.

1277.

Besides the great disproportion of force between the kingdom and the principality, the circumstances of the two states were entirely reversed; and the same intestine dissensions which had formerly weakened England, now prevailed in Wales, and had even taken place in the reigning family. David and Roderic, brothers to Lewellyn, dispossessed of their inheritance by that prince, had been obliged to have recourse to the protection of Edward, and they seconded with all their interest, which was extensive, his attempts to enslave their native country. The Welsh prince had no resource but in the inaccessible situation of his mountains, which had hitherto, through many ages, defended his forefathers against all attempts of the Saxon and Norman conquerors; and he retired among the hills of Snowdun, resolute to defend himself to the last extremity. But Edward, equally vigorous and cautious, entering by the north with a formidable army, pierced into the heart of the country; and having carefully explored every road before him, and secured every pass behind him, approached the Welsh army in its last retreat. He here avoided the putting to trial the valor of a nation proud of its ancient independence, and inflamed with animosity against its hereditary enemies; and he trusted to the slow, but sure effects of famine, for reducing that people to subjection. The rude and simple manners of the natives, as well as the mountainous situation of their country, had made them entirely neglect tillage, and trust to pasturage alone for their subsistence; a method of life which had hitherto[*] secured them against the irregular attempts of the English, out exposed them to certain ruin, when the conquest of the country was steadily pursued, and prudently planned by Edward. Destitute of magazines, cooped up in a narrow corner, they, as well as their cattle, suffered all the rigors of famine; and Lewellyn, without being able to strike a stroke for his independence, was at last obliged to submit at discretion, and receive the terms imposed upon him by the victor.[**] He bound himself to pay to Edward fifty thousand pounds, as a reparation of damages; to do homage to the crown of England; to permit all the other barons of Wales, except four near Snowdun, to swear fealty to the same crown; to relinquish the country between Cheshire and the River Conway; to settle on his brother Roderic a thousand marks a year, and on David five hundred; and to deliver ten hostages as security for his future submission.[***]

Besides the huge imbalance of power between the kingdom and the principality, the situations of the two states were entirely reversed. The same internal conflicts that had once weakened England were now present in Wales, including among the ruling family. David and Roderic, brothers of Lewellyn, who had been stripped of their inheritance by that prince, had to seek Edward's protection and used their considerable influence to support his efforts to dominate their homeland. The Welsh prince found his only refuge in the remote terrain of his mountains, which had historically protected his ancestors from Saxon and Norman conquerors. He retreated to the hills of Snowdun, determined to fight to the last. However, Edward, equally determined and cautious, advanced from the north with a powerful army, penetrating deep into the heart of the country. He carefully scouted every road ahead and secured every escape route behind him, closing in on the Welsh army in its final retreat. Here, he avoided testing the pride of a nation that cherished its ancient independence and was fueled by resentment against its hereditary enemies; instead, he relied on the slow but certain effects of famine to force that people into submission. The rough and simple way of life of the locals, along with the mountainous landscape of their country, had led them to abandon farming and depend solely on pasturing for survival. This lifestyle had previously protected them from the sporadic attacks of the English, but it now left them vulnerable to total ruin as Edward’s conquest was pursued steadily and strategically. Lacking supplies and trapped in a confined area, both they and their livestock endured the harshness of famine. Lewellyn, unable to fight for his independence, ultimately had to surrender unconditionally and accept the terms imposed by the victor. He agreed to pay Edward fifty thousand pounds as compensation for damages; to show fealty to the crown of England; to allow all other Welsh barons, except four near Snowdun, to pledge allegiance to the same crown; to give up the land between Cheshire and the River Conway; to grant his brother Roderic a thousand marks a year and David five hundred; and to deliver ten hostages as assurance of his future submission.

Edward, on the performance of the other articles, remitted to the prince of Wales the payment of the fifty thousand pounds;[****] which were stipulated by treaty, and which, it is probable, the poverty of the country made it absolutely impossible for him to levy. But, notwithstanding this indulgence, complaints of iniquities soon arose on the side of the vanquished: the English, insolent on their easy and bloodless victory, oppressed the inhabitants of the districts which were yielded to them: the lords marchers committed with impunity all kinds of violence on their Welsh neighbors: new and more severe terms were imposed on Lewellyn himself; and Edward, when the prince attended him at Worcester, exacted a promise that he would retain no person in his principality who should be obnoxious to the English monarch.[****]

Edward, based on the performance of the other agreements, sent the payment of fifty thousand pounds to the Prince of Wales, as promised in the treaty. Given the country's poverty, it likely was impossible for him to collect this amount. However, despite this leniency, complaints about injustices quickly emerged from the defeated side: the English, arrogant from their easy and bloodless victory, oppressed the residents of the areas they had taken over. The border lords committed all kinds of violence against their Welsh neighbors without fear of consequences. New and harsher conditions were placed on Lewellyn himself, and when the prince met with Edward in Worcester, he was forced to promise that he would not keep anyone in his principality who would be disliked by the English king.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 68. Walsing, p. 46 Trivet, p. 247

     ** T. Wykes, p. 105.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 88. Walsing. p. 47. Trivet, p. 251.
     T. Wykes p. 106.

     **** Rymer, p. 92.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 68. Walsing, p. 46 Trivet, p. 247

     ** T. Wykes, p. 105.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 88. Walsing. p. 47. Trivet, p. 251.
     T. Wykes p. 106.

     **** Rymer, p. 92.

There were other personal insults which raised the indignation of the Welsh, and made them determine rather to encounter a force which they had already experienced to be so much superior, than to bear oppression from the haughty victors. Prince David, seized with the national spirit, made peace with his brother, and promised to concur in the defence of public liberty. The Welsh flew to arms; and Edward, not displeased with the occasion of making his conquest final and absolute, assembled all his military tenants, and advanced into Wales with an army which the inhabitants could not reasonably hope to resist. The situation of the country gave the Welsh at first some advantage over Luke de Tany, one of Edward’s captains, who had passed the Menau with a detachment;[*] but Lewelly, being surprised by Mortimer, was defeated and slain in an action, and two thousand of his followers were put to the sword.[**] David, who succeeded him in the principality, could never collect an army sufficient to face the English; and being chased from hill to hill, and hunted from one retreat to another, was obliged to conceal himself under various disguises, and was at last betrayed in his lurking-place to the enemy.

There were other personal insults that angered the Welsh, prompting them to choose to face a force they already knew was far stronger rather than suffer oppression from the arrogant victors. Prince David, filled with national pride, made peace with his brother and vowed to join the fight for public freedom. The Welsh took up arms, and Edward, eager for the chance to solidify his conquest, gathered all his military followers and marched into Wales with an army that the locals couldn't realistically hope to resist. The landscape initially gave the Welsh some advantage over Luke de Tany, one of Edward’s captains, who had crossed the Menai Strait with a small unit;[*] however, Lewelly was caught off guard by Mortimer, defeated, and killed in battle, along with two thousand of his men.[**] David, who took over the principality after him, could never gather enough troops to confront the English. Constantly chased from hill to hill and hunted from one hiding place to another, he was forced to hide in various disguises and was ultimately betrayed in his hiding spot to the enemy.

1283.

1283.

Edward sent him in chains to Shrewsbury; and bringing him to a formal trial before all the peers of England, ordered this sovereign prince to be hanged, drawn, and quartered, as a traitor, for defending by arms the liberties of his native country, together with his own hereditary authority.[***] All the Welsh nobility submitted to the conqueror; the laws of England, with the sheriffs and other ministers of justice, were established in that principality; and though it was long before national antipathies were extinguished, and a thorough union attained between the people, yet this important conquest, which it had required eight hundred years fully to effect, was at last, through the abilities of Edward, completed by the English.

Edward sent him in chains to Shrewsbury; and after bringing him to a formal trial before all the peers of England, he ordered this sovereign prince to be hanged, drawn, and quartered as a traitor for defending the liberties of his homeland and his own hereditary authority. [***] All the Welsh nobility submitted to the conqueror; the laws of England, along with the sheriffs and other ministers of justice, were established in that principality. Although it took a long time for national hostilities to fade and for a true union between the people to occur, this significant conquest, which had taken eight hundred years to achieve fully, was finally completed by the English through Edward's abilities.

1284

1284

The king, sensible that nothing kept alive the ideas of military valor and of ancient glory so much as the traditional poetry of the people, which, assisted by the power of music and the jollity of festivals, made deep impression on the minds of the youth, gathered together all the Welsh bards, and from a barbarous, though not absurd policy, ordered them to be put to death.[****]

The king, aware that nothing fosters the ideals of military bravery and historic glory as much as the traditional poetry of the people, which, supported by the power of music and the joy of festivals, strongly impacts the minds of the youth, gathered all the Welsh bards and, in a harsh but not irrational policy, ordered them to be executed.[****]

     * Walsing. p. 50. Heming. vol. i p. 9. Trivet, p. 258. T
     Wykes, p. 110.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 11. Trivet, p. 257. Ann. Waverl. p.
     235.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 12. Trivet, p. 269. Ann Waverl. p.
     288 T Wykes, p. 111. M. West. p. 411.

     **** Sir J. Wynne, p. 15. crown; and henceforth gives a
     title to the eldest son of the kings of England.
     * Walsing. p. 50. Heming. vol. i p. 9. Trivet, p. 258. T Wykes, p. 110.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 11. Trivet, p. 257. Ann. Waverl. p. 235.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 12. Trivet, p. 269. Ann Waverl. p. 288 T Wykes, p. 111. M. West. p. 411.

     **** Sir J. Wynne, p. 15. crown; and from now on this gives a title to the eldest son of the kings of England.

There prevails a vulgar story, which, as it well suits the capacity of the monkish writers, is carefully recorded by them; that Edward, assembling the Welsh, promised to give them a prince of unexceptionable manners, a Welshman by birth, and one who could speak no other language. On their acclamations of joy, and promise of obedience, he invested in the principality his second son, Edward, then an infant, who had been born at Carnarvon. The death of his eldest son Alphonso, soon after, made young Edward heir of the monarchy; the principality of Wales was fully annexed.

There’s a popular story that fits the style of the monkish writers, and they’ve recorded it carefully: Edward, gathering the Welsh, promised to give them a prince with excellent character, a Welshman by birth who spoke no other language. When they cheered in delight and promised loyalty, he made his second son, Edward—who was just a baby born in Carnarvon—the prince. Shortly after, the death of his eldest son Alphonso made the young Edward the heir to the throne, and the principality of Wales was completely annexed.

1_178_carnaryon.jpg Carnarvon Castle

1286.

1286.

The settlement of Wales appeared so complete to Edward, that in less than two years after, he went abroad, in order to make peace between Alphonso, king of Arragon, and Philip the Fair, who had lately succeeded his father, Philip the Hardy, on the throne of France.[*] The difference between these two princes had arisen about the kingdom of Sicily, which the pope, after his hopes from England failed him, had bestowed on Charles, brother to St. Lewis, and which was claimed upon other titles by Peter, king of Arragon, father to Alphonso. Edward had powers from both princes to settle the terms of peace, and he succeeded in his endeavors; but as the controversy nowise regards England, we shall not enter into a detail of it. He staid abroad above three years; and on his return found many disorders to have prevailed, both from open violence and from the corruption of justice.

The settlement of Wales seemed so complete to Edward that less than two years later, he went abroad to broker peace between Alphonso, king of Aragon, and Philip the Fair, who had recently taken over the throne of France from his father, Philip the Hardy.[*] The conflict between these two kings was about the kingdom of Sicily, which the pope had given to Charles, brother of St. Louis, after his hopes for support from England fell through, and which Peter, king of Aragon, Alphonso’s father, claimed based on other titles. Edward had the authority from both kings to negotiate the terms of peace, and he was successful in doing so; however, since the dispute didn't involve England, we won't go into the details. He stayed abroad for over three years, and upon his return, he found that many issues had arisen, due both to open violence and the corruption of justice.

Thomas Chamberlain, a gentleman of some note, had assembled several of his associates at Boston, in Lincolnshire, under pretence of holding a tournament, an exercise practised by the gentry only; but in reality with a view of plundering the rich fair of Boston, and robbing the merchants. To facilitate his purpose, he privately set fire to the town; and while the inhabitants were employed in quenching the flames, the conspirators broke into the booths, and carried off the goods. Chamberlain himself was detected and hanged; but maintained so steadily the point of honor to his accomplices, that he could not be prevailed on, by offers or promises, to discover any of them. Many other instances of robbery and violence broke out in all parts of England; though the singular circumstances attending this conspiracy have made it alone be particularly recorded by historians.[**]

Thomas Chamberlain, a notable gentleman, had gathered several of his associates in Boston, Lincolnshire, under the guise of hosting a tournament, an event reserved for the gentry. However, his true intention was to rob the wealthy fair of Boston and steal from the merchants. To achieve this, he secretly set the town on fire; while the residents were busy trying to put out the flames, the conspirators raided the booths and took the merchandise. Chamberlain himself was caught and hanged, but he held firm to his loyalty to his accomplices, refusing to name any of them despite offers and promises. Numerous other incidents of robbery and violence erupted throughout England, but the unique details surrounding this conspiracy have led it to be specifically noted by historians.[**]

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 149,150, 174.

     ** Heming vol. i. p. 16, 17.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 149,150, 174.

     ** Heming vol. i. p. 16, 17.

1289.

1289.

But the corruption of the judges, by which the fountains of justice were poisoned, seemed of still more dangerous consequence. Edward, in order to remedy this prevailing abuse, summoned a parliament, and brought the judges to a trial; where all of them, except two, who were clergymen, were convicted of this flagrant iniquity, were fined, and deposed. The amount of the fines levied upon them is alone a sufficient proof of their guilt; being above one hundred thousand marks, an immense sum in those days, and sufficient to defray the charges of an expensive war between two great kingdoms. The king afterwards made all the new judges swear that they would take no bribes; but his expedient of deposing and fining the old ones, was the more effectual remedy.

But the corruption of the judges, which poisoned the sources of justice, seemed to have even more serious consequences. To address this widespread issue, Edward called a parliament and put the judges on trial; all of them, except for two who were clergymen, were found guilty of this blatant wrongdoing, fined, and removed from their positions. The total amount of the fines imposed on them is clear evidence of their guilt, exceeding one hundred thousand marks, a huge sum at the time, enough to cover the costs of a costly war between two major kingdoms. The king later required all the new judges to swear they would not accept bribes, but his method of removing and fining the old ones proved to be the more effective solution.

We now come to give an account of the state of affairs in Scotland, which gave rise to the most interesting transactions of this reign, and of some of the subsequent; though the intercourse of that kingdom with England, either in peace or war, had hitherto produced so few events of moment, that, to avoid tediousness, we have omitted many of them, and have been very concise in relating the rest. If the Scots had, before this period, any real history worthy of the name, except what they glean from scattered passages in the English historians, those events, however minute, yet being the only foreign transactions of the nation, might deserve a place in it.

We’re now going to discuss the situation in Scotland, which led to the most interesting events of this reign and some of the following ones. Although the interactions between Scotland and England, whether in peace or war, had produced very few significant events until now, we've chosen to skip over many of them to keep things concise, sharing only the most important details. If the Scots had any true history worth mentioning before this time, apart from what they gather from bits and pieces in English histories, those events, no matter how minor, would still deserve a spot in it.

Though the government of Scotland had been continually exposed to those factions and convulsions which are incident to all barbarous and to many civilized nations; and though the successions of their kings, the only part of their history which deserves any credit had often been disordered by irregularities and usurpations; the true heir of the royal family had still in the end prevailed, and Alexander III., who had espoused the sister of Edward, probably inherited, after a period of about eight hundred years, and through a succession of males, the sceptre of all the Scottish princes who had governed the nation since its first establishment in the island. This prince died in 1286, by a fall from his horse at Kinghorn,[*] without leaving any male issue, and without any descendant, except Margaret, born of Eric, king of Norway, and of Margaret, daughter of the Scottish monarch. This princess, commonly called the Maid of Norway, though a female, and an infant, and a foreigner, yet being the lawful heir of the kingdom, had, through her grandfather’s care, been recognized successor by the states of Scotland;[**] and on Alexander’s death, the dispositions which had been previously made against that event, appeared so just and prudent, that no disorders, as might naturally be apprehended, ensued in the kingdom.

Although the Scottish government had faced ongoing conflicts and turmoil typical of both barbaric and many civilized nations; and although the successions of their kings—the only credible part of their history—had frequently been disrupted by irregularities and usurpations, the rightful heir of the royal family ultimately triumphed. Alexander III, who married the sister of Edward, probably inherited, after around eight hundred years and through a line of male heirs, the rule of all the Scottish kings who had governed the nation since its founding on the island. This king died in 1286 from a fall off his horse at Kinghorn,[*] without leaving any male heirs and only one descendant, Margaret, who was the child of Eric, the king of Norway, and Margaret, the daughter of the Scottish monarch. This princess, often referred to as the Maid of Norway, despite being a girl, an infant, and a foreigner, was the legal heir to the kingdom. Thanks to her grandfather’s efforts, she had been recognized as the successor by the Scottish states;[**] and following Alexander’s death, the arrangements that had been made in anticipation of that event proved so fair and wise that no disturbances, which could have been expected, occurred in the kingdom.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 29. Trivet, p. 267.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 266.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 29. Trivet, p. 267.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 266.

Margaret was acknowledged queen of Scotland; five guardians, the bishops of St. Andrews and Glasgow, the earls of Fife and Buchan, and James, steward of Scotland, entered peaceably upon the administration; and the infant princess, under the protection of Edward, her great uncle, and Eric, her father, who exerted themselves on this occasion, seemed firmly seated on the throne of Scotland. The English monarch was naturally led to build mighty projects on this incident; and having lately, by force of arms, brought Wales under subjection, he attempted, by the marriage of Margaret with his eldest son, Edward, to unite the whole island into one monarchy, and thereby to give it security both against domestic convulsions and foreign invasions.

Margaret was recognized as the queen of Scotland. Five guardians—the bishops of St. Andrews and Glasgow, the earls of Fife and Buchan, and James, the steward of Scotland—took on the administration peacefully. The young princess, under the protection of her great-uncle Edward and her father Eric, who both worked hard to support her, seemed securely positioned on the throne of Scotland. The English king, seeing this development, was naturally inspired to pursue grand plans. Having recently conquered Wales through military force, he sought to marry Margaret to his eldest son, Edward, aiming to unify the entire island under a single monarchy and thereby ensure stability against internal upheaval and external threats.

1290.

1290.

The amity which had of late prevailed between the two nations, and which, even in former times, had never been interrupted by any violent wars or injuries, facilitated extremely the execution of this project, so favorable to the happiness and grandeur of both kingdoms; and the states of Scotland readily gave their assent to the English proposals, and even agreed that their young sovereign should be educated in the court of Edward. Anxious, however, for the liberty and independency of their country, they took care to stipulate very equitable conditions, ere they intrusted themselves into the hands of so great and so ambitious a monarch. It was agreed that they should enjoy all their ancient laws, liberties, and customs; that in case young Edward and Margaret should die without issue, the crown of Scotland should revert to the next heir, and should be inherited by him free and independent; that the military tenants of the crown should never be obliged to go out of Scotland, in order to do homage to the sovereign of the united kingdoms, nor the chapters of cathedral, collegiate, or conventual churches, in order to make elections; that the parliaments summoned for Scottish affairs should always be held within the bounds of that kingdom; and that Edward should bind himself, under the penalty of one hundred thousand marks, payable to the pope for the use of the holy wars to observe all these articles.[*]

The friendship that had recently existed between the two nations, which had never been disrupted by major wars or injuries in the past, made it much easier to carry out this project that was beneficial for the happiness and greatness of both kingdoms. The Scottish officials readily agreed to the English proposals and even accepted that their young ruler should be raised at Edward's court. However, concerned about their country’s freedom and independence, they made sure to negotiate fair conditions before placing themselves under such a powerful and ambitious king. It was agreed that they would retain all their ancient laws, liberties, and customs; that if young Edward and Margaret died without heirs, the Scottish crown would go to the next legitimate heir, who would inherit it freely and independently; that the military tenants of the crown would never be required to leave Scotland to pay homage to the ruler of the united kingdoms, nor would church chapters have to make appointments outside of Scotland; that parliaments convened for Scottish matters would always take place within Scotland's borders; and that Edward would commit, under penalty of one hundred thousand marks payable to the pope for the use of holy wars, to uphold all these agreements.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 482.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 482.

It is not easy to conceive that two nations could have treated more on a footing of equality than Scotland and England maintained during the whole course of this transaction; and though Edward gave his assent to the article concerning the future independency of the Scottish crown, with a “saving of his former rights,” this reserve gave no alarm to the nobility of Scotland, both because these rights, having hitherto been little heard of had occasioned no disturbance, and because the Scots had so near a prospect of seeing them entirely absorbed in the rights of their sovereignty.

It’s hard to believe that two nations could have treated each other with more equality than Scotland and England did throughout this whole situation. Even though Edward agreed to the article about the future independence of the Scottish crown, with a “saving of his former rights,” this reservation didn’t raise any concerns among the Scottish nobility. This was mainly because these rights had rarely been mentioned and hadn’t caused any issues, and also because the Scots were so close to seeing them completely merged with their own sovereign rights.

1291.

1291.

But this project, so happily formed and so amicably conducted, failed of success, by the sudden death of the Norwegian princess, who expired on her passage to Scotland,[*] and left a very dismal prospect to the kingdom. Though disorders were for the present obviated by the authority of the regency formerly established, the succession itself of the crown was now become an object of dispute; and the regents could not expect that a controversy, which is not usually decided by reason and argument alone, would be peaceably settled by them, or even by the states of the kingdom, amidst so many powerful pretenders. The posterity of William, king of Scotland, the prince taken prisoner by Henry II., being all extinct by the death of Margaret of Norway, the right to the crown devolved on the issue of David, earl of Huntingdon brother to William, whose male line being also extinct, left the succession open to the posterity of his daughters. The earl of Huntingdon had three daughters; Margaret, married to Alan, lord of Galloway, Isabella, wife of Robert Brus or Bruce lord of Annandale, and Adama, who espoused Henry, Lord Hastings. Margaret, the eldest of the sisters, left one daughter, Devergilda, married to John Baliol, by whom she had a son of the same name, one of the present competitors for the crown: Isabella II. bore a son, Robert Bruce, who was now alive, and who also insisted on his claim: Adama III. left a son, John Hastings, who pretended that the kingdom of Scotland, like many other inheritances, was divisible among the three daughters of the earl of Huntingdon, and that he, in right of his mother, had a title to a third of it. Baliol and Bruce united against Hastings, in maintaining that, the kingdom was indivisible; but each of them, supported by plausible reasons, asserted the preference of his own title. Baliol was sprung from the elder branch: Bruce was one degree nearer the common stock: if the principle of representation was regarded, the former had the better claim: if propinquity was considered, the latter was entitled to the preference.[**]

But this project, which was formed so happily and conducted so amicably, ended in failure due to the sudden death of the Norwegian princess, who died on her way to Scotland,[*] leaving a grim outlook for the kingdom. Although the authority of the previously established regency managed to prevent immediate chaos, the question of who would succeed to the crown had become a contentious issue; the regents could not anticipate that a dispute, typically not resolved by logic and discussion alone, would be settled peacefully by them or even by the kingdom's states amidst so many strong claimants. The descendants of William, king of Scotland, who had been captured by Henry II., became entirely extinct with the death of Margaret of Norway, transferring the right to the crown to the heirs of David, earl of Huntingdon, William's brother. Since his male line had also died out, the succession was left open to his daughters' descendants. The earl of Huntingdon had three daughters: Margaret, who married Alan, lord of Galloway; Isabella, who married Robert Brus or Bruce, lord of Annandale; and Adama, who married Henry, Lord Hastings. Margaret, the eldest sister, had one daughter, Devergilda, who married John Baliol, and they had a son of the same name, one of the current contenders for the crown. Isabella II. had a son, Robert Bruce, who was still alive and also claimed his right. Adama III. had a son, John Hastings, who argued that the kingdom of Scotland, like many other inheritances, could be divided among the three daughters of the earl of Huntingdon, and that he, by virtue of his mother, had a claim to a third of it. Baliol and Bruce teamed up against Hastings, arguing that the kingdom was indivisible; however, each of them, backed by convincing reasons, claimed that their title had precedence. Baliol came from the elder branch, while Bruce was one degree closer to the common ancestor: if the principle of representation was followed, the former had a stronger claim; if closeness was considered, the latter had the better right.[**]

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 30. Trivet, p. 268

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 36.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 30. Trivet, p. 268

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 36.

The sentiments of men were divided: all the nobility had taken part on one side or the other: the people followed implicitly their leaders: the two claimants themselves had great power and numerous retainers in Scotland: and it is no wonder that, among a rude people, more accustomed to arms than inured to laws, a controversy of this nature, which could not be decided by any former precedent among them, and which is capable of exciting commotions in the most legal and best established governments, should threaten the state with the most fatal convulsions.

The feelings of men were split: all the nobles had taken sides: the common people followed their leaders without question: the two claimants had significant power and many supporters in Scotland: and it’s no surprise that, among a rough population more familiar with fighting than with laws, a dispute like this, which had no clear previous example to guide them, and which could stir up unrest even in the most legal and well-established governments, should put the state at risk of the most serious upheavals.

Each century has its peculiar mode in conducting business; and men, guided more by custom than by reason, follow, without inquiry, the manners which are prevalent in their own time. The practice of that age in controversies between states and princes, seems to have been to choose a foreign prince as an equal arbiter, by whom the question was decided, and whose sentence prevented those dismal confusions and disorders, inseparable at all times from war, but which were multiplied a hundred fold, and dispersed into every corner, by the nature of the feudal governments. It was thus that the English king and barons, in the preceding reign, had endeavored to compose their dissensions by a reference to the king of France; and the celebrated integrity of that monarch had prevented all the bad effects which might naturally have been dreaded from so perilous an expedient. It was thus that the kings of France and Arragon, and afterwards other princes, had submitted their controversies to Edward’s judgment; and the remoteness of their states, the great power of the princes, and the little interest which he had on either side, had induced him to acquit himself with honor in his decisions. The parliament of Scotland, therefore, threatened with a furious civil war, and allured by the great reputation of the English monarch, as well as by the present amicable correspondence between the kingdoms, agreed in making a reference to Edward; and Fraser, bishop of St. Andrews, with other deputies, was sent to notify to him their resolution, and to claim his good offices in the present dangers to which they were exposed.[*]

Each century has its own unique way of doing business; people, often following tradition rather than logic, accept and adopt the customs of their time without questioning them. During that period, when disputes arose between nations and rulers, it seemed common to choose a foreign prince as a neutral arbitrator to resolve the issues, thus avoiding the chaos and turmoil that always accompany war, which were especially exacerbated by the nature of feudal governments. Similarly, the English king and barons had sought to settle their conflicts by appealing to the king of France in the previous reign; the king's renowned fairness had averted the negative consequences that could have come from such a risky solution. Likewise, the kings of France and Aragon, among others, had turned to Edward for judgment in their disputes; the distance between their territories, the immense power of the princes involved, and Edward's limited personal stake in either side allowed him to handle his rulings with integrity. Faced with the threat of a violent civil war and drawn by the English king's strong reputation, as well as the current friendly relations between their nations, the Scottish parliament decided to refer their issues to Edward. Bishop Fraser of St. Andrews, along with other delegates, was sent to inform him of their decision and to seek his assistance in the dangerous situation they found themselves in.[*]

     * Heming, vol. i. p. 31.
     * Heming, vol. i. p. 31.

His inclination, they flattered themselves, led him to prevent their dissensions, and to interpose with a power which none of the competitors would dare to withstand: when this expedient was proposed by one party, the other deemed it dangerous to object to it: indifferent persons thought that the imminent perils of a civil war would thereby be prevented; and no one reflected on the ambitious character of Edward, and the almost certain ruin which must attend a small state divided by faction, when it thus implicitly submits itself to the will of so powerful and encroaching a neighbor.

They convinced themselves that his tendency to intervene would keep their arguments in check and that he had a power no rival would dare oppose. When one side suggested this solution, the other side found it too risky to disagree. Onlookers believed that this would prevent the looming threat of civil war, and no one considered Edward's ambitious nature or the almost inevitable downfall facing a small state torn by conflict when it willingly puts itself under the control of such a strong and aggressive neighbor.

The temptation was too strong for the virtue of the English monarch to resist. He purposed to lay hold of the present favorable opportunity, and if not to create, at least to revive, his claim of a feudal superiority over Scotland; a claim which had hitherto lain in the deepest obscurity, and which, if ever it had been an object of attention, or had been so much as suspected, would have effectually prevented the Scottish barons from choosing him for an umpire. He well knew that, if this pretension were once submitted to, as it seemed difficult in the present situation of Scotland to oppose it, the absolute sovereignty of that kingdom (which had been the case with Wales) would soon follow; and that one great vassal, cooped up in an island with his liege lord, without resource from foreign powers, without aid from any fellow-vassals, could not long maintain his dominions against the efforts of a mighty kingdom, assisted by all the cavils which the feudal law afforded his superior against him. In pursuit of this great object, very advantageous to England, perhaps in the end no less beneficial to Scotland, but extremely unjust and iniquitous in itself, Edward busied himself in searching for proofs of his pretended superiority; and, instead of looking into his own archives, which, if his claim had been real, must have afforded him numerous records of the homages done by the Scottish princes, and could alone yield him any authentic testimony, he made all the monasteries be ransacked for old chronicles and histories written by Englishmen, and he collected all the passages which seemed anywise to favor his pretensions.[*] Yet even in this method of proceeding, which must have discovered to himself the injustice of his claim, he was far from being fortunate. He began his proofs from the time of Edward the Elder, and continued them through all the subsequent Saxon and Norman times; but produced nothing to his purpose.[**]

The temptation was too strong for the English monarch's virtue to resist. He planned to seize the current opportunity and, if not create, at least revive his claim to feudal superiority over Scotland; a claim that had been largely forgotten and, if it had ever attracted attention or been suspected, would have effectively prevented the Scottish barons from choosing him as an arbitrator. He knew well that if this claim were accepted, especially since it seemed difficult for Scotland to oppose it under the current circumstances, the absolute sovereignty of that kingdom (as had happened with Wales) would likely follow soon. A single powerful vassal trapped on an island with his overlord, without support from foreign powers or help from fellow vassals, couldn’t hold his territory against a mighty kingdom, especially when backed by all the arguments the feudal law provided his superior against him. In pursuit of this major goal, which was very advantageous for England and perhaps ultimately beneficial for Scotland but deeply unfair and unjust in nature, Edward busied himself searching for evidence of his supposed superiority; instead of checking his own records, which, if his claim were true, would have shown him many accounts of homage paid by Scottish princes and could have provided authentic proof, he ordered all the monasteries to be searched for old chronicles and histories written by Englishmen, gathering all the sections that seemed to support his claims. Yet even with this approach, which should have revealed the injustice of his assertion, he was far from successful. He started his evidence from the time of Edward the Elder and continued it through all the following Saxon and Norman periods; however, he produced nothing relevant to his case.

     * Walsing. p. 55.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p, 559.
     * Walsing. p. 55.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p, 559.

The whole amount of his authorities during the Saxon period, when stripped of the bombast and inaccurate style of the monkish historians, is, that the Scots had sometimes been defeated by the English, had received peace on disadvantageous terms, had made submissions to the English monarch, and had even perhaps fallen into some dependence on a power which was so much superior, and which they had not at that time sufficient force to resist. His authorities from the Norman period were, if possible, still less conclusive: the historians indeed make frequent mention of homage done by the northern potentate; but no one of them says that it was done for his kingdom; and several of them declare, in express terms that it was relative only to the fiefs which he enjoyed south of the Tweed;[*] in the same manner, as the king of England himself swore fealty to the French monarch, for the fiefs which he inherited in France. And to such scandalous shifts was Edward reduced, that he quotes a passage from Hoveden[**] where it is asserted that a Scottish king had done homage to England; but he purposely omits the latter part of the sentence, which expresses that this prince did homage for the lands which he held in England.

The totality of his sources from the Saxon period, when you cut through the exaggerated and inaccurate writing of the monkish historians, shows that the Scots were sometimes beaten by the English, accepted peace under unfavorable conditions, submitted to the English king, and may have even fallen into some level of dependency on a power that was much stronger, which they were not equipped to resist at the time. His sources from the Norman period were, if anything, even less convincing: the historians frequently mention homage paid by the northern ruler; however, none of them state that it was for his kingdom, and several explicitly say it only pertained to the lands he held south of the Tweed;[*] much like the king of England himself swore loyalty to the French king for the lands he inherited in France. Edward was reduced to such desperate measures that he cited a passage from Hoveden[**] claiming that a Scottish king paid homage to England; but he deliberately left out the latter part of the sentence, which indicates that this king did homage for the lands he held in England.

When William, king of Scotland, was taken prisoner in the battle of Alnwick, he was obliged, for the recovery of his liberty, to swear fealty to the victor for his crown itself. The deed was performed according to all the rites of the feudal law: the record was preserved in the English archives, and is mentioned by all the historians: but as it is the only one of the kind, and as historians speak of this superiority as a great acquisition gained by the fortunate arms of Henry II.,[***] there can remain no doubt that the kingdom of Scotland was, in all former periods, entirely free and independent. Its subjection continued a very few years: King Richard, desirous, before his departure for the Holy Land, to conciliate the friendship of William, renounced that homage, which, he says in express terms, had been extorted by his father; and he only retained the usual homage which had been done by the Scottish princes for the lands which they held in England.

When William, the king of Scotland, was captured in the battle of Alnwick, he had to swear loyalty to the victor to regain his freedom and his crown. The ceremony followed all the feudal laws, and the record was kept in the English archives, mentioned by all historians. However, since this is the only case of its kind and historians refer to this as a significant gain from the successful military campaigns of Henry II., there’s no doubt that Scotland was completely free and independent in previous times. This subjugation lasted only a few years: King Richard, wanting to secure William's friendship before heading to the Holy Land, renounced the allegiance that he explicitly stated had been forced by his father. He only kept the usual pledge of loyalty that Scottish princes had given for the lands they held in England.

     * Hoveden, p. 492, 662. M. Paris, p. 109. M. West. p. 256.

     ** Page 662.

     *** Neubr. lib. ii. cap. 4. Knyghton, p. 2392.
     * Hoveden, p. 492, 662. M. Paris, p. 109. M. West. p. 256.

     ** Page 662.

     *** Neubr. lib. ii. cap. 4. Knyghton, p. 2392.

But though this transaction rendered the independence of Scotland still more unquestionable, than if no fealty had ever been sworn to the English crown, the Scottish kings, apprised of the point aimed at by their powerful neighbors, seem for a long time to have retained some jealousy on that head, and, in doing homage, to have anxiously obviated all such pretensions. When William, in 1200, did homage to John at Lincoln, he was careful to insert a salvo for his royal dignity;[*] when Alexander III. sent assistance to his father-in-law, Henry III., during the wars of the barons, he previously procured an acknowledgment, that this aid was granted only from friendship, not from any right claimed by the English monarch;[**] and when that same prince was invited to assist at the coronation of this very Edward, he declined attendance till he received a like acknowledgment.[***] 1

But even though this action made Scotland's independence even more certain than if no loyalty had ever been pledged to the English crown, the Scottish kings, aware of their powerful neighbors' aims, seemed to hold some lingering suspicion about the matter for quite some time. In performing his homage, they took care to avoid any acknowledgment of such claims. When William did homage to John at Lincoln in 1200, he made sure to include a clause protecting his royal status;[*] when Alexander III. provided support to his father-in-law, Henry III., during the barons' wars, he first obtained an acknowledgment that this help was given solely out of friendship, not because of any rights claimed by the English monarch;[**] and when that same prince was asked to attend the coronation of Edward, he refused to go until he received a similar acknowledgment.[***] 1

But as all these reasons (and stronger could not be produced) were but a feeble rampart against the power of the sword, Edward, carrying with him a great army, which was to enforce his proofs, advanced to the frontiers, and invited the Scottish parliament, and all the competitors, to attend him in the Castle of Norham, a place situated on the southern banks of the Tweed, in order to determine the cause which had been referred to his arbitration. But though this deference seemed due to so great a monarch, and was no more than what his father and the English barons had, in similar circumstances, paid to Lewis IX., the king, careful not to give umbrage, and determined never to produce his claim till it should be too late to think of opposition, sent the Scottish barons an acknowledgment, that, though at that time they passed the frontiers, this step should never be drawn into precedent, or afford the English kings a pretence for exacting a like submission in any future transaction.[****] When the whole Scottish nation had thus unwarily put themselves in his power, Edward opened the conferences at Norham: he informed the parliament, by the mouth of Roger le Brabançon, his chief justiciary, that he was come thither to determine the right among the competitors to their crown; that he was determined to do strict justice to all parties; and that he was entitled to this authority, not in virtue of the reference made to him, but in quality of superior and liege lord of the kingdom.[*****] 2

But as all these reasons (and stronger ones couldn’t be found) were just a weak defense against the power of the sword, Edward, leading a large army to back up his claims, moved to the border and invited the Scottish parliament and all the claimants to meet him at the Castle of Norham, located on the southern banks of the Tweed, to settle the issue that had been brought to him for arbitration. Even though this respect seemed appropriate for such a great king, and was no more than what his father and the English barons had shown to Lewis IX. in similar situations, the king, careful not to offend, and determined never to present his claim until it was too late for anyone to resist, sent the Scottish barons a response stating that, although they had crossed the border at that time, this action should never set a precedent or give the English kings a reason to demand similar compliance in the future.[****] When the entire Scottish nation had thus unwittingly placed themselves at his mercy, Edward began the discussions at Norham: he informed the parliament, through Roger le Brabançon, his chief justiciary, that he had come there to resolve who among the claimants had the right to their crown; that he was committed to providing fair justice to all parties; and that he held this authority not because of the reference made to him, but as the superior and liege lord of the kingdom.[*****] 2

     * Hoveden, p. 811.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii p 844.

     *** See note A. at the end of the volume.

     **** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 539, 845. Walsing. p. 58.

     * Hoveden, p. 811.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii p 844.

     *** See note A. at the end of the volume.

     **** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 539, 845. Walsing. p. 58.

He then produced his proofs of this superiority, which he pretended to be unquestionable, and he required of them an acknowledgment of it; a demand which was superfluous if the fact were already known and avowed, and which plainly betrays Edward’s consciousness of his lame and defective title. The Scottish parliament was astonished at so new a pretension, and answered only by their silence. But the king, in order to maintain the appearance of free and regular proceedings, desired them to remove into their own country, to deliberate upon his claim, to examine his proofs, to propose all their objections, and to inform him of their resolution; and he appointed a plain at Upsettleton, on the northern banks of the Tweed, for that purpose.

He then presented his evidence of this superiority, which he claimed was undeniable, and insisted that they acknowledge it; a demand that was unnecessary if the fact was already accepted and admitted, and which clearly revealed Edward’s awareness of his weak and flawed title. The Scottish parliament was taken aback by such a new claim and responded only with silence. However, the king, in an effort to maintain the appearance of fair and orderly proceedings, asked them to go back to their own country to consider his claim, review his evidence, raise any objections, and let him know their decision; he designated a plain at Upsettleton, on the northern banks of the Tweed, for this purpose.

When the Scottish barons assembled in this place, though moved with indignation at the injustice of this unexpected claim, and at the fraud with which it had been conducted, they found themselves betrayed into a situation in which it was impossible for them to make any defence for the ancient liberty and independence of their country. The king of England, a martial and politic prince, at the head of a powerful army, lay at a very small distance, and was only separated from them by a river fordable in many places. Though, by a sudden flight, some of them might themselves be, able to make their escape, what hopes could they entertain of securing the kingdom against his future enterprises? Without a head, without union among themselves, attached all of them to different competitors, whose title they had rashly submitted to the decision of this foreign usurper, and who were thereby reduced to an absolute dependence upon him, they could only expect by resistance to entail on themselves and their posterity a more grievous and more destructive servitude. Yet even in this desperate state of their affairs the Scottish barons, as we learn from Walsingham,[*] one of the best historians of that period, had the courage to reply that, till they had a king, they could take no resolution on so momentous a point: the journal of King Edward says, that they made no answer at all;[**] that is, perhaps, no particular answer or objection to Edward’s claim: and by this solution it is possible to reconcile the journal with the historian. The king, therefore, interpreting their silence as consent, addressed himself to the several competitors.

When the Scottish barons gathered in this place, filled with outrage at the unfairness of this unexpected claim and the deception that accompanied it, they found themselves trapped in a situation where they couldn't defend the ancient liberty and independence of their country. The King of England, a skilled and strategic leader, was nearby, leading a powerful army, only separated from them by a river that could be crossed in many spots. Although some of them might manage to escape suddenly, what hope did they have of protecting the kingdom from his future attacks? Without a leader, lacking unity among themselves, and each of them loyal to different rivals, whose claims they had foolishly agreed to let this foreign usurper decide, they faced total dependence on him. By resisting, they could only bring upon themselves and their descendants a harsher and more destructive slavery. Yet, even in this dire situation, the Scottish barons, as reported by Walsingham,[*] one of the best historians of that time, had the courage to say that until they had a king, they couldn't make a decision on such an important matter. The journal of King Edward notes that they didn’t respond at all;[**] that is, perhaps, they didn’t give any specific answer or objection to Edward’s claim. This way, it’s possible to reconcile the journal with the historian’s account. The king, interpreting their silence as agreement, turned to the various competitors.

     * Page 56. M. West. p. 436. It is said by Hemingford, vol.
     i, p. 33, that the king menaced violently the Scotch barons,
     and forced them to compliance, at least to silence.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 548. previously to his pronouncing
     sentence, required their acknowledgment of his superiority.
     * Page 56. M. West. p. 436. Hemingford states in volume i, p. 33, that the king threatened the Scottish barons aggressively and compelled them to comply, or at least to remain silent.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 548. Before handing down his ruling, he demanded their recognition of his superiority.

It is evident from the genealogy of the royal family of Scotland, that there could only be two questions about the succession—that between Baliol and Bruce on the one hand, and Lord Hastings on the other, concerning the partition of the crown: and that between Baliol and Bruce themselves concerning the preference of their respective titles, supposing the kingdom indivisible: yet there appeared on this occasion no less than nine claimants besides; John Comyn or Cummin, lord of Badenoch, Florence, earl of Holland, Patric Dunbar, earl of March, William de Vescey, Robert de Pynkeni, Nicholas de Soules, Patric Galythly, Roger de Mandeville, Robert de Ross; not to mention the king of Norway, who claimed as heir to his daughter Margaret.[*] Some of these competitors were descended from more remote branches of the royal family; others were even sprung from illegitimate children; and as none of them had the least pretence of right, it is natural to conjecture that Edward had secretly encouraged them to appear in the list of claimants, that he might sow the more division among the Scottish nobility, make the cause appear the more intricate, and be able to choose, among a great number, the most obsequious candidate.

It’s clear from the genealogy of the Scottish royal family that there were really only two questions regarding the succession: one was between Baliol and Bruce on one side, and Lord Hastings on the other, related to the division of the crown; the second was between Baliol and Bruce themselves regarding whose title was stronger, assuming the kingdom was indivisible. However, on this occasion, there were no less than nine other claimants: John Comyn or Cummin, lord of Badenoch; Florence, earl of Holland; Patric Dunbar, earl of March; William de Vescey; Robert de Pynkeni; Nicholas de Soules; Patric Galythly; Roger de Mandeville; and Robert de Ross; not to mention the king of Norway, who claimed through his daughter Margaret.[*] Some of these contenders were descended from more distant branches of the royal family, while others even came from illegitimate offspring. Since none had any real claim to the throne, it’s reasonable to assume that Edward had secretly encouraged them to step forward as claimants, intending to create more division among the Scottish nobility, complicate the situation, and ultimately choose the most submissive candidate from the large group.

But he found them all equally obsequious on this occasion.[**] Robert Bruce was the first that acknowledged Edward’s right of superiority over Scotland; and he had so far foreseen the king’s pretensions, that even in his petition, where he set forth his claim to the crown, he had previously applied to him as liege lord of the kingdom; a step which was not taken by any of the other competitors.[***] They all, however, with seeming willingness, made a like acknowledgment when required; though Baliol, lest he should give offence to the Scottish nation, had taken care to be absent during the first days; and he was the last that recognized the king’s title.[****]

But he found them all just as eager to please on this occasion.[**] Robert Bruce was the first to recognize Edward's claim to rule over Scotland; he had even anticipated the king's ambitions enough to refer to him as the lord of the kingdom in his petition for the crown, a move that none of the other claimants made.[***] Still, they all pretended to agree when asked; although Baliol, to avoid angering the Scottish people, made sure to stay away during the initial days and was the last to acknowledge the king's title.[****]

     * Walsing. p. 58.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 529, 545. Walsing. p. 56. Heming.
     vol. i. 33, 34. Trivet, p. 260. M. West. p. 415.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 577, 578, 579.

     **** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 546.
     * Walsing. p. 58.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 529, 545. Walsing. p. 56. Heming.
     vol. i. 33, 34. Trivet, p. 260. M. West. p. 415.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 577, 578, 579.

     **** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 546.

Edward next deliberated concerning the method of proceeding in the discussion of this great controversy. He gave orders that Baliol, and such of the competitors as adhered to him should choose forty commissioners; Bruce and his adherents forty more: to these the king added twenty-four Englishmen: he ordered these hundred and four commissioners to examine the cause deliberately among themselves, and make their report to him:[*] and he promised in the ensuing year to give his determination. Meanwhile he pretended that it was requisite to have all the fortresses of Scotland delivered into his hands, in order to enable him, without opposition, to put the true heir in possession of the crown; and this exorbitant demand was complied with, both by the states and by the claimants.[**] The governors also of all the castles immediately resigned their command; except Umfreville, earl of Angus, who refused, without a formal and particular acquittal from the parliament and the several claimants, to surrender his fortresses to so domineering an arbiter, who had given to Scotland so many just reasons of suspicion.[***] Before this assembly broke up, which had fixed such a mark of dishonor on the nation, all the prelates and barons there present swore fealty to Edward; and that prince appointed commissioners to receive a like oath from all the other barons and persons of distinction in Scotland.[****]

Edward then considered how to move forward in discussing this major controversy. He ordered Baliol and his supporters to choose forty commissioners; Bruce and his followers were to select another forty. The king added twenty-four Englishmen to this group. He instructed these one hundred and four commissioners to thoroughly examine the case among themselves and report back to him:[*] and he promised to give his decision the following year. In the meantime, he claimed it was necessary for all the fortresses in Scotland to be handed over to him so he could ultimately place the rightful heir on the throne without facing any opposition; this excessive demand was accepted by both the states and the claimants.[**] The governors of all the castles also immediately stepped down from their positions, except for Umfreville, Earl of Angus, who refused to surrender his fortresses to such an overbearing judge without a formal and specific release from the parliament and the various claimants, who had given Scotland plenty of reason to be suspicious of him.[***] Before this assembly disbanded, which had marked the nation with such dishonor, all the bishops and barons present pledged loyalty to Edward; and that prince appointed commissioners to collect a similar oath from all the other barons and notable individuals in Scotland.[****]

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 555, 556.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 529. Walsing. p. 56, 57.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 531.

     **** Rymer, vol. ii p. 573.
* Rymer, vol. ii. p. 555, 556.

** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 529. Walsing. p. 56, 57.

*** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 531.

**** Rymer, vol. ii p. 573.

The king, having finally made, as he imagined, this important acquisition, left the commissioners to sit at Berwick, and examine the titles of the several competitors who claimed the precarious crown, which Edward was willing for some time to allow the lawful heir to enjoy. He went southwards, both in order to assist at the funeral of his mother, Queen Eleanor, who died about this time, and to compose some differences which had arisen among his principal nobility. Gilbert, earl of Glocester, the greatest baron of the kingdom, had espoused the king’s daughter; and being elated by that alliance, and still more by his own power, which, he thought, set him above the laws, he permitted his bailiffs and vassals to commit violence on the lands of Humphrey Bohun, earl of Hereford, who retaliated the injury by like violence. But this was not a reign in which such illegal proceedings could pass with impunity. Edward procured a sentence against the two earls, committed them both to prison, and would not restore them to their liberty, till he had exacted a fine of one thousand marks from Hereford, and one of ten thousand from his son-in-law.

The king, thinking he had achieved something significant, left the commissioners to meet at Berwick and review the claims of the various contenders for the unstable crown, which Edward was willing to let the rightful heir enjoy for a while. He headed south to attend the funeral of his mother, Queen Eleanor, who had passed away around this time, and to settle some disputes that had arisen among his top nobles. Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester, the most powerful baron in the kingdom, had married the king's daughter. Feeling empowered by this alliance and his own influence, which he believed placed him above the law, he allowed his officials and servants to act violently against the lands of Humphrey Bohun, Earl of Hereford, who in turn retaliated with similar violence. However, this was not a time when such unlawful actions could go unpunished. Edward secured a ruling against the two earls, imprisoned them both, and refused to release them until he had exacted a fine of one thousand marks from Hereford and ten thousand from his son-in-law.

1292.

1292.

During this interval, the titles of John Baliol and of Robert Bruce, whose claims appeared to be the best founded among the competitors for the crown of Scotland, were the subject of general disquisition, as well as of debate among the commissioners. Edward, in order to give greater authority to his intended decision, proposed this general question both to the commissioners and to all the celebrated lawyers in Europe, “Whether a person descended from the elder sister, but farther removed by one degree, were preferable, in the succession of kingdoms, fiefs, and other indivisible inheritances, to one descended from the younger sister, but one degree nearer to the common stock?” This was the true state of the case; and the principle of representation had now gained such ground every where, that a uniform answer was returned to the king in the affirmative. He therefore pronounced sentence in favor of Balioi; and when Bruce, upon this disappointment, joined afterwards Lord Hastings, and claimed a third of the kingdom, which he now pretended to be divisible, Edward, though his interests seemed more to require the partition of Scotland, again pronounced sentence in favor of Baliol. That competitor, upon renewing his oath of fealty to England, was put in possession of the kingdom;[*] all his fortresses were restored to him;[**] and the conduct of Edward, both in the deliberate solemnity of the proceedings, and in the justice of the award, was so far unexceptionable.

During this time, the claims of John Baliol and Robert Bruce—who seemed to have the strongest claims among those competing for the Scottish crown—were widely discussed and debated among the officials. Edward, wanting to lend more authority to his upcoming decision, posed a general question to the commissioners and to renowned lawyers across Europe: “Is a person descended from the elder sister, but one degree more removed, preferred in the succession of kingdoms, fiefs, and other indivisible inheritances over someone descended from the younger sister, who is one degree closer to the common ancestor?” This accurately represented the situation; the idea of representation had become so widely accepted that the king received a unanimous affirmative response. Consequently, he ruled in favor of Baliol. Later, when Bruce, frustrated by this outcome, allied with Lord Hastings and claimed a third of the kingdom—now insisting it was divisible—Edward, despite seeming to benefit more from dividing Scotland, ruled again in favor of Baliol. That competitor, upon renewing his oath of loyalty to England, was given control of the kingdom; all his fortresses were returned to him; and Edward's actions, both in the careful formality of the proceedings and in the fairness of the ruling, were generally seen as acceptable.

1293.

1293.

Had the king entertained no other view than that of establishing his superiority over Scotland, though the iniquity of that claim was apparent, and was aggravated by the most egregious breach of trust, he might have fixed his pretensions, and have left that important acquisition to his posterity: but he immediately proceeded in such a manner as made it evident that, not content with this usurpation, he aimed also at the absolute sovereignty and dominion of the kingdom. Instead of gradually inuring the Scots to the yoke, and exerting his rights of superiority with moderation, he encouraged all appeals to England; required King John himself, by six different summons on trivial occasions, to come to London;[***] refused him the privilege of defending his cause by a procurator; and obliged him to appear at the bar of his parliament as a private person.[****]

Had the king only aimed to establish his superiority over Scotland, even though the unfairness of that claim was clear and worsened by a significant breach of trust, he could have solidified his claims and passed that important gain to his descendants. Instead, he acted in such a way that made it clear that, not satisfied with this takeover, he also sought absolute control and domination of the kingdom. Rather than gradually familiarizing the Scots with his rule and exercising his superiority rights with restraint, he encouraged all appeals to England; he summoned King John himself to London six times for minor issues;[***] he denied him the right to defend his case through a representative; and forced him to appear before his parliament as an ordinary citizen.[****]

     * Rymer vol. ii. p. 590, 591, 593, 600.

     ** Rymer, voL ii p. 599.

     *** Rymer, p. 603, 605, 606, 608, 615, 616.

     **** Ryley’s Placit. Parl. p. 152, 153.
     * Rymer vol. ii. p. 590, 591, 593, 600.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii p. 599.

     *** Rymer, p. 603, 605, 606, 608, 615, 616.

     **** Ryley’s Placit. Parl. p. 152, 153.

These humiliating demands were hitherto quite unknown to a king of Scotland: they are, however, the necessary consequence of vassalage by the feudal law; and as there was no preceding instance of such treatment submitted to by a prince of that country, Edward must, from that circumstance alone, had there remained any doubt, have been himself convinced that his claim was altogether a usurpation.[*] 3 But his intention plainly was to enrage Baliol by these indignities, to engage him in rebellion, and to assume the dominion of the state as the punishment of his treason and felony. Accordingly Baliol, though a prince of a soft and gentle spirit, returned into Scotland highly provoked at this usage, and determined at all hazards to vindicate his liberty; and the war which soon after broke out between France and England, gave him a favorable opportunity of executing his purpose.

These humiliating demands were previously unknown to a king of Scotland. However, they are a necessary result of feudal vassalage; and since there had been no prior instance of a prince of that country accepting such treatment, Edward must have realized, if there was any doubt, that his claim was purely a usurpation.[*] 3 His obvious intention was to provoke Baliol with these indignities, push him into rebellion, and take control of the state as punishment for his treason and wrongdoings. As a result, Baliol, although a prince with a gentle and mild nature, returned to Scotland deeply angered by this treatment and determined, no matter the cost, to reclaim his freedom. The war that soon erupted between France and England provided him with a favorable opportunity to pursue his goal.

The violence, robberies, and disorders, to which that age was so subject, were not confined to the licentious barons and their retainers at land: the sea was equally infested with piracy: the feeble execution of the laws had given license to all orders of men: and a general appetite for rapine and revenge, supported by a false point of honor, had also infected the merchants and mariners; and it pushed them, on any provocation, to seek redress by immediate retaliation upon the aggressors. A Norman and an English vessel met off the coast near Bayonne; and both of them having occasion for water, they sent their boats to land, and the several crews came at the same time to the same spring: there ensued a quarrel for the preference: a Norman, drawing his dagger, attempted to stab an Englishman; who, grappling with him, threw his adversary on the ground; and the Norman, as was pretended, falling on his own dagger, was slain.[**] This scuffle between two seamen about water, soon kindled a bloody war between the two nations, and involved a great part of Europe in the quarrel. The mariners of the Norman ship carried their complaints to the French king: Philip, without inquiring into the fact, without demanding redress, bade them take revenge, and trouble him no more about the matter.[***]

The violence, robberies, and chaos that characterized that time weren't just limited to the wild barons and their followers on land; the sea was just as plagued by piracy. The weak enforcement of laws had allowed all kinds of people to act with impunity, and a widespread desire for robbery and revenge, fueled by a misguided sense of honor, had also affected merchants and sailors. They were quick to seek immediate payback against anyone who slighted them. One day, a Norman ship and an English ship met off the coast near Bayonne, and both needed water. They sent their boats to shore, and the crews arrived at the same spring at the same time. A disagreement arose over who would go first. A Norman, pulling out his dagger, tried to stab an Englishman, who then wrestled him to the ground. It's said the Norman ended up impaled on his own dagger and died. This scuffle over water soon sparked a bloody war between the two nations and drew much of Europe into the conflict. The sailors from the Norman ship took their grievances to the French king. Philip, without looking into what actually happened or seeking a resolution, told them to take revenge and not to bother him about it anymore.

     * See note C, at the end of the volume.

     ** Walsing. p. 58. Heming. vol. i. p. 39.

     *** Walsing. p. 59.
     * See note C, at the end of the volume.

     ** Walsing. p. 58. Heming. vol. i. p. 39.

     *** Walsing. p. 59.

The Normans, who had been more regular than usual in applying to the crown, needed but this hint to proceed to immediate violence. They seized an English ship in the channel; and hanging, along with some dogs, several of the crew on the yard-arm, in presence of their companions, dismissed the vessel; [*] and bade the mariners inform their countrymen that vengeance was now taken for the blood of the Norman killed at Bayonne. This injury, accompanied with so general and deliberate an insult, was resented by the mariners of the cinque ports, who, without carrying any complaint to the king, or waiting for redress, retaliated by committing like barbarities on all French vessels without distinction. The French, provoked by their losses, preyed on the ships of all Edward’s subjects, whether English or Gascon: the sea became a scene of piracy between the nations: the sovereigns, without either seconding or repressing the violence of their subjects, seemed to remain indifferent spectators: the English made private associations with the Irish and Dutch seamen; the French with the Flemish and Genoese;[**] and the animosities of the people on both sides became every day more violent and barbarous. A fleet of two hundred Norman vessels set sail to the south for wine and other commodities; and in their passage seized all the English ships which they met with, hanged the seamen, and seized the goods. The inhabitants of the English seaports, informed of this incident, fitted out a fleet of sixty sail, stronger and better manned than the others, and awaited the enemy on their return. After an obstinate battle, they put them to rout, and sunk, destroyed, or took the greater part of them.[***] No quarter was given; and it is pretended that the loss of the French amounted to fifteen thousand men; which is accounted for by this circumstance, that the Norman fleet was employed in transporting a considerable body of soldiers from the south.

The Normans, who had been unusually consistent in reaching out to the crown, needed just this hint to resort to immediate violence. They captured an English ship in the channel and hung several members of the crew, along with some dogs, from the yardarm in front of their companions before sending the vessel away. They instructed the mariners to inform their fellow countrymen that revenge had been taken for the Norman killed at Bayonne. This insult, coupled with such a blatant act of aggression, was met with anger by the mariners of the cinque ports, who retaliated without filing a complaint to the king or waiting for a response, committing similar atrocities against all French vessels indiscriminately. The French, angered by their losses, targeted the ships of all of Edward’s subjects, both English and Gascon, leading to a situation of piracy between the nations. The kings seemed to act as indifferent spectators, neither supporting nor suppressing their subjects' violence. The English formed private alliances with Irish and Dutch sailors, while the French allied with the Flemish and Genoese. The animosities between both sides grew increasingly intense and brutal. A fleet of two hundred Norman ships set sail south for wine and other goods, and on their journey, they seized all English ships they encountered, hanged the sailors, and confiscated their cargo. The residents of the English seaports, upon learning of this, outfitted a fleet of sixty ships, stronger and better crewed than the Normans, and awaited the enemy's return. After a fierce battle, they defeated the Normans, sinking, destroying, or capturing most of their ships. No mercy was shown, and it's claimed that the French losses reached fifteen thousand men, partly because the Norman fleet was also transporting a significant number of soldiers from the south.

The affair was now become too important to be any longer overlooked by the sovereigns. On Philip’s sending an envoy to demand reparation and restitution, the king despatched the bishop of London to the French court, in order to accommodate the quarrel. He first said, that the English courts of justice were open to all men; and if any Frenchman were injured, he might seek reparation by course of law.[****]

The situation had now become too significant for the rulers to ignore any longer. When Philip sent an envoy to request compensation and the return of what was owed, the king sent the bishop of London to the French court to help resolve the dispute. He initially stated that the English courts were available to everyone; if any Frenchman had been wronged, he could seek justice through the legal system. [****]

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 40. M. West. p. 419.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 40.

     *** Walsing. p. 60. Trivet, p 274. Chron. Dunst vol. ii. p
     609.

     **** Trivet, p. 275.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 40. M. West. p. 419.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 40.

     *** Walsing. p. 60. Trivet, p 274. Chron. Dunst vol. ii. p
     609.

     **** Trivet, p. 275.

He next offered to adjust the matter by private arbiters, or by a personal interview with the king of France, or by a reference either to the pope, or the college of cardinals, or any particular cardinals, agreed on by both parties.[*] The French, probably the more disgusted, as they were hitherto losers in the quarrel, refused all these expedients: the vessels and the goods of merchants were confiscated on both sides: depredations were continued by the Gascons on the western coast of France, as well as by the English in the Channel: Philip cited the king, as duke of Guienne, to appear in his court at Paris, and answer for these offences; and Edward, apprehensive of danger to that province, sent John St. John, an experienced soldier, to Bordeaux, and gave him directions to put Guienne in a posture of defence.[**]

He then proposed to resolve the issue through private arbitrators, a personal meeting with the king of France, a referral to the pope, the college of cardinals, or any specific cardinals, agreed upon by both sides. The French, likely more frustrated since they had been losing in the conflict, rejected all these solutions. Ships and merchant goods were confiscated by both sides. The Gascons continued their raids along the western coast of France, as did the English in the Channel. Philip summoned the king, as duke of Guienne, to appear in his court in Paris and answer for these offenses. Edward, fearing for the safety of that region, sent John St. John, a seasoned soldier, to Bordeaux and instructed him to prepare Guienne for defense.

1294.

1294.

That he might, however, prevent a final rupture between the nations, the king despatched his brother, Edmond, earl of Lancaster, to Paris; and as this prince had espoused the queen of Navarre, mother to Jane, queen of France, he seemed, on account of that alliance, the most proper person for finding expedients to accommodate the difference. Jane pretended to interpose with her good offices: Mary, the queen dowager, feigned the same amicable disposition: and these two princesses told Edmond, that the circumstance the most difficult to adjust was the point of honor with Philip, who thought himself affronted by the injuries committed against him by his sub-vassals in Guienne; but if Edward would once consent to give him seizin and possession of that province, he would think his honor fully repaired, would engage to restore Guienne immediately, and would accept of a very easy satisfaction for all the other injuries. The king was consulted on the occasion; and as he then found himself in immediate danger of war with the Scots, which he regarded as the more important concern, this politic prince, blinded by his favorite passion for subduing that nation, allowed himself to be deceived by so gross an artifice.[***] He sent his brother orders to sign and execute the treaty with the two queens; Philip solemnly promised to execute his part of it; and the king’s citation to appear in the court of France, was accordingly recalled; but the French monarch was no sooner put in possession of Guienne, than the citation was renewed; Edward was condemned for non-appearance; and Guienne, by a formal sentence, was declared to be forfeited and annexed to the crown.[****]

To avoid a final break between the nations, the king sent his brother, Edmond, the Earl of Lancaster, to Paris. Since this prince was married to the queen of Navarre, who was the mother of Jane, the queen of France, he seemed like the right person to find ways to resolve the conflict. Jane claimed she would help mediate, while Mary, the dowager queen, pretended to have the same friendly intentions. The two princesses told Edmond that the hardest issue to resolve was the matter of honor regarding Philip, who felt insulted by the actions of his sub-vassals in Guienne. However, if Edward agreed to grant him control of that province, he would believe his honor was restored, would commit to returning Guienne immediately, and would accept minimal compensation for the other grievances. The king was consulted, and since he was facing the imminent threat of war with the Scots, which he saw as the more pressing matter, this shrewd prince, driven by his strong desire to conquer that nation, allowed himself to be fooled by such a blatant scheme. He instructed his brother to sign and implement the treaty with the two queens; Philip formally promised to fulfill his part of it, and the king’s summons to appear in the French court was retracted. However, as soon as the French king took possession of Guienne, the summons was reinstated; Edward was found guilty of not appearing; and Guienne was officially declared forfeited and added to the crown.

     * Trivet, p. 275.

     ** Trivet, p. 276.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 619, 620. Walsing. p. 61. Heming. vol.
     i p. 42, 43. Trivet, p. 277.

     **** Rymer vol. ii p. 620, 622. Walsing. p. 61. Trivet, p. 278.
     * Trivet, p. 275.

     ** Trivet, p. 276.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 619, 620. Walsing. p. 61. Heming. vol.
     i p. 42, 43. Trivet, p. 277.

     **** Rymer vol. ii p. 620, 622. Walsing. p. 61. Trivet, p. 278.

Edward, fallen into a like snare with that which he himself had spread for the Scots, was enraged; and the more so, as he was justly ashamed of his own conduct, in being so egregiously overreached by the court of France. Sensible of the extreme difficulties which he should encounter in the recovery of Gascony, where he had not retained a single place in his hands, he endeavored to compensate that loss by forming alliances with several princes, who, he projected, should attack France on all quarters, and make a diversion of her forces. Adolphus de Nassau, king of the Romans, entered into a treaty with him for that purpose;[*] as did also Amadæus, count of Savoy, the archbishop of Cologne, the counts of Gueldre and Luxembourg; the duke of Brabant and count of Barre, who had married his two daughters, Margaret and Eleanor: but these alliances were extremely burdensome to his narrow revenues, and proved in the issue entirely ineffectual. More impression was made on Guienne by an English army, which he completed by emptying the jails of many thousand thieves and robbers, who had been confined there for their crimes. So low had the profession of arms fallen, and so much had it degenerated from the estimation in which it stood during the vigor of the feudal system!

Edward, caught in a trap similar to the one he set for the Scots, was furious; and even more so since he felt justifiably ashamed of being so badly outmaneuvered by the French court. Aware of the immense challenges he faced in reclaiming Gascony, where he no longer held any territory, he tried to make up for that loss by forming alliances with several princes, hoping they would attack France from all sides and distract its forces. Adolphus de Nassau, king of the Romans, agreed to a treaty with him for that purpose;[*] as did Amadæus, count of Savoy, the archbishop of Cologne, the counts of Gueldre and Luxembourg, the duke of Brabant, and the count of Barre, who had married his two daughters, Margaret and Eleanor. However, these alliances were incredibly taxing on his limited finances and ultimately proved to be completely ineffective. A more significant impact on Guienne came from an English army, which he built by releasing thousands of thieves and robbers from prison who had been incarcerated for their crimes. The state of the military profession had deteriorated so much, and it had fallen far from the respect it once commanded during the heyday of the feudal system!

1295.

1295.

The king himself was detained in England, first by contrary winds,[**] then by his apprehensions of a Scottish invasion, and by a rebellion of the Welsh, whom he repressed and brought again under subjection.[***] The army which he sent to Guienne, was commanded by his nephew, John de Bretagne, earl of Richmond, and under him by St. John, Tibetot, De Vere, and other officers of reputation;[****] who made themselves masters of the town of Bayonne, as well as of Bourg, Blaye, Reole, St. Severe, and other places, which straitened Bordeaux, and cut off its communication both by sea and land.

The king was stuck in England because of bad winds, then because he was worried about a Scottish invasion and a rebellion from the Welsh, which he managed to suppress and bring back under control. The army he sent to Guienne was led by his nephew, John de Bretagne, earl of Richmond, and included officers like St. John, Tibetot, De Vere, and others who were well-known; they took control of the town of Bayonne, as well as Bourg, Blaye, Reole, St. Severe, and other areas that surrounded Bordeaux, cutting off its access by both sea and land.

     * Heming. vol, i. p. 51.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 622.

     *** Walsing. p. 62. Heming. vol. i. p. 55. Trivet, p. 282.
     Chron Dunst. vol. ii. p. 622.

     **** Trivet, p. 279.
     * Heming. vol, i. p. 51.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 622.

     *** Walsing. p. 62. Heming. vol. i. p. 55. Trivet, p. 282.
     Chron Dunst. vol. ii. p. 622.

     **** Trivet, p. 279.

The favor which the Gascon nobility bore to the English government facilitated these conquests, and seemed to promise still greater successes; but this advantage was soon lost by the misconduct of some of the officers. Philip’s brother, Charles de Valois, who commanded the French armies, having laid siege to Podensac, a small fortress near Reole, obliged Giffard, the governor, to capitulate; and the articles though favorable to the English, left all the Gascons prisoners at discretion, of whom about fifty were hanged by Charles as rebels; a policy by which he both intimidated that people, and produced an irreparable breach between them and the English.[*] That prince immediately attacked Reole, where the earl of Richmond himself commanded; and as the place seemed not tenable, the English general drew his troops to the water side, with an intention of embarking with the greater part of the army. The enraged Gascons fell upon his rear, and at the same time opened their gates to the French, who, besides making themselves masters of the place, took many prisoners of distinction. St. Severe was more vigorously defended by Hugh de Vere, son of the earl of Oxford; but was at last obliged to capitulate. The French king, not content with these successes in Gascony, threatened England with an invasion; and, by a sudden attempt, his troops took and burnt Dover,[**] but were obliged soon after to retire. And in order to make a greater diversion of the English force, and engage Edward in dangerous and important wars, he formed a secret alliance with John Baliol, king of Scotland; the commencement of that strict union which, during so many centuries, was maintained, by mutual interests and necessities, between the French and Scottish nations. John confirmed this alliance by stipulating a marriage between his eldest son and the daughter of Charles de Valois.[***]

The support the Gascon nobility had for the English government helped these conquests and looked promising for even greater successes; however, this advantage was quickly lost due to the mistakes of some officers. Philip's brother, Charles de Valois, who led the French armies, laid siege to Podensac, a small fortress near Reole, forcing Giffard, the governor, to surrender. Although the terms were favorable to the English, they left all the Gascons as prisoners to be dealt with, and about fifty were hanged by Charles as rebels. This tactic intimidated the population and created an irreparable rift between them and the English. That prince then attacked Reole, where the Earl of Richmond was in command. Seeing that the location was not defensible, the English general moved his troops to the waterfront, planning to embark with most of the army. The furious Gascons attacked from the rear while simultaneously opening the gates to the French, who not only took control of the fortress but also captured many notable prisoners. St. Severe was defended more fiercely by Hugh de Vere, son of the Earl of Oxford, but ultimately had to surrender. The French king, not satisfied with these victories in Gascony, threatened England with an invasion and, in a surprise move, his troops captured and burned Dover, though they had to retreat shortly after. To further divert the English military and draw Edward into risky and significant wars, he secretly allied with John Baliol, king of Scotland; this marked the beginning of a strong partnership that would last for centuries, driven by mutual interests and needs between the French and Scottish nations. John solidified this alliance by arranging a marriage between his eldest son and the daughter of Charles de Valois.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 49.

     ** Trivet, p. 284. Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 642.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 680, 681, 695, 697. Heming. vol. i. p.
     76. Trivet, i, 285.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 49.

     ** Trivet, p. 284. Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 642.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 680, 681, 695, 697. Heming. vol. i. p. 76. Trivet, i, 285.

The expenses attending these multiplied wars of Edward, and his preparations for war, joined to alterations which had insensibly taken place in the general state of affairs, obliged him to have frequent recourse to parliamentary supplies, introduced the lower orders of the state into the public councils, and laid the foundations of great and important changes in the government.

The costs associated with Edward's numerous wars and his military preparations, along with changes that had gradually occurred in the overall situation, forced him to often rely on parliamentary funding, brought the lower classes into public councils, and set the stage for significant and important changes in governance.

Though nothing could be worse calculated for cultivating the arts of peace, or maintaining peace itself, than the long subordination of vassalage from the king to the meanest gentleman, and the consequent slavery of the lower people, evils inseparable from the feudal system, that system was never able to fix the state in a proper warlike posture, or give it the full exertion of its power for defence, and still less for offence, against a public enemy. The military tenants, unacquainted with obedience, unexperienced in war, held a rank in the troops by their birth, not by their merits or services; composed a disorderly and consequently a feeble army; and during the few days which they were obliged by their tenures to remain in the field, were often more formidable to their own prince than to foreign powers, against whom they were assembled. The sovereigns came gradually to disuse this cumbersome and dangerous machine, so apt to recoil upon the hand which held it; and exchanging the military service for pecuniary supplies, enlisted forces by means of a contract with particular officers, (such as those the Italians denominate “condottieri,”) whom they dismissed at the end of the war.[*] The barons and knights themselves often entered into these engagements with the prince; and were enabled to fill their bands, both by the authority which they possessed over their vassals and tenants, and from the great numbers of loose, disorderly people whom they found on their estates, and who willingly embraced an opportunity of gratifying their appetite for war and rapine.

Though nothing could be worse for developing peaceful arts or maintaining peace itself than the long-term subordination of vassalage from the king to the lowest gentleman, and the resulting oppression of the lower class—issues that are inseparable from the feudal system—this system was never able to establish the state in a proper military stance or fully utilize its power for defense, and even less so for offense against a common enemy. The military tenants, unfamiliar with obedience and inexperienced in warfare, held a position in the troops due to their birth rather than their merits or contributions; they formed a disorganized and, as a result, weak army. During the few days they were required by their duties to stay in the field, they were often more of a threat to their own ruler than to foreign powers for whom they were gathered. Sovereigns gradually moved away from this cumbersome and risky system, which tended to backfire on those who managed it; they replaced military service with financial support, hiring forces through contracts with specific officers (like those the Italians call “condottieri”), who they let go at the end of the war. The barons and knights also frequently formed these agreements with the prince; they were able to gather their troops using the authority they held over their vassals and tenants, and from the many unruly individuals they found on their estates, who eagerly seized the chance to fulfill their desire for war and plunder.

Meanwhile the old Gothic fabric, being neglected, went gradually to decay. Though the Conqueror had divided all the lands of England into sixty thousand knights’ fees, the number of these was insensibly diminished by various artifices; and the king at last found that, by putting the law in execution, he could assemble a small part only of the ancient force of the kingdom. It was a usual expedient for men who held of the king or great barons by military tenure, to transfer their land to the church, and receive it back by another tenure, called frankalmoigne, by which they were not bound to per form any service.[**] A law was made against this practice; but the abuse had probably gone far before it was attended to, and probably was not entirely corrected by the new statute, which, like most laws of that age, we may conjecture to have been but feebly executed by the magistrate against the perpetual interest of so many individuals. The constable and mareschal, when they mustered the armies, often in a hurry, and for want of better information, received the service of a baron for fewer knights’ fees than were due by him; and one precedent of this kind was held good against the king, and became ever after a reason for diminishing the service.[***]

Meanwhile, the old Gothic structure, being ignored, gradually fell into disrepair. Although the Conqueror had divided all the lands of England into sixty thousand knights' fees, the number of these was slowly reduced through various tricks; and in the end, the king realized that by enforcing the law, he could gather only a small fraction of the kingdom's former military strength. It was common for those who held land from the king or powerful barons through military tenure to transfer their land to the church and then get it back under a different tenure called frankalmoigne, which freed them from any obligation to provide service.[**] A law was enacted against this practice; however, the abuse had likely gone on for a long time before it was addressed, and it probably wasn't completely eliminated by the new statute, which, like most laws of that time, was likely weakly enforced by officials due to the ongoing interests of many individuals. The constable and mareschal, when assembling the armies—often in a rush and lacking better information—accepted the service of a baron for fewer knights' fees than he was supposed to provide; and one precedent of this kind was deemed valid against the king, which subsequently provided a reason for reducing the required service.[***]

     * Cotton’s Abr. p. 11.

     ** Madox, Baronia Anglica, p. 114.

     *** Madox, Bar. Ang. p 115.
     * Cotton's Abr. p. 11.

     ** Madox, Baronia Anglica, p. 114.

     *** Madox, Bar. Ang. p 115.

The rolls of knights’ fees were inaccurately kept; no care was taken to correct them before the armies were summoned into the field,[*] it was then too late to think of examining records and charters; and the service was accepted on the footing which the vassal himself was pleased to acknowledge, after all the various subdivisions and conjunctions of property had thrown an obscurity on the nature and extent of his tenure.[**] It is easy to judge of the intricacies which would attend disputes of this kind with individuals; when even the number of military fees belonging to the church, whose property way fixed and unalienable, became the subject of controversy; and we find in particular, that when the bishop of Durham was charged with seventy knights’ fees for the aid levied on occasion of the marriage of Henry II.‘s daughter to the duke of Saxony, the prelate acknowledged ten, and disowned the other sixty.[***] It is not known in what mariner this difference was terminated; but had the question been concerning an armament to defend the kingdom, the bishop’s service would probably have been received without opposition for ten fees; and this rate must also have fixed all his future payments. Pecuniary scutages, therefore, diminished as much as military services;[****] other methods of filling the exchequer, as well as the armies, must be devised: new situations produced new laws and institutions; and the great alterations in the finances and military power of the crown, as well as in private property, were the source of equal innovations in every part of the legislature or civil government.

The records of knights’ fees were poorly maintained; no effort was made to correct them before the armies were called to the field. By that time, it was too late to think about checking documents and charters, and the service was accepted based on what the vassal himself claimed, especially after all the various divisions and combinations of property created confusion about the nature and extent of his tenure. It’s easy to see the complexities that would arise from disputes like this with individuals; even the number of military fees owed by the church, whose property was fixed and inalienable, became a topic of disagreement. For instance, when the bishop of Durham was charged for seventy knights’ fees for the aid raised for the marriage of Henry II’s daughter to the duke of Saxony, the bishop acknowledged ten fees and denied the other sixty. It’s unclear how this disagreement was resolved; however, had the issue concerned a military action to defend the kingdom, the bishop’s service might have been accepted without question for those ten fees, and that rate would have set his future obligations as well. Consequently, monetary scutages declined as much as military services did; other ways to fund the treasury, as well as the armies, had to be developed. New situations brought about new laws and institutions, and the significant changes in the crown's finances and military power, as well as in private property, led to equally significant innovations in all areas of legislation and civil government.

     * We hear only of one king, Henry II., who took this pains;
     and the record, called Liber Niger Scaccarii, was the result
     of it.

     ** Madox, Bar. Ang. p. 116.

     *** Madox, p. 122. Hist. of the Exch. p. 404.

     **** In order to pay the sum of one hundred thousand marks, as
     King Richard’s ransom, twenty shillings were imposed on each
     knight’s fee. Had the fees remained on the original footing,
     as settled by the Conqueror, this scutage would have
     amounted to ninety thousand marks, which was nearly the sum
     required; but we find that other grievous taxes were imposed
     to complete it; a certain proof that many frauds and abuses
     had prevailed in the roll of knights fees.
     * We only hear about one king, Henry II, who took this on; 
     and the record, known as the Liber Niger Scaccarii, was the result 
     of it.

     ** Madox, Bar. Ang. p. 116.

     *** Madox, p. 122. Hist. of the Exch. p. 404.

     **** To pay the sum of one hundred thousand marks for King Richard's ransom, twenty shillings were charged on each knight's fee. If the fees had stayed at the original level set by the Conqueror, this tax would have come to ninety thousand marks, which was close to the amount needed; however, we see that other heavy taxes were added to meet it, proving that many frauds and abuses had occurred in the list of knight's fees.

The exorbitant estates conferred by the Norman on his barons and chieftains, remained not long entire and unimpaired. The landed property was gradually shared out into more hands; and those immense baronies were divided, either by provisions to younger children, by partitions among co-heirs, by sale, or by escheating to the king, who gratified a great number of his courtiers by dealing them out among them in smaller portions. Such moderate estates, as they required economy, and confined the proprietors to live at home, were better calculated for duration; and the order of knights and small barons grew daily more numerous, and began to form a very respectable rank or order in the state. As they were all immediate vassals of the crown by military tenure, they were, by the principles of the feudal law, equally entitled with the greatest barons to a seat in the national or general councils; and this right, though regarded as a privilege which the owners would not entirely relinquish, was also considered as a burden which they desired to be subjected to on extraordinary occasions only. Hence it was provided in the charter of King John, that, while the great barons were summoned to the national council by a particular writ, the small barons, under which appellation the knights were also comprehended, should only be called by a general summons of the sheriff. The distinction between great and small barons, like that between rich and poor, was not exactly defined; but, agreeably to the inaccurate genius of that age, and to the simplicity of ancient government, was left very much to be determined by the discretion of the king and his ministers. It was usual for the prince to require, by a particular summons, the attendance of a baron in one parliament, and to neglect him in future parliaments;[*] nor was this uncertainty ever complained of as an injury. He attended when required: he was better pleased on other occasions to be exempted from the burden: and as he was acknowledged to be of the same order with the greatest barons, it gave them no surprise to see him take his seat in the great council, whether he appeared of his own accord, or by a particular summons from the king. The barons by writ, therefore, began gradually to intermix themselves with the barons by tenure; and, as Camden tells us,[**] from an ancient manuscript now lost, that after the battle of Evesham, a positive law was enacted, prohibiting every baron from appearing in parliament, who was not invited thither by a particular summons, the whole baronage of England held thenceforward their seat by writ, and this important privilege of their tenures was in effect abolished. Only where writs had been regularly continued for some time in one great family, the omission of them would have been regarded as an affront, and even as an injury.

The huge estates granted by the Normans to their barons and chieftains didn’t stay intact for long. The land was gradually divided among more people; those vast baronies were split up, either through provisions for younger children, partitions among co-heirs, sales, or escheating to the king, who pleased many of his courtiers by redistributing them in smaller portions. These smaller estates, which required more management and kept the owners living at home, were more likely to last over time; as a result, the ranks of knights and small barons grew larger and started to form a more respected status in society. Since they were all direct vassals of the crown under military obligation, they had the same right under feudal law to a seat in national councils as the high barons. This right, seen as a privilege they wouldn’t want to give up entirely, was also viewed as a burden they preferred to take on only in extraordinary situations. Thus, King John's charter stipulated that while the great barons were summoned to the national council by a specific writ, the small barons, which included the knights, would be called only with a general summons from the sheriff. The distinction between great and small barons, much like that between rich and poor, was somewhat vague; according to the imprecise nature of that era and the simplicity of the ancient government, it was largely left to the discretion of the king and his ministers. It was common for the king to request a baron's attendance at one parliament through a specific summons and then not call him to future parliaments; this inconsistency was rarely seen as a problem. A baron would show up when asked but was generally happier to be excused from that responsibility on other occasions. Since he was recognized as being in the same rank as the larger barons, it wasn’t surprising to see him take a seat in the great council, whether he attended voluntarily or was summoned by the king. Consequently, barons summoned by writ gradually began to mix with barons by tenure; and as Camden tells us from a now-lost ancient manuscript, after the battle of Evesham, a law was established that prohibited any baron from appearing in parliament unless specifically invited by a summons. From that point on, the entire baronage of England held their seat by writ, effectively eliminating this significant privilege associated with their tenures. Only where writs had consistently been maintained in one prominent family for a while would the absence of such writs be considered an insult or a grievance.

     * Chancellor West’s Inquiry into the Manner of creating
     Peers p. 43, 46, 47, 55.

     ** In Britain. p 122.
     * Chancellor West's Inquiry into How to Create Peers p. 43, 46, 47, 55.

     ** In Britain. p 122.

A like alteration gradually took place in the order of earls who were the highest rank of barons. The dignity of an earl, like that of a baron, was anciently territorial and official:[*] he exercised jurisdiction within his county: he levied the third of the fines to his own profit: he was at once a civil and a military magistrate: and though his authority, from the time of the Norman conquest, was hereditary in England, the title was so much connected with the office, that where the king intended to create a new earl, he had no other expedient than to erect a certain territory into a county or earldom, and to bestow it upon the person and his family.[**] But as the sheriffs, who were the vicegerents of the earls, were named by the king, and removable at pleasure, he found them more dependent upon him; and endeavored to throw the whole authority and jurisdiction of the office into their hands. This magistrate was at the head of the finances, and levied all the king’s rents within the county: he assessed at pleasure the talliages of the inhabitants in royal demesne: he had usually committed to him the management of wards, and often of escheats: he presided in the lower courts of judicature: and thus, though inferior to the earl in dignity, he was soon considered, by this union of the judicial and fiscal powers, and by the confidence reposed in him by the king, as much superior to him in authority, and undermined his influence within his own jurisdiction.[***] It became usual, in creating an earl, to give him a fixed salary, commonly about twenty pounds a year, in lieu of his third of the fines: the diminution of his power kept pace with the retrenchment of his profit: and the dignity of earl, instead of being territorial and official, dwindled into personal and titular. Such were the mighty alterations which already had fully taken place, or were gradually advancing, in the house of peers; that is, in the parliament: for there seems anciently to have been no other house.

A similar change gradually occurred in the order of earls, who were the highest-ranking barons. The status of an earl, like that of a baron, was originally tied to land and authority:[*] he had the power to enforce laws in his county, kept a third of fines for himself, served as both a civil and military leader, and although his authority became hereditary in England after the Norman conquest, the title was closely linked to the role. When the king wanted to create a new earl, he simply had to designate a certain area as a county or earldom and give it to that person and their family.[**] However, since sheriffs, who acted as the earls' deputies, were appointed by the king and could be removed at will, the king found them more loyal to him and sought to transfer most of the authority and responsibilities of the earls to them. This official managed finances and collected all the king’s taxes in the county, had the power to impose taxes on the inhabitants in royal land, usually oversaw guardianships, and often dealt with property that had no clear owner. He presided over lower courts, and although he was technically of lower rank than the earl, this combination of judicial and financial power, along with the king's trust in him, made him seem much more powerful than the earl and weakened the earl's influence in his own territory.[***] It became common when appointing an earl to give him a fixed salary, usually around twenty pounds a year, instead of his third of the fines: the decrease in his power matched the reduction in his income, and the status of earl shifted from being tied to land and office to becoming more personal and titular. Such significant changes had already occurred or were gradually happening in the House of Peers; that is, in Parliament, as there seemingly was no other house in ancient times.

     * Spel. Gloss, in voce Comes.

     ** Essays on British Antiquities. This practice, however,
     seems to have been more familiar in Scotland and the
     kingdoms on the continent, than in England.

     *** There are instances of princes of the blood who accepted
     of the office of sheriff. Spel. in voce Vicecomes.
     * Spel. Gloss, in voce Comes.

     ** Essays on British Antiquities. This practice, however,
     seems to have been more common in Scotland and other countries
     in Europe than in England.

     *** There are examples of royal family members who took on
     the role of sheriff. Spel. in voce Vicecomes.

But though the introduction of barons by writ, and of titular earls, had given some increase to royal authority, there were other causes which counterbalanced those innovations, and tended in a higher degree to diminish the power of the sovereign. The disuse into which the feudal militia had in a great measure fallen made the barons almost entirely forget their dependence on the crown: by the diminution of the number of knights’ fees the king had no reasonable compensation when he levied scutages, and exchanged their service for money: the alienations of the crown lands had reduced him to poverty: and above all, the concession of the Great Charter had set bounds to royal power, and had rendered it more difficult and dangerous for the prince to exert any extraordinary act of arbitrary authority. In this situation it was natural for the king to court the friendship of the lesser barons and knights, whose influence was no ways dangerous to him, and who, being exposed to oppression from their powerful neighbors, sought a legal protection under the shadow of the throne. He desired, therefore, to have their presence in parliament, where they served to control the turbulent resolutions of the great. To exact a regular attendance of the whole body would have produced confusion, and would have imposed too heavy a burden upon them. To summon only a few by writ, though it was practised and had a good effect, served not entirely the king’s purpose; because these members had no further authority than attended their personal character, and were eclipsed by the appearance of the more powerful nobility, He therefore dispensed with the attendance of most of the lesser barons in parliament; and in return for this indulgence (for such it was then esteemed) required them to choose in each county a certain number of their own body, whose charges they bore, and who, having gained the confidence, carried with them, of course, the authority of the whole order. This expedient had been practised at different times in the reign of Henry III.,[*] and regularly during that of the present king. The numbers sent up by each county varied at the will of the prince:[**] they took their seat among the other peers; because by their tenure they belonged to that order:[***] the introducing of them into that house scarcely appeared an innovation: and though it was easily in the king’s power, by varying their number, to command the resolutions of the whole parliament this circumstance was little attended to in an age when force was more prevalent than laws, and when a resolution, though taken by the majority of a legal assembly, could not be executed, if it opposed the will of the more powerful minority.

But even though the introduction of barons by writ and titular earls increased royal authority to some extent, there were other factors that countered these changes and significantly weakened the power of the sovereign. The decline of the feudal militia led the barons to largely forget their dependence on the crown. The reduction in the number of knights’ fees meant that the king received little compensation when he imposed scutages and exchanged their service for money. The loss of crown lands left him financially strained. Most importantly, the granting of the Great Charter limited royal power and made it harder and riskier for the king to exercise any arbitrary authority. In this situation, it was natural for the king to seek the support of the lesser barons and knights, who posed no threat to him and, being vulnerable to oppression from their powerful neighbors, sought legal protection under the throne. He therefore wanted them to attend parliament, where they could help temper the aggressive decisions of the powerful. Insisting on full attendance from everyone would have created chaos and put too much pressure on them. Summoning only a few by writ, while it was a common practice and had positive effects, didn't completely achieve the king’s goals because these members had no real authority beyond their personal status and were overshadowed by the more powerful nobility. So, he allowed most of the lesser barons to skip parliament; in exchange for this leniency (which was considered indulgent at the time), he required them to choose a certain number of their peers in each county to represent them, covering their expenses, and who, having gained their trust, carried the authority of the whole group. This method had been used at various times during Henry III's reign and consistently during the current king's reign. The number sent from each county varied at the king's discretion; they took their seats among the other nobles because, by their tenure, they belonged to that class. Their inclusion in that house hardly seemed like a new idea, and although the king could easily control the decisions of the entire parliament by adjusting their number, this fact was largely ignored in an era where might outweighed laws, and a resolution, even if decided by the majority of a legal assembly, could not be enforced if it went against the wishes of the more powerful minority.

     *Rot. Glaus. 38. Hen. III. pp. 7. and 12. d.; as also Ret.
     Claus 12 Hen. III. m. 1. d. Prynne’s Pref. to Cotton’s
     Abridgment.

     ** Brady’s Answer to Petyt, from the records, p 151.

     *** Brady’s Treatise of Boroughs, App. No. 13.
     *Rot. Glaus. 38. Hen. III. pp. 7. and 12. d.; as also Ret. Claus 12 Hen. III. m. 1. d. Prynne’s Pref. to Cotton’s Abridgment.

     ** Brady’s Answer to Petyt, from the records, p 151.

     *** Brady’s Treatise of Boroughs, App. No. 13.

But there were other important consequences, which followed the diminution and consequent disuse of the ancient feudal militia. The king’s expense in levying and maintaining a military force for every enterprise, was increased beyond what his narrow revenues were able to bear: as the scutages of his military tenants, which were accepted in lieu of their personal service, had fallen to nothing, there were no means of supply but from voluntary aids granted him by the parliament and clergy, or from the talliages which he might levy upon the towns and inhabitants in royal demesne. In the preceding year, Edward had been obliged to exact no less than the sixth of all movables from the laity, and a moiety of all ecclesiastical benefices[*] for his expedition into Poictou, and the suppression of the Welsh: and this distressful situation which was likely often to return upon him and his successors, made him think of a new device, and summon the representatives of all the boroughs to parliament. This period, which is the twenty-third of his reign, seems to be the real and true epoch of the house of commons, and the faint dawn of popular government in England. For the representatives of the counties were only deputies from the smaller barons and lesser nobility; and the former precedent of representatives from the boroughs, who were summoned by the earl of Leicester, was regarded as the act of a violent usurpation, had beer, discontinued in all the subsequent parliaments; and if such a measure had not become necessary on other accounts, that precedent was more likely to blast than give credit to it.

But there were other important consequences that followed the decline and resulting disuse of the ancient feudal militia. The king's spending on raising and maintaining a military force for each campaign increased beyond what his limited revenues could support. Since the payments from his military tenants, which were accepted instead of their personal service, had dropped to nothing, he had no way to fund his efforts except through voluntary contributions from Parliament and the clergy, or through the taxes he could impose on towns and his royal estates. In the previous year, Edward had to collect at least a sixth of all movable property from the common people and half of all ecclesiastical income for his campaign in Poictou and to suppress the Welsh. This difficult situation, which was likely to happen repeatedly for him and his successors, led him to consider a new approach and call the representatives of all the boroughs to Parliament. This period, which is the twenty-third of his reign, seems to mark the real beginning of the House of Commons and the faint emergence of popular government in England. The representatives of the counties were just delegates from the smaller barons and lesser nobility, and the earlier idea of representatives from the boroughs, who were summoned by the Earl of Leicester, was seen as a violent usurpation and had been discontinued in all subsequent parliaments. If such a measure hadn't become necessary for other reasons, that earlier example would have likely discredited rather than supported it.

     * Brady’s Treatise of Boroughs, p. 31, from the records.
     Heming vol. i. p. 52. M. West. p. 422. Ryley, p. 462
* Brady’s Treatise of Boroughs, p. 31, from the records. Heming vol. i. p. 52. M. West. p. 422. Ryley, p. 462

During the course of several years, the kings of England, in imitation of other European princes, had embraced the salutary policy of encouraging and protecting the lower and more industrious orders of the state; whom they found well disposed to obey the laws and civil magistrate, and whose ingenuity and labor furnish commodities requisite for the ornament of peace and support of war. Though the inhabitants of the country were still left at the disposal of their imperious lords, many attempts were made to give more security and liberty to citizens, and make them enjoy unmolested the fruits of their industry. Boroughs were erected by royal patent within the demesne lands; liberty of trade was conferred upon them; the inhabitants were allowed to farm, at a fixed rent, their own tolls and customs,[*] they were permitted to elect their own magistrates; justice was administered to them by these magistrates, without obliging them to attend the sheriff or county court: and some shadow of independence, by means of these equitable privileges, was gradually acquired by the people.[**] The king, however, retained still the power of levying talliage or taxes upon them at pleasure;[***] and though their poverty and the customs of the age made these demands neither frequent or exorbitant, such unlimited authority in the sovereign was a sensible check upon commerce, and was utterly incompatible with all the principles of a free government. But when the multiplied necessities of the crown produced a greater avidity for supply, the king, whose prerogative entitled him to exact it, found that he had not power sufficient to enforce his edicts, and that it was necessary, before he imposed taxes, to smooth the way for his demand, and to obtain the previous consent of the boroughs, by solicitations, remonstrances, and authority. The inconvenience of transacting this business with every particular borough was soon felt; and Edward became sensible, that the most expeditious way of obtaining supply, was to assemble the deputies of all the boroughs, to lay before them the necessities of the state, to discuss the matter in their presence, and to require their consent to the demands of their sovereign, For this reason, he issued writs to the sheriffs, enjoining them to send to parliament, along with two knights of the shire two deputies from each borough within their county,[****] and these provided with sufficient powers from their community to consent, in their name, to what he and his council should require of them.

Over several years, the kings of England, following the example of other European rulers, adopted a wise approach to support and protect the lower and more hardworking classes of society. They found these individuals generally willing to follow the laws and authorities and recognized their creativity and labor as essential for both peace and wartime needs. Although the population remained under the control of their demanding lords, numerous efforts were made to provide more security and freedom to citizens, allowing them to enjoy the benefits of their work without interference. Royal charters established boroughs within the king’s lands; they were granted trading rights; the residents could manage their own tolls and customs for a set rent; they had the right to elect their own officials; and these officials would deliver justice without requiring them to go to the sheriff or county court. Gradually, these fair privileges gave the people a sense of independence. However, the king still had the power to impose taxes whenever he wanted, and although economic conditions and the norms of the time meant that these demands were not frequent or excessive, such unrestricted authority from the crown was a clear obstacle to trade and completely contrary to the ideas of a free government. Yet, as the crown’s increasing needs led to a stronger desire for revenue, the king realized he didn't have enough power to enforce his will and needed to smooth the path for his requests by securing the prior agreement of the boroughs through persuasion, protests, and authority. The challenge of negotiating with each individual borough quickly became apparent; Edward recognized that the quickest way to gather support was to convene representatives from all the boroughs, present the state’s needs, discuss it with them, and seek their approval for the crown’s demands. For this purpose, he sent out writs to the sheriffs, instructing them to bring to parliament two knights from the shire along with two representatives from each borough in their county, empowered to agree on behalf of their community to what he and his council would require.

     * Madox, Firma Burgi, p. 21.

     ** Brady of Boroughs, App. No. I, 2, 3.

     *** The king had not only the power of talliating the
     inhabitants within his own demosnes, but that of granting to
     particular barons the power of talliating the inhabitants
     within theirs. See Brady’s Answer to Petyt, p. 118. Madox,
     Hist, of the Exch. p. 518.

     *** Writs were issued to about one hundred and twenty cities
     and boroughs.
     * Madox, Firma Burgi, p. 21.

     ** Brady of Boroughs, App. No. I, 2, 3.

     *** The king had the authority to collect taxes from the residents in his own lands, and he could also give specific barons the right to collect taxes from the residents in their areas. See Brady’s Answer to Petyt, p. 118. Madox, Hist, of the Exch. p. 518.

     *** Writs were sent out to around one hundred and twenty cities and boroughs.

“As it is a most equitable rule,” says he, in his preamble to this writ, “that what concerns all should be approved of by all; and common dangers be repelled by united efforts;”[*] a noble principle, which may seem to indicate a liberal mind in the king, and which laid the foundation of a free and an equitable government.

“As it is a very fair rule,” he says in his introduction to this writ, “that what affects everyone should be agreed upon by everyone; and common threats should be fought against with combined efforts;”[*] a great principle that may suggest a generous mindset in the king, and which established the basis for a free and just government.

After the election of these deputies by the aldermen and common council, they gave sureties for their attendance before the king and parliament: their charges were respectively borne by the borough which sent them; and they had so little idea of appearing as legislators,—a character extremely wide of their low rank and condition,[**]—that no intelligence could be more disagreeable to any borough, than to find that they must elect, or to any individual than that he was elected, to a trust from which no profit or honor could possibly be derived.[***] They composed not, properly speaking, any essential part of the parliament: they sat apart both from the barons and knights,[****] who disdained to mix with such mean personages: after they had given their consent to the taxes required of them, their business being then finished, they separated, even though the parliament still continued to sit, and to canvass the national business.[*****] And as they all consisted of men who were real burgesses of the place from which they were sent, the sheriff, when he found no person of abilities or wealth sufficient for the office, often used the freedom of omitting particular boroughs in his returns; and as he received the thanks of the people for this indulgence, he gave no displeasure to the court, who levied on all the boroughs, without distinction, the tax agreed to by the majority of deputies.[******]

After the election of these representatives by the aldermen and common council, they provided guarantees for their attendance before the king and parliament. The costs were covered by the borough that sent them, and they had such little understanding of being seen as lawmakers—a role far removed from their low status—that no news could be more unwelcome to any borough than having to elect someone, or to any individual than being chosen, for a position that offered no benefit or prestige. They didn’t really form any essential part of parliament; they sat separately from the barons and knights, who looked down on mingling with such lowly individuals. Once they consented to the taxes asked of them, their role was done, and they left, even though parliament continued its work and discussions on national issues. Since they were all actual residents of the places they represented, the sheriff, when he found no one qualified or wealthy enough for the position, often chose to skip certain boroughs in his reports, and as he received gratitude from the people for this leniency, he didn’t upset the court, which imposed the same tax on all boroughs, regardless of their representatives.

     * Brady of Boroughs, p. 25, 33, from the records. The writs
     of the parliament immediately preceding, remain: and the
     return of knights is there required, but not a word of the
     boroughs: a demonstration that this was the very year in
     which they commenced. In the year immediately preceding, the
     taxes were levied by a seeming free consent of each
     particular borough, beginning with London. Brady of
     Boroughs, p. 31, 32, 33, from the records. Also his Answer
     to Petyt, p. 40, 41.

     ** Reiiquia Spel. p. 64. Prynne’s Pref. to Cotton’s Abridg.
     and the Abridg. passim.

     *** Brady of Boroughs, p. 59, 60.

     **** Brady of Boroughs, p. 37, 38, from the records, and
     Append. p. 19. Also his Append, to his Answer to Petyt,
     Record. And his gloss. in verb. Communitas regn. p. 33.
     Abridg. p. 14.

     ****** Bradv of Boroughs, p. 52, from the records. There is
     even an instance in the reign of Edward III., when the king
     named all the deputies. Brady’s Answer to Petyt, p. 161. If
     he fairly named the most considerable and creditable
     burgesses, little exception would be taken; as their
     business was not to check the king, but to reason with him,
     and consent to his demands. It was not till the reign of
     Richard II. that the sheriffs were deprived of the power of
     omitting boroughs at pleasure. See Stat. at large, 5th
     Richard II. cap. iv.
     * Brady of Boroughs, p. 25, 33, from the records. The orders from the parliament right before this still exist, and it requires the return of knights, but there’s no mention of the boroughs: this shows that this was the year they got started. The year before, the taxes were collected by what appeared to be the voluntary agreement of each individual borough, starting with London. Brady of Boroughs, p. 31, 32, 33, from the records. Also his Answer to Petyt, p. 40, 41.

     ** Reiiquia Spel. p. 64. Prynne’s Pref. to Cotton’s Abridg. and the Abridg. passim.

     *** Brady of Boroughs, p. 59, 60.

     **** Brady of Boroughs, p. 37, 38, from the records, and Append. p. 19. Also his Append, to his Answer to Petyt, Record. And his gloss. in verb. Communitas regn. p. 33. Abridg. p. 14.

     ****** Brady of Boroughs, p. 52, from the records. There’s even an example from the reign of Edward III, when the king named all the deputies. Brady’s Answer to Petyt, p. 161. If he reasonably named the most significant and reputable burgesses, there wouldn’t be much objection; their role was not to oppose the king but to discuss matters with him and agree to his requests. It wasn’t until the reign of Richard II that the sheriffs lost the power to omit boroughs at will. See Stat. at large, 5th Richard II. cap. iv.

The union, however, of the representatives from the boroughs gave gradually more weight to the whole order; and it became customary for them, in return for the supplies which they granted, to prefer petitions to the crown for the redress of any particular grievance, of which they found reason to complain. The more the king’s demands multiplied, the faster these petitions increased both in number and authority; and the prince found it difficult to refuse men whose grants had supported his throne, and to whose assistance he might so soon be again obliged to have recourse. The commons, however, were still much below the rank of legislators.[*] 4 Their petitions, though they received a verbal assent from the throne, were only the rudiments of laws: the judges were afterwards intrusted with the power of putting them into form. and the king, by adding to them the sanction of his authority, and that sometimes without the assent of the nobles, bestowed validity upon them. The age did not refine so much as to perceive the danger of these irregularities. No man was displeased that the sovereign, at the desire of any class of men, should issue an order which appeared only to concern that class; and his predecessors were so near possessing the whole legislative power, that he gave no disgust by assuming it in this seemingly inoffensive manner. But time and further experience gradually opened men’s eyes, and corrected these abuses. It was found that no laws could be fixed for one order of men without affecting the whole; and that the force and efficacy of laws depended entirely on the terms employed in wording them. The house of peers, therefore, the most powerful order in the state, with reason, expected that their assent should be expressly granted to all public ordinances:[**]

The union of representatives from the boroughs gradually added more weight to the whole group. It became common for them, in exchange for the resources they provided, to submit petitions to the crown for addressing specific grievances they felt needed attention. As the king’s demands grew, these petitions multiplied in number and influence. It became hard for the prince to say no to those whose support had upheld his throne, especially since he might soon need their help again. However, the commons were still far from being recognized as legislators. Their petitions, while getting a verbal agreement from the throne, were just the beginning of laws: the judges were later given the task of formalizing them. The king, by adding his authority to these petitions—sometimes without the approval of the nobles—gave them legitimacy. The society of the time didn’t quite recognize the risks of these irregular practices. No one minded that the sovereign could issue orders at the request of any group, as these seemed to only affect that group. His predecessors were so close to having complete legislative power that he didn’t cause any offense by taking it on in what seemed like a harmless way. But over time, people's perspectives shifted, and these issues were addressed. It became clear that laws applied to one group would inevitably impact everyone, and the effectiveness of laws relied heavily on how they were worded. The house of peers, therefore, the most powerful assembly in the state, reasonably expected that their approval would be explicitly required for all public regulations.

     * See note D, at the end of the volume.

     ** In those instances found in Cotton’s Abridgment, where
     the king appears to answer of himself the petitions of the
     commons, he probably exerted no more than that power, which
     was long inherent in the crown, of regulating matters by
     royal edicts or proclamations.
     * See note D, at the end of the volume.

     ** In the cases mentioned in Cotton’s Abridgment, where the king seems to personally respond to the petitions of the commons, he likely only exercised the power that has traditionally belonged to the crown, which is to manage matters through royal edicts or proclamations.

But no durable or general statute seems ever to have been made by the king from the petition of the commons alone, without the assent of the peers. It is more likely that the peers alone without the commons, would enact statutes, and in the reign of Henry V., the commons required, that no laws should be framed merely upon their petitions, unless the statutes were worded by themselves, and had passed their house in the form of a bill.[*]

But it doesn’t seem like the king ever created a lasting or general law based solely on the requests of the common people, without the approval of the nobles. It’s more likely that the nobles, without the common people, would make laws. During Henry V’s reign, the common people insisted that no laws should be made just from their petitions, unless the laws were written by them and had passed their house as a bill.[*]

But as the same causes which had produced a partition of property continued still to operate, the number of knights and lesser barons, or what the English call the gentry, perpetually increased, and they sunk into a rank still more inferior to the great nobility. The equality of tenure was lost in the great inferiority of power and property; and the house of representatives from the counties was gradually separated from that of the peers, and formed a distinct order in the state.[**] The growth of commerce, meanwhile, augmented the private wealth and consideration of the burgesses; the frequent demands of the crown increased their public importance; and as they resembled the knights of shires in one material circumstance, that of representing particular bodies of men, it no longer appeared unsuitable to unite them together in the same house, and to confound their rights and privileges.[***] 5 Thus the third estate that of the commons, reached at last its present form; and as the country gentlemen made thenceforwards no scruple of appearing as deputies from the boroughs, the distinction between the members was entirely lost, and the lower house acquired thence a great accession of weight and importance in the kingdom. Still, however, the office of this estate was very different from that which it has since exercised with so much advantage to the public. Instead of checking and controlling the authority of the king, they were naturally induced to adhere to him, as the great fountain of law and justice, and to support him against the power of the aristocracy, which at once was the source of oppression to themselves, and disturbed him in the execution of the laws. The king, in his turn, gave countenance to an order of men so useful and so little dangerous: the peers also were obliged to pay them some consideration: and by this means the third estate, formerly so abject in England, as well as in all other European nations, rose by slow degrees to their present importance; and in their progress made arts and commerce, the necessary attendants of liberty and equality, flourish in the kingdom.[****] 6

But as the same factors that led to the division of property continued to influence society, the number of knights and lesser barons, or what the English refer to as the gentry, kept growing, and they fell into a position even lower than the great nobility. The equality of land ownership was lost in the vast disparity of power and wealth; and the house of representatives from the counties gradually became separate from that of the peers, forming a distinct order in the state. Meanwhile, the rise of commerce increased the private wealth and status of the burgesses; the frequent demands from the crown enhanced their public significance; and since they represented specific groups of people, it no longer seemed inappropriate to bring them together in the same house, blending their rights and privileges. 5 Thus, the third estate, that of the commons, ultimately took its current form; and as the country gentlemen no longer hesitated to present themselves as representatives from the boroughs, the distinction between the members completely disappeared, and the lower house gained significant weight and importance in the kingdom. Still, the role of this estate was very different from the one it holds today with so many benefits for the public. Instead of checking and balancing the king's authority, they were naturally inclined to support him as the great source of law and justice, and to back him against the power of the aristocracy, which oppressed them and hindered the enforcement of laws. The king, in turn, favored a group of people who were helpful and posed little threat: the peers were also obliged to give them some regard; thus, the third estate, once so lowly in England as well as in all other European nations, gradually rose to its current significance; and in its advancement, it helped arts and commerce, the necessary companions of liberty and equality, thrive in the kingdom. 6

     * Brady’s Answer to Petyt, p. 85, from the records.

     ** Cotton’s Abridgment, p. 13.

     *** See note E, at the end of the volume.

     **** See note F, at the end of the volume.
     * Brady's Answer to Petyt, p. 85, from the records.

     ** Cotton's Abridgment, p. 13.

     *** See note E, at the end of the volume.

     **** See note F, at the end of the volume.

What sufficiently proves that the commencement of the house of burgesses, who are the true commons, was not an affair of chance, but arose from the necessities of the present situation, is, that Edward, at the very same time, summoned deputies from the inferior clergy, the first that ever met in England,[*] and he required them to impose taxes on their constituents for the public service. Formerly the ecclesiastical benefices bore no part of the burdens of the state: the pope indeed of late had often levied impositions upon them: he had sometimes granted this power to the sovereign:[**] the king himself had in the preceding year exacted, by menaces and violence, a very grievous tax of half the revenues of the clergy: but as this precedent was dangerous, and could not easily be repeated in a government which required the consent of the subject to any extraordinary resolution, Edward found it more prudent to assemble a lower house of convocation, to lay before them his necessities, and to ask some supply. But on this occasion he met with difficulties. Whether that the clergy thought themselves the most independent body in the kingdom, or were disgusted by the former exorbitant impositions, they absolutely refused their assent to the king’s demand of a fifth of their movables; and it was not till a second meeting that, on their persisting in this refusal, he was willing to accept of a tenth. The barons and knights granted him, without hesitation, an eleventh; the burgesses, a seventh. But the clergy still scrupled to meet on the king’s writ, lest by such an instance of obedience they should seem to acknowledge the authority of the temporal power: and this compromise was at last fallen upon, that the king should issue his writ to the archbishop; and that the archbishop should, in consequence of it, summon the clergy, who, as they then appeared to obey their spiritual superior, no longer hesitated to meet in convocation. This expedient, however, was the cause why the ecclesiastics were separated into two houses of convocation, under their several archbishops, and formed not one estate, as in other countries of Europe; which was at first the king’s intention.[***] We now return to the course of our narration.

What clearly shows that the start of the House of Burgesses, which represents the true common people, wasn't just a coincidence but was driven by the needs of the time, is that Edward simultaneously summoned deputies from the lower clergy, the first assembly of its kind in England,[*] and required them to impose taxes on their constituents for public needs. Previously, church benefices didn't contribute to the state's burdens; although the pope had recently imposed taxes on them and sometimes granted this authority to the sovereign, he had. The king himself had exacted a heavy tax of half the clergy's income the previous year through threats and force, but since that precedent was risky and hard to repeat in a government that needed citizen consent for extraordinary actions, Edward wisely decided to convene a lower house of convocation to share his needs and request support. However, he faced challenges during this process. Whether the clergy viewed themselves as the most independent group in the kingdom or were put off by prior heavy taxes, they completely refused the king’s request for a fifth of their movable assets; it wasn't until a second meeting, after they maintained this refusal, that he agreed to accept a tenth. The barons and knights quickly granted him an eleventh, while the burgesses offered a seventh. Yet, the clergy still hesitated to meet on the king’s request, fearing that doing so would imply recognition of the temporal authority. Eventually, they came to a compromise: the king would issue his writ to the archbishop, who would then summon the clergy, enabling them to meet in convocation under their spiritual authority without hesitation. This solution, however, led to the division of the clergy into two houses of convocation under their respective archbishops, rather than forming a single estate like in other European countries, which was initially the king's intent.[***] We now return to the course of our narration.

     * Archbishop Wake’s State of the Church of England, p. 235
     Brady of Burroughs, p. 34. Gilbert’s Hist, of the Buch. p
     46.

     ** Ann. Waverl. p. 227, 228. T. Wykes, p. 99, 120.

     *** Gilbert’s Hist, of the Buch. p 51, 54.
     * Archbishop Wake’s State of the Church of England, p. 235  
     Brady of Burroughs, p. 34. Gilbert’s Hist, of the Buch. p  
     46.

     ** Ann. Waverl. p. 227, 228. T. Wykes, p. 99, 120.

     *** Gilbert’s Hist, of the Buch. p 51, 54.

Edward, conscious of the reasons of disgust which he had given to the king of Scots, informed of thu dispositions of that people, and expecting the most violent effects of their resentment, which he knew he had so well merited, employed the supplies granted him by his people in making preparations against the hostilities of his northern neighbor. When in this situation, he received intelligence of the treaty secretly concluded between John and Philip; and though uneasy at this concurrence of a French and Scottish war he resolved not to encourage his enemies by a pusillanimous behavior, or by yielding to their united efforts.

Edward, aware of the reasons for the disgust he had caused the king of Scots, informed about the attitudes of that people, and anticipating the strong backlash from them, which he knew he had fully earned, used the resources provided by his people to prepare for the hostilities from his northern neighbor. While in this situation, he learned about the secret treaty between John and Philip; despite feeling uneasy about the combination of a French and Scottish war, he decided not to weaken himself by acting cowardly or yielding to their combined forces.

1296.

1296.

He summoned John to perform the duty of a vassal, and to send him a supply of forces against an invasion from France, with which he was then threatened: he next required that the fortresses of Berwick, Jedburgh, and Roxburgh should be put into his hands as a security during the war; he cited John to appear in an English parliament to be held at Newcastle; and when none of these successive demands were complied with, he marched northward with numerous forces, thirty thousand foot and four thousand horse, to chastise his rebellious vassal. The Scottish nation, who had little reliance on the vigor and abilities of their prince, assigned him a council of twelve noblemen, in whose hands the sovereignty was really lodged, and who put the country in the best posture of which the present distractions would admit. A great army, composed of forty thousand infantry, though supported only by five hundred cavalry advanced to the frontiers; and after a fruitless attempt upon Carlisle, marched eastwards to defend those provinces which Edward was preparing to attack. But some of the most considerable of the Scottish nobles, Robert Bruce, the father and son, the earls of March and Angus, prognosticating the ruin of their country from the concurrence of intestine divisions and a foreign invasion, endeavored here to ingratiate themselves with Edward by an early submission; and the king, encouraged by this favorable incident, led his army into the enemy’s country, and crossed the Tweed without opposition at Coldstream. He then received a message from John, by which that prince, having now procured for himself and his nation Pope Celestine’s dispensation from former oaths, renounced the homage which had been done to England, and set Edward at defiance. This bravado was but ill supported by the military operations of the Scots.

He called on John to fulfill his duty as a vassal and to send him troops to defend against a looming invasion from France. He also demanded that the forts at Berwick, Jedburgh, and Roxburgh be handed over to him as security during the war. He summoned John to attend an English parliament meeting in Newcastle, and when none of these requests were met, he marched north with a large force of thirty thousand infantry and four thousand cavalry to punish his rebellious vassal. The Scottish people, who had little faith in their king's strength and abilities, appointed a council of twelve noblemen to hold real power and put the country in the best position possible given the current unrest. A large army, consisting of forty thousand foot soldiers, though only backed by five hundred cavalry, advanced to the borders. After an unsuccessful attempt on Carlisle, they moved east to defend the provinces that Edward was getting ready to attack. However, some of the key Scottish nobles, including Robert Bruce and his son, along with the earls of March and Angus, foreseeing the destruction of their nation due to internal strife and a foreign invasion, tried to win Edward's favor by submitting early. Encouraged by this development, the king led his army into enemy territory and crossed the Tweed without opposition at Coldstream. He then received a message from John, who, having obtained Pope Celestine’s dispensation from previous oaths, renounced his allegiance to England and openly defied Edward. This bravado was poorly backed by the military actions of the Scots.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 692. Walsing. p. 64. Heming. vol. i. p.
     84 Trivet, p. 286. t Heming. vol i. p. 75.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 607. Walsing. p. 66. Heming. vol. i.
     p. 92.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 692. Walsingham, p. 64. Heming, vol. i. p. 84. Trivet, p. 286. Heming, vol. i. p. 75.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 607. Walsingham, p. 66. Heming, vol. i. p. 92.

Berwick was already taken by assault: Sir William Douglas, the governor, was made prisoner: above seven thousand of the garrison were put to the sword: and Edward, elated by this great advantage, despatched Earl Warrenne with twelve thousand men to lay siege to Dunbar, which was defended by the flower of the Scottish nobility.

Berwick had already been captured: Sir William Douglas, the governor, was taken prisoner: over seven thousand of the garrison were killed: and Edward, thrilled by this significant victory, sent Earl Warrenne with twelve thousand men to besiege Dunbar, which was defended by the best of the Scottish nobility.

The Scots, sensible of the importance of this place, which, if taken, laid their whole country open to the enemy, advanced with their main army, under the command of the earls of Buchan, Lenox, and Marre, in order to relieve it. Warrenne, not dismayed at the great superiority of their number, marched out to give them battle. He attacked them with great vigor; and as undisciplined troops, when numerous, are but the more exposed to a panic upon any alarm, he soon threw them into confusion, and chased them off the field with great slaughter. The loss of the Scots is said to have amounted to twenty thousand men: the Castle of Dunbar, with all its garrison, surrendered next day to Edward, who, after the battle, had brought up the main body of the English, and who now proceeded with an assured confidence of success. The Castle of Roxburgh was yielded by James, steward of Scotland; and that nobleman, from whom is descended the royal family of Stuart, was again obliged to swear fealty to Edward. After a feeble resistance, the Castles of Edinburgh and Stirling opened their gates to the enemy. All the southern parts were instantly subdued by the English; and to enable them the better to reduce the northern, whose inaccessible situation seemed to give them some more security, Edward sent for a strong reënforcement of Welsh and Irish, who, being accustomed to a desultory kind of war, were the best fitted to pursue the fugitive Scots into the recesses of their lakes and mountains. But the spirit of the nation was already broken by their misfortunes and the feeble and timid Baliol, discontented with his own subjects, and overawed by the English, abandoned all those resources which his people might yet have possessed in this extremity. He hastened to make his submissions to Edward, he expressed the deepest penitence for his disloyalty to his liege lord; and he made a solemn and irrevocable resignation of his crown into the hands of that monarch.[*]

The Scots, aware of how crucial this location was—as its capture would expose their entire country to the enemy—moved their main army, led by the earls of Buchan, Lenox, and Marre, to rescue it. Warrenne, undeterred by their significant numbers, marched out for battle. He attacked them with great intensity, and since large, undisciplined troops are more vulnerable to panic, he quickly threw them into chaos and forced them off the field with heavy losses. It's reported that the Scots lost around twenty thousand men. The Castle of Dunbar, along with its entire garrison, surrendered to Edward the next day, who had since brought up the main English forces and now moved forward with strong confidence in his success. The Castle of Roxburgh was surrendered by James, steward of Scotland; this nobleman, an ancestor of the royal Stuart family, was compelled to swear loyalty to Edward again. After a weak resistance, the Castles of Edinburgh and Stirling opened their gates to the enemy. The English rapidly conquered all the southern regions, and to more effectively suppress the northern territories, which seemed somewhat safer due to their difficult access, Edward called for a strong reinforcement of Welsh and Irish troops, who were skilled in guerrilla warfare and best suited to chase the fleeing Scots into the depths of their lakes and mountains. However, the spirit of the nation was already crushed by their misfortunes, and the weak and fearful Baliol, unhappy with his own people and intimidated by the English, gave up whatever resources his subjects could still have relied on in this crisis. He hurried to submit to Edward, expressing deep remorse for his disloyalty to his liege lord, and solemnly and irrevocably resigned his crown into the hands of the monarch.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 718. Walsing. p. 67. Heming. vo. i p.
     99 Trivet, p. 292.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 718. Walsing. p. 67. Heming. vol. i p. 99 Trivet, p. 292.

Edward marched northwards to Aberdeen and Elgin, without meeting an enemy: no Scotchman approached him but to pay him submission and do him homage: even the turbulent Highlanders, ever refractory to their own princes, and averse to the restraint of laws, endeavored to prevent the devastation of their country, by giving him early proofs of obedience: and Edward, having brought the whole kingdom to a seeming state of tranquillity, returned to the south with his army. There was a stone to which the popular superstition of the Scots paid the highest veneration: all their kings were seated on it when they received the rite of inauguration: an ancient tradition assured them that, wherever this stone was placed, their nation should always govern: and it was carefully preserved at Scone, as the true, palladium of their monarchy, and their ultimate resource amidst all their misfortunes. Edward got possession of it, and carried it with him to England.[*] He gave orders to destroy the records, and all those monuments of antiquity which might preserve the memory of the independence of the kingdom, and refute the English claims of superiority. The Scots pretend that he also destroyed all the annals preserved in their convents: but it is not probable that a nation, so rude and unpolished, should be possessed of any history which deserves much to be regretted. The great seal of Bailol was broken; and that prince himself was carried prisoner to London, and committed to custody in the Tower. Two years after he was restored to liberty, and submitted to a voluntary banishment in France; where, without making any further attempts for the recovery of his royalty, he died in a private station. Earl Warrenne was left governor of Scotland:[**] Englishmen were intrusted with the chief offices: and Edward, flattering himself that he had attained the end of all his wishes, and that the numerous acts of fraud and violence, which he had practised against Scotland, had terminated in the final reduction of that kingdom, returned with his victorious army into England.

Edward marched north to Aberdeen and Elgin, without encountering any enemies: no Scotsman approached him except to show respect and pay homage. Even the rebellious Highlanders, who were usually resistant to their own leaders and disliked the constraints of laws, tried to protect their land from destruction by offering him early signs of loyalty. Edward, having seemingly brought the entire kingdom to a state of peace, returned south with his army. There was a stone that the Scots held in the highest regard: all their kings sat on it during their inauguration. An old tradition claimed that wherever this stone was located, their nation would always rule. It was carefully kept at Scone as a true symbol of their monarchy and a last resort in times of trouble. Edward took possession of it and brought it back to England. He ordered the destruction of records and any monuments of history that might preserve the memory of the kingdom's independence, refuting English claims of superiority. The Scots say that he also destroyed all the historical records kept in their monasteries, but it's unlikely that a nation so rough and unrefined had any history worth mourning. The great seal of Balliol was broken; and that king was taken prisoner to London and held in the Tower. Two years later he was set free and chose to go into voluntary exile in France, where, without making any more moves to reclaim his throne, he died in obscurity. Earl Warrenne was left as governor of Scotland: Englishmen were given the top positions. Edward, convinced he had achieved all his goals and that the many acts of deceit and violence he had enacted against Scotland had resulted in its complete subjugation, returned to England with his victorious army.

     * Walsing. p. 68. Trivet, p. 299.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 726. Trivet, p. 295.
     * Walsing. p. 68. Trivet, p. 299.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 726. Trivet, p. 295.

An attempt, which he made about the same time, for the recovery of Guienne, was not equally successful. He sent thither an army of seven thousand men, under the command of his brother, the earl of Lancaster. That prince gained at first some advantages over the French at Bordeaux: but he was soon after seized with a distemper, of which he died at Bayonne. The command devolved on the earl of Lincoln, who was not able to perform any thing considerable during the rest of the campaign.[*]

An attempt he made around the same time to recover Guienne was not as successful. He sent an army of seven thousand men, led by his brother, the Earl of Lancaster. This prince initially achieved some victories over the French at Bordeaux, but he soon fell ill and died in Bayonne. Command then passed to the Earl of Lincoln, who couldn’t accomplish anything significant during the rest of the campaign.[*]

But the active and ambitious spirit of Edward, while his conquests brought such considerable accessions to the English monarchy, could not be satisfied, so long as Guienne, the ancient patrimony of his family, was wrested from him by the dishonest artifices of the French monarch. Finding that the distance of that province rendered all his efforts against it feeble and uncertain, he purposed to attack France in a quarter where she appeared more vulnerable; and with this view he married his daughter Elizabeth to John, earl of Holland, and at the same time contracted an alliance with Guy, earl of Flanders, stipulated to pay him the sum of seventy-five thousand pounds, and projected an invasion with their united forces upon Philip, their common enemy.[**] He hoped that, when he himself, at the head of the English, Flemish, and Dutch armies, reënforced by his German allies, to whom he had promised or remitted considerable sums, should enter die frontiers of France, and threaten the capital itself, Philip would at last be obliged to relinquish his acquisitions, and purchase peace by the restitution of Guienne. But in order to set this great machine in movement, considerable supplies were requisite from the parliament; and Edward, without much difficulty, obtained from the barons and knights a new grant of a twelfth of all their movables, and from the boroughs that of an eighth. The great and almost unlimited power of the king over the latter, enabled him to throw the heavier part of the burden on them; and the prejudices which he seems always to have entertained against the church, on account of the former zeal of the clergy for the Mountfort faction, made him resolve to load them with still more considerable impositions, and he required of them a fifth of their movables. But he here met with an opposition, which for some time disconcerted all his measures, and engaged him in enterprises that were somewhat dangerous to him; and would have proved fatal to any of his predecessors.

But Edward's ambitious and active spirit, despite his conquests adding significant territory to the English monarchy, couldn't be satisfied as long as Guienne, his family's ancestral land, was taken from him through the deceitful tactics of the French king. Realizing that the distance of that region made his efforts against it weak and uncertain, he decided to strike at France where she seemed more vulnerable. To this end, he married his daughter Elizabeth to John, the Earl of Holland, and simultaneously formed an alliance with Guy, the Earl of Flanders. He agreed to pay him seventy-five thousand pounds and planned an invasion with their combined forces against Philip, their mutual enemy. He hoped that when he led the English, Flemish, and Dutch armies, supported by his German allies to whom he had promised significant sums, into the borders of France and threatened the capital itself, Philip would ultimately be forced to give up his gains and secure peace by returning Guienne. However, to set this grand plan in motion, he needed substantial funding from Parliament, and without much trouble, he secured from the barons and knights a new tax of a twelfth of all their movable property, and from the boroughs, one-eighth. The king's great and nearly unlimited power over the boroughs allowed him to shift much of the financial burden onto them; and his ongoing resentment towards the church, due to the clergy's earlier support for the Montfort faction, led him to impose even heavier taxes on them, requesting a fifth of their belongings. But he faced resistance here that disrupted his plans for a while and drew him into somewhat risky endeavors that could have been disastrous for any of his predecessors.

     * Homing, vol. i. p. 72, 73, 74.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 761. Walsing, p. 68.
     * Homing, vol. i. p. 72, 73, 74.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 761. Walsing, p. 68.

Boniface VIII., who had succeeded Celestine in the papal throne, was a man of the most lofty and enterprising spirit; and though not endowed with that severity of manners which commonly accompanies ambition in men of his order, he was determined to carry the authority of the tiara, and his dominion over the temporal power, to as great a height as it had ever attained in any former period. Sensible that his immediate predecessors, by oppressing the church in every province of Christendom, had extremely alienated the affections of the clergy, and had afforded the civil magistrate a pretence for laying like impositions on ecclesiastical revenues, he attempted to resume the former station of the sovereign pontiff, and to establish himself as the common protector of the spiritual order against all invaders. For this purpose he issued very early in his pontificate a general bull, prohibiting all princes from levying without his consent any taxes upon the clergy, and all clergymen from submitting to such impositions; and he threatened both of them with the penalties of excommunication in case of disobedience.[*] This important edict is said to have been procured by the solicitation of Robert de Win chelsey, archbishop of Canterbury, who intended to employ it as a rampart against the violent extortions which the church had felt from Edward, and the still greater, which that prince’s multiplied necessities gave them reason to apprehend. When a demand, therefore, was made on the clergy of a fifth of their movables, a tax which was probably much more grievous than a fifth of their revenue, as their lands were mostly stocked with their cattle, and cultivated by their villains, the clergy took shelter under the bull of Pope Boniface and pleaded conscience in refusing compliance.[**] The king came not immediately to extremities on this repulse; but after locking up all their granaries and barns, and prohibiting all rent to be paid them, he appointed a new synod, to confer with him upon his demand. The primate, not dismayed by these proofs of Edward’s resolution, here plainly told him that the clergy owed obedience to two sovereigns, their spiritual and their temporal; but their duty bound them to a much stricter attachment to the former than to the latter: they could not comply with his commands, (for such, in some measure, the requests of the crown were then deemed,) in contradiction to the express prohibition of the sovereign pontiff.[***]

Boniface VIII, who succeeded Celestine as pope, was a man with a high and ambitious spirit. Although he didn’t have the stern demeanor often seen in ambitious people of his position, he was determined to elevate the authority of the papacy and his control over secular power to heights not seen before. He understood that his immediate predecessors had alienated the clergy by oppressing the Church across Christendom, which had allowed civil authorities to impose burdens on church revenues. To counter this, he aimed to restore the authority of the pope and establish himself as the protector of the spiritual order against all invaders. Early in his papacy, he issued a general bull prohibiting all princes from taxing the clergy without his consent and forbidding clergymen from accepting such taxes, threatening both with excommunication if they disobeyed. This significant decree is said to have been pushed for by Robert de Winchelsey, the archbishop of Canterbury, who wanted to use it as a defense against the heavy extortions the Church had experienced from Edward, and the even greater ones that the king's various needs raised concerns about. When the clergy were asked to pay a fifth of their movable goods—a tax likely more burdensome than a fifth of their revenue, since most of their lands were farmed by peasants and stocked with livestock—they sought refuge under Pope Boniface's bull and claimed conscience in their refusal to comply. The king didn’t immediately escalate the situation after this rejection, but after locking away their grain and barns and halting all their rent payments, he called a new synod to discuss his demands. The archbishop, undeterred by Edward's firm stance, clearly told him that the clergy owed allegiance to two sovereigns: their spiritual and their temporal rulers, but their duty required them to prioritize the former over the latter. They could not follow his commands, which were considered demands of the crown, if it meant going against the explicit prohibition from the pope.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 706. Heming. vol. i. p. 104.

     ** Heming, vol., i. p. 107. Trivet, p. 296. Chron. Dunst.
     vol. ii p. 652

     *** Hemming. vol. i. p. 107.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 706. Heming. vol. i. p. 104.

     ** Heming, vol. i. p. 107. Trivet, p. 296. Chron. Dunst.
     vol. ii p. 652

     *** Hemming. vol. i. p. 107.

1297.

1297.

The clergy had seen, in many instances, that Edward paid little regard to those numerous privileges on which they set so high a value. He had formerly seized, in an arbitrary manner, all the money and plate belonging to the churches and convents, and had applied them to the public service;[*] and they could not but expect more violent treatment on this sharp refusal, grounded on such dangerous principles. Instead of applying to the pope for a relaxation of his bull, he resolved immediately to employ the power in his hands; and he told the ecclesiastics that, since they refused to support the civil government, they were unworthy to receive any benefit from it; and he would accordingly put them out of the protection of the laws. This vigorous measure was immediately carried into execution.[**] Orders were issued to the judges to receive no cause brought before them by the clergy; to hear and decide all causes in which they were defendants; to do every man justice against them; to do them justice against nobody.[***] The ecclesiastics soon found themselves in the most miserable situation imaginable. They could not remain in their own houses or convents for want of subsistence; if they went abroad in quest of maintenance, they were dismounted, robbed of their horses and clothes, abused by every ruffian, and no redress could be obtained by them for the most violent injury. The primate himself was attacked on the highway, was stripped of his equipage and furniture, and was at last reduced to board himself with a single servant in the house of a country clergyman.[****] The king, meanwhile, remained an indifferent spectator of all these violences: and without employing his officers in committing any immediate injury on the priests, which might have appeared invidious and oppressive, he took ample vengeance on them for their obstinate refusal of his demands. Though the archbishop issued a general sentence of excommunication against all who attacked the persons or property of ecclesiastics, it was not regarded; while Edward enjoyed the satisfaction of seeing the people become the voluntary instruments of his justice against them, and inure themselves to throw off that respect for the sacred order by which they had so long been overawed and governed.

The clergy had noticed that Edward paid little attention to the many privileges they valued so highly. He had previously taken all the money and valuables from the churches and convents in a reckless way and used them for public purposes; and they feared that they would face even harsher treatment for their sharp refusal, based on such dangerous principles. Rather than asking the pope to lift his decree, he decided to use the power he had. He told the church leaders that since they refused to support the civil government, they didn't deserve any benefits from it, and he would therefore remove their legal protection. This decisive action was immediately put into effect. Orders were sent to judges not to accept any cases brought by the clergy, to hear and rule on all cases where they were defendants, to ensure justice was served against them, and to ensure they received no justice from others. The church leaders soon found themselves in a dire situation. They could not stay in their own homes or convents due to lack of resources; if they ventured out to seek support, they were dismounted, robbed of their horses and clothing, abused by every thug, and had no way to seek justice for even the most serious injuries. The archbishop himself was attacked on the road, stripped of his belongings, and eventually had to live modestly with a single servant in the home of a local clergy member. Meanwhile, the king looked on without intervening in these acts of violence: instead of using his officers to directly harm the priests, which might have seemed unfair and oppressive, he took considerable revenge for their stubborn refusal to meet his demands. Although the archbishop declared a general excommunication against anyone who attacked the clergy's persons or property, it was ignored, while Edward reveled in seeing people willingly become his enforcers against them, gradually losing the respect for the sacred order that had long kept them in check.

     * Walsing. p. 65. Heming. vol. i. p. 51.

     ** Walsing. p. 69. Heming. vol. i. p. 107.

     *** M. West. p. 429.

     **** Heming. vol. i. p. 109.
     * Walsing. p. 65. Heming. vol. i. p. 51.

     ** Walsing. p. 69. Heming. vol. i. p. 107.

     *** M. West. p. 429.

     **** Heming. vol. i. p. 109.

The spirits of the clergy were at last broken by this harsh treatment. Besides that the whole province of York, which lay nearest the danger that still hung over them from the Scots, voluntarily, from the first, voted a fifth of their movables, the bishops of Salisbury, Ely, and some others, made a composition for the secular clergy within their dioceses; and they agreed not to pay the fifth, which would have been an act of disobedience to Boniface’s bull, but to deposit a sum equivalent in some church appointed them, whence it was taken by the king’s officers.[*] Many particular convents and clergymen made payment of a like sum, and received the king’s protection.[**] Those who had not ready money, entered into recognizances for the payment. And there was scarcely found one ecclesiastic in the kingdom who seemed willing to suffer, for the sake of religious privileges, this new species of martyrdom, the most tedious and languishing of any, the most mortifying to spiritual pride, and not rewarded by that crown of glory which the church holds up with such ostentation to her devoted adherents.

The spirits of the clergy were finally crushed by this harsh treatment. Besides that, the entire province of York, which was closest to the danger still looming from the Scots, voluntarily voted to give a fifth of their possessions. The bishops of Salisbury, Ely, and a few others came to an agreement for the secular clergy in their dioceses; they decided not to pay the fifth, as that would have been an act of disobedience to Boniface’s decree, but to deposit an equivalent amount in a designated church, from which it was collected by the king’s officials. Many individual convents and clergymen paid a similar amount and received the king’s protection. Those who didn’t have cash on hand entered into agreements to make payments later. And there was hardly an ecclesiastic in the kingdom who seemed willing to endure this new form of martyrdom for the sake of religious privileges, the most exhausting and demoralizing of all, most mortifying to spiritual pride, and not rewarded with the crown of glory that the church proudly promises to its devoted followers.

But as the money granted by parliament, though considerable, was not sufficient to supply the king’s necessities, and that levied by compositions with the clergy came in slowly, Edward was obliged, for the obtaining of further supply, to exert his arbitrary power, and to lay an oppressive hand on all orders of men in the kingdom. He limited the merchants in the quantity of wool allowed to be exported; and at the same time forced them to pay him a duty of forty shillings a sack, which was computed to be above the third of the value.[***] He seized all the rest of the wool, as well as all the leather of the kingdom, into his hands, and disposed of these commodities for his own benefit;[****] he required the sheriffs of each county to supply him with two thousand quarters of wheat, and as many of oats, which he permitted them to seize wherever they could find them: the cattle and other commodities necessary for supplying his army, were laid hold of without the consent of the owners;[*****] and though he promised to pay afterwards the equivalent of all these goods, men saw but little probability that a prince, who submitted so little to the limitations of law, could ever, amidst his multiplied necessities, be reduced to a strict observance of his engagements.

But even though the money granted by parliament was significant, it wasn't enough to meet the king's needs, and the funds collected through agreements with the clergy came in slowly. Edward was forced, to secure more funds, to use his arbitrary power and impose burdens on everyone in the kingdom. He restricted merchants on how much wool they could export and simultaneously forced them to pay him a duty of forty shillings per sack, which he calculated to be over a third of its value. He confiscated all other wool along with all the leather in the kingdom for his own use. He demanded that the sheriffs of each county provide him with two thousand quarters of wheat and the same amount of oats, which he allowed them to seize wherever they could find it. The cattle and other supplies needed for his army were taken without the owners' consent, and although he promised to compensate for all these goods later, people saw little chance that a king who disregarded legal limits could be expected to stick to his promises amid his many needs.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 108, 109. Chron. Dunst. p. 653.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 654.

     *** Walsing. p. 69. Trivet, p. 296.

     **** Heming, vol. i. p. 52, 110.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 108, 109. Chron. Dunst. p. 653.

     ** Chron. Dunst. vol. ii. p. 654.

     *** Walsing. p. 69. Trivet, p. 296.

     **** Heming, vol. i. p. 52, 110.

He showed at the same time an equal disregard to the principles of the feudal law, by which all the lands of his kingdom were held: in order to increase his army, and enable him to support that great effort which he intended to make against France, he required the attendance of every proprietor of land possessed of twenty pounds a year, even though he held not of the crown, and was not obliged by his tenure to perform any such service.[*]

He showed equal indifference to the principles of feudal law, by which all the land in his kingdom was held. To boost his army and support the major campaign he planned against France, he demanded that every landowner with an annual income of twenty pounds attend, even if they did not hold land from the crown and were not required by their tenure to provide any such service.[*]

These acts of violence and of arbitrary power, notwithstanding the great personal regard generally borne to the king, bred murmurs in every order of men; and it was not long ere some of the great nobility, jealous of their own privileges, as well as of national liberty, gave countenance and authority to these complaints. Edward assembled on the sea-coast an army which he purposed to send over to Gascony, while he himself should in person make an impression on the side of Flanders; and he intended to put these forces under the command of Humphrey Bohun, earl of Hereford, the constable, and Roger Bigod, earl of Norfolk, the mareschal of England. But these two powerful earls refused to execute his commands, and affirmed that they were only obliged by their office to attend his person in the wars. A violent altercation ensued: and the king, in the height of his passion, addressing himself to the constable, exclaimed, “Sir Earl, by God, you shall either go or hang.” “By God, Sir King,” replied Hereford, “I will neither go nor hang.”[**] And he immediately departed with the mareschal and above thirty other considerable barons.

These acts of violence and abuse of power, despite the general respect for the king, sparked discontent among all classes of people; it didn't take long for some of the powerful nobles, who were protective of their own rights and national freedom, to support these grievances. Edward gathered an army on the coast that he intended to send to Gascony, while he planned to personally launch an attack in Flanders; he meant to put these forces under the command of Humphrey Bohun, the Earl of Hereford and constable, and Roger Bigod, the Earl of Norfolk and marshal of England. However, these two influential earls refused to follow his orders and insisted that their role required only that they accompany him in battle. A heated argument broke out, and the king, in a fit of anger, turned to the constable and shouted, “Sir Earl, by God, you will either go or be hanged.” “By God, Sir King,” Hereford replied, “I will neither go nor be hanged.” And he immediately left with the marshal and over thirty other significant barons.

Upon this opposition, the king laid aside the project of an expedition against Guienne, and assembled the forces which he himself purposed to transport into Flanders. But the two earls, irritated in the contest and elated by impunity, pretending that none of their ancestors had ever served in that country, refused to perform the duty of their office in mustering the army.[***] The king, now finding it advisable to proceed with moderation, instead of attainting the earls, who possessed their dignities by hereditary right, appointed Thomas de Berkeley and Geoffrey de Geyneville to act in that emergence as constable and mareschal.[****]

Upon this disagreement, the king decided to put aside his plans for an expedition against Guienne and gathered the forces he intended to send to Flanders. However, the two earls, frustrated by the conflict and feeling untouchable, claimed that none of their ancestors had ever served in that region and refused to fulfill their duty in assembling the army.[***] The king, realizing it was better to take a measured approach instead of punishing the earls, who held their positions by hereditary right, appointed Thomas de Berkeley and Geoffrey de Geyneville to act as constable and marshal in this situation.[****]

     * Walsing. p. 69.

     ** Heming. voL i. p. 112.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 783. Walsing. p. 70.

     **** M. West, p. 430.
     * Walsing. p. 69.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 112.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 783. Walsing. p. 70.

     **** M. West, p. 430.

He endeavored to reconcile himself with the church; took the primate again into favor,[*] made him, in conjunction with Reginald de Grey, tutor to the prince, whom he intended to appoint guardian of the kingdom during his absence; and he even assembled a great number of the nobility in Westminster Hall, to whom he deigned to make an apology for his past conduct. He pleaded the urgent necessities of the crown; his extreme want of money; his engagements from honor as well as interest to support his foreign allies; and he promised, if ever he returned in safety, to redress all their grievances, to restore the execution of the laws, and to make all his subjects compensation for the losses which they had sustained. Meanwhile, he begged them to suspend their animosities; to judge of him by his future conduct, of which, he hoped, he should be more master; to remain faithful to his government, or, if he perished in the present war, to preserve their allegiance to his son and successor.[**]

He tried to make amends with the church; he brought the primate back into his good graces,[*] appointed him, along with Reginald de Grey, as the prince's tutor, whom he planned to name as guardian of the kingdom while he was away; and he even gathered a large number of the nobility in Westminster Hall, to whom he made an apology for his past actions. He cited the urgent needs of the crown; his critical lack of funds; his commitments, both honorable and practical, to support his foreign allies; and he promised that if he returned safely, he would address all their grievances, restore the enforcement of the laws, and compensate all his subjects for the losses they had suffered. In the meantime, he asked them to put aside their grievances; to judge him by his future actions, which he hoped to have more control over; to remain loyal to his government, or, if he were to die in the current war, to remain loyal to his son and successor.[**]

There were, certainly, from the concurrence of discontents among the great, and grievances of the people, materials sufficient in any other period to have kindled a civil war in England: but the vigor and abilities of Edward kept every one in awe; and his dexterity in stopping on the brink of danger, and retracting the measures to which he had been pushed by his violent temper and arbitrary principles, saved the nation from so great a calamity. The two great earls dared not to break out into open violence: they proceeded no further than framing a remonstrance, which was delivered to the king at Winchelsea, when he was ready to embark for Flanders. They there complained of the violations of the Great Charter, and that of forests; the violent seizure of corn, leather, cattle, and, above all, of wool, a commodity which they affirmed to be equal in value to half the lands of the kingdom; the arbitrary imposition of forty shillings a sack on the small quantity of wool allowed to be exported by the merchants; and they claimed an immediate redress of all these grievances.[***] The king told them that the greater part of his council were now at a distance, and without their advice he could not deliberate on measures of so great importance.[****]

There were definitely enough issues among the powerful and complaints from the people to spark a civil war in England at any other time: but Edward’s strength and skills kept everyone in check. His ability to pull back from the edge of danger, and to reverse decisions driven by his hot temper and absolute principles, prevented the nation from such a serious disaster. The two influential earls didn’t dare to resort to outright violence; instead, they only managed to draft a formal complaint, which they presented to the king at Winchelsea, just as he was about to set sail for Flanders. They complained about the breaches of the Great Charter and the regulations regarding forests; the forceful seizure of grain, leather, cattle, and especially wool, a resource they claimed was worth as much as half the land in the kingdom; the unfair tax of forty shillings per sack on the limited amount of wool allowed for export by merchants; and they demanded immediate action to address all these issues. The king replied that most of his council was away and that, without their input, he could not consider matters of such significance.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 113.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 114. M. West. p. 430.

     *** Walsing. p. 72. Heming. vol. i. p. 115. Trivet, p. 302.

     **** Walsing. p. 72. Heming. vol. i. p. 117. Trivet, p. 304.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 113.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 114. M. West. p. 430.

     *** Walsing. p. 72. Heming. vol. i. p. 115. Trivet, p. 302.

     **** Walsing. p. 72. Heming. vol. i. p. 117. Trivet, p. 304.

But the constable and mareschal, with the barons of their party resolved to take advantage of Edward’s absence and to obtain an explicit assent to their demands. When summoned to attend the parliament at London, they came with a great body of cavalry and infantry; and before they would enter the city, required that the gates should be put into their custody.[*] The primate, who secretly favored all their pretensions, advised the council to comply; and thus they became masters both of the young prince and of the resolutions of parliament. Their demands, however, were moderate, and such as sufficiently justify the purity of their intentions in all their past measures: they only required that the two charters should receive a solemn confirmation; that a clause should be added to secure the nation forever against all impositions and taxes without consent of parliament; and that they themselves, and their adherents, who had refused to attend the king into Flanders, should be pardoned for the offence, and should be again received into favor.[**] The prince of Wales and his council assented to these terms, and the charters were sent over to the king in Flanders, to be there confirmed by him. Edward felt the utmost reluctance to this measure, which, he apprehended, would for the future impose fetters on his conduct, and set limits to his lawless authority. On various pretences he delayed three days giving any answer to the deputies; and when the pernicious consequences of his refusal were represented to him, he was at last obliged, after many internal struggles, to affix his seal to the charters, as also to the clause that bereaved him of the power which he had hitherto assumed, of imposing arbitrary taxes upon the people.

But the constable and marshal, along with their baron allies, decided to take advantage of Edward’s absence and get a clear agreement to their demands. When they were called to attend the parliament in London, they arrived with a large force of cavalry and infantry; and before entering the city, they insisted that the gates be secured under their control.[*] The primate, who secretly supported their claims, advised the council to agree to this; thus, they took control of both the young prince and the decisions of parliament. Their demands were, however, reasonable and showed the integrity of their intentions in all their previous actions: they simply asked for the two charters to be formally confirmed; that a clause be added to protect the nation forever from any taxes and fees without the parliament's consent; and that they themselves, along with their supporters who had refused to join the king in Flanders, be pardoned for their offense and welcomed back into favor.[**] The prince of Wales and his council agreed to these terms, and the charters were sent to the king in Flanders for him to confirm them. Edward was extremely reluctant about this move, fearing it would limit his future actions and restrain his unchecked authority. He delayed answering the deputies for three days under various pretexts; and when the serious consequences of his refusal were pointed out to him, he ultimately had to, after much inner conflict, affix his seal to the charters, including the clause that stripped him of the power he had previously exercised to impose arbitrary taxes on the people.

That we may finish at once this interesting transaction concerning the settlement of the charters, we shall briefly mention the subsequent events which relate to it. The constable and mareschal, informed of the king’s compliance, were satisfied, and not only ceased from disturbing the government, but assisted the regency with their power against the Scots, who had risen in arms, and had thrown off the yoke of England.[***]

That we may quickly wrap up this interesting matter regarding the settlement of the charters, we will briefly outline the following events that relate to it. The constable and marshal, hearing about the king’s agreement, were satisfied and not only stopped disrupting the government but also supported the regency with their influence against the Scots, who had taken up arms and rejected English rule. [***]

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 138.

     ** Walsing, p. 73. Heming. vol. i. p. 138, 139 140, 141.
     Trivet, p. 308.

     *** Walsing, p. 74. Heming. vol. i. p. 143.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 138.

     ** Walsing, p. 73. Heming. vol. i. p. 138, 139 140, 141.
     Trivet, p. 308.

     *** Walsing, p. 74. Heming. vol. i. p. 143.

But being sensible that the smallest pretence would suffice to make Edward retract these detested laws, which, though they had often received the sanction both of king and parliament, and had been acknowledged during three reigns, were never yet deemed to have sufficient validity, they insisted that he should again confirm them on his return to England, and should thereby renounce all plea which he might derive from his residing in a foreign country when he formerly affixed his seal to them.[*] It appeared that they judged aright of Edward’s character and intentions: he delayed this confirmation as long as possible; and, when the fear of worse consequences obliged him again to comply, he expressly added a salvo for his royal dignity or prerogative, which in effect enervated the whole force of the charters.[**] The two earls and their adherents left the parliament in disgust; and the king was constrained on a future occasion to grant to the people, without any subterfuge, a pure and absolute confirmation of those laws[***] which were so much the object of their passionate affection. Even further securities were then provided for the establishment of national privileges. Three knights were appointed to be chosen in each county, and were invested with the power of punishing, by fine and imprisonment, every transgression or violation of the charters;[****] a precaution which, though it was soon disused, as encroaching too much on royal prerogative, proves the attachment which the English in that age bore to liberty, and their well-grounded jealousy of the arbitrary disposition of Edward.

But knowing that even the slightest reason could lead Edward to backtrack on these hated laws, which, despite being approved by both the king and parliament and recognized over three reigns, were still considered insufficiently valid, they demanded that he reaffirm them upon his return to England and thereby give up any claims he might have based on his time living abroad when he originally signed them.[*] It seemed they accurately understood Edward’s character and intentions: he postponed this confirmation for as long as possible, and when the fear of worse consequences forced him to comply again, he specifically added a clause to protect his royal dignity or prerogative, which effectively weakened the entire authority of the charters.[**] The two earls and their supporters left the parliament in frustration; and the king was later compelled to grant the people a straightforward and complete confirmation of those laws[***] that they passionately cared about. Even more safeguards were then established for the protection of national privileges. Three knights were to be chosen in each county and given the power to punish, through fines and imprisonment, any infringement or violation of the charters;[****] a measure that, although it was quickly abandoned for overstepping royal authority, demonstrates the commitment to liberty that the English had during that time and their justified distrust of Edward’s arbitrary rule.

The work, however, was not yet entirely finished and complete. In order to execute the lesser charter, it was requisite, by new perambulations, to set bounds to the royal forests, and to disafforest all land which former encroachments had comprehended within their limits. Edward discovered the same reluctance to comply with this equitable demand; and it was not till after many delays on his part, and many solicitations and requests, and even menaces of war and violence,[*****] on the part of the barons, that the perambulations were made, and exact boundaries fixed by a jury in each county to the extent of his forests.[******] Had not his ambitious and active temper raised him so many foreign enemies, and obliged him to have recourse so often to the assistance of his subjects, it is not likely that those concessions could ever have been extorted from him.

The work, however, wasn't completely finished yet. To implement the lesser charter, it was necessary to establish the boundaries of the royal forests through new surveys and to remove any land included within those boundaries due to previous encroachments. Edward showed the same unwillingness to agree to this fair request; it wasn’t until after many delays on his part, numerous appeals and requests, and even threats of war and violence on the barons' side, that the surveys were conducted, and precise boundaries were set by a jury in each county for his forests. If his ambitious and active nature hadn't created numerous foreign enemies, forcing him to frequently rely on his subjects for support, it's unlikely that these concessions would have ever been forced from him.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 159.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 167, 168.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 168.

     **** Heming. vol. i. p. 170.
     from the Chronicle of St. Albans, that the barons, not
     content with the execution of the charter of forests,
     demanded of Edward as high terms as had been imposed on his
     father by the earl of Leicester; but no other historian
     mentions this particular.

     ****** Heming. vol. i. p. 171. M. West. p. 431, 433.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 159.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 167, 168.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 168.

     **** Heming. vol. i. p. 170.
     from the Chronicle of St. Albans, that the barons, not
     satisfied with enforcing the charter of forests,
     asked Edward for terms as severe as those imposed on his
     father by the earl of Leicester; but no other historian
     mentions this detail.

     ****** Heming. vol. i. p. 171. M. West. p. 431, 433.

But while the people, after so many successful struggles, deemed themselves happy in the secure possession of their privileges, they were surprised in 1305 to find that Edward had secretly applied to Rome, and had procured from that mercenary court an absolution from all the oaths and engagements, which he had so often reiterated, to observe both the charters. There are some historians,[*] so credulous as to imagine, that this perilous step was taken by him for no other purpose than to acquire the merit of granting a new confirmation of the charters, as he did soon after; and a confirmation so much the more unquestionable, as it could never after be invalidated by his successors, on pretence of any force or violence which had been imposed upon him. But, besides that this might have been done with a better grace if he had never applied for any such absolution, the whole tenor of his conduct proves him to be little susceptible of such refinements in patriotism; and this very deed itself, in which he anew confirmed the charters, carries on the face of it a very opposite presumption. Though he ratified the charters in general, he still took advantage of the papal bull so far as to invalidate the late perambulations of the forests, which had been made with such care and attention, and to reserve to himself the power, in case of favorable incidents, to extend as much as formerly those arbitrary jurisdictions. If the power was not in fact made use of, we can only conclude that the favorable incidents did not offer.

But while the people, after so many successful struggles, felt happy in the secure possession of their rights, they were shocked in 1305 to discover that Edward had secretly reached out to Rome and obtained an absolution from all the oaths and commitments he had repeatedly promised to uphold regarding both charters. Some historians[*] are so naïve as to think that this risky move was made solely to gain the credit for granting a new confirmation of the charters, which he did shortly after; a confirmation that would be more unquestionable since it could never be invalidated by his successors, claiming any coercion. However, this might have been done more convincingly if he had never asked for such an absolution in the first place. The overall nature of his actions shows that he was not particularly inclined to such patriotic subtleties, and this very act of reaffirming the charters clearly suggests the opposite. Although he confirmed the charters in general, he still capitalized on the papal bull to invalidate the recent surveys of the forests, which had been conducted with great care, and reserved for himself the power, should favorable situations arise, to extend those arbitrary jurisdictions as much as before. If that power was not actually exercised, we can only conclude that the favorable situations did not present themselves.

Thus, after the contests of near a whole century, and these ever accompanied with violent jealousies, often with public convulsions, the Great Charter was finally established; and the English nation have the honor of extorting, by their perseverance, this concession from the ablest, the most warlike, and the most ambitious of all their princes.[**] It is computed that above thirty confirmations of the charter were done at different times.

Thus, after almost a whole century of contests, often accompanied by intense jealousy and public upheaval, the Great Charter was finally established; and the English people take pride in having secured this concession from the most skilled, warlike, and ambitious of all their rulers through their perseverance. It’s estimated that the charter was confirmed over thirty times at various points.

     * Brady, vol. ii. p. 84. Carte, vol. ii. p. 292.

     ** It must, however, be remarked, that the king never
     forgave the chief actors in this transaction; and he found
     means afterwards to oblige both the constable and mareschal
     to resign their offices into his hands. The former received
     a new grant of it; but the office of mareschal given to
     Thomas of Brotherton, the king’s second son times required
     of several kings, and granted by them in full parliament; a
     precaution which, while it discovers some ignorance of the
     true nature of law and government, proves a laudable
     jealousy of national privileges in the people, and an
     extreme anxiety lest contrary precedents should ever be
     pleaded as an authority for infringing them. Accordingly we
     find that, though arbitrary practices often prevailed, and
     were even able to establish themselves into settled customs,
     the validity of the Great Charter was never afterwards
     formally disputed; and that grant was still regarded as the
     basis of English government, and the sure rule by which the
     authority of every custom was to be tried and canvassed. The
     jurisdiction of the star-chamber, martial law, imprisonment
     by warrants from the privy-council, and other practices of a
     like nature, though established for several centuries, were
     scarcely ever allowed by the English to be parts of their
     constitution: the affection of the nation for liberty still
     prevailed over all precedent, and even all political
     reasoning; the exercise of these powers, after being long
     the source of secret murmurs among the people, was, in
     fulness of time, solemnly abolished as illegal, at least as
     oppressive, by the whole legislative authority.
     * Brady, vol. ii. p. 84. Carte, vol. ii. p. 292.

     ** However, it should be noted that the king never forgave the main figures involved in this incident; he later found a way to force both the constable and the marshal to hand over their positions to him. The constable received a new grant of his office, but the title of marshal was given to Thomas of Brotherton, the king’s second son. This practice was required by several kings and granted in full parliament; this caution, while revealing a lack of understanding of the true nature of law and government, shows a commendable concern for the rights of the people and a strong desire to prevent any contrary precedents from being used to undermine them. Thus, we find that even though arbitrary actions were often common and could become established customs, the legitimacy of the Great Charter was never formally challenged afterwards; that grant continued to be seen as the foundation of English governance and the solid standard against which the authority of any custom was to be measured and examined. The jurisdiction of the Star Chamber, martial law, imprisonment through warrants from the Privy Council, and other similar practices, though in place for several centuries, were rarely accepted by the English as part of their constitution: the nation's love for liberty consistently triumphed over all precedents and even all political reasoning; eventually, after being a source of quiet discontent among the people, the use of these powers was officially declared illegal, at least oppressive, by the entire legislative authority.

To return to the period from which this account of the charters has led us: though the king’s impatience to appear at the head of his armies in Flanders made him overlook all considerations, either of domestic discontents or of commotions among the Scots, his embarkation had been so long retarded by the various obstructions thrown in his way, that he lost the proper season for action, and after his arrival made no progress against the enemy. The king of France, taking advantage of his absence, had broken into the Low Countries; had defeated the Flemings in the battle of Furnes; had made himself master of Lisle, St. Omer, Courtrai, and Ypres; and seemed in a situation to take full vengeance on the earl of Flanders, his rebellious vassal. But Edward, seconded by an English army of fifty thousand men, (for this is the number assigned by historians,[*]) was able to stop the career of his victories; and Philip, finding all the weak resources of his kingdom already exhausted, began to dread a reverse of fortune, and to apprehend an invasion on France itself.

To go back to the time that this account of the charters has brought us to: although the king was eager to lead his armies in Flanders and ignored both domestic issues and unrest in Scotland, his departure was delayed for so long by various obstacles that he missed the ideal time for action, and after he arrived, he made no advances against the enemy. The king of France, taking advantage of his absence, invaded the Low Countries; defeated the Flemings in the battle of Furnes; captured Lisle, St. Omer, Courtrai, and Ypres; and seemed ready to fully take revenge on the earl of Flanders, his rebellious vassal. However, Edward, supported by an English army of fifty thousand men (which is the number reported by historians,[*]) managed to halt his victories. Philip, realizing that the limited resources of his kingdom were already depleted, began to fear a reversal of fortune and worry about an invasion of France itself.

     * Helming, vol i. p 146.
     * Helming, vol i. p 146.

The king of England, on the other hand, disappointed of assistance from Adolph, king of the Romans, which he had purchased at a very high price, and finding many urgent calls for his presence in England, was desirous of ending, on any honorable terms, a war which served only to divert his force from the execution of more important projects. This disposition in both monarchs soon produced a cessation of hostilities for two years; and engaged them to submit their differences to the arbitration of Pope Boniface.

The king of England, feeling let down by Adolph, the king of the Romans, from whom he had bought support at a high cost, and facing numerous pressing issues back home, wanted to end the war on any honorable terms. The conflict was only distracting him from more important goals. This feeling from both kings led to a two-year ceasefire and made them agree to let Pope Boniface mediate their differences.

1298.

1298.

Boniface was among the last of the sovereign pontiffs that exercised an authority over the temporal jurisdiction of princes; and these exorbitant pretensions, which he had been tempted to assume from the successful example of his predecessors, but of which the season was now past, involved him in so many calamities, and were attended with so unfortunate a catastrophe, that they have been secretly abandoned, though never openly relinquished, by his successors in the apostolic chair. Edward and Philip, equally jealous of papal claims, took care to insert in their reference, that Boniface was made judge of the difference by their consent, as a private person, not by any right of his pontificate; and the pope, without seeming to be offended at this mortifying clause, proceeded to give a sentence between them, in which they both acquiesced.[*] He brought them to agree, that their union should be cemented by a double marriage; that of Edward himself, who was now a widower, with Margaret, Philip’s sister, and that of the prince of Wales with Isabella, daughter of that monarch.[**]

Boniface was one of the last popes to hold power over the political authority of kings; his excessive ambitions, influenced by the successful examples set by his predecessors, were now outdated and led him into numerous troubles. These ambitions ended in such an unfortunate disaster that his successors in the papacy quietly abandoned them, although they were never officially renounced. Edward and Philip, both wary of papal authority, made sure to state that Boniface was chosen to mediate their dispute with their agreement as a private individual, not by virtue of his position as pope. The pope, without showing any displeasure at this humbling remark, went ahead to mediate between them, and they both accepted his judgment. He managed to get them to agree that their alliance would be sealed through two marriages: Edward, now a widower, would marry Margaret, Philip's sister, and the Prince of Wales would marry Isabella, the daughter of that king.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 817. Heining. vol. i. p. 149. Trivet,
     p. 310

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 823
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 817. Heining, vol. i. p. 149. Trivet, p. 310

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 823

Philip was likewise willing to restore Guienne to the English, which he had indeed no good pretence to detain; but he insisted that the Scots, and their king, John Baliol, should, as his allies, be comprehended in the treaty, and should be restored to their liberty. The difference., after several disputes, was compromised, by their making mutual sacrifices to each other. Edward agreed to abandon his ally the earl of Flanders, on condition that Philip should treat in like manner his ally the king of Scots. The prospect of conquering these two countries, whose situation made them so commodious an acquisition to the respective kingdoms, prevailed over all other considerations; and though they were both finally disappointed in their hopes, their conduct was very reconcilable to the principles of an interested policy. This was the first specimen which the Scots had of the French alliance, and which was exactly conformable to what a smaller power must always expect, when it blindly attaches itself to the will and fortunes of a greater. That unhappy people now engaged in a brave though unequal contest for their liberties, were totally abandoned, by the ally in whom they reposed their final confidence, to the will of an imperious conqueror.

Philip was also willing to return Guienne to the English, which he really had no good reason to keep; however, he insisted that the Scots, and their king, John Baliol, should be included in the treaty as his allies and should be set free. After several disputes, they reached a compromise by making mutual sacrifices. Edward agreed to abandon his ally, the Earl of Flanders, on the condition that Philip would treat his ally, the King of Scots, in the same way. The prospect of conquering these two countries, which would be valuable additions to their respective kingdoms, outweighed all other concerns. Although they both ended up disappointed in their hopes, their actions were consistent with self-interested policy. This was the first experience the Scots had with the French alliance, which reflects what a smaller power can always expect when it blindly aligns itself with the will and fortunes of a larger one. That unfortunate people, who were bravely yet unequally fighting for their freedoms, were completely abandoned by the ally they had placed their ultimate trust in, left to the will of a ruthless conqueror.

Though England, as well as other European countries, was, in its ancient state, very ill qualified for making, and still worse for maintaining conquests, Scotland was so much inferior in its internal force, and was so ill situated for receiving foreign succors, that it is no wonder Edward, an ambitious monarch, should have cast his eye on so tempting an acquisition, which brought both security and greatness to his native country. But the instruments whom he employed to maintain his dominion over the northern kingdom were not happily chosen, and acted not with the requisite prudence and moderation, in reconciling the Scottish nation to a yoke which they bore with such extreme reluctance. Warrenne, retiring into England on account of his bad state of health, left the administration entirely in the hands of Ormesby, who was appointed justiciary of Scotland, and Cressingham, who bore the office of treasurer; and a small military force remained, to secure the precarious authority of those ministers. The latter had no other object than the amassing of money by rapine and injustice: the former distinguished himself by the rigor and severity of his temper: and both of them, treating the Scots as a conquered people, made them sensible, too early, of the grievous servitude into which they had fallen. As Edward required that all the proprietors of land should swear fealty to him, every one who refused or delayed giving this testimony of submission, was outlawed and imprisoned, and punished without mercy; and the bravest and most generous spirits of the nation were thus exasperated to the highest degree against the English government.[*]

Though England, like other European countries, was not well-prepared for making or maintaining conquests in its earlier days, Scotland was even weaker internally and poorly positioned to receive foreign help. It's no surprise that Edward, an ambitious king, set his sights on such an appealing acquisition that promised both security and greatness for his homeland. However, the people he chose to enforce his control over the northern kingdom were not the best fit and acted without the necessary wisdom and restraint needed to win over the Scottish people, who were extremely reluctant to bear this burden. Warrenne, returning to England due to poor health, left the leadership entirely to Ormesby, who was made justiciary of Scotland, and Cressingham, who served as treasurer. A small military force was left to support the unstable authority of these leaders. Cressingham was focused solely on gathering wealth through plunder and injustice, while Ormesby was known for his strict and harsh demeanor. Both treated the Scots like a conquered nation, making them acutely aware of the heavy oppression they were under. As Edward demanded that all landowners pledge loyalty to him, anyone who refused or delayed in showing this submission was declared an outlaw, imprisoned, and punished without mercy. This infuriated the bravest and noblest members of the nation against the English government.

     * Walsing. p. 70. Heming, vol. i. p. 118. Trivet, p. 299.
     * Walsing. p. 70. Heming, vol. i. p. 118. Trivet, p. 299.

There was one William Wallace, of a small fortune, but descended of an ancient family in the west of Scotland, whose courage prompted him to undertake, and enabled him finally to accomplish, the desperate attempt of delivering his native country from the dominion of foreigners. This man, whose valorous exploits are the object of just admiration, but have been much exaggerated by the traditions of his countrymen, had been provoked by the insolence of an English officer to put him to death; and finding himself obnoxious on that account to the severity of the administration, he fled into the woods, and offered himself as a leader to all those whom their crimes, or bad fortune, or avowed hatred of the English, had reduced to a like necessity. He was endowed with gigantic force of body, with heroic courage of mind, with disinterested magnanimity, with incredible patience, and ability to bear hunger, fatigue, and all the severities of the seasons; and he soon acquired, among those desperate fugitives, that authority to which his virtues so justly entitled him. Beginning with small attempts, in which he was always successful, he gradually proceeded to more momentous enterprises; and he discovered equal caution in securing his followers, and valor in annoying the enemy. By his knowledge of the country he was enabled, when pursued, to insure a retreat among the morasses, or forests, or mountains; and again collecting his dispersed associates, he unexpectedly appeared in another quarter, and surprised, and routed, and put to the sword the unwary English. Every day brought accounts of his great actions, which were received with no less favor by his countrymen than terror by the enemy: all those who thirsted after military fame were desirous to partake of his renown: his successful valor seemed to vindicate the nation from the ignominy into which it had fallen, by its tame submission to the English; and though no nobleman of note ventured as yet to join his party, he had gained a general confidence and attachment, which birth and fortune are not alone able to confer.

There was a man named William Wallace, who had a modest fortune but came from an ancient family in western Scotland. His bravery drove him to take on the desperate challenge of freeing his homeland from foreign rule. This man, whose courageous deeds deserve admiration, though often exaggerated by his fellow countrymen, was provoked by the arrogance of an English officer to the point of seeking revenge. Realizing he was in danger from the authorities because of this, he escaped into the woods and offered himself as a leader to those who, due to their misdeeds, bad luck, or open dislike of the English, found themselves in similar situations. He possessed immense physical strength, heroic courage, noble selflessness, incredible patience, and the ability to endure hunger, fatigue, and harsh weather. He quickly earned the respect and leadership of those desperate followers due to his admirable qualities. Starting with small, successful missions, he gradually took on bigger challenges, showing both caution in protecting his followers and bravery in attacking the enemy. His knowledge of the land allowed him to retreat into swamps, forests, or mountains when pursued, and he would regroup his scattered allies, reappearing unexpectedly to ambush and defeat the unsuspecting English soldiers. News of his great deeds spread daily, celebrated by his countrymen and instilling fear in the enemy. Many who sought military glory wanted to share in his fame; his success seemed to redeem the nation from the shame of its passive submission to the English. Though no prominent nobleman dared to join him yet, he had gained widespread trust and loyalty that wealth and status alone could not grant.

Wallace, having, by many fortunate enterprises, brought the valor of his followers to correspond to his own, resolved to strike a decisive blow against the English government; and he concerted the plan of attacking Ormesby at Scone; and of taking vengeance on him for all the violence and tyranny of which he had been guilty. The justiciary, apprised of his intentions, fled hastily into England: all the other officers of that nation imitated his example: their terror added alacrity and courage to the Scots, who betook themselves to arms in every quarter; many of the principal barons, and among the rest Sir William Douglas,[*] openly countenanced Wallace’s party: Robert Bruce secretly favored and promoted the same cause: and the Scots, shaking off their fetters, prepared themselves to defend, by a united effort, that liberty which they had so unexpectedly recovered from the hands of their oppressors.

Wallace, having successfully rallied his followers to match his own bravery, decided to deal a significant blow to the English government. He planned to attack Ormesby at Scone and take revenge for all the violence and tyranny he had committed. The justiciary, aware of Wallace’s intentions, quickly fled to England, and all the other officials followed suit. Their fear inspired the Scots, who armed themselves across the land. Many of the leading barons, including Sir William Douglas,[*] openly supported Wallace’s cause, while Robert Bruce secretly aided and promoted the same struggle. The Scots, freeing themselves from oppression, prepared to make a united effort to defend the freedom they had so unexpectedly regained.

     * Walsing. p. 70. vol. i. p. 118.
     * Walsing. p. 70. vol. i. p. 118.

But Warrenne, collecting an army of forty thousand men in the north of England, determined to reëstablish his authority; and he endeavored, by the celerity of his armament and of his march, to compensate for his past negligence, which had enabled the Scots to throw off the English government. He suddenly entered Annandale, and came up with the enemy at Irvine, before their forces were fully collected, and before they had put themselves in a posture of defence. Many of the Scottish nobles, alarmed with their dangerous situation, here submitted to the English, renewed their oaths of fealty, promised to deliver hostages for their good behavior, and received a pardon for past offences.[*] Others, who had not yet declared themselves, such as the steward of Scotland and the earl of Lenox, joined, though with reluctance, the English army, and waited a favorable opportunity for embracing the cause of their distressed countrymen. But Wallace, whose authority over his retainers was more fully confirmed by the absence of the great nobles, persevered obstinately in his purpose; and finding himself unable to give battle to the enemy, he marched northwards, with an intention of prolonging the war, and of turning to his advantage the situation of that mountainous and barren country. When Warrenne advanced to Stirling, he found Wallace encamped at Cambuskenneth, on the opposite banks of the Forth; and being continually urged by the impatient Cressingham, who was actuated both by personal and national animosities against the Scots,[**] he prepared to attack them in that position, which Wallace, no less prudent than courageous, had chosen for his army.[***]

But Warrenne, gathering an army of forty thousand men in northern England, decided to re-establish his authority. He tried to make up for his previous negligence, which had allowed the Scots to break away from English rule, by moving quickly in both raising his troops and marching. He suddenly entered Annandale and confronted the enemy at Irvine before their forces were fully assembled and prepared for defense. Many Scottish nobles, alarmed by their perilous situation, submitted to the English, renewed their oaths of loyalty, promised to provide hostages for their good conduct, and received pardons for their past offenses.[*] Others who had not yet taken a side, like the steward of Scotland and the earl of Lenox, reluctantly joined the English army and looked for a favorable chance to support their struggling countrymen. However, Wallace, whose control over his followers was solidified by the absence of the major nobles, stubbornly stuck to his plan. Unable to engage the enemy directly, he marched north, intending to prolong the war and take advantage of the challenging landscape of the mountainous and barren region. When Warrenne advanced to Stirling, he discovered Wallace camped at Cambuskenneth, on the opposite banks of the Forth. Driven by the impatient Cressingham, who harbored both personal and national grievances against the Scots,[**] he prepared to attack them in the position that Wallace, wise as well as brave, had chosen for his army.[***]

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 121, 22.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 127.

     *** On the 11th of September, 1297.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 121, 22.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 127.

     *** On September 11, 1297.

In spite of the remonstrances of Sir Richard Lundy, a Scotchman of birth and family, who sincerely adhered to the English, he ordered his army to pass a bridge which lay over the Forth; but he was soon convinced, by fatal experience, of the error of his conduct. Wallace, allowing such numbers of the English to pass as he thought proper, attacked them before they were fully formed, put them to rout, pushed part of them into the river, destroyed the rest by the edge of the sword, and gained a complete victory over them.[*] Among the slain was Cressingham himself, whose memory was so extremely odious to the Scots, that they flayed his dead body, and made saddles and girths of his skin.[**] Warrenne, finding the remainder of his army much dismayed by this misfortune, was obliged again to evacuate the kingdom, and retire into England. The Castles of Roxburgh and Berwick, ill fortified and feebly defended, fell soon after into the hands of the Scots.

Despite the objections of Sir Richard Lundy, a Scottish gentleman who was loyal to the English, he ordered his army to cross a bridge over the Forth. However, he soon learned, through harsh experience, that he had made a mistake. Wallace allowed a sufficient number of English soldiers to cross before attacking them while they were still disorganized, causing them to panic, pushing some into the river, and killing the rest with swords, achieving a complete victory. Among those killed was Cressingham, whose memory was so reviled by the Scots that they skinned his corpse and made saddles and girths from his hide. Warrenne, seeing that the rest of his army was demoralized by this defeat, had to withdraw from the kingdom and retreat to England. The castles of Roxburgh and Berwick, poorly fortified and weakly defended, soon fell into Scottish hands.

Wallace, universally revered as the deliverer of his country, now received, from the hands of his followers, the dignity of regent or guardian under the captive Baliol; and finding that the disorders of war, as well as the unfavorable seasons, had produced a famine in Scotland, he urged his army to march into England, to subsist at the expense of the enemy, and to revenge all past injuries, by retaliating on that hostile nation. The Scots, who deemed everything possible under such a leader, joyfully attended his call. Wallace, breaking into the northern counties during the winter season, laid every place waste with fire and sword; and after extending on all sides, without opposition, the fury of his ravages as far as the bishopric of Durham, he returned, loaded with spoils and crowned with glory, into his own country.[***] The disorders which at that time prevailed in England, from the refractory behavior of the constable and mareschal, made it impossible to collect an army sufficient to resist the enemy, and exposed the nation to this loss and dishonor.

Wallace, universally admired as the savior of his country, was now given the title of regent or guardian for the captive Baliol by his followers. Realizing that the chaos of war and harsh weather had caused a famine in Scotland, he urged his army to march into England, to live off the enemies and take revenge for past wrongs. The Scots, who believed anything was possible under such a leader, eagerly answered his call. Wallace, invading the northern counties during winter, laid waste to everything with fire and sword. After spreading his destruction as far as the bishopric of Durham without facing any opposition, he returned home, loaded with riches and glory. The turmoil in England, caused by the rebellious actions of the constable and mareschal, made it impossible to gather an army strong enough to fend off the enemy, leading the nation to this loss and disgrace.

     * Walsing. p. 73. Heming. vol. i. p. 127, 128, 129. Trivet,
     p. 807.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 130.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 131, 132, 136.
     * Walsing. p. 73. Heming. vol. i. p. 127, 128, 129. Trivet,
     p. 807.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 130.

     *** Heming. vol. i. p. 131, 132, 136.

But Edward, who received in Flanders intelligence of these events, and had already concluded a truce with France, now hastened over to England, in certain hopes, by his activity and valor, not only of wiping off this disgrace, but of recovering the important conquest of Scotland, which he always regarded as the chief glory and advantage of his reign. He appeased the murmurs of his people by concessions and promises: he restored to the citizens of London the election of their own magistrates, of which they had been bereaved in the latter part of his father’s reign: he ordered strict inquiry to be made concerning the corn and other goods which had been violently seized before his departure, as if he intended to pay the value to the owners:[*] and making public professions of confirming and observing the charters he regained the confidence of the discontented nobles. Having by all these popular arts rendered himself entirely master of his people, he collected the whole military force of England, Wales, and Ireland, and marched with an army of near a hundred thousand combatants to the northern frontiers.

But Edward, who got news of these events while in Flanders and had already made a truce with France, quickly returned to England, hoping that through his efforts and bravery, he could not only erase this shame but also reclaim Scotland, which he always saw as the main pride and benefit of his reign. He calmed the complaints of his people with promises and concessions: he let the citizens of London choose their own leaders again, which they had lost during the latter part of his father’s reign. He ordered a thorough investigation into the grain and other goods that had been forcefully taken before he left, as if he planned to reimburse the owners for their losses, and by publicly committing to uphold the charters, he regained the trust of the unhappy nobles. Having successfully won over his people through these popular strategies, he gathered the entire military force of England, Wales, and Ireland and marched with an army of nearly a hundred thousand fighters to the northern borders.

Nothing could have enabled the Scots to resist, but for one season, so mighty a power, except an entire union among themselves; but as they were deprived of their king, whose personal qualities, even when he was present, appeared so contemptible, and had left among his subjects no principle of attachment to him or his family, factions, jealousies, and animosities unavoidably arose among the great, and distracted all their councils. The elevation of Wallace, though purchased by so great merit, and such eminent services, was the object of envy to the nobility, who repined to see a private gentleman raised above them by his rank, and still more by his glory and reputation. Wallace himself, sensible of their jealousy and dreading the ruin of his country from those intestine discords, voluntarily resigned his authority, and retained only the command over that body of his followers who, being accustomed to victory under his standard, refused to follow into the field any other leader. The chief power devolved on the steward of Scotland, and Cummin of Badenoch; men of eminent birth, under whom the great chieftains were more willing to serve in defence of their country. The two Scottish commanders, collecting their several forces from every quarter, fixed their station at Falkirk, and purposed there to abide the assault of the English. Wallace was at the head of a third body, which acted under his command. The Scottish army placed their pikemen along their front; lined the intervals between the three bodies with archers; and dreading the great superiority of the English in cavalry, endeavored to secure their front by palisadoes, tied together by ropes.[**] In this disposition they expected the approach of the enemy.

Nothing could have helped the Scots resist such a powerful force for more than one season, except for a complete unity among themselves. However, they were left without their king, whose character, even when present, seemed quite unworthy, and he had instilled no loyalty to himself or his family among his subjects. This led to factions, jealousy, and animosities among the nobles, which distracted all their councils. The rise of Wallace, despite being earned through great merit and notable service, sparked envy among the nobility, who were resentful to see a common man elevated above them due to his status, glory, and reputation. Wallace himself, aware of their jealousy and fearing the destruction of his country from these internal conflicts, voluntarily stepped down from his authority, keeping only command over his group of followers, who, used to winning under his banner, refused to follow any other leader into battle. The main power shifted to the steward of Scotland and Cummin of Badenoch, both of noble birth, under whom the great chieftains were more willing to serve to protect their country. The two Scottish commanders gathered their forces from all directions and set up at Falkirk, planning to withstand the English assault. Wallace led a third group that operated under his command. The Scottish army positioned their pikemen at the front, filled the gaps between the three groups with archers, and, fearing the English's significant cavalry advantage, tried to secure their front with palisades tied together with ropes. In this formation, they awaited the enemy's approach.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 813.

     ** Walsing. p. 75. Heming, vol. i. p. 163.
* Rymer, vol. ii. p. 813.

** Walsing. p. 75. Heming, vol. i. p. 163.

The king, when he arrived in sight of the Scots, was pleased with the prospect of being able, by one decisive stroke, to determine the fortune of the war; and dividing his army also into three bodies, he led them to the attack. The English archers, who began about this time to surpass those of other nations, first chased the Scottish bowmen off the field; then pouring in their arrows among the pikemen, who were cooped up within their intrenchments, threw them into disorder, and rendered the assault of the English pikemen and cavalry more easy and successful. The whole Scottish army was broken, and chased off the field with great slaughter; which the historians, attending more to the exaggerated relations of the populace than to the probability of things, make amount to fifty or sixty thousand men.[*] It is only certain, that the Scots never suffered a greater loss in any action, nor one which seemed to threaten more inevitable ruin to their country.

The king, when he saw the Scots, was excited about the chance to end the war with one powerful move, so he split his army into three parts and led them into battle. The English archers, who had started to outshine those from other nations, chased the Scottish bowmen off the field. Then, by sending their arrows into the ranks of the pikemen who were trapped in their fortifications, they caused chaos and made it easier for the English pikemen and cavalry to attack successfully. The entire Scottish army was defeated and driven off the field amid heavy casualties; historians, focusing more on the exaggerated claims of the crowd than on what was realistic, report numbers as high as fifty or sixty thousand. What is clear is that the Scots never faced a greater loss in any battle, nor one that seemed to bring more certain destruction to their country.

     * Walsing. p. 76. T. Wykes, p. 127. Heming vol. i. p. 163,
     164, 165. Trivet (p. 313) says only twenty thousand. M.
     West. (p. 431) says forty thousand.
     * Walsing. p. 76. T. Wykes, p. 127. Heming vol. i. p. 163,
     164, 165. Trivet (p. 313) mentions only twenty thousand. M.
     West. (p. 431) mentions forty thousand.

In this general rout of the army, Wallace’s military skill and presence of mind enabled him to keep his troops entire and retiring behind the Carron, he marched leisurely along the banks of that small river, which protected him from the enemy. Young Bruce, who had already given many proofs of his aspiring genius, but who served hitherto in the English army, appeared on the opposite banks, and distinguishing the Scottish chief, as well by his majestic port as by the intrepid activity of his behavior, called out to him, and desired a short conference. He here represented to Wallace the fruitless and ruinous enterprise in which he was engaged; and endeavored to bend his inflexible spirit to submission under superior power and superior fortune: he insisted on the unequal contest between a weak state, deprived of its head and agitated by intestine discord, and a mighty nation, conducted by the ablest and most martial monarch of the age, and possessed of every resource either for protracting the war, or for pushing it with vigor and activity; if the love of his country were his motive for perseverence, his obstinacy tended only to prolong her misery; if he carried his views to private grandeur and ambition, he might reflect that, even if Edward should withdraw his armies, it appeared from past experience, that so many haughty nobles, proud of the preeminence of their families, would never submit to personal merit, whose superiority they were less inclined to regard as an object of admiration than as a reproach and injury to themselves. To these exhortations Wallace replied that, if he had hitherto acted alone, as the champion of his country, it was solely because no second or competitor, or what he rather wished, no leader, had yet appeared to place himself in that honorable station: that the blame lay entirely on the nobility, and chiefly on Bruce himself, who, uniting personal merit to dignity of family, had deserted the post which both nature and fortune, by such powerful calls, invited him to assume: that the Scots, possessed of such a head, would, by their unanimity and concord, have surmounted the chief difficulty under which they now labored, and might hope, notwithstanding their present losses, to oppose successfully all the power and abilities of Edward: that heaven itself could not set a more glorious prize before the eyes either of virtue or ambition, than to join in one object, the acquisition of royalty with the defence of national independence: and that as the interests of his country, no more than those of a brave man, could never be sincerely cultivated by a sacrifice of liberty, he himself was determined, as far as possible, to prolong, not her misery, but her freedom, and was desirous that his own life, as well as the existence of the nation, might terminate when they could no otherwise be preserved than by receiving the chains of a haughty victor. The gallantry of these sentiments, though delivered by an armed enemy, struck the generous mind of Bruce: the flame was conveyed from the breast of one hero to that of another: he repented of his engagements with Edward; and opening his eyes to the honorable path pointed out to him by Wallace, secretly determined to seize the first opportunity of embracing the cause, however desperate, of his oppressed country.[*]

In this general chaos of the army, Wallace’s military skill and quick thinking allowed him to keep his troops intact. As he retreated behind the Carron, he moved calmly along the banks of the small river that shielded him from the enemy. Young Bruce, who had already shown many signs of his ambitious talent but had been serving in the English army until now, appeared on the opposite banks. Recognizing the Scottish chief by his impressive stature and fearless demeanor, he called out to him for a brief chat. He conveyed to Wallace the pointless and disastrous mission he was on and tried to persuade him to bend to the stronger power and better fortune. He pointed out the unfair fight between a weak state, lacking its leader and struggling with internal discord, and a powerful nation led by the most skilled and martial king of the time, which had every resource to either drag out the war or conduct it with strength and speed. If his love for his country was motivating his persistence, then his stubbornness was only extending her suffering; if he sought personal glory and ambition, he might realize that even if Edward withdrew his forces, history showed that many proud nobles, boasting of their family status, would never accept someone’s personal merit as commendable but rather see it as a slight and an affront to themselves. In response to these pleas, Wallace stated that if he had acted alone as the champion of his country until now, it was solely because no partner or competitor, nor the leader he wished for, had come forward to take that honorable role. He blamed the nobility, especially Bruce himself, who, with his combination of personal merit and family status, had abandoned the post that both nature and fortune were urging him to take. The Scots, with such a leader, would have united in harmony to overcome the greatest challenges they faced, and despite their current losses, they could have confidently stood up to all of Edward's power and skill. Heaven itself couldn’t present a more glorious prize to virtue or ambition than to combine the pursuit of royal power with the defense of national independence. He believed that neither his country’s interests nor those of a brave man could genuinely be served by sacrificing freedom. He was determined, as much as possible, to prolong not her suffering but her freedom and wanted both his life and the nation's existence to end only when they could no longer be preserved without submitting to the chains of a proud conqueror. The nobility of these thoughts, even coming from an armed enemy, touched Bruce’s generous spirit. The passion ignited from one hero to another. He regretted his commitments to Edward and, realizing the honorable path Wallace suggested, made a secret resolution to seize the first chance to support the cause, no matter how desperate it seemed, of his oppressed country.[*]

     * This story is told by all the Scotch writers; though it
     must be owned that Trivet and Hemingford, authors of good
     credit, both agree that Bruce was not at that time in
     Edward’s army.
     * This story is recounted by all the Scottish writers; however, it must be acknowledged that Trivet and Hemingford, reputable authors, both agree that Bruce was not part of Edward's army at that time.

1299.

1299.

The subjection of Scotland, notwithstanding this great victory of Edward, was not yet entirely completed. The English army, after reducing the southern provinces, was obliged to retire for want of provisions; and left the northern counties in the hands of the natives. The Scots, no less enraged at their present defeat than elated by their past victories, still maintained the contest for liberty; but being fully sensible of the great inferiority of their force, they endeavored, by applications to foreign courts, to procure to themselves some assistance. The supplications of the Scottish ministers were rejected by Philip; but were more successful with the court of Rome.

The control of Scotland, despite Edward's significant victory, was still not completely achieved. The English army, after taking over the southern regions, had to retreat due to a lack of supplies, leaving the northern counties in the hands of the locals. The Scots, just as furious about their recent loss as they were thrilled by their previous successes, continued to fight for their freedom. However, fully aware of their military weakness, they sought help from foreign powers. The requests from the Scottish officials were turned down by Philip, but they found more success with the Roman court.

1300.

1300.

Boniface, pleased with an occasion of exerting his authority, wrote a letter to Edward, exhorting him to put a stop to his oppressions in Scotland, and displaying all the proofs, such as they had probably been furnished him by the Scots themselves, for the ancient independence of that kingdom.[*] Among other arguments hinted at above, he mentioned the treaty conducted and finished by Edward himself, for the marriage of his son with the heiress of Scotland; a treaty which would have been absurd, had he been superior lord of the kingdom, and had possessed by the feudal law the right of disposing of his ward in marriage. He mentioned several other striking facts, which fell within the compass of Edward’s own knowledge particularly that Alexander, when he did homage to the king, openly and expressly declared in his presence, that he swore fealty not for his crown, but for the lands which he held in England: and the pope’s letter might have passed for a reasonable one, had he not subjoined his own claim to be liege lord of Scotland; a claim which had not once been heard of, but which, with a singular confidence, he asserted to be full, entire, and derived from the most remote antiquity. The affirmative style, which had been so successful with him and his predecessors in spiritual contests, was never before abused after a more egregious manner in any civil controversy.

Boniface, happy to assert his authority, wrote a letter to Edward urging him to stop his oppression in Scotland. He presented all kinds of evidence, likely provided by the Scots themselves, supporting the long-standing independence of that kingdom.[*] Among other arguments mentioned earlier, he pointed out the treaty that Edward himself negotiated for his son to marry the Scottish heiress; a treaty that would be ridiculous if he were truly the lord of the kingdom and had the feudal right to control his ward's marriage. He cited several other notable facts that Edward was aware of, including that when Alexander pledged loyalty to the king, he explicitly stated in front of him that he was swearing fealty not for his crown, but for the lands he held in England. The pope’s letter could have seemed reasonable if he hadn’t added his own claim to be the liege lord of Scotland—a claim that had never been heard before, but which he confidently asserted was complete, total, and rooted in ancient history. The assertive approach that had worked so well for him and his predecessors in spiritual disputes had never before been misused in such a blatant way in any civil argument.

1301.

1301.

The reply which Edward made to Boniface’s letter, contains particulars no less singular and remarkable.[**] He there proves the superiority of England by historical facts, deduced from the period of Brutus, the Trojan, who, he said, founded the British monarchy in the age of Eli and Samuel: he supports his position by all the events which passed in the island before the arrival of the Romans: and after laying great stress on the extensive dominions and heroic victories of King Arthur, he vouchsafes at last to descend to the time of Edward the Elder, with which, in his speech to the states of Scotland, he had chosen to begin his claim of superiority. He asserts it to be a fact, “notorious and confirmed by the records of antiquity,” that the English monarchs had often conferred the kingdom of Scotland on their own subjects, had dethroned these vassal kings when unfaithful to them; and had substituted others in their stead.

The response that Edward gave to Boniface’s letter includes details that are just as unique and noteworthy. He demonstrates England's superiority through historical facts, tracing back to Brutus, the Trojan, whom he claims founded the British monarchy during the era of Eli and Samuel. He backs up his argument with all the events that occurred in the island prior to the Romans' arrival. After emphasizing the vast territories and heroic victories of King Arthur, he finally moves on to the time of Edward the Elder, which he chose to reference first in his claim of superiority to the Scottish states. He states it as a fact, “well-known and confirmed by ancient records,” that English monarchs frequently granted the kingdom of Scotland to their own subjects, dethroned disloyal vassal kings, and replaced them with others.

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 844.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 863.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 844.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 863.

He displays with great pomp the full and complete homage which William had done to Henry II.; without mentioning the formal abolition of that extorted deed by King Richard, and the renunciation of all future claims of the same nature. Yet this paper he begins with a solemn appeal to the Almighty, the searcher of hearts for his own firm persuasion of the justice of his claim; and no less than a hundred and four barons, assembled in parliament at Lincoln, concur in maintaining before the pope, under their seals, the validity of these pretensions.[*] At the same time, however, they take care to inform Boniface, that, though they had justified their cause before him, they did not acknowledge him for their judge: the crown of England was free and sovereign: they had sworn to maintain all its royal prerogatives, and would never permit the king himself, were he willing, to relinquish its independency.

He proudly shows the complete respect that William had given to Henry II., without mentioning the formal cancellation of that coerced agreement by King Richard, along with the rejection of all future claims like it. Yet, this document starts with a serious appeal to God, who knows hearts, as he firmly believes in the justice of his claim; and no less than a hundred and four barons, gathered in parliament at Lincoln, agree to support these claims before the pope with their seals. However, they also make sure to inform Boniface that, even

     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 873. Walsing. p. 85. Heming. vol. i. p.
     186. Trivet, p. 330, M. West, p 443.
     * Rymer, vol. ii. p. 873. Walsing. p. 85. Heming. vol. i. p. 186. Trivet, p. 330, M. West, p 443.

1302.

1302.

That neglect, almost total, of truth and justice, which sovereign states discover in their transactions with each other, is an evil universal and inveterate; is one great source of the misery to which the human race is continually exposed; and it may be doubted whether, in many instances, it be found in the end to contribute to the interests of those princes themselves, who thus sacrifice their integrity to their politics. As few monarchs have lain under stronger temptations to violate the principles of equity than Edward in his transactions with Scotland, so never were they violated with less scruple and reserve: yet his advantages were hitherto precarious and uncertain, and the Scots, once roused to arms and inured to war, began to appear a formidable enemy, even to this military and ambitious monarch. They chose John Cummin for their regent; and, not content with maintaining their independence in the northern parts, they made incursions into the southern counties, which Edward imagined he had totally subdued. John de Segrave, whom he had left guardian of Scotland, led an army to oppose them; and lying at Roslin, near Edinburgh, sent out his forces in three divisions, to provide themselves with forage and subsistence from the neighborhood.

That almost complete neglect of truth and justice that sovereign states show in their dealings with each other is a widespread and deep-rooted problem. It's a major source of the suffering that humanity constantly faces; and it’s questionable whether, in many cases, this behavior ultimately benefits the rulers who sacrifice their integrity for political gain. Very few monarchs have faced stronger temptations to disregard principles of fairness than Edward in his dealings with Scotland, and he did so with little hesitation or restraint. Yet his gains were still shaky and uncertain, and the Scots, once they rallied to arms and got used to fighting, began to seem like a serious threat, even to this military and ambitious king. They appointed John Cummin as their regent, and not satisfied with just defending their independence in the northern regions, they launched attacks into the southern counties that Edward thought he had fully conquered. John de Segrave, whom Edward had left in charge of Scotland, took an army to oppose them; and while camped at Roslin, near Edinburgh, he sent out his forces in three groups to gather forage and supplies from the surrounding area.

1303.

1303.

One party was suddenly attacked by the regent and Sir Simon Fraser; and being unprepared, was immediately routed and pursued with great slaughter. The few that escaped, flying to the second division, gave warning of the approach of the enemy: the soldiers ran to their arms; and were immediately led on to take revenge for the death of their countrymen. The Scots, elated with the advantage already obtained made a vigorous impression upon them: the English, animated with a thirst of vengeance, maintained a stout resistance: the victory was long undecided between them; but at last declared itself entirely in favor of the former, who broke the English, and chased them to the third division, now advancing with a hasty march to support their distressed companions. Many of the Scots had fallen in the two first actions; most of them were wounded, and all of them extremely fatigued by the long continuance of the combat: yet were they so transported with success and military rage, that, having suddenly recovered their order, and arming the followers of their camp with the spoils of the slaughtered enemy, they drove with fury upon the ranks of the dismayed English. The favorable moment decided the battle; which the Scots, had they met with a steady resistance, were not long able to maintain: the English were chased off the field: three victories were thus gained in one day;[*] and the renown of these great exploits, seconded by the favorable dispositions of the people, soon made the regent master of all the fortresses in the south; and it became necessary for Edward to begin anew the conquest of the kingdom.

One side was suddenly attacked by the regent and Sir Simon Fraser; and being unprepared, they were quickly defeated and pursued with heavy losses. The few who escaped ran to the second division and warned them about the enemy's approach: the soldiers grabbed their weapons and were immediately led to seek revenge for their fallen comrades. The Scots, excited by their earlier success, launched a strong attack against them: the English, fueled by a desire for revenge, put up a fierce resistance. The battle was long drawn out, but eventually, it fully turned in favor of the Scots, who broke the English lines and chased them toward the third division, which was now hastily marching to support their struggling allies. Many Scots had fallen in the first two encounters; most were wounded, and all were extremely tired from the prolonged fighting. Yet, they were so filled with success and military fervor that, having quickly regained their formation and outfitting their camp followers with the spoils of the slain enemy, they charged fiercely at the disheartened English ranks. The opportune moment decided the battle; had the Scots faced a steady resistance, they wouldn't have held out long. The English were driven off the field: three victories were achieved in one day; and the fame of these significant achievements, combined with the favorable attitudes of the people, quickly made the regent the master of all the fortresses in the south, forcing Edward to start the conquest of the kingdom all over again.

The king prepared himself for this enterprise with his usual vigor and abilities. He assembled both a great fleet and a great army; and entering the frontiers of Scotland, appeared with a force which the enemy could not think of resisting in the open field: the English navy, which sailed along the coast, secured the army from any danger of famine: Edward’s vigilance preserved it from surprises: and by this prudent disposition they marched victorious from one extremity of the kingdom to the other, ravaging the open country, reducing all the castles,[**] and receiving the submissions of all the nobility, even those of Cummin, the regent.

The king geared up for this campaign with his typical energy and skills. He gathered a large fleet and a massive army, and as he crossed into Scotland, he showed up with a force that the enemy couldn’t even think about facing openly: the English navy, which patrolled the coast, protected the army from any risk of hunger. Edward’s watchfulness kept it safe from surprises, and with this careful planning, they marched triumphantly from one end of the kingdom to the other, plundering the countryside, taking all the castles, and securing the loyalty of all the nobles, including Cummin, the regent.

     * Heming. vol. i. p. 197.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 205. the kingdom. Wallace, though he
     attended the English army in their march, found but few
     opportunities of signalizing that valor which had formerly
     made him so terrible to his enemies.
     * Heming. vol. i. p. 197.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 205. the kingdom. Wallace, even though he was with the English army as they marched, found few chances to showcase the bravery that had once made him so feared by his enemies.

The most obstinate resistance was made by the Castle of Brechin, defended by Sir Thomas Maule; and the place opened not its gates, till the death of the governor, by discouraging the garrison, obliged them to submit to the fate which had overwhelmed the rest.

The toughest resistance came from the Castle of Brechin, defended by Sir Thomas Maule; the gates didn’t open until the governor died, which demoralized the garrison and forced them to accept the same fate that had overtaken everyone else.

1304.

1304.

Edward, having completed his conquest, which employed him during the space of near two years, now undertook the more difficult work of settling the country, of establishing a new form of government, and of making his acquisition durable to the crown of England. He seems to have carried matters to extremity against the natives: he abrogated all the Scottish laws and customs:[*] he endeavored to substitute the English in their place: he entirely razed or destroyed all the monuments of antiquity: such records or histories as had escaped his former search were now burnt or dispersed: and he hastened, by too precipitate steps, to abolish entirely the Scottish name, and to sink it finally in the English.

Edward, after finishing his conquest, which took almost two years, now took on the tougher task of settling the country, setting up a new government, and ensuring his gains were permanent for the crown of England. He seemed to go to extremes against the locals: he abolished all Scottish laws and customs; he tried to replace them with English ones; he completely destroyed all ancient monuments; any records or histories that had survived his previous efforts were now burned or scattered; and he rushed too quickly to completely erase the Scottish identity and merge it into the English.

     * Ryley, p. 506.
* Ryley, p. 506.

1305.

1305.

Edward, however, still deemed his favorite conquest exposed to some danger so long as Wallace was alive; and being prompted both by revenge and policy, he employed every art to discover his retreat, and become master of his person. At last that hardy warrior, who was determined, amidst the universal slavery of his countrymen, still to maintain his independency, was betrayed into Edward’s hands by Sir John Monteith, his friend, whom he had made acquainted with the place of his concealment. The king, whose natural bravery and magnanimity should have induced him to respect like qualities in an enemy, enraged at some acts of violence committed by Wallace during the fury of war, resolved to overawe the Scots by an example of severity: he ordered Wallace to be carried in chains to London; to be tried as a rebel and traitor, though he had never made submissions or sworn fealty to England; and to be executed on Tower Hill. This was the unworthy fate of a hero, who, through a course of many years, had, with signal conduct, intrepidity, and perseverance, defended, against a public and oppressive enemy, the liberties of his native country.

Edward, however, still considered his favorite target to be in danger as long as Wallace was alive; driven by both revenge and strategy, he used every trick to find out where he was hiding and capture him. Eventually, that brave warrior, who was committed to maintaining his independence while his fellow countrymen suffered, was betrayed into Edward’s hands by Sir John Monteith, a friend to whom he had revealed his hiding place. The king, whose natural courage and nobility should have led him to respect those same qualities in an enemy, was furious over some violent acts committed by Wallace during the chaos of war, and he decided to intimidate the Scots by making an example of him. He ordered Wallace to be taken in chains to London, tried as a rebel and traitor—even though he had never submitted or sworn loyalty to England—and executed at Tower Hill. This was the disgraceful fate of a hero who had bravely defended the freedoms of his homeland against a public and oppressive enemy for many years, showcasing remarkable skill, courage, and determination.

But the barbarous policy of Edward failed of the purpose to which it was directed. The Scots, already disgusted at the great innovations introduced by the sword of a conqueror into their laws and government, were further enraged at the injustice and cruelty exercised upon Wallace; and all the envy which, during his lifetime, had attended that gallant chief, being now buried in his grave, he was universally regarded as the champion of Scotland and the patron of her expiring independency. The people, inflamed with resentment, were every where disposed to rise against the English government; and it was not long ere a new and more fortunate leader presented himself, who conducted them to liberty, to victory, and to vengeance.

But Edward's brutal policy missed its goal. The Scots, already fed up with the significant changes enforced by a conqueror in their laws and governance, were further angered by the injustice and cruelty shown to Wallace; and all the jealousy that had surrounded that brave leader during his life was now buried with him, making him universally recognized as Scotland's champion and protector of its fading independence. The people, filled with anger, were ready to rise up against the English government; and it wasn't long before a new and more successful leader emerged, who guided them to freedom, victory, and revenge.

1306.

1306.

Robert Bruce, grandson of that Robert who had been one of the competitors for the crown, had succeeded, by his grandfather’s and father’s death, to all their rights; and the demise of John Baliol, together with the captivity of Edward, eldest son of that prince, seemed to open a full career to the genius and ambition of this young nobleman. He saw that the Scots, when the title to their crown had expired in the males of their ancient royal family, had been divided into parties nearly equal between the houses of Bruce and Baliol; and that every incident which had since happened, had tended to wean them from any attachment to the latter. The slender capacity of John had proved unable to defend them against their enemies: he had meanly resigned his crown into the hands of the conqueror: he had, before his deliverance from captivity, reiterated that resignation in a manner seemingly voluntary; and had in that deed thrown out many reflections extremely dishonorable to his ancient subjects, whom he publicly called traitors, ruffians, and rebels, and with whom, he declared, he was determined to maintain no further correspondence;[*] he had, during the time of his exile, adhered strictly to that resolution; and his son, being a prisoner, seemed ill qualified to revive the rights, now fully abandoned, of his family.

Robert Bruce, the grandson of the Robert who once competed for the crown, inherited all their rights after the deaths of his grandfather and father. The death of John Baliol, along with the imprisonment of Edward, the eldest son of that prince, appeared to open up a clear path for the talents and ambitions of this young nobleman. He realized that the Scots, after the royal title had died out in the male line of their ancient royal family, had split into nearly equal factions between the houses of Bruce and Baliol. Each event since then had pushed them further away from any loyalty to the latter. John's limited abilities had been unable to protect them from their foes; he had shamefully surrendered his crown to the conqueror; even before he was freed from captivity, he had foolishly reaffirmed that resignation in what seemed to be a voluntary manner. In doing so, he made many humiliating remarks about his former subjects, whom he openly labeled traitors, thugs, and rebels, declaring that he would no longer have any dealings with them; he had stuck to that decision during his time in exile, and with his son in captivity, he seemed poorly positioned to reclaim the rights that his family had fully abandoned.

     * Brady’s Hist. vol. ii. App. No. 27.
     * Brady's Hist. vol. ii. App. No. 27.

Bruce therefore hoped that the Scots, so long exposed, from the want of a leader, to the oppressions of their enemies, would unanimously fly to his standard, and would seat him on the vacant throne, to which he brought such plausible pretensions. His aspiring spirit, inflamed by the fervor of youth, and buoyed up by his natural courage, saw the glory alone of the enterprise, or regarded the prodigious difficulties which attended it as the source only of further glory. The miseries and oppressions which he had beheld his countrymen suffer in their unequal contest, the repeated defeats and misfortunes which they had undergone, proved to him so many incentives to bring them relief, and conduct them to vengeance against the haughty victor. The circumstances which attended Bruce’s first declaration are variously related; but we shall rather follow the account given by the Scottish historians; not that their authority is in general anywise comparable to that of the English, but because they may be supposed sometimes better informed concerning facts which so nearly interested their own nation.

Bruce therefore hoped that the Scots, who had long suffered from the lack of a leader and the oppression of their enemies, would come together to support him and place him on the vacant throne, to which he had such convincing claims. His ambitious spirit, fueled by the passion of youth and strengthened by his natural bravery, saw only the glory of the undertaking, viewing the enormous challenges as merely opportunities for even greater glory. The suffering and hardships he had witnessed his fellow countrymen endure in their unequal struggle, along with the repeated defeats and setbacks they had faced, motivated him to bring them relief and guide them to take revenge against the arrogant victor. The details surrounding Bruce's first declaration are told in various ways, but we will follow the version provided by the Scottish historians; not because their authority is generally comparable to that of the English, but because they are likely to have a better understanding of facts that closely affected their own nation.

Bruce, who had long harbored in his breast the design of freeing his enslaved country, ventured at last to open his mind to John Cummin, a powerful nobleman, with whom he lived in strict intimacy. He found his friend, as he imagined, fully possessed with the same sentiments; and he needed to employ no arts of persuasion to make him embrace the resolution of throwing off, on the first favorable opportunity, the usurped dominion of the English. But on the departure of Bruce, who attended Edward to London, Cummin, who either had all along dissembled with him, or began to reflect more coolly in his absence on the desperate nature of the undertaking, resolved to atone for his crime in assenting to this rebellion, by the merit of revealing the secret to the king of England. Edward did not immediately commit Bruce to custody; because he intended at the same time to seize his three brothers, who resided in Scotland; and he contented himself with secretly setting spies upon him, and ordering all his motions to be strictly watched. A nobleman of Edward’s court, Bruce’s intimate friend, was apprised of his danger; but not daring, amidst so many jealous eyes, to hold any conversation with him, he fell on an expedient to give him warning, that it was full time he should make his escape. He sent him by his servant a pair of gilt spurs and a purse of gold, which he pretended to have borrowed from him; and left it to the sagacity of his friend to discover the meaning of the present. Bruce immediately contrived the means of his escape; and as the ground was at that time covered with snow, he had the precaution, it is said, to order his horses to be shod with their shoes inverted, that he might deceive those who should track his path over the open fields or cross roads, through which he purposed to travel. He arrived in a few days at Dumfries, in Annandale, the chief seat of his family interest; and he happily found a great number of the Scottish nobility there assembled, and among the rest, John Cummin, his former associate.

Bruce, who had long dreamed of freeing his enslaved country, finally decided to share his thoughts with John Cummin, a powerful nobleman who was a close friend. He believed that Cummin felt the same way he did and didn't need to persuade him to join in the plan to overthrow the English whenever a good chance arose. However, after Bruce left to accompany Edward to London, Cummin either had been deceiving him all along or began to think more clearly on his own about the risky nature of the plan. He made up his mind to redeem himself for agreeing to this rebellion by revealing the secret to the king of England. Edward didn't immediately arrest Bruce because he wanted to also capture his three brothers living in Scotland; instead, he decided to keep a close watch on Bruce and set spies on him. A nobleman from Edward’s court, who was a close friend of Bruce, learned of his danger. However, wary of the many suspicious eyes around, he found a way to warn Bruce that it was time to escape. He sent him through his servant a pair of gilt spurs and a purse of gold, pretending to have borrowed them from him, leaving it up to Bruce to decode the message. Bruce quickly figured out how to escape, and since it was snowing, he cleverly had his horses shod with their shoes turned backward to mislead anyone tracking him through the fields and back roads he planned to take. A few days later, he arrived in Dumfries, in Annandale, the main stronghold of his family's interests, and was fortunate to find many Scottish nobles gathered there, including John Cummin, his former ally.

The noblemen were astonished at the appearance of Bruce among them; and still more when he discovered to them the object of his journey. He told them that he was come to live or die with them in defence of the liberties of his country, and hoped, with their assistance, to redeem the Scottish name from all the indignities which it had so long suffered from the tyranny of their imperious masters: that the sacrifice of the rights of his family was the first injury which had prepared the way for their ensuing slavery; and by resuming them, which was his firm purpose, he opened to them the joyful prospect of recovering from the fraudulent usurper their ancient and hereditary independence: that all past misfortunes had proceeded from their disunion; and they would soon appear no less formidable than of old to their enemies, if they now deigned to follow into the field their rightful prince, who knew no medium between death and victory, that their mountains and their valor, which had, during so many ages, protected their liberty from all the efforts of the Roman empire, would still be sufficient, were they worthy of their generous ancestors, to defend them against the utmost violence of the English tyrant: that it was unbecoming men, born to the most ancient independence known in Europe, to submit to the will of any masters; but fatal to receive those who, being irritated by such persevering resistance, and inflamed with the highest animosity, would never deem themselves secure in their usurped dominion but by exterminating all the ancient nobility, and even all the ancient inhabitants: and that, being reduced to this desperate extremity, it were better for them at once to perish like brave men, with swords in their hands, than to dread long, and at last undergo, the fate of the unfortunate Wallace, whose merits, in the brave and obstinate defence of his country, were finally rewarded by the hands of an English executioner.

The noblemen were shocked to see Bruce among them, even more so when he revealed the purpose of his visit. He told them he had come to live or die with them in defense of their country’s freedoms and hoped, with their help, to reclaim the Scottish name from the humiliation it had suffered under the tyranny of their harsh rulers. He pointed out that the sacrifice of his family’s rights was the first wrong that led to their eventual enslavement, and that by reclaiming those rights—his firm intention—he opened the joyful possibility of regaining their ancient and hereditary independence from the fraudulent usurper. He noted that all their past misfortunes came from their disunity, and if they chose to follow their rightful prince into battle, they would soon be as formidable against their enemies as ever. He reminded them that their mountains and their bravery, which had defended their freedom against the Roman Empire for centuries, would still suffice to protect them against the brutality of the English oppressor, provided they lived up to the legacy of their noble ancestors. He argued it was unworthy of men, born into the oldest independence in Europe, to submit to any rulers. It was dangerous to accept those who, driven mad by persistent resistance and fueled by deep animosity, would never feel secure in their stolen rule unless they wiped out all the old nobility and even all longstanding residents. He concluded that facing this desperate situation, it would be better to die like brave men with swords in their hands than to long for death and ultimately suffer the same fate as the unfortunate Wallace, whose valiant and stubborn defense of his country ended with him being executed by the English.

The spirit with which this discourse was delivered, the bold sentiments which it conveyed, the novelty of Bruce’s declaration, assisted by the graces of his youth and manly deportment, made deep impression on the minds of his audience, and roused all those principles of indignation and revenge, with which they had so long been secretly actuated. The Scottish nobles declared their unanimous resolution to use the utmost efforts in delivering their country from bondage, and to second the courage of Bruce, in asserting his and their undoubted rights against their common oppressors. Cummin alone who had secretly taken his measures with the king, opposed this general determination; and by representing the great power of England, governed by a prince of such uncommon vigor and abilities, he endeavored to set before them the certain destruction which they must expect, if they again violated their oaths of fealty, and shook off their allegiance to the victorious Edward.[*] Bruce, already apprised of his treachery, and foreseeing the certain failure of all his own schemes of ambition and glory from the opposition of so potent a leader, took immediately his resolution; and moved partly by resentment, partly by policy, followed Cummin on the dissolution of the assembly, attacked him in the cloisters of the Gray Friars, through which he passed, and running him through the body, left him for dead. Sir Thomas Kirkpatric, one of Bruce’s friends, asking him soon after if the traitor were slain, “I believe so,” replied Bruce. “And is that a matter,” cried Kirkpatric, “to be left to conjecture? I will secure him.” Upon which he drew his dagger, ran to Cummin, and stabbed him to the heart. This deed of Bruce and his associates, which contains circumstances justly condemned by our present manners, was regarded in that age as an effort of manly vigor and just policy. The family of Kirkpatric took for the crest of their arms, which they still wear, a hand with a bloody dagger; and chose for their motto these words, “I will secure him;” the expression employed by their ancestor when he executed that violent action.

The spirit in which this speech was given, the bold ideas it expressed, and the fresh declaration by Bruce, along with his youthful charm and manly demeanor, made a strong impact on his audience and stirred up the feelings of anger and vengeance that they had secretly harbored for a long time. The Scottish nobles unanimously decided to do everything in their power to free their country from oppression and to support Bruce’s courage in asserting his and their undeniable rights against their common oppressors. Only Cummin, who had secretly aligned himself with the king, opposed this collective decision; he argued that the great power of England, led by such a strong and capable prince, would lead to certain destruction if they violated their oaths of loyalty and abandoned their allegiance to the victorious Edward. Bruce, already aware of Cummin's treachery and predicting that his ambitions and glory would fail due to such a formidable opponent, immediately made his decision. Motivated by both resentment and strategy, he followed Cummin after the assembly broke up, attacked him in the cloisters of the Gray Friars, and stabbed him, leaving him for dead. Sir Thomas Kirkpatric, one of Bruce's friends, later asked him if the traitor was dead. “I believe so,” Bruce replied. “And is that something,” Kirkpatric exclaimed, “that we should leave to guesswork? I’ll finish him off.” With that, he drew his dagger, ran to Cummin, and stabbed him in the heart. This act by Bruce and his companions, which today's standards would condemn, was viewed in that time as a display of manly strength and justified strategy. The Kirkpatric family adopted a hand with a bloody dagger as their crest, which they still display, and chose the motto “I will secure him,” the phrase their ancestor used when he committed that act of violence.

     * M. West. p. 453.
M. West, p. 453.

The murder of Cummin affixed the seal to the conspiracy of the Scottish nobles: they had now no resource left but to shake off the yoke of England, or to perish in the attempt: the genius of the nation roused itself from its present dejection: and Bruce, flying to different quarters, excited his partisans to arms, attacked with success the dispersed bodies of the English, got possession of many of the castles, and having made his authority be acknowledged in most parts of the kingdom, was solemnly crowned and inaugurated in the abbey of Scone by the bishop of St. Andrews, who had zealously embraced his cause. The English were again chased out of the kingdom, except such as took shelter in the fortresses that still remained in their hands; and Edward found that the Scots, twice conquered in his reign, and often defeated, must yet be anew subdued. Not discouraged with these unexpected difficulties, he sent Aymer de Valence with a considerable force into Scotland, to check the progress of the malecontents; and that nobleman, falling unexpectedly upon Bruce, at Methven, in Perthshire, threw his army into such disorder as ended in a total defeat.[*] Bruce fought with the most heroic courage, was thrice dismounted in the action, and as often recovered himself; but was at last obliged to yield to superior fortune, and take shelter, with a few followers, in the Western Isles. The earl of Athole, Sir Simon Fraser, and Sir Christopher Seton, who had been taken prisoners, were ordered by Edward to be executed as rebels and traitors.[**]

The murder of Cummin sealed the deal for the conspiracy of the Scottish nobles: they had no choice left but to shake off England's control or die trying. The spirit of the nation stirred from its current despair, and Bruce, moving to different regions, rallied his supporters to arms, successfully attacked scattered groups of the English, captured many castles, and established his authority in most parts of the kingdom. He was officially crowned and inaugurated in the abbey of Scone by the bishop of St. Andrews, who had passionately supported his cause. The English were chased out of the kingdom again, except for those who took refuge in the fortresses they still held. Edward realized that the Scots, who had been defeated twice during his reign and often bested, needed to be subdued once more. Undeterred by these unexpected challenges, he sent Aymer de Valence with a significant force into Scotland to curb the progress of the rebels. That nobleman unexpectedly attacked Bruce at Methven in Perthshire, throwing his army into disarray, resulting in a total defeat. Bruce fought with incredible bravery, was thrown from his horse three times during the battle, and managed to recover each time, but ultimately had to concede to greater fortune and seek refuge with a few followers in the Western Isles. Edward ordered the execution of the earl of Athole, Sir Simon Fraser, and Sir Christopher Seton, who had been captured, labeling them as rebels and traitors.

     * Walsing. p. 91. Heming. vol. i. p. 222, 223. Trivet, p.
     344.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 223. M. West. p. 456.
     * Walsing. p. 91. Heming. vol. i. p. 222, 223. Trivet, p.
     344.

     ** Heming. vol. i. p. 223. M. West. p. 456.

1307.

1307.

Many other acts of rigor were exercised by him; and that prince, vowing revenge against the whole Scottish nation, whom he deemed incorrigible in their aversion to his government, assembled a great army, and was preparing to enter the frontiers, secure of success, and determined to make the defenceless Scots the victims of his severity, when he unexpectedly sickened and died near Carlisle; enjoining with his last breath his son and successor to prosecute the enterprise, and never to desist till he had finally subdued the kingdom of Scotland. He expired in the sixty-ninth year of his age, and the thirty-fifth of his reign, hated by his neighbors, but extremely respected and revered by his own subjects.

Many other harsh measures were taken by him; and that prince, swearing revenge against the entire Scottish nation, whom he believed to be hopelessly resistant to his rule, gathered a large army and was preparing to invade the borders, confident of victory and determined to make the defenseless Scots suffer for his harshness, when he unexpectedly fell ill and died near Carlisle; urging with his last breath his son and successor to continue the campaign and never to stop until he had completely conquered the kingdom of Scotland. He died in his sixty-ninth year and the thirty-fifth of his reign, hated by his neighbors but greatly respected and revered by his own people.

The enterprises finished by this prince, and the projects which he formed and brought near to a conclusion, were more prudent, more regularly conducted, and more advantageous to the solid interests of his kingdom, than those which were undertaken in any reign, either of his ancestors or his successors. He restored authority to the government, disordered by the weakness of his father; he maintained the laws against all the efforts of his turbulent barons; he fully annexed to his crown the principality of Wales; he took many wise and vigorous measures for reducing Scotland to a like condition; and though the equity of this latter enterprise may reasonably be questioned, the circumstances of the two kingdoms promised such certain success, and the advantage was so visible of uniting the whole island under one head, that those who give great indulgence to reasons of state in the measures of princes, will not be apt to regard this part of his conduct with much severity. But Edward, however exceptionable his character may appear on the head of justice, is the model of a politic and warlike king: he possessed industry, penetration, courage, vigilance, and enterprise: he was frugal in all expenses that were not necessary; he knew how to open the public treasures on a proper occasion; he punished criminals with severity; he was gracious and affable to his servants and courtiers; and being of a majestic figure, expert in all military exercises, and in the main well proportioned in his limbs, notwithstanding the great length and the smallness of his legs, he was as well qualified to captivate the populace by his exterior appearance, as to gain the approbation of men of sense by his more solid virtues.

The projects completed by this prince and the initiatives he developed and nearly finished were more sensible, better organized, and more beneficial to the true interests of his kingdom than those undertaken during the reigns of either his ancestors or successors. He restored authority to a government weakened by his father's failings; he upheld the laws against all the attempts of his unruly barons; he fully incorporated Wales into his crown; he implemented many wise and decisive actions to bring Scotland to a similar state; and while the fairness of this latter endeavor can be reasonably questioned, the situations of the two kingdoms promised considerable success, and the benefits of uniting the entire island under one ruler were so clear that those who excuse the decisions of rulers for political reasons are unlikely to judge this aspect of his actions too harshly. But Edward, no matter how questionable his reputation might seem regarding justice, exemplifies a shrewd and militaristic king: he had diligence, insight, bravery, alertness, and initiative; he was economical with all unnecessary expenses; he knew how to appropriately access public funds; he dealt with criminals harshly; he was kind and approachable with his staff and courtiers; and possessing a commanding presence, skilled in all military activities, and mostly well-proportioned despite the notable length and thinness of his legs, he was just as capable of winning over the public with his appearance as he was of earning the respect of intelligent individuals through his more substantial qualities.

But the chief advantage which the people of England reaped, and still continue to reap, from the reign of this great prince, was the correction, extension, amendment, and establishment of the laws which Edward maintained in great vigor, and left much improved to posterity; for the acts of a wise legislator commonly remain, while the acquisition of a conqueror often perish with him. This merit has justly gained to Edward the appellation of the English Justinian. Not only the numerous statutes passed in his reign touch the chief points of jurisprudence, and, according to Sir Edward Coke,[*] truly deserve the name of establishments, because they were more constant, standing, and durable laws than any made since; but the regular order maintained in his administration gave an opportunity to the common law to refine itself, and brought the judges to a certainty in their determinations, and the lawyers to a precision in their pleadings. Sir Matthew Hale has remarked the sudden improvement of English law during this reign; and ventures to assert, that till his own time it had never received any considerable increase.[**] Edward settled the jurisdiction of the several courts; first established the office of justice of peace; abstained from the practice, too common before him, of interrupting justice by mandates from the privy-council;[***] repressed robberies and Edward enacted a law to this purpose; but it is doubtful whether he ever observed it. We are sure that scarcely any of his successors did.

But the biggest benefit that the people of England gained, and continue to gain, from the reign of this great king was the correction, extension, amendment, and establishment of the laws that Edward upheld vigorously and left greatly improved for future generations. The actions of a wise legislator tend to endure, while the gains of a conqueror usually die with him. This achievement has rightfully earned Edward the title of the English Justinian. Not only do the many statutes passed during his reign address the key aspects of law, but they also genuinely deserve to be called establishings, as noted by Sir Edward Coke,[*] because they were more consistent, stable, and long-lasting laws than any created since. The orderly administration he maintained allowed common law to refine itself, leading to certainty in judicial decisions and precision in legal arguments. Sir Matthew Hale noted the rapid improvement of English law during this reign and dares to claim that, until his own time, it had never seen any substantial growth.[**] Edward defined the jurisdiction of various courts, first created the office of justice of the peace, refrained from the common practice before him of disrupting justice with orders from the privy council,[***] curbed robberies, and enacted a law for this purpose; however, it's uncertain if he ever enforced it. We know that hardly any of his successors did.

     * Institute, p. 156.

     ** History of the English Law, p. 158, 163.

     *** Articuli super Cart. cap. 6., Letters of protection were
     the ground of a complaint by the commons in 3, Edward (See
     Ryley, p. 525.) This practice is declared illegal.
     * Institute, p. 156.

     ** History of the English Law, p. 158, 163.

     *** Articles on the Charter, chapter 6. Letters of protection were the basis of a complaint by the commons in the 3rd year of Edward (See Ryley, p. 525.) This practice is declared illegal.

The multitude of these disorders[*] encouraged trade, by giving merchants an easy method of recovering their debts;[**] and, in short, introduced a new face of things by the vigor and wisdom of his administration. As law began now to be well established, the abuse of that blessing began also to be remarked. Instead of their former associations for robbery and violence, men entered into formal combinations to support each other in lawsuits, and it was found requisite to check this iniquity by act of parliament.[***]

The numerous disorders[*] led to increased trade by providing merchants with a straightforward way to recover their debts;[**] in short, it brought about a new era thanks to the strength and wisdom of his leadership. As the law became more established, the misuse of that privilege started to be noticed. Instead of their previous collaborations for theft and violence, people formed official groups to back each other in legal battles, making it necessary to curb this wrongdoing through an act of parliament.[***]

There happened in this reign a considerable alteration in the execution of the laws: the king abolished the office of chief justiciary, which, he thought, possessed too much power, and was dangerous to the crown;[****] he completed the division of the court of exchequer into four distinct courts, which managed each its several branch, without dependence on any one magistrate; and as the lawyers afterwards invented a method, by means of their fictions, of carrying business from one court to another, the several courts became rivals and checks to each other; a circumstance which tended much to improve the practice of the law in England.

During this reign, there was a significant change in how the laws were enforced: the king got rid of the position of chief justiciary, believing it held too much power and posed a threat to the crown;[****] he finalized the division of the court of exchequer into four separate courts, each managing its own area independently; and as lawyers later came up with a way to move cases from one court to another using fictions, the different courts became rivals and checks on each other, which greatly improved the practice of law in England.

     * Statute of Winton.

     ** Statute of Acton Burnel

     *** Statute of Conspirators.

     **** Spel. Gloss, in verbo Justiciarius.

     Gilbert’s History of the Exchequer, p. 8: not bound to it by
     his tenure; his visible reluctance to confirm the Great
     Charter, as if that concession had no validity from the
     deeds of his predecessors; the captious clause which he at
     last annexed to his confirmation; his procuring of the
     pope’s dispensation from the oaths which he had taken to
     observe that charter; and his levying of talliages at
     discretion even after the statute, or rather charter, by
     which he had renounced that prerogative; these are so many
     demonstrations of his arbitrary disposition, and prove with
     what exception and reserve we ought to celebrate his love of
     justice. He took care that his subjects should do justice to
     each other; but he desired always to have his own hands free
     in all his transactions, both with them and with his
     neighbors.
* Statute of Winton.

** Statute of Acton Burnel

*** Statute of Conspirators.

**** Spel. Gloss, in verbo Justiciarius.

Gilbert’s History of the Exchequer, p. 8: not bound to it by his tenure; his clear reluctance to confirm the Great Charter, as if that concession had no validity from the actions of his predecessors; the tricky clause he eventually added to his confirmation; his obtaining the pope’s exemption from the oaths he had taken to uphold that charter; and his collection of taxes at will even after the statute, or rather charter, by which he had given up that right; these are clear signs of his arbitrary nature and show how cautiously we should recognize his commitment to justice. He ensured that his subjects provided justice to one another, but he always wanted to keep his own options open in all his dealings, both with them and with his neighbors.

But though Edward appeared thus, throughout his whole reign, a friend to law and justice, it cannot be said that he was an enemy to arbitrary power; and in a government more regular and legal than was that of England in his age, such practices as those which may be remarked in his administration, would have given sufficient ground of complaint, and sometimes were even in his age the object of general displeasure. The violent plunder and banishment of the Jews; the putting of the whole clergy at once, and by an arbitrary edict, out of the protection of law; the seizing of all the wool and leather of the kingdom; the heightening of the impositions on the former valuable commodity; the new and illegal commission of Trailbaston; the taking of all the money and plate of monasteries and churches, even before he had any quarrel with the clergy; the subjecting of every man possessed of twenty pounds a year to military service, though by the statute of Northampton, passed in the second of Edward III.; but it still continued, like many other abuses. There are instances of it so late as the reign of Queen Elizabeth.

But even though Edward seemed to be a supporter of law and justice throughout his reign, he can't really be seen as an opponent of arbitrary power. In a government that was more organized and legal than England's during his time, the practices observed in his administration would have been enough to raise complaints and sometimes even sparked widespread discontent in his era. The violent looting and exile of the Jews, the forced removal of the entire clergy from legal protection through a sudden decree, the confiscation of all the wool and leather in the kingdom, the increased taxes on the previously valuable commodity, the new and unlawful commission of Trailbaston, the seizure of all the money and valuables from monasteries and churches even before he had any issues with the clergy, and the requirement for anyone earning twenty pounds a year to serve in the military—despite the statute of Northampton passed in the second year of Edward III.—though it persisted like many other abuses. There are examples of this as late as the reign of Queen Elizabeth.

The chief obstacle to the execution of justice in those times was the power of the great barons; and Edward was perfectly qualified, by his character and abilities, for keeping these tyrants in awe, and restraining their illegal practices. This salutary purpose was accordingly the great object of his attention; yet was he imprudently led into a measure which tended to increase and confirm their dangerous authority. He passed a statute which, by allowing them to entail their estates, made it impracticable to diminish the property of the great families, and left them every means of increase and acquisition.[*]

The main barrier to achieving justice back then was the power of the powerful barons, and Edward was well-suited, due to his character and skills, to keep these tyrants in check and limit their unlawful actions. This important goal was a major focus for him; however, he foolishly took a step that ended up boosting and solidifying their risky influence. He enacted a law that allowed them to tie up their estates in a way that made it impossible to reduce the wealth of these powerful families, giving them all the resources they needed to grow and acquire even more.

     * Brady of Boroughs, p. 25, from the records
     * Brady of Boroughs, p. 25, from the records

Edward observed a contrary policy with regard to the church: he seems to have been the first Christian prince that passed a statute of mortmain; and prevented by law the clergy from making new acquisitions of lands, which by the ecclesiastical canons they were forever prohibited from alienating. The opposition between his maxims with regard to the nobility and to the ecclesiastics, leads us to conjecture, that it was only by chance he passed the beneficial statute of mortmain, and that his sole object was to maintain the number of knights’ fees, and to prevent the superiors from being defrauded of the profits of wardship, marriage, livery, and other emoluments arising from the feudal tenures. This is indeed, the reason assigned in the statute itself, and appears to have been his real object in enacting it. The author of the Annals of Waverley ascribes this act chiefly to the king’s anxiety for maintaining the military force of the kingdom but adds, that he was mistaken in his purpose; for that the Amalekites were overcome more by the prayers of Moses than by the sword of the Israelites.[*] The statute of mortmain was often evaded afterwards by the invention of “uses.”

Edward had a different approach to the church: he seems to have been the first Christian king to establish a law against mortmain; he prevented the clergy from acquiring new lands, which by church rules they were never allowed to give away. The contrast between his views on the nobility and the clergy suggests that he might have only accidentally passed the beneficial law against mortmain, and his main goal was likely to maintain the number of knights’ fees and to stop the lords from losing out on the benefits of wardship, marriage, livery, and other profits from feudal holdings. This is actually the reason stated in the law itself, and it seems to have been his true intention in implementing it. The author of the Annals of Waverley attributes this action primarily to the king’s desire to sustain the military strength of the kingdom, but notes that he was mistaken in his goal; for the Amalekites were defeated more by Moses' prayers than by the Israelites’ sword.[*] The law against mortmain was often bypassed later through the use of “uses.”

Edward was active in restraining the usurpations of the church; and excepting his ardor for crusades, which adhered to him during his whole life, seems in other respects to have been little infected with superstition, the vice chiefly of weak minds. But the passion for crusades was really in that age the passion for glory. As the pope now felt himself somewhat more restrained in his former practice of pillaging the several churches in Europe by laying impositions upon them, he permitted the generals of particular orders, who resided at Rome, to levy taxes on the convents subjected to their jurisdiction; and Edward was obliged to enact a law against this new abuse. It was also become a practice of the court of Rome to provide successors to benefices before they became vacant: Edward found it likewise necessary to prevent by law this species of injustice.

Edward was active in limiting the church's overreach; and aside from his strong interest in crusades, which stayed with him throughout his life, he didn't seem to be particularly superstitious, a flaw mostly found in weaker minds. However, the desire for crusades was really, at that time, a desire for glory. As the pope felt a bit more restrained in his previous habit of plundering various churches in Europe by imposing taxes on them, he allowed leaders of specific orders based in Rome to tax the convents under their control; and Edward had to pass a law against this new abuse. It also became common for the court of Rome to appoint successors to positions before they became available: Edward found it necessary to legislate against this kind of injustice as well.

The tribute of one thousand marks a year, to which King John, in doing homage to the pope, had subjected the kingdom, had been pretty regularly paid since his time, though the vassalage was constantly denied, and indeed, for fear of giving offence, had been but little insisted on. The payment was called by a new name of “census,” not by that of tribute. King Edward seems to have always paid this money with great reluctance; and he suffered the arrears at one time to run on for six years,[**] at another for eleven:[***] but as princes in that age stood continually in need of the pope’s good offices, for dispensations of marriage and for other concessions, the court of Rome always found means, sooner or later, to catch the money. The levying of first-fruits was also a new device begun in this reign, by which his holiness thrust his fingers very frequently into the purses of the faithful; and the king seems to have unwarily given way to it.

The yearly payment of one thousand marks, which King John established as a tribute to the pope, had been consistently paid since his reign, even though the idea of vassalage was often denied and not pressed much for fear of causing offense. This payment was referred to as “census” instead of tribute. King Edward seemed to pay this amount very reluctantly, allowing the arrears to accumulate for six years at one point and for eleven at another. However, since princes of that time frequently relied on the pope for marriage dispensations and other favors, the Roman court always found ways to eventually collect the money. The collection of first-fruits was also a new tactic introduced during this reign, allowing the pope to regularly dip into the pockets of the faithful, and the king appears to have unwittingly accepted it.

     * Page 234. See also M. West. p. 409.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii p. 77, 107.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii p. 862.
     * Page 234. See also M. West. p. 409.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii p. 77, 107.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii p. 862.

In the former reign, the taxes had been partly scutages, partly such a proportional part of the movables as was granted by parliament; in this, scutages were entirely dropped, and the assessment on movables was the chief method of taxation. Edward, in his fourth year, had a fifteenth granted him; in his fifth year, a twelfth; in his eleventh year, a thirtieth from the laity, a twentieth from the clergy; in his eighteenth year, a fifteenth; in his twenty-second year, a tenth from the laity, a sixth from London and other corporate towns, half of their benefices from the clergy; in his twenty-third year, an eleventh from the barons and others, a tenth from the clergy, a seventh from the burgesses; in his twenty fourth year, a twelfth from the barons and others, an eighth from the burgesses, from the clergy nothing, because of the pope’s inhibition; in his twenty-fifth year, an eighth from the laity, a tenth from the clergy of Canterbury, a fifth from those of York; in his twenty-ninth year, a fifteenth from the laity, on account of his confirming the perambulations of the forests; the clergy granted nothing; in his thirty-third year, first, a thirtieth from the barons and others, and a twentieth from the burgesses, then a fifteenth from all his subjects; in his thirty fourth year, a thirtieth from all his subjects, for knighting his eldest son.

In the previous reign, taxes were partly scutages and partly a proportional share of the movable goods approved by parliament; in this reign, scutages were completely eliminated, and the main method of taxation became the assessment on movable goods. In Edward's fourth year, he received a fifteenth; in his fifth year, a twelfth; in his eleventh year, a thirtieth from the laypeople and a twentieth from the clergy; in his eighteenth year, a fifteenth; in his twenty-second year, a tenth from the laypeople, a sixth from London and other corporate towns, and half of their benefices from the clergy; in his twenty-third year, an eleventh from the barons and others, a tenth from the clergy, and a seventh from the burgesses; in his twenty-fourth year, a twelfth from the barons and others, an eighth from the burgesses, and nothing from the clergy due to the pope’s prohibition; in his twenty-fifth year, an eighth from the laypeople, a tenth from the clergy of Canterbury, and a fifth from those of York; in his twenty-ninth year, a fifteenth from the laypeople because he confirmed the boundaries of the forests; the clergy granted nothing; in his thirty-third year, first a thirtieth from the barons and others and a twentieth from the burgesses, then a fifteenth from all his subjects; in his thirty-fourth year, a thirtieth from all his subjects to fund the knighting of his eldest son.

These taxes were moderate; but the king had also duties upon exportation and importation granted him from time to time: the heaviest were commonly upon wool. Poundage, or a shilling a pound, was not regularly granted the kings for life till the reign of Henry V.

These taxes were reasonable; however, the king also received duties on exports and imports granted to him periodically: the heaviest ones were usually on wool. Poundage, or a shilling per pound, was not consistently granted to the kings for life until the reign of Henry V.

In 1296, the famous mercantile society, called the “merchant adventurers,” had its first origin: it was instituted for the improvement of the woollen manufacture, and the vending of the cloth abroad, particularly at Antwerp:[*] for the English at this time scarcely thought of any more distant commerce.

In 1296, the well-known trading group, called the “merchant adventurers,” was founded. It was created to enhance the wool manufacturing industry and to sell the cloth overseas, especially in Antwerp:[*] at this time, the English hardly considered any trade beyond that.

This king granted a charter or declaration of protection and privileges to foreign merchants, and also ascertained the customs or duties which those merchants were in return to pay on merchandise imported and exported. He promised them security; allowed them a jury on trials, consisting half of natives, half of foreigners; and appointed them a justiciary in London for their protection. But notwithstanding this seeming attention to foreign merchants, Edward did not free them from the cruel hardship of making one answerable for the debts, and even for the crimes of another, that came from the same country.[**]

This king issued a charter or statement guaranteeing protection and benefits to foreign merchants, and also established the customs or duties those merchants were required to pay on goods imported and exported. He promised them safety; allowed them a jury for trials made up of half locals and half foreigners; and appointed a judge in London for their protection. However, despite this apparent concern for foreign merchants, Edward did not relieve them from the harsh burden of making one person accountable for the debts and even the crimes of another from the same country.[**]

     * Anderson’s History of Commerce, vol. i. p. 137.

     ** Anderson’s History of Commerce, vol. i. p. 146.
     * Anderson's History of Commerce, vol. i. p. 137.

     ** Anderson's History of Commerce, vol. i. p. 146.

We read of such practices among the present barbarous nations. The king also imposed on them a duty of two shillings on each tun of wine imported, over and above the old duty; and forty pence on each sack of wool exported besides half a mark, the former duty.[*]

We read about such practices among the current uncivilized nations. The king also placed a tax of two shillings on every tun of imported wine, in addition to the previous tax; and forty pence on each sack of exported wool, plus half a mark, the former tax.[*]

In the year 1303, the exchequer was robbed, and of no less a sum than one hundred thousand pounds, as is pretended.[**] The abbot and monks of Westminster were indicted for this robbery, but acquitted. It does not appear that the king ever discovered the criminals with certainty, though his indignation fell on the society of Lombard merchants, particularly the Frescobaldi, very opulent Florentines.

In 1303, the treasury was stolen from, and allegedly the amount was no less than one hundred thousand pounds. The abbot and monks of Westminster were charged with this theft but were found not guilty. It seems that the king never definitively identified the culprits, although he directed his anger toward the group of Lombard merchants, especially the Frescobaldi, who were very wealthy Florentines.

The pope having in 1307 collected much money in England, the king enjoined the nuncio not to export it in specie but in bills of exchange;[***] a proof that commerce was but ill understood at that time.

The pope, having gathered a lot of money in England in 1307, instructed the nuncio not to export it in cash but in bills of exchange;[***] this shows that commerce was not well understood at that time.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 361. It is the charter of Edward I.
     which is there confirmed by Edward III.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 930.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 1092.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 361. This is the charter of Edward I. that is confirmed by Edward III.

     ** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 930.

     *** Rymer, vol. ii. p. 1092.

Edward had by his first wife, Eleanor of Castile, four sons; but Edward, his heir and successor, was the only one that survived him. She also bore him eleven daughters, most of whom died in their infancy: of the surviving, Joan was married first to the earl of Glocester, and after his death to Ralph de Monthermer: Margaret espoused John, duke of Brabant: Elizabeth espoused first John, earl of Holland, and afterwards the earl of Hereford: Mary was a nun at Ambresbury. He had by his second wife, Margaret of France, two sons and a daughter; Thomas, created earl of Norfolk and mareschal of England; and Edmund, who was created earl of Kent by his brother when king. The princess died in her infancy.

Edward had four sons with his first wife, Eleanor of Castile, but only Edward, his heir and successor, survived him. She also gave birth to eleven daughters, most of whom died in infancy. Among the surviving daughters, Joan was first married to the Earl of Gloucester and, after his death, to Ralph de Monthermer. Margaret married John, Duke of Brabant. Elizabeth first married John, Earl of Holland, and then the Earl of Hereford. Mary became a nun at Ambresbury. With his second wife, Margaret of France, he had two sons and a daughter: Thomas, who was made Earl of Norfolk and Marshal of England, and Edmund, who was created Earl of Kent by his brother when he became king. The princess did not survive infancy.





CHAPTER XIV.

1_197_edward2.jpg Edward II.




EDWARD II.

1307.

1307.

The prepossessions entertained in favor of young Edward, kept the English from being fully sensible of the extreme loss which they had sustained by the death of the great monarch who filled the throne; and all men hastened with alacrity to take the oath of allegiance to his son and successor. This prince was in the twenty-third year of his age, was of an agreeable figure, of a mild and gentle disposition, and having never discovered a propensity to any dangerous vice, it was natural to prognosticate tranquillity and happiness from his government. But the first act of his reign blasted all these hopes, and showed him to be totally unqualified for that perilous situation in which every English monarch during those ages had, from the unstable form of the constitution, and the turbulent dispositions of the people derived from it, the misfortune to be placed. The indefatigable Robert Bruce, though his army had been dispersed, and he himself had been obliged to take shelter in the Western Isles, remained not long inactive; but before the death of the late king, had sallied from his retreat, had again collected his followers, had appeared in the field, and had obtained by surprise an important advantage over Aymer de Valence, who commanded the English forces.[*]

The positive views people had about young Edward kept the English from fully realizing the significant loss they experienced with the death of the great king on the throne. Everyone quickly pledged their loyalty to his son and successor. This prince, at twenty-three years old, was handsome, mild-mannered, and had never shown any tendencies toward dangerous vices, making it seem likely that his reign would bring peace and happiness. However, the first act of his reign shattered those hopes and revealed that he was entirely unfit for the challenging position that every English monarch faced during those times, due to the unstable nature of the constitution and the turbulent temperament of the people. The tireless Robert Bruce, even though his army had been scattered and he had to find refuge in the Western Isles, didn’t remain inactive for long. Before the previous king's death, he had emerged from hiding, rallied his followers, entered the battlefield, and unexpectedly achieved a significant victory over Aymer de Valence, who commanded the English troops.[*]

     * Trivet, p. 346.
* Trivet, p. 346.

He was now become so considerable as to have afforded the king of England sufficient glory in subduing him, without incurring any danger of seeing all those mighty preparations, made by his father, fail in the enterprise. But Edward, instead of pursuing his advantages, marched but a little way into Scotland; and having an utter incapacity, and equal aversion, for all application or serious business, he immediately returned upon his footsteps, and disbanded his army. His grandees perceived, from this conduct, that the authority of the crown, fallen into such feeble hands, was no longer to be dreaded, and that every insolence might be practised by them with impunity.

He had become so important that he provided the king of England with enough glory by defeating him, without risking the failure of all those huge preparations made by his father. But Edward, instead of taking advantage of his position, only marched a short distance into Scotland; and with his complete inability and equal dislike for any serious work, he quickly turned back and disbanded his army. His nobles noticed that, due to this behavior, the authority of the crown, now in such weak hands, could no longer be feared, and that they could act with impunity.

The next measure taken by Edward gave them an inclination to attack those prerogatives which no longer kept them in awe. There was one Piers Gavaston, son of a Gascon knight of some distinction, who had honorably served the late king and who, in reward of his merits, had obtained an establishment for his son in the family of the prince of Wales. This young man soon insinuated himself into the affections of his master, by his agreeable behavior, and by supplying him with all those innocent though frivolous amusements which suited his capacity and his inclinations. He was endowed with the utmost elegance of shape and person, was noted for a fine mien and easy carriage, distinguished himself in all warlike and genteel exercises, and was celebrated for those quick sallies of wit in which his countrymen usually excel. By all these accomplishments, he gained so entire an ascendant over young Edward, whose heart was strongly disposed to friendship and confidence, that the late king, apprehensive of the consequences, had banished him the kingdom, and had, before he died, made his son promise never to recall him. But no sooner did he find himself master, as he vainly imagined, than he sent for Gavaston; and even before his arrival at court, endowed him with the whole earldom of Cornwall, which had escheated to the crown by the death of Edmond, son of Richard, king of the Romans.[*] Not content with conferring on him those possessions, which had sufficed as an appanage for a prince of the blood, he daily loaded him with new honors and riches; married him to his own niece, sister of the earl of Glocester; and seemed to enjoy no pleasure in his royal dignity, but as it enabled him to exalt to the highest splendor this object of his fond affections.

The next move made by Edward encouraged them to challenge those powers that no longer intimidated them. There was a guy named Piers Gavaston, the son of a notable Gascon knight, who had honorably served the late king. In recognition of his father's service, the king had arranged for his son to be part of the household of the Prince of Wales. This young man quickly won the affection of his master with his charming demeanor and by providing him with all those lighthearted yet trivial pastimes that matched his abilities and interests. He was extremely good-looking and was known for his elegant demeanor and graceful movements. He excelled in all martial and gentlemanly activities and was celebrated for his quick wit, which his fellow countrymen typically possessed. With all these talents, he gained such influence over young Edward, who was naturally inclined toward friendship and trust, that the late king, fearing the potential fallout, had exiled him from the kingdom and had made his son promise before he died that he would never bring him back. However, as soon as Edward thought he was in control, he called for Gavaston; and even before Gavaston arrived at court, he granted him the entire earldom of Cornwall, which had reverted to the crown due to the death of Edmond, the son of Richard, king of the Romans.[*] Not satisfied with just giving him land, which would have been enough for a prince, he continually bestowed new honors and wealth on him; married him to his own niece, the sister of the Earl of Gloucester; and seemed to find joy in his royal status only as it allowed him to elevate this object of his deep affection to the highest splendor.

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 1. Heming. vol. i. p. 243. Walsing, p.
     96.
     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 1. Heming. vol. i. p. 243. Walsing, p.
     96.

The haughty barons, offended at the superiority of a minion, whose birth, though reputable, they despised as much inferior to their own, concealed not their discontent; and soon found reasons to justify their animosity in the character and conduct of the man they hated. Instead of disarming envy by the moderation and modesty of his behavior, Gavaston displayed his power and influence with the utmost ostentation; and deemed no circumstance of his good fortune so agreeable as its enabling him to eclipse and mortify all his rivals. He was vain-glorious, profuse, rapacious; fond of exterior pomp and appearance, giddy with prosperity; and as he imagined that his fortune was now as strongly rooted in the kingdom as his ascendant was uncontrolled over the weak monarch, he was negligent in engaging partisans, who might support his sudden and ill-established grandeur. At all tournaments he took delight in foiling the English nobility by his superior address: in every conversation he made them the object of his wit and raillery: every day his enemies multiplied upon him; and nought was wanting but a little time to cement their union, and render it fatal both to him and to his master.[*]

The arrogant barons, angered by the dominance of a favorites, whose background, though respectable, they regarded as inferior to their own, didn’t hide their discontent; and soon found reasons to justify their hatred for the man they despised. Instead of calming jealousy with his humility and restraint, Gavaston flaunted his power and influence extravagantly; he considered no aspect of his good fortune more satisfying than being able to overshadow and embarrass all his rivals. He was boastful, extravagant, greedy; obsessed with outward show and appearance, dizzy with success; and believing that his position was now firmly established in the kingdom as his influence over the weak king was unchallenged, he neglected to gather supporters who might back his sudden and shaky rise to power. At all the tournaments, he took pleasure in outshining the English nobility with his superior skills: in every conversation, he made them the butt of his jokes and mockery: every day, his enemies grew in number; and all that was needed was a little time to solidify their alliance and make it disastrous for both him and his king.[*]

It behoved the king to take a journey to France, both in order to do homage for the duchy of Guienne, and to espouse the Princess Isabella, to whom he had long been affianced, though unexpected accidents had hitherto retarded the completion of the marriage.[**] Edward left Gavaston guardian of the realm,[***] with more ample powers than had usually been conferred;[****] and, on his return with his young queen, renewed all the proofs of that fond attachment to the favorite of which every one so loudly complained. This princess was of an imperious and intriguing spirit; and finding that her husband’s capacity required, as his temper inclined, him to be governed, she thought herself best entitled, on every account, to perform the office, and she contracted a mortal hatred against the person who had disappointed her in these expectations. She was well pleased, therefore, to see a combination of the nobility forming against Gavaston, who, sensible of her hatred, had wantonly provoked her by new insults and injuries.

It was necessary for the king to travel to France, both to swear loyalty for the duchy of Guienne and to marry Princess Isabella, to whom he had been engaged for a long time, although unexpected events had delayed the marriage until now. Edward left Gavaston in charge of the kingdom, granting him more authority than was usually given. On his return with his young queen, he showed all the signs of his deep affection for his favorite, which everyone openly complained about. This princess had a strong-willed and scheming nature, and realizing that her husband’s abilities needed guiding, as his temperament suggested he needed to be managed, she felt justified in taking on that role herself. She developed a deep hatred for the person who had let her down in these expectations. Therefore, she was pleased to see a coalition of nobles forming against Gavaston, who, aware of her animosity, had foolishly provoked her with fresh insults and offenses.

     * T. de la More, p. 593; Walsing. p. 97.

     ** T. de la More, p. 593. Trivet, Cont. p. 3.

     *** Rymer vol. iii. p. 47. Ypod. Neust. p. 499.

     **** Brady’s App. No. 49.
     * T. de la More, p. 593; Walsing. p. 97.

     ** T. de la More, p. 593. Trivet, Cont. p. 3.

     *** Rymer vol. iii. p. 47. Ypod. Neust. p. 499.

     **** Brady’s App. No. 49.

1308.

1308.

Thomas, earl of Lancaster, cousin-german to the king, and first prince of the blood, was by far the most opulent and powerful subject in England, and possessed in his own right, and soon after in that of his wife, heiress of the family of Lincoln, no less than six earldoms, with a proportionable estate in land, attended with all the jurisdictions and power which commonly in that age were annexed to landed property. He was turbulent and factious in his disposition; mortally hated the favorite, whose influence over the king exceeded his own; and he soon became the head of that party among the barons who desired the depression of this insolent stranger. The confederated nobles bound themselves by oath to expel Gavaston: both sides began already to put themselves in a warlike posture: the licentiousness of the age broke out in robberies and other disorders, the usual prelude of civil war, and the royal authority, despised in the king’s own hands, and hated in those of Gavaston, became insufficient for the execution of the laws and the maintenance of peace in the kingdom. A parliament being summoned at Westminster, Lancaster and his party came thither with an armed retinue; and were there enabled to impose their own terms on the sovereign. They required the banishment of Gavaston, imposed an oath on him never to return, and engaged the bishops, who never failed to interpose in all civil concerns, to pronounce him excommunicated if he remained any longer in the kingdom.[*] Edward was obliged to submit;[**] but even in his compliance gave proofs of his fond attachment to his favorite. Instead of removing all umbrage by sending him to his own country, as was expected, he appointed him lord lieutenant of Ireland[***], attended him to Bristol on his journey thither, and before his departure conferred on him new lands and riches both in Gascony and England.[****] Gavaston, who did not want bravery, and possessed talents for war,[*****] acted, during his government, with vigor against some Irish rebels, whom he subdued.

Thomas, the Earl of Lancaster, cousin to the king and the highest-ranking royal relative, was by far the wealthiest and most powerful subject in England. He held six earldoms, along with a substantial estate in land, which came with all the rights and powers normally associated with such property during that time. He was known for being rebellious and divisive; he deeply loathed the king's favorite, whose influence over the king was greater than his own. Lancaster quickly became the leader of a faction among the barons that sought to bring down this arrogant outsider. The united nobles swore an oath to expel Gavaston, and both sides were gearing up for a fight. The lawlessness of the time erupted in thefts and other chaos, common signs of impending civil war. The king's authority, already disrespected and further undermined by Gavaston’s presence, became ineffective at enforcing laws or maintaining peace in the realm. When a parliament was called at Westminster, Lancaster and his supporters arrived with armed men and forced the king to accept their demands. They insisted on Gavaston's exile, required him to swear never to return, and got the bishops—who always intervened in civil matters—to declare him excommunicated if he stayed in England any longer.[*] Edward had to agree to these terms;[**] however, even in yielding, he demonstrated his deep loyalty to his favorite. Instead of eliminating the issue by sending Gavaston back home as expected, he appointed him Lord Lieutenant of Ireland,[***] accompanied him to Bristol on his trip there, and before he left, granted him new lands and wealth in Gascony and England.[****] Gavaston, who was not lacking in courage and had military skills,[*****] acted decisively during his time in office against some Irish rebels, whom he managed to defeat.

     * Trivet, Cont. p. 5.

     ** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 80.

     *** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 92. Murimuth, p. 39.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 87.

     * Trivet, Cont. p. 5.

     ** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 80.

     *** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 92. Murimuth, p. 39.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 87.

Meanwhile, the king, less shocked with the illegal violence which had been imposed upon him, than unhappy in the absence of his minion, employed every expedient to soften the opposition of the barons to his return; as if success in that point were the chief object of his government. The high office of hereditary steward was conferred on Lancaster: his father-in-law, the earl of Lincoln, was bought off by other concessions: Earl Warrenne was also mollified by civilities, grants, or promises: the insolence of Gavaston, being no longer before men’s eyes, was less the object of general indignation; and Edward, deeming matters sufficiently prepared for his purpose, applied to the court of Rome, and obtained for Gavaston a dispensation from that oath which the barons had compelled him to take, that he would forever abjure the realm.[*] He went down to Chester to receive him on his first landing from Ireland; flew into his arms with transports of joy; and having obtained the formal consent of the barons in parliament to his reëstablishment, set no longer any bounds to his extravagant fondness and affection. Gavaston himself, forgetting his past misfortunes, and blind to their causes, resumed the same ostentation and insolence, and became more than ever the object of general detestation among the nobility.

Meanwhile, the king, more upset about the absence of his favorite than shocked by the illegal violence against him, used every strategy he could to ease the barons’ resistance to his return; as if finding success in that matter was the main focus of his reign. He appointed Lancaster to the high hereditary position of steward; he pacified his father-in-law, the Earl of Lincoln, with other deals; and he also won over Earl Warrenne with niceties, grants, or promises. With Gavaston’s arrogance no longer visible, public anger had lessened. Edward, believing he had set the stage for his plans, appealed to the court of Rome and got Gavaston released from the oath that the barons had forced him to take, promising to leave the kingdom forever.[*] He went to Chester to greet him upon his return from Ireland, threw himself into his arms with excitement, and having secured the official agreement from the barons in parliament for Gavaston’s reinstatement, he no longer restrained his lavish affection and love. Gavaston, forgetting his previous troubles and oblivious to the reasons behind them, returned to the same showiness and arrogance, becoming more hated than ever among the nobility.

The barons first discovered their animosity by absenting themselves from parliament; and finding that this expedient had not been successful, they began to think of employing sharper and more effectual remedies. Though there had scarcely been any national ground of complaint, except some dissipation of the public treasure: though all the acts of mal-administration objected to the king and his favorite, seemed of a nature more proper to excite heart-burnings in a ball or assembly, than commotions in a great kingdom: yet such was the situation of the times, that the barons were determined, and were able, to make them the reasons of a total alteration in the constitution and civil government. Having come to parliament, in defiance of the laws and the king’s prohibition, with a numerous retinue of armed followers, they found themselves entirely masters; and they presented a petition which was equivalent to a command, requiring Edward to devolve on a chosen junto the whole authority, both of the crown and of the parliament. The king was obliged to sign a commission, empowering the prelates and barons to elect twelve persons, who should, till the term of Michaelmas in the year following, have authority to enact ordinances for the government of the kingdom, and regulation of the king’s household; consenting that these ordinances should, thenceforth and forever have the force of laws; allowing the ordainers to form associations among themselves and their friends, for their strict and regular observance; and all this for the greater glory of God, the security of the church, and the honor and advantage of the king and kingdom.[**]

The barons first showed their hostility by skipping parliament; when they realized this tactic wasn’t working, they started considering more aggressive and effective measures. Although there was hardly any national complaint, apart from some waste of public funds, and the grievances directed at the king and his favorite seemed more suited to provoke arguments at a party than unrest in a large kingdom, the barons were set on making these issues the basis for a complete change in the constitution and civil government. When they arrived at parliament, defying the laws and the king's orders, with a large group of armed supporters, they found themselves completely in control. They presented a petition that was basically a demand, asking Edward to hand over all power, both of the crown and parliament, to a selected group. The king had no choice but to sign a commission allowing the bishops and barons to choose twelve people who would have the authority, until Michaelmas of the following year, to make rules for running the kingdom and managing the king's household; agreeing that these rules would henceforth be treated as laws; permitting the appointed to form groups among themselves and their allies for strict and proper enforcement; all for the greater glory of God, the safety of the church, and the honor and benefit of the king and kingdom.[**]

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p., 167.

     ** Brady’s App. No. 50. Heming. vol. i. p. 247., Walsing. p.
     97.,Ryley, p. 526.
     * Rymer, vol. iii. p., 167.

     ** Brady’s App. No. 50. Heming. vol. i. p. 247., Walsing. p. 97., Ryley, p. 526.

The barons, in return signed a declaration, in which they acknowledged that they owed these concessions merely to the king’s free grace; promised that this commission should never be drawn into precedent; and engaged that the power of the ordainers should expire at the time appointed.[*]

The barons, in return, signed a declaration acknowledging that they owed these concessions solely to the king’s goodwill; they promised that this commission would never set a precedent; and agreed that the power of the ordainers would end at the designated time.[*]

1311.

1311.

The chosen junto accordingly framed their ordinances, and presented them to the king and parliament, for their confirmation in the ensuing year. Some of these ordinances were laudable, and tended to the regular execution of justice; such as those requiring sheriffs to be men of property, abolishing the practice of issuing privy seals for the suspension of justice, restraining the practice of purveyance, prohibiting the adulteration and alteration of the coin, excluding foreigners from the farms of the revenue, ordering all payments to be regularly made into the exchequer, revoking all late grants of the crown, and giving the parties damages in the case of vexatious prosecutions. But what chiefly grieved the king was the ordinance for the removal of evil counsellors, by which a great number of persons were by name excluded from every office of power and profit; and Piers Gavaston himself was forever banished the king’s dominions, under the penalty, in case of disobedience, of being declared a public enemy. Other persons, more agreeable to the barons, were substituted in all the offices. And it was ordained that, for the future, all the considerable dignities in the household, as well as by the law, revenue, and military governments, should be appointed by the baronage in parliament; and the power of making war, or assembling his military tenants, should no longer be vested solely in the king, nor be exercised without the consent of the nobility.

The chosen group framed their rules and presented them to the king and parliament for approval in the following year. Some of these rules were commendable and aimed at ensuring fair justice; for instance, those stipulating that sheriffs must be property owners, ending the practice of issuing secret seals to suspend justice, limiting the practice of purveyance, banning the tampering with and altering of coins, excluding foreigners from government revenue contracts, requiring all payments to be deposited regularly into the treasury, canceling all recent crown grants, and compensating individuals in cases of frivolous lawsuits. However, what bothered the king most was the rule for removing corrupt advisors, which specifically named and excluded many individuals from positions of power and profit; Piers Gavaston was permanently banished from the king’s lands, with the consequence of being deemed a public enemy if he disobeyed. Others, more acceptable to the barons, were appointed to all these positions. It was also decided that, in the future, all significant roles in the royal household, as well as in law, revenue, and military leadership, would be appointed by the barons in parliament. The authority to wage war or call up military tenants would no longer rest solely with the king and could not be exercised without the nobility's consent.

Edward, from the same weakness both in his temper and situation which had engaged him to grant this unlimited commission to the barons, was led to give a parliamentary sanction to their ordinances; but as a consequence of the same character, he secretly made a protest against them, and declared that, since the commission was granted only for the making of ordinances to the advantage of king and kingdom, such articles as should be found prejudicial to both, were to be held as not ratified and confirmed.[**]

Edward, due to his weaknesses in temperament and circumstances that had caused him to give the barons this unlimited power, ended up giving parliamentary approval to their rules. However, because of the same character traits, he secretly protested against them and stated that since the power was granted only for creating rules that benefited the king and the kingdom, any articles found harmful to either were to be considered not approved or confirmed. [**]

     * Brady’s App. No. 51.

     ** Ryley’s Placit. Parl. p. 530, 541.
     * Brady’s App. No. 51.

     ** Ryley’s Placit. Parl. p. 530, 541.

It is no wonder, indeed, that he retained a firm purpose to revoke ordinances which had been imposed on him by violence, which entirely annihilated the royal authority, and above all, which deprived him of the company and society of a person whom, by an unusual infatuation, he valued above all the world, and above every consideration of interest or tranquillity.

It’s no surprise that he was determined to repeal the laws that had been forced upon him through violence, which completely undermined his royal authority, and most importantly, which took away the companionship and company of someone he, in an unusual obsession, valued more than anything else in the world and above any thought of self-interest or peace.

As soon, therefore, as Edward, removing to York, had freed himself from the immediate terror of the barons’ power, he invited back Gavaston from Flanders, which that favorite had made the place of his retreat; and declaring his banishment to be illegal, and contrary to the laws and customs of the kingdom,[*] openly reinstated him in his former credit and authority.

As soon as Edward moved to York and shook off the immediate threat from the barons’ power, he called Gavaston back from Flanders, where he had gone into hiding. Edward announced that Gavaston’s banishment was illegal and against the laws and customs of the kingdom, and he publicly restored him to his previous status and authority.

1312.

1312.

The barons, highly provoked at this disappointment, and apprehensive of danger to themselves from the declared animosity of so powerful a minion, saw that either his or their ruin was now inevitable; and they renewed with redoubled zeal their former confederacies against him. The earl of Lancaster was a dangerous head of this alliance; Guy, earl of Warwick, entered into it with a furious and precipitate passion; Humphrey Bohun, earl of Hereford, the constable, and Aymer de Valence, earl of Pembroke, brought to it a great accession of power and interest; even Earl Warrenne deserted the royal cause, which he had hitherto supported, and was induced to embrace the side of the confederates;[**] and as Robert de Winchelsey, archbishop of Canterbury, professed himself of the same party, he determined the body of the clergy, and consequently the people, to declare against the king and his minion. So predominant at that time was the power of the great nobility, that the combination of a few of them was always able to shake the throne; and such a universal concurrence became irresistible. The earl of Lancaster suddenly raised an army, and marched to York, where he found the king already removed to Newcastle:[***] he flew thither in pursuit of him, and Edward had just time to escape to Tinmouth, where he embarked, and sailed with Gavaston to Scarborough. He left his favorite in that fortress, which, had it been properly supplied with provisions, was deemed impregnable, and he marched forward to York, in hopes of raising an army which might be able to support him against his enemies.

The barons, seriously angered by this setback and worried about their own safety due to the open hostility of such a powerful ally, realized that either his or their downfall was now unavoidable; and they formed their earlier alliances against him with even greater determination. The Earl of Lancaster was a major threat in this coalition; Guy, Earl of Warwick, joined with intense and reckless enthusiasm; Humphrey Bohun, Earl of Hereford, the constable, and Aymer de Valence, Earl of Pembroke, added significant strength and influence to the group; even Earl Warrenne, who had previously supported the royal cause, was swayed to side with the confederates;[**] and with Robert de Winchelsey, Archbishop of Canterbury, publicly aligning himself with this faction, he rallied the clergy and, consequently, the people to oppose the king and his favorite. The power of the high nobility was so strong at that time that the alliance of just a few of them could easily threaten the throne, and such widespread support became unstoppable. The Earl of Lancaster quickly gathered an army and headed to York, where he discovered the king had already moved to Newcastle:[***] he hurried after him, and Edward barely managed to flee to Tinmouth, where he boarded a ship and sailed with Gavaston to Scarborough. He left his favorite in that fortress, which, if adequately stocked with supplies, was considered impregnable, and he proceeded on to York, hoping to gather an army that could defend him against his enemies.

     * Brady’s App. No. 53. Walsing. p. 98.

     ** Trivet, Cont. p. 4.

     *** Walsing. p. 101.
     * Brady's App. No. 53. Walsing. p. 98.

     ** Trivet, Cont. p. 4.

     *** Walsing. p. 101.

Pembroke was sent by the confederates to besiege the Castle of Scarborough, and Gavaston, sensible of the bad condition of his garrison, was obliged to capitulate, and to surrender himself prisoner.[*] He stipulated that he should remain in Pembroke’s hands for two months; that endeavors should, during that time, be mutually used for a general accommodation; that if the terms proposed by the barons were not accepted, the castle should be restored to him in the same condition as when he surrendered it; and that the earl of Pembroke and Henry Piercy should, by contract, pledge all their lands for the fulfilling of these conditions.[**] Pembroke, now master of the person of this public enemy, conducted him to the Castle of Dedington, near Banbury, where, on pretence of other business, he left him, protected by a feeble guard.[***] Warwick, probably in concert with Pembroke, attacked the castle: the garrison refused to make any resistance; Gavaston was yielded up to him, and conducted to Warwick Castle; the earls of Lancaster, Hereford, and Arundel immediately repaired thither;[****] and, without any regard either to the laws or the military capitulation, they ordered the head of the obnoxious favorite to be struck off by the hands of the executioner.[*****]

Pembroke was sent by the confederates to lay siege to Scarborough Castle, and Gavaston, aware of the poor state of his garrison, had no choice but to surrender and become a prisoner. He negotiated that he would remain in Pembroke’s custody for two months; that efforts would be made during that time for a general agreement; that if the terms proposed by the barons were not accepted, the castle would be returned to him in the same condition as when he surrendered; and that Pembroke and Henry Piercy would legally pledge their lands to ensure these conditions were met. Now holding this public enemy in his power, Pembroke took him to Dedington Castle, near Banbury, where he left him with a weak guard under the pretext of other business. Warwick, likely in collaboration with Pembroke, attacked the castle: the garrison did not resist; Gavaston was surrendered to him and taken to Warwick Castle; the earls of Lancaster, Hereford, and Arundel quickly joined them; and without regard for the laws or the military agreement, they ordered the executioner to behead the despised favorite.

The king had retired northward to Berwick, when he heard of Gavaston’s murder; and his resentment was proportioned to the affection which he had ever borne him while living. He threatened vengeance on all the nobility who had been active in that bloody scene; and he made preparations for war in all parts of England. But being less constant in his enmities than in his friendships, he soon after hearkened to terms of accommodation; granted the barons a pardon of all offences; and as they stipulated to ask him publicly pardon on their knees,[******] he was so pleased with these vain appearances of submission, that he seemed to have sincerely forgiven them all past injuries. But as they still pretended, notwithstanding their lawless conduct, a great anxiety for the maintenance of law, and required the establishment of their former ordinances, as a necessary security for that purpose, Edward told them that he was willing to grant them a free and legal confirmation of such of those ordinances as were not entirely derogatory to the prerogative of the crown. This answer was received for the present as satisfactory. The king’s person, after the death of Gavaston, was now become less obnoxious to the public; and as the ordinances insisted on appeared to be nearly the same with those which had formerly been extorted from Henry III. by Mountfort, and which had been attended with so many fatal consequences, they were, on that account, demanded with less vehemence by the nobility and people. The minds of all men seemed to be much appeased; the animosities of faction no longer prevailed; and England, now united under its head, would henceforth be able, it was hoped, to take vengeance on all its enemies, particularly on the Scots, whose progress was the object of general resentment and indignation.

The king had moved north to Berwick when he found out about Gaveston’s murder, and his anger matched the affection he had always felt for him while he was alive. He threatened revenge on all the nobles involved in that brutal act and prepared for war across England. However, being less consistent in his grudges than in his friendships, he soon considered a peace settlement. He granted the barons a pardon for all their offenses, and as they agreed to publicly ask for his forgiveness on their knees,[******] he was so pleased with their empty show of submission that he appeared to genuinely forgive all past wrongs. Yet, despite their unlawful actions, they still claimed to be very concerned about upholding the law and demanded the reinstatement of their previous ordinances as necessary for that goal. Edward told them he was willing to give a free and legal confirmation of those ordinances that did not completely undermine the crown's authority. This response was accepted as satisfactory for the time being. After Gaveston's death, the king became less unpopular with the public, and since the ordinances they insisted on seemed nearly identical to those that had previously been forced from Henry III. by Mountfort, which had led to many disastrous outcomes, they were demanded with less intensity by the nobles and the people. Everyone seemed to be much calmer; factional animosities no longer dominated, and England, now united under its leadership, hoped to take revenge on all its enemies, especially the Scots, whose advances caused widespread resentment and anger.

     * Walsing, p. 101.

     ** Rymer, vol ii. p. 324.

     *** T de la More, p. 593.

     **** Dugd. Baron, vol. ii. p. 44.

     ****** Ryley, p. 538. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 366.
     * Walsing, p. 101.

     ** Rymer, vol ii. p. 324.

     *** T de la More, p. 593.

     **** Dugd. Baron, vol. ii. p. 44.

     ****** Ryley, p. 538. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 366.

Immediately after Edward’s retreat from Scotland, Robert Bruce left his fastnesses, in which he intended to have sheltered his feeble army; and supplying his defect of strength by superior vigor and abilities, he made deep impression on all his enemies, foreign and domestic. He chased Lord Argyle and the chieftain of the Macdowals from their hills, and made himself entirely master of the high country; he thence invaded with success the Cummins in the low countries of the north: he took the castles of Inverness, Forfar, and Brechin; he daily gained some new accession of territory; and what was a more important acquisition, he daily reconciled the minds of the nobility to his dominion, and enlisted under his standard every bold leader, whom he enriched by the spoils of his enemies. Sir James Douglas, in whom commenced the greatness and renown of that warlike family, seconded him in all his enterprises: Edward Bruce, Robert’s own brother, distinguished himself by acts of valor; and the terror of the English power being now abated by the feeble conduct of the king, even the least sanguine of the Scots began to entertain hopes of recovering their independence; and the whole kingdom, except a few fortresses which he had not the means to attack, had acknowledged the authority of Robert.

Right after Edward left Scotland, Robert Bruce came out of hiding, where he had planned to protect his weak army. By making up for his lack of strength with greater energy and skill, he made a significant impact on all his enemies, both foreign and domestic. He drove Lord Argyle and the leader of the Macdowals from their hills and took complete control of the highlands. From there, he successfully attacked the Cummins in the northern lowlands, capturing the castles of Inverness, Forfar, and Brechin. Each day, he gained new territory, and even more crucially, he won over the nobility to support his rule and brought bold leaders under his command, enriching them with the spoils of his enemies. Sir James Douglas, who kickstarted the success and fame of that warrior family, supported him in all his ventures. Edward Bruce, Robert’s own brother, made a name for himself through his bravery. With the English threat weakened by the king’s poor leadership, even the most pessimistic Scots began to hope for their independence again, and the entire kingdom, except for a few strongholds he couldn't attack, had recognized Robert's authority.

In this situation, Edward had found it necessary to grant a truce to Scotland; and Robert successfully employed the interval in consolidating his power, and introducing order into the civil government, disjointed by a long continuance of wars and factions. The interval was very short; the truce, ill observed on both sides, was at last openly violated, and war recommenced with greater fury than ever. Robert, not content with defending himself, had made successful inroads into England, subsisted his needy followers by the plunder of that country, and taught them to despise the military genius of a people who had long been the object of their terror. Edward at last, roused from his lethargy, had marched an army into Scotland, and Robert, determined not to risk too much against an enemy so much superior, retired again into the mountains. The king advanced beyond Edinburgh; but being destitute of provisions, and being ill supported by the English nobility, who were then employed in framing their ordinances, he was soon obliged to retreat, without gaining any advantage over the enemy. But the appearing union of all the parties in England, after the death of Gavaston, seemed to restore that kingdom to its native force, opened again the prospect of reducing Scotland, and promised a happy conclusion to a war, in which both the interests and passions of the nation were so deeply engaged.

In this situation, Edward found it necessary to call a truce with Scotland, and Robert used this time to strengthen his power and restore order to the civil government, which had been disrupted by years of war and factional fighting. The break was very brief; the truce was poorly observed on both sides and was eventually openly broken, leading to a war with even more intensity than before. Not satisfied with just defending himself, Robert launched successful raids into England, kept his struggling followers alive through plunder from that region, and taught them to look down on the military prowess of a people who had long terrified them. Eventually, Edward, awakened from his inactivity, marched an army into Scotland, but Robert, determined not to take too big a risk against such a much stronger enemy, withdrew back into the mountains. The king pushed beyond Edinburgh but ran low on supplies and received little support from the English nobility, who were busy drafting their laws. He was soon forced to retreat without achieving any gains against the enemy. However, the apparent unity of all factions in England after Gavaston's death seemed to restore strength to that kingdom, reopening the possibility of bringing Scotland under control and promising a favorable outcome to a war that deeply involved both national interests and emotions.

1314.

1314.

Edward assembled forces from all quarters, with a view of finishing at one blow this important enterprise. He summoned the most warlike of his vassals from Gascony; he enlisted troops from Flanders and other foreign countries; he invited over great numbers of the disorderly Irish as to a certain prey; he joined to them a body of the Welsh, who were actuated by like motives; and, assembling the whole military force of England, he marched to the frontiers with an army which, according to the Scotch writers, amounted to a hundred thousand men.

Edward gathered forces from everywhere, aiming to complete this important mission in one decisive strike. He called upon the most battle-ready of his vassals from Gascony; he recruited troops from Flanders and other foreign lands; he invited over many of the unruly Irish as if they were easy targets; he added a group of Welsh warriors motivated by similar reasons; and, gathering the entire military strength of England, he marched to the borders with an army that, according to Scottish accounts, numbered around one hundred thousand men.

The army collected by Robert exceeded not thirty thousand combatants; but being composed of men who had distinguished themselves by many acts of valor, who were rendered desperate by their situation, and who were inured to all the varieties of fortune, they might justly, under such a leader, be deemed formidable to the most numerous and best appointed armies. The Castle of Stirling, which, with Berwick, was the only fortress in Scotland that remained in the hands of the English, had long been besieged by Edward Bruce: Philip de Mowbray, the governor, after an obstinate defence, was at last obliged to capitulate, and to promise, that if, before a certain day, which was now approaching, he were not relieved, he should open his gates to the enemy.[*]

The army gathered by Robert was not more than thirty thousand fighters; however, since it was made up of men who had proven themselves through many acts of bravery, who were driven to desperation by their circumstances, and who had become accustomed to all kinds of challenges, they could certainly be seen, under such a leader, as a serious threat to even the largest and best-equipped armies. The Castle of Stirling, which, along with Berwick, was the only fortress in Scotland still held by the English, had been under siege by Edward Bruce for a long time. Philip de Mowbray, the governor, after a stubborn defense, ultimately had to surrender and agree that if he wasn't relieved by a certain approaching date, he would open the gates to the enemy.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 481.
* Rymer, vol. iii. p. 481.

Robert, therefore, sensible that here was the ground on which he must expect the English, chose the field of battle with all the skill and prudence imaginable, and made the necessary preparations for their reception. He posted himself at Bannockburn, about two miles from Stirling, where he had a hill on his right flank, and a morass on his left; and not content with having taken these precautions to prevent his being surrounded by the more numerous army of the English, he foresaw the superior strength of the enemy in cavalry, and made provision against it. Having a rivulet in front, he commanded deep pits to be dug along its banks, and sharp stakes to be planted in them; and he ordered the whole to be carefully covered over with turf.[*] The English arrived in sight on the evening, and a bloody conflict immediately ensued between two bodies of cavalry; where Robert, who was at the head of the Scots, engaged in single combat with Henry de Bohun, a gentleman of the family of Hereford; and at one stroke cleft his adversary to the chin with a battle-axe, in sight of the two armies. The English horse fled with precipitation to their main body.

Robert, aware that this was the place where he had to face the English, carefully chose the battlefield and made all necessary preparations for their arrival. He positioned himself at Bannockburn, about two miles from Stirling, with a hill on his right and a marsh on his left. Not satisfied with just these measures to prevent being surrounded by the larger English army, he anticipated the enemy's advantage in cavalry and took steps to counter it. With a stream in front of him, he ordered deep pits to be dug along its banks and sharp stakes to be placed in them, covering the whole area with turf.[*] The English appeared on the evening, and a fierce battle quickly broke out between the two cavalry forces; Robert, leading the Scots, engaged in single combat with Henry de Bohun, a gentleman from the Hereford family, and with one blow, he split his opponent's head open with a battle-axe, right in front of both armies. The English cavalry fled in fear to their main force.

The Scots, encouraged by this favorable event, and glorying in the valor of their prince, prognosticated a happy issue to the combat on the ensuing day: the English, confident in their numbers, and elated with former successes, longed for an opportunity of revenge; and the night, though extremely short in that season and in that climate, appeared tedious to the impatience of the several combatants. Early in the morning, Edward drew out his army, and advanced towards the Scots. The earl of Glocester, his nephew, who commanded the left wing of the cavalry, impelled by the ardor of youth, rushed on to the attack without precaution, and fell among the covered pits, which had been prepared by Bruce for the reception of the enemy.[**] This body of horse was disordered; Glocester himself was overthrown and slain: Sir James Douglas, who commanded the Scottish cavalry, gave the enemy no leisure to rally, but pushed them off the field with considerable loss, and pursued them in sight of their whole line of infantry. While the English army were alarmed with this unfortunate beginning of the action, which commonly proves decisive, they observed an army on the heights towards the left, which seemed to be marching leisurely in order to surround them; and they were distracted by their multiplied fears. This was a number of wagoners and sumpter boys, whom Robert had collected; and having supplied them with military standards, gave them the appearance at a distance of a formidable body.

The Scots, buoyed by this positive turn of events and proud of their prince's bravery, expected a successful outcome to the battle the next day. The English, confident in their superiority and thrilled by past victories, were eager for revenge. The night, although very short for that time of year and in that climate, felt long to the anxious fighters. Early in the morning, Edward assembled his army and moved towards the Scots. The Earl of Glocester, his nephew, who led the left wing of the cavalry, driven by youthful enthusiasm, rushed into the attack carelessly and fell into the concealed pits that Bruce had set for the enemy. This cavalry unit became disorganized; Glocester was overthrown and killed. Sir James Douglas, who led the Scottish cavalry, did not give the enemy a chance to regroup but drove them off the field with significant losses and chased them within sight of their entire infantry line. As the English army panicked from this unfortunate start, which often determines the outcome of battles, they noticed an army on the heights to their left that seemed to be slowly marching to encircle them, creating multiple fears. This was actually a group of wagon drivers and supply boys that Robert had gathered, and after giving them military flags, they appeared, from a distance, as a formidable force.

     * T. de la More, p. 594.

     ** T. de la More, p. 594.
     * T. de la More, p. 594.

     ** T. de la More, p. 594.

The stratagem took effect: a panic seized the English: they threw down their arms and fled: they were pursued with great slaughter for the space of ninety miles, till they reached Berwick: and the Scots, besides an inestimable booty, took many persons of quality prisoners, and above four hundred gentlemen, whom Robert treated with great humanity,[*] and whose ransom was a new accession of wealth to the victorious army. The king himself narrowly escaped by taking shelter in Dunbar, whose gates were opened to him by the earl of March; and he thence passed by sea to Berwick.

The plan worked: a panic hit the English; they dropped their weapons and ran. They were chased for about ninety miles, suffering heavy losses until they reached Berwick. The Scots, in addition to a huge amount of loot, captured many high-ranking prisoners, along with over four hundred gentlemen, whom Robert treated very kindly, and their ransom added more wealth to the victorious army. The king himself barely escaped by taking refuge in Dunbar, where the earl of March opened the gates for him; from there, he traveled by sea to Berwick.

     * Ypod. Neust. p. 501.
* Ypod. Neust. p. 501.

Such was the great and decisive battle of Bannockburn, which secured the independence of Scotland, fixed Bruce on the throne of that kingdom, and may be deemed the greatest overthrow that the English nation, since the conquest, has ever received. The number of slain on those occasions is always uncertain, and is commonly much magnified by the victors: but this defeat made a deep impression on the mind of the English; and it was remarked that, for some years, the superiority of numbers could encourage them to keep the field against the Scots. Robert, in order to avail himself of his present success, entered England, and ravaged all the northern counties without opposition: he besieged Carlisle; but that place was saved by the valor of Sir Andrew Harcla, the governor: he was more successful against Berwick, which he took by assault: and this prince, elated by his continued prosperity, now entertained hopes of making the most important conquests on the English.

Such was the great and decisive battle of Bannockburn, which secured the independence of Scotland, established Bruce on the throne of that kingdom, and may be considered the greatest defeat that the English nation has faced since the conquest. The number of casualties from those events is always uncertain and is often exaggerated by the victors: but this defeat left a strong impact on the English psyche; it was noted that, for several years, their numerical advantage could not motivate them to stand against the Scots. To capitalize on his current success, Robert entered England and plundered all the northern counties without opposition: he laid siege to Carlisle; however, that city was saved by the bravery of Sir Andrew Harcla, the governor. He was more successful against Berwick, which he captured in an assault; and this prince, buoyed by his ongoing success, now held hopes of achieving significant conquests over the English.

1315.

1315.

He sent over his brother Edward, with an army of six thousand men, into Ireland; and that nobleman assumed the title of king of that island; he himself followed soon after with more numerous forces: the horrible and absurd oppressions which the Irish suffered under the English government, made them, at first, fly to the standard of the Scots, whom they regarded as their deliverers: but a grievous famine, which at that time desolated both Ireland and Britain, reduced the Scottish army to the greatest extremities; and Robert was obliged to return, with his forces much diminished, into his own country. His brother, after having experienced a variety or fortune, was defeated and slain near Dundalk by the English, commanded by Lord Bermingham: and these projects, too extensive for the force of the Scottish nation, thus vanished into smoke.

He sent his brother Edward with an army of six thousand men to Ireland, and that nobleman took on the title of king of the island. He followed soon after with even more troops. The terrible and ridiculous oppression the Irish faced under English rule made them initially turn to the Scots, whom they saw as their saviors. But a terrible famine that struck both Ireland and Britain left the Scottish army in dire conditions, forcing Robert to return home with his forces greatly weakened. His brother, after going through various ups and downs, was defeated and killed near Dundalk by the English led by Lord Bermingham. These plans, too ambitious for the Scottish nation, ultimately came to nothing.

Edward, besides suffering those disasters from the invasion of the Scots and the insurrection of the Irish, was also infested with a rebellion in Wales; and above all, by the factions of his own nobility, who took advantage of the public calamities, insulted his fallen fortunes, and endeavored to establish their own independence on the ruins of the throne. Lancaster and the barons of his party, who had declined attending him on his Scottish expedition, no sooner saw him return with disgrace, than they insisted on the renewal of their ordinances, which, they still pretended, had validity; and the king’s unhappy situation obliged him to submit to their demands. The ministry was new-modelled by the direction of Lancaster:[*] that prince was placed at the head of the council: it was declared, that all the offices should be filled, from time to time, by the votes of parliament, or rather by the will of the great barons:[**] and the nation, under this new model of government, endeavored to put itself in a better posture of defence against the Scots. But the factious nobles were far from being terrified with the progress of these public enemies: on the contrary, they founded the hopes of their own future grandeur on the weakness and distresses of the crown: Lancaster himself was suspected, with great appearance of reason, of holding a secret correspondence with the king of Scots: and though he was intrusted with the command of the English armies, he took care that every enterprise should be disappointed, and every plan of operations prove unsuccessful.

Edward, in addition to dealing with the disasters from the Scottish invasion and the Irish uprising, was also faced with a rebellion in Wales. Most importantly, he had to contend with the factions among his own nobility, who exploited the public turmoil, mocked his fallen status, and sought to carve out their own independence from the wreckage of the throne. Lancaster and the barons aligned with him, who had refused to join him on his Scottish campaign, wasted no time in demanding the revival of their ordinances, which they still claimed were valid. The king's unfortunate circumstances forced him to give in to their demands. Lancaster orchestrated a reshuffling of the government: he was put in charge of the council, and it was announced that all positions would be filled, gradually, by parliamentary votes, or more accurately, by the will of the powerful barons. The nation, under this new form of governance, tried to prepare itself better for defense against the Scots. However, the ambitious nobles were far from intimidated by the progress of these public enemies. In fact, they relied on the crown's weakness and troubles to fuel their own prospects for power: Lancaster himself was suspected, with plenty of reason, of secretly communicating with the king of Scots. Even though he was given command of the English armies, he ensured that every military endeavor was thwarted and that every plan ended in failure.

     * Ryley, p, 560. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 722.

     ** Brady vol. ii. p. 122, from the records, App. No. 61.
     Ryley p. 560.
     * Ryley, p. 560. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 722.

     ** Brady vol. ii. p. 122, from the records, App. No. 61.
     Ryley p. 560.

All the European kingdoms, especially that of England, were at this time unacquainted with the office of a prime minister, so well understood at present in all regular monarchies; and the people could form no conception of a man who, though still in the rank of a subject, possessed all the power of a sovereign, eased the prince of the burden of affairs, supplied his want of experience or capacity, and maintained all the rights of the crown, without degrading the greatest nobles by their submission to his temporary authority. Edward was plainly by nature unfit to hold himself the reins of government: he had no vices, but was unhappy in a total incapacity for serious business: he was sensible of his own defects, and necessarily sought to be governed: yet every favorite whom he successively chose, was regarded as a fellow-subject exalted above his rank and station: he was the object of envy to the great nobility: his character and conduct were decried with the people: his authority over the king and kingdom was considered as a usurpation: and unless the prince had embraced the dangerous expedient of devolving his power on the earl of Lancaster, or some mighty baron, whose family interest was so extensive as to be able alone to maintain his influence, he could expect no peace or tranquillity upon the throne.

All the European kingdoms, especially England, were unfamiliar with the role of a prime minister, which is well understood in modern monarchies. People couldn't imagine someone who, while still a subject, held all the power of a sovereign, relieved the prince of the burden of governance, compensated for his lack of experience or ability, and upheld all the rights of the crown without diminishing the highest nobles by having them submit to his temporary authority. Edward clearly wasn't suited to govern; he had no faults, but he suffered from an inability to handle serious matters. He was aware of his shortcomings and inevitably sought to be led. However, every favorite he chose was seen as a fellow subject elevated above his status. He became an object of envy for the powerful nobility, and his character and actions were criticized by the people. His authority over the king and the kingdom was viewed as an overreach. Unless the prince resorted to the risky solution of passing his power to the earl of Lancaster or another powerful baron, whose family's influence was substantial enough to maintain his status, he could not expect peace or stability on the throne.

The king’s chief favorite, after the death of Gavaston, was Hugh le Despenser, or Spenser, a young man of English birth, of high rank, and of a noble family.[*] He possessed all the exterior accomplishments of person and address which were fitted to engage the weak mind of Edward; but was destitute of that moderation and prudence which might have qualified him to mitigate the envy of the great, and conduct him through all the perils of that dangerous station to which he was advanced. His father, who was of the same name, and who, by means of his son, had also attained great influence over the king, was a nobleman venerable from his years, respected through all his past life for wisdom, valor, and integrity, and well fitted by his talents and experience, could affairs have admitted of any temperament, to have supplied the defects both of the king and of his minion.[**] But no sooner was Edward’s attachment declared for young Spenser, than the turbulent Lancaster, and most of the great barons, regarded him as their rival, made him the object of their animosity, and formed violent plans for his ruin.[***] They first declared their discontent by withdrawing from parliament; and it was not long ere they found a pretence for proceeding to greater extremities against him.

The king's top favorite, after Gavaston's death, was Hugh le Despenser, or Spenser, a young man from an English noble family. He had all the looks and charm to captivate the impressionable Edward, but he lacked the moderation and wisdom needed to ease the jealousy of the powerful and navigate the dangers of his elevated position. His father, who shared the same name and had gained significant influence over the king through his son, was an older nobleman respected for his wisdom, bravery, and integrity. He had the skills and experience to compensate for the shortcomings of both the king and his favorite, had circumstances allowed for such a balance. However, as soon as Edward openly favored young Spenser, the rebellious Lancaster and most of the prominent barons saw him as a competitor, turned against him, and devised aggressive plans for his downfall. They initially expressed their dissatisfaction by boycotting parliament, and soon enough, they found a reason to escalate their actions against him.

1321.

1321.

The king, who set no limits to his bounty toward his minions, had married the younger Spenser to his niece one of the coheirs of the earl of Glocester, slain at Bannockburn. The favorite, by his succession to that opulent family, had inherited great possessions in the marches of Wales,[****] and being desirous of extending still farther his influence in those quarters, he is accused of having committed injustice on the barons of Audley and Ammori, who had also married two sisters of the same family.

The king, who showed no limits to his generosity towards his followers, had married the younger Spenser to his niece, one of the co-heirs of the Earl of Glocester, who was killed at Bannockburn. The favorite, by inheriting that wealthy family, had gained significant assets in the borderlands of Wales,[****] and wanting to expand his influence even more in those areas, he is accused of having wronged the barons of Audley and Ammori, who had also married two sisters from the same family.

     * Dugd. Baron, vol. i. p. 389.

     ** T. de la More, p. 594.

     *** Walsing. p. 113. T. de la More, p. 595. Murimuth, p. 55.

     **** Trivet, Cont. p. 25.
     * Dugd. Baron, vol. i. p. 389.

     ** T. de la More, p. 594.

     *** Walsing. p. 113. T. de la More, p. 595. Murimuth, p. 55.

     **** Trivet, Cont. p. 25.

There was likewise a baron in that neighborhood, called William de Braouse, lord of Gower, who had made a settlement of his estate on John de Mowbray, his son-in-law; and in case of failure of that nobleman and his issue, had substituted the earl of Hereford in the succession to the barony of Gower. Mowbray, on the decease of his father-in-law, entered immediately in possession of the estate, without the formality of taking livery and seizin from the crown; but Spenser, who coveted that barony, persuaded the king to put in execution the rigor of the feudal law, to seize Gower as escheated to the crown, and to confer it upon him.[*] This transaction, which was the proper subject of a lawsuit, immediately excited a civil war in the kingdom. The earls of Lancaster and Hereford flew to arms: Audle and Ammori joined them with all their forces: the two Rogers de Mortimer and Roger de Clifford, with many others, disgusted for private reasons at the Spensers, brought a considerable accession to the party; and their army being now formidable, they sent a message to the king, requiring him immediately to dismiss or confine the younger Spenser; and menacing him, in case of refusal, with renouncing their allegiance to him, and taking revenge on that minister by their own authority. They scarcely waited for an answer; but immediately fell upon the lands of young Spenser, which they pillaged and destroyed; murdered his servants, drove off his cattle, and burned his houses.[**] They thence proceeded to commit like devastations on the estates of Spenser the father, whose character they had hitherto seemed to respect. And having drawn and signed a formal association among themselves,[***] they marched to London with all their forces, stationed themselves in the neighborhood of that city, and demanded of the king the banishment of both the Spensers.

There was also a baron in that area named William de Braouse, lord of Gower, who had arranged his estate for his son-in-law, John de Mowbray; if Mowbray and his heirs failed, the earldom of Hereford would inherit the barony of Gower. When Mowbray’s father-in-law passed away, he took possession of the estate without going through the formal process of receiving livery and seizin from the crown. However, Spenser, who was eager to claim that barony, convinced the king to enforce the strict rules of feudal law to take Gower back as if it belonged to the crown and grant it to him. This event, which could have been resolved through a lawsuit, quickly led to civil war in the kingdom. The earls of Lancaster and Hereford took up arms, joined by Audle and Ammori with all their forces. The two Rogers de Mortimer and Roger de Clifford, along with many others angered by the Spensers for personal reasons, greatly added to their numbers. With their army now strong, they sent a message to the king, demanding that he either banish or confine the younger Spenser; they threatened that if he refused, they would declare their loyalty null and seek revenge against that minister by their own means. They hardly waited for a response and immediately attacked young Spenser's lands, looting and destroying everything; they killed his servants, drove away his livestock, and burned his homes. They then moved on to wreak similar havoc on the estates of Spenser the father, whose reputation they had up to that point pretended to respect. After forming and signing an official alliance, they marched to London with all their forces, set up camp near the city, and demanded the king expel both Spensers.

     * Monach. Malms.

     ** Murimuth, p. 55.

     *** Tyrrel, vol. ii p. 280, from the register of C. C.
     Canterbury.
     * Monach. Malms.

     ** Murimuth, p. 55.

     *** Tyrrel, vol. ii p. 280, from the register of C. C.
     Canterbury.

These noblemen were then absent; the father abroad, the son at sea; and both of them employed in different commissions: the king therefore replied, that his coronation oath, by which he was bound to observe the laws, restrained him from giving his assent to so illegal a demand, or condemning noblemen who were accused of no crime, nor had any opportunity afforded them of making answer.[*] Equity and reason were but a feeble opposition to men who had arms in their hands, and who, being already involved in guilt, saw no safety but in success and victory. They entered London with their troops; and giving in to the parliament, which was then sitting, a charge against the Spensers, of which they attempted not to prove one article, they procured, by menaces and violence, a sentence of attainder and perpetual exile against these ministers.[**] This sentence was voted by the lay barons alone; for the commons, though now an estate in parliament, were yet of so little consideration, that their assent was not demanded; and even the votes of the prelates were neglected amidst the present disorders. The only symptom which these turbulent barons gave of their regard to law, was their requiring from the king an indemnity for their illegal proceedings;[***] after which they disbanded their army, and separated, in security, as they imagined, to their several castles.

These noblemen were absent; the father was away, and the son was at sea, both engaged in different missions. The king responded that his coronation oath, which required him to uphold the laws, prevented him from agreeing to such an illegal demand or condemning noblemen who hadn't committed any crime and hadn’t been given a chance to defend themselves. Fairness and reason had little power against men armed and determined who, being already guilty, saw victory as their only path to safety. They marched into London with their troops and presented a charge against the Spensers to the sitting parliament, but they didn't attempt to prove any of their claims. Through threats and violence, they managed to secure a ruling of attainder and lifelong exile against these ministers. This ruling was decided solely by the lay barons; the commons, now a recognized estate in parliament, were still of such little importance that their approval wasn't asked for, and the prelates' votes were ignored in the chaos. The only indication that these unruly barons showed for the law was their demand for the king to grant them immunity for their illegal actions; after that, they disbanded their army and returned, thinking they were safe, to their respective castles.

This act of violence, in which the king was obliged to acquiesce, rendered his person and his authority so contemptible, that every one thought himself entitled to treat him with neglect. The queen, having occasion soon after to pass by the castle of Leeds in Kent, which belonged to the lord Badlesmere, desired a night’s lodging, but was refused admittance; and some of her attendants, who presented themselves at the gate, were killed.[****] The insult upon this princess, who had always endeavored to live on good terms with the barons, and who joined them heartily in their hatred of the young Spenser, was an action which nobody pretended to justify; and the king thought that he might, without giving general umbrage, assemble an army, and take vengeance on the offender. No one came to the assistance of Badlesmere; and Edward prevailed.[*****]

This act of violence, which the king had no choice but to accept, made him and his authority so despised that everyone felt they could treat him with disregard. The queen, needing a place to stay shortly after, passed by the castle of Leeds in Kent, owned by Lord Badlesmere, and asked for a place to lodge for the night, but was denied entry; some of her attendants who showed up at the gate were killed.[****] The insult to this princess, who had always tried to maintain good relations with the barons and who joined them wholeheartedly in their dislike of the young Spenser, was an action that no one even tried to defend; and the king believed he could gather an army and seek revenge on the offender without upsetting everyone. No one came to Badlesmere's aid; and Edward succeeded.[*****]

     * Walsing. p. 114.

     ** Tottle’s Collect, part ii p. 50. Walsing. p. 114.

     *** Tottle’s Collect, part ii. p. 54. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 891.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 89. Walsing. p. 114, 115. T. de la
     Mare, p. 595. Murimuth, p. 56.

     * Walsing. p. 114.

     ** Tottle's Collect, part ii p. 50. Walsing. p. 114.

     *** Tottle's Collect, part ii. p. 54. Rymer, vol. iii. p. 891.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 89. Walsing. p. 114, 115. T. de la Mare, p. 595. Murimuth, p. 56.

But having now some forces on foot, and having concerted measures with his friends throughout England, he ventured to take off the mask, to attack all his enemies, and to recall the two Spensers, whose sentence he declared illegal, unjust, contrary to the tenor of the Great Charter, passed without the assent of the prelates, and extorted by violence from him and the estate of barons.[*] Still the commons were not mentioned by either party.

But now that he had some forces ready and had coordinated plans with his friends across England, he decided to take off the mask, to confront all his enemies, and to bring back the two Spensers, whose ban he declared illegal, unfair, against the principles of the Great Charter, passed without the approval of the bishops, and forced out of him and the barons' estate by violence.[*] Still, the common people were not mentioned by either side.

1322.

1322.

The king had now got the start of the barons, an advantage which, in those times, was commonly decisive, and he hastened with his army to the marches of Wales, the chief seat of the power of his enemies, whom he found totally unprepared for resistance. Many of the barons in those parts endeavored to appease him by submission:[**] their castles were seized, and their persons committed to custody. But Lancaster, in order to prevent the total ruin of his party, summoned together his vassals and retainers; declared his alliance with Scotland, which had long been suspected; received the promise of a reënforcement from that country, under the command of Randolf, earl of Murray, and Sir James Douglas;[***] and being joined by the earl of Hereford, advanced with all his forces against the king, who had collected an army of thirty thousand men, and was superior to his enemies. Lancaster posted himself at Burton upon Trent, and endeavored to defend the passages of the river:[****] but being disappointed in that plan of operations, this prince, who had no military genius, and whose personal courage was even suspected, fled with his army to the north, in expectation of being there joined by his Scottish allies.[*****] He was pursued by the king, and his army diminished daily, till he came to Boroughbridge, where he found Sir Andrew Harcla posted with some forces on the opposite side of the river, and ready to dispute the passage with him. He was repulsed in an attempt which he made to force his way: the earl of Hereford was killed; the whole army of the rebels was disconcerted: Lancaster himself was become incapable of taking any measures either for flight or defence; and he was seized without resistance by Harcla, and conducted to the king.[******]

The king had gained the upper hand over the barons, a crucial advantage at that time, and he quickly marched his army to the borders of Wales, the main stronghold of his enemies, who were completely unprepared to fight back. Many of the local barons tried to placate him by submitting: their castles were taken, and they were taken into custody. However, Lancaster, to prevent the complete downfall of his faction, gathered his vassals and supporters; announced his alliance with Scotland, which had long been suspected; received a promise of reinforcements from that country, led by Randolf, Earl of Murray, and Sir James Douglas; and, joined by the Earl of Hereford, advanced with all his forces against the king, who had assembled an army of thirty thousand men, outnumbering his enemies. Lancaster positioned himself at Burton upon Trent and tried to defend the crossings of the river: but after failing in that strategy, this prince, who lacked military skill and whose bravery was even questioned, fled north, hoping to unite with his Scottish allies there. He was chased by the king, and his forces dwindled day by day until he reached Boroughbridge, where he found Sir Andrew Harcla stationed with some troops on the opposite bank of the river, ready to contest his crossing. He was repelled in an attempt to push through: the Earl of Hereford was killed; the entire rebel army was thrown into disarray; Lancaster himself was unable to take any steps for escape or defense; and he was captured without a struggle by Harcla, who brought him before the king.

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 907. T. de la More, p. 595.

     ** Walsing. p. 115. Murimuth, p. 57.

     *** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 958.

     **** Walsing. p. 115.

     ****** T. de la More, p. 596. Walsing. p. 116.
     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 907. T. de la More, p. 595.

     ** Walsing. p. 115. Murimuth, p. 57.

     *** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 958.

     **** Walsing. p. 115.

     ****** T. de la More, p. 596. Walsing. p. 116.

In those violent times, the laws were so much neglected on both sides, that, even where they might, without any sensible inconvenience, have been observed, the conquerors deemed it unnecessary to pay any regard to them. Lancaster, who was guilty of open rebellion, and was taken in arms against his sovereign, instead of being tried by the laws of his country, which pronounced the sentence of death against him, was condemned by a court-martial,[*] and led to execution. Edward, however, little vindictive in his natural temper, here indulged his revenge, and employed against the prisoner the same indignities which had been exercised by his orders against Gavaston. He was clothed in a mean attire, placed on a lean jade without a bridle, a hood was put on his head, and in this posture, attended by the acclamations of the people, this prince was conducted to an eminence near Pomfret, one of his own castles, and there beheaded.[**]

During those violent times, the laws were largely ignored by both sides, so much so that even when they could have been followed without significant issues, the conquerors found it unnecessary to pay attention to them. Lancaster, who was openly rebellious and caught fighting against his king, was instead condemned by a court-martial rather than being tried by the laws of his country, which would have sentenced him to death. Edward, not naturally vindictive, allowed his desire for revenge to show in this case, treating the prisoner with the same disrespect that had been shown to Gavaston by his orders. He was dressed in shabby clothes, placed on a thin horse without a bridle, a hood was put on his head, and in this state, with the crowd cheering, this prince was taken to a hill near Pomfret, one of his castles, where he was beheaded.

     * Tyrrel, vol. 11. p. 291.

     ** Leland’s Coll. vol. i. p. 668.
     * Tyrrel, vol. 11. p. 291.

     ** Leland's Coll. vol. i. p. 668.

Thus perished Thomas, earl of Lancaster, prince of the blood, and one of the most potent barons that had ever been in England. His public conduct sufficiently discovers the violence and turbulence of his character: his private deportment appears not to have been more innocent: and his hypocritical devotion, by which he gained the favor of the monks and populace, will rather be regarded as an aggravation than an alleviation of his guilt. Badlesmere, Giffard, Barret, Cheyney, Fleming, and about eighteen of the most notorious offenders, were afterwards condemned by a legal trial, and were executed. Many were thrown into prison: others made their escape beyond sea: some of the king’s servants were rewarded from the forfeitures: Harcla received for his services the earldom of Carlisle, and a large estate, which he soon after forfeited with his life, for a treasonable correspondence with the king of Scotland. But the greater part of those vast escheats were seized by young Spenser, whose rapacity was insatiable. Many of the barons of the king’s party were disgusted with this partial division of the spoils: the envy against Spenser rose higher than ever: the usual insolence of his temper, inflamed by success, impelled him to commit many acts of violence: the people, who always hated him, made him still more the object of aversion: all the relations of the attainted barons and gentlemen secretly vowed revenge: and though tranquillity was in appearance restored to the kingdom, the general contempt of the king, and odium against Spenser, bred dangerous humors, the source of future revolutions and convulsions.

Thus, Thomas, Earl of Lancaster, prince of the blood, and one of the most powerful barons ever in England, met his end. His public actions clearly reveal the violence and chaos of his character; his private behavior seems to have been no more innocent. His fake devotion, which earned him the favor of the monks and the people, will be seen as more of a cause for his guilt rather than a reason for forgiveness. Badlesmere, Giffard, Barret, Cheyney, Fleming, and about eighteen of the most notorious offenders were later convicted in a legal trial and executed. Many were imprisoned, others escaped abroad, and some of the king's followers profited from the confiscated properties. Harcla was rewarded with the earldom of Carlisle and a large estate, which he soon lost along with his life for treasonable communication with the King of Scotland. Most of the large confiscations were taken by young Spenser, whose greed knew no bounds. Many of the barons on the king's side were appalled by this unfair distribution of the loot; resentment toward Spenser grew stronger than ever. His usual arrogance, fueled by success, led him to commit numerous acts of violence. The people, who always despised him, found even more reason to loathe him. All the relatives of the executed barons and gentlemen secretly vowed vengeance. And although peace seemed to have returned to the kingdom, the general disdain for the king and hatred toward Spenser fostered dangerous tensions that would lead to future revolutions and upheavals.

In this situation, no success could be expected from foreign wars; and Edward, after making one more fruitless attempt against Scotland, whence he retreated with dishonor, found it necessary to terminate hostilities with that kingdom, by a truce of thirteen years.[*] Robert, though his title to the crown was not acknowledged in the treaty, was satisfied with insuring his possession of it during so long a time. He had repelled with gallantry all the attacks of England: he had carried war both into that kingdom and into Ireland: he had rejected with disdain the pope’s authority, who pretended to impose his commands upon him, and oblige him to make peace with his enemies: his throne was firmly established, as well in the affections of his subjects, as by force of arms: yet there naturally remained some inquietude in his mind, while at war with a state which, however at present disordered by faction, was of itself so much an overmatch for him both in riches and in numbers of people. And this truce was, at the same time, the more seasonable for England, because the nation was at that juncture threatened with hostilities from France.

In this situation, no success could be expected from foreign wars; and Edward, after making one more unsuccessful attempt against Scotland, where he retreated in shame, found it necessary to end hostilities with that kingdom through a thirteen-year truce.[*] Robert, although his claim to the crown wasn’t recognized in the treaty, was content with securing his possession of it for that long. He had bravely repelled all attacks from England: he had waged war in both that kingdom and Ireland: he had outright rejected the pope’s authority, who tried to impose his commands on him and force him to make peace with his enemies: his throne was firmly established, both in the hearts of his subjects and through military might: yet there naturally remained some unease in his mind while at war with a state that, although currently troubled by internal conflicts, was still far superior to him in wealth and population. This truce was particularly timely for England, as the nation was then facing threats of conflict from France.

1324.

1324.

Philip the Fair, king of France, who died in 1315, had left the crown to his son Lewis Hutin, who, after a short reign, dying without male issue, was succeeded by Philip the Long, his brother, whose death soon after made way for Charles the Fair, the youngest brother of that family. This monarch had some grounds of complaint against the king’s ministers in Guienne; and as there was no common or equitable judge in that strange species of sovereignty established by the feudal law, he seemed desirous to take advantage of Edward’s weakness, and under that pretence to confiscate all his foreign dominions.[**]

Philip the Fair, king of France, who died in 1315, left the crown to his son Lewis Hutin. After a brief reign, Lewis died without any sons, and his brother Philip the Long succeeded him. Shortly after, Philip the Long passed away, paving the way for Charles the Fair, the youngest brother of that family. This king had some grievances against the king’s ministers in Guienne, and since there was no common or fair judge in that unusual type of sovereignty created by feudal law, he seemed eager to take advantage of Edward’s weakness to claim all his foreign territories. [**]

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 1022. Murimuth, p. 60.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 74, 98.
* Rymer, vol. iii. p. 1022. Murimuth, p. 60.

** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 74, 98.

After an embassy by the earl of Kent, the king’s brother, had been tried in vain, Queen Isabella obtained permission to go over to Paris, and endeavor to adjust, in an amicable manner, the difference with her brother: but while she was making some progress in this negotiation, Charles started a new pretension, the justice of which could not be disputed, that Edward himself should appear in his court, and do homage for the fees which he held in France. But there occurred many difficulties in complying with this demand. Young Spenser, by whom the king was implicitly governed, had unavoidably been engaged in many quarrels with the queen, who aspired to the same influence, and though that artful princess, on her leaving England, had dissembled her animosity, Spenser, well acquainted with her secret sentiments, was unwilling to attend his master to Paris, and appear in a court where her credit might expose him to insults, if not to danger. He hesitated no less on allowing the king to make the journey alone; both fearing lest that easy prince should in his absence fall under other influence, and foreseeing the perils to which he himself should be exposed if, without the protection of royal authority, he remained in England where he was so generally hated.

After an unsuccessful attempt by the earl of Kent, the king’s brother, Queen Isabella got permission to travel to Paris to try and resolve the issues with her brother amicably. While she was making progress in these negotiations, Charles introduced a new demand that was undeniably fair: Edward himself should come to his court and pledge loyalty for the lands he held in France. However, complying with this demand became complicated. Young Spenser, who completely controlled the king, had inevitably gotten into several conflicts with the queen, who wanted the same level of influence. Although that cunning princess had hidden her resentment when she left England, Spenser, knowing her true feelings, was reluctant to go to Paris with the king and risk exposure to insults or danger in a court where she held sway. He was also hesitant to let the king make the trip alone, worried that the easy-going prince might fall under someone else’s influence in his absence, and he foresaw the dangers he would face if he stayed in England without royal protection, where he was widely disliked.

1325.

1325.

While these doubts occasioned delays and difficulties, Isabella proposed that Edward should resign the dominion of Guienne to his son, now thirteen years of age; and that the prince should come to Paris, and do the homage which every vassal owed to his superior lord. This expedient, which seemed so happily to remove all difficulties, was immediately embraced: Spenser was charmed with the contrivance: young Edward was sent to Paris: and the ruin covered under this fatal snare, was never perceived or suspected by any of the English council.

While these doubts caused delays and issues, Isabella suggested that Edward should give up control of Guienne to his thirteen-year-old son. She proposed that the prince come to Paris and pay the homage every vassal owed to his superior lord. This solution, which appeared to effortlessly solve all problems, was quickly accepted: Spenser was delighted with the idea, young Edward was sent to Paris, and the disaster hidden under this deadly trap went unnoticed by any of the English council.

The queen, on her arrival in France, had there found a great number of English fugitives, the remains of the Lancastrian faction; and their common hatred of Spenser soon begat a secret friendship and correspondence between them and that princess. Among the rest was young Roger Mortimer, a potent baron in the Welsh marches, who had been obliged, with others, to make his submissions to the king, had been condemned for high treason; but having received a pardon for his life, was afterwards detained in the Tower, with an intention of rendering his confinement perpetual, He was so fortunate as to make his escape into France;[*] and being one of the most considerable persons now remaining of the party, as well as distinguished by his violent animosity against Spenser, he was easily admitted to pay his court to Queen Isabella. The graces of his person and address advanced him quickly in her affections: he became her confident and counsellor in all her measures; and gaining ground daily upon her heart, he engaged her to sacrifice at last, to her passion, all the sentiments of honor and of fidelity to her husband.[**]

The queen, upon arriving in France, discovered a large number of English exiles, the remnants of the Lancastrian faction. Their shared dislike for Spenser quickly led to a secret friendship and correspondence with her. Among them was young Roger Mortimer, a powerful baron from the Welsh borders, who had been forced, along with others, to submit to the king and was condemned for high treason. However, after receiving a pardon for his life, he was later imprisoned in the Tower, with plans to make his confinement permanent. He was fortunate enough to escape to France;[*] being one of the most significant figures left from the faction and known for his intense hatred of Spenser, he was easily welcomed by Queen Isabella. His charm and demeanor quickly won her over: he became her confidant and advisor on all her plans, and as he grew closer to her, he persuaded her to ultimately let go of her sense of honor and loyalty to her husband in favor of her feelings for him.[**]

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 7, 8, 20. T. de la More, p. 596.
     Walsing.[** unclear] p. 120. Ypoa. Neust. p. 506.

     ** T. de la More, p. 598. Murimuth, p. 65.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 7, 8, 20. T. de la More, p. 596. Walsing.[** unclear] p. 120. Ypoa. Neust. p. 506.

     ** T. de la More, p. 598. Murimuth, p. 65.

Hating now the man whom she had injured, and whom she never valued, she entered ardently into all Mortimer’s conspiracies; and having artfully gotten into her hands the young prince, and heir of the monarchy, she resolved on the utter ruin of the king, as well as of his favorite. She engaged her brother to take part in the same criminal purpose: her court was daily filled with the exiled barons: Mortimer lived in the most declared intimacy with her: a correspondence was secretly carried on with the malecontent party in England: and when Edward, informed of those alarming circumstances, required her speedily to return with the prince, she publicly replied, that she would never set foot in the kingdom till Spenser was forever removed from his presence and councils; a declaration which procured her great popularity in England, and threw a decent veil over all her treasonable enterprises.

Hating the man she had wronged and never valued, she eagerly threw herself into all of Mortimer’s schemes. After cleverly getting hold of the young prince, the heir to the throne, she planned the complete downfall of the king and his favorite. She convinced her brother to join in on the same criminal goal; her court was filled every day with the exiled barons. Mortimer was in close relationship with her, and they secretly communicated with the disgruntled faction in England. When Edward learned about these alarming events and demanded she return with the prince, she publicly declared that she would never set foot in the kingdom until Spenser was permanently removed from the king’s presence and council. This statement gained her significant popularity in England and covered up her treasonous plans.

Edward endeavored to put himself in a posture of defence;[*] but, besides the difficulties arising from his own indolence and slender abilities, and the want of authority, which of consequence attended all his resolutions, it was not easy for him, in the present state of the kingdom and revenue, to maintain a constant force ready to repel an invasion, which he knew not at what time or place he had reason to expect.

Edward tried to get ready to defend himself;[*] however, in addition to the challenges posed by his own laziness and limited skills, along with the lack of authority that came with all his plans, it was tough for him, given the current situation of the kingdom and its finances, to keep a steady force on standby to fend off an invasion, the timing and location of which he couldn't predict.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 184, 188, 225.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 184, 188, 225.

All his efforts were unequal to the traitorous and hostile conspiracies which, both at home and abroad, were forming against his authority, and which were daily penetrating farther even into his own family. His brother, the earl of Kent, a virtuous but weak prince, who was then at Paris, was engaged by his sister-in-law, and by the king of France, who was also his cousin-german, to give countenance to the invasion, whose sole object, he believed, was the expulsion of the Spensers: he prevailed on his elder brother, the earl of Norfolk, to enter secretly into the same design: the earl of Leicester, brother and heir of the earl of Lancaster, had too many reasons for his hatred of these ministers to refuse his concurrence. Walter de Reynel, archbishop of Canterbury, and many of the prelates, expressed their approbation of the queen’s measures: several of the most potent barons, envying the authority of the favorite, were ready to fly to arms: the minds of the people, by means of some truths and many calumnies, were strongly disposed to the same party: and there needed but the appearance of the queen and prince, with such a body of foreign troops as might protect her against immediate violence, to turn all this tempest, so artfully prepared, against the unhappy Edward.

All of his efforts were not enough to counter the treacherous and hostile plots forming against his authority both at home and abroad, which were daily infiltrating even into his own family. His brother, the Earl of Kent, a good but weak leader, who was then in Paris, was persuaded by his sister-in-law and by the King of France, who was also his cousin, to support the invasion, which he believed was solely aimed at removing the Spensers. He convinced his older brother, the Earl of Norfolk, to secretly join in the same plan. The Earl of Leicester, brother and heir of the Earl of Lancaster, had too many reasons for hating these ministers to decline his support. Walter de Reynel, Archbishop of Canterbury, along with many other bishops, showed their approval of the queen's actions. Several powerful barons, envious of the favorite's power, were ready to take up arms. The public, influenced by some truths and many falsehoods, were strongly leaning toward the same side. It only required the appearance of the queen and prince, along with a contingent of foreign troops to protect her from immediate harm, to unleash this carefully orchestrated storm against the unfortunate Edward.

1326.

1326.

Charles, though he gave countenance and assistance to the faction, was ashamed openly to support the queen and prince against the authority of a husband and father; and Isabella was obliged to court the alliance of some other foreign potentate, from whose dominions she might set out on her intended enterprise. For this purpose, she affianced young Edward, whose tender age made him incapable to judge of the consequences, with Philippa, daughter of the count of Holland and Hainault;[*] and having, by the open assistance of this prince, and the secret protection of her brother, enlisted in her service near three thousand men, she set sail from the harbor of Dort, and landed safely, and without opposition, on the coast of Suffolk. The earl of Kent was in her company: two other princes of the blood, the earl of Norfolk and the earl of Leicester, joined her soon after her landing with all their followers: three prelates, the bishops of Ely, Lincoln, and Hereford, brought her both the force of their vassals and the authority of their character:[**] even Robert de Watteville, who had been sent by the king to oppose her progress in Suffolk, deserted to her with all his forces. To render her cause more favorable, she renewed her declaration, that the solo purpose of her enterprise was to free the king and kingdom from the tyranny of the Spensers, and of Chancellor Baldoc, their creature.[*] The populace were allured by her specious pretences: the barons thought themselves secure against forfeitures by the appearance of the prince in her army: and a weak, irresolute king, supported by ministers generally odious, was unable to stem this torrent, which bore with such irresistible violence against him.

Charles, while he supported the faction and provided assistance, felt embarrassed to openly back the queen and prince against the authority of a husband and father. Isabella had to seek the alliance of another foreign ruler to launch her planned venture. To achieve this, she arranged for young Edward, who was too young to understand the consequences, to be engaged to Philippa, the daughter of the count of Holland and Hainault;[*] and with the open support of this prince and the secret backing of her brother, she recruited nearly three thousand men for her cause. She set sail from the harbor of Dort and landed safely, without any opposition, on the coast of Suffolk. The earl of Kent was with her; soon after her landing, two other princes, the earl of Norfolk and the earl of Leicester, joined her with all their supporters. Three bishops—the bishops of Ely, Lincoln, and Hereford—also supported her with their vassals and their authority:[**] even Robert de Watteville, who had been sent by the king to stop her in Suffolk, switched sides and came to her with all his troops. To make her cause more appealing, she repeated her statement that the sole aim of her venture was to free the king and the kingdom from the tyranny of the Spensers and Chancellor Baldoc, their puppet.[*] The people were drawn in by her appealing claims: the barons felt secure against forfeitures with the prince appearing in her army, and a weak, indecisive king, relying on ministers who were largely disliked, was unable to resist this powerful tide that was moving decisively against him.

Edward, after trying in vain to rouse the citizens of London to some sense of duty,[****] departed for the west, where he hoped to meet with a better reception; and he had no sooner discovered his weakness by leaving the city, than the rage of the populace broke out without control against him and his ministers.

Edward, after trying unsuccessfully to inspire the citizens of London with a sense of duty,[****] left for the west, hoping for a warmer welcome; as soon as he revealed his weakness by leaving the city, the fury of the people erupted uncontrollably against him and his ministers.

     * T. de la More, p. 598.

     ** Walsing. p. 123. Ypod. Neust, p. 507. T. de la More, p.
     598., Murimuth, p. 66.

     *** Ypod, Neust. p. 508.

     **** Walsing. p. 123.
     * T. de la More, p. 598.

     ** Walsing. p. 123. Ypod. Neust, p. 507. T. de la More, p.
     598., Murimuth, p. 66.

     *** Ypod, Neust. p. 508.

     **** Walsing. p. 123.

They first plundered, then murdered all those who were obnoxious to them: they seized the bishop of Exeter, a virtuous and loyal prelate, as he was passing through the streets; and having beheaded him, they threw his body into the river.[*] They made themselves masters of the Tower by surprise; then entered into a formal association to put to death, without mercy, every one who should dare to oppose the enterprise of Queen Isabella, and of the prince.[**] A like spirit was soon communicated to all other parts of England; and threw the few servants of the king, who still entertained thoughts of performing their duty, into terror and astonishment.

They first looted and then killed everyone who annoyed them: they captured the bishop of Exeter, a good and loyal leader, while he was walking through the streets; after beheading him, they dumped his body into the river.[*] They took control of the Tower by surprise; then they formed a group to kill, without mercy, anyone who dared to oppose the plans of Queen Isabella and the prince.[**] This same attitude quickly spread to other parts of England, instilling fear and shock in the few remaining servants of the king who still thought about doing their duty.

Edward was hotly pursued to Bristol by the earl of Kent, seconded by the foreign forces under John de Hainault. He found himself disappointed in his expectations with regard to the loyalty of those parts; and he passed over to Wales, where, he flattered himself, his name was more popular, and which he hoped to find uninfected with the contagion of general rage which had seized the English.[***] The elder Spenser, created earl of Winchester, was left governor of the castle of Bristol; but the garrison mutinied against him, and he was delivered into the hands of his enemies. This venerable noble, who had nearly reached his ninetieth year, was instantly without trial, or witness, or accusation, or answer, condemned to death by the rebellious barons: he was hanged on a gibbet; his body was cut in pieces, and thrown to the dogs;[****] and his head was sent to Winchester, the place whose title he bore, and was there set on a pole and exposed to the insults of the populace.

Edward was fiercely pursued to Bristol by the Earl of Kent, supported by foreign forces led by John de Hainault. He was disappointed in his hopes regarding the loyalty of that region, so he crossed over to Wales, where he believed his name was better known and hoped to find it free of the widespread anger that had taken hold of the English. The elder Spenser, made Earl of Winchester, was left in charge of the Bristol castle; however, the garrison rebelled against him, and he was captured by his enemies. This aged nobleman, who was nearly ninety, was swiftly condemned to death without trial, witnesses, accusations, or a chance to defend himself by the rebellious barons: he was hanged on a gallows; his body was dismembered and fed to the dogs, and his head was sent to Winchester, the place from which he held his title, and displayed on a pole for the crowd to mock.

The king, disappointed anew in his expectations of succor from the Welsh, took shipping for Ireland; but being driven back by contrary winds, he endeavored to conceal himself in the mountains of Wales: he was soon discovered, was put under the custody of the earl of Leicester, and was confined in the castle of Kenilworth. The younger Spenser, his favorite, who also fell into the hands of his enemies, was executed, like his father, without any appearance of a legal trial.[*****]

The king, once again let down in his hopes for help from the Welsh, set sail for Ireland; however, he was forced to turn back due to bad weather. He tried to hide out in the mountains of Wales but was quickly found, taken into custody by the Earl of Leicester, and locked up in Kenilworth Castle. The younger Spenser, his favorite, who was also captured by his enemies, was executed just like his father, without any semblance of a legal trial.[*****]

     * Walsing. p. 124. T. de la More, p. 599. Murimuth, p. 66.

     ** Walsing. p. 124.

     *** Murimuth, p. 67.

     **** Leland’s Coll. vol. ii. p. 673. T. de la More, p. 599.
     Walsing. p. 125. M. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 13.

     * Walsing. p. 124. T. de la More, p. 599. Murimuth, p. 66.

     ** Walsing. p. 124.

     *** Murimuth, p. 67.

     **** Leland’s Coll. vol. ii. p. 673. T. de la More, p. 599.
     Walsing. p. 125. M. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 13.

The earl of Arundel, almost the only man of his rank in England who had maintained his loyalty, was, without any trial, put to death at the instigation of Mortimer: Baldoc, the chancellor, being a priest, could not with safety be so suddenly despatched; but being sent to the bishop of Hereford’s palace in London, he was there, as his enemies probably foresaw, seized by the populace, was thrown into Newgate, and soon after expired, from the cruel usage which he had received.[*] Even the usual reverence paid to the sacerdotal character gave way, with every other consideration, to the present rage of the people.

The Earl of Arundel, nearly the only noble in England who stayed loyal, was executed without a trial at Mortimer's urging. Baldoc, the chancellor, being a priest, couldn't be easily disposed of; however, he was sent to the Bishop of Hereford’s palace in London, where, as his enemies likely anticipated, he was captured by the crowd, thrown into Newgate, and soon died from the brutal treatment he endured. Even the typical respect for the priesthood was overshadowed by the mob's rage.

1327.

1327.

The queen, to avail herself of the prevailing delusion, summoned, in the king’s name, a parliament at Westminster; where, together with the power of her army, and the authority of her partisans among the barons, who were concerned to secure their past treasons by committing new acts of violence against their sovereign, she expected to be seconded by the fury of the populace, the most dangerous of all instruments, and the least answerable for their excesses. A charge was drawn up against the king, in which, even though it was framed by his inveterate enemies, nothing but his narrow genius, or his misfortunes, were objected to him; for the greatest malice found no particular crime with which it could reproach this unhappy prince. He was accused of incapacity for government, of wasting his time in idle amusements, of neglecting public business, of being swayed by evil counsellors, of having lost, by his misconduct, the kingdom of Scotland, and part of Guienne; and to swell the charge, even the death of some barons, and the imprisonment of some prelates, convicted of treason, were laid to his account.[**] It was in vain, amidst the violence of arms and tumult of the people, to appeal either to law or to reason: the deposition of the king, without any appearing opposition, was voted by parliament: the prince, already declared regent by his party,[***] was placed on the throne: and a deputation was sent to Edward at Kenilworth, to require his resignation, which menaces and terror soon extorted from him.

The queen, taking advantage of the widespread delusion, called a parliament at Westminster in the king’s name; there, with the backing of her army and the support of her allies among the barons, who were eager to secure their past betrayals by committing new acts of violence against their sovereign, she anticipated being bolstered by the anger of the masses, the most dangerous tool, and the one least accountable for their actions. A case was prepared against the king, in which, despite being crafted by his lifelong enemies, only his limited abilities or his misfortunes were cited as flaws; for even the most spiteful could find no specific crime to accuse this unfortunate prince of. He was charged with being unfit to govern, wasting his time on trivial pleasures, neglecting public affairs, being influenced by bad advisors, and losing, due to his mismanagement, the kingdom of Scotland and part of Guienne; to further inflate the accusations, even the deaths of some barons and the imprisonment of some treacherous bishops were blamed on him. It was pointless, amidst the chaos of arms and the uproar of the crowd, to appeal to either law or reason: the king's removal, without any visible opposition, was voted by parliament: the prince, already named regent by his supporters, was placed on the throne: and a delegation was sent to Edward at Kenilworth to demand his resignation, which threats and intimidation quickly forced from him.

     * Walsing. p. 126. Murimuth, p. 68.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2765, 2766. Brady’s App. No. 72.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 137. Walsing, p. 125.
     * Walsing. p. 126. Murimuth, p. 68.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2765, 2766. Brady’s App. No. 72.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 137. Walsing, p. 125.

But it was impossible that the people, however corrupted by the barbarity of the times, still further inflamed by faction, could forever remain insensible to the voice of nature. Here a wife had first deserted, next invaded, and then dethroned her husband; had made her minor son an instrument in this unnatural treatment of his father; had, by lying pretences, seduced the nation into a rebellion against their sovereign had pushed them into violence and cruelties that had dishonored them: all those circumstances were so odious in themselves, and formed such a complicated scene of guilt, that the least reflection sufficed to open men’s eyes, and make them detest this flagrant infringement of every public and private duty. The suspicions which soon arose of Isabella’s criminal commerce with Mortimer, the proofs which daily broke out of this part of her guilt, increased the general abhorrence against her; and her hypocrisy, in publicly bewailing with tears the king’s unhappy fate,[*] was not able to deceive even the most stupid and most prejudiced of her adherents. In proportion as the queen became the object of public hatred the dethroned monarch, who had been the victim of her crimes and her ambition, was regarded with pity, with friendship, with veneration: and men became sensible, that all his misconduct, which faction had so much exaggerated, had been owing to the unavoidable weakness, not to any voluntary depravity, of his character. The earl of Leicester, now earl of Lancaster, to whose custody he had been committed, was soon touched with those generous sentiments; and besides using his prisoner with gentleness and humanity, he was suspected to have entertained still more honorable intentions in his favor. The king, therefore, was taken from his hands, and delivered over to Lord Berkeley, and Mautravers, and Gournay, who were intrusted alternately, each for a month, with the charge of guarding him. While he was in the custody of Berkeley, he was still treated with the gentleness due to his rank and his misfortunes; but when the turn of Mautravers and Gournay came, every species of indignity was practised against him, as if their intention had been to break entirely the prince’s spirit, and to employ his sorrows and afflictions, instead of more violent and more dangerous expedients, for the instruments of his murder.[**] It is reported, that one day, when Edward was to be shaved, they ordered cold and dirty water to be brought from the ditch for that purpose; and when he desired it to be changed, and was still denied his request, he burst into tears which bedewed his cheeks; and he exclaimed, that in spite of their insolence, he should be shaved with clean and warm water.[***]

But it was impossible for the people, no matter how corrupted by the brutality of the times and further inflamed by factions, to remain completely indifferent to the voice of nature. Here, a wife had first abandoned her husband, then invaded his rights, and finally dethroned him; she had used her young son as a tool in this unnatural treatment of his father, and through deceitful pretenses, manipulated the nation into rebelling against their sovereign, pushing them into violence and cruelty that brought them dishonor. All these circumstances were so appalling in themselves and created such a complex scene of guilt that even a little reflection was enough to open people's eyes and make them detest this blatant violation of every public and private duty. The suspicions that soon arose about Isabella’s illicit relationship with Mortimer and the frequent evidence of this part of her guilt only intensified the general hatred towards her; her hypocrisy, publicly mourning the king’s unfortunate fate with tears, couldn’t deceive even her most ignorant and biased supporters. As public animosity towards the queen grew, the dethroned king, who had been victimized by her crimes and ambition, was viewed with pity, friendship, and respect: people realized that all his shortcomings, which factions had exaggerated, stemmed from unavoidable weakness rather than any deliberate wickedness in his character. The Earl of Leicester, now Earl of Lancaster, who had been entrusted with his care, soon felt these noble sentiments and, while treating his prisoner with kindness and humanity, was suspected of having even more honorable intentions on his behalf. Therefore, the king was taken from his custody and handed over to Lord Berkeley, Mautravers, and Gournay, who were assigned to guard him alternately, each for a month. While in Berkeley’s custody, he was treated with the respect due to his rank and misfortunes, but when it was Mautravers and Gournay’s turn, they subjected him to every kind of indignity, as if their aim was to completely break the prince’s spirit and use his sorrows and suffering, instead of more violent methods, to carry out his demise. It is reported that one day, when Edward was to be shaved, they ordered cold and dirty water from the ditch for that purpose; when he asked for it to be changed and was still denied, he burst into tears that streamed down his cheeks and exclaimed that despite their insolence, he would be shaved with clean and warm water.

     * Walsing. p. 126

     ** Anonymi Hist. p. 838.

     *** T. de la Mo’e, p. 602.
     * Walsing. p. 126

     ** Anonymi Hist. p. 838.

     *** T. de la Mo’e, p. 602.

But as this method of laying Edward, in his grave appeared still too slow to the impatient Mortimer, he secretly sent orders to the two keepers, who were at his devotion instantly to despatch him: and these ruffians contrived to make the manner of his death as cruel and barbarous as possible. Taking advantage of Berkeley’s sickness, in whose custody he then was, and who was thereby incapacitated from attending his charge,[*] they came to Berkeley Castle, and put themselves in possession of the king’s person. They threw him on a bed; held him down violently with a table, which they flung over him; thrust into his fundament a red-hot iron, which they inserted through a horn; and though the outward marks of violence upon his person were prevented by this expedient, the horrid deed was discovered to all the guards and attendants by the screams with which the agonizing king filled the castle while his bowels were consuming.

But as this way of burying Edward in his grave seemed too slow for the impatient Mortimer, he secretly ordered the two keepers, who were ready to obey him, to eliminate him. These thugs made sure to make his death as brutal and savage as possible. Taking advantage of Berkeley's illness, since he was responsible for Edward and couldn’t attend to him, they went to Berkeley Castle and took control of the king. They threw him onto a bed, held him down violently with a table that they tossed over him, and inserted a red-hot iron into him through a horn. Although this method prevented visible marks of violence on his body, the horrible act was revealed to all the guards and attendants by the blood-curdling screams that filled the castle as the suffering king endured his agony.

Gournay and Mautravers were held in general detestation, and when the ensuing revolution in England threw their protectors from power, they found it necessary to provide for their safety by flying the kingdom. Gournay was afterwards seized at Marseilles, delivered over to the seneschal of Guienne, put on board a ship with a view of carrying him to England; but he was beheaded at sea, by secret orders, as was supposed, from some nobles and prelates in England, anxious to prevent any discovery which he might make of his accomplices. Mautravers concealed himself for several years in Germany; but having found means of rendering some service to Edward III., he ventured to approach his person, threw himself on his knees before him, submitted to mercy, and received a pardon.[**]

Gournay and Mautravers were widely despised, and when the revolution in England toppled their protectors, they felt it was necessary to flee the kingdom for their safety. Gournay was later captured in Marseilles, handed over to the seneschal of Guienne, and put on a ship intended to take him to England; however, he was secretly executed at sea, allegedly on the orders of some nobles and church leaders in England, who wanted to prevent him from revealing any information about his accomplices. Mautravers hid out for several years in Germany, but after finding a way to help Edward III, he took the chance to approach the king, knelt before him, submitted for mercy, and was granted a pardon.[**]

     * Cotton’s Abridg. p. 8.

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 66, 81. Rymer, vol. v. p. 600
     * Cotton's Abridg. p. 8.

     ** Cotton's Abridg. p. 66, 81. Rymer, vol. v. p. 600

It is not easy to imagine a man more innocent and inoffensive than the unhappy king whose tragical death we have related; nor a prince less fitted for governing that fierce and turbulent people subjected to his authority. He was obliged to devolve on others the weight of government, which he had neither ability nor inclination to bear: the same indolence and want of penetration led him to make choice of ministers and favorites who were not always the best qualified for the trust committed to them: the seditious grandees, pleased with his weakness, yet complaining of it, under pretence of attacking his ministers, insulted his person and invaded his authority: and the impatient populace, mistaking the source of their grievances, threw all the blame upon the king, and increased the public disorders by their faction and violence. It was in vain to look for protection from the laws, whose voice, always feeble in those times, was not heard amidst the din of arms—what could not defend the king, was less able to give shelter to any of the people: the whole machine of government was torn in pieces with fury and violence; and men, instead of regretting the manners of their age, and the form of their constitution, which required the most steady and most skilful hand to conduct them, imputed all errors to the person who had the misfortune to be intrusted with the reins of empire.

It’s hard to imagine a man more innocent and harmless than the unfortunate king whose tragic death we’ve described, nor a prince less suited to govern the fierce and unruly people under his rule. He had to pass the responsibilities of governance to others, as he lacked both the ability and desire to handle them. His laziness and lack of insight led him to choose ministers and favorites who weren’t always the best for the positions they held. The rebellious nobles, pleased with his weakness while also complaining about it, insulted him and undermined his authority under the guise of attacking his ministers. The restless public, misidentifying the root of their problems, blamed the king entirely and worsened the public turmoil with their factions and violence. It was pointless to seek protection from the laws, which were weak at that time and drowned out by the sounds of battle—if they couldn’t defend the king, they were even less able to protect the people. The entire system of government was ripped apart with rage and violence, and instead of lamenting the issues of their time and the structure of their government, which required a steady and skilled hand to manage, they blamed all failures on the unfortunate person entrusted with the reins of power.

But though such mistakes are natural and almost unavoidable while the events are recent, it is a shameful delusion in modern historians, to imagine that all the ancient princes who were unfortunate in their government, were also tyrannical in their conduct; and that the seditions of the people always proceeded from some invasion of their privileges by the monarch. Even a great and a good king was not in that age secure against faction and rebellion, as appears in the case of Henry II.; but a great king had the best chance, as we learn from the history of the same period, for quelling and subduing them. Compare the reigns and characters of Edward I. and II. The father made several violent attempts against the liberties of the people: his barons opposed him: he was obliged, at least found it prudent, to submit: but as they dreaded his valor and abilities, they were content with reasonable satisfaction, and pushed no farther their advantages against him. The facility and weakness of the son, not his violence, threw every thing into confusion: the laws and government were overturned: an attempt to reinstate them was an unpardonable crime: and no atonement but the deposition and tragical death of the king himself could give those barons contentment. It is easy to see, that a constitution which depended so much on the personal character of the prince, must necessarily, in many of its parts, be a government of will, not of laws. But always to throw, without distinction, the blame of all disorders upon the sovereign would introduce a fatal error in politics, and serve as a perpetual apology for treason and rebellion: as if the turbulence of the great, and madness of the people, were not, equally with the tyranny of princes, evils incident to human society, and no less carefully to be guarded against in every well-regulated constitution.

But while such mistakes are natural and almost unavoidable when the events are still fresh, it’s a misguided belief among modern historians to think that all the ancient rulers who struggled in their governance were also tyrants, and that the unrest among the people always stemmed from the king infringing on their rights. Even a great and good king was not safe from factions and rebellions, as seen in the case of Henry II.; however, a strong king had the best chance of suppressing and controlling them, as we learn from the history of that period. Compare the reigns and characters of Edward I and II. The father made several harsh moves against the people's freedoms: his barons resisted him, and he was forced, or at least found it wise, to back down. But since they feared his courage and skills, they settled for reasonable compensation and did not push their advantage further. It was the son’s ease and weakness, not his aggression, that caused all the chaos: the laws and governance were overturned; trying to restore them became an unforgivable offense; and no remedy but the king's deposition and tragic death could satisfy those barons. It's clear that a government so reliant on the personal character of the ruler must often be a government of will, not of laws. However, uniformly blaming the sovereign for all disturbances would create a dangerous misconception in politics and act as a constant excuse for treason and rebellion. As if the turmoil among the powerful and the madness of the people were not, just as much as the tyranny of kings, evils inherent to human society, and just as important to guard against in any well-structured constitution.

While these abominable scenes passed in England, the theatre of France was stained with a wickedness equally barbarous, and still more public and deliberate. The order of knights templars had arisen during the first fervor of the crusades; and uniting the two qualities the most popular in that age, devotion and valor, and exercising both in the most popular of all enterprises, the defence of the Holy Land, they had made rapid advances in credit and authority, and had acquired, from the piety of the faithful, ample possessions in every country of Europe, especially in France. Their great riches, joined to the course of time, had, by degrees, relaxed the severity of these virtues; and the templars had, in a great measure, lost that popularity which first raised them to honor and distinction. Acquainted from experience with the fatigues and dangers of those fruitless expeditions to the East, they rather chose to enjoy in ease their opulent revenues in Europe: and being all men of birth, educated, according to the custom of that age, without any tincture of letters, they scorned the ignoble occupations of a monastic life, and passed their time wholly in the fashionable amusements of hunting, gallantry, and the pleasures of the table. Then rival order, that of St. John of Jerusalem, whose poverty had as yet preserved them from like corruptions, still distinguished themselves by their enterprises against the infidels, and succeeded to all the popularity which was lost by the indolence and luxury of the templars. But though these reasons had weakened the foundations of this order, once so celebrated and revered, the immediate cause of their destruction proceeded from the cruel and vindictive spirit of Philip the Fair, who, having entertained a private disgust against some eminent templars, determined to gratify at once his avidity and revenge, by involving the whole order in an undistinguished ruin. On no better information than that of two knights, condemned by their superiors to perpetual imprisonment for their vices and profligacy, he ordered on one day all the templars in France to be committed to prison, and imputed to them such enormous and absurd crimes as are sufficient of themselves to destroy all the credit of the accusation. Besides their being universally charged with murder, robbery, and vices the most shocking to nature, every one, it was pretended, whom they received into their order, was obliged to renounce his Savior, to spit upon the cross,[*] and to join to this impiety the superstition of worshipping a gilded head, which was secretly kept in one of their houses at Marseilles.

While these terrible events were unfolding in England, France was experiencing an equally brutal and more public kind of wrongdoing. The Knights Templar had emerged during the early enthusiasm of the Crusades; they combined the two most admired traits of that time, devotion and bravery, and applied them to the most popular undertaking of all—the defense of the Holy Land. They quickly gained fame and authority, thanks to the generosity of the faithful, acquiring significant wealth across Europe, especially in France. However, as time passed, their great riches began to soften the strictness of these virtues, and the Templars largely lost the popularity that initially elevated them to prestige. Having experienced the exhaustion and dangers of those fruitless campaigns in the East, they preferred to enjoy their luxurious incomes in Europe. Being noblemen and, according to the customs of that era, educated without any real scholarly training, they dismissed the undignified tasks of monastic life and spent their time indulging in popular pastimes like hunting, flirtation, and indulgent feasting. In contrast, the rival order of St. John of Jerusalem, which had preserved its poverty and avoided such corruption, still distinguished itself through its efforts against the infidels and took over the popularity that the Templars had lost due to their laziness and luxury. Yet, while these factors weakened the foundations of what was once a celebrated and esteemed order, the immediate cause of its downfall stemmed from the cruel and vengeful nature of Philip the Fair. Harboring a personal grudge against some prominent Templars, he aimed to satisfy both his greed and desire for revenge by bringing about the total ruin of the entire order. Acting on nothing more than the claims of two knights, who had been condemned by their superiors to life imprisonment for their immoral behavior, he ordered all the Templars in France to be arrested. He accused them of outrageous and absurd crimes, which alone should have been enough to discredit the allegations. In addition to being universally accused of murder, theft, and nature's most shocking vices, it was claimed that anyone who joined their order had to renounce his Savior, spit on the cross, and practice the superstition of worshipping a gilded head that was secretly kept in one of their houses in Marseilles.

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 31, 101.
* Rymer, vol. iii. p. 31, 101.

They also initiated, it was said, every candidate by such infamous rites as could serve to no other purpose than to degrade the order in his eyes, and destroy forever the authority of all his superiors over him.[*] Above a hundred of these unhappy gentlemen were put to the question, in order to extort from them a confession of their guilt: the more obstinate perished in the hands of their tormentors: several, to procure immediate ease in the violence of their agonies, acknowledged whatever was required of them: forged confessions were imputed to others: and Philip, as if their guilt were now certain, proceeded to a confiscation of all their treasures. But no sooner were the templars relieved from their tortures, than, preferring the most cruel execution to a life with infamy, they disavowed their confessions, exclaimed against the forgeries, justified the innocence of their order, and appealed to all the gallant actions performed by them in ancient or later times, as a full apology for their conduct. The tyrant, enraged at this disappointment, and thinking himself now engaged in honor to proceed to extremities, ordered fifty-four of them, whom he branded as relapsed heretics, to perish by the punishment of fire in his capital: great numbers expired, after a like manner, in other parts of the kingdom: and when he found that the perseverance of these unhappy victims, in justifying to the last their innocence, had made deep impression on the spectators, he endeavored to overcome the constancy of the templars by new inhumanities. The grand master of the order, John de Molay, and another great officer, brother to the sovereign of Dauphiny, were conducted to a scaffold erected before the church of Notredame, at Paris: a full pardon was offered them on the one hand; the fire destined for their execution was shown them on the other: these gallant nobles still persisted in the protestations of their own innocence and that of their order; and were instantly hurried into the flames by the executioner.[**]

They also began, it was said, every candidate through such notorious ceremonies that served no other purpose than to diminish the order in his eyes and permanently undermine the authority of all his superiors over him.[*] More than a hundred of these unfortunate men were interrogated to extract a confession of their guilt: the more defiant ones died at the hands of their torturers: several, seeking immediate relief from their suffering, admitted to whatever was demanded of them: false confessions were attributed to others: and Philip, believing their guilt was now certain, moved to seize all their possessions. But no sooner were the templars freed from their tortures than, preferring a brutal execution to a life of shame, they retracted their confessions, denounced the forgeries, defended the innocence of their order, and cited all the brave actions they had performed in the past and more recently as a complete justification for their conduct. The tyrant, furious at this setback and feeling compelled to act honorably by escalating matters, ordered fifty-four of them, whom he labeled as relapsed heretics, to be burned alive in his capital: many more died similarly in other regions of the kingdom: and when he realized that the steadfastness of these unfortunate victims, in asserting their innocence until the very end, had left a strong impact on the onlookers, he sought to break the resolve of the templars with further brutality. The grand master of the order, John de Molay, and another high-ranking officer, the brother of the sovereign of Dauphiny, were taken to a scaffold set up in front of the church of Notredame in Paris: a full pardon was offered to them on one side; the fire intended for their execution was shown to them on the other: these brave nobles still maintained their claims of innocence for themselves and their order; and were immediately thrust into the flames by the executioner.[**]

     * It was pretended that he kissed the knights who received
     him on the mouth, navel, and breech. Dupuy, p. 15, 6.
     Walsing, p. 99.

     ** Vertot, vol. ii. p. 142.
* He pretended to kiss the knights who greeted him on the mouth, navel, and rear. Dupuy, p. 15, 6. Walsing, p. 99.

** Vertot, vol. ii. p. 142.

In all this barbarous injustice, Clement V., who was the creature of Philip, and then resided in France, fully concurred; and without examining a witness, or making any inquiry into the truth of facts, he summarily, by the plenitude of his apostolic power, abolished the whole order. The templars all over Europe were thrown into prison; their conduct underwent a strict scrutiny; the power of their enemies still pursued and oppressed them; but nowhere, except in France, were the smallest traces of their guilt pretended to be found. England sent an ample testimony of their piety and morals; but as the order was now annihilated, the knights were distributed into several convents, and their possessions were, by command of the pope, transferred to the order of St. John.[*] We now proceed to relate some other detached transactions of the present period.

In all this brutal injustice, Clement V., who was under the influence of Philip and was living in France, fully agreed; and without calling a single witness or investigating the truth of the facts, he quickly used his complete apostolic authority to abolish the entire order. Templars across Europe were thrown into prison; their actions were closely examined; the power of their enemies continued to pursue and oppress them; but nowhere, except in France, was there any alleged evidence of their guilt. England provided ample proof of their piety and morals; but since the order was now dissolved, the knights were spread across several convents, and their properties were, by the pope's order, transferred to the order of St. John.[*] We now move on to recount some other separate events from this period.

The kingdom of England was afflicted with a grievous famine during several years of this reign. Perpetual rains and cold weather not only destroyed the harvest, but bred a mortality among the cattle, and raised every kind of food to an enormous price.[**] The parliament in 1315 endeavored to fix more moderate rates to commodities! not sensible that such an attempt was impracticable, and that, were it possible to reduce the price of provisions by any other expedient than by introducing plenty, nothing could be more pernicious and destructive to the public. Where the produce of a year, for instance, falls so far short as to afford full subsistence only for nine months, the only expedient for making it last all the twelve, is to raise the prices, to put the people by that means on short allowance, and oblige them to save their food till a more plentiful season. But in reality the increase of prices is a necessary consequence of scarcity; and laws, instead of preventing it, only aggravate the evil, by cramping and restraining commerce. The parliament accordingly, in the ensuing year, repealed their ordinance, which they had found useless and burdensome.[***]

The kingdom of England suffered from a severe famine for several years during this reign. Constant rain and cold weather not only ruined the harvest but also led to the death of livestock and caused food prices to skyrocket. In 1315, the parliament tried to set more reasonable prices for goods, not realizing that such an effort was impossible, and that if it were feasible to lower food prices by any other means than increasing supply, it would be incredibly harmful and destructive to the public. When a year's yield falls so short that it only provides sufficient food for nine months, the only way to make it last the full twelve months is to raise prices, which forces people to ration their food until a more abundant season. In reality, rising prices are a necessary result of scarcity; laws meant to stop this only worsen the situation by restricting trade. Consequently, in the following year, the parliament repealed their regulation, having found it both ineffective and burdensome.

The prices affixed by the parliament are somewhat remarkable: three pounds twelve shillings of our present money for the best stalled ox; for other oxen, two pounds eight shillings; a fat hog of two years old, ten shillings; a fat wether unshorn, a crown; if shorn, three shillings and sixpence; a fat goose, sevenpence halfpenny; a fat capon, sixpence; a fat hen, threepence; two chickens, threepence; four pigeons, threepence; two dozen of eggs, threepence.[****]

The prices set by parliament are quite remarkable: three pounds twelve shillings for the best fattened ox; for other oxen, two pounds eight shillings; a two-year-old fat hog, ten shillings; an unshorn fat wether, a crown; if shorn, three shillings and sixpence; a fat goose, seven and a half pence; a fat capon, six pence; a fat hen, three pence; two chickens, three pence; four pigeons, three pence; two dozen eggs, three pence.[****]

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 323, 956; vol. iv. p. 47. Ypod. Neust.
     p. 606

     ** Trivet, Cont. p. 17, 18.

     *** Walsing p. 107.

     **** Rot. Parl. 7 Edw. II. n. 35, 36. Ypod. Neust. p. 502.
     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 323, 956; vol. iv. p. 47. Ypod. Neust.
     p. 606

     ** Trivet, Cont. p. 17, 18.

     *** Walsing p. 107.

     **** Rot. Parl. 7 Edw. II. n. 35, 36. Ypod. Neust. p. 502.

If we consider these prices, we shall find that butcher’s meat, in this time of great scarcity, must still have been sold, by the parliamentary ordinance, three times cheaper than our middling prices at present; poultry somewhat lower, because, being now considered as a delicacy, it has risen beyond its proportion. In the country places of Ireland and Scotland, where delicacies bear no price, poultry is at present as cheap, if not cheaper than butcher’s meat. But the inference I would draw from the comparison of prices is still more considerable: I suppose that the rates affixed by parliament were inferior to the usual market prices in those years of famine and mortality of cattle; and that these commodities, instead of a third, had really risen to a half of the present value. But the famine at that time was so consuming, that wheat was sometimes sold for above four pounds ten shillings a quarter,[*] usually for three pounds;[**] that is, twice our middling prices: a certain proof of the wretched state of tillage in those ages. We formerly found, that the middling price of corn in that period was half of the present price; while the middling price of cattle was only an eighth part: we here find the same immense disproportion in years of scarcity. It may thence be inferred with certainty, that the raising of corn was a species of manufactory, which few in that age could practise with advantage: and there is reason to think, that other manufactures, more refined, were sold even beyond their present prices; at least, there is a demonstration for it in the reign of Henry VII., from the rates affixed to scarlet and other broadcloth by act of parliament. During all those times it was usual for the princes and great nobility to make settlements of their velvet beds and silken robes, in the same manner as of their estates and manors.[***] In the list of jewels and plate which had belonged to the ostentatious Gavaston, and which the king recovered from the earl of Lancaster after the murder of that favorite, we find some embroidered girdles, flowered shirts, and silk waistcoats.[****]

If we look at these prices, we'll see that butcher’s meat, during this period of severe scarcity, was still sold, according to the parliamentary ordinance, three times cheaper than our average prices today; poultry was a bit lower, as it’s now seen as a luxury item and has increased beyond its usual price. In rural areas of Ireland and Scotland, where luxury items have little value, poultry is currently as cheap, if not cheaper, than butcher’s meat. But what stands out in this price comparison is even more significant: I believe that the prices set by parliament were lower than the typical market prices during those years of famine and livestock death; and that these goods, instead of being a third of the current prices, had actually risen to half of their present value. However, the famine at that time was so devastating that wheat sometimes sold for more than four pounds ten shillings a quarter,[*] usually for three pounds;[**] that is, twice our average prices: a clear indication of the dire state of agriculture during those times. We previously noted that the average price of grain during that period was half of today’s price; while the average price of cattle was only an eighth: we again see the same huge discrepancy in years of scarcity. It can certainly be inferred that growing grain was a kind of manufacturing process that few in that era could do profitably: and there's reason to believe that other, more refined goods were sold for even more than today's prices; at least, there’s evidence of this during the reign of Henry VII., based on the prices set for scarlet and other broadcloth by parliamentary act. Throughout those times, it was common for princes and high nobility to arrange their velvet beds and silk robes in the same way as their estates and manors.[***] In the list of jewels and silverware that belonged to the showy Gavaston, which the king reclaimed from the Earl of Lancaster after the murder of that favorite, we see some embroidered belts, patterned shirts, and silk vests.[****]

     * Murimuth, p. 48. Walsingham (p. 108) says it rose to six
     pounds.

     ** Ypod. Neust. p. 502. Trivet Cont. p. 18.

     *** Dugdale, passim.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 288
     * Murimuth, p. 48. Walsingham (p. 108) states it increased to six pounds.

     ** Ypod. Neust. p. 502. Trivet Cont. p. 18.

     *** Dugdale, throughout.

     **** Rymer, vol. iii. p. 288

It was afterwards one article of accusation against that potent and opulent earl, when he was put to death, that he had purloined some of that finery of Gavaston’s. The ignorance of those ages in manufactures, and still more their unskilful husbandry, seem a clear proof that the country was then far from being populous.

It later became one of the charges against that powerful and wealthy earl, when he was executed, that he had stolen some of Gavaston's valuables. The lack of knowledge in manufacturing during those times, and even more so their poor farming practices, clearly indicate that the country was not very populated back then.

All trade and manufactures, indeed, were then at a very low ebb. The only country in the northern parts of Europe, where they seem to have risen to any tolerable degree of improvement, was Flanders. When Robert, earl of that country, was applied to by the king, and was desired to break off commerce with the Scots, whom Edward called his rebels, and represented as excommunicated on that account by the church, the earl replied, that Flanders was always considered as common, and free and open to all nations.[*]

All trade and manufacturing were really struggling back then. The only place in northern Europe where they seemed to have improved to some extent was Flanders. When the king asked Robert, the earl of that region, to end commerce with the Scots—whom Edward labeled as his rebels and claimed were excommunicated by the church—the earl responded that Flanders had always been viewed as a common area, free and open to all nations.[*]

The petition of the elder Spenser to parliament, complaining of the devastation committed on his lands by the barons, contains several particulars which are curious, and discover the manners of the age.[**]

The petition of the elder Spenser to Parliament, complaining about the destruction caused to his lands by the barons, includes several details that are interesting and reveal the customs of the time.

     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 770.

     ** Brady’s Hist. vol. ii. p. 143, from Claus. 15 Edw-II. M,
     14 Dors. in cedula.
     * Rymer, vol. iii. p. 770.

     ** Brady's Hist. vol. ii. p. 143, from Claus. 15 Edw-II. M,
     14 Dors. in cedula.

He affirms, that they had ravaged sixty-three manors belonging to him, and he makes his losses amount to forty-six thousand pounds; that is, to one hundred and thirty-eight thousand of our present money. Among other particulars, he enumerates twenty-eight thousand sheep, one thousand oxen and heifers, twelve hundred cows with their breed for two years, five hundred and sixty cart-horses, two thousand hogs, together with six hundred bacons, eighty carcasses of beef, and six hundred muttons in the larder; ten tuns of cider, arms for two hundred men, and other warlike engines and provisions. The plain inference is, that the greater part of Spenser’s vast estate, as well as the estates of the other nobility, was farmed by the landlord himself, managed by his stewards or bailiffs, and cultivated by his villains. Little or none of it was let on lease to husbandmen: its produce was consumed in rustic hospitality by the baron or his officers: a great number of idle retainers, ready for any disorder or mischief, were maintained by him: all who lived upon his estate were absolutely at his disposal: instead of applying to courts of justice, he usually sought redress by open force and violence: the great nobility were a kind of independent potentates, who, if they submitted to any regulations at all, were less governed by the municipal law than by a rude species of the law of nations. The method in which we find they treated the king’s favorites and ministers, is a proof of their usual way of dealing with each other. A party which complains of the arbitrary conduct of ministers, ought naturally to affect a great regard for the laws and constitution, and maintain at least the appearance of justice in their proceedings; yet those barons, when discontented, came to parliament with an armed force, constrained the king to assent to their measures, and without any trial, or witness, or conviction, passed, from the pretended notoriety of facts, an act of banishment or attainder against the minister, which, on the first revolution of fortune, was reversed by like expedients. The parliament during factious times was nothing but the organ of present power. Though the persons of whom it was chiefly composed seemed to enjoy great independence, they really possessed no true liberty; and the security of each individual among them was not so much derived from the general protection of law, as from his own private power and that of his confederates. The authority of the monarch, though far from absolute, was irregular, and might often reach him: the current of a faction might overwhelm him: a hundred considerations of benefits and injuries, friendships and animosities, hopes and fears, were able to influence his conduct; and amidst these motives, a regard to equity, and law, and justice was commonly, in those rude ages, of little moment. Nor did any man entertain thoughts of opposing present power, who did not deem himself strong enough to dispute the field with it by force, and was not prepared to give battle to the sovereign or the ruling party.

He claims that they devastated sixty-three estates that belonged to him, and he calculates his losses to be forty-six thousand pounds, which is equivalent to one hundred and thirty-eight thousand in today’s money. Among other specifics, he lists twenty-eight thousand sheep, one thousand oxen and heifers, twelve hundred cows with their calves for two years, five hundred and sixty draft horses, two thousand pigs, along with six hundred pieces of bacon, eighty beef carcasses, and six hundred sheep ready for consumption; ten casks of cider, weapons for two hundred men, and other military supplies and provisions. The clear implication is that most of Spenser’s large estate, along with other noble estates, was farmed by the landlord himself, overseen by his stewards or bailiffs, and worked by his serfs. Little or none of it was leased to farmers; the produce was consumed by the baron or his officials in rural hospitality: a large number of idle retainers, ready for any disorder or trouble, were supported by him: everyone living on his estate was completely at his command: instead of appealing to courts, he typically sought redress through open force and violence: the great nobility functioned as independent rulers, who, if they followed any rules, were governed more by a rough form of international law than by the municipal law. The way they treated the king’s favorites and ministers demonstrates their common way of dealing with each other. A group that complains about the arbitrary behavior of ministers would naturally pretend to hold great respect for the laws and constitution and strive to maintain at least the appearance of justice in their actions; yet those barons, when unhappy, would come to parliament with an armed force, force the king to agree to their demands, and without any trial, evidence, or conviction, would pass an act of banishment or disgrace against the minister based on the supposed notoriety of facts, which, upon the first turn of fortune, could be reversed by similar means. During tumultuous times, parliament was just a tool of the current power. Although the individuals in parliament appeared to have great independence, they really had no true freedom; each person’s security relied not on the general protection of law, but on their own power and that of their allies. The monarch's authority, while far from absolute, was unpredictable and could often reach him: the tide of a faction could sweep him away: a multitude of factors such as benefits and grievances, friendships and arguments, hopes and fears could impact his actions; and amid these motives, considerations of fairness, law, and justice were usually of little significance in those rough times. Furthermore, no one thought of opposing the current power unless they believed themselves strong enough to confront it through force and were ready to fight the sovereign or the ruling faction.

Before I conclude this reign, I cannot forbear making another remark, drawn from the detail of losses given in by the elder Spenser; particularly the great quantity of salted meat which he had in his larder, six hundred bacons, eighty carcasses of beef, six hundred muttons. We may observe, that the outrage of which he complained began after the third of May, or the eleventh, new style, as we learn from the same paper. It is easy, therefore, to conjecture what a vast store of the same kind he must have laid up at the beginning of winter; and we may draw a new conclusion with regard to the wretched state of ancient husbandry, which could not provide subsistence for the cattle during winter, even in such a temperate climate as the south of England; for Spenser had but one manor so far north as Yorkshire. There being few or no enclosures, except perhaps for deer, no sown grass, little hay, and no other resource for feeding cattle, the barons, as well as the people, were obliged to kill and salt their oxen and sheep in the beginning of winter, before they became lean upon the common pasture; a precaution still practised with regard to oxen in the least cultivated parts of this island. The salting of mutton is a miserable expedient, which has every where been long disused. From this circumstance, however trivial in appearance, may be drawn important inferences with regard to the domestic economy and manner of life in those ages.

Before I end this reign, I have to make one more comment based on the details of losses reported by the elder Spenser; specifically, the large amount of salted meat he had in storage: six hundred bacons, eighty carcasses of beef, and six hundred sheep. We note that the issues he mentioned started after May 3rd, or May 11th, in the new calendar, as indicated in the same document. It’s easy to guess how much food he must have stored up at the start of winter; we can also conclude something significant about the poor condition of farming back then, which couldn’t provide enough food for the livestock during winter, even in a temperate area like southern England; Spenser had only one manor up north in Yorkshire. With few or no enclosures, except maybe for deer, no planted grass, little hay, and no other way to feed the animals, both the barons and the common people had to kill and salt their oxen and sheep at the start of winter before they got too thin on the shared pastures; this is still a practice among oxen in the less cultivated areas of this island. Salting sheep is a sad solution that has long been abandoned everywhere. However trivial it may seem at first glance, this situation reveals important insights about the household economy and lifestyle of those times.

The disorders of the times, from foreign wars and intestine dissensions, but above all, the cruel famine, which obliged the nobility to dismiss many of their retainers, increased the number of robbers in the kingdom; and no place was secure from their incursions.[*] They met in troops like armies, and over-ran the country. Two cardinals themselves, the pope’s legates, notwithstanding the numerous train which attended them, were robbed and despoiled of their goods and equipage, when they travelled on the highway.[**]

The troubles of the time, from foreign wars and internal conflicts, but especially the severe famine that forced many nobles to let go of their servants, led to a rise in the number of thieves in the kingdom; no place was safe from their attacks.[*] They gathered in groups like armies and swept through the countryside. Even two cardinals, who were the pope’s envoys, despite having a large entourage with them, were robbed and stripped of their belongings and possessions while traveling on the road.[**]

Among the other wild fancies of the age, it was imagined, that the persons affected with leprosy (a disease at that time very common, probably from bad diet) had conspired with the Saracens to poison all the springs and fountains; and men, being glad of any pretence to get rid of those who were a burden to them, many of those unhappy people were burnt alive on this chimerical imputation. Several Jews, also, were punished in their persons, and their goods were confiscated on the same account.[***]

Among the other wild ideas of the time, people believed that those suffering from leprosy (a disease that was very common back then, likely due to poor diet) had joined forces with the Saracens to poison all the springs and fountains. Many men, eager for any excuse to eliminate those they saw as burdens, burned many of those unfortunate individuals alive based on this baseless accusation. Several Jews were also punished, and their possessions were seized for the same reason.

     * Ypod. Neust. p. 502. Walsing. p. 107.

     ** Ypod Neust. p. 503. T. de la More, p. 594. Trivet, Cont.
     p, 22. Murimuth, p. 51.

     *** Ypod. Neust. p. 504.
     * Ypod. Neust. p. 502. Walsing. p. 107.

     ** Ypod Neust. p. 503. T. de la More, p. 594. Trivet, Cont. p, 22. Murimuth, p. 51.

     *** Ypod. Neust. p. 504.

Stowe, in his Survey of London, gives us a curious instance of the hospitality of the ancient nobility in this period; it is taken from the accounts of the cofferer or steward of Thomas earl of Lancaster, and contains the expenses of that earl during the year 1313, which was not a year of famine. For the pantry, buttery, and kitchen, three thousand four hundred and five pounds. For three hundred and sixty-nine pipes of red wine, and two of white, one hundred and four pounds, etc. The whole, seven thousand three hundred and nine pounds; that is, near twenty-two thousand pounds of our present money; and making allowance for the cheapness of commodities, near a hundred thousand pounds.

Stowe, in his Survey of London, provides an interesting example of the hospitality of the ancient nobility during this time. It’s drawn from the accounts of the cofferer or steward of Thomas, Earl of Lancaster, and details the expenses of the earl for the year 1313, which was not a year of famine. For the pantry, buttery, and kitchen, it was three thousand four hundred and five pounds. For three hundred sixty-nine barrels of red wine and two of white, it was one hundred and four pounds, etc. In total, it amounted to seven thousand three hundred and nine pounds; that’s nearly twenty-two thousand pounds in today’s money, and considering the lower prices of goods back then, it’s roughly a hundred thousand pounds.

I have seen a French manuscript, containing accounts of some private disbursements of this king. There is an article, among others, of a crown paid to one for making the king laugh. To judge by the events of the reign, this ought not to have been an easy undertaking.

I’ve come across a French manuscript that includes records of some private expenses of this king. There’s an entry, among others, of a crown paid to someone for making the king laugh. Considering the events of the reign, that seems like it wouldn’t have been an easy task.

This king left four children, two sons and two daughters: Edward, his eldest son and successor; John, created afterwards earl of Cornwall, who died young at Perth; Jane, afterwards married to David Bruce, king of Scotland; and Eleanor, married to Reginald, count of Gueldres.

This king had four children: two sons and two daughters. His eldest son and successor was Edward; John, who was later made the Earl of Cornwall, died young in Perth; Jane, who later married David Bruce, king of Scotland; and Eleanor, who married Reginald, the count of Gueldres.





CHAPTER XV.

1_207_edward3.jpg Edward III.




EDWARD III.

1327.

1327.

The violent party which had taken arms against Edward II., and finally deposed that unfortunate monarch, deemed it requisite for their future security to pay so far an exterior obeisance to the law, as to desire a parliamentary indemnity for all their illegal proceedings; on account of the necessity which, it was pretended, they lay under, of employing force against the Spensers and other evil counsellors, enemies of the kingdom. All the attainders, also, which had passed against the earl of Lancaster and his adherents, when the chance of war turned against them, were easily reversed during the triumph of their party;[*] and the Spensers, whose former attainder had been reversed by parliament, were now again, in this change of fortune, condemned by the votes of their enemies.

The violent group that had taken up arms against Edward II and ultimately deposed that unfortunate king felt it necessary for their future security to show some outward respect for the law by seeking parliamentary approval for all their illegal actions. They claimed this was needed because they had to use force against the Spensers and other bad advisors, who were seen as enemies of the kingdom. Additionally, the sentences passed against the Earl of Lancaster and his supporters, when luck was against them, were easily overturned during their party's victory; and the Spensers, whose previous exile had been overturned by parliament, were once again, in this shift of power, condemned by the votes of their opponents.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 245, 267, 258, etc.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 245, 267, 258, etc.

A council of regency was likewise appointed by parliament, consisting of twelve persons; five prelates, the archbishops of Canterbury and York, the bishops of Winchester, Worcester, and Hereford; and seven lay peers, the earls of Norfolk, Kent, and Surrey, and the lords Wake, Ingham, Piercy, and Ross. The earl of Lancaster was appointed guardian and protector of the king’s person. But though it was reasonable to expect that, as the weakness of the former king had given reins to the licentiousness of the barons, great domestic tranquillity would not prevail during the present minority; the first disturbance arose from an invasion by foreign enemies.

A council of regency was also established by parliament, made up of twelve people: five bishops, including the archbishops of Canterbury and York, along with the bishops of Winchester, Worcester, and Hereford; and seven lay peers, which were the earls of Norfolk, Kent, and Surrey, plus the lords Wake, Ingham, Piercy, and Ross. The earl of Lancaster was appointed as guardian and protector of the king. However, while it seemed reasonable to expect that the instability caused by the previous king's weakness would allow the barons more freedom, leading to a lack of domestic peace during this reign; the first trouble actually came from an invasion by foreign enemies.

The king of Scots, declining in years and health, but retaining still that martial spirit which had raised his nation from the lowest ebb of fortune, deemed the present opportunity favorable for infesting England. He first made an attempt on the Castle of Norham, in which he was disappointed; he then collected an army of twenty-five thousand men on the frontiers, and having given the command to the earl of Murray and Lord Douglas, threatened an incursion into the northern counties. The English regency, after trying in vain every expedient to restore peace with Scotland, made vigorous preparations for war; and besides assembling an English army of near sixty thousand men, they invited back John of Hainault, and some foreign cavalry whom they had dismissed, and whose discipline and arms had appeared superior to those of their own country. Young Edward himself, burning with a passion for military fame, appeared at the head of these numerous forces; and marched from Durham, the appointed place of rendezvous, in quest of the enemy, who had already broken into the frontiers, and were laying every thing waste around them.

The aging Scottish king, whose health was declining but who still held onto the fighting spirit that had lifted his nation from its lowest point, saw a good chance to attack England. He first tried to take the Castle of Norham but failed. He then gathered an army of twenty-five thousand men at the borders and put the earl of Murray and Lord Douglas in charge, threatening to invade the northern counties. The English regency, after unsuccessfully trying to bring peace with Scotland, prepared vigorously for war. They assembled an English army of nearly sixty thousand men and invited back John of Hainault along with some foreign cavalry they had previously let go, whose training and equipment seemed better than that of their own troops. Young Edward, eager for military glory, led these large forces and marched from Durham, the designated meeting spot, in search of the enemy, who had already crossed into the borders and were wreaking havoc in the area.

Murray and Douglas were the two most celebrated warriors, bred in the long hostilities between the Scots and English; and their forces, trained in the same school, and inured to hardships, fatigues, and dangers, were perfectly qualified, by their habits and manner of life, for that desultory and destructive war which they carried into England. Except a body of about four thousand cavalry, well armed, and fit to make a steady impression in battle, the rest of the army were light-armed troops, mounted on small horses, which found subsistence every where, and carried them with rapid and unexpected marches, whether they meant to commit depredations on the peaceable inhabitants, or to attack an armed enemy, or to retreat into their own country. Their whole equipage consisted of a bag of oatmeal, which, as a supply in case of necessity, each soldier carried behind him; together with a light plate of iron, on which he instantly baked the meal into a cake in the open fields. But his chief subsistence was the cattle which he seized; and his cookery was as expeditious as all his other operations. After flaying the animal, he placed the skin, loose and hanging in the form of a bag, upon some stakes; he poured water into it, kindled a fire below, and thus made it serve as a caldron for the boiling of his victuals.[*]

Murray and Douglas were the two most famous warriors, raised during the long conflicts between the Scots and English; their troops, trained in the same environment and accustomed to hardships, fatigue, and dangers, were entirely suited by their lifestyle for the unpredictable and destructive warfare they waged in England. Besides a group of about four thousand well-armed cavalry, capable of making a strong impact in battle, the rest of the army consisted of lightly armed soldiers mounted on small horses that could find food anywhere, allowing them to make quick and unexpected movements, whether they aimed to raid peaceful communities, confront an armed enemy, or retreat back to their home territory. Each soldier carried a bag of oatmeal as a backup food supply, along with a light iron plate for baking the meal into cakes in the open fields. However, their primary food source was the cattle they captured, and their cooking methods were as quick as all their other tasks. After skinning an animal, they would hang the skin loosely to form a sort of bag on some stakes, pour water into it, and light a fire beneath, using it as a makeshift pot to boil their food.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 18.
     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 18.

The chief difficulty which Edward met with, after composing some dangerous frays which broke out between his foreign forces and the English,[*] was to come up with an army so rapid in its marches, and so little encumbered in its motions. Though the flame and smoke of burning villages directed him sufficiently to the place of their encampment, he found, upon hurrying thither, that they had already dislodged; and he soon discovered, by new marks of devastation, that they had removed to some distant quarter. After harassing his army during some time in this fruitless chase, he advanced northwards, and crossed the Tyne, with a resolution of awaiting them on their return homewards, and taking vengeance for all their depredations.[**] But that whole country was already so much wasted by their frequent incursions, that it could not afford subsistence to his army; and he was obliged again to return southwards, and change his plan of operations. He had now lost all track of the enemy; and though he promised the reward of a hundred pounds a year to any one who should bring him an account of their motions, he remained inactive some days before he received any intelligence of them.[***] He found at last that they had fixed their camp on the southern banks of the Were, as if they intended to await a battle; but their prudent leaders had chosen the ground with such judgment, that the English, on their approach, saw it impracticable, without temerity, to cross the river in their front, and attack them in their present situation. Edward, impatient for revenge and glory, here sent them a defiance, and challenged them, if they dared, to meet him in an equal field, and try the fortune of arms. The bold spirit of Douglas could ill brook this bravado, and he advised the acceptance of the challenge; but he was overruled by Murray, who replied to Edward that he never took the counsel of an enemy in any of his operations. The king, therefore, kept still his position opposite to the Scots; and daily expected that necessity would oblige them to change their quarters, and give him an opportunity of overwhelming them with superior forces. After a few days, they suddenly decamped, and marched farther up the river; but still posted themselves in such a manner as to preserve the advantage of the ground if the enemy should venture to attack them.[****]

The main challenge Edward faced, after managing some dangerous conflicts that erupted between his foreign troops and the English,[*] was tracking down an army that was quick on the move and not weighed down in its movements. Although the smoke and flames from burning villages guided him to their camp, when he hurried there, he found they had already left; soon, new signs of destruction revealed they had relocated to a far-off place. After troubling his army for a while in this fruitless pursuit, he moved north and crossed the Tyne, planning to wait for them to head home and seek revenge for all their raids.[**] However, that entire area had already been so devastated by their frequent invasions that it couldn't provide sustenance for his army, forcing him to return south and alter his plans. He had now completely lost track of the enemy, and even though he offered a reward of a hundred pounds a year to anyone who could update him on their movements, he remained inactive for several days before he received any news.[***] Eventually, he learned that they had set up camp on the southern banks of the Were, seemingly preparing for a battle. However, their wise leaders had chosen the ground so effectively that the English found it risky to cross the river directly and attack in their current position. Eager for revenge and glory, Edward sent them an insult and challenged them, if they had the courage, to meet him in an open field and test their luck in battle. The bold Douglas could hardly tolerate this challenge and advised accepting it, but he was overruled by Murray, who told Edward that he never took advice from an enemy in any of his plans. Thus, the king maintained his position opposite the Scots, daily anticipating that necessity would force them to change their location, giving him a chance to overpower them with greater numbers. After a few days, they suddenly broke camp and moved further up the river, but still positioned themselves to retain the upper hand should the enemy choose to attack.[****]

     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 17.

     ** Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 19.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 312. Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 19.

     **** Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 19.
     * Froissart, book iv, chapter 17.

     ** Froissart, book iv, chapter 19.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv, p. 312. Froissart, book iv, chapter 19.

     **** Froissart, book iv, chapter 19.

Edward insisted that all hazards should be run, rather than allow these ravagers to escape with impunity; but Mortimer’s authority prevented the attack, and opposed itself to the valor of the young monarch. While the armies lay in this position, an incident happened which had well nigh proved fatal to the English. Douglas, having gotten the word, and surveyed exactly the situation of the English camp, entered it secretly in the night-time, with a body of two hundred determined soldiers, and advanced to the royal tent, with a view of killing or carrying off the king in the midst of his army. But some of Edward’s attendants, awaking in that critical moment, made resistance; his chaplain and chamberlain sacrificed their lives for his safety; the king himself, after making a valorous defence, escaped in the dark; and Douglas, having lost the greater part of his followers, was glad to make a hasty retreat with the remainder.[*] Soon after, the Scottish army decamped without noise in the dead of night; and having thus gotten the start of the English, arrived without further loss in their own country. Edward, on entering the place of the Scottish encampment, found only six Englishmen, whom the enemy, after breaking their legs, had tied to trees, in order to prevent their carrying any intelligence to their countrymen.[**]

Edward insisted that all risks should be taken rather than let these attackers get away without consequences; but Mortimer's authority stopped the assault and went against the bravery of the young king. While the armies were in this standoff, an incident occurred that almost turned deadly for the English. Douglas, having received word and scouted the layout of the English camp, sneaked in at night with two hundred determined soldiers and moved toward the royal tent, intending to either kill or capture the king amid his army. However, some of Edward’s attendants woke up at that crucial moment and fought back; his chaplain and chamberlain gave their lives to protect him; the king himself, after defending himself valiantly, managed to escape into the darkness. Douglas, having lost most of his men, was forced to retreat quickly with the few who remained. Soon after, the Scottish army quietly packed up and left in the dead of night; thus, they gained an advantage over the English and returned safely to their homeland. When Edward entered the site of the Scottish encampment, he found only six Englishmen, whom the enemy had tied to trees after breaking their legs to prevent them from relaying any information to their fellow soldiers.

     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 19. Heming. p. 265. Ypod. Neust.
     p. 509. Knyghton, p 2552.

     ** Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 19.
     * Froissart, book iv, chapter 19. Heming. p. 265. Ypod. Neust.
     p. 509. Knyghton, p 2552.

     ** Froissart, book iv, chapter 19.

The king was highly incensed at the disappointment which he had met with in his first enterprise, and at the head of so gallant an army. The symptoms which he had discovered of bravery and spirit gave extreme satisfaction, and were regarded as sure prognostics of an illustrious reign: but the general displeasure fell violently on Mortimer, who was already the object of public odium; and every measure which he pursued tended to aggravate, beyond all bounds, the hatred of the nation both against him and Queen Isabella.

The king was incredibly angry about the failure he experienced in his first campaign, especially with such a brave army at his command. The signs of courage and determination he had seen were very encouraging and were seen as a good indication of a great reign to come. However, all the king's frustration landed squarely on Mortimer, who was already hated by the public. Every action he took only made the nation’s hatred for him and Queen Isabella even worse.

When the council of regency was formed, Mortimer, though in the plenitude of his power, had taken no care to insure a place in it; but this semblance of moderation was only a cover to the most iniquitous and most ambitious projects. He rendered that council entirely useless, by usurping to himself the whole sovereign authority; he settled on the queen dowager the greater part of the royal revenues; he never consulted either the princes of the blood or the nobility in any public measure; the king himself was so besieged by his creatures, that no access could be procured to him; and all the envy which had attended Gavaston and Spenser fell much more deservedly on the new favorite.

When the council of regency was established, Mortimer, despite being at the height of his power, hadn’t bothered to secure a spot in it; however, this show of restraint was just a front for his most wicked and ambitious plans. He made the council completely ineffective by taking all the sovereign authority for himself; he allocated most of the royal revenues to the queen dowager; he never consulted the royal family or the nobility on any public matters; the king himself was so overwhelmed by his associates that no one could get to him; and all the resentment that had once surrounded Gavaston and Spenser now fell much more rightfully on the new favorite.

1328.

1328.

Mortimer, sensible of the growing hatred of the people, thought it requisite on any terms to secure peace abroad; and he entered into a negotiation with Robert Bruce for that purpose. As the claim of superiority in England, more than any other cause, had tended to inflame the animosities between the two nations, Mortimer, besides stipulating a marriage between Jane, sister of Edward, and David, the son and heir of Robert, consented to resign absolutely this claim, to give up all the homages done by the Scottish parliament and nobility, and to acknowledge Robert as independent sovereign of Scotland.[*] In return for these advantages, Robert stipulated the payment of thirty thousand marks to England. This treaty was ratified by parliament;[**] but was nevertheless the source of great discontent among the people, who, having entered zealously into the pretensions of Edward I., and deeming themselves disgraced by the successful resistance made by so inferior a nation, were disappointed, by this treaty, in all future hopes both of conquest and of vengeance.

Mortimer, aware of the growing dislike from the people, believed it was essential to secure peace abroad at any cost. He began negotiations with Robert Bruce for this purpose. Since England’s claim of superiority had primarily fueled the animosities between the two nations, Mortimer agreed to arrange a marriage between Jane, sister of Edward, and David, the son and heir of Robert. He also agreed to completely give up this claim, hand over all the loyalties owed by the Scottish parliament and nobility, and recognize Robert as the independent ruler of Scotland.[*] In exchange for these terms, Robert agreed to pay thirty thousand marks to England. This treaty was approved by parliament;[**] however, it led to significant dissatisfaction among the people, who had passionately supported Edward I's claims and felt ashamed by the successful resistance from a nation they considered inferior. They were left disappointed by this treaty, as it crushed any future hopes for both conquest and revenge.

The princes of the blood, Kent, Norfolk, and Lancaster, were much united in their councils; and Mortimer entertained great suspicions of their designs against him. In summoning them to parliament, he strictly prohibited them, in the king’s name, from coming attended by an armed force; an illegal but usual practice in that age. The three earls, as they approached to Salisbury, the place appointed for the meeting of parliament, found, that though they themselves, in obedience to the king’s command, had brought only their usual retinue with them, Mortimer and his party were attended by all their followers in arms; and they began with some reason to apprehend a dangerous design against their persons. They retreated, assembled their retainers, and were returning with an army to take vengeance on Mortimer; when the weakness of Kent and Norfolk, who deserted the common cause, obliged Lancaster also to make his submissions.[***]

The royal princes—Kent, Norfolk, and Lancaster—were closely allied in their plans, and Mortimer had serious doubts about what they were plotting against him. When he called them to parliament, he strictly ordered them, in the king’s name, not to come with any armed followers, an illegal but common practice at that time. As the three earls approached Salisbury, the designated meeting place, they realized that, although they had obeyed the king’s order and brought only their usual entourage, Mortimer and his allies had shown up with all their armed followers. This led them to reasonably fear an attack on their lives. They withdrew, gathered their supporters, and were preparing to return with an army to take revenge on Mortimer when the cowardice of Kent and Norfolk, who abandoned the shared cause, forced Lancaster to submit as well.

     * Rymer, p. 837. Heming. p. 270. Anon. Hist p. 392.

     ** Ypod, Neust. p. 510.

     *** Knyghton, p. 2554.
     * Rymer, p. 837. Heming. p. 270. Anon. Hist p. 392.

     ** Ypod, Neust. p. 510.

     *** Knyghton, p. 2554.

The quarrel by the interposition of the prelates, seemed for the present to be appeased.

The disagreement, with the intervention of the church leaders, seemed to be calmed for now.

1329.

1329.

But Mortimer, in order to intimidate the princes, determined to have a victim; and the simplicity, with the good intentions of the earl of Kent, afforded him soon after an opportunity of practising upon him. By himself and his emissaries he endeavored to persuade that prince that his brother, King Edward, was still alive, and detained in some secret prison in England. The earl, whose remorses for the part which he had acted against the late king probably inclined him to give credit to this intelligence, entered into a design of restoring him to liberty, of reinstating him on the throne, and of making thereby some atonement for the injuries which he himself had unwarily done him.[*]

But Mortimer, wanting to scare the princes, decided he needed a victim; and the naivety, along with the good intentions of the Earl of Kent, soon gave him a chance to act. He and his agents tried to convince that prince that his brother, King Edward, was still alive and being held in some secret prison in England. The Earl, who probably felt guilty about his actions against the late king, was inclined to believe this information. He started planning to set the king free, restore him to the throne, and make some amends for the wrongs he had unintentionally caused him.[*]

1330.

1330.

After this harmless contrivance had been allowed to proceed a certain length, the earl was seized by Mortimer, was accused before the parliament, and condemned, by those slavish though turbulent barons, to lose his life and fortune. The queen and Mortimer, apprehensive of young Edward’s lenity towards his uncle, hurried on the execution, and the prisoner was beheaded next day: but so general was the affection borne him, and such pity prevailed for his unhappy fate, that, though peers had been easily found to condemn him, it was evening before his enemies could find an executioner to perform the office.[**]

After this harmless scheme had gone on for a while, Mortimer seized the earl, accused him in front of parliament, and those subservient yet disruptive barons condemned him to lose his life and fortune. The queen and Mortimer, worried that young Edward might be lenient towards his uncle, rushed the execution, and the next day the prisoner was beheaded. However, because he was so well-liked and there was so much sympathy for his unfortunate situation, even though there were plenty of peers ready to condemn him, it took until evening for his enemies to find an executioner to carry out the sentence.[**]

     * Avesbury, p. 8. Anon. Hist. p. 395.

     ** Heming. p. 271. Ypod. Neust. p. 510. Knyghton, p. 2555.
     * Avesbury, p. 8. Anonymous. History, p. 395.

     ** Heming. p. 271. Ypod. Neust. p. 510. Knyghton, p. 2555.

The earl of Lancaster, on pretence of his having assented to this conspiracy, was soon after thrown into prison: many of the prelates and nobility were prosecuted: Mortimer employed this engine to crush all his enemies, and to enrich himself and his family by the forfeitures. The estate of the earl of Kent was seized for his younger son, Geoffrey: the immense fortunes of the Spensers and their adherents were mostly converted to his own use: he affected a state and dignity equal or superior to the royal: his power became formidable to every one: his illegal practices were daily complained of: and all parties, forgetting past animosities, conspired in their hatred of Mortimer.

The Earl of Lancaster, pretending to have supported this conspiracy, was soon imprisoned. Many bishops and nobles were prosecuted. Mortimer used this situation to eliminate all his enemies and enrich himself and his family through their confiscated properties. The estate of the Earl of Kent was taken for his younger son, Geoffrey. Most of the vast fortunes of the Spensers and their supporters were largely turned to his benefit. He maintained a status and dignity equal to or greater than the king's. His power became a threat to everyone. His illegal actions were constantly complained about, and all parties, putting aside past grievances, united in their hatred of Mortimer.

It was impossible that these abuses could long escape the observation of a prince endowed with so much spirit and judgment as young Edward, who, being now in his eighteenth year, and feeling himself capable of governing, repined at being held in fetters by this insolent minister. But so much was he surrounded by the emissaries of Mortimer, that it behoved him to conduct the project for subverting him with the same secrecy and precaution as if he had been forming a conspiracy against his sovereign. He communicated his intentions to Lord Mountacute, who engaged the Lords Molins and Clifford, Sir John Nevil of Hornby, Sir Edward Bohun, Ufford, and others, to enter into their views; and the Castle of Nottingham was chosen for the scene of the enterprise. The queen dowager and Mortimer lodged in that fortress: the king also was admitted, though with a few only of his attendants: and as the castle was strictly guarded, the gates locked every evening, and the keys carried to the queen, it became necessary to communicate the design to Sir William Eland, the governor, who zealously took part in it. By his direction, the king’s associates were admitted through a subterraneous passage, which had formerly been contrived for a secret outlet from the castle, but was now buried in rubbish; and Mortimer, without having it in his power to make resistance, was suddenly seized in an apartment adjoining to the queen’s.[*] A parliament was immediately summoned for his condemnation. He was accused before that assembly of having usurped regal power from the council of regency appointed by parliament; of having procured the death of the late king; of having deceived the earl of Kent into a conspiracy to restore that prince; of having solicited and obtained exorbitant grants of the royal demesnes; of having dissipated the public treasure; of secreting twenty thousand marks of the money paid by the king of Scotland; and of other crimes and misdemeanors.[**] The parliament condemned him from the supposed notoriety of the facts, without trial, or hearing his answer, or examining a witness; and he was hanged on a gibbet at the Elmes, in the neighborhood of London. It is remarkable, that this sentence was near twenty years after reversed by parliament, in favor of Mortimer’s son; and the reason assigned was, the illegal manner of proceeding.[***] The principles of law and justice were established in England, not in such a degree as to prevent any iniquitous sentence against a person obnoxious to the ruling party; but sufficient, on the return of his credit, or that of his friends, to serve as a reason or pretence for its reversal.

It was impossible for these abuses to go unnoticed by a prince with as much spirit and judgment as young Edward, who, at eighteen, felt ready to govern and resented being controlled by this arrogant minister. However, surrounded by Mortimer’s supporters, he needed to plan his overthrow with the same secrecy and caution as if he were organizing a conspiracy against his own ruler. He shared his plans with Lord Mountacute, who rallied the Lords Molins and Clifford, Sir John Nevil of Hornby, Sir Edward Bohun, Ufford, and others to join their cause, deciding that the Castle of Nottingham would be the site of their scheme. The dowager queen and Mortimer were staying in that fortress; the king was also allowed in but only with a small group of attendants. Since the castle was heavily guarded, with the gates locked every evening and the keys given to the queen, it became essential to inform Sir William Eland, the governor, who enthusiastically supported their plan. Following his instructions, the king’s allies were let in through a hidden passage that had originally been designed as a secret exit from the castle but had since been covered in debris. Mortimer was captured suddenly in a room next to the queen’s without having a chance to fight back. A parliament was quickly convened to condemn him. He was charged with usurping royal authority from the regency council appointed by parliament, orchestrating the death of the late king, tricking the earl of Kent into a plot to restore that king, soliciting excessive grants of the royal lands, wasting public funds, hiding twenty thousand marks from the money paid by the king of Scotland, and other crimes. The parliament condemned him based on the presumed notoriety of the facts, without trial, hearing his defense, or examining any witnesses; he was hanged at Elmes, near London. Notably, this sentence was overturned nearly twenty years later by parliament in favor of Mortimer's son, citing the illegal nature of the proceedings. The principles of law and justice in England were not strong enough to completely prevent an unjust sentence against someone disliked by the ruling party, but they were sufficient to later justify or pretend a reversal when the political climate changed.

     * Avesbury, p. 9.

     ** Brady’s App. No. 83. Anon. Hist. p. 397, 398. Knyghton,
     p. 2556.

     *** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 85, 86.
     * Avesbury, p. 9.

     ** Brady’s App. No. 83. Anon. Hist. p. 397, 398. Knyghton,
     p. 2556.

     *** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 85, 86.

1331.

1331.

Justice was also executed by a sentence of the house of peers on some of the inferior criminals, particularly on Simon de Bereford: but the barons, in that act of jurisdiction, entered a protest, that though they had tried Bereford, who was none of their peers, they should not for the future be obliged to receive any such indictment. The queen was confined to her own house at Risings, near London: her revenue was reduced to four thousand pounds a year:[*] and though the king, during the remainder of her life, paid her a decent visit once or twice a year, she never was able to reinstate herself in any credit or authority.

Justice was also carried out by a sentence from the House of Peers on some of the lesser criminals, especially Simon de Bereford. However, the barons, in that act of jurisdiction, protested that although they had tried Bereford, who was not one of their peers, they should not be required to accept any such indictment in the future. The queen was confined to her home at Risings, near London; her income was cut down to four thousand pounds a year, and although the king visited her decently once or twice a year for the rest of her life, she never managed to regain any credibility or authority.

Edward, having now taken the reins of government into his own hands, applied himself, with industry and judgment, to redress all those grievances which had proceeded either from want of authority in the crown, or from the late abuses of it. He issued writs to the judges, enjoining them to administer justice, without paying any regard to arbitrary orders from the ministers: and as the robbers, thieves, murderers, and criminals of all kinds, had, during the course of public convulsions, multiplied to an enormous degree, and were openly protected by the great barons, who made use of them against their enemies, the king, after exacting from the peers a solemn promise in parliament, that they would break off all connections with such malefactors,[**] set himself in earnest to remedy the evil. Many of these gangs had become so numerous as to require his own presence to disperse them; and he exerted both courage and industry in executing this salutary office. The ministers of justice, from his example, employed the utmost diligence in discovering, pursuing, and punishing the criminals; and this disorder was by degrees corrected, at least palliated; the utmost that could be expected with regard to a disease hitherto inherent in the constitution.

Edward, now in control of the government, worked diligently and wisely to fix all the problems that arose from either a lack of authority in the crown or recent abuses of power. He sent orders to the judges, instructing them to deliver justice without being swayed by arbitrary demands from the ministers. During the chaotic times, the number of robbers, thieves, murderers, and all sorts of criminals had surged significantly, often being openly protected by powerful barons who used them against their enemies. After securing a formal promise from the peers in parliament to sever ties with these criminals, the king made it his mission to address the issue seriously. Many of these gangs had grown so large that he had to be personally present to break them up, and he showed both bravery and effort in carrying out this important task. Inspired by his example, the ministers of justice worked tirelessly to identify, pursue, and punish the criminals; over time, this chaos was gradually reduced, at least somewhat managed, which was the best that could be hoped for regarding a problem that had long been part of the system.

     * Cotton’s Abridg. p. 10

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 10.
     * Cotton’s Abridg. p. 10

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 10.

In proportion as the government acquired authority at home, it became formidable to the neighboring nations; and the ambitious spirit of Edward sought, and soon found, an opportunity of exerting itself. The wise and valiant Robert Bruce, who had recovered by arms the independence of his country, and had fixed it by the last treaty of peace with England, soon after died, and left David his son, a minor, under the guardianship of Randolph, earl of Murray, the companion of all his victories. It had been stipulated in this treaty, that both the Scottish nobility who, before the commencement of the wars enjoyed lands in England, and the English who inherited estates in Scotland, should be restored to their respective possessions:[*] but though this article had been executed pretty regularly on the part of Edward, Robert, who observed that the estates claimed by Englishmen were much more numerous and valuable than the others, either thought it dangerous to admit so many secret enemies into the kingdom, or found it difficult to wrest from his own followers the possessions bestowed on them as the reward of former services; and he had protracted the performance of his part of the stipulation. The English nobles, disappointed in their expectations, began to think of a remedy; and as their influence was great in the north, their enmity alone, even though unsupported by the King of England, became dangerous to the minor prince who succeeded to the Scottish throne.

As the government gained power at home, it became a threat to neighboring nations; Edward's ambitious nature soon found a chance to act. The wise and brave Robert Bruce, who had fought for and secured his country's independence and solidified it through the last peace treaty with England, soon died, leaving his son David a minor under the guardianship of Randolph, Earl of Murray, his trusted companion in all his victories. The treaty had included a provision that both Scottish nobles who had owned land in England before the wars and English nobles who had inherited land in Scotland would be restored to their respective properties:[*] however, while Edward had mostly carried out this agreement, Robert noticed that the estates claimed by Englishmen were far more numerous and valuable than those of the Scots. He either felt it was risky to allow so many hidden enemies into the kingdom or struggled to take back the lands given to his own supporters as rewards for their earlier service; consequently, he delayed fulfilling his part of the agreement. The English nobles, frustrated by their unmet expectations, began considering a solution, and since they wielded significant influence in the north, their resentment alone, even without the support of the King of England, posed a threat to the young prince who had taken over the Scottish throne.

1332.

1332.

Edward Baliol, the son of that John who was crowned king of Scotland, had been detained some time a prisoner in England after his father was released; but having also obtained his liberty, he went over to France, and resided in Normandy, on his patrimonial estate in that country, without any thoughts of reviving the claims of his family to the crown of Scotland. His pretensions, however plausible, had been so strenuously abjured by the Scots and rejected by the English, that he was universally regarded as a private person; and he had been thrown into prison on account of some private offence of which he was accused. Lord Beaumont, a great English baron, who, in the right of his wife, claimed the earldom of Buchan in Scotland,[**] found him in this situation; and deeming him a proper instrument for his purpose, made such interest with the king of France, who was not aware of the consequences, that he recovered him his liberty, and brought him over with him to England.

Edward Baliol, the son of John who was crowned king of Scotland, had been held as a prisoner in England for some time after his father was released. But after gaining his freedom, he went to France and lived in Normandy on his family estate there, without any intention of pursuing his family's claim to the Scottish crown. His claims, no matter how reasonable, had been firmly rejected by the Scots and dismissed by the English, leading everyone to view him as just a private individual. He had been imprisoned due to some private offense he was accused of. Lord Beaumont, a powerful English baron who claimed the earldom of Buchan in Scotland through his wife, found him in this state and saw him as a useful ally for his plans. He took an interest with the king of France, who was unaware of the implications, and secured Edward’s release, bringing him back to England with him.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 384.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 251.
     * Rymer, vol. 4, p. 384.

     ** Rymer, vol. 4, p. 251.

The injured nobles, possessed of such a head, began to think of vindicating their rights by force of arms; and they applied to Edward for his concurrence and assistance. But there were several reasons which deterred the king from openly avowing their enterprise. In his treaty with Scotland he had entered into a bond of twenty thousand pounds, payable to the pope, if within four years he violated the peace; and as the term was not yet elapsed, he dreaded the exacting of that penalty by the sovereign pontiff, who possessed so many means of forcing princes to make payment. He was also afraid that violence and injustice would every where be imputed to him, if he attacked with superior force a minor king, and a brother-in-law, whose independent title had so lately been acknowledged by a solemn treaty. And as the regent of Scotland, on every demand which had been made of restitution to the English barons, had always confessed the justice of their claim, and had only given an evasive answer, grounded on plausible pretences, Edward resolved not to proceed by open violence, but to employ like artifices against him. He secretly encouraged Baliol in his enterprise; connived at his assembling forces in the north; and gave countenance to the nobles who were disposed to join in the attempt. A force of near two thousand five hundred men was enlisted under Baliol, by Umfreville, earl of Angus, the lords Beaumont, Ferrars, Fitz-warin, Wake, Stafford, Talbot, and Moubray. As these adventurers apprehended that the frontiers would be strongly armed and guarded, they resolved to make their attack by sea; and having embarked at Ravenspur, they reached in a few days the coast of Fife.

The injured nobles, with strong minds, started to consider reclaiming their rights through military force, and they approached Edward for his support and help. However, there were several reasons that stopped the king from openly endorsing their venture. In his treaty with Scotland, he had committed to a bond of twenty thousand pounds, payable to the pope, if he broke the peace within four years; since that period hadn’t yet passed, he feared the pope might enforce that penalty, as the pope had many ways to make princes pay up. He was also worried that if he used military force against a minor king and brother-in-law, whose independent title had recently been recognized in a formal treaty, he would be blamed for violence and injustice. Moreover, the regent of Scotland had always acknowledged the justice of the English barons' claims when restitution was requested, merely providing evasive replies based on plausible excuses. So, Edward decided not to use open violence, but to adopt similar tactics against him. He secretly supported Baliol in his endeavors; turned a blind eye to him gathering forces in the north; and backed the nobles willing to participate in the effort. Nearly two thousand five hundred men were recruited under Baliol, led by Umfreville, earl of Angus, and the lords Beaumont, Ferrars, Fitz-warin, Wake, Stafford, Talbot, and Moubray. Fearing that the frontiers would be heavily guarded and armed, these adventurers chose to launch their attack by sea; after departing from Ravenspur, they reached the coast of Fife within a few days.

Scotland was at that time in a very different situation from that in which it had appeared under the victorious Robert. Besides the loss of that great monarch, whose genius and authority preserved entire the whole political fabric, and maintained a union among the unruly barons, Lord Douglas, impatient of rest, had gone over to Spain in a crusade against the Moors, and had there perished in battle:[*] the earl of Murray, who had long been declining through age and infirmities, had lately died, and had been succeeded in the regency by Donald, earl of Marre, a man of much inferior talents: the military spirit of the Scots, though still unbroken, was left without a proper guidance and direction: and a minor king seemed ill qualified to defend an inheritance, which it had required all the consummate valor and abilities of his father to acquire and maintain.

Scotland was at that time in a very different situation compared to when it had thrived under the victorious Robert. Besides the loss of that great king, whose skill and authority held the entire political structure together and kept the unruly barons united, Lord Douglas, restless and eager for action, had gone to Spain on a crusade against the Moors, where he perished in battle: the Earl of Murray, who had been declining due to age and illness, had recently died and was succeeded in the regency by Donald, Earl of Marre, a man with much lesser abilities: the military spirit of the Scots, though still intact, lacked proper guidance and direction: and a young king seemed poorly equipped to defend an inheritance that had taken all the remarkable courage and skill of his father to acquire and maintain.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 21.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 21.

But as the Scots were apprised of the intended invasion, great numbers, on the appearance of the English fleet, immediately ran to the shore, in order to prevent the landing of the enemy. Baliol had valor and activity, and he drove back the Scots with considerable loss.[*] He marched westward into the heart of the country; flattering himself that the ancient partisans of his family would declare for him. But the fierce animosities which had been kindled between the two nations, inspiring the Scots with a strong prejudice against a prince supported by the English, he was regarded as a common enemy; and the regent found no difficulty in assembling a great army to oppose him. It is pretended that Marre had no less than forty thousand men under his banners; but the same hurry and impatience that made him collect a force, which, from its greatness, was so disproportioned to the occasion, rendered all his motions unskilful and imprudent. The River Erne ran between the two armies; and the Scots, confiding in that security, as well as in their great superiority of numbers, kept no order in their encampment. Baliol passed the river in the night-time; attacked the unguarded and undisciplined Scots; threw them into confusion, which was increased by the darkness, and by their very numbers, to which they trusted; and he beat them off the field with great slaughter.[**] But in the morning, when the Scots were at some distance, they were ashamed of having yielded the victory to so weak a foe, and they hurried back to recover the honor of the day. Their eager passions urged them precipitately to battle, without regard to some broken ground which lay between them and the enemy, and which disordered and confounded their ranks. Baliol seized the favorable opportunity, advanced his troops upon them, prevented them from rallying, and anew chased them off the field with redoubled slaughter. There fell above twelve thousand Scots in this action; and among these the flower of their nobility; the regent himself, the earl of Carrick, a natural son of their late king, the earls of Athole and Monteith, lord Hay of Errol, constable, and the lords Keith and Lindsey. The loss of the English scarcely exceeded thirty men; a strong proof, among many others, of the miserable state of military discipline in those ages.[***]

But when the Scots learned about the planned invasion, many rushed to the shore as soon as they saw the English fleet, hoping to stop the enemy from landing. Baliol was brave and quick, pushing back the Scots with significant losses. He moved west into the heart of the country, thinking that the loyal supporters of his family would rally to him. However, the deep animosities that had developed between the two nations made the Scots view him as a common enemy supported by the English. As a result, the regent had no trouble gathering a large army to oppose him. It's said that Marre had around forty thousand men under his banner; however, his hurried efforts to assemble such a sizable force made his actions clumsy and reckless. The River Erne separated the two armies, and the Scots, feeling secure because of their numbers, didn’t maintain order in their camp. Baliol crossed the river at night, attacked the unguarded and disorganized Scots, and threw them into confusion, worsened by the darkness and their own overwhelming numbers. He drove them off the field with heavy losses. The next morning, when the Scots were far off, they felt ashamed for losing to such a weak opponent, so they rushed back to reclaim their honor. Their heated emotions pushed them into battle without considering the rough terrain between them and the enemy, which disrupted their ranks. Baliol took advantage of the situation, moved his troops against them, prevented them from regrouping, and pushed them off the field again with even greater losses. Over twelve thousand Scots died in this battle, including many of their nobility: the regent himself, the earl of Carrick (a natural son of their late king), the earls of Athole and Monteith, lord Hay of Errol (the constable), and lords Keith and Lindsey. The English losses barely exceeded thirty men, highlighting the poor state of military discipline during that era.

     * Heming. p. 272. Walsing. p. 131. Knyghton, p. 2560.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2561.

     *** Heming. p. 273. Walsing. p. 131. Knyghton, p. 2561.
     * Heming. p. 272. Walsing. p. 131. Knyghton, p. 2560.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2561.

     *** Heming. p. 273. Walsing. p. 131. Knyghton, p. 2561.

Baliol soon after made himself master of Perth; but still was not able to bring over any of the Scots to his party. Patric Dunbar, earl of Marche, and Sir Archibald Douglas, brother to the lord of that name, appeared at the head of the Scottish armies, which amounted still to near forty thousand men; and they purposed to reduce Baliol and the English by famine. They blockaded Perth by land; they collected some vessels with which they invested it by water; but Baliol’s ships, attacking the Scottish fleet, gained a complete victory, and opened the communication between Perth and the sea.[*] The Scotch armies were then obliged to disband for want of pay and subsistence: the nation was in effect subdued by a handful of men: each nobleman who found himself most exposed to danger, successively submitted to Baliol: that prince was crowned at Scone: David, his competitor, was sent over to France with his betrothed wife Jane, sister to Edward: and the heads of his party sued to Baliol for a truce, which he granted them, in order to assemble a parliament in tranquillity, and have his title recognized by the whole Scottish nation.

Baliol soon took control of Perth; however, he still couldn't win over any of the Scots to his side. Patric Dunbar, the earl of Marche, and Sir Archibald Douglas, brother to the lord of that name, led the Scottish armies, which still numbered nearly forty thousand men. They planned to starve Baliol and the English into submission. They surrounded Perth from land and gathered a few ships to blockade it by water; but Baliol’s ships attacked the Scottish fleet, achieving a complete victory and reopening the connection between Perth and the sea. The Scottish armies then had to disband due to lack of pay and supplies: the nation was effectively subdued by a small number of men. Each nobleman who felt most threatened gradually submitted to Baliol. That prince was crowned at Scone; David, his rival, was sent to France with his fiancée Jane, sister to Edward; and the leaders of his faction appealed to Baliol for a truce, which he granted them to hold a peaceful parliament and have his claim acknowledged by the entire Scottish nation.

     * Heming p. 273. Knyghton, p. 2561.
     * Heming p. 273. Knyghton, p. 2561.

1333.

1333.

But Baliol’s imprudence, or his necessities, making him dismiss the greater part of his English followers, he was, notwithstanding the truce, attacked of a sudden near Annan, by Sir Archibald Douglas and other chieftains of that party; he was routed; his brother, John Baliol, was slain; he himself was chased into England in a miserable condition; and thus lost his kingdom by a revolution as sudden as that by which he had acquired it.

But Baliol’s rashness, or his circumstances, led him to send away most of his English supporters. As a result, despite the truce, he was unexpectedly attacked near Annan by Sir Archibald Douglas and other leaders from that faction. He was defeated; his brother, John Baliol, was killed; and he himself was driven into England in a terrible state. Thus, he lost his kingdom in a change as sudden as the one that had allowed him to gain it.

While Baliol enjoyed his short-lived and precarious royalty, he had been sensible that, without the protection of England, it would be impossible for him to maintain possession of the throne; and he had secretly sent a message to Edward, offering to acknowledge his superiority, to renew the homage for his crown, and to espouse the princess Jane, if the pope’s consent could be obtained for dissolving her former marriage, which was not yet consummated. Edward, ambitious of recovering that important concession, made by Mortimer during his minority, threw off all scruples, and willingly accepted the offer; but as the dethroning of Baliol had rendered this stipulation of no effect, the king prepared to reinstate him in possession of the crown; an enterprise which appeared from late experience so easy and so little hazardous. As he possessed many popular arts, he consulted his parliament on the occasion; but that assembly, finding the resolution already taken, declined giving any opinion, and only granted him, in order to support the enterprise, an aid of a fifteenth from the personal estates of the nobility and gentry, and a tenth of the movables of boroughs. And they added a petition, that the king would thenceforth live on his own revenue, without grieving his subjects by illegal taxes, or by the outrageous seizure of their goods in the shape of purveyance.[*]

While Baliol enjoyed his brief and unstable reign, he realized that without England's protection, it would be impossible for him to keep the throne. He secretly sent a message to Edward, offering to acknowledge his authority, renew his loyalty for the crown, and marry Princess Jane if the pope would agree to annul her previous marriage, which hadn’t been consummated yet. Edward, eager to reclaim that significant concession made by Mortimer during his minority, set aside any doubts and eagerly accepted the offer. However, since Baliol’s dethronement had made this agreement irrelevant, the king planned to restore him to the throne—an endeavor that seemed from recent experience quite easy and low-risk. He was skilled in many popular strategies and consulted his parliament for this occasion; but that assembly, realizing the decision had already been made, chose not to offer any opinions and merely granted him, to support the endeavor, a tax of a fifteenth from the personal estates of the nobility and gentry, and a tenth from the movable assets of boroughs. They also added a request that the king would henceforth manage on his own revenue, without burdening his subjects with illegal taxes or the excessive seizure of their goods in the form of purveyance.[*]

As the Scots expected that the chief brunt of the war would fall upon Berwick, Douglas, the regent, threw a strong garrison into that place, under the command of Sir William Keith, and he himself assembled a great army on the frontiers, ready to penetrate into England as soon as Edward should have invested that place. The English army was less numerous, but better supplied with arms and provisions, and retained in stricter discipline; and the king, notwithstanding the valiant defence made by Keith, had in two months reduced the garrison to extremities, and had obliged them to capitulate: they engaged to surrender, if they were not relieved within a few days by their countrymen.[**] This intelligence being conveyed to the Scottish army, which was preparing to invade Northumberland, changed their plan of operations, and engaged them to advance towards Berwick, and attempt the relief of that important fortress. Douglas, who had ever purposed to decline a pitched battle, in which he was sensible of the enemy’s superiority, and who intended to have drawn out the war by small skirmishes, and by mutually ravaging each other’s country, was forced, by the impatience of his troops, to put the fate of the kingdom upon the event of one day. He attacked the English at Halidown Hill, a little north of Berwick; and though his heavy-armed cavalry dismounted, in order to render the action more steady and desperate, they were received with such valor by Edward, and were so galled by the English archers, that they were soon thrown into disorder and on the fall of Douglas, their general, were totally routed. The whole army fled in confusion, and the English, but much more the Irish, gave little quarter in the pursuit: all the nobles of chief distinction were either slain or taken prisoners: near thirty thousand of the Scots fell in the action; while the loss of the English amounted only to one knight, one esquire, and thirteen private soldiers; an inequality almost incredible.[***]

As the Scots expected that the main impact of the war would hit Berwick, Douglas, the regent, stationed a strong garrison there under Sir William Keith's command. He also gathered a large army on the borders, ready to march into England as soon as Edward laid siege to the town. The English army was smaller but better equipped with weapons and supplies, and they maintained strict discipline. Despite the brave defense put up by Keith, within two months, the king had pushed the garrison to the brink and forced them to surrender, promising to give up if they weren’t rescued by their fellow countrymen within a few days. This news reached the Scottish army, which was preparing to invade Northumberland, and changed their plan, prompting them to move toward Berwick to try to save that crucial fortress. Douglas, who had always intended to avoid a direct battle where he knew the enemy had the upper hand, and who had meant to prolong the war through smaller skirmishes and mutual raiding, was compelled by his troops' impatience to stake the kingdom's fate on a single day. He attacked the English at Halidown Hill, just north of Berwick. Although his heavily armored cavalry dismounted to make the fight more stable and intense, they were met with such bravery by Edward's forces and were severely impacted by the English archers that they quickly fell into disarray. After Douglas, their general, was killed, they were completely defeated. The entire army fled in chaos, and both the English and especially the Irish showed little mercy during the pursuit. All the prominent nobles were either killed or captured, and nearly thirty thousand Scots were lost in the battle, while the English casualties totaled just one knight, one squire, and thirteen soldiers—an almost unbelievable disparity.

     * Cotton’s Abridg.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 564, 565, 566

     *** Heming. p. 275, 276, 277. Knyghton, p. 2559. Otterborne,
     p 115.
     * Cotton's Abridgment.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 564, 565, 566

     *** Heming, p. 275, 276, 277. Knyghton, p. 2559. Otterborne,
     p. 115.

After this fatal blow, the Scottish nobles had no other resource than instant submission; and Edward, leaving a considerable body with Baliol to complete the conquest of the kingdom, returned with the remainder of his army to England. Baliol was acknowledged king by a parliament assembled at Edinburgh;[*] the superiority of England was again recognized; many of the Scottish nobility swore fealty to Edward; and to complete the misfortunes of that nation, Baliol ceded Berwick, Dunbar, Roxburgh, Edinburgh, and all the south-east counties of Scotland, which were declared to be forever annexed to the English monarchy.[**]

After this devastating defeat, the Scottish nobles had no choice but to surrender immediately; Edward, leaving a sizable group with Baliol to finalize the takeover of the kingdom, returned with the rest of his army to England. Baliol was recognized as king by a parliament convened in Edinburgh;[*] the supremacy of England was once again acknowledged; many of the Scottish nobility pledged loyalty to Edward; and to add to the misfortunes of that nation, Baliol surrendered Berwick, Dunbar, Roxburgh, Edinburgh, and all the southeastern counties of Scotland, which were declared to be permanently attached to the English crown.[**]

     * Rymer vol. v. p. 590.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 614.
     * Rymer vol. v. p. 590.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 614.

1334.

1334.

If Baliol on his first appearance was dreaded by the Scots, as an instrument employed by England for the subjection of the kingdom, this deed confirmed all their suspicions, and rendered him the object of universal hatred. Whatever submissions they might be obliged to make, they considered him not as their prince, but as the delegate and confederate of their determined enemy: and neither the manners of the age, nor the state of Edward’s revenue, permitting him to maintain a standing army in Scotland, the English forces were no sooner withdrawn, than the Scots revolted from Baliol, and returned to their former allegiance under Bruce. Sir Andrew Murray, appointed regent by the party of this latter prince, employed with success his valor and activity in many small but decisive actions against Baliol; and in a short time had almost wholly expelled him the kingdom.

If Baliol was feared by the Scots when he first appeared, as an agent used by England to control the kingdom, this act confirmed all their suspicions and made him the target of widespread hatred. No matter what compromises they had to make, they viewed him not as their king, but as a representative and ally of their sworn enemy. Since neither the customs of the time nor Edward's finances allowed him to keep a permanent army in Scotland, as soon as the English troops left, the Scots turned against Baliol and returned to their previous loyalty to Bruce. Sir Andrew Murray, appointed regent by Bruce's supporters, effectively used his courage and energy in several small but crucial battles against Baliol and quickly managed to drive him almost completely out of the kingdom.

1335.

1335.

Edward was obliged again to assemble an army, and to march into Scotland: the Scots, taught by experience, withdrew into their hills and fastnesses: he destroyed the houses and ravaged the estates of those whom he called rebels: but this confirmed them still further in their obstinate antipathy to England and to Baliol; and being now rendered desperate, they were ready to take advantage, on the first opportunity, of the retreat of their enemy, and they soon reconquered their country from the English.

Edward was forced once again to gather an army and march into Scotland. The Scots, learning from their past, retreated into their hills and strongholds. He destroyed the homes and devastated the lands of those he labeled as rebels, but this only strengthened their stubborn hatred towards England and Baliol. Now desperate, they were ready to seize the first chance to push back against their enemy, and they quickly reclaimed their country from the English.

1336.

1336.

Edward made anew his appearance in Scotland with like success: he found every thing hostile in the kingdom, except the spot on which he was encamped: and though he marched uncontrolled over the low countries, the nation itself was farther than ever from being broken and subdued. Besides being supported by their pride and anger, passions difficult to tame, they were encouraged, amidst all their calamities, by daily promises of relief from France; and as war was now likely to break out between that kingdom and England, they had reason to expect, from this incident, a great diversion of that force which had so long oppressed and overwhelmed them.

Edward returned to Scotland with similar results: he found everything in the kingdom against him, except for the area where he had set up camp. Even though he moved freely through the lowlands, the people were further than ever from being defeated and controlled. Supported by their pride and anger—emotions that are hard to manage—they were also given hope, despite their struggles, by daily promises of support from France. With the possibility of war breaking out between France and England, they had good reason to expect that this situation would divert a significant amount of the forces that had long oppressed and overwhelmed them.

1337.

leet

We now come to a transaction on which depended the most memorable events, not only of this long and active reign, but of the whole English and French history during more than a century; and it will therefore be necessary to give a particular account of the springs and causes of it.

We now arrive at a transaction that influenced the most significant events, not just of this long and active reign, but of over a century of English and French history. Therefore, it's important to provide a detailed account of the reasons and factors behind it.

It had long been a prevailing opinion, that the crown of France could never descend to a female; and in order to give more authority to this maxim, and assign it a determinate origin, it had been usual to derive it from a clause in the Salian code, the law of an ancient tribe among the Franks; though that clause, when strictly examined, carries only the appearance of favoring this principle, and does not really, by the confession of the best antiquaries, bear the sense commonly imposed upon it. But though positive law seems wanting among the French for the exclusion of females, the practice had taken place; and the rule was established beyond controversy on some ancient as well as some modern precedents. During the first race of the monarchy, the Franks were so rude and barbarous a people, that they were incapable of submitting to a female reign; and in that period of their history there were frequent instances of kings advanced to royalty, in prejudice of females who were related to the crown by nearer degrees of consanguinity. These precedents, joined to like causes, had also established the male succession in the second race; and though the instances were neither so frequent nor so certain during that period, the principle of excluding the female line seems still to have prevailed, and to have directed the conduct of the nation. During the third race, the crown had descended from father to son for eleven generations, from Hugh Capet to Lewis Hutin; and thus, in fact, during the course of nine hundred years, the French monarchy had always been governed by males, and no female, and none who founded his title on a female, had ever mounted the throne. Philip the Fair, father of Lewis Hutin, left three sons, this Lewis, Philip the Long, and Charles the Fair, and one daughter, Isabella, queen of England. Lewis Hutin, the eldest, left at his death one daughter, by Margaret, sister to Eudes, duke of Burgundy; and as his queen was then pregnant, Philip, his younger brother, was appointed regent, till it should appear whether the child proved a son or a daughter. The queen bore a male, who lived only a few days: Philip was proclaimed king: and as the duke of Burgundy made some opposition, and asserted the rights of his niece, the states of the kingdom, by a solemn and deliberate decree, gave her an exclusion, and declared all females forever incapable of succeeding to the crown of France. Philip died after a short reign, leaving three daughters; and his brother Charles, without dispute or controversy, then succeeded to the crown. The reign of Charles was also short; he left one daughter; but as his queen was pregnant, the next male heir was appointed regent, with a declared right of succession if the issue should prove female. This prince was Philip de Valois, cousin-german to the deceased king; being the son of Charles de Valois, brother of Philip the Fair. The queen of France was delivered of a daughter: the regency ended; and Philip de Valois was unanimously placed on the throne of France.

It had long been a common belief that the crown of France could never pass to a woman. To lend more weight to this idea and give it a clear origin, it was often said to come from a clause in the Salian code, the law of an ancient tribe among the Franks. However, when closely examined, that clause only seems to support this principle and does not truly, according to the best historians, mean what people commonly think it does. Although there appears to be no formal law in France excluding women, the practice had occurred, and the rule was established beyond debate based on some ancient as well as modern examples. During the first period of the monarchy, the Franks were such a rough and uncivilized people that they couldn’t accept a female ruler; throughout that time, there were many instances of kings who were elevated to royalty despite being related to the crown by closer blood ties to females. These examples, along with similar factors, also set the precedent for male succession in the second period; and though such instances were neither as frequent nor as clear during that time, the principle of excluding female heirs still seemed to hold sway and influenced the nation’s actions. During the third period, the crown had passed from father to son for eleven generations, from Hugh Capet to Louis Hutin; thus, over the course of nine hundred years, the French monarchy was always ruled by males, and no woman, or any man claiming his title through a woman, had ever ascended the throne. Philip the Fair, the father of Louis Hutin, had three sons: Louis, Philip the Long, and Charles the Fair, along with one daughter, Isabella, queen of England. Louis Hutin, the eldest, left behind one daughter at his death, fathered by Margaret, sister to Eudes, duke of Burgundy; and since his queen was then pregnant, Philip, his younger brother, was appointed regent until it was known whether the child would be a son or a daughter. The queen gave birth to a boy who lived only a few days: Philip was proclaimed king. When the duke of Burgundy opposed this and claimed rights for his niece, the states of the kingdom, through a formal and considered decree, excluded her and declared all females forever incapable of succeeding to the crown of France. Philip died after a brief reign, leaving three daughters, and his brother Charles succeeded to the crown without dispute or controversy. Charles’s reign was also brief; he left one daughter, but as his queen was pregnant, the next male heir was appointed regent, with a clear right to the throne if the child turned out to be female. This prince was Philip de Valois, a cousin of the deceased king, being the son of Charles de Valois, brother of Philip the Fair. The queen of France gave birth to a daughter: the regency ended, and Philip de Valois was unanimously placed on the throne of France.

The king of England, who was at that time a youth of fifteen years of age, embraced a notion that he was entitled, in right of his mother, to the succession of the kingdom, and that the claim of the nephew was preferable to that of the cousin-german. There could not well be imagined a notion weaker or worse grounded. The principle of excluding females was of old an established opinion in France, and had acquired equal authority with the most express and positive law: it was supported by ancient precedents: it was confirmed by recent instances, solemnly and deliberately decided: and what placed it still farther beyond controversy, if Edward was disposed to question its validity, he thereby cut off his own pretensions; since the three last kings had all left daughters, who were still alive, and who stood before him in the order of succession. He was therefore reduced to assert that, though his mother Isabella was, on account of her sex, incapable of succeeding, he himself, who inherited through her, was liable to no such objection, and might claim by the right of propinquity. But, besides that this pretension was more favorable to Charles, king of Navarre, descended from the daughter of Lewis Hutin, it was so contrary to the established principles of succession in every country of Europe,[*] was so repugnant to the practice both in private and public inheritances, that nobody in France thought of Edward’s claim.

The king of England, who was only fifteen at the time, believed he had the right to the throne because of his mother and thought his claim was stronger than that of his cousin. It was hard to imagine a notion more unfounded and weak. The idea of excluding females from succession had long been an accepted view in France and had gained the same authority as clear and specific laws: it was backed by long-standing precedents and confirmed by recent, carefully considered decisions. What made it even less debatable was that if Edward questioned its validity, he would undermine his own claims. The last three kings had all left behind daughters who were still alive and had priority in the line of succession. Thus, he was left to argue that although his mother Isabella couldn't succeed due to her gender, he, as her son, shouldn't face the same issue and could claim his right through proximity. However, besides the fact that this claim favored Charles, king of Navarre, who was a descendant of the daughter of Lewis Hutin, it contradicted the established principles of succession throughout Europe and was completely at odds with both private and public inheritance practices. Consequently, no one in France took Edward’s claim seriously.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 4.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 4.

Philip’s title was universally recognized;[*] and he never imagined that he had a competitor, much less so formidable a one as the king of England.

Philip’s title was recognized everywhere;[*] and he never thought he had a rival, let alone one as powerful as the king of England.

But though the youthful and ambitious mind of Edward had rashly entertained this notion, he did not think proper to insist on his pretensions, which must have immediately involved him, on very unequal terms, in a dangerous and implacable war with so powerful a monarch. Philip was a prince of mature years, of great experience, and at that time of an established character both for prudence and valor; and by these circumstances, as well as by the internal union of his people, and their acquiescence in his undoubted right, he possessed every advantage above a raw youth, newly raised, by injustice and violence, to the government of the most intractable and most turbulent subjects in Europe. But there immediately occurred an incident which required that Edward should either openly declare his pretensions, or forever renounce and abjure them. He was summoned to do homage for Guienne: Philip was preparing to compel him by force of arms: that country was in a very bad state of defence: and the forfeiture of so rich an inheritance was, by the feudal law, the immediate consequence of his refusing or declining to perform the duty of a vassal. Edward therefore thought it prudent to submit to present necessity: he went over to Amiens, did homage to Philip, and as there had arisen some controversy concerning the terms of this submission, he afterwards sent over a formal deed, in which he acknowledged that he owed liege homage to France;[**] which was in effect ratifying, and that in the strongest terms, Philip’s title to the crown of that kingdom. His own claim indeed was so unreasonable, and so thoroughly disavowed by the whole French nation, that to insist on it was no better than pretending to the violent conquest of the kingdom; and it is probable that he would never have further thought of it, had it not been for some incidents which excited an animosity between the monarchs.

But although the young and ambitious Edward had recklessly entertained this idea, he didn't feel it was right to insist on his claims, which would have led him into a dangerously uneven war with such a powerful king. Philip was an older prince with a lot of experience, and at that time, he had a strong reputation for being wise and brave. Because of this, along with the united support of his people and their acceptance of his undeniable rights, he had every advantage over a young man who had recently taken control of the most unruly subjects in Europe through injustice and violence. However, an incident arose that forced Edward to either publicly state his claims or abandon them forever. He was summoned to pay homage for Guienne: Philip was getting ready to use military force against him. That region was poorly defended, and under feudal law, losing such a valuable inheritance was the immediate consequence of refusing to fulfill his duty as a vassal. Therefore, Edward decided it was wise to comply with the current necessity. He went to Amiens, paid homage to Philip, and since there was some dispute regarding the terms of this submission, he later sent over a formal document acknowledging that he owed fealty to France; which effectively confirmed, in the strongest terms, Philip's claim to the crown of that kingdom. His own claim was so unreasonable and completely rejected by the entire French nation that insisting on it would have been like attempting to violently seize the kingdom. It's likely he wouldn't have thought of it again if not for some incidents that sparked hostility between the two kings.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 22.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 477, 481. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 25.
     Anon, Hist. p. 394. Walsing. p. 130. Murimuth, p. 73. 195
     * Froissard, book 1, chapter 22.

     ** Rymer, volume 4, pages 477, 481. Froissard, book 1, chapter 25. Anon, History, page 394. Walsingham, page 130. Murimuth, page 73. 195

Robert of Artois was descended from the blood royal of France, was a man of great character and authority, had espoused Philip’s sister, and by his birth, talents, and credit was entitled to make the highest figure, and fill the most important offices in the monarchy. This prince had lost the county of Artois, which he claimed as his birthright, by a sentence, commonly deemed iniquitous, of Philip the Fair; and he was seduced to attempt recovering possession by an action so unworthy of his rank and character as a forgery.[*] The detection of this crime covered him with shame and confusion: his brother-in-law not only abandoned him, but prosecuted him with violence: Robert, incapable of bearing disgrace, left the kingdom, and hid himself in the Low Countries: chased from that retreat by the authority of Philip, he came over to England; in spite of the French king’s menaces and remonstrances, he was favorably received by Edward; [**] and was soon admitted into the councils and shared the confidence of that monarch. Abandoning himself to all the movements of rage and despair, he endeavored to revive the prepossession entertained by Edward in favor of his title to the crown of France, and even flattered him that it was not impossible for a prince of his valor and abilities to render his claim effectual.

Robert of Artois came from the royal bloodline of France. He was a man of strong character and influence, married to Philip's sister, and by his lineage, talents, and reputation, he was positioned to take on the highest roles and hold significant offices in the monarchy. This prince had lost the county of Artois, which he believed to be his birthright, due to a judgment often seen as unfair by Philip the Fair. In a move unworthy of his status and character, he was tempted to try to regain his lost territory through forgery.[*] When his crime was uncovered, he was filled with shame and embarrassment. His brother-in-law not only turned his back on him but also pursued him aggressively. Unable to cope with the disgrace, Robert left the kingdom and sought refuge in the Low Countries. After being driven out of there by Philip's authority, he made his way to England; despite the French king's threats and protests, he was welcomed warmly by Edward; [**] and soon found himself included in the king's council, gaining the monarch's trust. Consumed by anger and despair, he tried to rekindle Edward's interest in his claim to the French crown, even assuring him that it wasn't impossible for a prince of his bravery and skills to make his assertion a reality.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 29.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 747. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 27.
     * Froissart, book I, chapter 29.

     ** Rymer, volume IV, page 747. Froissart, book I, chapter 27.

The king was the more disposed to hearken to suggestions of this nature, because he had, in several particulars, found reason to complain of Philip’s conduct with regard to Guienne, and because that prince had both given protection to the exiled David Bruce, and supported, at least encouraged, the Scots in their struggles for independence. Thus resentment gradually filled the breasts of both monarchs, and made them incapable of hearkening to any terms of accommodation proposed by the pope, who never ceased interposing his good offices between them. Philip thought that he should be wanting to the first principles of policy if he abandoned Scotland: Edward affirmed that he must relinquish all pretensions to generosity if he withdrew his protection from Robert. The former, informed of some preparations for hostilities which had been made by his rival, issued a sentence of felony and attainder against Robert, and declared that every vassal of the crown, whether within or without the kingdom, who gave countenance to that traitor, would be involved in the same sentence; a menace easy to be understood: the latter, resolute not to yield, endeavored to form alliances in the Low Countries and on the frontiers of Germany, the only places from which he either could make an effectual attack upon France, or produce such a diversion as might save the province of Guienne, which lay so much exposed to the power of Philip.

The king was more inclined to listen to suggestions like this because he had several reasons to complain about Philip’s actions regarding Guienne, and because that prince had offered protection to the exiled David Bruce and had at least encouraged the Scots in their fight for independence. Resentment gradually built up in both monarchs, making them unable to consider any peace terms proposed by the pope, who continued to offer his help between them. Philip felt that he would be neglecting the fundamental principles of politics if he abandoned Scotland: Edward insisted that he would have to give up all claims to generosity if he withdrew his protection from Robert. The former, aware of some preparations for aggression made by his rival, issued a decree of felony and attainder against Robert, declaring that every vassal of the crown, whether in or out of the kingdom, who supported that traitor would face the same punishment; a threat that was easy to understand. The latter, determined not to back down, tried to form alliances in the Low Countries and on the borders of Germany, the only places from which he could launch an effective attack on France or create a diversion that might save the province of Guienne, which was so vulnerable to Philip’s power.

The king began with opening his intentions to the count of Hainault, his father-in-law; and having engaged him in his interests, he employed the good offices and councils of that prince in drawing into his alliance the other sovereigns of that neighborhood. The duke of Brabant was induced, by his mediation, and by large remittances of money from England, to promise his concurrence;[*] the archbishop of Cologne, the duke of Gueldres, the marquis of Juliers, the count of Namur, the lords of Fauquemont and Baquen, were engaged by like motives to embrace the English alliance.[**] These sovereign princes could supply, either from their own states or from the bordering countries, great numbers of warlike troops; and nought was wanting to make the force on that quarter very formidable but the accession of Flanders; which Edward procured by means somewhat extraordinary and unusual.

The king started by sharing his plans with the count of Hainault, his father-in-law. After getting him on board, he enlisted the support and advice of that prince to bring other nearby rulers into his alliance. The duke of Brabant was persuaded through his mediation and substantial money transfers from England to agree to join in;[*] similarly, the archbishop of Cologne, the duke of Gueldres, the marquis of Juliers, the count of Namur, and the lords of Fauquemont and Baquen were motivated by the same incentives to ally with England.[**] These ruling princes could provide a significant number of soldiers from their own territories or from neighboring areas, and the only thing missing to make that force powerful was the support from Flanders, which Edward secured through somewhat extraordinary and unusual means.

As the Flemings were the first people in the northern parts of Europe that cultivated arts and manufactures, the lower ranks of men among them had risen to a degree of opulence unknown elsewhere to those of their station in that barbarous age; had acquired privileges and independence, and began to emerge from that state of vassalage, or rather of slavery, into which the common people had been universally thrown by the feudal institutions. It was probably difficult for them to bring their sovereign and their nobility to conform themselves to the principles of law and civil government, so much neglected in every other country: it was impossible for them to confine themselves within the proper bounds in their opposition and resentment against any instance of tyranny: they had risen in tumults: had insulted the nobles: had chased their earl into France; and delivering themselves over to the guidance of a seditious leader, had been guilty of all that insolence and disorder to which the thoughtless and enraged populace are so much inclined, wherever they are unfortunate enough to be their own masters.[***]

As the Flemings were the first people in northern Europe to develop arts and manufacturing, the lower classes among them achieved a level of wealth that was unprecedented for their station in that rough era. They gained rights and independence and started to break free from the vassalage, or rather slavery, that the feudal system had imposed on common people. It was likely challenging for them to get their king and nobility to abide by principles of law and civil governance, which were largely ignored in other countries. They found it impossible to keep their opposition and anger within reasonable limits whenever they faced tyranny. They rose up in riots, insulted the nobles, chased their earl into France, and, in following a rebellious leader, displayed all the arrogance and chaos typical of an angry and reckless crowd, especially when they were unfortunate enough to take control of their own fate.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 777.

     ** Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 29, 33, 36.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 30. Meyerus.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 777.

     ** Froissard, book iv, chapters 29, 33, 36.

     *** Froissard, book i, chapter 30. Meyerus.

Their present leader was James d’Arteville, a brewer in Ghent, who governed them with a more absolute sway than had ever been assumed by any of their lawful sovereigns: he placed and displaced the magistrates at pleasure: he was accompanied by a guard, who, on the least signal from him, instantly assassinated any man that happened to fall under his displeasure: all the cities of Flanders were full of his spies: and it was immediate death to give him the smallest umbrage: the few nobles who remained in the country, lived in continual terror from his violence: he seized the estates of all those whom he had either banished or murdered; and bestowing part on their wives and children, converted the remainder to his own use.* Such were the first effects that Europe saw of popular violence, after having groaned, during so many ages, under monarchical and aristocratical tyranny.

Their current leader was James d’Arteville, a brewer in Ghent, who ruled them with more absolute power than any of their legitimate kings ever had: he could appoint and dismiss the magistrates whenever he wanted. He was always accompanied by a guard who would immediately kill anyone who fell out of his favor at the slightest signal from him. Every city in Flanders was filled with his spies, and even the smallest offense could lead to instant death. The few nobles left in the country lived in constant fear of his brutality. He took over the estates of everyone he had either banished or killed; he would give part of them to their wives and children and keep the rest for himself. This was the first glimpse of popular violence that Europe experienced after enduring so many ages of monarchical and aristocratic oppression.

James d’Arteville was the man to whom Edward addressed himself for bringing over the Flemings to his interests; and that prince, the most haughty and most aspiring of the age, never courted any ally with so much assiduity and so many submissions as he employed towards this seditious and criminal tradesman. D’Arteville, proud of these advances from the king of England, and sensible that the Flemings were naturally inclined to maintain connections with the English who furnished them the materials of their woollen manufactures, the chief source of their opulence, readily embraced the interests of Edward, and invited him over into the Low Countries. Edward, before he entered on this great enterprise, affected to consult his parliament, asked their advice, and obtained their consent.[*] And the more to strengthen his hands, he procured from them a grant of twenty thousand sacks of wool; which might amount to about a hundred thousand pounds: this commodity was a good instrument to employ with the Flemings; and the price of it with his German allies. He completed the other necessary sums by loans, by pawning the crown jewels, by confiscating or rather robbing at once all the Lombards, who now exercised the invidious trade formerly monopolized by the Jews, of lending on interest;[**] and being attended by a body of English forces, and by several of his nobility, he sailed over to Flanders.

James d’Arteville was the guy Edward turned to for bringing the Flemings to his side; and that prince, the most arrogant and ambitious of his time, never sought an ally with as much effort and flattery as he did with this rebellious and corrupt trader. D’Arteville, proud of the king of England’s attention and aware that the Flemings were naturally inclined to stay connected with the English who provided them the materials for their woolen goods, the main source of their wealth, eagerly took on Edward's interests and invited him to the Low Countries. Before diving into this major venture, Edward pretended to consult his parliament, asked for their advice, and secured their approval.[*] To further solidify his position, he got a grant from them of twenty thousand sacks of wool, which could be worth around a hundred thousand pounds. This commodity was a great bargaining chip to use with the Flemings and to negotiate with his German allies. He made up the rest of the necessary funds through loans, pawning the crown jewels, and taking everything from the Lombards, who had taken over the once Jewish monopoly on lending at interest;[**] and with a group of English forces and some of his nobles accompanying him, he sailed over to Flanders.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 30. * Cotton’s Abridg.

     ** Dugd. Baron, vol. ii. p. 146.
     * Froissart, book i, chapter 30. * Cotton’s Abridgment.

     ** Dugd. Baron, vol. ii, p. 146.

1338.

1338.

The German princes, in order to justify their unprovoked hostilities against France, had required the sanction of some legal authority; and Edward, that he might give them satisfaction on this head, had applied to Lewis of Bavaria, then emperor, and had been created by him “vicar of the empire;” an empty title, but which seemed to give him a right of commanding the service of the princes of Germany.[*] The Flemings, who were vassals of France, pretending like scruples with regard to the invasion of their liege lord; Edward, by the advice of d’Arteville, assumed, in his commissions, the title of king of France; and, in virtue of this right, claimed their assistance for dethroning Philip de Valois, the usurper of his kingdom.[**]

The German princes, wanting to justify their unprovoked attacks on France, needed some legal authority's approval; so Edward reached out to Lewis of Bavaria, who was the emperor at the time, and was granted the title of “vicar of the empire.” It was a meaningless title, but it appeared to give him the right to demand the support of the German princes.[*] The Flemings, who were subjects of France, raised concerns about the invasion of their lord; following d’Arteville's advice, Edward claimed the title of king of France in his commissions, and based on this claim, he sought their help to overthrow Philip de Valois, the usurper of his kingdom.[**]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 35.

     ** Heming. p. 303. Walsing. p. 143.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 35.

     ** Heming. p. 303. Walsing. p. 143.

This step, which he feared would destroy all future amity between the kingdoms, and beget endless and implacable jealousies in France, was not taken by him without much reluctance and hesitation: and not being in itself very justifiable, it has in the issue been attended with many miseries to both kingdoms. From this period we may date the commencement of that great animosity which the English nation have ever since borne to the French, which has so visible an influence on all future transactions, and which has been, and continues to be, the spring of many rash and precipitate resolutions among them. In all the preceding reigns since the conquest, the hostilities between the two crowns had been only casual and temporary; and as they had never been attended with any bloody or dangerous event, the traces of them were easily obliterated by the first treaty of pacification. The English nobility and gentry valued themselves on their French or Norman extraction: they affected to employ the language of that country in all public transactions, and even in familiar conversation; and both the English court and camp being always full of nobles who came from different provinces of France, the two people were, during some centuries, more intermingled together than any two distinct nations whom we meet with in history. But the fatal pretensions of Edward III. dissolved all these connections, and left the seeds of great animosity in both countries, especially among the English. For it is remarkable, that this latter nation, though they were commonly the aggressors, and by their success and situation were enabled to commit the most cruel injuries on the other, have always retained a stronger tincture of national antipathy; nor is their hatred retaliated on them to an equal degree by the French. That country lies in the middle of Europe, has been successively engaged in hostilities with all its neighbors, the popular prejudices have been diverted into many channels, and, among a people of softer manners, they never rose to a great height against any particular nation.

This step, which he feared would ruin any future friendship between the kingdoms and create endless jealousy in France, was taken with great reluctance and hesitation. Since it wasn’t really justifiable on its own, it ended up causing a lot of suffering for both kingdoms. From this point on, we can trace the start of the deep hostility that the English nation has held against the French ever since, which has had a visible impact on all future events and has driven many hasty decisions among them. In all the previous reigns since the conquest, any conflicts between the two crowns were only occasional and temporary, and since they hadn’t led to any bloody or serious incidents, they were easily forgotten with the first peace treaty. The English nobility and gentry took pride in their French or Norman heritage; they liked to use French in all official matters and even in everyday conversations. Because the English court and military were always filled with nobles from various regions of France, for centuries the two peoples were more mixed than any two distinct nations we see in history. But Edward III's dangerous claims ruined all those connections and planted the seeds of deep hostility in both countries, especially among the English. Interestingly, even though the English were usually the aggressors and were in a position to inflict more cruel injuries, they have always harbored a stronger sense of national hatred; the French's animosity hasn’t been as intense toward them. France, located in the middle of Europe, has been involved in conflicts with all its neighbors. Its popular prejudices have dispersed in many directions, and among a people known for their gentler temperament, this animosity has never escalated too much against any specific nation.

Philip made great preparations against the attack from the English, and such as seemed more than sufficient to secure him from the danger. Besides the concurrence of all the nobility in his own populous and warlike kingdom, his foreign alliances were both more cordial and more powerful than those which were formed by his antagonist. The pope, who, at this time, lived in Avignon, was dependent on France; and being disgusted at the connections between Edward and Lewis of Bavaria, whom he had excommunicated, he embraced with zeal and sincerity the cause of the French monarch. The king of Navarre, the duke of Brittany, the count of Bar, were in the same interests; and on the side of Germany, the king of Bohemia, the Palatine, the dukes of Lorraine and Austria, the bishop of Liege, the counts of Deuxpont, Vaudemont, and Geneva. The allies of Edward were in themselves weaker; and having no object but his money, which began to be exhausted, they were slow in their motions and irresolute in their measures.

Philip made extensive preparations against the attack from the English, and they seemed more than enough to keep him safe from danger. Along with the support of all the nobles in his own populous and warlike kingdom, his foreign alliances were both stronger and more friendly than those formed by his opponent. The pope, who was living in Avignon at the time, relied on France; and being unhappy with the ties between Edward and Lewis of Bavaria—whom he had excommunicated—he passionately and sincerely supported the French king's cause. The king of Navarre, the duke of Brittany, and the count of Bar were aligned with him, and from Germany, he had the backing of the king of Bohemia, the Palatine, the dukes of Lorraine and Austria, the bishop of Liege, and the counts of Deuxpont, Vaudemont, and Geneva. Edward's allies were weaker on their own; and since they were only interested in his money, which was running low, they were slow to act and indecisive in their plans.

1339.

1339.

The duke of Brabant, the most powerful among them, seemed even inclined to withdraw himself wholly from the alliance; and the king was necessitated both to give the Brabanters new privileges in trade, and to contract his son Edward with the daughter of that prince, ere he could bring him to fulfil his engagements. The summer was wasted in conferences and negotiations before Edward could take the field; and he was obliged, in order to allure his German allies into his measures, to pretend that the first attack should be made upon Cambray, a city of the empire which had been garrisoned by Philip.[*] But finding, upon trial, the difficulty of the enterprise, he conducted them towards the frontiers of France; and he there saw, by a sensible proof, the vanity of his expectations: the count of Namur, and even the count of Hainault, his brother-in-law (for the old count was dead,) refused to commence hostilities against their liege lord, and retired with their troops.[**] So little account did they make of Edward’s pretensions to the crown of France!

The Duke of Brabant, the most powerful among them, seemed ready to completely pull out of the alliance. The king had to offer the Brabanters new trade privileges and arrange for his son Edward to marry that prince's daughter before he could secure their commitment. The summer was spent in talks and negotiations before Edward could finally take action. To persuade his German allies to join him, he claimed that the initial attack would be on Cambray, a city in the empire that had been occupied by Philip. However, after realizing the challenges of that plan, he redirected them toward the French border. There, he faced a clear demonstration of the futility of his hopes: the Count of Namur and even the Count of Hainault, his brother-in-law (since the old count had passed away), refused to start hostilities against their liege lord and withdrew their troops. They dismissed Edward's claims to the crown of France with such indifference!

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 39. Heming. p. 305.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 29.
     * Froissart, vol. 1, ch. 39. Heming. p. 305.

     ** Froissart, vol. 1, ch. 29.

The king, however, entered the enemy’s country, and encamped on the fields of Vironfosse, near Capeile, with an army of near fifty thousand men, composed almost entirely of foreigners: Philip approached him with an army of near double the force, composed chiefly of native subjects; and it was daily expected that a battle would ensue. But the English monarch was averse to engage against so great a superiority: the French thought it sufficient if he eluded the attacks of his enemy, without running any unnecessary hazard. The two armies faced each other for some days: mutual defiances were sent: and Edward, at last, retired into Flanders, and disbanded his army.[*]

The king, however, entered the enemy’s territory and set up camp in the fields of Vironfosse, near Capeile, with an army of about fifty thousand men, mostly made up of foreigners. Philip came up against him with nearly double the troops, primarily consisting of local subjects, and it was expected that a battle would happen soon. But the English monarch was reluctant to fight against such a larger force: the French believed it was enough if he avoided the enemy's attacks without taking unnecessary risks. The two armies faced each other for several days; they exchanged challenges, and eventually, Edward retreated to Flanders and disbanded his army.[*]

Such was the fruitless and almost ridiculous conclusion of Edward’s mighty preparations; and as his measures were the most prudent that could be embraced in his situation, he might learn from experience in what a hopeless enterprise he was engaged. His expenses, though they had led to no end, had been consuming and destructive; he had contracted near three hundred thousand pounds of debt;[**] he had anticipated all his revenue; he had pawned every thing of value which belonged either to himself or his queen; he was obliged in some measure even to pawn himself to his creditors, by not sailing to England till he obtained their permission, and by promising on his word of honor to return in person, if he did not remit their money.

This was the pointless and almost laughable outcome of Edward's extensive preparations; and since his actions were the most sensible he could take given his situation, he could learn from experience how hopeless the mission was. His expenses, although they led to no resolution, had been draining and destructive; he had accumulated nearly three hundred thousand pounds of debt; he had used up all his revenue; he had pawned everything of value belonging to him or his queen; he even had to essentially pawn himself to his creditors by delaying his return to England until he got their approval, and by promising on his word to come back in person if he didn’t send their money.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 41, 42, 43. Heming, p. 307.
     Walsing p. 143.

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 17.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 41, 42, 43. Heming, p. 307.
     Walsing p. 143.

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 17.

But he was a prince of too much spirit to be discouraged by the first difficulties of an undertaking; and he was anxious to retrieve his honor by more successful and more gallant enterprises. For this purpose he had, during the course of the campaign, sent orders to summon a parliament by his son Edward, whom he had left with the title of guardian, and to demand some supply in his urgent necessities. The barons seemed inclined to grant his request; but the knights, who often, at this time, acted as a separate body from the burgesses, made some scruple of taxing their constituents without their consent; and they desired the guardian to summon a new parliament, which might be properly empowered for that purpose. The situation of the king and parliament was for the time, nearly similar to that which they constantly fell into about the beginning of the last century; and similar consequences began visibly to appear. The king, sensible of the frequent demands which he should be obliged to make on his people, had been anxious to insure to his friends a seat in the house of commons, and at his instigation the sheriffs and other placemen had made interest to be elected into that assembly; an abuse which the knights desired the king to correct by the tenor of his writ of summons, and which was accordingly remedied. On the other hand, the knights had professedly annexed conditions to their intended grant, and required a considerable retrenchment of the royal prerogatives, particularly with regard to purveyance, and the levying of the ancient feudal aids for knighting the king’s eldest son, and marrying his eldest daughter. The new parliament, called by the guardian, retained the same free spirit; and though they offered a large supply of thirty thousand sacks of wool, no business was concluded; because the conditions which they annexed appeared too high to be compensated by a temporary concession. But when Edward himself came over to England, he summoned another parliament, and he had the interest to procure a supply on more moderate terms. A confirmation of the two charters, and of the privileges of boroughs, a pardon for old debts and trespasses, and a remedy for some abuses in the execution of common law, were the chief conditions insisted on; and the king, in return for his concessions on these heads, obtained from the barons and knights an unusual grant for two years, of the ninth sheaf, lamb, and fleece on their estates, and from the burgesses a ninth of their movables at their true value. The whole parliament also granted a duty of forty shillings on each sack of wool exported, on each three hundred woolfells, and on each last of leather for the same term of years, but dreading the arbitrary spirit of the crown, they expressly declared, that this grant was to continue no longer, and was not to be drawn into precedent. Being soon after sensible that this supply, though considerable, and very unusual in that age, would come in slowly, and would not answer the king’s urgent necessities, proceeding both from his debts and his preparations for war, they agreed that twenty thousand sacks of wool should immediately be granted him, and their value be deducted from the ninths which were afterwards to be levied.

But he was a prince with too much spirit to be discouraged by the initial difficulties of a task; and he was eager to regain his honor through more successful and daring ventures. To achieve this, he had, during the campaign, sent orders to summon a parliament through his son Edward, whom he had appointed as guardian, and to request some support for his urgent needs. The barons seemed willing to grant his request; however, the knights, who often acted separately from the burgesses at this time, hesitated to tax their constituents without their approval; and they asked the guardian to call a new parliament that would be properly authorized for that purpose. The situation of the king and parliament at that time was almost identical to the ones they frequently faced at the beginning of the last century; and similar outcomes began to surface. The king, aware of the frequent demands he would need to make on his people, was eager to ensure that his allies had a seat in the House of Commons, and at his urging, the sheriffs and other officials had lobbied to be elected into that assembly; this was an abuse that the knights asked the king to correct in his writ of summons, which was subsequently addressed. On the other hand, the knights had explicitly attached conditions to their planned grant and sought a significant reduction of the royal prerogatives, particularly concerning purveyance, and the collection of ancient feudal aids for knighting the king’s eldest son and marrying his eldest daughter. The new parliament, called by the guardian, maintained the same independent spirit; and although they offered a substantial supply of thirty thousand sacks of wool, no agreement was reached, as the conditions they attached seemed too burdensome to be offset by a temporary concession. But when Edward himself came to England, he convened another parliament and was able to secure a supply on more reasonable terms. A confirmation of the two charters, the privileges of boroughs, a pardon for past debts and offenses, and a solution for some abuses in the execution of common law were the main conditions emphasized; and in exchange for his concessions on these matters, the king received an extraordinary grant from the barons and knights for two years of the ninth sheaf, lamb, and fleece from their estates, along with a ninth of their moveable goods at their actual value from the burgesses. The whole parliament also approved a duty of forty shillings on each sack of exported wool, on every three hundred woolfells, and on each last of leather for the same number of years, but fearing the arbitrary nature of the crown, they explicitly stated that this grant was to continue no longer and was not to set a precedent. Soon after, realizing that this supply, although considerable and very unusual for that time, would come in slowly and would not meet the king’s urgent needs, stemming from his debts and his military preparations, they agreed to immediately grant him twenty thousand sacks of wool, and their value would be deducted from the ninths to be collected later.

But there appeared at this time another jealousy in the parliament, which was very reasonable, and was founded on a sentiment that ought to have engaged them rather to check than support the king in all those ambitious projects, so little likely to prove successful, and so dangerous to the nation if they did. Edward, who, before the commencement of the former campaign, had, in several commissions, assumed the title of king of France, now more openly, in all public deeds, gave himself that appellation, and always quartered the arms of France with those of England in his seals and ensigns. The parliament thought proper to obviate the consequences of this measure, and to declare that they owed him no obedience as king of France, and that the two kingdoms must forever remain distinct and independent.[*] They undoubtedly foresaw that France, if subdued, would in the end prove the seat of government; and they deemed this previous protestation necessary, in order to prevent their becoming a province to that monarchy: a frail security if the event had really taken place!

But at this time, another reasonable jealousy emerged in Parliament, driven by a sentiment that should have compelled them to restrain rather than support the king in his ambitious projects, which were unlikely to succeed and highly dangerous for the nation if they did. Edward, who had previously claimed the title of King of France in several commissions before the start of the last campaign, now more openly used that title in all public declarations and consistently included the arms of France alongside those of England in his seals and insignia. Parliament found it necessary to counter the implications of this move by declaring that they owed him no allegiance as King of France and that the two kingdoms would always remain separate and independent. They certainly foresaw that if France were conquered, it would ultimately become the seat of governance, and they considered this prior declaration essential to prevent them from becoming a province of that monarchy— a flimsy protection if that outcome had actually happened!

     * 14 Edward III.
14 Edward III.

1340.

1340.

As Philip was apprised, from the preparations which were making both in England and the Low Countries, that he must expect another invasion from Edward, he fitted out a great fleet of four hundred vessels, manned with forty thousand men: and he stationed them off Sluise, with a view of intercepting the king in his passage. The English navy was much inferior in number, consisting only of two hundred and forty sail; but whether it were by the superior abilities of Edward, or the greater dexterity of his seamen, they gained the wind of the enemy, and had the sun in their backs: and with these advantages began the action. The battle was fierce and bloody: the English archers, whose force and address were now much celebrated, galled the French on their approach: and when the ships grappled together, and the contest became more steady and furious, the example of the king, and of so many gallant nobles who accompanied him, animated to such a degree the seamen and soldiery, that they maintained every where a superiority over the enemy. The French also had been guilty of some imprudence in taking their station so near the coast of Flanders, and choosing that place for the scene of action. The Flemings, descrying the battle, hurried out of their harbors, and brought a reënforcement to the English; which, coming unexpectedly, had a greater effect than in proportion to its power and numbers. Two hundred and thirty French ships were taken: thirty thousand Frenchmen were killed, with two of their admirals: the loss of the English was inconsiderable, compared to the greatness and importance of the victory.[*] None of Philip’s courtiers, it is said, dared to inform him of the event; till his fool or jester gave him a hint, by which he discovered the loss that he had sustained.[**]

As Philip was informed, from the preparations underway in both England and the Low Countries, that he should expect another invasion from Edward, he equipped a large fleet of four hundred ships, crewed by forty thousand men. He stationed them off Sluise to intercept the king during his passage. The English navy was significantly smaller, consisting of only two hundred and forty ships; but whether it was due to Edward's superior skills or the greater agility of his sailors, they gained the wind advantage against the enemy and had the sun at their backs. With these advantages, they initiated the battle. The fight was intense and bloody: the English archers, whose strength and skill were now well known, inflicted damage on the French as they advanced. When the ships engaged and the conflict became more focused and fierce, the example set by the king and the many brave nobles accompanying him inspired the sailors and soldiers to maintain superiority over the enemy. The French also made a mistake by positioning themselves so close to the coast of Flanders and choosing that location for the battle. The Flemings, seeing the battle from their harbors, rushed out to reinforce the English; their arrival, coming unexpectedly, had a greater impact than expected based on their numbers. Two hundred and thirty French ships were captured; thirty thousand French soldiers were killed, along with two of their admirals. The English losses were minimal, especially considering the significance of the victory. It is said that none of Philip’s courtiers dared to inform him of the outcome until his fool or jester hinted at it, leading him to realize the loss he had incurred.

The lustre of this great success increased the king’s authority among his allies, who assembled their forces with expedition, and joined the English army. Edward marched to the frontiers of France at the head of above one hundred thousand men, consisting chiefly of foreigners, a more numerous army than either before or since has ever been commanded by any king of England.[***] At the same time the Flemings, to the number of fifty thousand men, marched out under the command of Robert of Artois, and laid siege to St. Omer; but this tumultuary army, composed entirely of tradesmen unexperienced in war, was routed by a sally of the garrison, and notwithstanding the abilities of their leader, was thrown into such a panic, that they were instantly dispersed, and never more appeared in the field. The enterprises of Edward, though not attended with so inglorious an issue, proved equally vain and fruitless. The king of France had assembled an army more numerous than the English; was accompanied by all the chief nobility of his kingdom; was attended by many foreign princes, and even by three monarchs, the kings of Bohemia, Scotland, and Navarre:[****] yet he still adhered to the prudent resolution of putting nothing to hazard; and after throwing strong garrisons into all the frontier towns, he retired backwards, persuaded that the enemy, having wasted their force in some tedious and unsuccessful enterprise, would afford him an easy victory.

The shine of this great success boosted the king’s power among his allies, who quickly gathered their forces and joined the English army. Edward marched to the French border leading over one hundred thousand men, mostly foreigners—a larger army than any king of England had ever commanded before or since. At the same time, the Flemings, numbering fifty thousand men, marched out under Robert of Artois’s command and laid siege to St. Omer. However, this makeshift army, made up entirely of tradesmen with no battle experience, was defeated by a surprise attack from the garrison. Despite their leader's skills, they panicked and scattered, never to reappear in battle again. Edward’s ventures, though not ending in such a disgrace, also turned out to be equally pointless and unproductive. The king of France had gathered an army larger than the English, joined by the leading nobility of his kingdom, many foreign princes, and even three kings—the kings of Bohemia, Scotland, and Navarre. Yet he still wisely decided to take no unnecessary risks; after placing strong garrisons in all the border towns, he retreated, believing that the enemy would waste their strength in long and fruitless efforts, making victory easy for him.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 51. Avesbury, p. 56. Heming. p.
     321.

     ** Walsing. p. 148.

     *** Rymer, vol. v. p. 197

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 57.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 51. Avesbury, page 56. Heming, page 321.

     ** Walsingham, page 148.

     *** Rymer, volume 5, page 197.

     **** Froissart, book 1, chapter 57.

Tournay was at that time one of the most considerable cities of Flanders, containing above sixty thousand inhabitants of all ages, who were affectionate to the French government: and as the secret of Edward’s designs had not been strictly kept, Philip learned that the English, in order to gratify their Flemish allies, had intended to open the campaign with the siege of this place: he took care therefore to supply it with a garrison of fourteen thousand men, commanded by the bravest nobility of France; and he reasonably expected that these forces, joined to the inhabitants, would be able to defend the city against all the efforts of the enemy. Accordingly Edward, when he commenced the siege about the end of July found every where an obstinate resistance: the valor of one side was encountered with equal valor by the other: every assault was repulsed, and proved unsuccessful: and the king was at last obliged to turn the siege into a blockade, in hopes that the great numbers of the garrison and citizens, which had enabled them to defend themselves against his attacks, would but expose them to be the more easily reduced by famine.[*] The count of Eu, who commanded in Tournay, as soon as he perceived that the English had formed this plan of operations endeavored to save his provisions by expelling all the useless mouths; and the duke of Brabant, who wished no success to Edward’s enterprises, gave every one a free passage through his quarters.

Tournay was then one of the largest cities in Flanders, with over sixty thousand residents of all ages who were loyal to the French government. Since the details of Edward’s plans had not been closely guarded, Philip learned that the English intended to start their campaign by laying siege to this city to please their Flemish allies. He made sure to send a garrison of fourteen thousand men, led by the finest nobility of France, to defend it. He reasonably expected that these forces, along with the local population, would be able to protect the city from any enemy attacks. As a result, when Edward began the siege around the end of July, he encountered stubborn resistance everywhere: the bravery on both sides matched each other, every assault was repelled and turned out to be unsuccessful. Eventually, the king was forced to change the siege into a blockade, hoping that the large numbers of the garrison and citizens, which had allowed them to defend themselves against his attacks, would make them more vulnerable to being weakened by starvation. The count of Eu, who was in charge of Tournay, noticed that the English had devised this plan and tried to save supplies by removing all unnecessary people. Meanwhile, the duke of Brabant, who didn’t want Edward to succeed, allowed everyone to pass freely through his territory.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 54.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 54.

After the siege had continued ten weeks, the city was reduced to distress; and Philip, recalling all his scattered garrisons, advanced towards the English camp at the head of a mighty army, with an intention of still avoiding any decisive action, but of seeking some opportunity for throwing relief into the place. Here Edward, irritated with the small progress he had hitherto made, and with the disagreeable prospect that lay before him, sent Philip a defiance by a herald and challenged him to decide their claims for the crown of France either by single combat, or by an action of a hundred against a hundred, or by a general engagement. But Philip replied, that Edward having done homage to him for the duchy of Guienne, and having solemnly acknowledged him for his superior, it by no means became him to send a defiance to his liege lord and sovereign: that he was confident, notwithstanding all Edward’s preparations, and his conjunction with the rebellious Flemings, he himself should soon be able to chase him from the frontiers of France: that as the hostilities from England had prevented him from executing his purposed crusade against the infidels, he trusted in the assistance of the Almighty, who would reward his pious intentions, and punish the aggressor, whose ill-grounded claims had rendered them abortive: that Edward proposed a duel on very unequal terms, and offered to hazard only his own person against both the kingdom of France and the person of the king: but that, if he would increase the stake, and put also the kingdom of England on the issue of the duel, he would, notwithstanding that the terms would still be unequal, very willingly accept of the challenge.[*] It was easy to see that these mutual bravadoes were intended only to dazzle the populace, and that the two kings were too wise to think of executing their pretended purpose.

After the siege had lasted ten weeks, the city was in serious trouble; Philip, calling back all his scattered troops, moved toward the English camp leading a large army, planning to avoid any major battle while looking for a chance to send aid to the city. Here, Edward, frustrated with the little progress he had made and the unpleasant situation ahead of him, sent Philip a challenge through a herald, daring him to settle their claims to the crown of France through a duel, a hundred against a hundred, or a full battle. But Philip replied that since Edward had sworn allegiance to him for the duchy of Guienne and acknowledged him as his superior, it wasn’t proper for him to send a challenge to his liege lord. He expressed confidence that, despite Edward’s preparations and his alliance with the rebellious Flemings, he would soon chase Edward from the borders of France. Philip added that the attacks from England had stopped him from carrying out his plan to lead a crusade against the infidels, and he trusted in God’s help, who would reward his good intentions and punish the aggressor, whose unfounded claims had thwarted his plans. He noted that Edward’s duel proposal was highly unequal, offering to risk only his own life against both the kingdom of France and the king, but if Edward were to increase the stakes and put the kingdom of England on the line as well, he would, even though the terms would still be unequal, gladly accept the challenge. It was clear that these mutual displays of bravado were meant to impress the public, and that both kings were too wise to seriously consider carrying out their supposed intentions.

     * Du Tillet, Recueil de Traités, etc. Heming. p. 325, 326.
     Walsing, p. 149.
     * Du Tillet, Recueil de Traitements, etc. Heming. p. 325, 326.  
     Walsing, p. 149.

While the French and English armies lay in this situation, and a general action was every day expected, Jane, countess dowager of Hainault, interposed with her good offices, and endeavored to conciliate peace between the contending monarchs, and to prevent any further effusion of blood. This princess was mother-in-law to Edward, and sister to Philip; and though she had taken the vows in a convent, and had renounced the world, she left her retreat on this occasion, and employed all her pious efforts to allay those animosities which had taken place between persons so nearly related to her and to each other. As Philip had no material claims on his antagonist, she found that he hearkened willingly to the proposals; and even the haughty and ambitious Edward, convinced of his fruitless attempt, was not averse to her negotiation. He was sensible, from experience, that he had engaged in an enterprise which far exceeded his force; and that the power of England was never likely to prevail over that of a superior kingdom, firmly united under an able and prudent monarch. He discovered that all the allies whom he could gain by negotiation were at bottom averse to his enterprise; and though they might second it to a certain length, would immediately detach themselves, and oppose its final accomplishment, if ever they could be brought to think that there was seriously any danger of it. He even saw that their chief purpose was to obtain money from him; and as his supplies from England came in very slowly, and had much disappointed his expectations, he perceived their growing indifference in his cause, and their desire of embracing all plausible terms of accommodation. Convinced at last that an undertaking must be imprudent which could only be supported by means so unequal to the end, he concluded a truce, which left both parties in possession of their present acquisitions, and stopped all further hostilities on the side of the Low Countries, Guienne, and Scotland, till midsummer next.[*] A negotiation was soon after opened at Arras, under the mediation of the pope’s legates; and the truce was attempted to be converted into a solid peace. Edward here required that Philip should free Guienne from all claims of superiority, and entirely withdraw his protection from Scotland: but as he seemed not anywise entitled to make such high demands, either from his past successes or future prospects, they were totally rejected by Philip, who agreed only to a prolongation of the truce.

While the French and English armies were in this situation, and a major battle was expected every day, Jane, the dowager countess of Hainault, stepped in to help and tried to negotiate peace between the warring kings to prevent further bloodshed. This princess was Edward's mother-in-law and Philip's sister; although she had taken religious vows and renounced the world, she left her convent for this occasion and dedicated herself to easing the tensions between people so closely related to her and to each other. Since Philip had no significant claims against Edward, she found that he was open to her proposals; even the proud and ambitious Edward, realizing his efforts were in vain, was receptive to her mediation. He understood, from experience, that he had engaged in an endeavor that far exceeded his capabilities, and that England's power was unlikely to overcome that of a stronger kingdom united under a capable and wise ruler. He realized that all the allies he could gain through negotiation were fundamentally opposed to his plans; while they might support it to some extent, they would quickly detach themselves and oppose its ultimate success if they ever believed there was a real danger of it happening. He even recognized that their main goal was to get money from him; and since his supplies from England were arriving very slowly and had largely disappointed his expectations, he noticed their growing indifference to his cause and their desire to accept any reasonable terms for a settlement. Finally convinced that an undertaking must be reckless if it could only be supported by means so inadequate to achieve the goal, he agreed to a truce that allowed both sides to keep their current gains and halted all further hostilities in the Low Countries, Guienne, and Scotland until midsummer next.[*] A negotiation was soon initiated in Arras, mediated by the pope’s legates, in an effort to turn the truce into a lasting peace. Edward insisted that Philip should relinquish all claims of superiority over Guienne and completely withdraw his support from Scotland; however, since he did not really have the right to make such high demands based on his previous successes or future outlook, Philip completely rejected them, agreeing only to extend the truce.

The king of France soon after detached the emperor Lewis from the alliance of England, and engaged him to revoke the title of imperial vicar, which he had conferred on Edward.[**] The king’s other allies on the frontiers of France, disappointed in their hopes, gradually withdrew from the confederacy. And Edward himself, harassed by his numerous and importunate creditors, was obliged to make his escape by stealth into England.

The king of France soon after separated the emperor Lewis from the alliance with England and got him to take back the title of imperial vicar that he had given to Edward. The king’s other allies on the borders of France, feeling let down, slowly pulled away from the confederacy. And Edward himself, bothered by his many demanding creditors, had to sneak back into England.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 64. Avesbury, p. 65.

     ** Heming, p. 352. Ypod. Neust. p. 514. Knyghton, p. 2580.
     * Froissard, book i, chapter 64. Avesbury, page 65.

     ** Heming, page 352. Ypod. Neust. page 514. Knyghton, page 2580.

The unusual tax of a ninth sheaf, lamb, and fleece, imposed by parliament, together with the great want of money, and still more, of credit in England, had rendered the remittances to Flanders extremely backward; nor could it be expected, that any expeditious method of collecting an imposition, which was so new in itself, and which yielded only a gradual produce, could possibly be contrived by the king or his ministers. And though the parliament, foreseeing the inconvenience, had granted, as a present resource, twenty thousand sacks of wool, the only English goods that bore a sure price in foreign markets, and were the next to ready money, it was impossible but the getting possession of such a bulky commodity, the gathering of it from different parts of the kingdom, and the disposing of it abroad, must take up more time than the urgency of the king’s affairs would permit, and must occasion all the disappointments complained of during the course of the campaign. But though nothing had happened which Edward might not reasonably have foreseen, he was so irritated with the unfortunate issue of his military operations, and so much vexed and affronted by his foreign creditors, that he was determined to throw the blame somewhere off himself and he came in very bad humor into England. He discovered his peevish disposition by the first act which he performed after his arrival: as he landed unexpectedly, he found the Tower negligently guarded; and he immediately committed to prison the constable and all others who had the charge of that fortress, and he treated them with unusual rigor.[*] His vengeance fell next on the officers of the revenue, the sheriffs, the collectors of the taxes, the undertakers of all kinds; and besides dismissing all of them from their employments, he appointed commissioners to inquire into their conduct; and these men, in order to gratify the king’s humor, were sure not to find any person innocent who came before them.[**] Sir John St. Paul, keeper of the privy seal, Sir John Stonore, chief justice, Andrew Aubrey, mayor of London, were displaced and imprisoned; as were also the bishop of Chichester, chancellor, and the bishop of Lichfield, treasurer; Stratford, archbishop of Canterbury, to whom the charge of collecting the new taxes had been chiefly intrusted, fell likewise under the king’s displeasure; but being absent at the time of Edward’s arrival, he escaped feeling the immediate effects of it.

The unusual tax of a ninth sheaf, lamb, and fleece imposed by Parliament, along with the severe shortage of money and even more so, of credit in England, had made the remittances to Flanders extremely slow; it was unreasonable to expect that any quick way to collect such a new tax, which only provided gradual revenue, could be devised by the king or his ministers. Although Parliament, anticipating the issues, had allowed for an immediate resource of twenty thousand sacks of wool, the only English goods that had a stable price in foreign markets and were the next best thing to cash, it was inevitable that acquiring such a large item, gathering it from different parts of the kingdom, and selling it abroad would take longer than the urgency of the king’s situation would allow, resulting in all the frustrations experienced during the campaign. However, even though nothing happened that Edward could not have reasonably predicted, he was so frustrated by the unfortunate outcome of his military efforts and so upset by his foreign creditors that he was determined to shift the blame away from himself, returning to England in a very bad mood. He showed his sour demeanor from the moment he arrived: landing unexpectedly, he found the Tower poorly guarded and immediately imprisoned the constable and everyone else responsible for that fortress, treating them unusually harshly.[*] His anger next fell on the revenue officers, the sheriffs, the tax collectors, and various contractors; in addition to dismissing them all from their positions, he appointed commissioners to investigate their actions, and these commissioners, eager to please the king, were sure not to find anyone innocent who came before them.[**] Sir John St. Paul, keeper of the privy seal, Sir John Stonore, chief justice, and Andrew Aubrey, mayor of London, were removed and imprisoned, as were the bishop of Chichester, chancellor, and the bishop of Lichfield, treasurer; Stratford, archbishop of Canterbury, who had been mainly entrusted with the task of collecting the new taxes, also fell into the king’s disfavor, but since he was absent when Edward arrived, he managed to escape the immediate consequences.

     * Ypod. Neust. p. 513.

     ** Avesbury, p. 70, Heming p. 326. Walsing. p. 150.
     * Ypod. Neust. p. 513.

     ** Avesbury, p. 70, Heming p. 326. Walsing. p. 150.

There were strong reasons, which might discourage the kings of England, in those ages, from bestowing the chief offices of the crown on prelates and other ecclesiastical persons. These men had so intrenched themselves in privileges and immunities, and so openly challenged an exemption from all secular jurisdiction, that no civil penalty could be inflicted on them for any malversation in office; and as even treason itself was declared to be no canonical offence, nor was allowed to be a sufficient reason for deprivation or other spiritual censures, that order of men had insured to themselves an almost total impunity, and were not bound by any political law or statute. But, on the other hand, there were many peculiar causes which favored their promotion. Besides that they possessed almost all the learning of the age, and were best qualified for civil employments, the prelates enjoyed equal dignity with the greatest barons, and gave weight by their personal authority, to the powers intrusted with them; while, at the same time, they did not endanger the crown by accumulating wealth or influence in their families, and were restrained, by the decency of their character, from that open rapine and violence so often practised by the nobles. These motives had induced Edward, as well as many of his predecessors, to intrust the chief departments of government in the hands of ecclesiastics; at the hazard of seeing them disown his authority as soon as it was turned against them.

There were compelling reasons that likely made the kings of England hesitant to give the top roles in the crown to bishops and other church leaders during that time. These individuals had established themselves with so many privileges and exemptions, openly rejecting any secular authority over them, that no civil penalties could be applied for any misconduct in their positions. Even treason wasn’t considered a canonical offense and couldn't be grounds for removal or any spiritual consequences, which meant they managed to secure almost complete immunity and were not held to any political laws or statutes. However, there were also several specific factors that favored their promotion. They held nearly all the knowledge of the time and were well-suited for government roles. The bishops held equal status with the highest barons, lending their personal authority to the powers they were given. At the same time, they didn’t threaten the crown by amassing wealth or power within their families, and their respectable conduct kept them from engaging in the rampant looting and violence that was common among the nobles. These reasons led Edward, like many of his predecessors, to assign key government positions to church leaders, despite the risk of them rejecting his authority if it was ever used against them.

1341.

1341.

This was the case with Archbishop Stratford. That prelate, informed of Edward’s indignation against him prepared himself for the storm; and not content with standing upon the defensive, he resolved, by beginning the attack, to show the king that he knew the privileges of his character, and had courage to maintain them. He issued a general sentence of excommunication against all who, on any pretext, exercised violence on the person or goods of clergymen; who infringed those privileges secured by the Great Charter, and by ecclesiastical canons; or who accused a prelate of treason or any other crime, in order to bring him under the king’s displeasure.[*]

This was the situation with Archbishop Stratford. The archbishop, aware of Edward’s anger toward him, prepared for the backlash; and not satisfied with just defending himself, he decided to take the offensive to show the king that he understood his rights and had the courage to uphold them. He issued a sweeping excommunication against anyone who, for any reason, used violence against the person or property of clergymen; who violated the rights protected by the Great Charter and by church law; or who accused a bishop of treason or any other crime to get him in trouble with the king.

     * Heming* p. 339. Ang* Sacra, vol. i. p. 21, 22. Walsing. p.
     153.
     * Heming* p. 339. Ang* Sacra, vol. i. p. 21, 22. Walsing. p. 153.

Even Edward had reason to think himself struck at by this sentence; both on account of the imprisonment of the two bishops and that of other clergymen concerned in levying the taxes, and on account of his seizing their lands and movables, that he might make them answerable for any balance which remained in their hands. The clergy, with the primate at their head, were now formed into a regular combination against the king; and many calumnies were spread against him, in order to deprive him of the confidence and affections of his people. It was pretended that he meant to recall the general pardon, and the remission which he had granted of old debts, and to impose new and arbitrary taxes without consent of parliament. The archbishop went so far, in a letter to the king himself, as to tell him, that there were two powers by which the world was governed, the holy pontifical apostolic dignity, and the royal subordinate authority: that of these two powers, the clerical was evidently the supreme; since the priests were to answer, at the tribunal of the divine judgment, for the conduct of kings themselves: that the clergy were the spiritual fathers of all the faithful, and amongst others of kings and princes; and were entitled, by a heavenly charter, to direct their wills and actions, and to censure their transgressions: and that prelates had hitherto cited emperors before their tribunal, had sitten in judgment on their life and behavior, and had anathematized them for their obstinate offences.[*] These topics were not well calculated to appease Edward’s indignation; and when he called a parliament, he sent not to the primate, as to the other peers, a summons to attend it. Stratford was not discouraged at this mark of neglect or anger: he appeared before the gates, arrayed in his pontifical robes, holding the crosier in his hand and accompanied by a pompous train of priests and prelates; and he required admittance as the first and highest peer in the realm. During two days the king rejected his application: but sensible, either that this affair might be attended with dangerous consequences, or that in his impatience he had groundlessly accused the primate of malversation in his office, which seems really to have been the case, he at last permitted him to take his seat, and was reconciled to him.[**]

Even Edward had reason to believe he was being unfairly targeted by this statement; not only because of the imprisonment of the two bishops and other clergymen involved in collecting taxes, but also due to his seizure of their lands and belongings to hold them accountable for any remaining debts. The clergy, led by the archbishop, had now formed a united front against the king, spreading many falsehoods to undermine his trust and support among the people. They claimed he intended to revoke the general pardon and the cancellation of old debts, and to impose new and arbitrary taxes without the consent of Parliament. The archbishop even went so far, in a letter to the king, to explain that there were two powers that governed the world: the holy papal authority and the royal authority. He insisted that the clerical power was clearly supreme because priests would be held accountable at the divine judgment for the actions of kings themselves. He argued that the clergy were the spiritual leaders of all the faithful, including kings and princes, and had the divine right to guide their wills and actions, and to reprimand their wrongdoings. He also pointed out that church leaders had previously summoned emperors to their courts, judged their lives and behaviors, and excommunicated them for their stubborn offenses. These arguments did little to calm Edward’s anger, and when he called a Parliament, he didn’t send a summons to the archbishop, unlike the other nobles. Stratford wasn’t discouraged by this sign of neglect or anger; he showed up at the gates in his bishop's robes, holding the crosier, accompanied by an impressive group of priests and bishops, demanding entry as the highest peer in the realm. For two days, the king refused his request, but sensing that this situation could lead to serious consequences or realizing he had unfairly accused the archbishop of misconduct in his role, which seems to have been true, he finally allowed him to take his place and made amends with him.

     * Ang. Sacra, vol i. p. 27.

     ** Ang. Sacra, p. 28, 39, 40, 41.
     * Ang. Sacra, vol i. p. 27.

     ** Ang. Sacra, p. 28, 39, 40, 41.

Edward now found himself in a bad situation, both with his own people and with foreign states; and it required all his genius and capacity to extricate himself from such multiplied difficulties and embarrassments. His unjust and exorbitant claims on France and Scotland had engaged him in an implacable war with those two kingdoms, his nearest neighbors: he had lost almost all his foreign alliances by his irregular payments: he was deeply involved in debts, for which he owed a consuming interest: his military operations had vanished into smoke; and, except his naval victory, none of them had been attended even with glory or renown, either to himself or to the nation: the animosity between him and the clergy was open and declared: the people were discontented on account of many arbitrary measures, in which he had been engaged, and what was more dangerous, the nobility, taking advantage of his present necessities, were determined to retrench his power, and by encroaching on the ancient prerogatives of the crown, to acquire to themselves independence and authority. But the aspiring genius of Edward, which had so far transported him beyond the bounds of discretion, proved at last sufficient to reinstate him in his former authority, and finally to render his reign the most triumphant that is to be met with in English story; though for the present he was obliged, with some loss of honor, to yield to the current which bore so strongly against him.

Edward found himself in a tough spot, both with his own people and with foreign nations; it took all his skill and talent to get out of such a tangled mess. His unfair and outrageous claims against France and Scotland had pulled him into an endless war with those two kingdoms, his closest neighbors. He had lost almost all his foreign alliances due to his irregular payments. He was deep in debt, with interest piling up. His military efforts had come to nothing; aside from his naval victory, none of them brought him or the nation any glory or recognition. The hostility between him and the clergy was open and obvious. The people were unhappy because of many arbitrary actions he had taken, and what was even more dangerous was that the nobility, seizing on his current problems, were set on cutting back his power and encroaching on the ancient rights of the crown to gain independence and authority for themselves. But Edward's ambitious spirit, which had often taken him beyond what was sensible, ultimately proved strong enough to restore him to his former power and make his reign the most successful in English history; although for now, he was forced to accept some loss of honor and go with the tide that was strongly against him.

The parliament framed an act which was likely to produce considerable innovations in the government. They premised, that, whereas the Great Charter had, to the manifest peril and slander of the king and damage of his people, been violated in many points, particularly by the imprisonment of freemen and the seizure of their goods, without suit, indictment, or trial, it was necessary to confirm it anew, and to oblige all the chief officers of the law, together with the steward and chamberlain of the household, the keeper of the privy seal, the controller and treasurer of the wardrobe, and those who were intrusted with the education of the young prince, to swear to the regular observance of it. They also remarked, that the peers of the realm had formerly been arrested and imprisoned, and dispossessed of their temporalities and lands, and even some of them put to death, without judgment or trial; and they therefore enacted that such violences should henceforth cease, and no peer be punished but by the award of his peers “in parliament.” They required, that, whenever any of the great offices above mentioned became vacant, the king should fill it by the advice of his council, and the consent of such barons as should at that time be found to reside in the neighborhood of the court. And they enacted, that, on the third day of every session, the king should resume into his own hand all these offices, except those of justices of the two benches and the barons of exchequer; that the ministers should for the time be reduced to private persons; that they should in that condition answer before parliament to any accusation brought against them; and that if they were found anywise guilty, they should finally be dispossessed of their offices, and more able persons be substituted in their place.[*] By these last regulations, the barons approached as near as they durst to those restrictions which had formerly been imposed on Henry III. and Edward II., and which, from the dangerous consequences attending them, had become so generally odious, that they did not expect to have either the concurrence of the people in demanding the*n, or the assent of the present king in granting them.

The parliament created a law that was likely to bring significant changes to the government. They noted that the Great Charter had been violated, to the clear risk and shame of the king and to the detriment of his people, especially through the wrongful imprisonment of free individuals and the seizure of their property without legal process or trial. Thus, they believed it was essential to reaffirm the Charter and require all key law officials, along with the steward and the chamberlain, the keeper of the privy seal, the controller, and the treasurer of the wardrobe, as well as those responsible for educating the young prince, to pledge to uphold it. They also pointed out that nobles had previously been arrested and imprisoned, stripped of their lands and possessions, and even executed, all without legal judgment or trial. Therefore, they instituted that such abuses must stop, and no noble should face punishment except by the judgment of their peers “in parliament.” They mandated that whenever any of the significant offices mentioned above became vacant, the king should appoint someone to fill it with the advice of his council and the consent of the barons residing nearby the court at that time. Additionally, they specified that on the third day of each session, the king should reclaim all these offices for himself, except for those of justices from the two benches and the barons of the exchequer; that the ministers would be temporarily reduced to private citizens; that in this capacity, they would answer any accusations against them before parliament; and that if found guilty, they would be removed from their offices, with more capable individuals appointed in their stead. Through these new regulations, the barons pushed as far as they felt safe to the limits that had once been placed on Henry III and Edward II, which had become so broadly disliked due to their dangerous consequences that they did not expect to gain popular support in demanding them or for the current king to agree to them.

* 15 Edward III.

15 Edward III.

In return for these important concessions, the parliament offered the king a grant of twenty thousand sacks of wool; and his wants were so urgent from the clamors of his creditors and the demands of his foreign allies, that he was obliged to accept of the supply on these hard conditions. He ratified this statute in full parliament: but he secretly entered a protest of such a nature as was sufficient, one should imagine to destroy all future trust and confidence with his people; he declared that, as soon as his convenience permitted, he would, from his own authority, revoke what had been extorted from him.[*] Accordingly he was no sooner possessed of the parliamentary supply, than he issued an edict, which contains many extraordinary positions and pretensions. He first asserts, that that statute had been enacted contrary to law, as if a free legislative body could ever do any thing illegal. He next affirms, that as it was hurtful to the prerogatives of the crown, which he had sworn to defend, he had only dissembled when he seemed to ratify it, but that he had never in his own breast given his assent to it. He does not pretend that either he or the parliament lay under force; but only that some inconvenience would have ensued, had he not seemingly affixed his sanction to that pretended statute. He therefore, with the advice of his council and of some earls and barons, abrogates and annuls it; and though he professes himself willing and determined to observe such articles of it as were formerly law, he declares it to have thenceforth no force or authority.[**] The parliaments that were afterwards assembled took no notice of this arbitrary exertion of royal power, which, by a parity of reason, left all their laws at the mercy of the king; and, during the course of two years, Edward had so far reëstablished his influence, and freed himself from his present necessities, that he then obtained from his parliament a legal repeal of the obnoxious statute.[***] This transaction certainly contains remarkable circumstances, which discover the manners and sentiments of the age; and may prove what inaccurate work might be expected from such rude hands, when employed in legislation, and in rearing the delicate fabric of laws and a constitution.

In exchange for these significant concessions, the parliament offered the king a grant of twenty thousand sacks of wool; his needs were so pressing due to the demands of his creditors and foreign allies that he felt forced to accept the funding under these tough conditions. He confirmed this statute in full parliament but secretly filed a protest that seemed enough to ruin any future trust and confidence with his people; he claimed that as soon as he could, he would, on his own authority, revoke what had been forced from him.[*] As soon as he received the parliamentary funding, he issued an edict that included many unusual claims and demands. He first argued that the statute was enacted unlawfully, as if a free legislative body could do anything illegal. Next, he stated that since it was harmful to the powers of the crown, which he had pledged to protect, he had only pretended to ratify it, claiming that he never genuinely agreed to it in his heart. He did not claim that he or the parliament were under duress; he merely suggested that some trouble would have arisen if he hadn't seemingly approved that supposed statute. He then, with the advice of his council and a few earls and barons, repeals and cancels it; although he claims he is willing and determined to uphold the articles of it that were already law, he asserts that it has no legal force or authority going forward.[**] The parliaments that met later ignored this arbitrary use of royal power, which, logically, put all their laws at the king's mercy; and over the next two years, Edward had managed to reestablish his influence and relieve himself from his immediate needs, obtaining a legal repeal of the objectionable statute from his parliament.[***] This incident certainly features notable elements that reveal the attitudes and sentiments of the time; it may illustrate the chaos that could result from such unrefined efforts in legislation and in building the intricate framework of laws and a constitution.

     * Statutes at large, 15 Edward III. That this protest of the
     king’s was secret appears evidently, since otherwise it
     would have been ridiculous in the parliament to have
     accepted of his assent: besides, the king owns that he
     dissembled, which would not have been the ease had his
     protest been public.

     ** Statutes at large, 15 Edward III.

     *** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 38, 39. and saw so little prospect
     of success, that he would probably have dropped his claim,
     had not a revolution in Brittany opened to him more
     promising views, and given his enterprising genius a full
     opportunity of displaying itself.
* Statutes at large, 15 Edward III. It’s clear that the king’s protest was kept secret; otherwise, it would have been absurd for parliament to accept his consent. Plus, the king admits he was being deceptive, which wouldn’t have been the case if his protest had been public. 

** Statutes at large, 15 Edward III.

*** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 38, 39. He saw so little chance of success that he likely would have given up his claim if a revolution in Brittany hadn't opened up more promising opportunities and allowed his ambitious nature to fully shine.

But though Edward had happily recovered his authority at home, which had been impaired by the events of the French war, he had undergone so many mortifications from that attempt.

But even though Edward had successfully regained his authority at home, which had been weakened by the events of the French war, he had experienced so many humiliations from that effort.

John III., duke of Brittany, had, during some years, found himself declining through age and infirmities; and having no issue, he was solicitous to prevent those disorders to which, on the event of his demise, a disputed succession might expose his subjects. His younger brother, the count of Penthiev had left only one daughter, whom the duke deemed his heir; and as his family had inherited the duchy by a female succession, he thought her title preferable to that of the count of Mountfort, who, being his brother by a second marriage, was the male heir of that principality.[*] He accordingly purposed to bestow his niece in marriage on some person who might be able to defend her rights; and he cast his eye on Charles of Blois, nephew of the king of France, by his mother, Margaret of Valois, sister to that monarch. But as he both loved his subjects and was beloved by them, he determined not to take this important step without their approbation; and having assembled the states of Brittany, he represented to them the advantages of that alliance, and the prospect which it gave of an entire settlement of the succession. The Bretons willingly concurred in his choice: the marriage was concluded: all his vassals, and among the rest the count of Mountfort, swore fealty to Charles and to his consort, as to their future sovereigns; and every danger of civil commotions seemed to be obviated, as far as human prudence could provide a remedy against them.

John III, Duke of Brittany, had been experiencing a decline in health due to age and illness for several years, and since he had no children, he was keen to prevent any disputes over succession that might arise after his death, which could disturb his subjects. His younger brother, the Count of Penthiev, had only one daughter, whom the duke considered his heir. Since his family had inherited the duchy through female succession, he believed her claim was stronger than that of the Count of Mountfort, who was his brother from a second marriage and the male heir to that principality.[*] Therefore, he planned to marry his niece to someone who could protect her rights, and he focused on Charles of Blois, the king of France's nephew through his mother, Margaret of Valois, who was the king's sister. However, because he cared for his subjects and was well-liked by them, he decided not to take this significant step without their approval. After gathering the states of Brittany, he explained the benefits of this alliance and how it could lead to a clear resolution of the succession issue. The Bretons agreed with his choice, and the marriage was finalized. All his vassals, including the Count of Mountfort, swore loyalty to Charles and his wife as their future rulers, effectively eliminating the risk of civil unrest, at least as far as human wisdom could mitigate it.

But on the death of this good prince, the ambition of the count of Mountfort broke through all these regulations, and kindled a war, not only dangerous to Brittany, but to a great part of Europe. While Charles of Blois was soliciting at the court of France the investiture of the duchy, Mountfort was active in acquiring immediate possession of it; and by force or intrigue he made himself master of Rennes, Nantz, Brest Hennebonne, and all the most important fortresses, and engaged many considerable barons to acknowledge his authority.[**] Sensible that he could expect no favor from Philip, he made a voyage to England, on pretence of soliciting his claim to the earldom of Richmond, which had devolved to him by his brother’s death; and there, offering to do homage to Edward, as king of France, for the duchy of Brittany, he proposed a strict alliance for the support of their mutual pretensions.

But after the death of this good prince, the ambition of the Count of Mountfort broke through all these regulations and sparked a war that was not only dangerous for Brittany but for a large part of Europe. While Charles of Blois was seeking the investiture of the duchy at the French court, Mountfort was busy trying to take immediate control of it. Through force or intrigue, he took over Rennes, Nantes, Brest, Hennebonne, and all the most important fortresses, and he got many significant barons to recognize his authority. Realizing that he wouldn’t receive any support from Philip, he traveled to England, claiming he was there to request his rights to the earldom of Richmond, which he inherited after his brother’s death. While there, he offered to pay homage to Edward as king of France for the duchy of Brittany, suggesting a close alliance to support their mutual claims.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 64.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 65, 66, 67, 68.
     * Froissart, vol. 1, ch. 64.

     ** Froissart, vol. 1, ch. 65, 66, 67, 68.

Edward saw immediately the advantages attending this treaty: Mountfort, an active and valiant prince, closely united to him by interest, opened at once an entrance into the heart of France, and afforded him much more flattering views than his allies on the side of Germany and the Low Countries, who had no sincere attachment to his cause, and whose progress was also obstructed by those numerous fortifications which had been raised on that frontier. Robert of Artois was zealous in enforcing these considerations: the ambitious spirit of Edward was little disposed to sit down under those repulses which he had received, and which he thought had so much impaired his reputation; and it required a very short negotiation to conclude a treaty of alliance between two men, who, though their pleas with regard to the preference of male or female succession were directly opposite, were intimately connected by their immediate interests.[*]

Edward immediately recognized the benefits of this treaty: Mountfort, a proactive and brave prince, was closely aligned with him by mutual interests, providing a direct route into the heart of France and offering him much better prospects than his allies in Germany and the Low Countries, who had no real loyalty to his cause and whose advances were hindered by the numerous fortifications built along that border. Robert of Artois was eager to emphasize these points: Edward's ambitious nature was not inclined to accept the setbacks he had faced, which he believed had significantly damaged his reputation; therefore, it only took a brief negotiation to finalize an alliance between the two men, who, despite their opposing views on the preference for male or female succession, were closely tied by their immediate interests.[*]

As this treaty was still a secret, Mountfort, on his return, ventured to appear at Paris, in order to defend his cause before the court of peers; but observing Philip and his judges to be prepossessed against his title, and dreading their intentions of arresting him, till he should restore what he had seized by violence, he suddenly made his escape; and war immediately commenced between him and Charles of Blois.[**] Philip sent his eldest son, the duke of Normandy, with a powerful army, to the assistance of the latter; and Mountfort, unable to keep the field against his rival, remained in the city of Nantz, where he was besieged. The city was taken by the treachery of the inhabitants; Mountfort fell into the hands of his enemies, was conducted as a prisoner to Paris, and was shut up in the tower of the Louvre.[***]

As this treaty was still a secret, Mountfort, on his return, took the risk of appearing in Paris to defend his case before the court of peers. However, noticing that Philip and his judges were biased against his claim and fearing they intended to arrest him until he restored what he had taken by force, he suddenly made his escape. War quickly broke out between him and Charles of Blois. Philip sent his eldest son, the Duke of Normandy, with a strong army to support Charles. Unable to hold his ground against his opponent, Mountfort stayed in the city of Nantes, where he was besieged. The city fell due to the betrayal of its inhabitants; Mountfort was captured by his enemies, taken as a prisoner to Paris, and confined in the tower of the Louvre.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap, 69.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 70, 71.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap 73.
     * Froissard, book 1, chapter 69.

     ** Froissard, book 1, chapters 70, 71.

     *** Froissard, book 1, chapter 73.

1342.

1342.

This event seemed to put an end to the pretensions of the count of Mountfort; but his affairs were immediately retrieved by an unexpected incident, which inspired new life and vigor into his party. Jane of Flanders, countess of Mountfort, the most extraordinary woman of the age, was roused, by the captivity of her husband, from those domestic cares to which she had hitherto limited her genius; and she courageously undertook to support the falling fortunes of her family No sooner did she receive the fatal intelligence, than she assembled the inhabitants of Rennes, where she then resided; and carrying her infant son in her arms, deplored to them the calamity of their sovereign. She recommended to their care the illustrious orphan, the sole male remaining of their ancient princes, who had governed them with such indulgence and lenity, and to whom they had ever professed the most zealous attachment. She declared herself willing to run all hazards with them in so just a cause; discovered the resources which still remained in the alliance of England; and entreated them to make one effort against a usurper, who, being imposed on them by the arms of France, would in return make a sacrifice to his protector of the ancient liberties of Brittany. The audience, moved by the affecting appearance, and inspirited by the noble conduct of the princess, vowed to live and die with her in defending the rights of her family: all the other fortresses of Brittany embraced the same resolution: the countess went from place to place encouraging the garrisons, providing them with every thing necessary for subsistence, and concerting the proper plans of defence; and after she had put the whole province in a good posture, she shut herself up in Hennebonne, where she waited with impatience the arrival of those succors which Edward had promised her. Meanwhile she sent over her son to England, that she might both put him in a place of safety, and engage the king more strongly, by such a pledge, to embrace with zeal the interests of her family.

This event seemed to put an end to the ambitions of the count of Mountfort; however, his situation was quickly turned around by an unexpected event that revitalized his supporters. Jane of Flanders, countess of Mountfort, the most remarkable woman of her time, was stirred from her domestic duties, which had previously confined her talents, by her husband’s capture. She bravely stepped up to back her family's declining fortunes. As soon as she received the devastating news, she gathered the people of Rennes, where she was living at the time, and, holding her infant son in her arms, lamented the misfortune of their leader. She entrusted them with the care of the noble orphan, the last remaining male descendant of their former princes, who had ruled them with kindness and leniency, to whom they had always shown the utmost loyalty. She expressed her willingness to share all risks with them in such a righteous cause, highlighted the support still available through an alliance with England, and urged them to make one last stand against a usurper who, imposed on them by French forces, would in turn sacrifice Brittany’s ancient freedoms to his benefactor. The crowd, moved by her emotional plea and inspired by the noble actions of the princess, pledged to stand by her side, defending her family's rights. All the other strongholds in Brittany made the same vow: the countess traveled from place to place encouraging the garrisons, supplying them with everything they needed to survive, and coordinating effective defense strategies. Once she had organized the entire province, she retreated to Hennebonne, where she anxiously awaited the arrival of the assistance that Edward had promised her. In the meantime, she sent her son to England to ensure his safety and to strengthen the king's commitment to support her family's interests by using him as a pledge.

Charles of Blois, anxious to make himself master of so important a fortress as Hennebonne, and still more to take the countess prisoner, from whose vigor and capacity all the difficulties to his succession in Brittany now proceeded, sat down before the place with a great army, composed of French, Spaniards, Genoese, and some Bretons; and he conducted the attack with indefatigable industry.[*]

Charles of Blois, eager to seize such an important fortress as Hennebonne and even more determined to capture the countess, who was the source of all his challenges for succession in Brittany, laid siege to the location with a large army made up of French, Spaniards, Genoese, and some Bretons; he tirelessly led the attack.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 81.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 81.

The defence was no less vigorous: the besiegers were repulsed in every assault: frequent sallies were made with success by the garrison; and the countess herself being the most forward in all military operations, every one was ashamed not to exert himself to the utmost in this desperate situation. One day, she perceived that the besiegers, entirely occupied in an attack, had neglected a distant quarter of their camp; and she immediately sallied forth at the head of a body of two hundred cavalry, threw them into confusion, did great execution upon them, and set fire to their tents, baggage, and magazines; but when she was preparing to return, she found that she was intercepted, and that a considerable body of the enemy had thrown themselves between her and the gates. She instantly took her resolution; she ordered her men to disband, and to make the best of their way by flight to Brest; she met them at the appointed place of rendezvous, collected another body of five hundred horse, returned to Hennebonne, broke unexpectedly through the enemy’s camp, and was received with shouts and acclamations by the garrison, who, encouraged by this reënforcement, and by so rare an example of female valor, determined to defend themselves to the last extremity.

The defense was just as strong: the attackers were pushed back in every assault. The troops made successful surprise attacks, and the countess herself led in all military actions, making everyone feel ashamed not to give their all in this desperate situation. One day, she noticed that the attackers, completely focused on an assault, had left a far part of their camp unguarded. She quickly charged out with a group of two hundred cavalry, disoriented them, inflicted heavy damage, and set fire to their tents, supplies, and storage. But when she was getting ready to return, she found herself blocked, with a large group of enemies positioned between her and the gates. She immediately made a decision; she commanded her men to scatter and flee to Brest. She met them at the designated rendezvous, gathered another group of five hundred horsemen, returned to Hennebonne, unexpectedly broke through the enemy camp, and was greeted with cheers and applause from the garrison. Inspired by this reinforcement and such a rare display of female bravery, they resolved to fight to the very end.

The reiterated attacks, however, of the besiegers had at length made several breaches in the walls; and it was apprehended that a general assault, which was every hour expected would overpower the garrison, diminished in numbers, and extremely weakened with watching and fatigue. It became necessary to treat of a capitulation; and the bishop of Leon was already engaged, for that purpose, in a conference with Charles of Blois, when the countess, who had mounted to a high tower, and was looking towards the sea with great impatience, descried some sails at a distance. She immediately exclaimed, “Behold the succors! the English succors! No capitulation!”[*] This fleet had on board a body of heavy-armed cavalry, and six thousand archers, whom Edward had prepared for the relief of Hennebonne, but who had been long detained by contrary winds. They entered the harbor under the command of Sir Walter Manny, one of the bravest captains of England: and having inspired fresh courage into the garrison, immediately sallied forth, beat the besiegers from all their posts, and obliged them to decamp.

The repeated attacks from the besiegers had finally made several breaches in the walls, and it was feared that a general assault, expected at any moment, would overwhelm the garrison, which was dwindling in numbers and severely weakened from lack of sleep and exhaustion. It became necessary to negotiate a surrender, and the bishop of Leon was already engaged in talks with Charles of Blois for that reason when the countess climbed to a high tower and, looking toward the sea with great anxiety, spotted some sails in the distance. She immediately shouted, “Look, reinforcements! The English reinforcements! No surrender!” This fleet carried a group of heavily armored cavalry and six thousand archers that Edward had prepared to relieve Hennebonne, but who had been delayed by unfavorable winds. They entered the harbor under the command of Sir Walter Manny, one of England's bravest captains. Upon arrival, they reinvigorated the garrison, charged out, drove the besiegers from their positions, and forced them to retreat.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 81.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 81.

But notwithstanding this success, the countess of Mountfort found that her party, overpowered by numbers, was declining in every quarter; and she went over to solicit more effectual succors from the king of England. Edward granted her a considerable reënforcement under Robert of Artois, who embarked on board a fleet of forty-five ships, and sailed to Brittany. He was met in his passage by the enemy; an action ensued, where the countess behaved with her wonted valor, and charged the enemy sword in hand; but the hostile fleets, after a sharp action, were separated by a storm, and the English arrived safely in Brittany. The first exploit of Robert was the taking of Vannes, which he mastered by conduct and address;[*] but he survived a very little time this prosperity. The Breton noblemen of the party of Charles assembled secretly in arms, attacked Vannes of a sudden, and carried the place; chiefly by reason of a wound received by Robert, of which he soon after died at sea, on his return to England.[**]

But despite this success, the Countess of Mountfort realized that her side, overwhelmed by numbers, was losing strength in every direction; so she went to seek more effective support from the King of England. Edward granted her a significant reinforcement under Robert of Artois, who boarded a fleet of forty-five ships and set sail for Brittany. He encountered the enemy on his way; a battle followed, where the countess fought bravely and charged the enemy sword in hand; however, the opposing fleets were separated by a storm after a fierce confrontation, and the English made it safely to Brittany. Robert's first achievement was capturing Vannes, which he took through strategy and skill; but he barely enjoyed this victory for long. The Breton nobles loyal to Charles secretly gathered armed forces, surprised Vannes, and took the city; primarily because Robert suffered a wound, which led to his death at sea shortly after while returning to England.

After the death of this unfortunate prince, the chief author of all the calamities with which his country was overwhelmed for more than a century, Edward undertook in person the defence of the countess of Mountfort; and as the last truce with France was now expired, the war, which the English and French had hitherto carried on as allies to the competitors for Brittany, was thenceforth conducted in the name and under the standard of the two monarchs. The king landed at Morbian, near Vannes, with an army of twelve thousand men; and being master of the field, he endeavored to give a lustre to his arms, by commencing at once three important sieges, that of Vannes, of Rennes, and of Nantz. But by undertaking too much, he failed of success in all his enterprises. Even the siege of Vannes, which Edward in person conducted with vigor, advanced but slowly;[***] and the French had all the leisure requisite for making preparations against him.

After the death of this unfortunate prince, who was the main cause of all the trouble that plagued his country for over a century, Edward personally took on the defense of the Countess of Mountfort. Since the last truce with France had now expired, the war, which the English and French had previously fought as allies to the contenders for Brittany, was now waged in the name and under the banner of both monarchs. The king landed at Morbian, near Vannes, with an army of twelve thousand men. Being in control of the battlefield, he tried to enhance his reputation by launching three significant sieges at once: Vannes, Rennes, and Nantz. However, by taking on too much, he found himself unsuccessful in all his efforts. Even the siege of Vannes, which Edward personally led with determination, progressed very slowly; and the French had all the time they needed to prepare against him.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 93

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 94

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 95.
     * Froissart, book i, chapter 93

     ** Froissart, book i, chapter 94

     *** Froissart, book i, chapter 95.

The duke of Normandy, eldest son of Philip, appeared in Brittany at the head of an army of thirty thousand infantry and four thousand cavalry; and Edward was now obliged to draw together all his forces, and to intrench himself strongly before Vannes, where the duke of Normandy soon after arrived, and in a manner invested the besiegers. The garrison and the French camp were plentifully supplied with provisions; while the English, who durst not make any attempt upon the place in the presence of a superior army, drew all their subsistence from England, exposed to the hazards of the sea, and sometimes to those which arose from the fleet of the enemy.

The Duke of Normandy, the eldest son of Philip, showed up in Brittany leading an army of thirty thousand infantry and four thousand cavalry. Edward had to gather all his forces and set up strong defenses outside Vannes, where the Duke of Normandy arrived shortly after and effectively surrounded the besiegers. The garrison and the French camp had plenty of supplies, while the English, who were too intimidated to attack in front of a stronger army, had to rely on provisions shipped in from England, facing dangers at sea and occasionally threats from the enemy's fleet.

1243.

1243.

In this dangerous situation, Edward willingly hearkened to the mediation of the pope’s legates, the cardinals of Palestrine and Frescati, who endeavored to negotiate, if not a peace, at east a truce, between the two kingdoms. A treaty was concluded for a cessation of arms during three years;[*] and Edward had the abilities, notwithstanding his present dangerous situation, to procure to himself very equal and honorable terms, It was agreed that Vannes should be sequestered, during the truce, in the hands of the legates, to be disposed of afterwards as they pleased; and though Edward knew the partiality of the court of Rome towards his antagonists, he saved himself by this device from the dishonor of having undertaken a fruitless enterprise. It was also stipulated, that all prisoners should be released, that the places in Brittany should remain in the hands of the present possessors, and that the allies on both sides should be comprehended in the truce.[**] Edward, soon after concluding this treaty, embarked with his army for England.

In this risky situation, Edward willingly listened to the mediation of the pope’s legates, the cardinals of Palestrine and Frescati, who tried to negotiate, if not a peace, at least a truce between the two kingdoms. A treaty was reached for a ceasefire lasting three years;[*] and Edward was able, despite his current dangerous position, to secure very fair and honorable terms for himself. It was agreed that Vannes would be held by the legates during the truce, to be dealt with later as they saw fit; and although Edward was aware of the favoritism from the court of Rome towards his opponents, he avoided the dishonor of engaging in a pointless endeavor with this plan. It was also agreed that all prisoners would be freed, that the territories in Brittany would remain with their current owners, and that allies on both sides would be included in the truce.[**] Shortly after finalizing this treaty, Edward set sail with his army for England.

The truce, though calculated for a long time, was of very short duration; and each monarch endeavored to throw on the other the blame of its infraction. Of course the historians of the two countries differ in their account of the matter. It seems probable, however, as is affirmed by the French writers, that Edward, in consenting to the truce, had no other view than to extricate himself from a perilous situation into which he had fallen, and was afterwards very careless in observing it. In all the memorials which remain on this subject, he complains chiefly of the punishment inflicted on Oliver de Clisson, John de Montauban, and other Breton noblemen, who, he says, were partisans of the family of Mountfort, and consequently under the protection of England.[***] But it appears that, at the conclusion of the truce, those noblemen had openly, by their declarations and actions, embraced the cause of Charles of Blois;[****] and if they had entered into any secret correspondence and engagements with Edward, they were traitors to their party, and were justly punishable by Philip and Charles for their breach of faith; nor had Edward any ground of complaint against France for such severities.

The truce, although planned for a long time, was very short-lived; each king tried to shift the blame for its violation onto the other. Naturally, historians from both countries have different perspectives on this issue. However, it seems likely, as suggested by French writers, that Edward only agreed to the truce to get out of a dangerous situation he was in and was later quite careless in following it. In all the records that remain on this topic, he mainly complains about the punishment meted out to Oliver de Clisson, John de Montauban, and other Breton nobles, whom he claims were supporters of the Mountfort family and therefore under England’s protection. But it appears that, by the end of the truce, those nobles had openly declared and acted in favor of Charles of Blois; if they had engaged in any secret communications or agreements with Edward, they were betraying their own side and were rightly punished by Philip and Charles for their breach of loyalty. Edward had no valid reason to complain about such harsh actions from France.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 99. Avesbury, p. 102.

     ** Heming. p. 359.

     *** Rymer. vol. v. p. 453, 454, 459, 466, 496. Heming. 376.

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 96, p. 100.
     * Froissard, book i, chapter 99. Avesbury, page 102.

     ** Heming, page 359.

     *** Rymer, volume v, pages 453, 454, 459, 466, 496. Heming, page 376.

     **** Froissard, book i, chapter 96, page 100.

1344.

1344.

But when he laid these pretended injuries before the parliament, whom he affected to consult on all occasions, that assembly entered into the quarrel, advised the king not to be amused by a fraudulent truce, and granted him supplies for the renewal of the war: the counties were charged with a fifteenth for two years, and the boroughs with a tenth. The clergy consented to give a tenth for three years.

But when he presented these fake injuries to the parliament, which he liked to consult on every occasion, that assembly got involved in the conflict, advised the king not to be fooled by a deceptive truce, and provided him with funds to continue the war: the counties were taxed with a fifteenth for two years, and the boroughs with a tenth. The clergy agreed to contribute a tenth for three years.

These supplies enabled the king to complete his military preparations; and he sent his cousin, Henry, earl of Derby, son of the earl of Lancaster, into Guienne, for the defence of that province.[*] This prince, the most accomplished in the English court, possessed to a high degree the virtues of justice and humanity, as well as those of valor and conduct;[**] and not content with protecting and cherishing the province committed to his care, he made a successful invasion on the enemy. He attacked the count of Lisle, the French general, at Bergerac, beat him from his intrenchments, and took the place. He reduced a great part of Perigord, and continually advanced in his conquests, till the count of Lisle, having collected an army of ten or twelve thousand men, sat down before Auberoche, in hopes of recovering that place, which had fallen into the hands of the English.

These supplies allowed the king to finish his military preparations, and he sent his cousin, Henry, Earl of Derby, son of the Earl of Lancaster, to Guienne to defend that province.[*] This prince, the most skilled in the English court, embodied a high level of justice and compassion, as well as bravery and leadership qualities;[**] and not satisfied with just protecting and nurturing the province under his care, he launched a successful offensive against the enemy. He confronted the Count of Lisle, the French general, at Bergerac, drove him from his fortifications, and captured the location. He conquered a large part of Perigord and continued to expand his victories until the Count of Lisle, having gathered an army of ten to twelve thousand men, laid siege to Auberoche, hoping to reclaim the territory that had fallen into English hands.

1345.

1345.

The earl of Derby came upon him by surprise with only a thousand cavalry, threw the French into disorder, pushed his advantage, and obtained a complete victory. Lisle himself, with many considerable nobles, was taken prisoner.[***] After this important success, Derby made a rapid progress in subduing the French provinces. He took Monsegur, Monpesat, Villefranche, Miremont, and Tonnins, with the fortress of Damassen. Aiguillon, a fortress deemed impregnable, fell into his hands from the cowardice of the governor. Angouleme was surrendered after a short siege. The only place where he met with considerable resistance, was Reole, which, however, was at last reduced, after a siege of above nine weeks.[****] He made an attempt on Blaye, but thought it more prudent to raise the siege than waste his time before a place of small importance.[*****]

The Earl of Derby surprised him with just a thousand cavalry, threw the French into chaos, seized the moment, and secured a complete victory. Lisle himself, along with several notable nobles, was captured. [***] After this significant success, Derby quickly advanced in conquering the French provinces. He took Monsegur, Monpesat, Villefranche, Miremont, and Tonnins, along with the fortress of Damassen. Aiguillon, a fortress considered impregnable, fell into his hands due to the cowardice of the governor. Angouleme surrendered after a brief siege. The only place where he faced substantial resistance was Reole, which he eventually captured after a siege lasting over nine weeks. [****] He attempted to attack Blaye but decided it was wiser to lift the siege rather than waste time on a location of little significance. [*****]

     * Froissart, liv. i. chap. 103. Avesbury, p. 121.

     ** It is reported of this prince, that having once, before
     the attack of a town, promised the soldiers the plunder, one
     private man happened to fall upon a great chest full of
     money, which he immediately brought to the earl as thinking
     it too great for himself to keep possession of it. But Derby
     told him, that his promise did not depend on the greatness
     or smallness of the sum; and ordered him to keep it all for
     his own use.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 104.

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 110.

     * Froissart, liv. i. chap. 103. Avesbury, p. 121.

     ** It’s said that this prince, having promised the soldiers the loot before attacking a town, a private soldier found a huge chest full of money and brought it straight to the earl, thinking it was too much for him to keep. But Derby told him that his promise didn't depend on the amount and ordered him to keep it all for himself.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 104.

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 110.

1346.

1346.

The reason why Derby was permitted to make, without opposition, such progress on the side of Guienne, was the difficulties under which the French finances then labored, and which had obliged Philip to lay on new impositions, particularly the duty on salt, to the great discontent, and almost mutiny, of his subjects. But after the court of France was supplied with money, great preparations were made: and the duke of Normandy, attended by the duke of Burgundy and other great nobility, led towards Guienne a powerful army, which the English could not think of resisting in the open field. The earl of Derby stood on the defensive, and allowed the French to carry on at leisure the siege of Angouleme, which was their first enterprise. John Lord Norwich, the governor, after a brave and vigorous defence, found himself reduced to such extremities as obliged him to employ a stratagem, in order to save his garrison, and to prevent his being reduced to surrender at discretion. He appeared on the walls, and desired a parley with the duke of Normandy. The prince there told Norwich, that he supposed he intended to capitulate. “Not at all,” replied the governor: “but as to-morrow is the feast of the Virgin, to whom I know that you, sir, as well as myself, bear a great devotion, I desire a cessation of arms for that day.” The proposal was agreed to; and Norwich, having ordered his forces to prepare all their baggage, marched out next day, and advanced towards the French camp. The besiegers, imagining they were to be attacked, ran to their arms; but Norwich sent a messenger to the duke, reminding him of his engagement. The duke, who piqued himself on faithfully keeping his word exclaimed, “I see the governor has outwitted me: but let us be content with gaining the place.” And the English were allowed to pass through the camp unmolested.[*] After some other successes, the duke of Normandy laid siege to Aiguillon; and as the natural strength of the fortress, together with a brave garrison under the command of the earl of Pembroke and Sir Walter Manny, rendered it impossible to take the place by assault, he purposed, after making several fruitless attacks,[**] to reduce it by famine: but before he could finish this enterprise, he was called to another quarter of the kingdom by one of the greatest disasters that ever befell the French monarchy.[***]

The reason Derby was able to make such progress on the side of Guienne without any opposition was due to the struggles of the French finances at the time, which forced Philip to impose new taxes, especially on salt, causing great discontent and almost a mutiny among his subjects. However, once the French court had more funding, significant preparations were made: the Duke of Normandy, accompanied by the Duke of Burgundy and other high-ranking nobles, led a strong army towards Guienne, which the English felt they could not face in open battle. The Earl of Derby took a defensive stance and allowed the French to carry on with the siege of Angouleme, their first objective. John Lord Norwich, the governor, after a brave and vigorous defense, found himself in such a dire situation that he had to resort to a clever tactic to save his garrison and avoid being forced to surrender completely. He appeared on the walls and requested a meeting with the Duke of Normandy. The prince assumed Norwich wanted to negotiate a surrender. “Not at all,” the governor replied, “but since tomorrow is the feast of the Virgin, to whom I know you, sir, as well as I, have great devotion, I ask for a ceasefire for that day.” The proposal was accepted; and Norwich, having ordered his troops to gather their belongings, marched out the next day and approached the French camp. The besiegers, thinking they were about to be attacked, jumped to their arms, but Norwich sent a messenger to the duke, reminding him of their agreement. The duke, who prided himself on keeping his word, exclaimed, “I see the governor has outsmarted me: but let's be satisfied with taking the place.” And the English were allowed to pass through the camp without being harmed. After some other successes, the Duke of Normandy laid siege to Aiguillon; and since the natural strength of the fortress, along with a brave garrison led by the Earl of Pembroke and Sir Walter Manny, made it impossible to take the place by assault, he planned to reduce it through starvation after several unsuccessful attacks. However, before he could complete this task, he was called to another part of the kingdom due to one of the greatest disasters that ever struck the French monarchy.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 120.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 121.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 134.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 120.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 121.

     *** Froissart, book 1, chapter 134.

Edward, informed by the earl of Derby of the great danger to which Guienne was exposed, had prepared a force with which he intended in person to bring it relief. He embarked at Southampton on board a fleet of near a thousand sail of all dimensions; and carried with him, besides all the chief nobility of England, his eldest son, the prince of Wales, now fifteen years of age. The winds proved long contrary;[*] and the king, in despair of arriving in time at Guienne, was at last persuaded, by Geoffrey d’Harcourt, to change the destination of his enterprise. This nobleman was a Norman by birth, had long made a considerable figure in the court of France, and was generally esteemed for his personal merit and his valor; but being disobliged and persecuted by Philip, he had fled into England; had recommended himself to Edward, who was an excellent judge of men; and had succeeded to Robert of Artois in the invidious office of exciting and assisting the king in every enterprise against his native country. He had long insisted, that an expedition to Normandy promised, in the present circumstances, more favorable success than one to Guienne; that Edward would find the northern provinces almost destitute of military force, which had been drawn to the south; that they were full of flourishing cities, whose plunder would enrich the English; that their cultivated fields, as yet unspoiled by war, would supply them with plenty of provisions; and that the neighborhood of the capital rendered every event of importance in those quarters.[**] These reasons, which had not before been duly weighed by Edward, began to make more impression after the disappointments which he had met with in his voyage to Guienne: he ordered his fleet to sail to Normandy, and safely disembarked his army at La Hogue.

Edward, alerted by the Earl of Derby about the serious threat to Guienne, had prepared a force that he intended to lead himself to provide aid. He set sail from Southampton on a fleet of nearly a thousand ships of various sizes, bringing along not only the main nobility of England but also his eldest son, the Prince of Wales, who was now fifteen. The winds were continuously against them; and in his frustration over not reaching Guienne in time, the king was ultimately convinced by Geoffrey d’Harcourt to change his plans. This nobleman was originally from Normandy and had made a significant name for himself at the French court, being well-respected for his personal qualities and bravery; however, after clashing with and being persecuted by Philip, he had fled to England. He had gained Edward's favor, who was good at judging character, and had taken over from Robert of Artois in the challenging role of inciting and supporting the king in every venture against his homeland. He had long argued that an expedition to Normandy offered better chances of success than going to Guienne given the current circumstances. He pointed out that the northern provinces were nearly stripped of military resources, as they had been moved south; that those provinces were filled with prosperous cities ripe for plunder, which would benefit the English; that their cultivated fields, still untouched by war, would provide ample supplies; and that the proximity to the capital meant that any significant events happening in those areas would be crucial. These reasons, which Edward had not seriously considered before, started to resonate more after the setbacks he encountered in his attempt to reach Guienne: he ordered his fleet to head to Normandy and successfully landed his army at La Hogue.

     * Avesbury, p. 123.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 121.
     * Avesbury, p. 123.

     ** Froissard, book 1, chapter 121.

This army, which, during the course of the ensuing campaign, was crowned with the most splendid success, consisted of four thousand men at arms, ten thousand archers, ten thousand Welsh infantry, and six thousand Irish. The Welsh and the Irish were light, disorderly troops, fitter for doing execution in a pursuit, or scouring the country, than for any stable action. The bow was always esteemed a frivolous weapon, where true military discipline was known, and regular bodies of well-armed foot maintained. The only solid force in this army were the men at arms; and even these, being cavalry, were on that account much inferior in the shock of battle to good infantry: and as the whole were new-levied troops, we are led to entertain a very mean idea of the military force of those ages, which, being ignorant of every other art, had not properly cultivated the art of war itself, the sole object of general attention.

This army, which achieved remarkable success during the upcoming campaign, was made up of four thousand knights, ten thousand archers, ten thousand Welsh infantry, and six thousand Irish troops. The Welsh and Irish were light, disorganized troops, better suited for pursuing enemies or scouting the area than for any structured combat. The bow was often seen as a trivial weapon in places where true military discipline and well-armed infantry were present. The only solid force in this army was the knights; however, since they were cavalry, they were much less effective in battle compared to good infantry. And since the entire force was made up of newly recruited troops, it gives us a low opinion of the military capabilities of that time, which, lacking knowledge in other disciplines, had not properly developed the art of warfare itself, the main focus of their attention.

The king created the earl of Arundel constable of his army and the earls of Warwick and Harcourt mareschals: he bestowed the honor of knighthood on the prince of Wales and several of the young nobility, immediately upon his landing. After destroying all the ships in La Hogue, Barfleur, and Cherbourg, he spread his army over the whole country, and gave them an unbounded license of burning, spoiling, and plundering every place of which they became masters. The loose discipline then prevalent could not be much hurt by these disorderly practices; and Edward took care to prevent any surprise, by giving orders to his troops, however they might disperse themselves in the day-time, always to quarter themselves at night near the main body. In this manner, Montebourg, Carentan, St. Lo, Valognes, and other places in the Cotentin, were pillaged without resistance; and a universal consternation was spread over the province.[*]

The king appointed the earl of Arundel as the constable of his army and named the earls of Warwick and Harcourt as marshals. He honored the prince of Wales and several young nobles with knighthood right after landing. After destroying all the ships in La Hogue, Barfleur, and Cherbourg, he deployed his army throughout the country and gave them free rein to burn, loot, and plunder wherever they took control. The lax discipline at the time didn't help curb these chaotic actions, and Edward made sure to prevent any surprise attacks by instructing his troops to always camp near the main group, even if they scattered during the day. As a result, Montebourg, Carentan, St. Lo, Valognes, and other locations in the Cotentin were looted without any resistance, creating widespread panic across the province.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 122.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 122.

The intelligence of this unexpected invasion soon reached Paris, and threw Philip into great perplexity. He issued orders, however, for levying forces in all quarters, and despatched the count of Eu, constable of France, and the count of Tancarville, with a body of troops, to the defence of Caen, a populous and commercial but open city, which lay in the neighborhood of the English army. The temptation of so rich a prize soon allured Edward to approach it; and the inhabitants, encouraged by their numbers, and by the reënforcements which they daily received from the country, ventured to meet him in the field. But their courage failed them on the first shock: they fled with precipitation: the counts of Eu and Tancarville were taken prisoners: the victors entered the city along with the vanquished, and a furious massacre commenced, without distinction of age, sex, or condition. The citizens, in despair, barricaded their and assaulted the English with stones, bricks, and every missile weapon: the English made way by fire to the destruction of the citizens; till Edward, anxious to save both his spoil and his soldiers, stopped the massacre; and having obliged the inhabitants to lay down their arms, gave his troops license to begin a more regular and less hazardous plunder of the city. The pillage continued for three days: the king reserved for his own share the jewels, plate, silks, fine cloth, and fine linen; and he bestowed all the remainder of the spoil on his army. The whole was embarked on board the ships, and sent over to England, together with three hundred of the richest citizens of Caen, whose ransom was an additional profit, which he expected afterwards to levy.[*] This dismal scene passed in the presence of two cardinal legates, who had come to negotiate a peace between the kingdoms.

The news of this sudden invasion quickly reached Paris, leaving Philip in deep confusion. However, he ordered troops to be gathered from all areas and sent the Count of Eu, the constable of France, and the Count of Tancarville with a force to defend Caen, a busy commercial city that was exposed and close to the English army. The lure of such a valuable target soon drew Edward nearer; encouraged by their numbers and the reinforcements arriving daily, the locals decided to confront him in battle. But their bravery faded at the first clash: they fled in a panic. The Counts of Eu and Tancarville were captured, and the victors entered the city alongside the defeated, leading to a brutal massacre that spared no one, regardless of age, gender, or status. In despair, the citizens barricaded themselves and attacked the English with stones, bricks, and any other available weapons. The English responded with fire, causing devastation among the citizens until Edward, wanting to protect both his loot and his men, halted the killing. After forcing the inhabitants to surrender, he allowed his troops to begin a more organized and safer looting of the city. The pillaging lasted for three days: the king kept the jewels, silverware, silks, fine cloth, and linens for himself, while distributing the rest of the spoils among his army. Everything was loaded onto ships and sent back to England, along with three hundred of Caen's wealthiest citizens, whose ransom would provide additional profit that he expected to collect later. This grim scene occurred in the presence of two cardinal legates, who had come to negotiate peace between the kingdoms.

The king moved next to Rouen, in hopes of treating that city in the same manner; but found that the bridge over the Seine was already broken down, and that the king of France himself was arrived there with his army. He marched along the banks of that river towards Paris, destroying the whole country, and every town and village which he met with on his road.[**] Some of his light troops carried their ravages even to the gates of Paris; and the royal palace of St. Germains, together with Nanterre, Ruelle, and other villages, was reduced to ashes within sight of the capital.

The king moved next to Rouen, hoping to treat that city the same way; but he found that the bridge over the Seine was already destroyed and that the king of France had arrived there with his army. He marched along the riverbanks toward Paris, destroying everything in the countryside and every town and village he encountered along the way.[**] Some of his light troops even brought their destruction to the gates of Paris; and the royal palace of St. Germain, along with Nanterre, Ruelle, and other villages, was reduced to ash within sight of the capital.

     * Froissord, liv. i. chap. 124.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 125.
     * Froissard, vol. 1, chapter 124.

     ** Froissard, vol. 1, chapter 125.

The English intended to pass the river at Poissy, but found the French army encamped on the opposite banks, and the bridge at that place, as well as all others over the Seine, broken down by orders from Philip. Edward now saw that the French meant to enclose him in their country, in hopes of attacking him with advantage on all sides: but he saved himself by a stratagem from this perilous situation. He gave his army orders to dislodge, and to advance farther up the Seine; but immediately returning by the same road, he arrived at Poissy, which the enemy had already quitted, in order to attend his motions. He repaired the bridge with incredible celerity, passed over his army, and having thus disengaged himself from the enemy, advanced by quick marches towards Flanders. His vanguard, commanded by Harcourt, met with the townsmen of Amiens, who were hastening to reënforce their king, and defeated them with great slaughter;[*] he passed by Beauvais, and burned the suburbs of that city: but as he approached the Somme, he found himself in the same difficulty as before; all the bridges on that river were either broken down or strongly guarded: an army, under the command of Godemar de Faye, was stationed on the opposite banks: Philip was advancing on him from the other quarter, with an army of a hundred thousand men; and he was thus exposed to the danger of being enclosed, and of starving in an enemy’s country. In this extremity, he published a reward to any one that should bring him intelligence of a passage over the Somme. A peasant, called Gobin Agace, whose name has been preserved by the share which he had in these important transactions, was tempted on this occasion to betray the interests of his country; and he informed Edward of a ford below Abbeville, which had a sound bottom, and might be passed without difficulty at low water.[**] The king hastened thither, but found Godemar de Faye on the opposite banks. Being urged by necessity, he deliberated not a moment; but threw himself into the river, sword in hand, at the head of his troops; drove the enemy from their station; and pursued them to a distance on the plain.[***] The French army under Philip arrived at the ford, when the rearguard of the English were passing: so narrow was the escape which Edward, by his prudence and celerity, made from this danger! The rising of the tide prevented the French king from following him over the ford, and obliged that prince to take his route over the bridge at Abbeville; by which some time was lost.

The English planned to cross the river at Poissy, but found the French army camped on the opposite banks. The bridge there, along with all others over the Seine, had been destroyed on Philip's orders. Edward realized that the French aimed to trap him in their territory, hoping to attack him from all sides. To escape this dangerous situation, he devised a clever plan. He ordered his army to leave and march further up the Seine; then, he quickly returned by the same route to Poissy, which the enemy had already abandoned to follow his movements. He repaired the bridge with amazing speed, crossed his army over, and thus freed himself from the enemy. He then quickly advanced towards Flanders. His vanguard, led by Harcourt, encountered the townspeople of Amiens, who were rushing to reinforce their king, and defeated them decisively. He passed by Beauvais and burned its suburbs. However, as he neared the Somme, he faced the same issue as before; all the bridges on that river were either destroyed or heavily guarded. An army led by Godemar de Faye was stationed on the opposite banks, while Philip was advancing on him from another direction with an army of a hundred thousand men. Edward was at risk of being trapped and starving in enemy territory. In this crisis, he offered a reward to anyone who could provide information on a way to cross the Somme. A peasant named Gobin Agace, whose name has been remembered because of his role in these significant events, was tempted to betray his country. He informed Edward of a ford below Abbeville, which had a solid bottom and could be crossed easily at low tide. The king quickly headed there but found Godemar de Faye on the opposite banks. Faced with necessity, he didn't hesitate for a moment; he jumped into the river, sword in hand, leading his troops, drove the enemy from their position, and chased them away across the plain. The French army under Philip arrived at the ford just as the rearguard of the English were crossing, showing how narrowly Edward escaped this danger through his quick thinking and speed! The rising tide prevented the French king from following him over the ford, forcing him to take the bridge at Abbeville instead, which caused a delay.

     * Froissard, liv, i. chap. 125.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 126,127

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 127.
     * Froissart, Book I, Chapter 125.

     ** Froissart, Book I, Chapters 126, 127.

     *** Froissart, Book I, Chapter 127.

It is natural to think that Philip, at the head of so vast an army, was impatient to take revenge on the English, and to prevent the disgrace to which he must be exposed if an inferior enemy should be allowed, after ravaging so great a part of his kingdom, to escape with impunity. Edward also was sensible that such must be the object of the French monarch; and as he had advanced but a little way before his enemy, he saw the danger of precipitating his march over the plains of Picardy, and of exposing his rear to the insults of the numerous cavalry in which the French camp abounded. He took, therefore, a prudent resolution: he chose his ground with advantage near the village of Crecy; he disposed his army in excellent older; he determined to await in tranquillity the arrival of the enemy; and he hoped that their eagerness to engage, and to prevent his retreat, after all their past disappointments would hurry them on to some rash and ill-concerted action. He drew up his army on a gentle ascent, and divided them into three lines: the first was commanded by the prince of Wales, and under him by the earls of Warwick and Oxford, by Harcourt, and by the lords Chandos, Holland, and other noblemen: the earls of Arundel and Northampton, with the lords Willoughby, Basset, Roos, and Sir Lewis Tufton, were at the head of the second line: he took to himself the command of the third division, by which he purposed either to bring succor to the two first lines, or to secure a retreat in case of any misfortune, or to push his advantages against the enemy. He had likewise the precaution to throw up trenches on his flanks, in order to secure himself from the numerous bodies of the French who might assail him from that quarter; and he placed all his baggage behind him in a wood, which he also secured by an intrenchment.[*]

It’s natural to think that Philip, leading such a large army, was eager to take revenge on the English and to avoid the humiliation of allowing a weaker enemy to escape unpunished after devastating so much of his kingdom. Edward was also aware that this was likely the French king’s goal; since he had only advanced slightly ahead of his enemy, he recognized the risk of rushing his march across the plains of Picardy and exposing his rear to the numerous cavalry that the French camp had. Therefore, he made a wise decision: he chose advantageous ground near the village of Crécy, organized his army excellently, decided to calmly wait for the enemy's arrival, and hoped that their eagerness to engage, fueled by their previous disappointments, would push them into making some reckless and poorly planned moves. He positioned his army on a gentle slope and divided it into three lines: the first was led by the Prince of Wales, and beneath him were the Earls of Warwick and Oxford, Harcourt, and Lords Chandos, Holland, and other nobles. The Earls of Arundel and Northampton, along with Lords Willoughby, Basset, Roos, and Sir Lewis Tufton, led the second line. Edward himself commanded the third division, planning to either support the first two lines, secure a retreat in case of misfortune, or capitalize on any advantages against the enemy. He also took the precaution of digging trenches on his flanks to protect himself from the large French forces that might attack from that side, and he placed all his baggage behind him in a wood, which he also fortified with an intrenchment.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 128.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 128.

The skill and order of this disposition, with the tranquillity in which it was made, served extremely to compose the minds of the soldiers; and the king, that he might further inspirit them, rode through the ranks with such an air of cheerfulness and alacrity, as conveyed the highest confidence into every beholder. He pointed out to them the necessity to which they were reduced, and the certain and inevitable destruction which awaited them, if, in their present situation, enclosed on all hands in an enemy’s country, they trusted to any thing but their own valor, or gave that enemy an opportunity of taking revenge for the many insults and indignities which they had of late put upon him. He reminded them of the visible ascendant which they had hitherto maintained over all the bodies of French troops that had fallen in their way; and assured them, that the superior numbers of the army which at present hovered over them, gave them not greater force, but was an advantage easily compensated by the order in which he had placed his own army, and the resolution which he expected from them. He demanded nothing, he said, but that they would imitate his own example, and that of the prince of Wales: and as the honor, the lives, the liberties of all, were now exposed to the same danger, he was confident that they would make one common effort to extricate themselves from the present difficulties, and that their united courage would give them the victory over all their enemies.

The skill and organization of this setup, along with the calmness in which it was executed, really helped to settle the minds of the soldiers. The king, wanting to boost their spirits even more, rode through the ranks with a cheerful and energetic attitude that inspired great confidence in everyone who saw him. He pointed out the dire situation they were in and the certain doom that awaited them if they relied on anything other than their own bravery, or if they gave the enemy a chance to retaliate for the many insults and humiliations they had recently inflicted. He reminded them of the clear advantage they had previously held over all the French troops they had encountered and assured them that the superior numbers of the enemy's army hovering over them didn't provide more strength, as their own army's organization and the determination he expected from them easily compensated for it. He asked for nothing more than for them to follow his example and that of the Prince of Wales, and since the honor, lives, and freedoms of all were now at risk, he was confident they would make a united effort to overcome their current challenges, and that their combined courage would lead them to victory over all their enemies.

It is related by some historians,[*] that Edward, besides the resources which he found in his own genius and presence of mind, employed also a new invention against the enemy, and placed in his front some pieces of artillery, the first that had yet been made use of on any remarkable occasion in Europe. This is the epoch of one of the most singular discoveries that has been made among men; a discovery which changed by degrees the whole art of war, and by consequence many circumstances in the political government of Europe. But the ignorance of that age in the mechanical arts, rendered the progress of this new invention very slow. The artillery first framed were so clumsy, and of such difficult management, that men were not immediately sensible of their use and efficacy and even to the present times improvements have been continually making on this furious engine, which, though it seemed contrived for the destruction of mankind, and the overthrow of empires, has in the issue rendered battles less bloody, and has given greater stability to civil societies. Nations, by its means, have been brought more to a level: conquests have become less frequent and rapid: success in war has been reduced nearly to be a matter of calculation: and any nation, overmatched by its enemies, either yields to their demands or secures itself by alliances against their violence and invasion.

Some historians relate that Edward, in addition to relying on his own genius and quick thinking, also used a new invention against the enemy. He placed some pieces of artillery in front of him, the first time such technology had been used in a significant way in Europe. This marked the beginning of one of the most remarkable discoveries in human history, a discovery that gradually transformed the entire art of war and, as a result, many aspects of Europe's political landscape. However, the lack of mechanical knowledge in that era meant that the development of this new invention was very slow. The artillery that was first created was so awkward and difficult to handle that people did not immediately recognize its usefulness and effectiveness. Even today, improvements on this powerful weapon continue to be made. Although it seemed designed for destruction and the downfall of empires, in the end, it has made battles less bloody and provided greater stability to civil societies. Nations have been brought more to a level playing field; conquests have become less common and swift; success in war is now almost a calculated affair; and if a nation finds itself outmatched by its enemies, it either complies with their demands or secures itself through alliances against their aggression and invasion.

The invention of artillery was at this time known in France as well as in England;[**] but Philip, in his hurry to overtake the enemy, had probably left his cannon behind him, which he regarded as a useless encumbrance. All his other movements discovered the same imprudence and precipitation. Impelled by anger, a dangerous counsellor, and trusting to the great superiority of his numbers, he thought that all depended on forcing an engagement with the English; and that if he could once reach the enemy in their retreat, the victory on his side was certain and inevitable. He made a hasty march, in some confusion, from Abbeville; but after he had advanced above two leagues, some gentlemen, whom he had sent before to take a view of the enemy, returned to him, and brought him intelligence that they had seen the English drawn up in Bombarda great order, and awaiting his arrival.

The invention of artillery was known in both France and England at this time;[**] but Philip, eager to catch up with the enemy, probably left his cannons behind, considering them a useless burden. All his other actions showed the same recklessness and urgency. Driven by anger, a dangerous advisor, and relying on his superior numbers, he believed that everything depended on forcing a confrontation with the English. He thought that if he could just reach the retreating enemy, victory would be certain and inevitable. He made a hasty and somewhat chaotic march from Abbeville; however, after advancing more than two leagues, some gentlemen he had sent ahead to scout the enemy returned with news that they had seen the English neatly arranged and waiting for him.

     * Jean Villani, lib. xii. cap. 66.

     ** Du Cange, Glass, in verb.
     * Jean Villani, lib. xii. cap. 66.

     ** Du Cange, Glass, in verb.

They therefore devised him to defer the combat till the ensuing day, when his army would have recovered from their fatigue, and might be disposed into better order than their present hurry had permitted them to observe. Philip assented to this counsel; but the former precipitation of his march, and the impatience of the French nobility, made it impracticable for him to put it in execution. One division pressed upon another: orders to stop were not seasonably conveyed to all of them: this immense body was not governed by sufficient discipline to be manageable; and the French army, imperfectly formed into three lines, arrived, already fatigued and disordered, in presence of the enemy. The first line, consisting of fifteen thousand Genoese cross-bow men, was commanded by Anthony Doria and Charles Grimaldi: the second was led by the count of Alençon, brother to the king: the king himself was at the head of the third. Besides the French monarch, there were no less than three crowned heads in this engagement; the king of Bohemia, the king of the Romans, his son, and the king of Majorca; with all the nobility and great vassals of the crown of France. The army now consisted of above one hundred and twenty thousand men, more than three times the number of the enemy. But the prudence of one man was superior to the advantage of all this force and splendor.

They decided to postpone the battle until the next day, so his army could recover from their exhaustion and be arranged better than the chaotic situation allowed at the moment. Philip agreed to this suggestion; however, the earlier rush of his march and the impatience of the French nobility made it impossible for him to follow through. One unit pressed against another: orders to halt weren’t communicated quickly enough to everyone: this massive force lacked the necessary discipline to be controlled; and the French army, poorly organized into three lines, arrived before the enemy already tired and in disarray. The first line, made up of fifteen thousand Genoese crossbowmen, was led by Anthony Doria and Charles Grimaldi; the second was commanded by the Count of Alençon, the king’s brother; and the king himself was at the head of the third line. In addition to the French king, there were three other crowned heads involved in this battle: the King of Bohemia, the King of the Romans, his son, and the King of Majorca, along with all the nobility and major vassals of the French crown. The army now numbered over one hundred twenty thousand men, more than three times the size of the enemy. But the wisdom of one man outweighed the advantage of all that force and grandeur.

The English, on the approach of the enemy, kept their ranks firm and immovable; and the Genoese first began the attack. There had happened, a little before the engagement, a thunder shower, which had moistened and relaxed the strings of the Genoese cross-bows; their arrows for this reason fell short of the enemy. The English archers, taking their bows out of their cases, poured in a shower of arrows upon this multitude who were opposed to them, and soon threw them into disorder. The Genoese fell back upon the heavy-armed cavalry of the count of Alençon;[*] who, enraged at their cowardice, ordered his troops to put them to the sword.

The English, as the enemy approached, held their formation steady and unyielding; and the Genoese were the first to launch the attack. Just before the battle, a thunderstorm had soaked and loosened the strings of the Genoese crossbows; because of this, their arrows fell short of the enemy. The English archers, drawing their bows from their cases, unleashed a rain of arrows on the crowd facing them, quickly disrupting their ranks. The Genoese retreated to the heavily armed cavalry of the count of Alençon; who, furious at their cowardice, ordered his troops to strike them down.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 130.
* Froissard, liv. i. chap. 130.

The artillery fired amidst the crowd; the English archers continued to send in their arrows among them; and nothing was to be seen in that vast body but hurry and confusion, terror and dismay. The young prince of Wales had the presence of mind to take advantage of this situation, and to lead on his line to the charge. The French cavalry, however, recovering somewhat their order, and encouraged by the example of their leader, made a stout resistance; and having at last cleared themselves of the Genoese runaways, advanced upon their enemies, and by their superior numbers began to hem them round. The earls of Arundel and Northampton now advanced their line to sustain the prince, who, ardent in his first feats of arms, set an example of valor which was imitated by all his followers. The battle became for some time hot and dangerous, and the earl of Warwick, apprehensive of the event, from the superior numbers of the French, despatched a messenger to the king, and entreated him to send succors to the relief of the prince. Edward had chosen his station on the top of the hill; and he surveyed in tranquillity the scene of action. When the messenger accosted him, his first question was, whether the prince were slain or wounded. On receiving an answer in the negative, “Return,” said he, “to my son, and tell him that I reserve the honor of the day to him: I am confident that he will show himself worthy of the honor of knighthood which I so lately conferred upon him: he will be able, without my assistance, to repel the enemy.”[*] This speech, being reported to the prince and his attendants, inspired them with fresh courage: they made an attack with redoubled vigor on the French, in which the count of Alençon was slain: that whole line of cavalry was thrown into disorder: the riders were killed or dismounted: the Welsh infantry rushed into the throng, and with their long knives cut the throats of all who had fallen; nor was any quarter given that day by the victors.[**]

The artillery fired into the crowd, while the English archers kept shooting arrows among them, creating nothing but chaos, fear, and confusion in that vast mass of people. The young prince of Wales smartly seized this opportunity and led his troops into charge. The French cavalry, however, managed to regain some order and, encouraged by their leader's example, put up a strong fight. They eventually shook off the fleeing Genoese and advanced on their enemies, beginning to surround them with their superior numbers. The earls of Arundel and Northampton pushed forward their line to support the prince, who, eager in his first combat, set an example of bravery that his followers eagerly copied. The battle turned intensely fierce and dangerous, and the earl of Warwick, worried about the outcome due to the French's larger numbers, sent a messenger to the king, pleading for reinforcements to help the prince. Edward had situated himself at the top of the hill and calmly observed the battle below. When the messenger approached him, his first question was whether the prince had been killed or injured. Upon hearing that he had not, he replied, “Go back to my son and tell him that I am reserving the honor of the day for him. I’m confident he will prove himself worthy of the knighthood I recently bestowed upon him and will be able to fend off the enemy without my help.” This message, delivered to the prince and his men, filled them with renewed courage: they launched an attack against the French with even more vigor, resulting in the death of the Count of Alençon and throwing the entire line of cavalry into chaos. The riders were either killed or thrown off their horses, and the Welsh infantry surged into the mix, using their long knives to slit the throats of all who had fallen; no mercy was shown by the victors that day.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 130.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 130.
     * Froissart, book i, chapter 130.

     ** Froissart, book i, chapter 130.

The king of France advanced in vain with the rear to sustain the line commanded by his brother: he found them already discomfited; and the example of their rout increased the confusion which was before but too prevalent in his own body. He had himself a horse killed under him: he was remounted; and, though left almost alone, he seemed still determined to maintain the combat; when John of Hainault seized the reins of his bridle, turned about his horse, and carried him off the field of battle. The whole French army took to flight, and was followed and put to the sword without mercy by the enemy, till the darkness of the night put an end to the pursuit. The king, on his return to the camp, flew into the arms of the prince of Wales, and exclaimed, “My brave son persevere in your honorable course: you are my son! for valiantly have you acquitted yourself to-day: you have shown yourself worthy of empire.”[*]

The king of France moved forward in vain to support the line led by his brother: he found them already defeated, and their example only added to the chaos that was already too widespread in his own forces. He had a horse shot out from under him, but he got back on and, though he was nearly alone, he seemed determined to continue fighting. Just then, John of Hainault took the reins of his horse, turned him around, and led him off the battlefield. The entire French army fled and was ruthlessly pursued and slaughtered by the enemy until nightfall brought an end to the chase. When the king returned to the camp, he embraced the Prince of Wales and exclaimed, “My brave son, keep following your noble path: you are my son! You have fought valiantly today and shown yourself worthy of ruling.”[*]

This battle, which is known by the name of the battle of Crecy, began after three o’clock in the afternoon, and continued till evening. The next morning was foggy; and as the English observed that many of the enemy had lost their way in the night and in the mist, they employed a stratagem to bring them into their power: they erected on the eminences some French standards which they had taken in the battle, and all who were allured by this false signal were put to the sword, and no quarter given them. In excuse for this inhumanity, it was alleged that the French king had given like orders to his troops; but the real reason probably was, that the English, in their present situation, did not choose to be encumbered with prisoners. On the day of battle, and on the ensuing, there fell, by a moderate computation, one thousand two hundred French knights, one thousand four hundred gentlemen, four thousand men at arms, besides about thirty thousand of inferior rank:[**] many of the principal nobility of France, the dukes of Lorraine and Bourbon, the earls of Flanders, Blois, Vaudemont, Aumale, were left on the field of battle. The kings also of Bohemia and Majorca were slain: the fate of the former was remarkable: he was blind from age; but being resolved to hazard his person, and set an example to others, he ordered the reins of his bridle to be tied on each side to the horses of two gentlemen of his train; and his dead body, and those of his attendants, were afterwards found among the slain, with their horses standing by them in that situation.[***] His crest was three ostrich feathers; and his motto these German words, Ich dien,—“I serve;” which the prince of Wales and his successors adopted in memorial of this great victory. The action may seem no less remarkable for the small loss sustained by the English, than for the great slaughter of the French: there were killed in it only one esquire and three knights,[****] and very few of inferior rank; a demonstration that the prudent disposition planned by Edward, and the disorderly attack made by the French, had rendered the whole rather a rout than a battle, which was indeed the common case with engagements in those times.

This battle, known as the Battle of Crecy, started after three o'clock in the afternoon and went on until evening. The next morning was foggy, and as the English noticed that many enemy soldiers were lost in the night and mist, they came up with a tactic to take advantage of this: they set up some French flags they had captured during the battle on the high ground. Anyone who was drawn in by this false signal was killed, with no mercy shown. To justify this brutality, it was claimed that the French king had given similar commands to his troops; however, the real reason was likely that the English, given their current situation, didn’t want to deal with prisoners. On the day of the battle and the day after, an estimated one thousand two hundred French knights, one thousand four hundred gentlemen, four thousand men-at-arms, and about thirty thousand lower-ranking soldiers were killed. Many of the high nobility of France, including the Dukes of Lorraine and Bourbon, and the Earls of Flanders, Blois, Vaudemont, and Aumale, were left on the battlefield. The kings of Bohemia and Majorca were also slain; the fate of the former was particularly notable as he was blind due to old age. Still determined to risk his life and set an example for others, he had the reins of his horse tied to the horses of two knights from his retinue. His dead body, along with those of his attendants, was later found among the slain, with their horses standing beside them in that position. His crest featured three ostrich feathers, and his motto was in German, Ich dien, meaning “I serve,” which the Prince of Wales and his successors later adopted in remembrance of this significant victory. The battle is striking not just for the massive losses the French suffered but also for the minimal casualties among the English: only one squire and three knights were killed, along with very few of lower rank. This shows that Edward’s careful planning and the chaotic assault by the French turned the whole event into more of a rout than a true battle, which was a common outcome in conflicts of that era.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 131.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 131. Knyghton, p. 2588.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 130. Walsing. p. 166.

     **** Knyghton, p. 2588.
     * Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 131.

     ** Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 131. Knyghton, p. 2588.

     *** Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 130. Walsing. p. 166.

     **** Knyghton, p. 2588.

The great prudence of Edward appeared not only in obtaining this memorable victory, but in the measures which he pursued after it. Not elated by his present prosperity so far as to expect the total conquest of France, or even that of any considerable provinces, he purposed only to secure such an easy entrance into that kingdom, as might afterwards open the way to more moderate advantages. He knew the extreme distance of Guienne: he had experienced the difficulty and uncertainty of penetrating on the side of the Low Countries, and had already lost much of his authority over Flanders by the death of D’Arteville, who had been murdered by the populace themselves, his former partisans, on his attempting to transfer the sovereignty of that province to the prince of Wales.[*] The king, therefore, limited his ambition to the conquest of Calais; and after the interval of a few days, which he employed in interring the slain, he marched with his victorious army, and presented himself before the place.

The great wisdom of Edward was evident not just in achieving this significant victory, but also in the actions he took afterward. He wasn't so caught up in his current success that he expected to completely conquer France or even take over any large territories. Instead, he aimed to secure an easy entry into the kingdom that would later lead to more manageable gains. He understood the vast distance to Guienne and was aware of the challenges and uncertainties of advancing through the Low Countries. He had already lost much of his influence in Flanders due to the death of D’Arteville, who was killed by the very people who had once supported him when he tried to give control of that province to the prince of Wales.[*] Hence, the king focused his ambitions on conquering Calais. After a few days spent burying the dead, he marched with his victorious army and positioned himself in front of the city.

John of Vienne, a valiant knight of Burgundy, was governor of Calais, and being supplied with every thing necessary for defence, he encouraged the townsmen to perform to the utmost their duty to their king and country. Edward, therefore, sensible from the beginning that it was in vain to attempt the place by force, purposed only to reduce it by famine; he chose a secure station for his camp; drew intrenchments around the whole city; raised huts for his soldiers, which he covered with straw or broom; and provided his army with all the conveniences necessary to make them endure the winter season, which was approaching. As the governor soon perceived his intentions, he expelled all the useless mouths; and the king had the generosity to allow these unhappy people to pass through his camp, and he even supplied them with money for their journey.[**]

John of Vienne, a brave knight from Burgundy, was in charge of Calais, and with everything needed for defense, he motivated the townspeople to do their best for their king and country. Edward realized from the start that trying to take the city by force was pointless, so he planned to starve it into submission. He set up his camp in a secure location, built trenches around the entire city, erected huts for his soldiers topped with straw or brush, and made sure his army had everything they needed to survive the upcoming winter. When the governor saw what Edward was doing, he expelled all the unnecessary civilians, but the king generously allowed these unfortunate people to pass through his camp and even gave them money for their journey.[**]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 116.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 133.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 116.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 133.

While Edward was engaged in this siege, which employed him near a twelvemonth, there passed in different places many other events: and all to the honor of the English arms.

While Edward was involved in this siege, which took up almost a year of his time, many other events occurred in different places, all to the glory of the English army.

The retreat of the duke of Normandy from Guienne left the earl of Derby master of the field; and he was not negligent in making his advantage of the superiority. He took Mirebeau by assault: he made himself master of Lusignan in the same manner: Taillebourg and St. Jean d’Angeli fell into his hands: Poictiers opened its gates to him; and Derby, having thus broken into the frontiers on that quarter, carried his incursions to the banks of the Loire, and filled all the southern provinces of France with horror and devastation.[*]

The duke of Normandy’s retreat from Guienne left the earl of Derby in control of the battlefield, and he seized the opportunity to assert his dominance. He captured Mirebeau through a siege and took Lusignan in a similar way. Taillebourg and St. Jean d’Angeli also fell into his hands, and Poictiers welcomed him through its gates. With this breach into the region, Derby extended his raids to the banks of the Loire, spreading fear and destruction throughout all the southern provinces of France.[*]

The flames of war were at the same time kindled in Brittany. Charles of Blois invaded that province with a considerable army, and invested the fortress of Roche de Rien; but the countess of Mountfort, reënforced by some English troops under Sir Thomas Dagworth, attacked him during the night in his intrenchments, dispersed his army, and took Charles himself prisoner.[**] His wife, by whom he enjoyed his pretensions to Brittany, compelled by the present necessity, took on her the government of the party, and proved herself a rival in every shape, and an antagonist to the countess of Mountfort, both in the field and in the cabinet. And while these heroic dames presented this extraordinary scene to the world, another princess in England, of still higher rank, showed herself no less capable of exerting every manly virtue.

The flames of war were ignited in Brittany as well. Charles of Blois invaded the region with a large army and laid siege to the fortress of Roche de Rien. However, the Countess of Mountfort, reinforced by some English troops led by Sir Thomas Dagworth, launched a night attack on his defenses, scattered his army, and captured Charles himself. His wife, who supported his claims to Brittany, stepped up to lead their faction due to the urgent situation and proved to be a formidable rival and opponent to the Countess of Mountfort, both on the battlefield and in political matters. While these brave women showcased this extraordinary spectacle, another princess in England, of even higher status, demonstrated her ability to embody every admirable quality as well.

The Scottish nation, after long defending, with incredible perseverance, their liberties against the superior force of the English, recalled their king, David Bruce, in 1342. Though that prince, neither by his age nor capacity, could bring them great assistance, he gave them the countenance of sovereign authority; and as Edward’s wars on the continent proved a great diversion to the force of England, they rendered the balance more equal between the kingdoms. In every truce which Edward concluded with Philip, the king of Scotland was comprehended; and when Edward made his last invasion upon France, David was strongly solicited by his ally to begin also hostilities, and to invade the northern counties of England. The nobility of his nation being always forward in such incursions, David soon mustered a great army, entered Northumberland at the head of above fifty thousand men, and carried his ravages and devastations to the gates of Durham.[***] But Queen Philippa, assembling a body of little more than twelve thousand men,[****] which she intrusted to the command of Lord Piercy, ventured to approach him at Neville’s Cross near that city; and riding through the ranks of her army, exhorted every man to do his duty, and to take revenge on these barbarous ravagers.[*****]

The Scottish nation, after a long struggle and incredible determination to defend their freedoms against the stronger English forces, recalled their king, David Bruce, in 1342. Even though he was not in a position to offer much assistance due to his age and abilities, he provided them with the appearance of royal authority. Meanwhile, Edward’s wars in France diverted England's military strength, making the balance of power between the kingdoms more equal. In every truce Edward made with Philip, the king of Scotland was included, and when Edward launched his final invasion of France, David was strongly encouraged by his ally to start hostilities and invade the northern counties of England. The Scottish nobility was always eager for such actions, so David quickly gathered a large army, entering Northumberland at the head of more than fifty thousand men, wreaking havoc and destruction at the gates of Durham. But Queen Philippa, assembling a force of just over twelve thousand men, which she entrusted to Lord Piercy, decided to confront him at Neville’s Cross near the city. Riding through her army, she urged every man to fulfill his duty and seek revenge against these savage raiders.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 136.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 143. Walsing, p. 168. Ypod.
     Neust p. 517, 518.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 137.

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 138.

     * Froissart, book I, chapter 136.

     ** Froissart, book I, chapter 143. Walsingham, page 168. Ypod. Neust page 517, 518.

     *** Froissart, book I, chapter 137.

     **** Froissart, book I, chapter 138.

Nor could she be persuaded to leave the field, till the armies were on the point of engaging. The Scots have often been unfortunate in the great pitched battles which they fought with the English; even though they commonly declined such engagements where the superiority of numbers was not on their side: but never did they receive a more fatal blow than the present. They were broken and chased off the field: fifteen thousand of them (some historians say twenty thousand) were slain; among whom were Edward Keith, earl mareschal, and Sir Thomas Charteris, chancellor: and the king himself was taken prisoner, with the earls of Sutherland, Fife, Monteith, Carrick, Lord Douglas, and many other noblemen.[*]

Nor could she be convinced to leave the battlefield until the armies were about to clash. The Scots have often faced defeat in the major battles fought against the English; even though they usually avoided such confrontations when they didn't have numerical superiority: but they never suffered a more devastating defeat than this one. They were shattered and driven off the field: fifteen thousand of them (some historians say twenty thousand) were killed; among them were Edward Keith, Earl Marshal, and Sir Thomas Charteris, Chancellor: and the king himself was captured, along with the Earls of Sutherland, Fife, Monteith, Carrick, Lord Douglas, and many other nobles.[*]

Philippa, having secured her royal prisoner in the Tower,[**] crossed the sea at Dover; and was received in the English camp before Calais with all the triumph due to her rank, her merit, and her success. This age was the reign of chivalry and gallantry: Edward’s court excelled in these accomplishments as much as in policy and arms: and if any thing could justify the obsequious devotion then professed to the fair sex, it must be the appearance of such extraordinary women as shone forth during that period.

Philippa, after securing her royal prisoner in the Tower,[**] crossed the sea at Dover and was welcomed in the English camp near Calais with all the celebration fitting her status, achievements, and success. This was the era of chivalry and romance: Edward’s court was renowned for its skills in both these areas as well as in politics and warfare. If there was any reason to justify the devoted admiration shown to women at that time, it had to be the presence of such remarkable women who stood out during that period.

1_223_calais.jpg Calais

1347.

1347.

The town of Calais had been defended with remarkable vigilance, constancy, and bravery by the townsmen, during a siege of unusual length: but Philip, informed of their distressed condition, determined at last to attempt their relief; and he approached the English with an immense army, which the writers of that age make amount to two hundred thousand men. But he found Edward so surrounded with morasses, and secured by intrenchments, that, without running on inevitable destruction, he concluded it impossible to make an attempt on the English camp. He had no other resource than to send his rival a vain challenge to meet him in the open field; which being refused, he was obliged to decamp with his army, and disperse them into their several provinces.[***]

The town of Calais had been defended with impressive vigilance, determination, and courage by the townspeople during an unusually long siege. However, Philip, aware of their difficult situation, finally decided to try to rescue them. He approached the English with a massive army, which writers of that time claim numbered around two hundred thousand men. But he found Edward surrounded by swamps and protected by trenches, making it impossible for him to attempt an attack on the English camp without facing certain defeat. His only option was to send his rival a pointless challenge to meet him in open battle; when that was refused, he had no choice but to retreat with his army and disperse them into their respective regions.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 139.

     ** Rymer, vol. v. p. 537.

     *** Froissard, liv. i chap. 144, 145.
     * Froissart, book i, chapter 139.

     ** Rymer, volume v, page 537.

     *** Froissart, book i, chapters 144, 145.

John of Vienne, governor of Calais, now saw the necessity of surrendering his fortress, which was reduced to the last extremity by famine and the fatigue of the inhabitants. He appeared on the walls, and made a signal to the English sentinels that he desired a parley. Sir Walter Manny was sent to him by Edward. “Brave knight,” cried the governor “I have been intrusted by my sovereign with the command of this town: it is almost a year since you besieged me; and I have endeavored, as well as those under me, to do our duty. But you are acquainted with our present condition: we have no hopes of relief; we are perishing with hunger; I am willing therefore to surrender, and desire, as the sole condition, to insure the lives and liberties of these brave men, who have so long shared with me every danger and fatigue.” [*]

John of Vienne, the governor of Calais, realized he needed to surrender his fortress, which was on the brink of collapse due to starvation and the exhaustion of its inhabitants. He appeared on the walls and signaled to the English sentinels that he wanted to talk. Edward sent Sir Walter Manny to meet him. “Brave knight,” the governor exclaimed, “I have been given command of this town by my sovereign: it’s been almost a year since you besieged me, and I’ve tried, along with my men, to fulfill our duty. But you know our current situation: we have no hope of rescue; we are dying of hunger. Therefore, I am willing to surrender, and I ask only that you ensure the lives and freedoms of these brave men, who have faced every danger and hardship alongside me.” [*]

Manny replied, that he was well acquainted with the intentions of the king of England; that that prince was incensed against the townsmen of Calais for their pertinacious resistance, and for the evils which they had made him and his subjects suffer; that he was determined to take exemplary vengeance on them; and would not receive the town on any condition which should confine him in the punishment of these offenders. “Consider,” replied Vienne, “that this is not the treatment to which brave men are entitled: if any English knight had been in my situation, your king would have expected the same conduct from him. The inhabitants of Calais have done for their sovereign what merits the esteem of every prince; much more of so gallant a prince as Edward. But I inform you, that, if we must perish, we shall not perish unrevenged; and that we are not yet so reduced but we can sell our lives at a high price to the victors. It is the interest of both sides to prevent these desperate extremities; and I expect that you yourself, brave knight, will interpose your good offices with your prince in our behalf.”

Manny replied that he was well aware of the king of England's intentions; that the king was angry with the townspeople of Calais for their stubborn resistance and for the troubles they had caused him and his subjects. He was determined to take severe revenge on them and wouldn’t agree to any terms that would limit his punishment of these wrongdoers. “Consider,” Vienne responded, “that this is not the treatment brave men deserve: if any English knight were in my position, your king would expect the same from him. The people of Calais have done what every prince should respect for their sovereign; much more from such a noble prince as Edward. But I want you to know that if we must die, we won’t go down without taking action; and we are not so defeated that we can't sell our lives dearly to the victors. It is in the interest of both sides to avoid these desperate measures; and I expect you, brave knight, to speak to your king on our behalf.”

Manny was struck with the justness of these sentiments, and represented to the king the danger of reprisals, if he should give such treatment to the inhabitants of Calais. Edward was at last persuaded to mitigate the rigor of the conditions demanded: he only insisted, that six of the most considerable citizens should be sent to him to be disposed of as he thought proper; that they should come to his camp carrying the keys of the city in their hands, bareheaded and barefooted, with ropes about their necks: and on these conditions he promised to spare the lives of all the remainder.[**]

Manny was struck by the fairness of these feelings and explained to the king the risk of retaliation if he treated the people of Calais this way. Eventually, Edward was convinced to soften the harsh conditions he had set: he only insisted that six of the most important citizens be sent to him to handle as he saw fit; they should approach his camp carrying the keys to the city in their hands, without hats or shoes, with ropes around their necks. In exchange for this, he promised to spare the lives of everyone else.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 146.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 146.
     * Froissart, Book 1, Chapter 146.

     ** Froissart, Book 1, Chapter 146.

When this intelligence was conveyed to Calais, it struck the inhabitants with new consternation. To sacrifice six of their fellow-citizens to certain destruction for signalizing their valor in a common cause, appeared to them even more severe than that general punishment with which they were before threatened; and they found themselves incapable of coming to any resolution in so cruel and distressful a situation. At last, one of the principal inhabitants, called Eustace de St. Pierre, whose name deserves to be recorded, stepped forth, and declared himself willing to encounter death for the safety of his friends and companions: another, animated by his example, made a like generous offer: a third and a fourth presented themselves to the same fate; and the whole number was soon completed. These six heroic burgesses appeared before Edward in the guise of malefactors, laid at his feet the keys of their city, and were ordered to be led to execution. It is surprising that so generous a prince should ever have entertained such a barbarous purpose against such men; and still more that he should seriously persist in the resolution of executing it.[*] 7 But the entreaties of his queen saved his memory from that infamy: she threw herself on her knees before him, and with tears in her eyes begged the lives of these citizens. Having obtained her request, she carried them into her tent, ordered a repast to be set before them, and, after making them a present of money and clothes, dismissed them in safety.[**]

When this news reached Calais, it filled the citizens with new fear. Sacrificing six of their fellow residents to certain death for showing their bravery in a shared struggle seemed even harsher than the general punishment they had been threatened with before; they found themselves unable to make any decision in such a cruel and distressing situation. Eventually, one of the prominent citizens, named Eustace de St. Pierre, whose name deserves to be remembered, stepped forward and said he was willing to face death for the safety of his friends and companions. Inspired by his example, another citizen made the same brave offer; a third and a fourth joined them, and soon the group was complete. These six heroic citizens appeared before Edward like criminals, laid the keys of their city at his feet, and were ordered to be taken for execution. It’s shocking that such a generous king could have even considered such a brutal plan against these men; even more surprising that he stubbornly intended to go through with it. But the pleas of his queen saved him from that disgrace: she knelt before him, tears in her eyes, and begged for the lives of these citizens. After getting her wish, she brought them into her tent, had a meal prepared for them, and after giving them money and clothes, sent them away safely.

     * See note G, at the end of the volume.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 146.
     * See note G, at the end of the volume.

     ** Froissard, book i, chapter 146.

The king took possession of Calais; and immediately executed an act of rigor, more justifiable, because more necessary, than that which he had before resolved on. He knew that notwithstanding his pretended title to the crown of France, every Frenchman regarded him as a mortal enemy: he therefore ordered all the inhabitants of Calais to evacuate the town, and he peopled it anew with English; a policy which probably preserved so long to his successors the dominion of that important fortress. He made it the staple of wool, leather, tin, and lead; the four chief, if not the sole commodities of the kingdom, for which there was any considerable demand in foreign markets. All the English were obliged to bring thither these goods: foreign merchants came to the same place in order to purchase them: and at a period when posts were not established, and when the communication between states was so imperfect, this institution, though it hurt the navigation of England, was probably of advantage to the kingdom.

The king took control of Calais and immediately carried out a decisive action that was more justified because it was more necessary than his earlier decision. He understood that despite his claimed right to the French throne, every Frenchman saw him as an enemy. Therefore, he ordered all the residents of Calais to leave the city and replaced them with English settlers; a strategy that likely helped his successors maintain control of that crucial fortress for a long time. He made it the main center for wool, leather, tin, and lead—the four primary, if not exclusive, commodities in high demand in foreign markets. All English traders were required to bring these goods there, and foreign merchants came to the same location to buy them. At a time when there were no postal services and communication between countries was very limited, this setup, although it negatively impacted English shipping, likely benefited the kingdom overall.

1348.

1348.

Through the mediation of the pope’s legates, Edward concluded a truce with France; but even during this cessation of arms, he had very nearly lost Calais, the sole fruit of all his boasted victories. The king had intrusted that place to Aimery de Pavie, an Italian, who had discovered bravery and conduct in the wars, but was utterly destitute of every principle of honor and fidelity. This man agreed to deliver up Calais for the sum of twenty thousand crowns; and Geoffrey de Charni, who commanded the French forces in those quarters, and who knew that, if he succeeded in this service, he should not be disavowed, ventured, without consulting his master, to conclude the bargain with him. Edward, informed of this treachery, by means of Aimery’s secretary, summoned the governor to London on other pretences; and having charged him with the guilt, promised him his life, but on condition that he would turn the contrivance to the destruction of the enemy. The Italian easily agreed to this double treachery. A day was appointed for the admission of the French; and Edward having prepared a force of about a thousand men, under Sir Walter Manny, secretly departed from London, carrying with him the prince of Wales; and, without being suspected, arrived the evening before at Calais. He made a proper disposition for the reception of the enemy, and kept all his forces and the garrison under arms. On the appearance of Charni, a chosen band of French soldiers was admitted at the postern, and Aimery, receiving the stipulated sum, promised that, with their assistance, he would immediately open the great gate to the troops, who were waiting with impatience for the fulfilling of his engagement.

Through the mediation of the pope’s envoys, Edward reached a truce with France; however, even during this pause in hostilities, he nearly lost Calais, the only gain from all his claimed victories. The king had entrusted the city to Aimery de Pavie, an Italian who had shown courage and skill in battle but lacked any sense of honor and loyalty. This man agreed to surrender Calais for twenty thousand crowns; Geoffrey de Charni, who led the French forces in that area and realized that if he succeeded, he would be acknowledged, took the risk of finalizing the deal without consulting his superiors. Edward, alerted to this betrayal by Aimery’s secretary, summoned the governor to London under false pretenses; after accusing him of wrongdoing, he promised him his life as long as he would use this plan to harm the enemy. The Italian easily consented to this double betrayal. A day was set for the French to enter, and Edward, having assembled a force of about a thousand men, led by Sir Walter Manny, secretly left London, bringing with him the prince of Wales. Without raising suspicion, they arrived the evening before at Calais. He made the necessary arrangements for the reception of the enemy and kept all his troops and the garrison ready for action. When Charni appeared, a select group of French soldiers was let in through a back gate, and Aimery, after receiving the agreed sum, promised that with their help, he would immediately open the main gate to the eager troops waiting to fulfill his agreement.

1349.

1349.

All the French who entered were immediately slain or taken prisoners: the great gate opened: Edward rushed forth with cries of battle and of victory: the French, though astonished at the event, behaved with valor: a fierce and bloody engagement ensued. As the morning broke, the king, who was not distinguished by his arms, and who fought as a private man under the standard of Sir Walter Manny, remarked a French gentleman, called Eustace de Ribaumont, who exerted himself with singular vigor and bravery; and he was seized with a desire of trying a single combat with him. He stepped forth from his troop and challenging Ribaumont by name, (for he was known to him,) began a sharp and dangerous encounter. He was twice beaten to the ground by the valor of the Frenchman: he twice recovered himself: blows were redoubled with equal force on both sides: the victory was long undecided; till Ribaumont, perceiving himself to be left almost alone, called out to his antagonist, “Sir Knight, I yield myself your prisoner;” and at the same time delivered his sword to the king. Most of the French, being overpowered by numbers, and intercepted in their retreat, lost either their lives or their liberty.[*]

All the French who came in were immediately killed or captured: the big gate swung open: Edward rushed out with shouts of battle and victory: the French, although shocked by the situation, fought bravely: a fierce and bloody clash followed. As morning broke, the king, who wasn't distinguished by his armor and fought as a regular soldier under Sir Walter Manny's banner, noticed a French knight named Eustace de Ribaumont, who fought with remarkable strength and courage; he felt a strong urge to challenge him to a duel. He stepped out from his group and called out to Ribaumont by name, (since he recognized him,) and they began a fierce and dangerous battle. Twice he was knocked to the ground by the Frenchman's bravery; and twice he got back up: blows were exchanged with equal ferocity on both sides: the outcome remained uncertain for a long time; until Ribaumont, realizing he was nearly alone, called out to his opponent, “Sir Knight, I surrender myself to you,” and at the same time handed his sword to the king. Most of the French, overwhelmed by numbers and blocked in their escape, either lost their lives or their freedom.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 140, 141, 142.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 140, 141, 142.

The French officers who had fallen into the hands of the English, were conducted into Calais; where Edward discovered to them the antagonist with whom they had had the honor to be engaged, and treated them with great regard and courtesy. They were admitted to sup with the prince of Wales and the English nobility; and after supper, the king himself came into the apartment, and went about, conversing familiarly with one or other of his prisoners. He even addressed himself to Charni, and avoided reproaching him, in too severe terms, with the treacherous attempt which he had made upon Calais during the truce: but he openly bestowed the highest encomiums on Ribaumont; called him the most valorous knight that he had ever been acquainted with; and confessed that he himself had at no time been in so great danger as when engaged in combat with him. He then took a string of pearls, which he wore about his own head, and throwing it over the head of Ribaumont, he said to him, “Sir Eustace, I bestow this present upon you as a testimony of my esteem for your bravery; and I desire you to wear it a year for my sake. I know you to be gay and amorous; and to take delight in the company of ladies and damsels: let them all know from what hand you had the present. You are no longer a prisoner; I acquit you of your ransom; and you are at liberty to-morrow to dispose of yourself as you think proper.”

The French officers who had been captured by the English were taken to Calais, where Edward revealed to them the rival they had been honored to face and treated them with great respect and kindness. They were invited to dinner with the Prince of Wales and the English nobility. After dinner, the king himself entered the room and casually spoke with several of his prisoners. He even addressed Charni, not criticizing him too harshly for the treacherous attempt he had made on Calais during the truce. Instead, he openly praised Ribaumont, calling him the most courageous knight he had ever known, and admitted that he had never faced such danger as when he fought against him. The king then took a string of pearls that he was wearing and draped it over Ribaumont's head, saying, “Sir Eustace, I give you this gift as a token of my admiration for your bravery, and I ask that you wear it for a year on my behalf. I know you enjoy the company of ladies and young women; let them all know who the gift is from. You are no longer a prisoner; I release you from your ransom, and you are free to do as you wish starting tomorrow.”

Nothing proves more evidently the vast superiority assumed by the nobility and gentry above all the other orders of men, during those ages, than the extreme difference which Edward made in his treatment of these French knights, and that of the six citizens of Calais, who had exerted more signal bravery in a cause more justifiable and more honorable.

Nothing demonstrates more clearly the perceived superiority claimed by the nobility and gentry over all other social classes during those times than the stark contrast in how Edward treated these French knights compared to the six citizens of Calais, who had shown greater bravery in a cause that was more just and honorable.





CHAPTER XVI.





EDWARD III.

1349.

1349.

THE prudent conduct and great success of Edward in his foreign wars had excited a strong emulation and a military genius among the English nobility; and these turbulent barons, overawed by the crown, gave now a more useful direction to their ambition, and attached themselves to a prince who led them to the acquisition of riches and of glory. That he might further promote the spirit of emulation and obedience, the king instituted the order of the garter, in imitation of some orders of a like nature, religious as well as military, which had been established in different parts of Europe. The number received into this order consisted of twenty-five persons, besides the sovereign; and as it has never been enlarged, this badge of distinction continues as honorable as at its first institution, and is still a valuable though a cheap present, which the prince can confer on his greatest subjects. A vulgar story prevails, but is not supported by any ancient authority, that at a court ball, Edward’s mistress, commonly supposed to be the countess of Salisbury, dropped her garter; and the king, taking it up, observed some of the courtiers to smile, as if they thought that he had not obtained this favor merely by accident: upon which he called out, “Honi soit qui mal y pense,”—Evil to him that evil thinks; and as every incident of gallantry among those ancient warriors was magnified into a matter of great importance,[*] he instituted the order of the garter in memorial of this event, and gave these words as the motto of the order. 8 This origin, though frivolous, is not unsuitable to the manners of the times; and it is indeed difficult by any other means to account either for the seemingly unmeaning terms of the motto, or for the peculiar badge of the garter, which seems to have no reference to any purpose either of military use or ornament.

The careful actions and great achievements of Edward in his foreign wars sparked a strong competitive spirit and military talent among the English nobility. These restless barons, intimidated by the crown, channeled their ambition in a more productive direction and allied themselves with a prince who led them to wealth and glory. To further encourage this spirit of competition and loyalty, the king established the Order of the Garter, inspired by similar religious and military orders that had been set up in various parts of Europe. The order originally included twenty-five members, in addition to the sovereign; and since it has never been expanded, this badge of honor remains as prestigious as it was at its inception. It is still a valuable yet inexpensive gift that the prince can bestow upon his most important subjects. There’s a popular but unverified story that at a court ball, Edward’s mistress, believed to be the Countess of Salisbury, dropped her garter. When the king picked it up, he noticed some courtiers smirking, as if they suspected he hadn’t received this favor by mere chance. He then exclaimed, “Honi soit qui mal y pense,” meaning Evil to him that evil thinks. Given how every act of chivalry among those ancient warriors was exaggerated into something significant, he founded the Order of the Garter in memory of this incident and chose these words as its motto. 8 While this origin may seem trivial, it aligns with the customs of the time; and it really is challenging to explain any other way the seemingly nonsensical phrase of the motto or the unique symbol of the garter, which doesn’t appear to serve any military purpose or ornamentation.

     * See note H, at the end of the volume.
     * See note H, at the end of the book.

But a sudden damp was thrown over this festivity and triumph of the court of England, by a destructive pestilence, which invaded that kingdom as well as the rest of Europe; and is computed to have swept away near a third of the inhabitants in every country which it attacked. It was probably more fatal in great cities than in the country; and above fifty thousand souls are said to have perished by it in London alone.[*] This malady first discovered itself in the north of Asia, was spread over all that country, made its progress from one end of Europe to the other, and sensibly depopulated every state through which it passed. So grievous a calamity, more than the pacific disposition of the princes, served to maintain and prolong the truce between France and England.

But a sudden gloom cast a shadow over the celebration and success of the court of England, due to a devastating plague that invaded the kingdom as well as the rest of Europe; it's estimated to have taken the lives of nearly a third of the people in every country it hit. It was likely more deadly in large cities than in rural areas, and over fifty thousand people are said to have died from it in London alone.[*] This disease first appeared in northern Asia, spread throughout the country, made its way across all of Europe, and noticeably reduced the population in every region it affected. Such a severe disaster, more than the peaceful intentions of the rulers, helped to maintain and extend the truce between France and England.

     * Stowe’s Survey, p. 478. There were buried fifty thousand
     bodied in one churchyard, which Sir Walter Manny had bought
     for the use of the poor. The same author says, that there
     died above fifty thousand persons of the plague in Norwich,
     which is quite incredible.
     * Stowe’s Survey, p. 478. There were fifty thousand bodies buried in one churchyard, which Sir Walter Manny had purchased for the benefit of the poor. The same author notes that over fifty thousand people died of the plague in Norwich, which is hard to believe.

1350.

1350.

During this truce, Philip de Valois died, without being able to reestablish the affairs of France, which his bad success against England had thrown into extreme disorder. This monarch, during the first years of his reign, had obtained the appellation of Fortunate, and acquired the character of prudent; but he ill maintained either the one or the other; less from his own fault, than because he was overmatched by the superior fortune and superior genius of Edward. But the incidents in the reign of his son John gave the French nation cause to regret even the calamitous times of his predecessor. John was distinguished by many virtues, particularly a scrupulous honor and fidelity: he was not deficient in personal courage: but as he wanted that masterly prudence and foresight, which his difficult situation required his kingdom was at the same time disturbed by intestine commotions, and oppressed with foreign wars.

During this truce, Philip de Valois died, unable to fix the issues in France that his poor performance against England had caused. In the early years of his reign, he was known as Fortunate and seen as wise, but he failed to uphold either title; this was less his fault and more due to being outmatched by the greater fortune and skill of Edward. However, the events during the reign of his son John made the French people long for even the troubled times of Philip. John was known for many virtues, especially his strict honor and loyalty. He had personal courage but lacked the masterful wisdom and foresight that his challenging circumstances required, as his kingdom was facing internal strife and was burdened by outside wars.

1354.

1354.

The chief source of its calamities, was Charles, king of Navarre who received the epithet of the Bad, or Wicked, and whose conduct fully entitled him to that appellation. This prince was descended from males of the blood royal of France; his mother was daughter of Lewis Hutin; he had himself espoused a daughter of King John: but all these ties, which ought to have connected him with the throne, gave him only greater power to shake and overthrow it. With regard to his personal qualities, he was courteous, affable, engaging eloquent; full of insinuation and address; inexhaustible in his resources; active and enterprising. But these splendid accomplishments were attended with such defects as rendered them pernicious to his country, and even ruinous to himself: he was volatile, inconstant, faithless, revengeful, malicious; restrained by no principle or duty; insatiable in his pretensions: and whether successful or unfortunate in one enterprise he immediately undertook another, in which he was never deterred from employing the most criminal and most dishonorable expedients.

The main source of its troubles was Charles, the king of Navarre, who earned the nickname the Bad or Wicked, and his behavior fully justified that title. This prince was descended from the royal bloodline of France; his mother was the daughter of Lewis Hutin, and he himself had married a daughter of King John. However, instead of strengthening his connection to the throne, these ties only gave him more power to shake and destabilize it. As for his personal traits, he was polite, friendly, charming, and eloquent; full of charm and skill; endlessly resourceful; active and bold. But these impressive qualities came with such faults that they became harmful to his country and even led to his own ruin: he was fickle, unreliable, treacherous, vengeful, and spiteful; bound by no principles or duties; insatiable in his ambitions. Whether successful or not in one venture, he would immediately jump into another, never hesitating to use the most criminal and dishonorable means.

The constable of Eu, who had been taken prisoner by Edward at Caen, recovered his liberty, on the promise of delivering, as his ransom, the town of Guisnes, near Calais of which he was superior lord: but as John was offended at this stipulation, which, if fulfilled, opened still farther that frontier to the enemy, and as he suspected the constable of more dangerous connections with the king of England, he ordered him to be seized, and without any legal or formal trial, put him to death, in prison. Charles de la Cerda was appointed constable in his place; and had a like fatal end: the king of Navarre ordered him to be assassinated; and such was the weakness of the crown, that this prince, instead of dreading punishment, would not even agree to ask pardon for his offence, but on condition that he should receive an accession of territory: and he had also John’s second son put into his hands, as a security for his person, when he came to court, and performed this act of mock penitence and humiliation before his sovereign.[*]

The constable of Eu, who had been captured by Edward at Caen, regained his freedom with the condition that he would deliver the town of Guisnes, near Calais, for his ransom, of which he was the lord. However, John was unhappy with this agreement because fulfilling it would further open that area to the enemy, and he suspected the constable of having dangerous ties with the king of England. He ordered the constable to be arrested and, without any legal or formal trial, had him executed in prison. Charles de la Cerda was appointed as constable in his place, but he met a similar grim fate: the king of Navarre ordered his assassination. The weakness of the crown was such that this prince, instead of fearing punishment, refused to even seek forgiveness for his wrongdoing unless it came with a promise of land in return. He also took John’s second son as a guarantee for his safety when he came to court to perform this act of false penitence and humiliation before his king.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 144.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 144.

1355.

1355.

The two French princes seemed entirely reconciled; but this dissimulation, to which John submitted from necessity, and Charles from habit, did not long continue; and the king of Navarre knew that he had reason to apprehend the most severe vengeance for the many crimes and treasons which he had already committed, and the still greater, which he was meditating. To insure himself of protection, he entered into a secret correspondence with England, by means of Henry, earl of Derby, now earl of Lancaster, who at that time was employed in fruitless negotiations for peace at Avignon, under the mediation of the pope. John detected this correspondence; and to prevent the dangerous effects of it, he sent forces into Normandy, the chief seat of the king of Navarre’s power, and attacked his castles and fortresses. But hearing that Edward had prepared an army to support his ally, he had the weakness to propose an accommodation with Charles, and even to give this traitorous subject the sum of a hundred thousand crowns, as the purchase of a feigned reconcilement, which rendered him still more dangerous. The king of Navarre, insolent from past impunity, and desperate from the dangers which he apprehended, continued his intrigues; and associating himself with Geoffrey d’Harcourt, who had received his pardon from Philip de Valois, but persevered still in his factious disposition, he increased the number of his partisans in every part of the kingdom. He even seduced, by his address, Charles, the king of France’s eldest son, a youth of seventeen years of age, who was the first that bore the appellation of “dauphin,” by the reunion of the province of Dauphiny to the crown. But this prince, being made sensible of the danger and folly of these connections, promised to make atonement for the offence by the sacrifice of his associates; and in concert with his father, he invited the king of Navarre, and other noblemen of the party, to a feast at Rouen, where they were betrayed into the hands of John. Some of the most obnoxious were immediately led to execution: the king of Navarre was thrown into prison;[*] but this stroke of severity in the king, and of treachery in the dauphin, was far from proving decisive in maintaining the royal authority. Philip of Navarre, brother to Charles, and Geoffrey d’Harcourt, put all the towns and castles belonging to that prince in a posture of defence; and had immediate recourse to the protection of England in this desperate extremity.

The two French princes appeared to be completely at peace with each other; however, this pretense, which John maintained out of necessity and Charles out of habit, didn't last long. The king of Navarre realized he had every reason to fear harsh retribution for the numerous crimes and betrayals he had already committed, as well as the even worse ones he was planning. To secure protection, he secretly corresponded with England through Henry, Earl of Derby, now Earl of Lancaster, who was at that time engaged in fruitless peace talks in Avignon, mediated by the pope. John discovered this correspondence and to prevent its dangerous repercussions, he deployed troops to Normandy, the main base of the king of Navarre’s power, and attacked his castles and fortifications. However, learning that Edward had mustered an army to back his ally, he weakly proposed a compromise with Charles, even offering this traitor a hundred thousand crowns as payment for a feigned reconciliation, which made him even more of a threat. The king of Navarre, emboldened by previous impunity and desperate due to the dangers he faced, continued his plotting. Aligning himself with Geoffrey d’Harcourt, who had received clemency from Philip de Valois but remained rebellious, he increased his supporters throughout the kingdom. He even managed to charm Charles, the eldest son of the king of France, a seventeen-year-old who was the first to be called "dauphin" after the province of Dauphiny was joined to the crown. But this young prince, realizing the danger and foolishness of these alliances, promised to atone for his wrongdoing by sacrificing his allies. Together with his father, he lured the king of Navarre and other nobles of the faction to a feast in Rouen, where they were betrayed into John's hands. Many of the most notorious were immediately executed; the king of Navarre was imprisoned;[*] but this act of severity by the king and treachery by the dauphin did little to secure royal authority. Philip of Navarre, Charles’s brother, and Geoffrey d’Harcourt fortified all the towns and castles belonging to that prince and immediately sought protection from England in this dire situation.

     * Froissard. liv. i. chap. 146.
     * Froissard. liv. i. chap. 146.

The truce between the two kingdoms, which had always been ill observed on both sides, was now expired; and Edward was entirely free to support the French malecontents. Well pleased that the factions in France had at length gained him some partisans in that kingdom, which his pretensions to the crown had never been able to accomplish, he purposed to attack his enemy both on the side of Guienne, under the command of the prince of Wales, and on that of Calais, in his own person.

The truce between the two kingdoms, which had always been poorly respected on both sides, had now ended; and Edward was completely free to support the discontented factions in France. He was glad that the factions in France had finally gained him some supporters in that kingdom, something his claims to the crown had never managed to achieve. He planned to attack his enemy both in Guienne, led by the prince of Wales, and in Calais, personally.

Young Edward arrived in the Garronne with his army, on board a fleet of three hundred sail, attended by the earls of Avesbury, p. 243. Warwick, Salisbury, Oxford, Suffolk, and other English noblemen. Being joined by the vassals of Gascony, he took the field; and as the present disorders in France prevented every proper plan of defence, he carried on with impunity his ravages and devastations, according to the mode of war in that age. He reduced all the villages and several towns in Languedoc to ashes: he presented himself before Toulouse; passed the Garronne, and burned the suburbs of Carcassonne; advanced even to Narbonne, laying every place waste around him; and after an incursion of six weeks, returned with a vast booty and many prisoners to the Guienne, where he took up his winter quarters.[*] The constable of Bourbon, who commanded in those provinces, received orders, though at the head of a superior army, on no account to run the hazard of a battle.

Young Edward arrived in the Garronne with his army, on a fleet of three hundred ships, accompanied by the earls of Avesbury, p. 243. Warwick, Salisbury, Oxford, Suffolk, and other English nobles. After joining forces with the vassals of Gascony, he took to the field; and since the current chaos in France made any effective defense impossible, he carried out his raids and destruction without facing any consequences, as was common in warfare at that time. He set all the villages and several towns in Languedoc on fire: he showed up at Toulouse; crossed the Garronne, and burned the suburbs of Carcassonne; even pushed on to Narbonne, laying waste to everything around him; and after a six-week raid, returned with an enormous amount of loot and many captives to Guienne, where he settled in for the winter.[*] The constable of Bourbon, who was in charge of those provinces, was ordered, even while leading a larger army, to avoid risking a battle at all costs.

The king of England’s incursion from Calais was of the samme nature, and attended with the same issue. He broke into France at the head of a numerous army; to which he gave a full license of plundering and ravaging the open country. He advanced to St. Omer, where the king of France was posted; and on the retreat of that prince, followed him to Hesdin.[**] John still kept at a distance, and declined an engagement: but in order to save his reputation, he sent Edward a challenge to fight a pitched battle with him; a usual bravado in that age, derived from the practice of single combat, and ridiculous in the art of war. The king, finding no sincerity in this defiance, retired to Calais, and thence went over to England, in order to defend that kingdom against a threatened invasion of the Scots.

The king of England's invasion from Calais was similar in nature and had the same outcome. He charged into France leading a large army, granting them free rein to plunder and destroy the countryside. He moved towards St. Omer, where the king of France was stationed, and followed him to Hesdin when that prince retreated. John still kept his distance and avoided a confrontation, but to maintain his reputation, he sent Edward a challenge for a direct battle; a common boast in that era, stemming from the tradition of single combat, and foolish in military strategy. The king, seeing no sincerity in this challenge, returned to Calais and then went back to England to defend his kingdom against a potential invasion by the Scots.

The Scots, taking advantage of the king’s absence, and that of the military power of England, had surprised Berwick; and had collected an army with a view of committing ravages upon the northern provinces: but on the approach of Edward, they abandoned that place, which was not tenable, while the castle was in the hands of the English; and retiring to their mountains, gave the enemy full liberty of burning and destroying the whole country from Berwick to Edinburgh.[***]

The Scots, seeing that the king and the English military were both absent, took the opportunity to surprise Berwick. They gathered an army aiming to cause destruction in the northern regions. However, when Edward came closer, they left Berwick, which they couldn't hold since the castle was under English control, and retreated to their mountains, allowing the enemy to freely burn and destroy everything from Berwick to Edinburgh.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 144, 146.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 144. Avesbury, p. 206. Walsing.
     p. 171.

     *** Walsing. p. 171.
     * Froissard, book 1, chapter 144, 146.

     ** Froissard, book 1, chapter 144. Avesbury, page 206. Walsing. page 171.

     *** Walsing. page 171.

Baliol attended Edward on this expedition; but finding that his constant adherence to the English had given his countrymen an unconquerable aversion to his title, and that he himself was declining through age and infirmities, he finally resigned into the king’s hands his pretensions to the crown of Scotland,[*] and received in lieu of them an annual pension of two thousand pounds, with which he passed the remainder of his life in privacy and retirement.

Baliol joined Edward on this expedition; however, he realized that his ongoing loyalty to the English had created a deep-seated dislike for his title among his fellow countrymen. Acknowledging his own decline due to age and poor health, he ultimately surrendered his claims to the Scottish crown to the king and, in return, received an annual pension of two thousand pounds, with which he spent the rest of his life in seclusion and peace.

During these military operations, Edward received information of the increasing disorders in France, arising from the imprisonment of the king of Navarre; and he sent Lancaster at the head of a small army, to support the partisans of that prince in Normandy. The war was conducted with various success, but chiefly to the disadvantage of the French malecontents; till an important event happened in the other quarter of the kingdom, which had well nigh proved fatal to the monarchy of France, and threw every thing into the utmost confusion.

During these military operations, Edward learned about the growing unrest in France due to the imprisonment of the king of Navarre. He sent Lancaster in charge of a small army to support the king's supporters in Normandy. The war had mixed outcomes, mostly unfavorable for the French rebels, until a crucial event occurred in another part of the kingdom that nearly led to the downfall of the French monarchy and threw everything into chaos.

1356.

1356.

The prince of Wales, encouraged by the success of the preceding campaign, took the field with an army, which no historian makes amount to above twelve thousand men, and of which not a third were English; and with this small body, he ventured to penetrate into the heart of France. After ravaging the Agenois, Quercy, and the Limousin, he entered the province of Berry; and made some attacks, though without success, on the towns of Bourges and Issoudun. It appeared that his intentions were to march into Normandy, and to join his forces with those of the earl of Lancaster, and the partisans of the king of Navarre; but finding all the bridges on the Loire broken down, and every pass carefully guarded, he was obliged to think of making his retreat into Guienne.[**] He found this resolution the more necessary, from the intelligence which he received of the king of France’s motions. That monarch, provoked at the insult offered him by this incursion, and entertaining hopes of success from the young prince’s temerity, collected a great army of above sixty thousand men, and advanced by hasty marches to intercept his enemy. The prince, not aware of John’s near approach, lost some days, on his retreat, before the castle of Remorantin;[***] and thereby gave the French an opportunity of overtaking him. They came within sight at Maupertuis, near Poiotiers; and Edward, sensible that his retreat was now become impracticable, prepared for battle with all the courage of a young hero, and with all the prudence of the oldest and most experienced commander.

The Prince of Wales, encouraged by the success of the previous campaign, gathered an army that, according to historians, numbered no more than twelve thousand men, with less than a third being English. With this small force, he boldly ventured into the heart of France. After raiding Agenois, Quercy, and Limousin, he entered the Berry region and attempted to attack the towns of Bourges and Issoudun, though these efforts were unsuccessful. It seemed he planned to march into Normandy and unite his forces with those of the Earl of Lancaster and the supporters of the King of Navarre. However, upon discovering that all the bridges over the Loire were destroyed and every crossing was heavily guarded, he had to consider retreating back to Guienne.[**] He found this decision even more necessary after receiving intelligence about the King of France's movements. That monarch, angered by the insult of this invasion and hopeful for success due to the young prince's boldness, assembled a massive army of over sixty thousand men and quickly moved to intercept his enemy. The prince, unaware of John's imminent approach, lost several days during his retreat before the castle of Remorantin;[***] as a result, the French gained the opportunity to catch up with him. They came into view at Maupertuis, near Poitiers, and Edward, realizing that his retreat was no longer possible, prepared for battle with the bravery of a young hero and the wisdom of the most seasoned commander.

     * Rymer, vol. v. p. 863. [** My copy has 823] Ypod. Neust.
     p. 521.

     ** Walsing. p. 171.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 158. Walsing. p. 171
     * Rymer, vol. v. p. 863. [** My copy has 823] Ypod. Neust.
     p. 521.

     ** Walsing. p. 171.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 158. Walsing. p. 171

But the utmost prudence and courage would have proved insufficient to save him in this extremity, had the king of France known how to make use of his present advantages. His great superiority in numbers enabled him to surround the enemy; and by intercepting all provisions, which were already become scarce in the English camp, to reduce this small army, without a blow, to the necessity of surrendering at discretion. But such was the impatient ardor of the French nobility, and so much had their thoughts been bent on overtaking the English as their sole object, that this idea never struck any of the commanders; and they immediately took measures for the assault, as for a certain victory. While the French army was drawn up in order of battle, they were stopped by the appearance of the cardinal of Perigord; who, having learned the approach of the two armies to each other, had hastened, by interposing his good offices, to prevent any further effusion of Christian blood. By John’s permission, he carried proposals to the prince of Wales; and found him so sensible of the bad posture of his affairs, that an accommodation seemed not impracticable. Edward told him, that he would agree to any terms consistent with his own honor and that of England; and he offered to purchase a retreat, by ceding all the conquests which he had made during this and the former campaign, and by stipulating not to serve against France during the course of seven years. But John, imagining that he had now got into his hands a sufficient pledge for the restitution of Calais, required that Edward should surrender himself prisoner with a hundred of his attendants; and offered, on these terms, a safe retreat to the English army. The prince rejected the proposal with disdain; and declared that, whatever fortune might attend him, England should never be obliged to pay the price of his ransom. This resolute answer cut off all hopes of accommodation; but as the day was already spent in negotiating, the battle was delayed till the next morning.[*]

But even the greatest caution and bravery wouldn’t have been enough to save him in this situation if the king of France had known how to use his current advantages. His overwhelming numbers allowed him to surround the enemy and cut off their already scarce supplies, forcing this small army to surrender without a fight. However, the French nobility’s impatience and their sole focus on defeating the English led none of the commanders to consider this strategy. Instead, they quickly prepared for an attack, sure of victory. Just as the French army was lined up for battle, they were halted by the appearance of the cardinal of Perigord. Learning that the two armies were approaching each other, he rushed to mediate and prevent further bloodshed. With John’s permission, he brought proposals to the prince of Wales, who recognized the dire state of his situation and found the possibility of a settlement reasonable. Edward stated that he would agree to any terms that respected his own honor and England's dignity. He offered to buy a safe retreat by giving up all the territories he had taken during this and the previous campaign and committing not to attack France for seven years. However, John, thinking he had gained enough leverage to reclaim Calais, demanded that Edward surrender himself as a prisoner along with a hundred of his attendants, offering safe passage to the English army in return. The prince rejected this proposal with contempt, declaring that no matter what happened to him, England would never pay the price for his freedom. This firm response dashed any hopes for a settlement, but since the day was already spent on negotiations, the battle was postponed until the following morning.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 161.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 161.

The cardinal of Perigord, as did all the prelates of the court of Rome, bore a great attachment to the French interest; but the most determined enemy could not, by any expedient, have done a greater prejudice to John’s affairs, than he did them by this delay. The prince of Wales had leisure, daring the night, to strengthen, by new intrenchments, the post which he had before so judiciously chosen; and he contrived an ambush of three hundred men at arms, and as many archers, whom he put under the command of the Captal de Buche, and ordered to make a circuit, that they might fall on the flank or rear of the French army during the engagement. The van of his army was commanded by the earl of Warwick, the rear by the earls of Salisbury and Suffolk, the main body by the prince himself. The Lords Chandos, Audeley, and many other brave and experienced commanders, were at the head of different corps of his army.

The cardinal of Perigord, like all the church leaders in Rome, had a strong loyalty to French interests; however, no opponent could have caused John’s situation more harm than this delay. The Prince of Wales took advantage of the night to reinforce the position he had previously selected with new fortifications; he also set up an ambush of three hundred knights and as many archers, placing them under the command of the Captal de Buche, and instructed them to move around to attack the flank or rear of the French army during the battle. The front of his army was led by the Earl of Warwick, the rear by the Earls of Salisbury and Suffolk, and the main force by the prince himself. Lords Chandos, Audeley, and many other brave and experienced commanders led various sections of his army.

John also arranged his forces in three divisions, nearly equal: the first was commanded by the duke of Orleans, the king’s brother; the second by the dauphin, attended by his two younger brothers; the third by the king himself, who had by his side Philip, his fourth son and favorite, then about fourteen years of age. There was no reaching the English army but through a narrow lane, covered on each side by hedges and in order to open this passage, the mareschals, Andrehen and Clermont, were ordered to advance with a separate detachment of men at arms. While they marched along the lane, a body of English archers, who lined the hedges, plied them on each side with their arrows; and being very near them, yet placed in perfect safety, they coolly took their aim against the enemy, and slaughtered them with impunity. The French detachment, much discouraged by the unequal combat, and diminished in their number, arrived at the end of the lane, where they met on the open ground the prince of Wales himself, at the head of a chosen body, ready for their reception. They were discomfited and overthrown: one of the mareschals was slain; the other taken prisoner: and the remainder of the detachment, who were still in the lane, and exposed to the shot of the enemy, without being able to make resistance, recoiled upon their own army, and put every thing into disorder.[*]

John also organized his forces into three nearly equal divisions: the first was led by the Duke of Orleans, the king's brother; the second by the dauphin, accompanied by his two younger brothers; the third by the king himself, who had his fourth son and favorite, Philip, around fourteen years old, by his side. The only way to reach the English army was through a narrow lane, lined with hedges on both sides. To clear this path, the marshals, Andrehen and Clermont, were instructed to advance with a separate group of knights. As they marched down the lane, a contingent of English archers positioned along the hedges showered them with arrows; being close yet safely sheltered, they calmly aimed at the enemy and picked them off without risk. The French detachment, deterred by the unfair fight and suffering losses, reached the end of the lane, where they encountered the Prince of Wales himself, leading a select group ready to confront them. They were defeated and routed: one of the marshals was killed; the other was captured; and the remaining troops, still in the lane and vulnerable to enemy fire, were forced to retreat into their own army, causing chaos and disorder.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 162.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 162.

In that critical moment the Captal de Buche unexpectedly appeared, and attacked in flank the dauphin’s line, which fell into some confusion. Landas, Bodenai, and St. Venant, to whom the care of that young prince and his brothers had been committed, too anxious for their charge, or for their own safety, carried them off the field, and set the example of flight, which was followed by that whole division. The duke of Orleans, seized with alike panic, and imagining all was lost, thought no longer of fighting, but carried off his division by a retreat, which soon turned into a flight. Lord Chandos called out to the prince, that the day was won; and encouraged him to attack the division under King John, which, though more numerous than the whole English army, were somewhat dismayed with the precipitate flight of their companions. John here made the utmost efforts to retrieve by his valor what his imprudence had betrayed; and the only resistance made that day was by his line of battle. The prince of Wales fell with impetuosity on some German cavalry placed in the front, and commanded by the counts of Sallebruche, Nydo, and Nosto; a fierce battle ensued: one side were encouraged by the near prospect of so great a victory; the other were stimulated by the shame of quitting the field to an enemy so much inferior: but the three German generals, together with the duke of Athens, constable of France, falling in battle, that body of cavalry gave way, and left the king himself exposed to the whole fury of the enemy. The ranks were every moment thinned around him: the nobles fell by his side one after another: his son, scarce fourteen years of age, received a wound, while he was fighting valiantly in defence of his father: the king himself, spent with fatigue and overwhelmed by numbers, might easily have been slain; but every English gentleman, ambitious of taking alive the royal prisoner, spared him in the action, exhorted him to surrender, and offered him quarter: several, who attempted to seize him, suffered for their temerity. He still cried out, “Where is my cousin, the prince of Wales?” and seemed unwilling to become prisoner to any person of inferior rank. But being told that the prince was at a distance on the field, he threw down his gauntlet, and yielded himself to Dennis de Morbec, a knight of Arras, who had been obliged to fly his country for murder. His son was taken with him.[*]

In that crucial moment, the Captal de Buche suddenly appeared and attacked the flank of the dauphin’s line, causing some confusion. Landas, Bodenai, and St. Venant, who were responsible for the young prince and his brothers, too worried for their charge or for their own safety, took them off the battlefield and set an example of retreat, which the entire division followed. The duke of Orleans, gripped by the same panic and believing all was lost, stopped thinking about fighting and withdrew his division, which quickly turned into a flight. Lord Chandos shouted to the prince that the day was won and encouraged him to attack the division under King John, which, although larger than the entire English army, was somewhat unsettled by the hasty retreat of their comrades. John made every effort to redeem his earlier mistakes with his bravery, and the only resistance that day came from his battle line. The prince of Wales charged fiercely at some German cavalry positioned at the front, commanded by the counts of Sallebruche, Nydo, and Nosto; a fierce battle followed. One side was motivated by the near prospect of a significant victory, while the other was spurred on by the shame of fleeing from a lesser enemy. However, when the three German generals, along with the duke of Athens, the constable of France, fell in battle, that cavalry unit faltered and left the king exposed to the full force of the enemy. The ranks around him were thinning moment by moment: nobles fell beside him one after another; his son, barely fourteen, was wounded while fighting bravely to defend his father. The king himself, exhausted and outnumbered, could have easily been killed, but every English gentleman, eager to capture the royal prisoner alive, spared him during the fight, urging him to surrender and offering him quarter. Several who tried to seize him paid for their boldness. He kept calling out, “Where is my cousin, the prince of Wales?” and seemed reluctant to surrender to anyone of lower rank. But when he was told that the prince was far away on the field, he threw down his gauntlet and yielded himself to Dennis de Morbec, a knight from Arras, who had been forced to flee his country for murder. His son was captured with him.[*]

     * Rymer, vol vi. p. 72, 154. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 164.
     * Rymer, vol vi. p. 72, 154. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 164.

The prince of Wales, who had been carried away in pursuit of the flying enemy, finding the field entirely clear, had ordered a tent to be pitched, and was reposing himself after the toils of battle; inquiring still with great anxiety concerning the fate of the French monarch. He despatched the earl of Warwick to bring him intelligence; and that nobleman came happily in time to save the life of the captive prince which was exposed to greater danger than it had been during the heat of the action. The English had taken him by violence from Morbec: the Gascons claimed the honor of detaining the royal prisoner; and some brutal soldiers, rather than yield the prize to their rivals, had threatened to put him to death.[*] Warwick overawed both parties, and approaching the king with great demonstrations of respect, offered to conduct him to the prince’s tent.

The Prince of Wales, who had been swept away chasing the fleeing enemy, found the battlefield completely empty and ordered a tent to be set up while he rested after the struggles of battle. He still anxiously inquired about the fate of the French king. He sent the Earl of Warwick to gather information; that nobleman arrived just in time to save the life of the captured prince, who was in greater danger than during the heat of the fight. The English had seized him by force from Morbec; the Gascons claimed the honor of holding onto the royal prisoner, and some brutal soldiers, rather than give up the prize to their rivals, had threatened to kill him. Warwick intimidated both groups, and as he approached the king with great respect, he offered to take him to the prince’s tent.

Here commences the real and truly admirable heroism of Edward; for victories are vulgar things in comparison of that moderation and humanity displayed by a young prince of twenty-seven years of age, not yet cooled from the fury of battle, and elated by as extraordinary and as unexpected success as had ever crowned the arms of any commander. He came forth to meet the captive king with all the marks of regard and sympathy; administered comfort to him amidst his misfortunes; paid him the tribute of praise due to his valor; and ascribed his own victory merely to the blind chance of war, or to a superior providence, which controls all the efforts of human force and prudence.[**] The behavior of John showed him not unworthy of this courteous treatment; his present abject fortune never made him forget a moment that he was a king: more touched by Edward’s generosity than by his own calamities, he confessed that, notwithstanding his defeat and captivity, his honor was still unimpaired; and that if he yielded the victory, it was at least gained by a prince of such consummate valor and humanity.

Here begins the real and truly admirable heroism of Edward; because victories are mundane compared to the moderation and humanity shown by a young prince of twenty-seven, still fresh from the heat of battle and lifted by an extraordinary and unexpected success that overshadowed the achievements of any commander. He stepped forward to meet the captive king with all the signs of respect and empathy; he offered comfort in the midst of his misfortunes; he paid him the respect due for his bravery; and attributed his own victory solely to the unpredictable nature of war or to a higher power that governs all human efforts and wisdom. John’s behavior proved him deserving of this gracious treatment; his current miserable fate never let him forget for a moment that he was a king: more moved by Edward’s generosity than by his own misfortunes, he admitted that, despite his defeat and imprisonment, his honor remained intact; and that if he had surrendered the victory, it was at least to a prince of such exceptional bravery and kindness.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 164.

     ** Poul. Cemil, p. 197.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 164.

     ** Poul. Cemil, p. 197.

Edward ordered a repast to be prepared in his tent for the prisoner; and he himself served at the royal captive’s table, as if he had been one of his retinue: he stood at the king’s back during the meal; constantly refused to take a place at table; and declared that, being a subject, he was too well acquainted with the distance between his own rank and that of royal majesty, to assume such freedom. All his father’s pretensions to the crown of France were now buried in oblivion: John in captivity received the honors of a king, which were refused him when seated on the throne: his misfortunes, not his title, were respected; and the French prisoners, conquered by this elevation of mind, more than by their late discomfiture, burst into tears of admiration; which were only checked by the reflection, that such genuine and unaltered heroism in an enemy must certainly in the issue prove but the more dangerous to their native country.[*]

Edward had a meal prepared in his tent for the prisoner and served the royal captive at his table, acting like he was part of the king’s entourage. He stood behind the king during the meal, consistently refused to sit at the table, and stated that as a subject, he understood too well the difference in rank between himself and royal majesty to take such liberties. All of his father’s claims to the French crown were now forgotten: John, in captivity, received the honors of a king that had been denied to him while on the throne. His misfortunes, rather than his title, were respected, and the French prisoners, moved more by this noble spirit than by their recent defeat, broke into tears of admiration; these tears were only restrained by the realization that such genuine and unwavering heroism in an enemy could ultimately threaten their homeland even more.

All the English and Gascon knights imitated the generous example set them by their prince. The captives were every where treated with humanity, and were soon after dismissed, on paying moderate ransoms to the persons into whose hands they had fallen. The extent of their fortunes was considered; and an attention was given that they should still have sufficient means left to perform their military service in a manner suitable to their rank and quality. Yet so numerous were the noble prisoners, that these ransoms, added to the spoils gained in the field, were sufficient to enrich the prince’s army; and as they had suffered very little in the action, their joy and exultation were complete.

All the English and Gascon knights followed the kind example set by their prince. The captives were treated humanely everywhere, and they were soon released after paying reasonable ransoms to those who had captured them. Their wealth was taken into account, and care was taken to ensure they still had enough means left to serve in the military according to their rank and status. However, there were so many noble prisoners that these ransoms, combined with the spoils from the battle, were enough to enrich the prince’s army; since they had suffered very little during the conflict, their joy and celebration were overwhelming.

The prince of Wales conducted his prisoner to Bordeaux; and not being provided with forces so numerous as might enable him to push his present advantages, he concluded a two years’ truce with France,[**] which was also become requisite, that he might conduct the captive king with safety into England. He landed at Southwark, and was met by a great concourse of people, of all ranks and stations. {1357.

The Prince of Wales took his prisoner to Bordeaux; and since he didn't have enough troops to fully capitalize on his current advantages, he arranged a two-year truce with France,[**] which was also necessary to safely bring the captive king to England. He landed at Southwark, where a large crowd of people from all walks of life gathered to meet him. {1357.

The prisoner was clad in royal apparel, and mounted on a white steed, distinguished by its size and beauty, and by the richness of its furniture. The conqueror rode by his side in a meaner attire, and carried by a black palfrey. In this situation, more glorious than all the insolent parade of a Roman triumph, he passed through the streets of London, and presented the king of France to his father, who advanced to meet him, and received him with the same courtesy as if he had been a neighboring potentate that had voluntarily come to pay him a friendly visit.[***] It is impossible, in reflecting on this noble conduct, not to perceive the advantages which resulted from the otherwise whimsical principles of chivalry, and which gave men in those rude times some superiority even over people of a more cultivated age and nation.

The prisoner was dressed in royal clothing and riding a beautiful white horse, known for its size and elegance, as well as its elaborate saddle and accessories. The conqueror rode alongside him in simpler clothing on a black horse. In this situation, more impressive than any boastful display of a Roman victory, he moved through the streets of London and introduced the king of France to his father, who came forward to greet him and welcomed him with the same politeness as if he were a neighboring ruler visiting for a friendly chat.[***] It's hard to reflect on this noble behavior without recognizing the benefits that came from the otherwise quirky ideals of chivalry, which gave people in those rough times a certain edge even over those from more refined ages and cultures.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 168.

     ** Rymer, vol. vi p. 3.

     *** Froissard, liv i. chap. 173.
     * Froissart, book I, chapter 168.

     ** Rymer, volume VI, page 3.

     *** Froissart, book I, chapter 173.

The king of France, besides the generous treatment which he met with in England, had the melancholy consolation of the wretched, to see companions in affliction. The king of Scots had been eleven years a captive in Edward’s hands; and the good fortune of this latter monarch had reduced at once the two neighboring potentates, with whom he was engaged in war, to be prisoners in his capital.

The king of France, in addition to the generous treatment he received in England, had the sad comfort of seeing others in the same plight as him. The king of Scots had been a prisoner in Edward’s custody for eleven years; and the fortunate circumstances of this latter king had simultaneously trapped both neighboring rulers, with whom he was at war, as prisoners in his capital.

1357.

1357.

But Edward finding that the conquest of Scotland was nowise advanced by the captivity of its sovereign, and that the government conducted by Robert Stuart, his nephew and heir, was still able to defend itself, consented to restore David Bruce to his liberty, for the ransom of one hundred thousand marks sterling; and that prince delivered the sons of all his principal nobility, as hostages for the payment.[*]

But Edward realized that capturing the king of Scotland hadn't really progressed the conquest at all, and that the government led by Robert Stuart, his nephew and heir, was still capable of defending itself. So, he agreed to release David Bruce for a ransom of one hundred thousand marks sterling; and that prince released the sons of all his main nobles as hostages to ensure the payment.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 45, 46, 52, 56. Froissard, liv. i.
     chap, 154 Walsing, p. 73.
     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 45, 46, 52, 56. Froissard, liv. i. chap, 154 Walsing, p. 73.

1358.

1358.

Meanwhile, the captivity of John, joined to the preceding disorders of the French government, had produced in that country a dissolution, almost total, of civil authority, and had occasioned confusions the most horrible and destructive that had ever been experienced in any age or in any nation. The dauphin, now about eighteen years of age, naturally assumed the royal power during his father’s captivity; but though endowed with an excellent capacity, even in such early years, he possessed neither experience nor authority sufficient to defend a state, assailed at once by foreign power and shaken by intestine faction. In order to obtain supply, he assembled the states of the kingdom: that assembly, instead of supporting his administration, were themselves seized with the spirit of confusion; and laid hold of the present opportunity to demand limitations of the prince’s power, the punishment of past malversations, and the liberty of the king of Navarre. Marcel, provost of the merchants and first magistrate of Paris, put himself at the head of the unruly populace; and from the violence and temerity of his character, pushed them to commit the most criminal outrages against the royal authority. They detained the dauphin in a sort of captivity; they murdered in his presence Robert de Clermont and John de Conflans, mareschals, the one of Normandy, the other of Burgundy; they threatened all the other ministers with a like fate; and when Charles, who was obliged to temporize and dissemble, made his escape from their hands, they levied war against him, and openly erected the standard of rebellion, The other cities of the kingdom, in imitation of the capital, shook off the dauphin’s authority, took the government into their own hands, and spread the disorder into every province. The nobles, whose inclinations led them to adhere to the crown, and were naturally disposed to check these tumults, had lost all their influence; and being reproached with cowardice on account of the base desertion of their sovereign in the battle of Poiotiers, were treated with universal contempt by the inferior orders. The troops, who, from the deficiency of pay, were no longer retained in discipline, threw off all regard to their officers, sought the means of subsistence by plunder and robbery, and associating to them all the disorderly people with whom that age abounded, formed numerous bands, which infested all parts of the kingdom. They desolated the open country; burned and plundered the villages; and by cutting off all means of communication or subsistence, reduced even the inhabitants of the walled towns to the most extreme necessity. The peasants, formerly oppressed, and now left unprotected by their masters, became desperate from their present misery; and rising every where in arms, carried to the last extremity those disorders which were derived from the sedition of the citizens and disbanded soldiers.[*]

Meanwhile, John’s captivity, combined with the previous troubles of the French government, led to a near-total breakdown of civil authority in the country. It resulted in the most horrific and destructive chaos ever seen in any age or nation. The dauphin, now about eighteen years old, naturally took on royal power during his father’s imprisonment. Although he had great potential, even at such a young age, he lacked the experience and authority needed to defend a state under attack from foreign powers and shaken by internal factions. To gather support, he called together the estates of the kingdom. Instead of backing him, that assembly was overtaken by chaos and seized the opportunity to demand restrictions on the prince’s powers, accountability for past wrongs, and the release of the king of Navarre. Marcel, the provost of the merchants and the top magistrate of Paris, led the unruly populace. Fueled by his violent and reckless nature, he incited them to commit serious crimes against royal authority. They essentially held the dauphin captive, murdered Robert de Clermont and John de Conflans, marshals of Normandy and Burgundy respectively, in his presence; they threatened all other ministers with the same fate. When Charles, who had to bide his time and pretend for a while, finally escaped from their grasp, they waged war against him and openly declared their rebellion. Other cities in the kingdom, mirroring the capital, rejected the dauphin’s authority, took control of their own governance, and spread disorder throughout every province. The nobles, who generally wanted to support the crown and were inclined to curb these riots, had lost all influence. After being blamed for abandoning their sovereign during the battle of Poitiers, they faced universal scorn from the lower classes. The troops, no longer disciplined due to a lack of pay, disregarded their officers, sought sustenance through looting, and banded together with the many disreputable people of that time, forming numerous gangs that ravaged the entire kingdom. They devastated the countryside, burned and pillaged villages, and cut off all routes of communication and resources, leaving even the inhabitants of fortified towns in dire need. The once-oppressed peasants, now abandoned and unprotected by their lords, became desperate due to their suffering; they rose up armed, escalating the chaos fueled by the citizens’ uprisings and the actions of disbanded soldiers.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 182,183, 184.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 182,183, 184.

The gentry, hated for their tyranny, were every where exposed to the violence of popular rage; and instead of meeting with the regard due to their past dignity, became only, on that account, the object of more wanton insult to the mutinous peasants. They were hunted like wild beasts, and put to the sword without mercy: their castles were consumed with fire, and levelled to the ground: their wives and daughters were first ravished, then murdered: the savages proceeded so far as to impale some gentlemen, and roast them alive before a slow fire: a body of nine thousand of them broke into Meaux, where the wife of the dauphin, with above three hundred ladies, had taken shelter: the most brutal treatment and most atrocious cruelty were justly dreaded by this helpless company: but the Captal de Buche, though in the service of Edward, yet moved by generosity and by the gallantry of a true knight, flew to their rescue, and beat off the peasants with great slaughter. In other civil wars, the opposite factions, falling under the government of their several leaders, commonly preserve still the vestige of some rule and order: but here the wild state of nature seemed to be renewed: every man was thrown loose and independent of his fellows: and the populousness of the country, derived from the preceding police of civil society, served only to increase the horror and confusion of the scene.

The gentry, despised for their oppression, faced the fury of the angry mob everywhere. Instead of receiving the respect their former status warranted, they became even more vulnerable to the cruel insults from the rebellious peasants. They were hunted like animals and slaughtered without mercy; their castles were set ablaze and reduced to rubble. Their wives and daughters were first assaulted, then killed. The mobs went so far as to impale some gentlemen and roast them alive over a slow fire. A group of nine thousand broke into Meaux, where the dauphin's wife and over three hundred ladies had taken refuge. This defenseless group justly feared the most brutal treatment and extreme cruelty. However, the Captal de Buche, though serving Edward, was moved by compassion and the chivalry of a true knight, rushed to their aid, defeating the peasants with heavy losses. In other civil wars, opposing sides, led by different leaders, usually maintained some sense of order and rule. But here, the chaos of nature seemed to take over: everyone was left untethered and independent of each other. The population of the country, a product of earlier civil society’s order, only amplified the horror and confusion of the situation.

Amidst these disorders, the king of Navarre made his escape from prison, and presented a dangerous leader to the furious malecontents.[*] But the splendid talents of this prince qualified him only to do mischief, and to increase the public distractions: he wanted the steadiness and prudence requisite for making his intrigues subservient to his ambition, and forming his numerous partisans into a regular faction. He revived his pretensions, somewhat obsolete, to the crown of France: but while he advanced this claim, he relied entirely on his alliance with the English, who were concerned in interest to disappoint his pretensions; and who, being public and inveterate enemies to the state, served only, by the friendship which they seemingly bore him, to render his cause the more odious. And in all his operations, he acted more like a leader of banditti, than one who aspired to be the head of a regular government, and who was engaged by his station to endeavor the reëstablishment of order in the community.

Amidst the chaos, the king of Navarre escaped from prison and became a risky leader for the angry dissenters. But the impressive skills of this prince only equipped him to cause trouble and add to the public unrest; he lacked the steadiness and wisdom needed to turn his schemes into a means for his ambition and to organize his many followers into a structured group. He revived his somewhat outdated claims to the crown of France, but while pushing this claim, he completely depended on his alliance with the English, who had a vested interest in thwarting his ambitions and who, as longtime enemies of the state, only made his cause seem more detestable through their apparent friendship. In all his actions, he behaved more like a leader of outlaws than someone who aimed to head a proper government and who, by virtue of his position, should strive to restore order in society.

The eyes, therefore, of all the French, who wished to restore peace to their miserable and desolated country, were turned towards the dauphin; and that young prince, though not remarkable for his military talents, possessed so much prudence and spirit, that he daily gained the ascendant over all his enemies. Marcel, the seditious provost of Paris, was slain, while he was attempting to deliver the city to the king of Navarre and the English; and the capital immediately returned to its duty.[**] The most considerable bodies of the mutinous peasants were dispersed, and put to the sword: some bands of military robbers underwent the same fate: and though many grievous disorders still remained, France began gradually to assume the face of a regular civil government, and to form some plan for its defence and security.

The eyes of all the French, who wanted to bring peace back to their suffering and devastated country, were focused on the dauphin. This young prince, though not particularly known for his military skills, showed enough wisdom and determination that he consistently gained the upper hand over all his enemies. Marcel, the rebellious leader of Paris, was killed while trying to hand the city over to the king of Navarre and the English; as a result, the capital quickly returned to its obligations. The largest groups of rebellious peasants were scattered and killed; some groups of armed robbers faced the same fate. Even though many serious issues still existed, France started to slowly take on the appearance of a functioning civil government and began to create a plan for its defense and safety.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 181.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 187
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 181.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 187

During the confusion in the dauphin’s affairs, Edward seemed to have a favorable opportunity for pushing his conquests: but besides that his hands were tied by the truce, and he could only assist underhand the faction of Navarre, the state of the English finances and military power, during those ages, rendered the kingdom incapable of making any regular or steady effort, and obliged it to exert its force at very distant intervals, by which all the projected ends were commonly disappointed. Edward employed himself, during a conjuncture so inviting, chiefly in negotiations with his prisoner; and John had the weakness to sign terms of peace, which, had they taken effect, must have totally ruined and dismembered his kingdom. He agreed to restore all the provinces which had been possessed by Henry II. and his two sons, and to annex them forever to England, without any obligation of homage or fealty on the part of the English monarch. But the dauphin and the states of France rejected this treaty, so dishonorable and pernicious to the kingdom;[*] and Edward on the expiration of the truce, having now, by subsidies and frugality, collected some treasure, prepared himself for a new invasion of France.

During the turmoil in the dauphin’s affairs, Edward seemed to have a good chance to expand his conquests. However, his hands were tied by the truce, and he could only secretly support the Navarre faction. The state of English finances and military power at that time made it impossible for the kingdom to mount a regular or sustained effort, forcing it to act sporadically, which usually thwarted any planned goals. Instead of taking advantage of this promising situation, Edward mainly focused on negotiations with his prisoner. John foolishly signed peace terms that, if they had been implemented, would have completely devastated and fragmented his kingdom. He agreed to restore all the provinces that had been held by Henry II and his two sons, permanently giving them to England, without any obligation of loyalty or tribute on the part of the English king. However, the dauphin and the states of France rejected this treaty, as it was so dishonorable and harmful to the kingdom; and when the truce ended, Edward, having gathered some funds through subsidies and careful spending, prepared for a new invasion of France.

The great authority and renown of the king and the prince of Wales, the splendid success of their former enterprises, and the certain prospect of plunder from the defenceless provinces of France, soon brought together the whole military power of England; and the same motives invited to Edward’s standard all the hardy adventurers of the different countries of Europe.[**] He passed over to Calais, where he assembled an army of near a hundred thousand men; a force which the dauphin could not pretend to withstand in the open field: that prince, therefore, prepared himself to elude a blow, which it was impossible for him to resist. He put all the considerable towns in a posture of defence; ordered them to be supplied with magazines and provisions; distributed proper garrisons in all places; secured every thing valuable in the fortified cities; and chose his own station at Paris, with a view of allowing the enemy to vent their fury on the open country.

The great authority and fame of the king and the prince of Wales, the impressive success of their previous campaigns, and the clear chance of loot from the defenseless provinces of France quickly rallied the entire military power of England. These same motivations drew all the bold adventurers from different countries in Europe to Edward’s side. He crossed over to Calais, where he gathered an army of nearly a hundred thousand men; a force that the dauphin could not realistically hope to fight in the open field. Therefore, that prince prepared to avoid a confrontation he couldn't win. He put all significant towns on alert, ordered them to stock up on supplies and provisions, stationed proper garrisons everywhere, secured all valuable items in the fortified cities, and positioned himself in Paris, planning to let the enemy unleash their fury on the open countryside.

1359.

1359.

The king, aware of this plan of defence, was obliged to carry along with him six thousand wagons, loaded with the provisions necessary for the subsistence of his army. After ravaging the province of Picardy, he advanced into Champagne; and having a strong desire of being crowned king of France at Rheims, the usual place in which this ceremony is performed, he laid siege to that city, and carried on his attacks, though without success, for the space of seven weeks.[***]

The king, knowing about this defensive plan, had to take with him six thousand wagons filled with food and supplies for his army. After devastating the province of Picardy, he moved into Champagne. Eager to be crowned king of France in Rheims, the traditional site for this ceremony, he laid siege to the city and continued his assaults for seven weeks, but without success.[***]

     * Froissard. liv. i. chap. 201.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 205.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 208. Walsing. p. 174.
     * Froissart, Book I, Chapter 201.

     ** Froissart, Book I, Chapter 205.

     *** Froissart, Book I, Chapter 208. Walsingham, p. 174.

1360.

1360.

The place was bravely defended by the inhabitants, encouraged by the exhortations of the archbishop, John de Craon; till the advanced season (for this expedition was entered upon in the beginning of winter) obliged the king to raise the siege. The province of Champagne, meanwhile, was desolated by his incursions; and he thence conducted his army, with a like intent, into Burgundy. He took and pillaged Tonnerre, Gaillon, Avalon, and other small places; but the duke of Burgundy, that he might preserve his country from further ravages, consented to pay him the sum of one hundred thousand nobles.[*] Edward then bent his march towards the Nivernois, which saved itself by a like composition: he laid waste Brie and the Gatinois; and after a long march, very destructive to France, and somewhat ruinous to his own troops, he appeared before the gates of Paris, and taking up his quarters at Bourg-la-Reine, extended his army to Longjumeau, Montrouge, and Vaugirard. He tried to provoke the dauphin to hazard a battle, by sending him a defiance; but could not make that prudent prince change his plan of operations. Paris was safe from the danger of an assault by its numerous garrison; from that of a blockade by its well-supplied magazines: and as Edward himself could not subsist his army in a country wasted by foreign and domestic enemies, and left also empty by the precaution of the dauphin, he was obliged to remove his quarters; and he spread his troops into the provinces of Maine, Beausse, and the Chartraine, which were abandoned to the fury of their devastations.[**] The only repose which France experienced was during the festival of Easter, when the king stopped the course of his ravages. For superstition can sometimes restrain the rage of men, which neither justice nor humanity is able to control.

The place was bravely defended by the inhabitants, inspired by the archbishop, John de Craon, until the late season (as this expedition began at the start of winter) forced the king to lift the siege. Meanwhile, the province of Champagne was devastated by his attacks; from there, he led his army with the same intent into Burgundy. He seized and looted Tonnerre, Gaillon, Avalon, and other small towns; but the duke of Burgundy, to protect his land from further destruction, agreed to pay him one hundred thousand nobles.[*] Edward then directed his march toward the Nivernois, which saved itself through a similar agreement: he devastated Brie and the Gatinois; and after a long march, which was very damaging to France and somewhat ruinous to his own troops, he arrived at the gates of Paris, setting up camp at Bourg-la-Reine and extending his army to Longjumeau, Montrouge, and Vaugirard. He attempted to provoke the dauphin into a battle by sending him a challenge; but he could not persuade that prudent prince to change his strategy. Paris was safe from the threat of an assault thanks to its large garrison and from a blockade due to its well-stocked supplies: and since Edward could not support his army in a region ravaged by both foreign and domestic foes, and also emptied by the dauphin's foresight, he had to move his camp; and he spread his troops into the provinces of Maine, Beausse, and the Chartraine, which were left to suffer from their devastation.[**] The only peace that France experienced was during the Easter festival when the king halted his ravages. For sometimes, superstition can restrain men’s fury, which neither justice nor humanity can control.

     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 161. Walsing. p. 174.

     ** Walsing. p. 175.
     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 161. Walsing. p. 174.

     ** Walsing. p. 175.

While the war was carried on in this ruinous manner, the negotiations for peace were never interrupted: but as the king still insisted on the full execution of the treaty which he had made with his prisoner at London, and which was strenuously rejected by the dauphin, there appeared no likelihood of an accommodation. The earl, now duke of Lancaster, (for this, title was introduced into England during the present reign,) endeavored to soften the rigor of these terms, and to finish the war on more equal and reasonable conditions. He insisted with Edward, that, notwithstanding his great and surprising successes, the object of the war, if such were to be esteemed the acquisition of the crown of France, was not become any nearer than at the commencement of it; or rather, was set at a greater distance by those very victories and advantages which seemed to lead to it. That his claim of succession had not from the first procured him one partisan in the kingdom; and the continuance of these destructive hostilities had united every Frenchman in the most implacable animosity against him. That though intestine faction had crept into the government of France, it was abating every moment; and no party, even during the greatest heat of the contest, when subjection under a foreign enemy usually appears preferable to the dominion of fellow-citizens, had ever adopted the pretensions of the king of England. That the king of Navarre himself, who alone was allied with the English, instead of being a cordial friend, was Edward’s most dangerous rival, and, in the opinion of his partisans, possessed a much preferable title to the crown of France. That the prolongation of the war, however it might enrich the English soldiers, was ruinous to the king himself, who bore all the charges of the armament, without reaping any solid or durable advantage from it. That if the present disorders of France continued, that kingdom would soon be reduced to such a state of desolation, that it would afford no spoils to its ravagers, if it could establish a more steady government, it might turn the chance of war in its favor, and by its superior force and advantages be able to repel the present victors. That the dauphin, even during his greatest distresses, had yet conducted himself with so much prudence, as to prevent the English from acquiring one foot of land in the kingdom; and it were better for the king to accept by a peace what he had in vain attempted to acquire by hostilities, which, however hitherto successful, had been extremely expensive, and might prove very dangerous. And that Edward having acquired so much glory by his arms, the praise of moderation was the only honor to which he could now aspire; an honor so much the greater, as it was durable, was united with that of prudence, and might be attended with the most real advantages.[*]

While the war was carried out in this destructive way, peace negotiations were never stopped. However, as the king still insisted on the complete implementation of the treaty he made with his prisoner in London—which the dauphin strongly rejected—there seemed to be no chance for an agreement. The earl, now duke of Lancaster (a title introduced into England during this reign), tried to soften the harshness of these terms and to end the war on fairer and more reasonable grounds. He urged Edward that, despite his significant and surprising successes, the main goal of the war—if that was seen as the acquisition of the crown of France—was no closer than when it started; in fact, it had become further away because of the very victories and advantages that appeared to lead to it. His claim to the throne had not gained him a single supporter in the kingdom from the start, and the ongoing destructive hostilities had united every Frenchman in intense hostility against him. Even though internal conflict had seeped into the government of France, it was diminishing each moment, and no faction, even during the fiercest part of the fighting when submission to a foreign enemy usually seems better than being ruled by fellow countrymen, had ever adopted the claims of the king of England. The king of Navarre, who was the only one allied with the English, instead of being a genuine friend, was Edward's most dangerous rival and, according to his supporters, had a much stronger claim to the crown of France. The extension of the war, while it might enrich the English soldiers, was disastrous for the king himself, who bore all the cost of the military effort without gaining any significant or lasting benefit. If the current chaos in France continued, the country would soon be reduced to such a state of ruin that it would offer no spoils to its plunderers; if it could establish a more stable government, it might turn the tide of war in its favor and, by its superior strength and advantages, be able to repel the current victors. The dauphin, even during his greatest troubles, managed to conduct himself with enough wisdom to prevent the English from gaining even a foot of land in the kingdom; it would be better for the king to accept through peace what he had unsuccessfully sought through hostilities, which, while successful so far, had been extremely costly and could prove very dangerous. Edward, having gained so much glory through his military actions, now had the opportunity to earn the commendation of moderation, an honor that would be even more significant as it was lasting, tied to wisdom, and could result in the most meaningful benefits.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 211.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 211.

These reasons induced Edward to accept of more moderate terms of peace; and it is probable that, in order to palliate this change of resolution, he ascribed it to a vow made during a dreadful tempest, which attacked his army on their march, and which ancient historians represent as the cause of this sudden accommodation.[*] The conferences between the English and French commissioners were carried on during a few days at Bretigni, in the Chartraine, and the peace was at last concluded on the following conditions:[**] it was stipulated that King John should be restored to his liberty, and should pay as his ransom three millions of crowns of gold, about one million five hundred thousand pounds of our present money;[***] 9 which was to be discharged at different payments: that Edward should forever renounce all claim to the crown of France, and to the provinces of Normandy, Maine, Touraine, and Anjou, possessed by his ancestors; and should receive in exchange the provinces of Poictou, Xaintonge, l’Agenois, Perigord, the Limousin, Quercy, Rovergue, l’Angoumois, and other districts in that quarter, together with Calais, Guisnes, Montreuil, and the county of Ponthieu, on the other side of France: that the full sovereignty of all these provinces, as well as that of Guienne, should be vested in the crown of England, and that France should renounce all title to feudal jurisdiction, homage, or appeal from them: that the king of Navarre should be restored to all his honors and possessions: that Edward should renounce his confederacy with the Flemings, John his connections with the Scots: that the disputes concerning the succession of Brittany, between the families of Blois and Mountfort, should be decided by arbiters appointed by the two kings; and if the competitors refused to submit to the award, the dispute should no longer be a ground of war between the kingdoms; and that forty hostages, such as should be agreed on, should be sent to England as a security for the execution of all these conditions.[****]

These reasons led Edward to accept more moderate peace terms; it's likely that, to justify this change of heart, he claimed it was due to a vow he made during a terrible storm that hit his army on their march, which ancient historians say was the reason for this sudden agreement.[*] The talks between the English and French representatives lasted a few days in Bretigni, in Chartraine, and the peace was finally established under the following conditions:[**] it was agreed that King John would be released and would pay a ransom of three million gold crowns, about one million five hundred thousand pounds in today's money;[***] 9 which would be paid in installments: Edward would permanently give up all claims to the French crown and the territories of Normandy, Maine, Touraine, and Anjou that his ancestors held; in return, he would receive the provinces of Poictou, Xaintonge, l’Agenois, Perigord, Limousin, Quercy, Rovergue, l’Angoumois, and other areas in that region, as well as Calais, Guisnes, Montreuil, and the county of Ponthieu on the other side of France: the full sovereignty of all these provinces, along with Guienne, would belong to the English crown, and France would abandon all claims to feudal jurisdiction, homage, or appeals from them: the king of Navarre would be restored to all his titles and lands: Edward would renounce his alliance with the Flemings, while John would cut ties with the Scots: disputes over the succession in Brittany between the families of Blois and Montfort would be settled by arbitrators chosen by the two kings; if the contenders refused to accept the decision, the conflict would no longer be grounds for war between the two kingdoms; and forty hostages, as agreed upon, would be sent to England as a guarantee for fulfilling these conditions.[****]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 211.

     ** Rymer, vol. vi. p. 178. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 212.

     *** See note I, at the end of the volume.

     **** The hostages were the two sons of the French king, John
     and Lewis; his brother Philip, duke of Orleans, the duke of
     Bourbon, James de Bourbon count de Ponthieu, the counts
     d’Eu, de Longueville, de St. Pol, de Harcourt, de Vendome,
     de Couci, de Craon, de Montmorenci, and many of the chief
     nobility of France. The princes were mostly released on the
     fulfilling of certain articles: others of the hostages, and
     the duke of Berry among the rest, were permitted to return
     upon their parole, which they did not keep. Rymer, vol. vi.
     p. 278, 285, 287.
     * Froissart, book i, chapter 211.

     ** Rymer, volume vi, page 178. Froissart, book i, chapter 212.

     *** See note I at the end of the volume.

     **** The hostages were the two sons of the French king, John and Lewis; his brother Philip, Duke of Orleans, the Duke of Bourbon, James de Bourbon, Count de Ponthieu, the Counts d’Eu, de Longueville, de St. Pol, de Harcourt, de Vendome, de Couci, de Craon, de Montmorency, and many of the leading nobility of France. The princes were mostly released upon meeting certain conditions: others of the hostages, including the Duke of Berry, were allowed to return based on their word, which they did not keep. Rymer, volume vi, pages 278, 285, 287.

In consequence of this treaty, the king of France was brought over to Calais; whither Edward also soon after repaired; and there both princes solemnly ratified the treaty.

As a result of this treaty, the king of France was brought to Calais; where Edward also soon arrived; and there both princes officially confirmed the treaty.

John was sent to Boulogne; the king accompanied him a mile on his journey; and the two monarchs parted with many professions, probably cordial and sincere, of mutual amity.[*] The good disposition of John made him fully sensible of the generous treatment which he had received in England, and obliterated all memory of the ascendant gained over him by his rival. There seldom has been a treaty of so great importance so faithfully executed by both parties. Edward had scarcely from the beginning entertained any hopes of acquiring the crown of France: by restoring John to his liberty, and making peace at a juncture so favorable to his arms, he had now plainly renounced all pretensions of this nature; he had sold at a very high price that chimerical claim; and had at present no other interest than to retain those acquisitions which he had made with such singular prudence and good fortune. John, on the other hand, though the terms were severe, possessed such fidelity and honor, that he was determined at all hazards to execute them, and to use every expedient for satisfying a monarch who had indeed been his greatest political enemy, but had treated him personally with singular humanity and regard. But, notwithstanding his endeavors, there occurred many difficulties in fulfilling his purpose; chiefly from the extreme reluctance which many towns and vassals in the neighborhood of Guienne expressed against submitting to the English dominion;[**] and John, in order to adjust these differences, took a resolution of coming over himself to England.

John was sent to Boulogne; the king accompanied him for a mile on his journey; and the two monarchs parted with many promises, probably warm and sincere, of mutual friendship.[*] John’s good nature made him fully aware of the generous treatment he had received in England, and it erased all memories of the influence his rival had over him. There have been few treaties of such great importance that were so faithfully executed by both sides. Edward had hardly entertained any hopes of gaining the French crown from the start: by freeing John and making peace at such a favorable time for his own forces, he had clearly given up any claims to that end; he had sold that unrealistic ambition for a high price and was now only interested in keeping the gains he had made with such remarkable prudence and luck. John, on the other hand, although the terms were tough, had such loyalty and honor that he was determined, at all costs, to follow through with them and to find every way to satisfy a king who had been his greatest political adversary but had treated him personally with unique kindness and respect. However, despite his efforts, many challenges arose in fulfilling his goal, mainly due to the strong opposition from many towns and vassals in the nearby region of Guienne against submitting to English rule;[**] and John decided to come to England himself to resolve these issues.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 213.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 214.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 213.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 214.

1363.

1363.

His council endeavored to dissuade him from this rash design; and probably would have been pleased to see him employ more chicanes for eluding the execution of so disadvantageous a treaty: but John replied to them, that though good faith were banished from the rest of the earth, she ought still to retain her habitation in the breasts of princes. Some historians would detract from the merit of this honorable conduct, by representing John as enamored of an English lady, to whom he was glad on this pretence to pay a visit; but besides that this surmise is not founded on any good authority, it appears somewhat unlikely on account of the advanced age of that prince, who was now in his fifty-sixth year.

His council tried to talk him out of this reckless plan; they probably would have preferred to see him use more tricks to avoid going through with such a disadvantageous treaty. But John told them that even if good faith was gone from the rest of the world, it should still have a home in the hearts of princes. Some historians try to downplay the merit of this honorable action by suggesting that John was infatuated with an English lady and used this as an excuse for a visit. However, this idea isn’t based on any solid evidence and seems unlikely given that he was already fifty-six years old.

1364.

1364.

He was lodged in the Savoy; the palace where he had resided during his captivity, and where he soon after sickened and died. Nothing can be a stronger proof of the great dominion of fortune over men, than the calamities which pursued a monarch of such eminent valor, goodness, and honor, and which he incurred merely by reason of some slight imprudences, which, in other situations, would have been of no importance. But though both his reign and that of his father proved extremely unfortunate to their kingdom, the French crown acquired, during their time, very considerable accessions—those of Dauphiny and Burgundy. This latter province, however, John had the imprudence again to dismember by bestowing it on Philip, his fourth son, the object of his most tender affections;[*] a deed which was afterwards the source of many calamities to the kingdom.

He was staying in the Savoy, the palace where he had lived during his captivity, and where he soon became ill and died. Nothing proves the power of fate over people more than the misfortunes that followed a king of such remarkable bravery, kindness, and honor, which he faced simply due to a few minor mistakes that, in other contexts, would have meant nothing. However, despite the misfortunes faced by both his reign and that of his father, the French crown gained significant territories during their rule—those of Dauphiny and Burgundy. Yet, this latter province, John foolishly decided to divide by giving it to Philip, his fourth son, whom he loved most dearly; a decision that later became the cause of many troubles for the kingdom.

John was succeeded in the throne by Charles the dauphin, a prince educated in the school of adversity, and well qualified, by his consummate prudence and experience, to repair all the losses which the kingdom had sustained from the errors of his two predecessors. Contrary to the practice of all the great princes of those times, which held nothing in estimation but military courage, he seems to have fixed it as a maxim never to appear at the head of his armies; and he was the first king in Europe that showed the advantage of policy, foresight, and judgment, above a rash and precipitate valor. The events of his reign, compared with those of the preceding, are a proof how little reason kingdoms have to value themselves on their victories, or to be humbled by their defeats; which in reality ought to be ascribed chiefly to the good or bad conduct of their rulers, and are of little moment towards determining national characters and manners.

John was succeeded on the throne by Charles, the dauphin, a prince shaped by hardship and well-equipped, thanks to his great wisdom and experience, to mend all the losses the kingdom suffered from the mistakes of his two predecessors. Unlike other powerful leaders of his time, who only valued military bravery, he chose to avoid leading his armies directly and was the first king in Europe to demonstrate that strategy, foresight, and sound judgment are more valuable than reckless courage. The events of his reign, especially when compared to those before him, show how little countries should pride themselves on their victories or feel ashamed of their defeats; these outcomes should mainly be credited to the effectiveness or ineffectiveness of their leaders and really have little significance in defining national characters and behaviors.

Before Charles could think of counterbalancing so great a power as England, it was necessary for him to remedy the many disorders to which his own kingdom was exposed. He turned his arms against the king of Navarre, the great disturber of France during that age; he defeated this prince by the conduct of Bertrand du Guesclin, a gentleman of Brittany, one of the most accomplished characters of the age, whom he had the discernment to choose as the instrument of all his victories:[**] and he obliged his enemy to accept of moderate terms of peace.

Before Charles could consider balancing the immense power of England, he needed to fix the many issues plaguing his own kingdom. He directed his forces against the king of Navarre, a major troublemaker in France during that time. He defeated this prince thanks to the leadership of Bertrand du Guesclin, a knight from Brittany, who was one of the finest individuals of the era and whom he wisely chose as the key to all his victories. He forced his enemy to agree to reasonable terms of peace.

     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 421.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 119, 120.
     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 421.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 119, 120.

Du Guesclin was less fortunate in the wars of Brittany, which still continued, notwithstanding the mediation of France and England: he was defeated and taken prisoner at Auray by Chandos: Charles of Blois was there slain, and the young count of Mountfort soon after got entire possession of that duchy.[*] But the prudence of Charles broke the force of this blow: he submitted to the decision of fortune: he acknowledged the title of Mountfort, though a zealous partisan of England; and received the proffered homage for his dominions. But the chief obstacle which the French king met with in the settlement of the state, proceeded from obscure enemies, whom their crimes alone rendered eminent, and their number dangerous.

Du Guesclin had less luck in the ongoing wars in Brittany, despite France and England trying to mediate. He was defeated and captured at Auray by Chandos: Charles of Blois was killed there, and the young Count of Mountfort soon gained full control of the duchy.[*] But Charles's wisdom lessened the impact of this loss: he accepted the randomness of fate. He recognized Mountfort's claim, even though he was a strong supporter of England, and accepted the offered allegiance for his lands. However, the main challenge the French king faced in stabilizing the state came from hidden enemies, whose crimes made them notable and their numbers a threat.

On the conclusion of the treaty of Bretigni, the many military adventurers who had followed the standard of Edward being dispersed into the several provinces, and possessed of strongholds, refused to lay down their arms, or relinquish a course of life to which they were now accustomed, and by which alone they could gain a subsistence.[**] They associated themselves with the banditti, who were already inured to the habits of rapine and violence; and under the name of the “companies” and “companions,” became a terror to all the peaceable inhabitants. Some English and Gascon gentlemen of character, particularly Sir Matthew Gournay, Sir Hugh Calverly, the chevalier Verte, and others, were not ashamed to take the command of these ruffians, whose numbers amounted on the whole to near forty thousand, and who bore the appearance of regular armies, rather than bands of robbers. These leaders fought pitched battles with the troops of France, and gained victories; in one of which Jaques de Bourbon, a prince of the blood, was slain:[***] and they proceeded to such a height, that they wanted little but regular establishments to become princes, and thereby sanctify, by the maxims of the world, their infamous profession. The greater spoil they committed on the country, the more easy they found it to recruit their number: all those who were reduced to misery and despair, flocked to their standard: the evil was every day increasing; and though the pope declared them excommunicated, these military plunderers, however deeply affected with the sentence, to which they paid a much greater regard than to any principles of morality, could not be induced by it to betake themselves to peaceable or lawful professions.

After the treaty of Bretigni was concluded, the many military adventurers who had rallied under Edward’s banner scattered across various provinces. They had taken control of strongholds and refused to lay down their arms or give up the lifestyle they had gotten used to, which was the only way they could make a living. They joined forces with bandits who were already accustomed to a life of looting and violence, and under the names of the "companies" and "companions," they became a threat to all the peaceful residents. Some notable English and Gascon gentlemen, including Sir Matthew Gournay, Sir Hugh Calverly, the chevalier Verte, and others, were not ashamed to lead these outlaws, whose ranks swelled to nearly forty thousand, looking more like an organized army than a band of thieves. These leaders engaged in battles against the French troops and achieved victories, one of which resulted in the death of Jaques de Bourbon, a royal prince. They became so powerful that they were almost in a position to establish themselves as princes and legitimize their notorious profession with societal norms. The more loot they took from the land, the easier it was to recruit more followers; those who were left in poverty and despair flocked to their cause. The situation worsened every day, and despite the pope declaring them excommunicated, these plundering soldiers, though affected by the decree, which they regarded more seriously than any moral principles, were not swayed to turn to peaceful or lawful endeavors.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 227, 228, etc. Walsing, p. 180.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 214.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap, 214, 215.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapters 227, 228, etc. Walsingham, p. 180.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 214.

     *** Froissart, book 1, chapters 214, 215.

1366.

1366.

As Charles was not able by power to redress so enormous a grievance, he was led by necessity, and by the turn of his character, to correct it by policy, and to contrive some method of discharging into foreign countries this dangerous and intestine evil.

As Charles couldn't fix such a huge problem through force, he was compelled by necessity and his personality to address it through strategy and find a way to send this dangerous internal issue abroad.

Peter, king of Castile, stigmatized by his contemporaries and by posterity with the epithet of Cruel, had filled with blood and murder his kingdom and his own family; and having incurred the universal hatred of his subjects, he kept from present terror alone, an anxious and precarious possession of the throne. His nobles fell every day the victims of his severity: he put to death several of his natural brothers, from groundless jealousy: each murder, by multiplying his enemies, became the occasion of fresh barbarities; and as he was not destitute of talents, his neighbors, no less than his own subjects, were alarmed at the progress of his violence and injustice. The ferocity of his temper, instead of being softened by his strong propensity to love, was rather inflamed by that passion, and took thence new occasion to exert itself. Instigated by Mary de Padilla, who had acquired the ascendant over him, he threw into prison Blanche de Bourbon, his wife, Bister to the queen of France; and soon after made way by poison for the espousing of his mistress.

Peter, king of Castile, labeled by his contemporaries and later generations with the nickname Cruel, had drenched his kingdom and family in blood and murder. Having earned the widespread hatred of his subjects, he clung to the throne out of sheer fear, relying on a tense and uncertain hold on power. His nobles fell victim to his harshness every day; he executed several of his legitimate brothers out of unfounded jealousy. Each murder, by increasing the number of his enemies, led to more brutal acts. Although he wasn't lacking in talent, his neighbors and subjects alike were alarmed by the extent of his violence and injustice. Instead of being softened by his strong desire for love, his ferocity was intensified by that very passion, which only gave him more reasons to act out. Prompted by Mary de Padilla, who had gained power over him, he imprisoned Blanche de Bourbon, his wife and sister to the queen of France, and shortly afterward used poison to clear the path for marrying his mistress.

Henry, count of Transtamare, his natural brother, seeing the fate of every one who had become obnoxious to this tyrant, took arms against him; but being foiled in the attempt, he sought for refuge in France, where he found the minds of men extremely inflamed against Peter, on account of his murder of the French princess. He asked permission of Charles to enlist the “companies” in his service, and to lead them into Castile; where, from the concurrence of his own friends, and the enemies of his brother, he had the prospect of certain and immediate success. The French king, charmed with the project, employed Du Guesclin in negotiating with the leaders of these banditti. The treaty was soon concluded. The high character of honor which that general possessed, made every one trust to his promises: though the intended expedition was kept a secret, the “companies” implicitly enlisted under his standard; and they required no other condition before their engagement, than an assurance that they were not to be led against the prince of Wales in Guienne. But that prince was so little averse to the enterprise, that he allowed some gentlemen of his retinue to enter into the service under Du Guesclin.

Henry, Count of Transtamare, his half-brother, witnessing the fate of everyone who fell out of favor with this tyrant, took up arms against him. However, when his attempt failed, he sought refuge in France, where he found the people extremely angry at Peter over his murder of the French princess. He asked Charles for permission to recruit the “companies” for his service and to lead them into Castile. With the support of his friends and his brother's enemies, he saw a clear path to success. The French king, excited about the idea, assigned Du Guesclin to negotiate with the leaders of these mercenaries. The agreement was quickly reached. The general's strong reputation for honor made everyone trust his word. Even though the planned expedition was kept secret, the “companies” readily joined his cause, needing only the assurance that they would not be sent against the Prince of Wales in Guienne. However, that prince was not opposed to the mission and allowed some of his gentlemen to join Du Guesclin's service.

Du Guesclin, having completed his levies, led the army first to Avignon, where the pope then resided, and demanded, sword in hand, an absolution for his soldiers, and the sum of two hundred thousand livres. The first was readily promised him; some more difficulty was made with regard to the second. “I believe that my fellows,” replied Du Guesclin, “may make a shift to do without your absolution; but the money is absolutely necessary.” The pope then extorted from the inhabitants in the city and neighborhood the sum of a hundred thousand livres, and offered it to Du Guesclin. “It is not my purpose,” cried that generous warrior, “to oppress the innocent people. The pope and his cardinals themselves can well spare me that sum from their own coffers. This money, I insist, must be restored to the owners. And should they be defrauded of it, I shall myself return from the other side of the Pyrenees, and oblige you to make them restitution.” The pope found the necessity of submitting, and paid him from his treasury the sum demanded.[*] The army, hallowed by the blessings, and enriched by the spoils, of the church, proceeded on their expedition.

Du Guesclin, after gathering his troops, took the army to Avignon, where the pope was living at the time, and demanded, sword in hand, an absolution for his soldiers and a payment of two hundred thousand livres. The first was quickly promised to him; however, there was some hesitation regarding the second. “I believe my men,” Du Guesclin replied, “can manage without your absolution; but the money is absolutely necessary.” The pope then squeezed out a hundred thousand livres from the people in the city and surrounding areas and offered it to Du Guesclin. “It is not my intention,” said that noble warrior, “to burden the innocent people. The pope and his cardinals can easily take that amount from their own funds. This money, I insist, must be returned to its rightful owners. If they are cheated out of it, I will come back from the other side of the Pyrenees and make you give it back.” The pope realized he had no choice but to comply and paid him the requested amount from his treasury.[*] The army, blessed by the church and bolstered by its riches, continued on their mission.

These experienced and hardy soldiers, conducted by so able a general, easily prevailed over the king of Castile, whose subjects, instead of supporting their oppressor, were ready to join the enemy against him.[**] Peter fled from his dominions took shelter in Guienne, and craved the protection of the prince of Wales, whom his father had invested with the sovereignty of these conquered provinces, by the title of the principality of Aquitaine.[***]

These experienced and tough soldiers, led by such a capable general, easily defeated the king of Castile, whose subjects, instead of supporting their oppressor, were ready to side with the enemy against him. Peter fled from his lands, sought refuge in Guienne, and asked for the protection of the prince of Wales, to whom his father had granted sovereignty over these conquered provinces, titled the principality of Aquitaine.

     * Hist. du Guesclin.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap 230.

     *** Rymer, vol. vi. p. 384. Froissard, liv. i. chap. 231.
     * Hist. du Guesclin.

     ** Froissart, book 1, chapter 230.

     *** Rymer, volume 6, page 384. Froissart, book 1, chapter 231.

1367.

1367.

The prince seemed now to have entirely changed his sentiments with regard to the Spanish transactions: whether that he was moved by the generosity of supporting a distressed prince, and thought, as is but too usual among sovereigns, that the rights of the people were a matter of much less consideration; or dreaded the acquisition of so powerful a confederate to France as the new king of Castile; or, what is most probable, was impatient of rest and ease, and sought only an opportunity for exerting his military talents, by which he had already acquired so much renown. He promised his assistance to the dethroned monarch; and having obtained the consent of his father, he levied a great army, and set out upon his enterprise. He was accompanied by his younger brother, John of Gaunt, created duke of Lancaster, in the room of the good prince of that name, who had died without any male issue, and whose daughter he had espoused. Chandos, also, who bore among the English the same character which Du Guesclin had acquired among the French, commanded under him in this expedition.

The prince now seemed to have completely changed his views about the situation in Spain. Whether it was out of a sense of duty to help a struggling prince, and thinking, as is common among rulers, that the people's rights matter much less; or fearing the rise of such a powerful ally to France with the new king of Castile; or, more likely, just being restless and wanting a chance to show off his military skills, for which he was already quite famous. He offered his help to the ousted king, and after getting his father's approval, he raised a large army and set out on his mission. He was joined by his younger brother, John of Gaunt, who was made the duke of Lancaster, taking the place of the good prince of that name, who had died without any sons, and whose daughter he had married. Chandos, who was seen among the English as having the same reputation that Du Guesclin had among the French, led troops for him in this campaign.

The first blow which the prince of Wales gave to Henry of Transtamare, was the recalling of all the “companies” from his service; and so much reverence did they bear to the name of Edward, that great numbers of them immediately withdrew from Spain, and enlisted under his banners. Henry, however, beloved by his new subjects, and supported by the king of Arragon and others of his neighbors, was able to meet the enemy with an army of one hundred thousand men; forces three times more numerous than those which were commanded by Edward. Du Guesclin, and all his experienced officers, advised him to delay any decisive action, to cut off the prince of Wales’s provisions, and to avoid every engagement with a general, whose enterprises had hitherto been always conducted with prudence, and crowned with success. Henry trusted too much to his numbers; and ventured to encounter the English prince at Najara.[*]

The first blow that the Prince of Wales dealt to Henry of Transtamare was calling back all the “companies” from his service. They had so much respect for the name of Edward that many of them quickly left Spain to join his forces. However, Henry, who was well-liked by his new subjects and backed by the King of Aragon and other neighbors, managed to face the enemy with an army of one hundred thousand men—three times the number of Edward’s troops. Du Guesclin and all his experienced officers advised him to hold off on any major action, to cut off the Prince of Wales’s supplies, and to avoid engaging with a general whose campaigns had always been carried out with caution and had ended in success. Henry relied too much on his numbers and decided to confront the English prince at Najara.[*]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 241.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 241.

Historians of that age are commonly very copious in describing the shock of armies in battle, the valor of the combatants, the slaughter and various successes of the day: but though small rencounters in those times were often well disputed, military discipline was always too imperfect to preserve order in great armies; and such actions deserve more the name of routs than of battles. Henry was chased off the field, with the loss of above twenty thousand men: there perished only four knights and forty private men on the side of the English.

Historians from that time are usually very detailed in describing the impact of armies in battle, the bravery of the fighters, the carnage, and the different outcomes of the day: but even though small skirmishes during that era were often fiercely contested, military discipline was always too weak to maintain order in large armies; and such events are better called routs than battles. Henry was driven off the battlefield, losing over twenty thousand men: only four knights and forty soldiers died on the English side.

Peter, who so well merited the infamous epithet which he bore, purposed to murder all his prisoners in cold blood; but was restrained from this barbarity by the remonstrance, of the prince of Wales. All Castile now submitted to the victor: Peter was restored to the throne; and Edward finished his perilous enterprise with his usual glory. But he had soon reason to repent his connections with a man like Peter, abandoned to all sense of virtue and honor. The ungrateful tyrant refused the stipulated pay to the English forces; and Edward finding his soldiers daily perish by sickness, and even his own health impaired by the climate, was obliged, without receiving any satisfaction on this head, to return into Guienne.[*]

Peter, who truly deserved the infamous title he held, planned to kill all his prisoners in cold blood; however, he was stopped from this brutality by the prince of Wales's protests. All of Castile now surrendered to the victor: Peter was reinstated on the throne, and Edward completed his dangerous mission with his usual glory. But he quickly had reasons to regret his ties with a man like Peter, who had no sense of virtue or honor. The ungrateful tyrant denied the agreed-upon payment to the English forces, and as Edward saw his soldiers dying daily from illness and his own health declining due to the climate, he was forced to return to Guienne without receiving any compensation for this situation.[*]

The barbarities exercised by Peter over his helpless subjects, whom he now regarded as vanquished rebels, revived all the animosity of the Castilians against him; and on the return of Henry of Transtamare, together with Du Guesclin, and some forces levied anew in France, the tyrant was again dethroned, and was taken prisoner. His brother, in resentment of his cruelties, murdered him with his own hand: and was placed on the throne of Castile, which he transmitted to his posterity. The duke of Lancaster, who espoused in second marriage the eldest daughter of Peter, inherited only the empty title of that sovereignty, and, by claiming the succession, increased the animosity of the new king of Castile against England.

The brutal actions Peter took against his defenseless subjects, whom he now saw as defeated rebels, reignited all the resentment the Castilians held against him. When Henry of Transtamare returned, along with Du Guesclin and some troops gathered again in France, the tyrant was overthrown once more and captured. His brother, fueled by anger over Peter's cruelty, killed him with his own hands and took the throne of Castile, passing it down to his descendants. The Duke of Lancaster, who married Peter's eldest daughter as his second wife, inherited nothing but the empty title of that sovereignty. By claiming the succession, he only increased the hostility of the new King of Castile towards England.

1368.

1368.

But the prejudice which the affairs of Prince Edward received from this splendid though imprudent expedition, ended not with it. He had involved himself in so much debt by his preparations and the pay of his troops, that he found it necessary, on his return, to impose on his principality a new tax, to which some of the nobility consented with extreme reluctance, and to which others absolutely refused to submit.[**]

But the bias that Prince Edward faced because of this lavish yet reckless campaign didn’t stop there. He had gotten himself into so much debt from his preparations and the salaries of his troops that upon his return, he found it necessary to introduce a new tax in his principality. Some of the nobility agreed to it with great hesitance, while others outright refused to comply.[**]

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 242, 243. Walsing. p. 182.

     ** This tax was a livre upon a hearth; and it was imagined
     that the imposition would have yielded one million two
     hundred thousand livres a year, which supposes so many
     hearths in the provinces possessed by the English. But such
     loose conjectures have commonly no manner of authority, much
     less in such ignorant times. There is a strong instance of
     it in the present reign. The house of commons granted the
     king a tax of twenty-two shillings on each parish, supposing
     that the amount of the whole would be fifty thousand pounds.
     But they were found to be in a mistake of near five to one.
     Cotton, p. 3. And the council assumed the power of
     augmenting the tax upon each parish.
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 242, 243. Walsing. p. 182.

     ** This tax was a livre for each hearth; and it was believed
     that the tax would bring in one million two hundred thousand livres a year, which assumes there were that many hearths in the provinces held by the English. But such vague estimates usually lack any real authority, especially in such uninformed times. A notable example of this occurred during the current reign. The House of Commons approved a tax of twenty-two shillings for each parish, assuming the total would amount to fifty thousand pounds. However, they were found to be mistaken by nearly five to one. Cotton, p. 3. And the council took the authority to increase the tax on each parish.

This incident revived the animosity which the inhabitants bore to the English, and which all the amiable qualities of the prince of Wales were not able to mitigate or assuage. They complained that they were considered as a conquered people, that their privileges were disregarded, that all trust was given to the English alone, that every office of honor and profit was conferred on these foreigners, and that the extreme reluctance, which most of them had expressed, to receive the new yoke, was likely to be long remembered against them. They cast, therefore, their eyes towards their ancient sovereign, whose prudence they found had now brought the affairs of his kingdom into excellent order; and the counts of Armagnac, Comminge, and Perigord, the lord d’Albret, with other nobles, went to Paris, and were encouraged to carry their complaints to Charles, as to their lord paramount, against these oppressions of the English government.[*]

This incident reignited the resentment the locals held towards the English, and no amount of the prince of Wales's charm could ease that. They felt like a conquered people, believing their rights were being overlooked, that only the English were trusted, and that all positions of honor and wealth were given to these outsiders. Their strong reluctance to accept this new control was likely to be remembered against them for a long time. So, they looked to their former sovereign, whose wisdom had managed to bring his kingdom's affairs into great shape. The counts of Armagnac, Comminge, and Perigord, along with Lord d’Albret and other nobles, traveled to Paris and were encouraged to voice their grievances to Charles, their ultimate lord, about the unfair treatment from the English government.

In the treaty of Bretigm it had been stipulated, that the two kings should make renunciations; Edward, of his claim to the crown of France, and to the provinces of Normandy, Maine, and Anjou; John, of the homage and fealty due for Guienne and the other provinces ceded to the English. But when that treaty was confirmed and renewed at Calais, it was found necessary, as Edward was not yet in possession of all the territories, that the mutual renunciations should for some time be deferred; and it was agreed, that the parties, meanwhile, should make no use of their respective claims against each other.[**] Though the failure in exchanging these renunciations had still proceeded from France,[***] Edward appears to have taken no umbrage at it; both because this clause seemed to give him entire security, and because some reasonable apology had probably been made to him for each delay. It was, however, on this pretence, though directly contrary to treaty, that Charles resolved to ground his claim of still considering himself as superior lord of those provinces, and of receiving the appeals of his sub-vassals.[****]

In the treaty of Bretigm, it was agreed that the two kings would make renunciations; Edward would renounce his claim to the crown of France and the provinces of Normandy, Maine, and Anjou; John would renounce the homage and loyalty owed for Guienne and the other provinces given to England. However, when that treaty was confirmed and renewed at Calais, it became clear that since Edward did not yet control all the territories, the mutual renunciations would need to be postponed for a while. It was decided that, in the meantime, both parties wouldn't use their respective claims against each other. Although the delay in exchanging these renunciations originated from France, Edward didn't seem to take offense since this clause seemed to provide him with complete security, and there probably was a reasonable explanation for each delay. Nonetheless, it was on this basis, even though it went against the treaty, that Charles decided to assert his claim to still consider himself the superior lord of those provinces and to hear appeals from his sub-vassals.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 244.

     ** Rymer, vol. vi. p. 219, 230, 234, 237, 243.

     *** Rot. Franc. 35, Edward III. from Tyrrel, vol. iii
     p. 643.

     **** Froissard. liv. i. chap. 245.
     * Froissart, book 1, chapter 244.

     ** Rymer, volume 6, pages 219, 230, 234, 237, 243.

     *** Rot. Franc. 35, Edward III. from Tyrrel, volume 3, page 643.

     **** Froissart, book 1, chapter 245.

1369.

1369.

But as views of policy, more than those of justice, enter into the deliberations of princes; and as the mortal injuries received from the English, the pride of their triumphs, the severe terms imposed by the treaty of peace, seemed to render every prudent means of revenge honorable against them; Charles was determined to take this measure, less by the reasonings of his civilians and lawyers, than by the present situation of the two monarchies. He considered the declining years of Edward, the languishing state of the prince of Wales’s health, the affection which the inhabitants of all these provinces bore to their ancient master, their distance from England, their vicinity to France, the extreme animosity expressed by his own subjects against these invaders, and their ardent thirst of vengeance; and having silently made all the necessary preparations, he sent to the prince of Wales a summons to appear in his court at Paris, and there to justify his conduct towards his vassals. The prince replied, that he would come to Paris, but it should be at the head of sixty thousand men.[*] The unwarlike character of Charles kept Prince Edward, even yet, from thinking that that monarch was in earnest in this bold and hazardous attempt.

But as political views, more than those of justice, shape the decisions of rulers; and as the serious harm caused by the English, the pride from their victories, and the harsh terms imposed by the peace treaty seemed to make every reasonable act of revenge against them justified; Charles was set on this course of action, driven more by the current circumstances of the two kingdoms than by the arguments of his advisors and lawyers. He took into account Edward’s old age, the declining health of the prince of Wales, the loyalty that the people of these regions had for their former ruler, their distance from England, their closeness to France, the strong hostility shown by his own subjects towards these invaders, and their intense desire for revenge; and after quietly making all the necessary preparations, he sent a summons to the prince of Wales to appear in his court in Paris and explain his actions towards his vassals. The prince replied that he would come to Paris, but only at the head of sixty thousand men.[*] Charles’s lack of military inclination made Prince Edward doubt that this monarch was serious about such a bold and risky endeavor.

It soon appeared what a poor return the king had received by his distant conquests for all the blood and treasure expended in the quarrel, and how impossible it was to retain acquisitions, in an age when no regular force could be maintained sufficient to defend them against the revolt of the inhabitants, especially if that danger was joined with the invasion of a foreign enemy.

It quickly became clear how little the king had gained from his far-off conquests compared to all the blood and treasure spent on the conflict, and how impossible it was to hold onto those gains in a time when no regular army could be maintained strong enough to protect them from the uprisings of the locals, especially if that threat was combined with an invasion from a foreign enemy.

1370.

1370.

Charles fell first upon Ponthieu, which gave the English an inlet into the heart of France: the citizens of Abbeville opened their gates to him:[**] those of St. Valori, Rue, and Crotoy imitated the example, and the whole country was, in a little time, reduced to submission. The dukes of Berri and Anjou, brothers to Charles, being assisted by Du Guesclin, who was recalled from Spain, invaded the southern provinces; and by means of their good conduct, the favorable dispositions of the people, and the ardor of the French nobility, they made every day considerable progress against the English. The state of the prince of Wales’s health did not permit him to mount on horseback, or exert his usual activity: Chandos, the constable of Guienne, was slain in one action;[***] the Captal de Buche, who succeeded him in that office, was taken prisoner in another:[****] and when young Edward himself was obliged by his increasing infirmities to throw up the command, and return to his native country, the affairs of the English in the south of France seemed to be menaced with total ruin.

Charles first attacked Ponthieu, giving the English access to the heart of France. The citizens of Abbeville opened their gates to him; those in St. Valori, Rue, and Crotoy followed suit, and soon the entire region was brought to submission. The Dukes of Berri and Anjou, who were Charles's brothers, with the help of Du Guesclin, who had been called back from Spain, invaded the southern provinces. Thanks to their leadership, the people's favorable attitude, and the enthusiasm of the French nobility, they made significant progress against the English each day. The health issues of the Prince of Wales prevented him from riding or exercising his usual energy: Chandos, the constable of Guienne, was killed in one battle; the Captal de Buche, who took over his position, was captured in another. When young Edward was forced by his worsening health to give up command and return home, the English situation in southern France appeared to be headed for complete disaster.

The king, incensed at these injuries, threatened to put to death all the French hostages who remained in his hands; but on reflection abstained from that ungenerous revenge. After resuming, by advice of parliament, the vain title of king of France,[*****] he endeavored to send succors into Gascony, but all his attempts, both by sea and land, proved unsuccessful.

The king, furious about these wrongs, threatened to kill all the French hostages he had; but after thinking it over, he decided against that cruel revenge. After taking back the empty title of king of France,[*****] he tried to send reinforcements to Gascony, but all his efforts, by sea and land, ended in failure.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 247, 248.

     ** Walsing. p. 183.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 277. Walsing, p. 185.

     **** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 310.

     * Froissart, vol. 1, chap. 247, 248.

     ** Walsingham, p. 183.

     *** Froissart, vol. 1, chap. 277. Walsingham, p. 185.

     **** Froissart, vol. 1, chap. 310.

The earl of Pembroke was intercepted at sea, and taken prisoner with his whole army, near Rochelle, by a fleet which the king of Castile had fitted out for that purpose:[*] Edward himself embarked for Bordeaux with another army; but was so long detained by contrary winds, that he was obliged to lay aside the enterprise.[**] Sir Robert Knolles, at the head of thirty thousand men, marched out of Calais, and continued his ravages to the gates of Paris, without being able to provoke the enemy to an engagement: he proceeded in his march to the provinces of Maine and Anjou, which he laid waste; but part of his army being there defeated by the conduct of Du Guesclin, who was now created constable of France, and who seems to have been the first consummate general that had yet appeared in Europe, the rest were scattered and dispersed, and the small remains of the English forces, instead of reaching Guienne, took shelter in Brittany, whose sovereign had embraced the alliance of England.[***] The duke of Lancaster, some time after, made a like attempt with an army of twenty-five thousand men; and marched the whole length of France from Calais to Bordeaux: but was so much harassed by the flying parties which attended him, that he brought not the half of his army to the place of their destination. Edward, from the necessity of his affairs was at last obliged to conclude a truce with the enemy;[****] after almost all his ancient possessions in France had been ravished from him, except Bordeaux and Bayonne, and all his conquests, except Calais.

The Earl of Pembroke was intercepted at sea and captured along with his entire army near Rochelle by a fleet that the King of Castile had sent out for that purpose:[*] Edward himself set sail for Bordeaux with another army, but was delayed by unfavorable winds for so long that he had to abandon the mission.[**] Sir Robert Knolles led thirty thousand men out of Calais and continued his raids right up to the gates of Paris, but he couldn't provoke the enemy into a battle. He moved on to the provinces of Maine and Anjou, which he ravaged; however, part of his army was defeated there under the command of Du Guesclin, who was then appointed constable of France and seemed to be the first outstanding general that had emerged in Europe. The rest of the army scattered and fell apart, and the few remaining English forces, instead of reaching Guienne, took refuge in Brittany, whose ruler had formed an alliance with England.[***] The Duke of Lancaster, some time later, made a similar attempt with an army of twenty-five thousand men, marching the entire length of France from Calais to Bordeaux. However, he was so harassed by the enemy raids that he didn't bring even half of his army to their destination. In the end, Edward, faced with the dire situation, had to agree to a truce with the enemy;[****] this was after nearly all of his former possessions in France had been taken from him, except for Bordeaux and Bayonne, and all his conquests, except for Calais.

The decline of the king’s life was exposed to many mortifications, and corresponded not to the splendid and noisy scenes which had filled the beginning and the middle of it. Besides seeing the loss of his foreign dominions, and being baffled in every attempt to defend them, he felt the decay of his authority at home; and experienced, from the sharpness of some parliamentary remonstrances, the great inconstancy of the people, and the influence of present fortune over all their judgments.[*****]

The king's life was marked by many humiliations in its later years, which sharply contrasted with the grand and spirited events that had characterized the early and middle parts of his reign. In addition to losing his foreign territories and failing to defend them, he sensed his dwindling authority at home and felt the sting of some intense criticisms from Parliament, revealing the fickleness of the public and how much current circumstances swayed their opinions.

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 302, 303, 304. Walsing. p. 186.

     ** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 311. Walsing. p. 187.

     *** Froissard, liv. i. chap. 291. Walsing. p. 185.

     **** Froissard, liv, i. chap. 311. Walsing. p. 187.

     * Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 302, 303, 304. Walsingham, p. 186.

     ** Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 311. Walsingham, p. 187.

     *** Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 291. Walsingham, p. 185.

     **** Froissard, vol. 1, ch. 311. Walsingham, p. 187.

This prince, who, during the vigor of his age, had been chiefly occupied in the pursuits of war and ambition, began, at an unseasonable period, to indulge himself in pleasure; and being now a widower, he attached himself to a lady of sense and spirit, one Alice Pierce, who acquired a great ascendant over him, and by her influence gave such general disgust that, in order to satisfy the parliament, he was obliged to remove her from court.[*]

This prince, who had mostly focused on war and ambition in his prime, started to indulge in pleasure at an inappropriate time. Now a widower, he became involved with a smart and spirited woman named Alice Pierce, who had a significant impact on him. Her influence caused widespread disapproval, and to appease the parliament, he had to remove her from the court.[*]

     * Walsing, p. 189.
* Walsing, p. 189.

The indolence also, naturally attending old age and infirmities, had made him in a great measure resign the administration into the hands of his son, the duke of Lancaster, who, as he was far from being popular, weakened extremely the affection which the English bore to the person and government of the king. Men carried their jealousies very far against the duke; and as they saw, with much regret, the death of the prince of Wales every day approaching, they apprehended lest the succession of his son Richard, now a minor, should be defeated by the intrigues of Lancaster, and by the weak indulgence of the old king. But Edward, in order to satisfy both the people and the prince on this head, declared in parliament his grandson heir and successor to the crown; and thereby cut off all the hopes of the duke of Lancaster, if he ever had the temerity to entertain any.

The laziness that naturally comes with old age and illness had led him to largely hand over control to his son, the Duke of Lancaster, who, being quite unpopular, severely diminished the affection that the English felt for the king and his government. People harbored strong suspicions against the duke, and as they sadly observed the approaching death of the Prince of Wales, they feared that the succession of his son Richard, who was still a minor, would be jeopardized by Lancaster's schemes and the old king’s weak indulgence. To address this concern for both the people and the prince, Edward announced in parliament that his grandson would be the heir and successor to the crown, effectively cutting off any hopes the Duke of Lancaster might have had, if he ever dared to entertain any.

1376.

1376.

The prince of Wales, after a lingering illness, died in the forty-sixth year of his age; and left a character illustrious for every eminent virtue, and, from his earliest youth till the hour he expired, unstained by any blemish. His valor and military talents formed the smallest part of his merit: his generosity, humanity, affability, moderation, gained him the affections of all men; and he was qualified to throw a lustre, not only on that rude age in which he lived, and which nowise infected him with its vices, but on the most shining period of ancient or modern history.

The Prince of Wales, after a prolonged illness, passed away at the age of forty-six, leaving behind a reputation marked by every notable virtue, and throughout his life, from childhood until his last moments, free from any flaws. His bravery and military skills were only a small part of his worth: his generosity, compassion, friendliness, and moderation earned him the love of everyone; and he had the ability to shine a light not only on the harsh times he lived in, which didn't taint him with its vices, but also on the brightest eras of both ancient and modern history.

1377.

1377.

The king survived about a year this melancholy incident: England was deprived at once of both these princes, its chief ornament and support: he expired in the sixty-fifth year of his age and the fifty-first of his reign; and the people were then sensible, though too late, of the irreparable loss which they had sustained.

The king lived for about a year after this sad event: England lost both of these princes, its main pride and support, at once. He passed away at sixty-five years old and had reigned for fifty-one years; the people realized, though it was too late, the huge loss they had suffered.

The English are apt to consider with peculiar fondness the history of Edward III., and to esteem his reign, as it was one of the longest, the most glorious also, that occurs in the annals of their nation. The ascendant which they then began to acquire over France, their rival and supposed national enemy, makes them cast their eyes on this period with great complacency, and sanctifies every measure which Edward embraced for that end. But the domestic government of this prince is really more admirable than his foreign victories; and England enjoyed, by the prudence and vigor of his administration, a longer interval of domestic peace and tranquillity than she had been blessed with in any former period, or than she experienced for many ages after. He gained the affections of the great, yet curbed their licentiousness: he made them feel his power, without their daring, or even being inclined, to murmur at it: his affable and obliging behavior, his munificence and generosity, made them submit with pleasure to his dominion; his valor and conduct made them successful in most of their enterprises; and their unquiet spirits, directed against a public enemy, had no leisure to breed those disturbances to which they were naturally so much inclined, and which the frame of the government seemed so much to authorize. This was the chief benefit which resulted from Edward’s victories and conquests. His foreign wars were, in other respects, neither founded in justice, nor directed to any salutary purpose. His attempt against the king of Scotland, a minor and a brother-in-law, and the revival of his grandfather’s claim of superiority over that kingdom, were both unreasonable and ungenerous; and he allowed himself to be too easily seduced, by the glaring prospect of French conquests, from the acquisition of a point which was practicable, and which, if attained, might really have been of lasting utility to his country and his successors. The success which he met with in France, though chiefly owing to his eminent talents, was unexpected; and yet, from the very nature of things, not from any unforeseen accidents, was found, even during his lifetime, to have procured him no solid advantages. But the glory of a conqueror is so dazzling to the vulgar, the animosity of nations is so violent, that the fruitless desolation of so fine a part of Europe as France, is totally disregarded by us, and is never considered as a blemish in the character or conduct of this prince. And indeed, from the unfortunate state of human nature, it will commonly happen, that a sovereign of genius, such as Edward, who usually finds every thing easy in his domestic government, will turn himself towards military enterprises, where alone he meets with opposition, and where he has full exercise for his industry and capacity.

The English tend to look back fondly on the history of Edward III and regard his reign as one of the longest and most glorious in their national history. The dominance they began to achieve over France, their rival and believed national enemy, makes them view this era with great pride and justifies every action Edward took to accomplish that. However, the domestic governance of this king is even more impressive than his foreign victories; England experienced, thanks to his wise and vigorous leadership, a longer period of peace and stability than it had seen in any earlier time or would experience for many ages afterward. He won the loyalty of the nobility while keeping their excesses in check; he made them aware of his power without them daring, or even wanting, to complain about it. His friendly and accommodating demeanor, along with his generosity and kindness, made them willingly accept his rule; his bravery and strategic skill led them to victory in most of their endeavors. Their restless spirits, aimed at a common enemy, had no opportunity to create the disturbances they were naturally inclined to, which the structure of the government seemed to encourage. This was the main benefit of Edward’s victories and conquests. His foreign wars were, in other aspects, neither justified nor aimed at any good purpose. His attack on the king of Scotland, who was a minor and his brother-in-law, as well as the revival of his grandfather’s claim of dominance over that realm, were both unreasonable and unfair; he was too easily tempted by the lure of French conquests, diverting him from pursuing a goal that was attainable and could have truly benefited his country and his successors. The success he had in France, although largely due to his exceptional abilities, was unexpected and, due to the nature of things, not from any unforeseen events, was found, even during his lifetime, to provide him no real advantages. However, the glory of a conqueror is so captivating to the masses, and national rivalries are so intense, that the pointless devastation of such a beautiful part of Europe as France is completely ignored by us and is never seen as a flaw in this king's character or actions. Indeed, due to the unfortunate state of human nature, it often happens that a talented ruler like Edward, who typically finds domestic governance easy, will turn to military ventures, where he encounters challenges and has ample opportunity to demonstrate his skills and capability.

Edward had a numerous posterity by his queen, Philippa of Hainault. His eldest son was the heroic Edward, usually denominated the Black Prince from the color of his armor. This prince espoused his cousin Joan, commonly called the “fair maid of Kent,” daughter and heir of his uncle, the earl of Kent, who was beheaded in the beginning of this reign. She was first married to Sir Thomas Holland, by whom she had children. By the prince of Wales she had a son, Richard, who alone survived his father.

Edward had many descendants with his queen, Philippa of Hainault. His eldest son was the legendary Edward, often referred to as the Black Prince because of the color of his armor. This prince married his cousin Joan, known as the "fair maid of Kent," who was the daughter and heir of his uncle, the earl of Kent, who was executed at the start of this reign. She was previously married to Sir Thomas Holland, with whom she had children. With the prince of Wales, she had a son, Richard, who was the only one to survive his father.

The second son of King Edward (for we pass over such as died in their childhood) was Lionel, duke of Clarence, who was first married to Elizabeth de Burgh, daughter and heir of the earl of Ulster, by whom he left only one daughter, married to Edmund Mortimer, earl of Marche. Lionel espoused in second marriage Violante, the daughter of the duke of Milan,[*] and died in Italy soon after the consummation of his nuptials, without leaving any posterity by that princess. Of all the family, he resembled most his father and elder brother in his noble qualities.

The second son of King Edward (skipping over those who died in childhood) was Lionel, Duke of Clarence. He was first married to Elizabeth de Burgh, the daughter and heir of the Earl of Ulster, and they had only one daughter who married Edmund Mortimer, Earl of Marche. Lionel later married Violante, the daughter of the Duke of Milan, and died in Italy shortly after their wedding, without having any children with her. Of all the family, he had the most noble qualities resembling those of his father and older brother.

Edward’s third son was John of Gaunt, so called from the place of his birth: he was created duke of Lancaster; and from him sprang that branch which afterwards possessed the the crown. The fourth son of this royal family was Edmund created earl of Cambridge by his father, and duke of York by his nephew. The fifth son was Thomas, who received the title of earl of Buckingham from his father, and that of duke of Glocester from his nephew. In order to prevent confusion, we shall always distinguish these two princes by the titles of York and Glocester, even before they were advanced to them.

Edward's third son was John of Gaunt, named after the place where he was born. He was made Duke of Lancaster, and from him came the line that eventually wore the crown. The fourth son of this royal family was Edmund, who was created Earl of Cambridge by his father and Duke of York by his nephew. The fifth son was Thomas, who was given the title of Earl of Buckingham by his father and Duke of Gloucester by his nephew. To avoid confusion, we'll always refer to these two princes as York and Gloucester, even before they received those titles.

There were also several princesses born to Edward by Philippa; to wit, Isabella, Joan, Mary, and Margaret, who espoused, in the order of their names, Ingelram de Coucy, earl of Bedford, Alphonso, king of Castile, John of Mountfort, duke of Brittany, and John Hastings, earl of Pembroke. The princess Joan died at Bordeaux before the consummation of her marriage.

There were also several princesses born to Edward by Philippa: Isabella, Joan, Mary, and Margaret. They married, in that order, Ingelram de Coucy, earl of Bedford; Alphonso, king of Castile; John of Mountfort, duke of Brittany; and John Hastings, earl of Pembroke. Princess Joan died in Bordeaux before her marriage was completed.

It is remarked by an elegant historian,[**] that conquerors though usually the bane of bunian kind, proved often, in those feudal limes, the most indulgent of sovereigns: they stood most in need of supplies from their people; and not being able to compel them by force to submit to the necessary impositions, they were obliged to make them some compensation, by equitable laws and popular concessions.

It has been noted by a refined historian,[**] that conquerors, while often harmful to humanity, were frequently the most generous rulers during those feudal times: they depended heavily on resources from their subjects; and since they couldn’t force them to comply with necessary taxes, they had to offer some compensation through fair laws and concessions that appealed to the people.

     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 564.

     ** Dr. Robertson’s Hist. of Scot. book i.
     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 564.

     ** Dr. Robertson's Hist. of Scot. book i.

This remark is, in some measure, though imperfectly, justified by the conduct of Edward III. He took no steps of moment without consulting his parliament, and obtaining their approbation, which he afterwards pleaded as a reason for their supporting his measures.[*] The parliament, therefore, rose into greater consideration during his reign, and acquired more regular authority, than in any former time; and even the house of commons, which, during turbulent and factious periods, was naturally depressed by the greater power of the crown and barons, began to appear of some weight in the constitution. In the latter years of Edward, the king’s ministers were impeached in parliament, particularly Lord Latimer, who fell a sacrifice to the Authority of the commons;[**] and they even obliged the king to banish his mistress by their remonstrances. Some attention was also paid to the election of their members; and lawyers in particular, who were at that time men of a character somewhat inferior, were totally excluded the house during several parliaments.[***]

This comment is, to some extent, though not perfectly, supported by the actions of Edward III. He didn't take any significant steps without consulting his parliament and getting their approval, which he later used as a reason for them backing his decisions.[*] The parliament, therefore, grew in importance during his reign and gained more established authority than in any previous time; even the House of Commons, which was usually overshadowed by the greater power of the crown and the barons during chaotic periods, started to gain some influence in the constitution. In the later years of Edward's reign, the king’s ministers were held accountable in parliament, especially Lord Latimer, who became a victim of the Commons' authority;[**] they even pressured the king to send his mistress away through their complaints. There was also more focus on the election of their members; and lawyers, who at that time had a somewhat lower standing, were completely excluded from the House during several parliaments.[***]

One of the most popular laws enacted by any prince, was the statute which passed in the twenty-fifth of this reign,[****] and which limited the cases of high treason, before vague and uncertain, to three principal heads—conspiring the death of the king, levying war against him, and adhering to his enemies and the judges were prohibited, if any other cases should occur, from inflicting the penalty of treason without an application to parliament. The bounds of treason were indeed so much limited by this statute, which still remains in force without any alteration, that the lawyers were obliged to enlarge them, and to explain a conspiracy for levying war against the king, to be equivalent to a conspiracy against his life; and this interpretation, seemingly forced, has, from the necessity of the case, been tacitly acquiesced in.

One of the most popular laws passed by any ruler was the statute that came into effect in the twenty-fifth year of this reign,[****] which defined high treason, previously vague and uncertain, into three main categories—conspiring to kill the king, waging war against him, and supporting his enemies. Judges were not allowed to impose the penalty for treason for any other cases without going to parliament first. This law significantly narrowed the definition of treason, and it remains unchanged to this day, forcing lawyers to expand its scope. They interpreted conspiring to wage war against the king as being the same as conspiring against his life. This interpretation, though seemingly forced, has quietly been accepted out of necessity.

     * Cotton’s Abridg. p. 108, 120.

     ** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 122.

     *** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 18.

     **** Chap. 2.
     * Cotton's Abridg. p. 108, 120.

     ** Cotton's Abridg. p. 122.

     *** Cotton's Abridg. p. 18.

     **** Chap. 2.

It was also ordained that a parliament should be held once a year, or oftener, if need be; a law which, like many others, was never observed and lost its authority by disuse.[*]

It was also decided that a parliament should be held once a year, or more often if necessary; a rule that, like many others, was never followed and lost its authority through neglect.[*]

Edward granted above twenty parliamentary confirmations of the Great Charter; and these concessions are commonly appealed to as proofs of his great indulgence to the people, and his tender regard for their liberties. But the contrary presumption is more natural. If the maxims of Edward’s reign had not been in general somewhat arbitrary, and if the Great Charter had not been frequently violated, the parliament would never have applied for these frequent confirmations, which could add no force to a deed regularly observed, and which could serve to no other purpose, than to prevent the contrary precedents from turning into a rule, and acquiring authority. It was indeed the effect of the irregular government during those ages, that a statute which had been enacted some years, instead of acquiring, was imagined to lose, force by time, and needed to be often renewed by recent statutes of the same sense and tenor. Hence likewise that general clause, so frequent in old acts of parliament, that the statutes, enacted by the king’s progenitors, should be observed;[**] a precaution which, if we do not consider the circumstances of the times, might appear absurd and ridiculous. The frequent confirmations in general terms of the privileges of the church proceeded from the same cause.

Edward granted over twenty confirmations of the Great Charter in Parliament, and these concessions are often cited as evidence of his great leniency towards the people and his care for their freedoms. However, the opposite assumption is more reasonable. If Edward's reign hadn’t generally leaned towards being arbitrary, and if the Great Charter hadn’t been regularly violated, Parliament wouldn’t have needed to request these repeated confirmations, which added no strength to a document that was properly upheld and only served to prevent contradictory precedents from becoming the norm and gaining authority. The instability of governance during that time meant that a statute that had been in place for some years was believed to lose its force over time and often needed to be renewed by new statutes with the same meaning. This also explains the frequent clause in old acts of Parliament stating that the statutes enacted by the king’s ancestors should be upheld; a precaution that might seem absurd and ridiculous if we don’t consider the context of the times. The frequent general confirmations of the church’s privileges stemmed from the same issue.

It is a clause in one of Edward’s statutes, “that no man, of what estate or condition soever, shall be put out of land or tenement, nor taken, nor imprisoned, nor disherited, nor put to death, without being brought in answer by due process of the law.”[***] This privilege was sufficiently secured by a clause of the Great Charter, which had received a general confirmation in the first chapter of the same statute. Why then is the clause so anxiously, and, as we may think, so superfluously repeated? Plainly, because there had been some late infringements of it, which gave umbrage to the commons.[****]

It’s a rule in one of Edward’s laws, “that no person, regardless of their status or situation, shall be removed from their land or property, nor taken, nor imprisoned, nor disinherited, nor executed, without being brought to answer through due process of the law.”[***] This right was well protected by a clause in the Great Charter, which had been generally confirmed in the first chapter of the same law. So, why is this clause repeated with such urgency, and, as we might say, unnecessarily? Clearly, it's because there had been some recent violations of it, which concerned the common people.[****]

     * 4 Edward III. cap. 14.

     ** 36 Edward III. cap. 1. 37 Edward III. cap. 1, etc.

     *** 28 Edward III. cap. 3.

     **** They assert, in the fifteenth of this reign, that there
     had been such instances. Cotton’s Abridg. p. 31. They repeat
     the same in the twenty-first year. See p. 59.
     * 4 Edward III. cap. 14.

     ** 36 Edward III. cap. 1. 37 Edward III. cap. 1, etc.

     *** 28 Edward III. cap. 3.

     **** They claim, in the fifteenth year of this reign, that there had been such cases. Cotton's Abridg. p. 31. They reiterate this in the twenty-first year. See p. 59.

But there is no article in which the laws are more frequently repeated during this reign, almost in the same terms, than that of purveyance which the parliament always calls an outrageous and intolerable grievance, and the source of infinite damage to the people.[*] The parliament tried to abolish this prerogative altogether, by prohibiting any one from taking goods without the consent of the owners,[**] and by changing the heinous name of purveyors, as they term it, into that of buyers;[***] but the arbitrary conduct of Edward still brought back the grievance upon them, though contrary both to the Great Charter and to many statutes. This disorder was in a great measure derived from the state of the public finances, and of the kingdom; and could therefore the less admit of remedy. The prince frequently wanted ready money; yet his family must be subsisted: he was therefore obliged to employ force and violence for that purpose, and to give tallies, at what rate he pleased, to the owners of the goods which he laid hold of. The kingdom also abounded so little in commodities, and the interior communication was so imperfect, that had the owners been strictly protected by law, they could easily have exacted any price from the king; especially in his frequent progresses, when he came to distant and poor places, where the court did not usually reside, and where a regular plan for supplying it could not be easily established. Not only the king, but several great lords, insisted upon this right of purveyance within certain districts.[****]

But there’s no section in which the laws are repeated more often during this reign, almost word for word, than the one about purveyance, which parliament always calls an outrageous and intolerable burden, causing endless harm to the people.[*] Parliament tried to completely eliminate this right by prohibiting anyone from taking goods without the owners’ consent,[**] and by changing the offensive name of purveyors, as they call them, to buyers;[***] but Edward’s arbitrary actions still brought this issue back, despite being against both the Great Charter and many statutes. This chaos was largely due to the state of public finances and the kingdom itself, making it harder to fix. The king often needed cash urgently, yet his household had to be fed; therefore, he had to resort to force and violence for that purpose and issued tallies at whatever rate he wanted to the owners of the goods he seized. The kingdom also had such a lack of resources, and transportation was so poor, that if the owners had been well protected by law, they could easily have charged any price they wanted to the king, especially during his frequent travels to distant and impoverished areas where the court didn’t usually stay, and where a regular system for supplying it couldn’t be easily set up. Not just the king, but several powerful lords also claimed this right of purveyance within certain regions.[****]

The magnificent Castle of Windsor was built by Edward III., and his method of conducting the work may serve as a specimen of the condition of the people in that age. Instead of engaging workmen by contracts and wages, he assessed every county in England to send him a certain number of masons, tilers, and carpenters, as if he had been levying an army.[*****]

The grand Castle of Windsor was constructed by Edward III, and the way he managed the project reflects the state of the people during that time. Rather than hiring workers through contracts and pay, he required each county in England to send him a specific number of masons, tilers, and carpenters, as if he were raising an army. [*****]

They mistake, indeed, very much the genius of this reign, who imagine that it was not extremely arbitrary. All the high prerogatives of the crown were to the full exerted in it; but what gave some consolation, and promised in time some relief to the people, they were always complained of by the commons: such as the dispensing power;[******] the extension of the forests;[*******] erecting monopolies;[********] exacting loans—[*********]

They really misunderstand the character of this reign if they think it wasn't very arbitrary. All the major powers of the crown were fully exercised during this time, but what offered some comfort and hinted at possible relief for the people were always voiced as complaints by the commons: things like the dispensing power; the expansion of the forests; creating monopolies; demanding loans—

     * 36 Edward III. etc.

     ** 14 Edward III. cap. 19.

     *** 36 Edward III. cap. 2.

     **** 7 Richard II. cap. 8.

     * 36 Edward III. etc.

     ** 14 Edward III. chapter 19.

     *** 36 Edward III. chapter 2.

     **** 7 Richard II. chapter 8.
     ****** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 71.

     ******* Cotton’s Abridg. p. 56, 61, 122.

     ******** Rymer, vol. v. p. 491, 574. Cotton’s Abridg. p. 56.
     ****** Cotton's Abridg. p. 71.

     ******* Cotton's Abridg. p. 56, 61, 122.

     ******** Rymer, vol. v. p. 491, 574. Cotton's Abridg. p. 56.

—stopping justice by particular warrants;[*] the renewal of the commission of “trailbaton;”[**] pressing men and ships into the public service;[***] levying arbitrary and exorbitant fines;[****] extending the authority of the privy council or star-chamber to the decision of private causes;[*****] enlarging the power of the mareschal’s and other arbitrary courts;[******] imprisoning members for freedom of speech in parliament;[*******] obliging people without any rule to send recruits of men at arms, archers, and hoblers to the army.[********]

—stopping justice through specific warrants;[*] renewing the commission of “trailbaton;”[**] forcing men and ships into public service;[***] imposing arbitrary and excessive fines;[****] expanding the authority of the privy council or star-chamber to decide private matters;[*****] increasing the power of the mareschal’s and other arbitrary courts;[******] imprisoning members for speaking freely in parliament;[*******] compelling people without any guidelines to send recruits of soldiers, archers, and hoblers to the army.[********]

     * Cotton, p. 114.

     ** Cotton, p. 67.

     *** Cotton, p. 47, 79, 113.

     **** Cotton, p. 32.

     ****** Cotton, p. 74.

     ******* Walsing. p. 189, 190.
     * Cotton, p. 114.

     ** Cotton, p. 67.

     *** Cotton, p. 47, 79, 113.

     **** Cotton, p. 32.

     ****** Cotton, p. 74.

     ******* Walsing. p. 189, 190.

But there was no act of arbitrary power more frequently repeated in this reign, than that of imposing taxes without consent of parliament. Though that assembly granted the king greater supplies than had ever been obtained by any of his predecessors, his great undertakings, and the necessity of his affairs, obliged him to levy still more; and after his splendid success against France had added weight to his authority, these arbitrary impositions became almost annual and perpetual. Cotton’s Abridgment of the records affords numerous instances of this kind, in the first[*] year of his reign, in the thirteenth year,[**] in the fourteenth,[***] in the twentieth,[****] in the twenty-first,[*****] in the twenty-second,[******] in the twenty fifth,[*******] in the thirty-eighth,[********] in the fiftieth,[*********] and in the fifty-first,[**********]

But there was no act of arbitrary power more often repeated during this reign than imposing taxes without the approval of Parliament. Even though that assembly granted the king greater resources than any of his predecessors had ever received, his major initiatives and the demands of his government forced him to collect even more. After his impressive success against France further strengthened his authority, these arbitrary taxes became almost a regular and ongoing occurrence. Cotton's Abridgment of the records provides numerous examples of this type of action in the first[*] year of his reign, in the thirteenth year,[**] in the fourteenth,[***] in the twentieth,[****] in the twenty-first,[*****] in the twenty-second,[******] in the twenty-fifth,[*******] in the thirty-eighth,[********] in the fiftieth,[*********] and in the fifty-first.[**********]

     * Tyrrel’s Hist. vol. iii. p. 554, from the records.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 363.

     *** Page 17, 18.

     **** Page 39.

     ****** Page 52, 53, 57, 58.

     ******* Page 69.

     ******** Page 76.

     ********* Page 101.

     ********** Page 138.
     * Tyrrel's Hist. vol. iii. p. 554, from the records.

     ** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 363.

     *** Page 17, 18.

     **** Page 39.

     ****** Page 52, 53, 57, 58.

     ******* Page 69.

     ******** Page 76.

     ********* Page 101.

     ********** Page 138.

The king openly avowed and maintained this power of levying taxes at pleasure. At one time, he replied to the remonstrance made by the commons against it, that the impositions had been exacted from great necessity, and had been assented to by the prelates, earls, barons, and some of the commons;[*] at another, that he would advise with his council.[**] When the parliament desired that a law might be enacted for the punishment of such as levied these arbitrary impositions he refused compliance.[***]

The king openly declared and upheld his authority to impose taxes as he pleased. At one point, he responded to the complaints from the common people by saying that the taxes were necessary and had been agreed upon by the bishops, earls, barons, and some of the common people;[*] at another time, he mentioned that he would discuss it with his council.[**] When the parliament asked for a law to punish those who imposed these arbitrary taxes, he refused to comply.[***]

     * Page 152.

     ** Cotton, p. 53. He repeats the same answer in p. 60. “Some
     of the commons” were such as he should be pleased to consult
     with.

     *** Cotton, p. 57.
     * Page 152.

     ** Cotton, p. 53. He gives the same response on p. 60. “Some of the commons” were ones he would be happy to discuss with.

     *** Cotton, p. 57.

In the subsequent year, they desired that the king might renounce this pretended prerogative; but his answer was, that he would levy no taxes without necessity for the defence of the realm, and where he reasonably might use that authority.[*] This incident passed a few days before his death; and these were, in a manner, his last words to his people. It would seem that the famous charter or statute of Edward I., “de tallagio non concedendo,” though never repealed, was supposed to have already lost by age all its authority.

In the following year, they wanted the king to give up this so-called right; but his response was that he wouldn’t impose any taxes unless it was necessary for the defense of the realm and where he could justifiably use that power.[*] This incident occurred a few days before his death, and these were, in a sense, his final words to his people. It seems that the famous charter or statute of Edward I, “de tallagio non concedendo,” though never officially repealed, was believed to have lost all its authority over time.

These facts can only show the practice of the times: for as to the right, the continual remonstrances of the commons may seem to prove that it rather lay on their side: at least, these remonstrances served to prevent the arbitrary practices of the court from becoming an established part of the constitution. In so much a better condition were the privileges of the people even during the arbitrary reign of Edward III., than during some subsequent ones, particularly those of the Tudors, where no tyranny or abuse of power ever met with any check or opposition, or so much as a remonstrance, from parliament.

These facts only reveal the practices of the time: as for the right, the repeated complaints from the common people suggest that it was more on their side. At the very least, these complaints helped prevent the court's arbitrary actions from becoming a standard part of the constitution. The people's privileges were in a much better state even during the oppressive reign of Edward III than in some later ones, especially those of the Tudors, where no tyranny or abuse of power faced any resistance or opposition, not even a single complaint from Parliament.

In this reign, we find, according to the sentiments of an ingenious and learned author, the first strongly marked and probably contested distinction between a proclamation by the king and his privy council, and a law which had received the assent of the lords and commons.[**]

In this reign, we see, according to the thoughts of a clever and knowledgeable author, the first clear and likely debated difference between a proclamation by the king and his privy council, and a law that had been approved by the lords and commons.[**]

It is easy to imagine, that a prince of so much sense and spirit as Edward, would be no slave to the court of Rome. Though the old tribute was paid during some years of his minority,[***] he afterwards withheld it; and when the pope, in 1367, threatened to cite him to the court of Rome for default of payment, he laid the matter before his parliament. That assembly unanimously declared, that King John could not, without a national consent, subject his kingdom to a foreign power; and that they were therefore determined to support their sovereign against this unjust pretension.[****]

It’s easy to picture a prince as smart and spirited as Edward would not be a puppet to the court of Rome. Although the old tribute was paid during some years of his minority,[***] he later stopped it; and when the pope threatened in 1367 to summon him to the court of Rome for non-payment, he presented the issue to his parliament. That body unanimously declared that King John could not, without national consent, place his kingdom under foreign authority; and that they were therefore committed to supporting their sovereign against this unfair claim.[****]

     * Cotton, p. 132.

     ** Observations on the Statutes, p. 193.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 434.

     **** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 110.
     * Cotton, p. 132.

     ** Observations on the Statutes, p. 193.

     *** Rymer, vol. iv. p. 434.

     **** Cotton’s Abridg. p. 110.

During this reign, the statute of provisors was enacted, rendering it penal to procure any presentations to benefices from the court of Rome, and securing the rights of all patrons and electors, which had been extremely encroached on by the pope.[*] By a subsequent statute, every person was outlawed who carried any cause by appeal to the court of Rome.[**]

During this time, the statute of provisors was established, making it illegal to obtain any appointments to church positions from the Roman court, and protecting the rights of all patrons and electors, which had been heavily infringed upon by the pope.[*] According to a later statute, anyone who appealed to the Roman court was declared an outlaw.[**]

The laity at this time seem to have been extremely prejudiced against the papal power, and even somewhat against their own clergy, because of their connections with the Roman pontiff. The parliament pretended, that the usurpations of the pope were the cause of all the plagues, injuries, famine, anc poverty of the realm; were more destructive to it than al the wars; and were the reason why it contained not a third of the inhabitants and commodities which it formerly possessed: that the taxes levied by him exceeded five times those which were paid to the king; that every thing was venal in that sinful city of Rome; and that even the patrons in England had thence learned to practise simony without shame or remorse.[***] At another time, they petition the king to employ no churchman in any office of state;[****] and they even speak in plain terms of expelling by force the papal authority, and thereby providing a remedy against oppressions, which they neither could, nor would, any longer endure.[*****] Men who talked in this strain, were not far from the reformation: but Edward did not think proper to second all this zeal. Though he passed the statute of provisors, he took little care of its execution; and the parliament made frequent complaints of his negligence on this head.[******] He was content with having reduced such of the Romish ecclesiastics as possessed revenues in England, to depend entirely upon him by means of that statute.

The people at this time seemed to be very biased against the papal authority and even a bit against their own clergy because of their ties to the Pope. The parliament claimed that the Pope's overreach was the root cause of all the plagues, injuries, famine, and poverty in the kingdom; that it was more damaging than all the wars combined; and that this was why the population and resources were only a third of what they used to be. They asserted that the taxes imposed by him were more than five times those paid to the king; that everything was for sale in that sinful city of Rome; and that even the patrons in England had learned to practice simony without any shame or remorse. At another point, they urged the king not to appoint any churchman to any state position, and they even spoke openly about forcibly removing papal authority to address the oppression that they could no longer tolerate. People who spoke like this were not far from wanting reform, but Edward did not think it wise to support all this enthusiasm. Although he passed the statute of provisors, he didn't pay much attention to ensuring it was enforced, and the parliament often complained about his neglect in this area. He was satisfied with having made those Roman ecclesiastics who had revenues in England completely dependent on him through that statute.

As to the police of the kingdom during this period, it was certainly better than during times of faction, civil war, and disorder, to which England was so often exposed: yet were there several vices in the constitution, the bad consequences of which all the power and vigilance of the king could not prevent. The barons, by their confederacies with those of their own order, and by supporting and defending their retainers in every iniquity,[*******] were the chief abettors of robbers, murderers, and ruffians of all kinds; and no law could be executed against those criminals.

As for the police in the kingdom during this time, it was definitely better than during periods of faction, civil war, and chaos that England frequently faced. However, there were several flaws in the system that even the king's power and vigilance couldn't fix. The barons, through their alliances with others in their class and by supporting and defending their followers in all kinds of wrongdoing, were the main supporters of robbers, murderers, and all sorts of thugs; and no laws could be enforced against those criminals.

     * 25 Edward III. 27 Edward III.

     ** 27 Edward III. 38 Edward III.

     *** Cotton, p. 74, 128, 129.

     **** Cotton, p. 112.

     ****** Cotton, p. 119, 128 129, 130, 143.

     ******* 11 Edward III. cap. 14.

     ******** 4 Edward III. cap.

     ********* 15 Edward III cap. 4.
     * 25 Edward III. 27 Edward III.

     ** 27 Edward III. 38 Edward III.

     *** Cotton, p. 74, 128, 129.

     **** Cotton, p. 112.

     ****** Cotton, p. 119, 128, 129, 130, 143.

     ******* 11 Edward III. cap. 14.

     ******** 4 Edward III. cap.

     ********* 15 Edward III cap. 4.

The nobility were brought to give their promise in parliament, that they would not avow retain, or support any felon or breaker of the law;[*] yet this, engagement, which we may wonder to see exacted from men of their rank, was never regarded by them. The commons make continual complaints of the multitude of robberies, murders, rapes, and other disorders, which, they say, were become numberless in every part of the kingdom, and which they always ascribe to the protection that the criminals received from the great.[**]The king of Cyprus, who paid a visit to England in this reign, was robbed and stripped on the highway with his whole retinue.[***] Edward himself contributed to this dissolution of law, by his facility in granting pardons to felons, from the solicitation of the courtiers. Laws were made to retrench this prerogative,[****] and remonstrances of the commons were presented against the abuse of it;[*****] but to no purpose. The gratifying of a powerful nobleman continued still to be of more importance than the protection of the people. The king also granted many franchises, which interrupted the course of justice and the execution of the laws.[******]

The nobility were called to promise in Parliament that they wouldn't support or protect any criminal or lawbreaker;[*] yet this commitment, which seems surprising for people of their status, was never taken seriously by them. The common people repeatedly complained about the growing number of robberies, murders, rapes, and other crimes, which they claimed were rampant throughout the kingdom and always blamed on the protection criminals received from the powerful.[**] The King of Cyprus, who visited England during this time, was robbed and stripped on the highway along with his entire entourage.[***] Edward himself played a role in this breakdown of law by readily granting pardons to criminals, influenced by the requests of courtiers. Laws were enacted to limit this power,[****] and the commons presented petitions against its abuse;[*****] but to no avail. Pleasing a powerful noble continued to matter more than protecting the populace. The king also granted many privileges that disrupted the course of justice and the enforcement of the laws.[******]

     * Cotton, p. 10.

     ** Cotton, p. 51, 62, 64, 70, 160.

     *** Walsing. p. 170.

     **** 10 Edward III. cap. 2. 27 Edward III. cap. 2.

     ****** Cotton, p. 54.
     * Cotton, p. 10.

     ** Cotton, p. 51, 62, 64, 70, 160.

     *** Walsing. p. 170.

     **** 10 Edward III. cap. 2. 27 Edward III. cap. 2.

     ****** Cotton, p. 54.

Commerce and industry were certainly at a very low ebb during this period. The bad police of the country alone affords a sufficient reason. The only exports were wool, skins, hides leather, butter, tin, lead, and such unmanufactured goods, of which wool was by far the most considerable. Knyghton has asserted, that one hundred thousand sacks of wool were annually exported, and sold at twenty pounds a sack, money of that age. But he is widely mistaken both in the quantity exported and in the value. In 1349, the parliament remonstrate, that the king, by an illegal imposition of forty shillings on each sack exported, had levied sixty thousand pounds a year:[*] which reduces the annual exports to thirty thousand sacks. A sack contained twenty-six stone, and each stone fourteen pounds;[**] and at a medium was not valued at above five pounds a sack,[***] that is, fourteen or fifteen pounds of our present money. Knyghton’s computation raises it to sixty pounds, which is near four times the present price of wool in England.

Commerce and industry were definitely struggling during this time. The poor policing in the country is a big part of the problem. The only things being exported were wool, skins, hides, leather, butter, tin, lead, and similar raw materials, with wool being the most significant. Knyghton claimed that one hundred thousand sacks of wool were exported each year, selling for twenty pounds a sack in that era. However, he is greatly mistaken about both the amount exported and its value. In 1349, parliament complained that the king had illegally imposed a forty-shilling tax on each sack exported, bringing in sixty thousand pounds a year:[*] which means the annual exports were actually around thirty thousand sacks. A sack weighed twenty-six stone, and each stone was fourteen pounds;[**] on average, it was worth no more than five pounds a sack,[***] which is about fourteen or fifteen pounds today. Knyghton’s estimate inflates it to sixty pounds, which is nearly four times the current price of wool in England.

     * Cotton, p. 48, 69.

     ** 34 Edward III. cap. 5.

     *** Cotton, p. 29.
     * Cotton, p. 48, 69.

     ** 34 Edward III. cap. 5.

     *** Cotton, p. 29.

According to this reduced computation, the export of wool brought into the kingdom about four hundred and thousand pounds of our present money, instead of six millions, which is an extravagant sum. Even the former sum is so high, as to afford a suspicion of some mistake in the computation of the parliament with regard to the number of sacks exported. Such mistakes were very usual in those ages.

According to this simplified calculation, the export of wool brought about four hundred thousand pounds in today's money into the kingdom, instead of six million, which is an outrageous amount. Even the earlier figure is so high that it raises doubts about the accuracy of the parliament's calculations concerning the number of sacks exported. Errors like that were quite common in those times.

Edward endeavored to introduce and promote the woolen manufacture, by giving protection and encouragement to foreign weavers,[*] and by enacting a law, which prohibited every one from wearing any cloth but of English fabric.[*] The parliament prohibited the exportation of woollen goods, which was not so well judged, especially while the exportation of unwrought wool was so much allowed and encouraged. A like injudicious law was made against the exportation of manufactured iron.[**]

Edward worked to promote the wool industry by supporting foreign weavers and enacting a law that banned anyone from wearing anything made from fabric other than English cloth. Parliament also banned the export of woolen goods, which wasn’t a great decision, especially since the export of raw wool was widely permitted and encouraged. A similar poorly thought-out law was created against the export of manufactured iron.

It appears from a record in the exchequer, that in 1354 the exports of England amounted to two hundred and ninety-four thousand one hundred and eighty-four pounds seventeen shillings and twopence; the imports to thirty-eight thousand nine hundred and seventy pounds three shillings and sixpence, money of that time. This is a great balance, considering that it arose wholly from the exportation of raw wool and other rough materials. The import was chiefly linen and fine cloth, and some wine. England seems to have been extremely drained at this time by Edward’s foreign expeditions and foreign subsidies, which probably was the reason why the exports so much exceed the imports.

It shows from a record in the treasury that in 1354, England's exports totaled £294,184.17, while imports were £38,970.06, in the currency of that time. This is a significant surplus, especially since it came entirely from exporting raw wool and other basic materials. The imports mainly consisted of linen, fine cloth, and some wine. England appeared to be heavily strained at that time due to Edward's foreign campaigns and financial support to other countries, which is likely why exports far exceeded imports.

The first toll we read of in England for mending the highways, was imposed in this reign: it was that for repairing the road between St. Giles’s and Temple Bar.[***]

The first toll we read about in England for fixing the highways was established during this reign: it was for repairing the road between St. Giles’s and Temple Bar.[***]

In the first of Richard II., the parliament complain extremely of the decay of shipping during the preceding reign, and assert that one seaport formerly contained more vessels than were then to be found in the whole kingdom. This calamity they ascribe to the arbitrary seizure of ships by Edward for the service of his frequent expeditions.[****] The parliament in the fifth of Richard renew the same complaint;[*****] and we likewise find it made in the forty-sixth of Edward III.

In the first of Richard II., the parliament strongly complains about the decline of shipping during the previous reign and claims that one seaport used to have more ships than there were in the entire kingdom at that time. They blame this disaster on Edward's arbitrary confiscation of ships for his many expeditions.[****] In the fifth of Richard, the parliament brings up the same issue again;[*****] and we also see this complaint in the forty-sixth of Edward III.

     * 11 Edward III. cap. 5. Rymer, vol. iv. p. 723. Murimuth p.
     88.

     ** 11 Edward III. cap. 2.

     *** 28 Edward III. cap. 5.

     **** Rymer, vol. v. p. 520.

     * 11 Edward III. cap. 5. Rymer, vol. iv. p. 723. Murimuth p. 88.

     ** 11 Edward III. cap. 2.

     *** 28 Edward III. cap. 5.

     **** Rymer, vol. v. p. 520.

So false is the common opinion that this reign was favorable to commerce.

So wrong is the common belief that this reign was good for trade.

There is an order of this king, directed to the mayor and sheriffs of London, to take up all ships of forty ton and upwards, to be converted into ships of war.[*]

There is an order from this king, addressed to the mayor and sheriffs of London, to seize all ships of forty tons and more, to be turned into warships.[*]

The parliament attempted the impracticable scheme of reducing the price of labor after the pestilence, and also that of poultry,[**] A reaper, in the first week of August, was not allowed above twopence a day, or near sixpence of our present money; in the second week, a third more. A master carpenter was limited through the whole year to threepence a day, a common carpenter to twopence, money of that age.[***] It is remarkable that, in the same reign, the pay of a common soldier, an archer, was sixpence a day; which, by the change both in denomination and value, would be equivalent to near five shillings of our present money.[****] Soldiers were then enlisted only for a very short time; they lived idle all the rest of the year, and commonly all the rest of their lives: one successful campaign, by pay and plunder, and the ransom of prisoners, was supposed to be a small fortune to a man; which was a great allurement to enter into the service.[*****]

The parliament tried the unrealistic plan of lowering labor costs after the plague, as well as the price of poultry. A reaper, in the first week of August, was only paid two pence a day, or about six pence in today’s money; in the second week, it went up by a third. A master carpenter was limited to three pence a day for the entire year, while a common carpenter was paid two pence, in the money of that time. It’s interesting to note that, in the same reign, a common soldier, like an archer, earned six pence a day; this would be roughly equivalent to around five shillings in today’s money due to changes in currency and value. Back then, soldiers were only enlisted for a short time; they spent the rest of the year, and often their lives, idle. Just one successful campaign, with pay and loot, plus ransoms from prisoners, was thought to be a small fortune for a man, which was a strong incentive to join the military.

     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 664.

     ** 37 Edward III. cap. 3.

     **** 25 Edward III, cap. I. 3.

     ****** Brady’s Hist. vol. ii. App No. 92.
     * Rymer, vol. iv. p. 664.

     ** 37 Edward III. cap. 3.

     **** 25 Edward III, cap. I. 3.

     ****** Brady’s Hist. vol. ii. App No. 92.

The staple of wool, wool-fells, leather, and lead, was fixed by act of parliament in particular towns of England.[*] Afterwards it was removed by law to Calais: but Edward, who commonly deemed his prerogative above law, paid little regard to these statutes; and when the parliament remonstrated with him on account of those acts of power, he plainly told them, that he would proceed in that matter as he thought proper.[**] It is not easy to assign the reason of this great anxiety for fixing a staple; unless, perhaps, it invited foreigners to a market, when they knew beforehand, that they should there meet with great choice of any particular species of commodity. This policy of inviting foreigners to Calais was carried so far, that all English merchants were prohibited by law from exporting any English goods from the staple; which was in a manner the total abandoning of all foreign navigation, except that to Calais;[***] a contrivance seemingly extraordinary.

The main products of wool, wool fells, leather, and lead were set by law to be traded in specific towns in England.[*] Later, this was moved by legislation to Calais, but Edward, who often considered his authority above the law, ignored these regulations. When parliament expressed their concerns about his actions, he bluntly told them that he would handle the situation as he saw fit.[**] It's hard to pinpoint why there was such a strong push to establish a trading hub; perhaps it was to attract foreign traders who would know in advance that they would find a wide variety of specific goods available. This strategy to draw foreigners to Calais was taken so far that all English merchants were legally banned from exporting any English goods from the trading hub, essentially leading to the complete abandonment of all foreign trade routes, except to Calais;[***] a seemingly unusual approach.

     *Brady, ibid.

     ** Commodities seem to have risen since the conquest.
     Instead of being ten times cheaper than at present, they
     were, in the age of Edward III., only three or four times.
     This change seems to have taken place in a great measure
     since Edward I. The allowance granted by Edward III. to the
     earl of Murray, then a prisoner in Nottingham Castle, is one
     pound a week; whereas the bishop of St. Andrews, the primate
     of Scotland, had only sixpence a day allowed him by Edward
     I.

     *** 27 Edward III.
*Brady, ibid.

**Prices for goods have increased since the conquest. Instead of being ten times cheaper than today, they were, in the time of Edward III, only three or four times cheaper. This change appears to have occurred largely since the time of Edward I. The allowance granted by Edward III to the Earl of Murray, who was then imprisoned in Nottingham Castle, was one pound a week; meanwhile, the Bishop of St. Andrews, the leading church figure in Scotland, was only given sixpence a day by Edward I.

*** 27 Edward III.

The pay of a man at arms was quadruple. We may therefore conclude, that the numerous armies mentioned by historians in those times, consisted chiefly of ragamuffins who followed the camp, and lived by plunder. Edward’s army before Calais consisted of thirty-one thousand and ninety-four men; yet its pay for sixteen months was only one hundred and twenty-seven thousand two hundred and one pounds.

The pay for a man-at-arms was four times higher. So, we can conclude that the large armies mentioned by historians back then were mainly made up of misfits who trailed behind the camps and survived by looting. Edward’s army before Calais had thirty-one thousand and ninety-four men, but its pay over sixteen months was only one hundred and twenty-seven thousand two hundred and one pounds.

It was not till the middle of this century that the English began to extend their navigation even to the Baltic;[*] nor till the middle of the subsequent, that they sailed to the Mediterranean.[**]

It wasn't until the middle of this century that the English started to expand their navigation to the Baltic;[*] nor was it until the middle of the next century that they sailed to the Mediterranean.[**]

Luxury was complained of in that age, as well as in others of more refinement; and attempts were made by parliament to restrain it, particularly on the head of apparel, where surely it is the most obviously innocent and inoffensive. No man under a hundred a year was allowed to wear gold, silver, or silk in his clothes; servants, also, were prohibited from eating flesh meat, or fish, above once a day.[***] By another law it was ordained, that no one should be allowed, either for dinner or supper, above three dishes in each course, and not above two courses; and it is likewise expressly declared that “soused” meat is to count as one of these dishes.[****] It was easy to foresee that such ridiculous laws must prove ineffectual, and could never be executed.

People complained about luxury back then, just like in other times when society was more sophisticated; there were attempts by parliament to control it, especially regarding clothing, where it seems the most harmless. No man making less than a hundred a year was allowed to wear gold, silver, or silk in his attire; servants were also banned from eating meat or fish more than once a day.[***] Another law stated that no one could have more than three dishes per course for lunch or dinner, and only two courses total; it was also clearly stated that “soused” meat counts as one of those dishes.[****] It was easy to see that such absurd laws would be ineffective and impossible to enforce.

The use of the French language, in pleadings and public deeds, was abolished.[*****] It may appear strange, that the nation should so long have worn this badge of conquest: but the king and nobility seem never to have become thoroughly English, or to have forgotten their French extraction, till Edward’s wars with France gave them an antipathy to that nation. Yet still it was long before the use of the English tongue came into fashion. The first English paper which we meet with in Rymer is in the year 1386, during the reign of Richard II.[******]

The use of the French language in legal documents and public records was eliminated.[*****] It might seem odd that the country held onto this symbol of conquest for so long, but the king and nobility never fully embraced being English or forgot their French roots until Edward's wars with France created a dislike for that country. Even then, it took a while before English started to become popular. The earliest English document we find in Rymer dates back to 1386, during the reign of Richard II.[******]

     * Cotton, p. 117.

     ** 27 Edward III. cap. 7.

     *** Anderson, vol. i. p. 151.

     **** Anderson, vol. i. p. 177.

     ****** 10 Edward III., 36 Edward III. cap. 15.

     ******* Rymer, vol. vii. p. 526. This paper, by the style,
     seems to have been drawn by the Scots, and was signed by the
     wardens of the marches only.
     * Cotton, p. 117.

     ** 27 Edward III, cap. 7.

     *** Anderson, vol. i, p. 151.

     **** Anderson, vol. i, p. 177.

     ****** 10 Edward III, 36 Edward III, cap. 15.

     ******* Rymer, vol. vii, p. 526. This document, based on its style, appears to have been created by the Scots and was signed only by the wardens of the marches.

There are Spanish papers in that collection of more ancient date:[*] and the use of the Latin and French still continued. We may judge of the ignorance of this age in geography, from a story told by Robert of Avesbury. Pope Clement VI having, in 1344, created Lewis of Spain prince of the Fortunate Islands, meaning the Canaries, then newly discovered, the English ambassador at Rome and his retinue were seized with an alarm, that Lewis had been created king of England; and they immediately hurried home, in order to convey this important intelligence. Yet such was the ardor for study at this time, that Speed in his Chronicle informs us, there were then thirty thousand students in the university of Oxford alone. What was the occupation of all these young men? To learn very bad Latin, and still worse logic.

There are Spanish papers in that collection from an earlier time:[*] and the use of Latin and French continued. We can understand the ignorance of that era in geography from a story told by Robert of Avesbury. In 1344, Pope Clement VI created Lewis of Spain as the prince of the Fortunate Islands, referring to the Canaries, which had just been discovered. The English ambassador at Rome and his group panicked, thinking Lewis had been made king of England, and they quickly rushed home to share this crucial news. Despite this, there was such a passion for learning at that time that Speed in his Chronicle tells us there were thirty thousand students at the University of Oxford alone. What were all these young men doing? Learning very poor Latin and even worse logic.

In 1364, the commons petitioned, that, in consideration of the preceding pestilence, such persons as possessed manors holding of the king in chief, and had let different leases without obtaining licenses, might continue to exercise the same power, till the country were become more populous.[**] The commons were sensible, that this security of possession was a good means for rendering the kingdom prosperous and flourishing; yet durst not apply, all at once, for a greater relaxation of their chains.

In 1364, the common people asked that, due to the previous plague, those who owned manors directly from the king and had made various leases without getting licenses could keep doing so until the population increased. The common people understood that this assurance of ownership was an effective way to help the kingdom thrive and grow; however, they were hesitant to request a larger easing of their restrictions all at once.

     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 654.

     ** Cotton, p. 97.
     * Rymer, vol. vi. p. 654.

     ** Cotton, p. 97.

There is not a reign among those of the ancient English monarchs, which deserves more to be studied than that of Edward III., nor one where the domestic transactions will better discover the true genius of that kind of mixed government, which was then established in England. The struggles with regard to the validity and authority of the Great Charter were now over: the king was acknowledged to lie under some limitations: Edward himself was a prince of great capacity, not governed by favorites, nor led astray by any unruly passion, sensible that nothing could be more essential to his interests than to keep on good terms with his people: yet, on the whole, it appears that the government at best was only a barbarous monarchy, not regulated by any fixed maxims, or bounded by any certain undisputed rights, which in practice were regularly observed. The king conducted himself by one set of principles, the barons by another, the commons by a third, the clergy by a fourth. All these systems of government were opposite and incompatible: each of them prevailed in its turn, as incidents were favorable to it: a great prince rendered the monarchical power predominant; the weakness of a king gave reins to the aristocracy; a superstitious age saw the clergy triumphant; the people, for whom chiefly government was instituted, and who chiefly deserve consideration, were the weakest of the whole. But the commons, little obnoxious to any other order, though they sunk under the violence of tempests, silently reared their head in more peaceable times; and while the storm was brewing, were courted by all sides, and thus received still some accession to their privileges, or, at worst, some confirmation of them.

There isn’t a reign among the ancient English monarchs that deserves more study than that of Edward III., nor is there one that better reveals the true nature of the mixed government established in England at the time. The disputes over the validity and authority of the Great Charter were now settled: the king was recognized as having certain limitations. Edward himself was a capable prince, not swayed by favorites or distracted by any unreasonable passions, and he understood that maintaining good relationships with his people was crucial for his interests. However, overall, the government was still essentially a rough monarchy, lacking fixed principles or clearly defined and consistently respected rights. The king operated under one set of principles, the barons under another, the commons under a third, and the clergy under a fourth. All these systems of governance were conflicting and incompatible; each would dominate in its turn depending on the circumstances: a strong prince would elevate monarchical power, while a weak king would empower the aristocracy; a superstitious era saw the clergy in control; the people, who were the main focus of government and truly deserved attention, were the weakest of all. However, the commons, not much threatened by any other group, though they struggled through turbulent times, quietly emerged stronger in more peaceful periods. While the storm was brewing, they were sought after by all sides, and thus gained some additional privileges or, at the very least, had their existing ones confirmed.

It has been an established opinion that gold coin was not struck till this reign; but there has lately been found proof that it is as ancient as Henry III.[*]

It has long been believed that gold coins were not minted until this reign; however, recent evidence has shown that they date back to the time of Henry III.[*]

     * See Observations on the more ancient Statutes, p. 375, 3d
     edit.
     * See Observations on the more ancient Statutes, p. 375, 3d edit.




CHAPTER XVII.

1_237_richard2.jpg Richard II.




RICHARD II.

1377.

1377.

THE parliament which was summoned soon after the king’s accession, was both elected and assembled in tranquillity; and the great change, from a sovereign of consummate wisdom and experience to a boy of eleven years of age, was not immediately felt by the people. The habits of order and obedience which the barons had been taught, during the long reign of Edward, still influenced them; and the authority of the king’s three uncles, the dukes of Lancaster, York, and Glocester, sufficed to repress, for a time, the turbulent spirit to which that order, in a weak reign, was so often subject. The dangerous ambition, too, of these princes themselves was checked, by the plain and undeniable title of Richard, by the declaration of it made in parliament, and by the affectionate regard which the people bore to the memory of his father, and which was naturally transferred to the young sovereign upon the throne. The different characters, also, of these three princes rendered them a counterpoise to each other; and it was natural to expect, that any dangerous designs which might be formed by one brother, would meet with opposition from the others. Lancaster, whose age and experience, and authority under the late king, gave him the ascendant among them, though his integrity seemed not proof against great temptations, was neither of an enterprising spirit, nor of a popular and engaging temper. York was indolent, inactive, and of slender capacity. Glocester was turbulent, bold, and popular; but being the youngest of the family, was restrained by the power and authority of his elder brothers. There appeared, therefore, no circumstance in the domestic situation of England which might endanger the public peace, or give any immediate apprehensions to the lovers of their country.

THE parliament that was called soon after the king’s accession was both elected and gathered in peace. The significant shift from a wise and experienced ruler to an eleven-year-old boy wasn’t immediately felt by the people. The habits of order and obedience cultivated among the barons during Edward’s long reign still influenced them, and the authority of the king’s three uncles—the dukes of Lancaster, York, and Gloucester—was enough to quell, for a time, the rebellious spirit that often arose in a weak reign. The dangerous ambitions of these princes were also kept in check by Richard’s clear and undeniable claim to the throne, the proclamation made in parliament, and the deep affection the people held for his father, which naturally extended to the young king. The distinct personalities of these three princes balanced one another; it was reasonable to expect that any dangerous plot from one brother would face opposition from the others. Lancaster, with his age, experience, and authority gained from the previous king, held the upper hand among them, although his integrity seemed vulnerable to significant temptations. He was not particularly bold or charming. York was lazy, inactive, and not very capable. Gloucester was rebellious, confident, and popular; however, being the youngest, he was held back by the power and authority of his older brothers. Therefore, there seemed to be no factor in England’s domestic situation that could threaten public peace or cause immediate concern for those who loved their country.

But as Edward, though he had fixed the succession to the crown, had taken no care to establish a plan of government during the minority of his grandson, it behoved the parliament to supply this defect; and the house of commons distinguished themselves by taking the lead on the occasion. This house, which had been rising to consideration during the whole course of the late reign, naturally received an accession of power during the minority; and as it was now becoming a scene of business, the members chose for the first time a speaker, who might preserve order in their debates, and maintain those forms which are requisite in all numerous assembles. Peter de la Mare was the man pitched on; the same person that had been imprisoned and detained in custody by the late king for his freedom of speech, in attacking the mistress and the ministers of that prince. But though this election discovered a spirit of liberty in the commons, and was followed by further attacks, both on these ministers and on Alice Pearce,[*] they were still too sensible of their great inferiority to assume at first any immediate share in the administration of government, or the care of the king’s person. They were content to apply by petition to the lords for that purpose, and desire them both to appoint a council of nine, who might direct the public business, and to choose men of virtuous life and conversation, who might inspect the conduct and education of the young prince. The lords complied with the first part of this request, and elected the bishops of London, Carlisle, and Salisbury, the earls of Marche and Stafford, Sir Richard de Stafford, Sir Henry le Scrope, Sir John Devereux, and Sir Hugh Segrave, to whom they gave authority for a year to conduct the ordinary course of business.[**] But as to the regulation of the king’s household, they declined interposing in an office which, they said, both was invidious in itself, and might prove disagreeable to his majesty.

But since Edward, although he had secured the line of succession to the crown, had not made any plans for governing during his grandson's minority, the parliament needed to address this gap. The House of Commons stepped up to take the lead in this situation. This house, which had been gaining importance throughout the previous reign, naturally gained more power during the minority. As it was now becoming a center for business, the members decided for the first time to elect a speaker who could keep order in their discussions and maintain the necessary protocols for large gatherings. Peter de la Mare was chosen; he was the same person who had been imprisoned and held by the late king for speaking out against the king's mistress and ministers. While this election showed a growing spirit of independence in the Commons and led to further challenges against these ministers and Alice Pearce,[*] they were still very aware of their significant inferiority and initially hesitated to take any direct role in the government or the care of the king's person. They were satisfied to petition the lords for that purpose, asking them to appoint a council of nine to oversee public matters and to select individuals of good character to supervise the conduct and education of the young prince. The lords agreed to the first part of the request and elected the bishops of London, Carlisle, and Salisbury, the earls of Marche and Stafford, Sir Richard de Stafford, Sir Henry le Scrope, Sir John Devereux, and Sir Hugh Segrave, granting them authority for a year to manage the usual affairs of business.[**] However, regarding the management of the king's household, they chose not to get involved, stating that it was both a sensitive matter and could potentially upset his majesty.

     * Walsing. p. 150.

     ** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 161.
     * Walsing. p. 150.

     ** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 161.

The commons, as they acquired more courage, ventured to proceed a step farther in their applications. They presented a petition, in which they prayed the king to check the prevailing custom among the barons of forming illegal confederacies, and supporting each other, as well as men of inferior rank, in the violations of law and justice. They received from the throne a general and an obliging answer to this petition: but another part of their application, that all the great officers should, during the king’s minority, be appointed by parliament, which seemed to require the concurrence of the commons, as well as that of the upper house, in the nomination, was not complied with: the lords alone assumed the power of appointing these officers. The commons tacitly acquiesced in the choice; and thought that, for, the present, they themselves had proceeded a sufficient length, if they but advanced their pretensions, though rejected, of interposing in these more important matters of state.

The common people, gaining more confidence, decided to take a further step in their requests. They submitted a petition asking the king to put a stop to the common practice among the barons of forming illegal alliances and supporting each other, as well as lower-ranking individuals, in breaking the law and undermining justice. They received a polite and general response from the throne regarding their petition; however, another part of their request, that all the major officials be appointed by parliament during the king’s minority—which required approval from both the commons and the upper house—was not granted. The lords alone took on the authority to appoint these officials. The commons quietly accepted their choice and believed that, for now, they had made enough progress by advancing their claims, even if they were dismissed, to have a say in these significant state matters.

On this footing then the government stood. The administration was conducted entirely in the king’s name: no regency was expressly appointed: the nine counsellors and the great officers named by the peers, did their duty each in his respective department; and the whole system was for some years kept together, by the secret authority of the king’s uncles, especially of the duke of Lancaster, who was in reality the regent.

On this basis, the government was structured. The administration was run entirely in the king’s name: no regency was officially appointed; the nine counselors and the high officials chosen by the peers performed their roles in their respective areas; and the entire system was held together for several years by the covert influence of the king’s uncles, particularly the Duke of Lancaster, who was effectively the regent.

The parliament was dissolved, after the commons had represented the necessity of their being reassembled once every year, as appointed by law; and after having elected two citizens as their treasurers, to receive and disburse the produce of two fifteenths and tenths, which they had voted to the crown. In the other parliaments called during the minority, the commons still discover a strong spirit of freedom, and a sense of their own authority, which, without breeding any disturbance, tended to secure their independence and that of the people.[*] 11

The parliament was dissolved after the commons pointed out the need to meet at least once a year, as required by law. They also elected two citizens as their treasurers to manage the funds from the two fifteenths and tenths they had allocated to the crown. In other parliaments convened during the minority, the commons continued to show a strong sense of freedom and awareness of their own authority, which, without causing any disruptions, helped to maintain their independence and that of the people.[*] 11

     * See note K, at the end of the volume.
     * See note K, at the end of the book.

Edward had left his grandson involved in many dangerous wars. The pretensions of the duke of Lancaster to the crown of Castile, made that kingdom still persevere in hostilities against England. Scotland, whose throne was now filled by Robert Stuart, nephew to David Bruce, and the first prince of that family, maintained such close connections with France, that war with one crown almost inevitably produced hostilities with the other. The French monarch, whose prudent conduct had acquired him the surname of Wise, as he had already baffled all the experience and valor of the two Edwards, was likely to prove a dangerous enemy to a minor king: but his genius, which was not naturally enterprising, led him not at present to give any disturbance to his neighbors; and he labored, besides, under many difficulties at home, which it was necessary for him to surmount, before he could think of making conquests in a foreign country. England was master of Calais, Bordeaux, and Bayonne; had lately acquired possession of Cherbourg from the cession of the king of Navarre, and of Brest from that of the duke of Brittany;[*] and having thus an easy entrance into France from every quarter, was able, even in its present situation, to give disturbance to his government. Before Charles could remove the English from these important posts, he died in the flower of his age, and left his kingdom to a minor son who bore the name of Charles VI.

Edward had left his grandson caught up in numerous dangerous wars. The duke of Lancaster’s claims to the crown of Castile kept that kingdom engaged in hostilities against England. Scotland, now ruled by Robert Stuart, DAVID BRUCE's nephew and the first prince of that family, had such strong ties with France that war with one country almost inevitably led to conflict with the other. The French king, known as Wise due to his careful approach, had already outsmarted the skills and valor of the two Edwards, making him a potentially dangerous foe for a young king. However, his nature wasn’t particularly aggressive, and he had no immediate plans to trouble his neighbors; plus, he faced many challenges at home that he needed to overcome before he could think about conquering lands abroad. England controlled Calais, Bordeaux, and Bayonne; had recently taken Cherbourg from the king of Navarre and Brest from the duke of Brittany;[*] and with such easy access into France from all directions, even in its current state, was capable of causing issues for his government. Before Charles could push the English out of these crucial locations, he died at a young age, leaving his kingdom to a minor son named Charles VI.

1378.

1378.

Meanwhile the war with France was carried on in a manner somewhat languid, and produced no enterprise of great lustre or renown. Sir Hugh Calverly, governor of Calais, making an inroad into Picardy with a detachment of the garrison, set fire to Boulogne.[**] The duke of Lancaster conducted an army into Brittany, but returned without being able to perform any thing memorable.

Meanwhile, the war with France was carried out in a rather sluggish manner, resulting in no notable or glorious achievements. Sir Hugh Calverly, the governor of Calais, led a small group from the garrison into Picardy and set fire to Boulogne.[**] The Duke of Lancaster took an army into Brittany but returned without accomplishing anything significant.

1380.

1380.

In a subsequent year, the duke of Glocester marched out of Calais with a body of two thousand cavalry and eight thousand infantry, and scrupled not, with his small army, to enter into the heart of France, and to continue his ravages through Picardy, Champaigne, the Brie, the Beausse, the Gatinois, the Orleanois, till he reached his allies in the province of Brittany.[***] The duke of Burgundy, at the head of a more considerable army, came within sight of him; but the French were so overawed by the former successes of the English, that no superiority of numbers could tempt them to venture a pitched battle with the troops of that nation. As the duke of Brittany, soon after the arrival of these succors, formed an accommodation with the court of France, this enterprise also proved in the issue unsuccessful, and made no durable impression upon the enemy.

In a later year, the Duke of Gloucester marched out of Calais with a force of two thousand cavalry and eight thousand infantry, and without hesitation, with his small army, entered deep into France, continuing his destruction through Picardy, Champagne, the Brie, Beauce, Gatinais, and Orleanois, until he reached his allies in the province of Brittany.[***] The Duke of Burgundy, leading a larger army, came within sight of him; however, the French were so intimidated by the previous successes of the English that no advantage in numbers could persuade them to engage in a decisive battle with those troops. After the arrival of these reinforcements, the Duke of Brittany quickly negotiated a settlement with the French court, making this campaign ultimately unsuccessful and failing to leave a lasting impact on the enemy.

     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 190.

     ** Walsing, p. 209.

     *** Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 50, 51. Walsing. p. 239.
     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 190.

     ** Walsing, p. 209.

     *** Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 50, 51. Walsing. p. 239.

The expenses of these armaments, and the usual want of economy attending a minority, much exhausted the English treasury, and obliged the parliament, besides making some alterations in the council, to impose a new and unusual tax of three groats on every person, male and female, above fifteen years of age; and they ordained that, in levying that tax, the opulent should relieve the poor by an equitable compensation. This imposition produced a mutiny, which was singular in its circumstances. All history abounds with examples where the great tyrannize over the meaner sort; but here the lowest populace rose against their rulers, committed the most cruel ravages upon them, and took vengeance for all former oppressions.

The costs of these weapons and the usual lack of budgeting during a minority really drained the English treasury. This forced Parliament, in addition to making some changes in the council, to impose a new and unusual tax of three groats on every person, male and female, over fifteen years old. They also mandated that the wealthy should help the poor through fair compensation when collecting this tax. This tax led to a unique mutiny. Throughout history, there are many examples of the powerful oppressing the weaker, but in this case, the lowest class rose up against their rulers, inflicted severe damage upon them, and took revenge for all past injustices.

1381.

1381.

The faint dawn of the arts and of good government in that age, had excited the minds of the populace, in different states of Europe, to wish for a better condition, and to murmur against those chains which the laws enacted by the haughty nobility and gentry, had so long imposed upon them. The commotions of the people in Flanders, the mutiny of the peasants in France, were the natural effects of this growing spirit of independence; and the report of these events being brought into England, where personal slavery, as we learn from Froissard,[*] was more general than in any other country in Europe, had prepared the minds of the multitude for an insurrection. One John Ball, also, a seditious preacher, who affected low popularity, went about the country and inculcated on his audience the principles of the first origin of mankind from one common stock, their equal right to liberty and to all the goods of nature, the tyranny of artificial distinctions, and the abuses which had arisen from the degradation of the more considerable part of the species, and the aggrandizement of a few insolent rulers.[**] These doctrines, so agreeable to the populace, and so conformable to the ideas of primitive equality which are engraven in the hearts of all men, were greedily received by the multitude, and scattered the sparks of that sedition which the present tax raised into a conflagration.[***]

The early signs of art and good governance during that time stirred the desires of people across various European nations, urging them to seek better circumstances and to protest against the oppressive laws imposed by the arrogant nobility and gentry. The unrest in Flanders and the peasant uprisings in France were natural outcomes of this growing sense of independence; news of these events spread to England, where personal slavery was more common than anywhere else in Europe, priming the masses for rebellion. A preacher named John Ball, known for his controversial views, traveled the country promoting the idea that all humans originated from a common ancestry, had equal rights to freedom and nature's resources, and exposed the tyranny of artificial social divisions and the exploitation that arose from the subjugation of the majority by a few arrogant rulers. These ideas resonated deeply with the people, aligning with the innate sense of equality found in everyone, and triggered a widespread acceptance that ignited the anger fueled by the current taxation into a full-blown uprising.

     * Liv. ii. chap. 74.

     ** Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 74. Walsing. p. 275.

     *** There were two verses at that time in the mouths of all
     the common people, which, in spite of prejudice, one cannot
     but regard with some degree of approbation:—

          When Adam delv’d and Eve span,
          Where was then the gentleman?
     * Liv. ii. chap. 74.

     ** Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 74. Walsing. p. 275.

     *** There were two lines that everyone was saying back then, which, despite any bias, you can't help but view with a bit of approval:—

          When Adam worked the land and Eve spun,
          Where was the gentleman?

The imposition of three groats a head had been farmed out to tax-gatherers in each county, who levied the money on the people with rigor; and the clause, of making the rich ease their poorer neighbors of some share of the burden, being so vague and undeterminate, had doubtless occasioned many partialities, and made the people more sensible of the unequal lot which Fortune had assigned them in the distribution of her favors. The first disorder was raised by a blacksmith in a village of Essex. The tax-gatherers came to this man’s shop while he was at work, and they demanded payment for his daughter, whom he asserted to be below the age assigned by the statute. One of these fellows offered to produce a very indecent proof to the contrary, and at the same time laid hold of the maid; which the father resenting, immediately knocked out the ruffian’s brains with his hammer. The bystanders applauded the action, and exclaimed, that it was full time for the people to take vengeance on their tyrants, and to vindicate their native liberty. They immediately flew to arms: the whole neighborhood joined in the sedition: the flame spread in an instant over the county: it soon propagated itself into that of Kent, of Hertford, Surrey, Sussex, Suffolk, Norfolk, Cambridge, and Lincoln. Before the government had the least warning of the danger, the disorder had grown beyond control or opposition: the populace had shaken off all regard to their former masters; and being headed by the most audacious and criminal of their associates, who assumed the feigned names of Wat Tyler, Jack Straw, Hob Carter, and Tom Miller, by which they were fond of denoting their mean origin, they committed every where the most outrageous violence on such of the gentry or nobility as had the misfortune to fall into their hands.

The imposition of three groats per person had been contracted out to tax collectors in each county, who collected the money from the people harshly; and the provision that the wealthy should help their poorer neighbors with some of the burden was so vague and unclear that it undoubtedly led to many biases and made people more aware of the unequal fate that Fortune had given them in the distribution of her favors. The first unrest was caused by a blacksmith in a village in Essex. The tax collectors came to this man’s shop while he was working and demanded payment for his daughter, whom he claimed was under the age specified by the law. One of these men offered to provide a very inappropriate proof to the contrary and simultaneously grabbed the girl, which the father took offense to and immediately bludgeoned the thug to death with his hammer. The bystanders cheered the act and shouted that it was high time for the people to take revenge on their oppressors and reclaim their freedom. They quickly armed themselves: the whole neighborhood joined in the uprising: the unrest spread rapidly throughout the county and soon extended into Kent, Hertford, Surrey, Sussex, Suffolk, Norfolk, Cambridge, and Lincoln. Before the government had any warning about the danger, the situation had escalated beyond control: the populace had thrown off all respect for their former masters; and being led by the most daring and criminal of their peers, who took on the assumed names of Wat Tyler, Jack Straw, Hob Carter, and Tom Miller—names they liked to use to signify their humble origins—they committed extreme violence against any members of the gentry or nobility unfortunate enough to cross their paths.

The mutinous populace, amounting to a hundred thousand men, assembled on Blackheath under their leaders, Tyler and Straw; and as the princess of Wales, the king’s mother, returning from a pilgrimage to Canterbury, passed through the midst of them, they insulted her attendants, and some of the most insolent among them, to show their purpose of levelling all mankind, forced kisses from her; but they allowed her to continue her journey, without attempting any further injury.[*] They sent a message to the king, who had taken shelter in the Tower; and they desired a conference with him. Richard sailed down the river in a barge for that purpose; but on his approaching the shore, he saw such symptoms of tumult and insolence, that he put back and returned to that fortress.[**]

The rebellious crowd, about a hundred thousand strong, gathered on Blackheath led by Tyler and Straw. As the Princess of Wales, the king’s mother, was returning from a pilgrimage to Canterbury and passed through them, they taunted her attendants, and some of the most aggressive among them, to demonstrate their intent to bring everyone down to the same level, forced kisses from her. However, they let her continue her journey without causing any more harm.[*] They sent a message to the king, who was hiding in the Tower, asking for a meeting. Richard sailed down the river in a boat for that purpose, but as he approached the shore, he saw clear signs of chaos and disrespect, so he turned back and returned to the fortress.[**]

     * Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 74.

     ** Froissard, liv. ii. chap 75.
     * Froissart, book II, chapter 74.

     ** Froissart, book II, chapter 75.

The seditious peasants, meanwhile, favored by the populace of London, had broken into the city; had burned the duke of Lancaster’s palace of the Savoy; cut off the heads of all the gentlemen whom they laid hold of; expressed a particular animosity against the lawyers and attorneys; and pillaged the warehouses of the rich merchants.[*] A great body of them quartered themselves at Mile End; and the king, finding no defence in the Tower, which was weakly garrisoned and ill supplied with provisions, was obliged to go out to them and ask their demands. They required a general pardon, the abolition of slavery, freedom of commerce in market towns without toll or impost, and a fixed rent on lands, instead of the services due by villainage. These requests, which, though extremely reasonable in themselves, the nation was not sufficiently prepared to receive, and which it was dangerous to have extorted by violence, were, however, complied with; charters to that purpose were granted them; and this body immediately dispersed, and returned to their several homes.[**]

The rebellious peasants, with the support of the people of London, had invaded the city; burned down the duke of Lancaster’s palace at Savoy; decapitated all the gentlemen they captured; showed a particular hatred for lawyers and attorneys; and looted the warehouses of wealthy merchants.[*] A large group of them set up camp at Mile End; and the king, finding no defense in the Tower, which had a weak garrison and was low on supplies, had to go out to them and ask what they wanted. They demanded a general pardon, the end of serfdom, the freedom to trade in market towns without tolls or taxes, and a fixed rent on lands instead of the services owed under serfdom. Although these requests were quite reasonable, the nation was not ready to accept them, and it was risky to have them forced by violence. Nevertheless, the demands were met; charters to that effect were granted; and the crowd quickly dispersed and returned to their homes.[**]

During this transaction, another body of the rebels had broken into the Tower; had murdered Simon Sudbury, the primate and chancellor, with Sir Robert Hales, the treasurer, and some other persons of distinction; and continued their ravages in the city.[***]

During this event, another group of rebels had stormed the Tower; had killed Simon Sudbury, the archbishop and chancellor, along with Sir Robert Hales, the treasurer, and a few other notable individuals; and continued their rampage through the city.[***]

     * Froissard, liv. ii, chap. 76. Walsing. p. 248, 249.

     ** Froissard, liv. ii chap. 77.

     *** Walsing, p. 250, 251.
     * Froissart, vol. 2, ch. 76. Walsingham, pp. 248, 249.

     ** Froissart, vol. 2, ch. 77.

     *** Walsingham, pp. 250, 251.
1_239_tyler.jpg Wat Tyler

The king, passing along Smithfield, very slenderly guarded, met with Wat Tyler at the head of these rioters, and entered into a conference with him. Tyler, having ordered his companions to retire till he should give them a signal, after which they were to murder all the company except the king himself, whom they were to detain prisoner, feared not to come into the midst of the royal retinue. He there behaved himself in such a manner, that Walworth, the mayor of London, not able to bear his insolence, drew his sword, and struck him so violent a blow as brought him to the ground, where he was instantly despatched by others of the king’s attendants. The mutineers, seeing their leader fall, prepared themselves for revenge; and this whole company, with the king himself, had undoubtedly perished on the spot, had it not been for an extraordinary presence of mind which Richard discovered on the occasion. He ordered his company to stop; he advanced alone towards the enraged multitude, and accosting them with an affable and intrepid countenance, he asked them, “What is the meaning of this disorder my good people? Are ye angry that ye have lost your leader? I am your king: I will be your leader.” The populace, overawed by his presence, implicitly followed him. He led them into the fields, to prevent any disorder which might have arisen by their continuing in the city. Being there joined by Sir Robert Knolles, and a body of well-armed veteran soldiers, who had been secretly drawn together, he strictly prohibited that officer from falling on the rioters, and committing an undistinguished slaughter upon them; and he peaceably dismissed them with the same charters which had been granted to their fellows.[*] Soon after, the nobility and gentry, hearing of the king’s danger, in which they were all involved, flocked to London, with their adherents and retainers; and Richard took the field at the head of an army forty thousand strong.[**] It then behoved all the rebels to submit: the charters of enfranchisement and pardon were revoked by parliament; the low people were reduced to the same slavish condition as before; and several of the ringleaders were severely punished for the late disorders. Some were even executed without process or form of law.[***] It was pretended, that the intentions of the mutineers had been to seize the king’s person, to carry him through England at their head; to murder all the nobility, gentry, and lawyers, and even all the bishops and priests, except the mendicant friars; to despatch afterwards the king himself, and, having thus reduced all to a level, to order the kingdom at their pleasure.[****] It is not impossible but many of them, in the delirium of their first success, might have formed such projects: but of all the evils incident to human society, the insurrections of the populace, when not raised and supported by persons of higher quality, are the least to be dreaded: the mischiefs consequent to an abolition of all rank and distinction become so great, that they are immediately felt, and soon bring affairs back to their former order and arrangement.

The king, passing through Smithfield with very little protection, encountered Wat Tyler leading the rioters and started a discussion with him. Tyler told his followers to step back until he signaled them, after which they were to kill everyone except the king, who they would keep as a prisoner. Not afraid, he walked right into the middle of the royal entourage. He acted in such a way that Walworth, the mayor of London, unable to tolerate his arrogance, pulled his sword and struck him with such force that he fell to the ground, where he was quickly finished off by other attendants of the king. The rioters, seeing their leader go down, braced themselves for revenge; and the entire group, along with the king, would have likely perished right there, if not for Richard's remarkable calm in the situation. He ordered his men to halt; he stepped forward alone towards the angry crowd and, with a friendly and fearless demeanor, asked them, "What’s the trouble, my good people? Are you upset that you’ve lost your leader? I am your king; I will be your leader." The crowd, intimidated by his presence, followed him without question. He led them into the fields to avoid any chaos that might occur if they stayed in the city. Joined there by Sir Robert Knolles and a group of well-armed veteran soldiers who had been secretly assembled, he firmly instructed that officer not to attack the rioters or indiscriminately kill them; he peacefully dismissed them with the same charters that had been given to their peers.[*] Shortly after, the nobility and gentry, hearing about the king’s peril that threatened them all, rushed to London with their followers; Richard took the field in command of an army of forty thousand.[**] At that point, the rebels had no choice but to surrender: the charters of freedom and pardon were revoked by parliament; the common people were brought back to their previous submissive state; and several of the ringleaders faced severe punishment for the recent unrest, with some even executed without any legal process.[***] It was claimed that the rioters intended to capture the king and parade him across England as their figurehead, to kill all the nobility, gentry, lawyers, and even all the bishops and priests except the begging friars; to then eliminate the king himself, and having leveled everything, to govern the kingdom as they pleased.[****] It's possible that many of them, caught up in the excitement of their initial success, may have entertained such ideas. However, among all the afflictions that occur in human society, the uprisings of the masses, when not inspired and supported by people of higher status, are the least to be feared: the damage caused by abolishing all social ranks and distinctions is so significant that it is felt immediately, quickly restoring order and structure to affairs.

     * Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 77. Walsing. p. 252. Knyghton,
     p. 2637.

     ** Walsing. p. 267.

     *** 5 Rich. II. cap. ult., as quoted in the Observations on
     Ancient Statutes, p. 262.

     **** Walsing. p. 265.
     * Froissard, book ii, chapter 77. Walsing, page 252. Knyghton, page 2637.

     ** Walsing, page 267.

     *** 5 Richard II, last chapter, as mentioned in the Observations on Ancient Statutes, page 262.

     **** Walsing, page 265.
1_246_richard.jpg Richard II. Entry Into London

A youth of sixteen, (which was at this time the king’s age) who had discovered so much courage, presence of mind, and address, and had so dexterously eluded the violence of this tumult, raised great expectations in the nation; and it was natural to hope that he would, in the course of his life, equal the glories which had so uniformly attended his father and his grandfather in all their undertakings. {1385.

A sixteen-year-old, which was the king's age at that time, who had shown remarkable courage, quick thinking, and skill, and had skillfully escaped the chaos of this turmoil, generated high expectations in the country; it was only natural to hope that he would, throughout his life, achieve the same glories that consistently accompanied his father and grandfather in all their endeavors. {1385.

But in proportion as Richard advanced in years, these hopes vanished; and his want of capacity, at least of solid judgment, appeared in every enterprise which he attempted. The Scots, sensible of their own deficiency in cavalry, had applied to the regency of Charles VI.; and John de Vienne, admiral of France, had been sent over with a body of one thousand five hundred men at arms, to support them in their incursions against the English. The danger was now deemed by the king’s uncles somewhat serious; and a numerous army of sixty thousand men was levied, and they marched into Scotland with Richard himself at their head. The Scots did not pretend to make resistance against so great a force: they abandoned without scruple their country to be pillaged and destroyed by the enemy: and when De Vienne expressed his surprise at this plan of operations, they told him, that all their cattle was driven into the forests and fastnesses; that their houses and other goods were of small value; and that they well knew how to compensate any losses which they might sustain in that respect, by making an incursion into England. Accordingly, when Richard entered Scotland by Berwick and the east coast, the Scots, to the number of thirty thousand men, attended by the French, entered the borders of England by the west, and carrying their ravages through Cumberland, Westmoreland, and Lancashire, collected a rich booty, and then returned in tranquillity to their own country. Richard, meanwhile, advanced towards Edinburgh, and destroyed in his way all the towns and villages on each side of him: he reduced that city to ashes: he treated in the same manner Perth, Dundee, and other places in the low countries; but when he was advised to march towards the west coast, to await there the return of the enemy, and to take revenge on them for their devastations, his impatience to return to England, and enjoy his usual pleasures and amusements, outweighed every consideration; and he led back his army without effecting any thing by all these mighty preparations. The Scots, soon after, finding the heavy bodies of French cavalry very useless in that desultory kind of war to which they confined themselves, treated their allies so ill, that the French returned home, much disgusted with the country and with the manners of its inhabitants.[*] And the English, though they regretted the indolence and levity of their king, saw themselves for the future secured against any dangerous invasion from that quarter.

But as Richard got older, those hopes faded, and his lack of skill, especially solid judgment, became clear in every effort he made. The Scots, aware of their own shortcomings in cavalry, had reached out to the regency of Charles VI.; and John de Vienne, the admiral of France, was sent over with a group of one thousand five hundred knights to assist them in their raids against the English. The king’s uncles considered the threat somewhat serious now, so they raised a large army of sixty thousand men and marched into Scotland with Richard leading them. The Scots didn’t even try to resist such a massive force; they willingly abandoned their land to be looted and destroyed by the enemy. When De Vienne expressed his surprise at this approach, they told him that all their cattle had been driven into the forests and strongholds, that their homes and belongings were of little value, and that they knew how to make up for any losses by launching raids into England. So, when Richard entered Scotland via Berwick and the east coast, the Scots, numbering about thirty thousand and accompanied by the French, crossed into England from the west, ravaging Cumberland, Westmoreland, and Lancashire, gathering a rich haul, and then peacefully returned to their own land. Meanwhile, Richard advanced towards Edinburgh, destroying all the towns and villages in his path: he burned that city to the ground and did the same to Perth, Dundee, and other locations in the lowlands. However, when he was advised to move towards the west coast to wait for the enemy's return and take revenge for their destruction, his impatience to return to England for his usual pleasures and entertainment took precedence, and he led his army back without achieving anything despite all the significant preparations. Soon after, the Scots, finding the heavy French cavalry ineffective in their kind of guerrilla warfare, treated their allies so poorly that the French went home, deeply disappointed with the country and its people's ways. And while the English regretted their king’s laziness and frivolity, they felt more secure from any significant invasion from that direction in the future.

1386.

1386.

But it was so material an interest of the French court to wrest the seaport towns from the hands of their enemy, that they resolved to attempt it by some other expedient, and found no means so likely as an invasion of England itself. They collected a great fleet and army at Sluise; for the Flemings were now in alliance with them: all the nobility of France were engaged in this enterprise: the English were kept in alarm: great preparations were made for the reception of the invaders: and though the dispersion of the French ships by a storm, and the taking of many of them by the English, before the embarkation of the troops, freed the kingdom from the present danger, the king and council were fully sensible that this perilous situation might every moment return upon them.[**]

But it was such a crucial interest for the French court to take the seaside towns away from their enemy that they decided to try a different approach, and found that invading England itself was their best option. They gathered a large fleet and army at Sluise, as the Flemings were now allies with them; all the nobility of France were involved in this venture. The English were kept on edge: extensive preparations were made to welcome the invaders, and although a storm scattered the French ships and many were captured by the English before the troops could embark, which relieved the kingdom from immediate danger, the king and council were acutely aware that this threatening situation could arise again at any moment.[**]

There were two circumstances, chiefly, which engaged the French at this time to think of such attempts. The one was the absence of the duke of Lancaster, who had carried into Spain the flower of the English military force, in prosecution of his vain claim to the crown of Castile; an enterprise in which, after some promising success, he was finally disappointed: the other was, the violent dissensions and disorders which had taken place in the English government.

There were two main reasons why the French were thinking about such attempts at this time. The first was the absence of the Duke of Lancaster, who had taken the best of the English military force into Spain to pursue his futile claim to the crown of Castile; an endeavor that initially showed some promise but ultimately ended in disappointment. The second reason was the intense conflicts and turmoil that had occurred in the English government.

The subjection in which Richard was held by his uncles, particularly by the duke of Glocester, a prince of ambition and genius, though it was not unsuitable to his years and slender capacity, was extremely disagreeable to his violent temper; and he soon attempted to shake off the yoke imposed upon him. Robert de Vere, earl of Oxford, a young man of a noble family, of an agreeable figure, but of dissolute manners, had acquired an entire ascendant over him, and governed him with an absolute authority. The king set so little bounds to his affection, that he first created his favorite marquis of Dublin, a title before unknown in England, then duke of Ireland; and transferred to him by patent, which was confirmed in parliament, the entire sovereignty for life of that island.[***]

The control that Richard was under from his uncles, especially from the Duke of Gloucester, a prince with ambition and talent, while not entirely inappropriate for his age and limited abilities, was very frustrating to his fiery temperament; he quickly tried to break free from the burden placed on him. Robert de Vere, Earl of Oxford, a young man from a noble family, who was charming in appearance but known for his reckless behavior, had gained complete influence over him and ruled him with total authority. The king was so generous with his affection that he first made his favorite the Marquis of Dublin, a title that had never existed in England before, then Duke of Ireland; and he granted him, through a patent confirmed in parliament, full sovereignty for life over that island.[***]

     * Froissard, liv. ii. chap. 149, 150, etc., liv. iii. chap.
     52. Walsing p. 316, 317.

     ** Froissard, liv. iii. chap. 41, 53. Walsing. p. 322,
     323.

     *** Cotton, p. 310, 311. Cox, Hist. of Ireland, p. 129.
     Walsing, p. 324.
     * Froissard, book ii, chapters 149, 150, etc., book iii, chapter 52. Walsingham, pages 316, 317.

     ** Froissard, book iii, chapters 41, 53. Walsingham, pages 322, 323.

     *** Cotton, pages 310, 311. Cox, History of Ireland, page 129. Walsingham, page 324.

He gave him in marriage his cousin-german, the daughter of Ingelram de Couci, earl of Bedford; but soon after he permitted him to repudiate that lady, though of an unexceptionable character, and to marry a foreigner, a Bohemian, with whom he had become enamored.[*] These public declarations of attachment turned the attention of the whole court towards the minion: all favors passed through his hands: access to the king could only be obtained by his mediation: and Richard seemed to take no pleasure in royal authority, but so far as it enabled him to load with favors, and titles, and dignities, this object of his affections.

He married his cousin, the daughter of Ingelram de Couci, the earl of Bedford; but soon after, he allowed him to divorce her, even though she had a flawless reputation, and marry a foreigner, a Bohemian woman, whom he had fallen in love with. These public displays of affection caught the attention of the entire court: all favors went through him; the only way to get an audience with the king was through his help; and Richard seemed to take no joy in being king, except as it allowed him to shower this object of his affection with favors, titles, and honors.

    * Walsing. p. 228.
* Walsing. p. 228.

The jealousy of power immediately produced an animosity Between the minion and his creatures on the one hand, and the princes of the blood and chief nobility on the other; and the usual complaints against the insolence of favorites were loudly echoed, and greedily received, in every part of the kingdom. Moubray, earl of Nottingham, the mareschal, Fitz-Alan, earl of Arundel, Piercy, earl of Northumberland, Montacute, earl of Salisbury, Beauchamp, earl of Warwick, were all connected with each other, and with the princes, by friendship or alliance, and still more by their common antipathy to those who had eclipsed them in the king’s favor and confidence. No longer kept in awe by the personal character of the prince, they scorned to submit to his ministers; and the method which they took to redress the grievance complained of well suited the violence of the age, and proves the desperate extremities to which every opposition was sure to be instantly carried.

The jealousy over power quickly created hostility between the favorite and his allies on one side, and the royal family and top nobility on the other. The usual complaints about the arrogance of favorites were loudly echoed and eagerly accepted throughout the kingdom. Moubray, the Earl of Nottingham, the Marshal; Fitz-Alan, the Earl of Arundel; Piercy, the Earl of Northumberland; Montacute, the Earl of Salisbury; and Beauchamp, the Earl of Warwick, were all linked by friendship or marriage, and even more by their shared resentment toward those who had outshone them in the king’s favor and trust. No longer intimidated by the prince’s personal influence, they refused to bow to his ministers. The way they chose to address their grievances fit the brutality of the time and highlighted the desperate lengths to which any opposition would be instantly pushed.

Michael de la Pole, the present chancellor, and lately created earl of Suffolk, was the son of an eminent merchant; but had risen by his abilities and valor during the wars of Edward III., had acquired the friendship of that monarch, and was esteemed the person of greatest experience and capacity among those who were attached to the duke of Ireland and the king’s secret council. The duke of Glocester, who had the house of commons at his devotion, impelled them to exercise that power which they seem first to have assumed against Lord Latimer during the declining years of the late king; and an impeachment against the chancellor was carried up by them to the house of peers, which was no less at his devotion. The king foresaw the tempest preparing against him and his ministers. After attempting in vain to rouse the Londoners to his defence, he withdrew from parliament, and retired with his court to Eltham. The parliament sent a deputation, inviting him to return, and threatening that, if he persisted in absenting himself, they would immediately dissolve, and leave the nation, though at that time in imminent danger of a French invasion, without any support or supply for its defence. At the same time, a member was encouraged to call for the record containing the parliamentary deposition of Edward II.; a plain intimation of the fate which Richard, if he continued refractory, had reason to expect from them. The king, finding himself unable to resist, was content to stipulate that, except finishing the present impeachment against Suffolk, no attack should be made upon any other of his ministers; and on that condition he returned to the parliament.[*] 12

Michael de la Pole, the current chancellor and recently made Earl of Suffolk, was the son of a prominent merchant. However, he rose to prominence through his skills and bravery during the wars of Edward III, gaining the friendship of that king and being regarded as the most experienced and capable among those close to the Duke of Ireland and the king's secret council. The Duke of Gloucester, who had the House of Commons in his control, pushed them to use the power they first exercised against Lord Latimer during the later years of the previous king. They brought an impeachment against the chancellor to the House of Lords, which was also under his influence. The king anticipated the storm gathering against him and his advisors. After unsuccessfully trying to rally the people of London for support, he left parliament and retreated with his court to Eltham. The parliament sent a delegation inviting him to return, warning that if he continued to stay away, they would immediately dissolve, leaving the nation without any support or resources for its defense, despite the imminent threat of a French invasion. Meanwhile, a member was encouraged to demand the record containing the parliamentary deposition of Edward II, implying the fate Richard could expect if he kept resisting them. Ultimately, the king, realizing he couldn't fight back, agreed that, aside from finishing the current impeachment against Suffolk, there would be no further attacks on his ministers; on that condition, he returned to parliament.[*] 12

Nothing can prove more fully the innocence of Suffolk, than the frivolousness of the crimes which his enemies, in the present plenitude of their power, thought proper to object against him.[**] It was alleged, that being chancellor, and obliged by his oath to consult the king’s profit, he had purchased lands of the crown below their true value; that he had exchanged with the king a perpetual annuity of four hundred marks a year, which he inherited from his father, and which was assigned upon the customs of the port of Hull, for lands of an equal income; that having obtained for his son the priory of St. Anthony, which was formerly possessed by a Frenchman, an enemy and a schismatic, and a new prior being at the same time named by the pope, he had refused to admit this person, whose title was not legal, till he made a composition with his son, and agreed to pay him a hundred pounds a year from the income of the benefice; that he had purchased, from one Tydeman, of Limborch, an old and forfeited annuity of fifty pounds a year upon the crown, and had engaged the king to admit that bad debt; and that, when created earl of Suffolk, he had obtained a grant of five hundred pounds a year to support the dignity of that title.[***]

Nothing demonstrates Suffolk's innocence more clearly than the triviality of the charges his enemies, now at the height of their power, chose to raise against him. They claimed that, while serving as chancellor and bound by his oath to consider the king’s interests, he purchased crown lands for less than their actual worth; that he exchanged a permanent annuity of four hundred marks a year, which he inherited from his father and which was secured on the customs of the port of Hull, for lands that had the same income; that he secured the priory of St. Anthony for his son, previously held by a Frenchman, an enemy and a dissenter, and refused to recognize a new prior named by the pope until he reached an agreement with his son to pay him a hundred pounds a year from the income of the benefice; that he bought an old and forfeited annuity of fifty pounds a year from Tydeman of Limborch upon the crown, and persuaded the king to accept that bad debt; and that, upon being made Earl of Suffolk, he received a grant of five hundred pounds a year to uphold the status of that title.

     * See note L, at the end of the volume.

     ** Cotton, p. 315. Knyghton, p. 2683.

     *** It is probable that the earl of Suffolk was not rich, nor
     able to support the dignity without the bounty of the crown;
     for his father, Michael de la Pole, though a great merchant,
     had been ruined by lending money to the late king. See
     Cotton, p. 194.
     * See note L, at the end of the volume.

     ** Cotton, p. 315. Knyghton, p. 2683.

     *** It's likely that the Earl of Suffolk wasn't wealthy and couldn't maintain his status without the crown's support; his father, Michael de la Pole, despite being a successful merchant, had lost everything by lending money to the previous king. See Cotton, p. 194.

We may even the proof of these articles, frivolous as they are, was found very deficient upon the trial: it appeared that Suffolk had made no purchase from the crown while he was chancellor, and that all his bargains of that kind were made before he was advanced to that dignity.[*] It is almost needless to add, that he was condemned, notwithstanding his defence; and that he was deprived of his office.

We can even prove that these claims, as silly as they are, were very weak during the trial: it showed that Suffolk didn't make any purchases from the crown while he was chancellor, and that all his deals of that kind happened before he got that position.[*] It's almost unnecessary to mention that he was found guilty, despite his defense, and that he lost his job.

Glocester and his associates observed their stipulation with the king, and attacked no more of his ministers: but they immediately attacked himself and his royal dignity, and framed a commission after the model of those which had been attempted almost in every reign since that of Richard I., and which had always been attended with extreme confusion.[**] By this commission, which was ratified by parliament, a council of fourteen persons was appointed, all of Glocester’s faction, except Nevil, archbishop of York: the sovereign power was transferred to these men for a twelvemonth: the king, who had now reached the twenty-first year of his age, was in reality dethroned: the aristocracy was rendered supreme: and though the term of the commission was limited, it was easy to foresee that the intentions of the party were to render it perpetual, and that power would with great difficulty be wrested from those grasping hands to which it was once committed. Richard, however, was obliged to submit: he signed the commission which violence had extorted from him; he took an oath never to infringe it; and though at the end of the session he publicly entered a protest, that the prerogatives of the crown, notwithstanding his late concession, should still be deemed entire and unimpaired,[***] the new commissioners, without regarding this declaration, proceeded to the exercise of their authority.

Glocester and his allies honored their agreement with the king and stopped attacking his ministers. However, they quickly turned their focus on him and his royal status, creating a commission modeled after those attempted in almost every reign since Richard I, which always led to chaos. This commission, approved by parliament, formed a council of fourteen people, all from Glocester’s faction except for Nevil, the archbishop of York. The real power was handed over to these men for a year; the king, who was now twenty-one, was essentially dethroned, and the aristocracy took control. Although the commission was supposed to last only a limited time, it was clear that the group intended to make it permanent, and it would be very challenging to take back power from those who had seized it. Richard, however, had no choice but to go along with it; he signed the commission that had been forced upon him and swore an oath not to violate it. Even though he publicly protested at the end of the session, claiming that the rights of the crown should remain intact despite his recent agreement, the new commissioners ignored his statement and began exercising their power.

     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 481. Cotton, p. 31.

     ** Cotton, p. 315.

     *** Knyghton, p. 2686. Statutes at large, 10 Rich. II. chap.
     I.
     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 481. Cotton, p. 31.

     ** Cotton, p. 315.

     *** Knyghton, p. 2686. Statutes at large, 10 Rich. II. chap.
     I.

1887.

1887.

The king, thus dispossessed of royal power, was soon sensible of the contempt into which he was fallen. His favorites and ministers, who were as yet allowed to remain about his person, failed not to aggravate the injury which without any demerit on his part, had been offered to him. And his eager temper was of itself sufficiently inclined to remark that the dukes of Glocester and York, though vastly rich received at the same time each of them a thousand pounds a year top support their dignity and to seek the means, both of recovering his authority, and of revenging himself on those who had invaded it. As the house of commons appeared now of weight in the constitution, he secretly tried some expedients for procuring a favorable election: he sounded some of the sheriffs, who, being at that time both the returning officers, and magistrates of great power in the counties, had naturally considerable influence in elections.[*] But as most of them had been appointed by his uncles, either during his minority or during the course of the present commission, he found them in general averse to his enterprise. The sentiments and inclinations of the judges were more favorable to him. He met at Nottingham Sir Robert Tresilian, chief justice of the king’s bench, Sir Robert Belknappe, chief justice of the common pleas, Sir John Gary, chief baron of the exchequer, Holt, Fulthorpe, and Bourg, inferior justices, and Lockton, serjeant at law; and he proposed to them some queries, which these lawyers, either from the influence of his authority or of reason, made no scruple of answering in the way he desired. They declared that the late commission was derogatory to the royalty and prerogative of the king; that those who procured it, or advised the king to consent to it, were punishable with death; that those who necessitated and compelled him were guilty of treason; that those were equally criminal who should persevere in maintaining it; that the king has the right of dissolving parliaments at pleasure; that the parliament, while it sits, must first proceed upon the king’s business; and that this assembly cannot without his consent impeach any of his ministers and judges.[**] Even according to our present strict maxims with regard to law and the royal prerogative, all these determinations, except the two last, appear justifiable: and as the great privileges of the commons, particularly that of impeachment, were hitherto new and supported by few precedents, there want not plausible reasons to justify these opinions of the judges.[***]

The king, stripped of his royal power, quickly became aware of the contempt he had fallen into. His favorites and ministers, still allowed to stay by his side, did not hesitate to amplify the injury he had suffered without any fault of his own. His impulsive nature led him to notice that the dukes of Gloucester and York, despite being incredibly wealthy, each received a yearly income of a thousand pounds to support their status and to pursue ways of regaining his authority and taking revenge on those who had taken it from him. With the House of Commons now carrying weight in the constitution, he secretly tried various strategies to secure a favorable election: he reached out to some of the sheriffs, who at that time served as both returning officers and powerful magistrates in the counties, and consequently had significant influence over elections.[*] However, most of them had been appointed by his uncles, whether during his minority or during the current commission, so he generally found them opposed to his plans. The judges showed more favorable inclinations toward him. He met in Nottingham with Sir Robert Tresilian, chief justice of the King’s Bench; Sir Robert Belknappe, chief justice of the Common Pleas; Sir John Gary, chief baron of the Exchequer; Holt, Fulthorpe, and Bourg, lesser justices; and Lockton, serjeant at law. He posed several questions to them, which these lawyers, either influenced by his authority or reason, readily answered in the way he wanted. They stated that the recent commission undermined the king's royalty and prerogative; that those who caused it or advised the king to agree to it could be punished with death; that those who compelled him were guilty of treason; that anyone who continued to uphold it was equally criminal; that the king has the right to dissolve parliaments at will; that while parliament is in session, it must first address the king's business; and that this assembly cannot, without his consent, impeach any of his ministers or judges.[**] Even under our current strict principles regarding law and royal prerogative, all these decisions, except the last two, seem defensible; and since the significant privileges of the commons, especially that of impeachment, were still relatively new and lacked many precedents, there are plausible reasons to support the judges’ views.[***]

     * In the preamble to 5 Henry IV. cap. vii. it is implied,
     that the sheriffs in a manner appointed the members of the
     house of commons, not only in this parliament, but in many
     others.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2694. Ypod. Neust. p. 541.

     *** The parliament, in 1341, exacted of Edward III., that on
     the third day of every session, the king should resume all
     the great offices; and that the ministers should then answer
     to any accusation that should be brought against them; which
     plainly implies, that, while ministers they could not be
     accused or impeached in parliament, therefore, their answer
     to the king’s queries before the archhishops of York and
     Dublin, the bishops of Durham, Chichester, and Bangor, the
     duke of Ireland, the earl of Suffolk, and two other
     counsellors of inferior quality. Henry IV. told the
     commons that the usage of parliament required them to go
     first through the king’s business In granting supplies;
     which order the king intended not to alter. Parl. Hist. vol.
     ii. p. 65. Upon the whole, it must be allowed that,
     according to ancient practice and principles, there are at
     least plausible grounds for all these opinions of the
     judges. It must be remarked, that this affirmation of Henry
     IV. was given deliberately, after consulting the house of
     peers, who were much better acquainted with the usage of
     parliament than the ignorant commons. And it has the greater
     authority, because Henry IV. had made this very principle a
     considerable article of charge against his predecessor; and
     that a very few years before. So ill grounded were most of
     the imputations thrown on the unhappy Richard.
* In the introduction to 5 Henry IV. cap. vii., it suggests that sheriffs effectively appointed the members of the House of Commons, not just in this parliament, but in many others.

** Knyghton, p. 2694. Ypod. Neust. p. 541.

*** In the parliament of 1341, it was demanded of Edward III. that on the third day of each session, the king should take back all the major offices; and that the ministers would then answer to any accusations brought against them; which clearly indicates that while they were ministers, they could not be accused or impeached in parliament. Thus, their answers to the king’s questions were given before the archbishops of York and Dublin, the bishops of Durham, Chichester, and Bangor, the duke of Ireland, the earl of Suffolk, and two other lesser counselors. Henry IV. informed the commons that parliamentary practice required them to first address the king's matters when granting supplies; and the king did not intend to change this order. Parl. Hist. vol. ii. p. 65. Overall, it must be recognized that based on historical practice and principles, there are at least reasonable grounds for all these judges' opinions. It's important to note that this statement from Henry IV. was made deliberately after consulting with the House of Peers, who were far more familiar with parliamentary practices than the uninformed commons. It holds more weight because Henry IV. had made this very principle a significant point against his predecessor, just a few years earlier. Most of the accusations against the unfortunate Richard were poorly founded.

They obliged the king to summon a parliament, which was entirely at their devotion, they had full power, by observing a few legal forms, to take vengeance on all their enemies. Five great peers, men whose combined power was able at any time to shake the throne,—the duke of Glocester, the king’s uncle; the earl of Derby, son of the duke of Lancaster; the earl of Arundel; the earl of Warwick; and the earl of Nottingham, mareschal of England,—entered before the parliament an accusation, or appeal, as it was called, against the five counsellors whom they had already accused before the king. The parliament, who ought to have been judges, were not ashamed to impose an oath on all their members, by which they bound themselves to live and die with the lords appellants, and to defend them against all opposition with their lives and fortunes.[*]

They forced the king to call a parliament, which was completely at their service. They had the power, by following a few legal procedures, to take revenge on all their enemies. Five powerful nobles, whose combined influence could easily threaten the throne—Duke of Glocester, the king's uncle; Earl of Derby, son of the Duke of Lancaster; Earl of Arundel; Earl of Warwick; and Earl of Nottingham, Marshal of England—brought an accusation, or appeal as it was known, against the five advisors they had already charged in front of the king. The parliament, which was supposed to act as judges, shamefully made all their members swear an oath, binding them to stand with the lords making the appeal and to defend them against any opposition with their lives and fortunes.[*]

    * Cotton, p. 322.
* Cotton, p. 322.

The duke of Glocester and his adherents soon got intelligence of this secret consultation, and were naturally very much alarmed at it. They saw the king’s intentions; and they determined to prevent the execution of them. As soon as he came to London, which they knew was well disposed to their party, they secretly assembled their forces, and appeared in arms at Haringay Park, near Highgate, with a power which Richard and his ministers were not able to resist. They sent him a message by the archbishop of Canterbury, and the lords Lovel Cobham, and Devereux, and demanded that the persons who had seduced him by their pernicious counsel, and were traitors both to him and to the kingdom, should be delivered up to them. A few days after, they appeared in his presence, armed, and attended with armed followers; and they accused by name the archbishop of York, the duke of Ireland, the earl of Suffolk, Sir Robert Tresilian, and Sir Nicholas Brembre, as public and dangerous enemies to the state. They threw down their gauntlets before the king, and fiercely offered to maintain the truth of their charge by duel. The persons accused, and all the other obnoxious ministers, had withdrawn or had concealed themselves.

The Duke of Gloucester and his supporters quickly found out about this secret meeting, and understandably, they were very alarmed. They recognized the king’s plans and decided to stop them. As soon as he arrived in London, which they knew was supportive of their cause, they secretly gathered their forces and showed up armed at Haringay Park, near Highgate, with a strength that Richard and his advisors couldn’t resist. They sent a message to him through the Archbishop of Canterbury and Lords Lovel, Cobham, and Devereux, demanding that the individuals who had misled him with their harmful advice, and who were traitors to both him and the kingdom, should be handed over to them. A few days later, they appeared before him, armed and accompanied by armed followers; they specifically accused the Archbishop of York, the Duke of Ireland, the Earl of Suffolk, Sir Robert Tresilian, and Sir Nicholas Brembre, calling them public and dangerous enemies of the state. They threw down their gauntlets in front of the king and fiercely challenged them to prove their accusations in a duel. The accused individuals and all the other disliked ministers had either fled or hidden themselves.

The duke of Ireland fled to Cheshire, and levied some forces, with which he advanced to relieve the king from the violence of the nobles. Glocester encountered him in Oxfordshire with much superior forces; routed him, dispersed his followers, and obliged him to fly into the Low Countries, where he died in exile a few years after.

The Duke of Ireland escaped to Cheshire and gathered some troops to help the king against the nobles’ aggression. Gloucester confronted him in Oxfordshire with much larger forces, defeated him, scattered his followers, and forced him to flee to the Low Countries, where he died in exile a few years later.

The other proceedings were well suited to the violence and iniquity of the times. A charge consisting of thirty-nine articles, was delivered in by the appellants; and as none of the accused counsellors, except Sir Nicholas Brembre, was in custody, the rest were cited to appear; and upon their absenting themselves, the house of peers, after a very short interval, without hearing a witness, without examining a fact, or deliberating on one point of law, declared them guilty of high treason. Sir Nicholas Brembre, who was produced in court, had the appearance, and but the appearance, of a trial: the peers, though they were not by law his proper judges, pronounced, in a very summary manner, sentence of death upon him; and he was executed, together with Sir Robert Tresilian, who had been discovered and taken in the interval.

The other proceedings were a perfect match for the violence and wrongdoings of the time. The appellants filed a charge made up of thirty-nine articles, and since none of the accused counselors, except Sir Nicholas Brembre, were in custody, the others were summoned to appear. When they didn’t show up, the House of Peers, after a very brief period, declared them guilty of high treason without hearing any witnesses, examining any facts, or discussing any legal points. Sir Nicholas Brembre, who was brought into court, had the appearance—only the appearance—of a trial: the peers, although they weren’t his proper judges by law, quickly pronounced a death sentence on him. He was executed along with Sir Robert Tresilian, who had been captured in the meantime.

It would be tedious to recite the whole charge delivered in against the five counsellors; which is to be met with in several collections.[*]

It would be boring to go through the entire accusation made against the five counselors, which can be found in various collections.[*]

     * Knyghton, p. 2715. Tyrrel, vol iii. part ii p. 919, from
     the records. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 414
* Knyghton, p. 2715. Tyrrel, vol iii. part ii p. 919, from the records. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 414

It is sufficient to observe in general, that if we reason upon the supposition, which is the true one, that the royal prerogative was invaded by the commission extorted by the duke of Glocester and his associates, and that the king’s person was afterwards detained in custody by rebels, many of the articles will appear not only to imply no crime in the duke of Ireland and the ministers, but to ascribe to them actions which were laudable, and which they were bound by their allegiance to perform. The few articles impeaching the conduct of these ministers before that commission, which subverted the constitution, and annihilated all justice and legal authority, are vague and general; such as their engrossing the king’s favor, keeping his barons at a distance from him, obtaining unreasonable grants for themselves or their creatures, and dissipating the public treasure by useless expenses. No violence is objected to them; no particular illegal act;[*] no breach of any statute; and their administration may therefore be concluded to have been so far innocent and inoffensive. All the disorders indeed seem to have proceeded not from any violation of the laws, or any ministerial tyranny, but merely from a rivalship of power, which the duke of Glocester and the great nobility, agreeably to the genius of the times, carried to the utmost extremity against their opponents, without any regard to reason, justice, or humanity.

It's enough to note that if we consider the true assumption that the royal prerogative was violated by the commission forced by the Duke of Gloucester and his associates, and that the king's person was subsequently held captive by rebels, many of the charges will not only show no wrongdoing on the part of the Duke of Ireland and the ministers, but will attribute to them actions that were commendable and that they were obligated to perform due to their loyalty. The few charges against these ministers regarding that commission, which undermined the constitution and dismantled all justice and legal authority, are vague and general; for example, their monopolizing the king's favor, keeping his barons away from him, securing unreasonable grants for themselves or their allies, and wasting public funds on unnecessary expenses. No violence is attributed to them; no specific illegal act; no breach of any statute; and thus their administration can be concluded to have been relatively innocent and harmless. All the issues indeed appear to have arisen not from any violation of the laws or ministerial oppression, but rather from a struggle for power, which the Duke of Gloucester and the high nobility, in line with the spirit of the times, pushed to the extreme against their rivals, disregarding reason, justice, or humanity.

But these were not the only deeds of violence committed during the triumph of the party. All the other judges who had signed the extrajudicial opinions at Nottingham, were condemned to death, and were, as a grace or favor, banished to Ireland; though they pleaded the fear of their lives, and the menaces of the king’s ministers as their excuse. Lord Beauchamp of Holt, Sir James Berners, and John Salisbury, were also tried and condemned for high treason, merely because they had attempted to defeat the late commission: but the life of the latter was spared. The fate of Sir Simon Burley was more severe: this gentleman was much beloved for his personal merit, had distinguished himself by many honorable actions,[*] 13 was created knight of the garter, and had been appointed governor to Richard, by the choice of the late king and of the Black Prince: he had attended his master from the earliest infancy of that prince, and had ever remained extremely attached to him: yet all these considerations could not save him from falling a victim to Glocester’s vengeance.

But these weren’t the only violent actions taken during the party’s victory. All the other judges who had signed the extrajudicial opinions at Nottingham were sentenced to death but were, as a favor, exiled to Ireland, even though they cited fears for their lives and threats from the king’s ministers as their defense. Lord Beauchamp of Holt, Sir James Berners, and John Salisbury were also tried and sentenced for high treason simply because they tried to thwart the recent commission; however, John Salisbury's life was spared. The fate of Sir Simon Burley was harsher: this man was widely loved for his character, had distinguished himself through many honorable deeds, was made a knight of the garter, and had been appointed governor to Richard by the late king and the Black Prince. He had served his master from the prince's earliest childhood and had always been deeply loyal to him. Yet, despite all these factors, he couldn’t escape the wrath of Glocester.

     * See note M, at the end of the volume.
* See note M, at the end of the volume.

This execution, more than all the others, made a deep impression on the mind of Richard; his queen too (for he was already married to the sister of the emperor Winceslaus, King of Bohemia) interested herself in behalf of Burley: she remained three hours on her knees before the duke of Glocester, pleading for that gentleman’s life; but though she was become extremely popular by her amiable qualities, which had acquired her the appellation of “the good Queen Anne,” her petition was sternly rejected by the inexorable tyrant.[*]

This execution, more than all the others, really impacted Richard. His queen, too (since he was already married to the sister of Emperor Winceslaus, King of Bohemia), got involved for Burley’s sake. She spent three hours on her knees in front of the Duke of Gloucester, asking for that gentleman’s life. However, even though she had become very popular because of her kind nature and was known as “the good Queen Anne,” her request was harshly denied by the unyielding tyrant.[*]

     * At least this is the character given of him by Froissard,
     (liv. ii.) who knew him personally. Walsingham (p. 334)
     gives a very different character of him; but he is a writer
     somewhat passionate and partial; and the choice made of this
     gentleman, by Edward III. and the Black Prince, for the
     education of Richard, makes the character given him by
     Froissard much more probable.
     * At least this is the description of him by Froissard, 
     (liv. ii.) who knew him personally. Walsingham (p. 334) 
     offers a very different view of him; however, he tends to be a somewhat passionate and biased writer. The fact that Edward III. and the Black Prince chose this gentleman to educate Richard makes Froissard's assessment seem much more likely.

The parliament concluded this violent scene by a declaration, that none of the articles decided on these trials to be treason, should ever afterwards be drawn into precedent by the judges, who were still to consider the statute of the twenty-fifth of Edward as the rule of their decisions. The house of lords seem not at that time to have known or acknowledged the principle, that they themselves were bound, in their judicial capacity, to follow the rules which they, in conjunction with the king and commons, had established in their legislature.[*] 14 It was also enacted, that every one should swear to the perpetual maintenance and support of the forfeitures and attainders, and of all the other acts passed during this parliament. The archbishop of Canterbury added the penalty of excommunication, as a further security to these violent transactions.

The parliament wrapped up this violent scene with a statement that no articles decided during these trials would ever be used as precedent by the judges, who were still expected to refer to the statute of the twenty-fifth of Edward as their guideline. At that time, the House of Lords didn’t seem to recognize or accept the principle that they were required, in their judicial role, to follow the rules that they had set together with the king and commons in their legislation.[*] 14 It was also required that everyone swear to continually uphold and support the forfeitures and attainders, along with all the other acts passed during this parliament. The Archbishop of Canterbury added the penalty of excommunication as an additional safeguard for these violent actions.

     * See note N, at the end of the volume.
     * See note N, at the end of the volume.

1389.

1389.

It might naturally be expected, that the king, being reduced to such slavery by the combination of the princes and chief nobility, and having appeared so unable to defend his servants from the cruel effects of their resentment, would long remain in subjection to them; and never would recover the royal power, without the most violent struggles and convulsions: but the event proved contrary. In less than a twelvemonth, Richard, who was in his twenty-third year, declared in council, that, as he had now attained the full age which entitled him to govern by his own authority his kingdom and household, he resolved to exercise his right of sovereignty; and when no one ventured to contradict so reasonable an intention, he deprived Fitz-Alan, archbishop of Canterbury, of the dignity of chancellor, and bestowed that high office on William of Wickham, bishop of Winchester; the bishop of Hereford was displaced from the office of treasurer; the earl of Arundel from that of admiral; even the duke of Glocester and the earl of Warwick were removed for a time from the council: and no opposition was made to these great changes. The history of this reign is imperfect, and little to be depended on, except where it is supported by public records; and it is not easy for us to assign the reason of this unexpected event. Perhaps some secret animosities, naturally to be expected in that situation, had crept in among the great men, and had enabled the king to recover his authority. Perhaps the violence of their former proceedings had lost them the affections of the people, who soon repent of any cruel extremities to which they are carried by their leaders. However this may be, Richard exercised with moderation the authority which he had resumed. He seemed to be entirely reconciled to his uncles[*] and the other great men, of whom he had so much reason to complain: he never attempted to recall from banishment the duke of Ireland, whom he found so obnoxious to them: he confirmed by proclamation the general pardon which the parliament had passed for all offences; and he courted the affections of the people, by voluntarily remitting some subsidies which had been granted him: a remarkable, and almost singular instance of such generosity.

It might be expected that the king, who had been so oppressed by the alliance of the princes and leading nobles, and seemed unable to protect his followers from their brutal reactions, would remain under their control for a long time and never regain his royal power without significant struggles and upheavals. However, the outcome was different. In less than a year, Richard, at just twenty-three years old, announced in council that he had reached the age where he could govern his kingdom and household on his own terms, and he intended to assert his right to rule. Since no one dared to oppose such a reasonable intention, he removed Fitz-Alan, the archbishop of Canterbury, from the position of chancellor and appointed William of Wickham, the bishop of Winchester, in his place. The bishop of Hereford was removed from the role of treasurer, and the earl of Arundel was ousted from the position of admiral; even the duke of Gloucester and the earl of Warwick were temporarily sidelined from the council, and no one resisted these significant changes. The history of this reign is incomplete and not very reliable unless backed by public records, and it's hard for us to determine the cause of this unexpected turn of events. Perhaps hidden rivalries, likely in that situation, had emerged among the powerful figures, allowing the king to regain his authority. Maybe the harshness of their previous actions had caused them to lose the people's support, who quickly regret any extreme measures imposed by their leaders. Regardless, Richard exercised the power he had reclaimed with restraint. He appeared to be fully reconciled with his uncles and other powerful individuals, despite having had valid reasons to complain about them. He never tried to bring back the duke of Ireland, whom he knew was despised by them. He confirmed through proclamation the general pardon that parliament had issued for all offenses, and he won the people's goodwill by voluntarily waiving certain taxes that had been granted to him—a remarkable and almost unique act of generosity.

After this composure of domestic differences, and this restoration of the government to its natural state, there passes an interval of eight years which affords not many remarkable events. The duke of Lancaster returned from Spain; having resigned to his rival all pretensions to the crown of Castile upon payment of a large sum of money,[**] and having married his daughter, Philippa, to the king of Portugal. The authority of this prince served to counterbalance that of the duke of Glocester, and secured the power of Richard, who paid great court to his eldest uncle, by whom he had never been offended, and whom he found more moderate in his temper than the younger. He made a cession to him for life of the duchy of Guienne,[***] which the inclinations and changeable humor of the Gascons had restored to the English government; but as they remonstrated loudly against this deed, it was finally, with the duke’s consent, revoked by Richard.[****]

After sorting out domestic issues and putting the government back to its normal state, there was a period of eight years with not many significant events. The Duke of Lancaster returned from Spain, having given up all claims to the crown of Castile in exchange for a large amount of money, and he married his daughter, Philippa, to the King of Portugal. This prince’s influence helped balance the power of the Duke of Gloucester and reinforced King Richard's authority. Richard paid a lot of attention to his oldest uncle, who he had never upset and found to be more reasonable than the younger one. He granted him a lifetime lease of the Duchy of Guienne, which the changing moods of the Gascons had returned to English control. However, since the Gascons protested strongly against this arrangement, Richard ultimately revoked it with the duke's agreement.

     * Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 170.

     ** Knyghton, p 2677. Walsing p. 342.

     *** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 659.

     **** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 687. 298 HISTORY OF ENGLAND.
     * Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 170.

     ** Knyghton, p 2677. Walsing p. 342.

     *** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 659.

     **** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 687. 298 HISTORY OF ENGLAND.

There happened an incident which produced a dissension between Lancaster and his two brothers. After the death of the Spanish princess, he espoused Catharine Swineford, daughter of a private knight of Hainault, by whose alliance York and Glocester thought the dignity of their family much injured; but the king gratified his uncle by passing in parliament a charter of legitimation to the children whom that lady had borne him before marriage, and by creating the eldest earl of Somerset.[*]

There was an incident that caused a conflict between Lancaster and his two brothers. After the death of the Spanish princess, he married Catharine Swineford, the daughter of a private knight from Hainault, which made York and Glocester feel that their family's dignity was greatly harmed. However, the king pleased his uncle by passing a charter of legitimacy in parliament for the children that lady had with him before they got married, and by making the eldest the Earl of Somerset.[*]

The wars, meanwhile, which Richard had inherited with his crown, still continued; though interrupted by frequent truces, according to the practice of that age, and conducted with little vigor, by reason of the weakness of all parties. The French war was scarcely heard of; the tranquillity of the northern borders was only interrupted by one inroad of the Scots, which proceeded more from a rivalship between the two martial families of Piercy and Douglas, than from any national quarrel: a fierce battle or skirmish was fought at Otterborne,[**] in which young Piercy, surnamed Hotspur, from his impetuous valor, was taken prisoner, and Douglas slain; and the victory remained undecided.[***] Some insurrections of the Irish obliged the king to make an expedition into that country, which he reduced to obedience; and he recovered, in some degree, by this enterprise, his character of courage, which had suffered a little by the inactivity of his reign.

The wars that Richard inherited with his crown continued on, though they were frequently interrupted by temporary truce, as was common in that time. The conflict with France was barely acknowledged, and the northern borders experienced only one invasion from the Scots. This invasion stemmed more from a rivalry between the two warrior families, Piercy and Douglas, than from any national dispute. A fierce battle happened at Otterborne,[**] where young Piercy, known as Hotspur for his reckless bravery, was captured, and Douglas was killed, leaving the outcome of the battle unresolved.[***] Some uprisings in Ireland forced the king to lead an expedition there, which he managed to bring under control. Through this campaign, he somewhat restored his reputation for bravery, which had taken a hit due to his inaction during his reign.

1396.

1396.

At last, the English and French courts began to think in earnest of a lasting peace; but found it so difficult to adjust their opposite pretensions, that they were content to establish a truce of twenty-five years: Brest and Cherbourg were restored, the former to the duke of Brittany, the latter to the king of Navarre: both parties were left in possession of all the other places which they held at the time of concluding the truce; and to render the amity between the two crowns more durable, Richard,[****] who was now a widower, was affianced to Isabella, the daughter of Charles. This princess was only seven years of age; but the king agreed to so unequal a match, chiefly that he might fortify himself by this alliance against the enterprises of his uncles, and the incurable turbulence, as well as inconstancy, of his barons.

Finally, the English and French courts started to seriously consider a lasting peace, but they found it so hard to reconcile their conflicting claims that they settled for a truce of twenty-five years. Brest and Cherbourg were returned, with the former going to the Duke of Brittany and the latter to the King of Navarre. Both sides kept all the other territories they held when the truce was signed. To make the friendship between the two crowns more stable, Richard, who was now a widower, was betrothed to Isabella, the daughter of Charles. This princess was only seven years old, but the king agreed to this uneven arrangement mainly to strengthen himself through this alliance against his uncles' ambitions and the ongoing unrest and inconsistency of his barons.

The administration of the king, though it was not in this interval sullied by any unpopular act, except the seizing of the charter of London,[******] which was soon after restored, tended not much to corroborate his authority; and his personal character brought him into contempt, even while his public government appeared in a good measure unexceptionable.

The king's administration, although not marked by any unpopular actions during this time, except for taking over the charter of London,[******] which was quickly reinstated, didn't do much to strengthen his authority; and his personal character led people to look down on him, even though his public governance seemed mostly acceptable.

     * Cotton, p. 365. Walsing, p. 352.

     ** 15th August, 1388.

     *** Froissard, liv. iii. chap. 124, 125, 126. Walsing, p.
     355.

     **** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 820.

     ****** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 727. Walsing. p. 347.
     * Cotton, p. 365. Walsing, p. 352.

     ** August 15, 1388.

     *** Froissart, book III, ch. 124, 125, 126. Walsing, p. 355.

     **** Rymer, vol. VII, p. 820.

     ****** Rymer, vol. VII, p. 727. Walsing, p. 347.

Indolent, profuse, addicted to low pleasures, he spent his whole time in feasting and jollity, and dissipated, in idle show, or in bounties to favorites of no reputation, that revenue which the people expected to see him employ in enterprises directed to public honor and advantage. He forgot his rank by admitting all men to his familiarity; and he was not sensible, that their acquaintance with the qualities of his mind was not able to impress them with the respect which he neglected to preserve from his birth and station. The earls of Kent and Huntingdon, his half brothers, were his chief confidants and favorites; and though he never devoted himself to them with so profuse an affection as that with which he had formerly been attached to the duke of Ireland, it was easy for men to see, that every grace passed through their hands, and that the king had rendered himself a mere cipher in the government. The small regard which the public bore to his person, disposed them to murmur against his administration, and to receive with greedy ears every complaint which the discontented or ambitious grandees suggested to them.

Lazy, indulgent, and hooked on trivial pleasures, he spent all his time eating and partying, squandering the resources that the people hoped he would use for worthwhile public initiatives. He lost sight of his status by being overly familiar with everyone, not realizing that their familiarity with his character couldn't create the respect he failed to maintain due to his birth and position. The earls of Kent and Huntingdon, his half-brothers, were his main allies and favorites; and although he never showed them the deep affection he once had for the duke of Ireland, it was obvious to everyone that all favors flowed through them, making the king little more than a figurehead in governance. The lack of esteem the public had for him led to widespread discontent with his rule, making them eager to listen to any complaints from dissatisfied or ambitious nobles.

1397.

1397.

Glocester soon perceived the advantages which this dissolute conduct gave him; and finding that both resentment and jealousy on the part of his nephew still prevented him from acquiring any ascendant over that prince, he determined to cultivate his popularity with the nation, and to revenge himself on those who eclipsed him in favor and authority. He seldom appeared at court or in council; he never declared his opinion but in order to disapprove of the measures embraced by the king and his favorites; and he courted the friendship of every man whom disappointment or private resentment had rendered an enemy to the administration. The long truce with France was unpopular with the English, who breathed nothing but war against that hostile nation; and Glocester took care to encourage all the vulgar prejudices which prevailed on this subject. Forgetting the misfortunes which attended the English arms during the later years of Edward, he made an invidious comparison between the glories of that reign and the inactivity of the present; and he lamented that Richard should have degenerated so much from the heroic virtues by which his father and his grandfather were distinguished. The military men were inflamed with a desire of war when they heard him talk of the signal victories formerly obtained, and of the easy prey which might be made of French riches by the superior valor of the English; the populace readily embraced the same sentiments; and all men exclaimed, that this prince, whose counsels were so much neglected, was the true support of English honor and alone able to raise the nation to its former power and splendor. His great abilities, his popular manners, his princely extraction, his immense riches, his high office of constable;[*] all these advantages, not a little assisted by his want of court favor, gave him a mighty authority in the kingdom, and rendered him formidable to Richard and his ministers.

Glocester soon realized the benefits that his reckless behavior brought him, and since resentment and jealousy from his nephew still stopped him from gaining any influence over that prince, he decided to build his popularity with the people and get back at those who overshadowed him in favor and power. He rarely showed up at court or in council; he only expressed his opinion to criticize the decisions made by the king and his favorites. He sought the friendship of everyone who had been turned into an enemy of the administration due to disappointment or personal grievances. The long peace with France was unpopular with the English, who wanted nothing but war against that enemy nation, and Glocester made sure to boost all the common prejudices that existed about this. Forgetting the failures of the English military during the later years of Edward, he made a negative comparison between the achievements of that reign and the inactivity of the current one; he lamented that Richard had strayed so far from the heroic qualities that distinguished his father and grandfather. The military leaders were stirred with a desire for war when they heard him talk about the significant victories achieved in the past and the easy spoils that could be taken from French wealth through the superior bravery of the English; the general populace quickly shared those views, and everyone declared that this prince, whose advice was so often ignored, was the true defender of English honor and the only one capable of restoring the nation to its previous power and glory. His great abilities, friendly demeanor, noble lineage, vast wealth, and high rank as constable;[*] all these advantages, along with his lack of favor at court, gave him significant authority in the kingdom and made him a real threat to Richard and his ministers.

Froissard,[**] a contemporary writer, and very impartial, but whose credit is somewhat impaired by his want of exactness in material facts, ascribes to the duke of Glocester more desperate views, and such as were totally incompatible with the government and domestic tranquillity of the nation. According to that historian, he proposed to his nephew, Roger Mortimer, earl of Marche, whom Richard had declared his successor, to give him immediate possession of the throne, by the deposition of a prince so unworthy of power and authority: and when Mortimer declined the project, he resolved to make a partition of the kingdom between himself, his two brothers, and the earl of Arundel; and entirely to dispossess Richard of the crown. The king, it is said, being informed of these designs, saw that either his own ruin, or that of Glocester, was inevitable; and he resolved by a hasty blow to prevent the execution of such destructive projects. This is certain, that Glocester, by his own confession, had often affected to speak contemptuously of the king’s person and government; had deliberated concerning the lawfulness of throwing off allegiance to him; and had even borne part in a secret conference, where his deposition was proposed, and talked of, and determined:[***] but it is reasonable to think, that his schemes were not so far advanced.

Froissard,[**] a contemporary writer who is fairly neutral but whose reliability is somewhat undermined by his lack of accuracy in factual details, suggests that the Duke of Glocester had more extreme intentions that were completely at odds with the government and the peace of the nation. According to this historian, he proposed to his nephew, Roger Mortimer, the Earl of March, who Richard had named as his successor, to grant him immediate control of the throne by removing a prince deemed unworthy of power and authority. When Mortimer turned down the idea, Glocester planned to divide the kingdom among himself, his two brothers, and the Earl of Arundel, completely dispossessing Richard of the crown. It is said that the king, learning of these plots, realized that either he or Glocester would inevitably face ruin, and he decided to take swift action to thwart such destructive plans. It is certain that Glocester, by his own admission, often pretended to speak disrespectfully about the king and his rule; he considered the legality of breaking his allegiance to him; and he even participated in a secret meeting where discussions about Richard’s removal were proposed and deliberated:[***] but it seems reasonable to assume that his plans were not yet fully developed.

     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 152.

     ** Liv. iv. chap. 86.

     *** Cotton, p. 378. Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 972, from
     the records. Par. Hist. vol. i. p. 473. That this confession
     was genuine, and obtained without violence, may be entirely
     depended on. Judge Rickhill, who brought it over from
     Calais, was tried on that account, and acquitted in the
     first parliament of Henry IV., when Glocester’s party was
     prevalent. His acquittal, notwithstanding his innocence, may
     even appear marvellous, considering the times. See Cotton,
     p. 393. putting them immediately in execution. The danger
     probably was still too distant to render a desperate remedy
     entirely necessary for the security of government.
     * Rymer, vol. vii. p. 152.

     ** Liv. iv. chap. 86.

     *** Cotton, p. 378. Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 972, from
     the records. Par. Hist. vol. i. p. 473. It can be fully trusted that this confession was genuine and obtained without coercion. Judge Rickhill, who brought it over from Calais, was tried for this and acquitted in the first parliament of Henry IV., when Gloucester’s party had the upper hand. His acquittal, despite his innocence, might even seem astonishing given the circumstances of the time. See Cotton, p. 393. putting them immediately into action. The threat was probably still too far off to make a drastic solution completely necessary for the safety of the government.

But whatever opinion we may form of the danger arising from Glocester’s conspiracies, his aversion to the French truce and alliance was public and avowed; and that court which had now a great influence over the king, pushed him to provide for his own safety, by punishing the traitorous designs of his uncle. The resentment against his former acts of violence revived; the sense of his refractory and uncompliant behavior was still recent; and a man whose ambition had once usurped royal authority, and who had murdered all the faithful servants of the king, was thought capable, on a favorable opportunity, of renewing the same criminal enterprises. The king’s precipitate temper admitted of no deliberation: he ordered Glocester to be unexpectedly arrested; to be hurried on board a ship which was lying in the river; and to be carried over to Calais, where alone, by reason of his numerous partisans, he could safely be detained in custody.[*] The earls of Arundel and Warwick were seized at the same time: the malecontents so suddenly deprived of their leaders, were astonished and overawed; and the concurrence of the dukes of Lancaster and York in those measures, together with the earls of Derby and Rutland, the eldest sons of these princes,[**] bereaved them of all possibility of resistance.

But no matter what we think about the threat from Glocester’s conspiracies, his dislike for the French truce and alliance was well-known and open. The court, which now had a lot of influence over the king, pushed him to ensure his safety by punishing his uncle’s treacherous plans. The resentment toward his previous acts of violence resurfaced; people still vividly remembered his rebellious and defiant behavior. A man whose ambition had once taken over royal authority and who had killed all the king's loyal servants was seen as someone who could, given the right opportunity, engage in the same criminal activities again. The king's impulsive nature left no room for discussion: he ordered Glocester to be unexpectedly arrested, swiftly taken aboard a ship in the river, and transported to Calais, where his many followers could not rescue him. At the same time, the earls of Arundel and Warwick were captured. The discontented, suddenly stripped of their leaders, were shocked and intimidated; and the support from the dukes of Lancaster and York, along with the earls of Derby and Rutland, the eldest sons of these princes, left them with no chance of resistance.

A parliament was immediately summoned at Westminster; and the king doubted not to find the peers, and still more the commons, very compliant with his will. This house had in a former parliament given him very sensible proofs of their attachment;[***] 15 and the present suppression of Glocester’s party made him still more assured of a favorable election. As a further expedient for that purpose, he is also said to have employed the influence of the sheriffs; a practice which, though not unusual, gave umbrage, but which the established authority of that assembly rendered afterwards still more familiar to the nation. Accordingly, the parliament passed whatever acts the king was pleased to dictate to them:[****] they annulled forever the commission which usurped upon the royal authority, and they declared it treasonable to attempt, in any future period, the revival of any similar commission: they abrogated all the acts which attainted the king’s ministers, and which that parliament who passed them, and the whole nation had sworn inviolably to maintain: and they declared the general pardon then granted to be invalid, as extorted by force, and never ratified by the free consent of the king.

A parliament was quickly called at Westminster, and the king was confident he would find the peers, and especially the commons, eager to comply with his wishes. This house had previously shown strong support for him; [***] 15 and the current defeat of Glocester's faction made him even more certain of a favorable election. To further this goal, it's said he also used the influence of the sheriffs; a practice that, while not uncommon, caused some displeasure, but the established authority of that assembly made it more accepted by the nation over time. Consequently, the parliament passed whatever laws the king wanted them to: [****] they permanently nullified the commission that had overstepped royal authority and declared it treason to attempt to revive any similar commission in the future. They repealed all the laws that condemned the king’s ministers, which that parliament and the entire nation had sworn to uphold, and they declared the general pardon granted at that time invalid, stating it was obtained under duress and never approved by the king's free consent.

     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 90. Walsing. p. 354.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 7.

     *** See note O, at the end of the volume.

     **** The nobles brought numerous retainers with them to give
     them*
     * Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 90. Walsing. p. 354.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 7.

     *** See note O, at the end of the volume.

     **** The nobles came with a lot of followers to support them.*

Though Richard, after he resumed the government, and lay no longer under constraint, had voluntarily, by proclamation, confirmed that general indemnity, this circumstance seemed not, in their eyes, to merit any consideration. Even a particular pardon, granted six years after to the earl of Arundel, was annulled by parliament, on pretence that it had been procured by surprise, and that the king was not then fully apprized of the degree of guilt incurred by that nobleman.

Though Richard, after taking back control of the government and no longer being constrained, had willingly confirmed that general pardon through a proclamation, this fact seemed to them to hold no significance. Even a specific pardon given six years later to the Earl of Arundel was revoked by parliament, under the pretense that it had been obtained through surprise and that the king had not been fully informed about the extent of the nobleman's guilt at that time.

The commons then preferred an impeachment against Fitz-Alan, archbishop of Canterbury, and brother to Arundel, and accused him for his concurrence in procuring the illegal commission, and in attainting the king’s ministers. The primate pleaded guilty; but as he was protected by the ecclesiastical privileges, the king was satisfied with a sentence which banished him the kingdom, and sequestered his temporalities.[*] An appeal or accusation was presented against the duke of Glocester, and the earls of Arundel and Warwick, by the earls of Rutland, Kent, Huntingdon, Somerset, Salisbury, and Nottingham, together with the lords Spenser and Scrope, and they were accused of the same crimes which had been imputed to the archbishop, as well as of their appearance against the king in a hostile manner at Haringay Park. The earl of Arundel, who was brought to the bar, wisely confined all his defence to the pleading of both the general and particular pardon of the king; but his plea being overruled, he was condemned and executed.[**]

The commons then pushed for impeachment against Fitz-Alan, the Archbishop of Canterbury and brother to Arundel, accusing him of helping to obtain the illegal commission and of turning the king’s ministers against him. The archbishop admitted guilt; however, since he was protected by church privileges, the king was content with a sentence that exiled him from the kingdom and stripped him of his property.[*] An appeal or accusation was brought against the Duke of Gloucester and the Earls of Arundel and Warwick by the Earls of Rutland, Kent, Huntingdon, Somerset, Salisbury, and Nottingham, along with Lords Spenser and Scrope. They faced similar charges as the archbishop, including their hostile actions against the king at Haringay Park. The Earl of Arundel, who stood trial, wisely focused his defense on claiming both the general and specific pardon from the king; but his plea was rejected, and he was found guilty and executed.[**]

     * Cotton, p. 368.

     ** Cotton, p 377. Froissard, liv. iv. chap. 90. Walsing. p.
     354.
     * Cotton, p. 368.

     ** Cotton, p 377. Froissard, book iv, chapter 90. Walsingham, p. 354.

The earl of Warwick, who was also convicted of high treason, was, on account of his submissive behavior, pardoned as to his life, but doomed to perpetual banishment in the Isle of Man. No new acts of treason were imputed to either of these noblemen. The only crimes for which they were condemned, were the old attempts against the crown, which seemed to be obliterated both by the distance of time and by repeated pardons.[*] The reasons of this method of proceeding it is difficult to conjecture. The recent conspiracies of Glocester seem certain from his own confession; but perhaps the king and ministry had not at that time in their hands any satisfactory proof of their reality; perhaps it was difficult to convict Arundel and Warwick of any participation in them; perhaps an inquiry into these conspiracies would have involved in the guilt some of those great noblemen who now concurred with the crown, and whom it was necessary to cover from all imputation; or perhaps the king, according to the genius of the age, was indifferent about maintaining even the appearance of law and equity, and was only solicitous by any means to insure success in these prosecutions. This point, like many others in ancient history, we are obliged to leave altogether undetermined.

The Earl of Warwick, who was also found guilty of high treason, was pardoned in terms of his life due to his submissive behavior, but was sentenced to lifelong exile on the Isle of Man. No new acts of treason were charged against either of these noblemen. The only offenses for which they were punished were the past attempts against the crown, which seemed to be forgotten due to the passage of time and repeated pardons.[*] It's hard to guess the reasons for this approach. The recent conspiracies involving Gloucester seem certain from his own confession; however, the king and his advisors might not have had solid proof of their validity at that time. It may have been challenging to prove Arundel and Warwick's involvement in them; perhaps investigating these conspiracies could have implicated some of the noblemen who were now supporting the crown, and they needed to be protected from any blame; or maybe the king, in line with the customs of the time, didn't care about maintaining the appearance of law and justice and was only focused on ensuring success in these prosecutions. This issue, like many others in ancient history, remains unresolved.

A warrant was issued to the earl mareschal, governor of Calais, to bring over the duke of Glocester, in order to his trial; but the governor returned for answer, that the duke had died suddenly of an apoplexy in that fortress. Nothing could be more suspicious, from the time, than the circumstances of that prince’s death: it became immediately the general opinion, that he was murdered by orders from his nephew: in the subsequent reign, undoubted proofs were produced in parliament, that he had been suffocated with pillows by his keepers:[**] and it appeared that the king, apprehensive lest the public trial and execution of so popular a prince, and so near a relation, might prove both dangerous and invidious, had taken this base method of gratifying, and, as he fancied, concealing, his revenge upon him. Both parties, in their successive triumphs, seem to have had no further concern than that of retaliating upon their adversaries; and neither of them were aware that, by imitating, they indirectly justified, as far as it lay in their power, all the illegal violence of the opposite party.

A warrant was issued to the Earl Marshal, governor of Calais, to bring the Duke of Gloucester over for his trial; however, the governor responded that the duke had suddenly died of a stroke in that fortress. The circumstances surrounding the duke’s death were highly suspicious, leading to a widespread belief that he had been murdered on orders from his nephew. Later, in the following reign, undeniable evidence was presented in Parliament showing that he had been suffocated with pillows by his guards. It became clear that the king, fearing that a public trial and execution of such a popular prince and close relative could be both dangerous and controversial, had resorted to this contemptible method to satisfy his revenge while trying to hide it. Each side, during their respective victories, seemed more focused on getting back at their opponents than recognizing that by mirroring each other's actions, they indirectly legitimized all the illegal violence carried out by the opposing side.

     * Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 968, from the records.

     ** Cotton, p. 399, 400. Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 171.
     * Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 968, from the records.

     ** Cotton, p. 399, 400. Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 171.

This session concluded with the creation or advancement of several peers: the earl of Derby was made duke of Hereford; the earl of Rutland, duke of Albemarle; the earl of Kent, duke of Surrey; the earl of Huntingdon, duke of Exeter; the earl of Nottingham, duke of Norfolk; the earl of Somerset, marquis of Dorset; Lord Spenser, earl of Glocester; Rulph Nevil, earl of Westmoreland; Thomas Piercy, earl of Worcester; William Scrope, earl of Wiltshire.[*] The parliament, after a session of twelve days, was adjourned to Shrewsbury. The king, before the departure of the members, exacted from them an oath for the perpetual maintenance and establishment of all their acts; an oath similar to that which had formerly been required by the duke of Glocester and his party, and which had already proved so vain and fruitless.

This session wrapped up with the creation or elevation of several nobles: the earl of Derby was made duke of Hereford; the earl of Rutland, duke of Albemarle; the earl of Kent, duke of Surrey; the earl of Huntingdon, duke of Exeter; the earl of Nottingham, duke of Norfolk; the earl of Somerset, marquis of Dorset; Lord Spenser, earl of Gloucester; Rulph Nevil, earl of Westmoreland; Thomas Piercy, earl of Worcester; William Scrope, earl of Wiltshire.[*] The parliament, after a twelve-day session, was adjourned to Shrewsbury. Before the members left, the king made them swear an oath to perpetually uphold and support all their decisions; an oath similar to what the duke of Gloucester and his faction had previously required, which had already proven to be quite pointless.

1398.

1398.

Both king and parliament met in the same dispositions at Shrewsbury. So anxious was Richard for the security of these acts, that he obliged the lords and commons to swear anew to them on the cross of Canterbury;[**] and he soon after procured a bull from the pope, by which they were, as he imagined, perpetually secured and established.[***] The parliament, on the other hand, conferred on him for life the duties on wool, wool-fells, and leather, and granted him, besides, a subsidy of one tenth and a half, and one fifteenth and a half. They also reversed the attainder of Tresilian and the other judges; and, with the approbation of the present judges, declared the answers for which these magistrates had been impeached to be just and legal:[****] and they carried so far their retrospect as to reverse, on the petition of Lord Spenser, earl of Glocester, the attainder pronounced against the two Spensers in the reign of Edward II.[*****] The ancient history of England is nothing but a catalogue of reversals: every thing is in fluctuation and movement: one faction is continually undoing what was established by another: and the multiplied oaths which each party exacted for the security of the present acts, betray a perpetual consciousness of their instability.

Both the king and parliament met in the same conditions at Shrewsbury. Richard was so eager to secure these actions that he forced the lords and commons to swear to them again on the cross of Canterbury; and shortly after, he obtained a bull from the pope, which he believed would permanently secure and establish them. The parliament, on the other hand, granted him lifetime duties on wool, wool-fells, and leather, along with a subsidy of one-tenth and a half, and one-fifteenth and a half. They also reversed the attainder of Tresilian and the other judges; and with the approval of the current judges, they declared the responses for which these magistrates were impeached to be just and legal. They even went so far back as to reverse, at the request of Lord Spenser, the Earl of Gloucester, the attainder against the two Spensers from the reign of Edward II. The ancient history of England is nothing more than a list of reversals: everything is in flux and movement: one faction is always undoing what another has established: and the numerous oaths that each side demanded for the security of the current actions reveal a constant awareness of their instability.

The parliament, before they were dissolved, elected a committee of twelve lords and six commoners,[******] whom they invested with the whole power both of lords and commons, and endowed with full authority to finish all business which had been laid before the houses, and which they had not had leisure to bring to a conclusion.[*******]

The parliament, before being dissolved, elected a committee of twelve lords and six commoners,[******] giving them the complete power of both lords and commons, and granting them full authority to wrap up all the business that had been presented to the houses, which they hadn’t had time to finalize.[*******]

     * Cotton, p. 370, 371

     ** Cotton, p. 371.

     ** Walsing. p. 355.

     **** Statutes at large, 21 Rich. II.

     ****** The names of the commissioners were, the dukes of
     Lancaster, York, Albemarle, Surrey, and Exeter, the marquis
     of Dorset, the earls of Marche, Salisbury, Northumberland,
     Glocester, Winchester, and Wiltshire; John Bussey, Henry
     Green, John Russel, Robert Teyne, Henry Chelmeswicke, and
     John Golofre. It is to be remarked, that the duke of
     Lancaster always concurred with the rest in all their
     proceedings, even in the banishment of his son, which was
     afterwards so much complained of.

     ******* Cotton, p. 372. Walsing. p. 355.
     * Cotton, p. 370, 371

     ** Cotton, p. 371.

     ** Walsing, p. 355.

     **** Statutes at Large, 21 Rich. II.

     ****** The commissioners included the dukes of Lancaster, York, Albemarle, Surrey, and Exeter; the marquis of Dorset; and the earls of Marche, Salisbury, Northumberland, Glocester, Winchester, and Wiltshire. Also included were John Bussey, Henry Green, John Russel, Robert Teyne, Henry Chelmeswicke, and John Golofre. It's worth noting that the duke of Lancaster consistently agreed with the others in their decisions, even regarding the exile of his son, which was later heavily criticized.

     ******* Cotton, p. 372. Walsing, p. 355.

This was an unusual concession; and though it was limited in the object, might, either immediately or as a precedent, have proved dangerous to the constitution; but the cause of that extraordinary measure was an event singular and unexpected, which engaged the attention of the parliament.

This was an unusual concession; and though it had a specific focus, it could have been risky for the constitution, either right away or as a precedent. However, the reason for that extraordinary action was an unusual and unexpected event that captured the attention of Parliament.

After the destruction of the duke of Glocester and the heads of that party, a misunderstanding broke out among those noblemen who had joined in the prosecution; and the king wanted either authority sufficient to appease it, or foresight to prevent it. The duke of Hereford appeared in parliament, and accused the duke of Norfolk of having spoken to him, in private, many slanderous words of the king, and of having imputed to that prince an intention of subverting and destroying many of his principal nobility.[**] Norfolk.. denied the charge, gave Hereford the lie, and offered to prove his own innocence by duel. The challenge was accepted: the time and place of combat were appointed: and as the event of this important trial by arms might require the interposition of legislative authority, the parliament thought it more suitable to delegate their power to a committee, than to prolong the session beyond the usual time which custom and general convenience had prescribed to it.[***]

After the downfall of the Duke of Glocester and the leaders of that faction, a conflict emerged among the nobles who had participated in the prosecution. The king needed either enough authority to resolve it or the ability to foresee and prevent it. The Duke of Hereford appeared in parliament and accused the Duke of Norfolk of having spoken privately about him in a slanderous manner regarding the king, claiming that he suggested the king intended to undermine and destroy many of his key nobles. Norfolk denied the accusation, called Hereford a liar, and offered to prove his innocence in a duel. The challenge was accepted; the time and place for the duel were set. Since the outcome of this significant trial by combat might require legislative intervention, parliament decided it was better to hand over their power to a committee rather than extend the session beyond the customary timeframe that tradition and general convenience dictated.

The duke of Hereford was certainly very little delicate in the point of honor, when he revealed a private conversation to the ruin of the person who had intrusted him; and we may thence be more inclined to believe the duke of Norfolk’s denial, than the other’s asseveration. But Norfolk had in these transactions betrayed an equal neglect of honor, which brings him entirely on a level with his antagonist. Though he had publicly joined with the duke of Glocester and his party in all the former acts of violence against the king.

The Duke of Hereford was definitely not very careful about honor when he exposed a private conversation, leading to the downfall of the person who confided in him. This makes us more likely to believe the Duke of Norfolk’s denial rather than the other’s claims. However, Norfolk also showed a similar disregard for honor in these events, putting him on equal footing with his rival. He had openly allied himself with the Duke of Gloucester and his faction in all previous acts of violence against the king.

     ** Cotton, p. 372. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 490.

     *** In the first year of Henry VI., when the authority of
     parliament was great, and when that assembly could least be
     suspected of lying under violence, a like concession was
     made to the privy council from like motives of convenience.
     See Cotton, p. 564. his name stands among the appellants who
     accused the duke of Ireland and the other ministers, yet was
     he not ashamed publicly to impeach his former associates for
     the very crimes which he had concurred with them in
     committing; and his name increases the list of those
     appellants who brought them to a trial. Such were the
     principles and practices of those ancient knights and
     barons, during the prevalence of the aristocratical
     government, and the reign of chivalry.
     ** Cotton, p. 372. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 490.

     *** In the first year of Henry VI., when parliament had significant authority, and that assembly could hardly be suspected of being under pressure, a similar concession was made to the privy council for the same reasons of convenience. See Cotton, p. 564. His name is listed among the appellants who accused the duke of Ireland and the other ministers, yet he wasn't ashamed to publicly accuse his former associates of the very crimes he had participated in with them; and his name adds to the list of those appellants who brought them to trial. Such were the principles and practices of those ancient knights and barons during the time of aristocratic rule and the era of chivalry.

The lists for this decision of truth and right were appointed at Coventry before the king: all the nobility of England banded into parties, and adhered either to the one duke or the other: the whole nation was held in suspense with regard to the event; but when the two champions appeared in the field accoutred for the combat, the king interposed, to prevent both the present effusion of such noble blood, and the future consequences of the quarrel. By the advice and authority of the parliamentary commissioners, he stopped the duel; and to show his impartiality, he ordered, by the same authority both the combatants to leave the kingdom;[*] assigning one country for the place of Norfolk’s exile, which he declared perpetual, another for that of Hereford, which he limited to ten years.

The decisions about truth and justice were set in Coventry before the king: all the nobles of England divided into factions, either supporting one duke or the other. The entire nation was on edge about what would happen; but when the two champions showed up ready for battle, the king stepped in to prevent the immediate shedding of such noble blood and the future fallout from the dispute. Following the advice and authority of the parliamentary commissioners, he halted the duel and, to demonstrate his fairness, ordered both combatants to leave the kingdom;[*] assigning one location for Norfolk’s exile, which he declared would be permanent, and another for Hereford’s, which he set for ten years.

     * Cotton, p. 380. Walsing. p. 356.
     * Cotton, p. 380. Walsing. p. 356.

Hereford was a man of great prudence and command of temper; and he behaved himself with so much submission in these delicate circumstances, that the king, before his departure, promised to shorten the term of his exile four years; and he also granted him letters patent, by which he was empowered, in case any inheritance should in the interval accrue to him, to enter immediately in possession, and to postpone the doing of homage till his return.

Hereford was a man of great caution and self-control; he handled the situation with such humility that the king, before leaving, promised to reduce his exile by four years. He also gave him official letters that allowed him, in case any inheritance came to him during that time, to take possession right away and to delay paying tribute until his return.

The weakness and fluctuation of Richard’s counsels appear nowhere more evident than in the conduct of this affair. No sooner had Hereford left the kingdom, than the king’s jealousy of the power and riches of that prince’s family revived; and he was sensible that by Glocester’s death he had only removed a counterpoise to the Lancastrian interest which was now become formidable to his crown and kingdom. Being informed that Hereford had entered into a treaty of marriage with the daughter of the duke of Berry, uncle to the French king, he determined to prevent the finishing of an alliance which would so much extend the interest of his cousin in foreign countries; and he sent over the earl of Salisbury to Paris with a commission for that purpose.

The inconsistency and uncertainty in Richard’s decisions are most clear in how he handled this situation. As soon as Hereford left the country, the king’s jealousy toward the power and wealth of that prince’s family flared up again; he realized that by eliminating Glocester, he had only gotten rid of a check to the Lancastrian influence, which had now become a serious threat to his rule and the kingdom. When he learned that Hereford had started negotiations for a marriage with the daughter of the duke of Berry, who was the uncle to the French king, he decided to stop this alliance from happening, as it would greatly strengthen his cousin’s position abroad. He sent the earl of Salisbury to Paris with a mandate to achieve that goal.

1399.

1399.

The death of the duke of Lancaster, which happened soon after, called upon him to take new resolutions with regard to that opulent succession. The present duke, in consequence of the king’s patent, desired to be put in possession of the estate and jurisdictions of his father; but Richard, afraid of strengthening the hands of a man whom he had already so much offended, applied to the parliamentary commissioners, and persuaded them that this affair was but an appendage to that business which the parliament had delegated to them. By their authority he revoked his letters patent, and retained possession of the estate of Lancaster; and by the same authority he seized and tried the duke’s attorney, who had procured and insisted on the letters, and he had him condemned as a traitor for faithfully executing that trust to his master;[*] an extravagant act of power! even though the king changed, in favor of the attorney, the penalty of death into that of banishment.

The death of the Duke of Lancaster, which happened soon after, prompted him to make new decisions regarding that vast inheritance. The current duke, due to the king’s patent, wanted to claim possession of his father's estate and jurisdictions; however, Richard, fearing he would strengthen someone he had already wronged, approached the parliamentary commissioners and convinced them that this issue was just part of the matter the parliament had given them to handle. With their authority, he canceled his letters patent and kept the Lancaster estate for himself; he also used the same authority to arrest and try the duke’s attorney, who had obtained and insisted on the letters, condemning him as a traitor for faithfully carrying out his duties to his master;[*] such a bold abuse of power! even though the king changed the punishment from death to exile in favor of the attorney.

Henry, the new duke of Lancaster, had acquired by his conduct and abilities the esteem of the public; and having served with distinction against the infidels in Lithuania, he had joined to his other praises those of piety and valor, virtues which have at all times a great influence over mankind, and were, during those ages, the qualities chiefly held in estimation.[**] He was connected with most of the principal nobility by blood, alliance, or friendship; and as the injury done him by the king might in its consequences affect all of them, he easily brought them, by a sense of common interest, to take part in his resentment. The people, who must have an object of affection, who found nothing in the king’s person which they could love or revere, and who were even disgusted with many parts of his conduct[***] easily transferred to Henry that attachment which the death of the duke of Glocester had left.

Henry, the new Duke of Lancaster, had gained public admiration through his actions and skills. After serving with honor against the infidels in Lithuania, he added to his reputation those of faith and bravery—qualities that have always resonated with humanity and were particularly valued in those times. He was related to many of the key nobles through blood, marriage, or friendship, and since the harm done to him by the king could impact them all, he easily united them in shared resentment. The people, needing someone to admire and finding nothing to love or respect in the king, who they even found off-putting in many ways, quickly shifted their loyalty to Henry, filling the void left by the death of the Duke of Gloucester.

     * Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 991, from the records.

     ** Walsing. p. 343.

     *** He levied fines upon those who had ten years before joined
     the duke of Glocester and his party: they were obliged to
     pay him money, before he would allow them to enjoy the
     benefit of the indemnity; and in the articles of charge
     against him it is asserted that the payment of one fine did
     not suffice. It is indeed likely that his ministers would
     abuse the power put into their hands; and this grievance
     extended to very many people. Historians agree in
     representing this practice as a great oppression. See
     Otterborne, p. 199. without any fixed direction. His
     misfortunes were lamented the injustice which he had
     suffered was complained of; and all men turned their eyes
     towards him as the only person that could retrieve the lost
     honor of the nation, or redress the supposed abuses in the
     government.
* Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 991, from the records.

** Walsing. p. 343.

*** He imposed fines on those who had joined the Duke of Gloucester and his supporters ten years earlier: they were forced to pay him money before he would let them benefit from the immunity. The charges against him stated that paying one fine was not enough. It's likely that his officials would misuse the power given to them; and this issue affected many people. Historians all agree that this practice was a major form of oppression. See Otterborne, p. 199. without any clear direction. People mourned his misfortunes, complained about the injustice he faced, and everyone looked to him as the only person who could restore the nation's lost honor or correct the alleged abuses in the government.

While such were the dispositions of the people, Richard had the imprudence to embark for Ireland, in order to revenge the death of his cousin, Roger, earl of Marche, the presumptive heir of the crown, who had lately been slain in a skirmish by the natives; and he thereby left the kingdom of England open to the attempts of his provoked and ambitious enemy. Henry, embarking at Nantz with a retinue of sixty persons, among whom were the archbishop of Canterbury and the young earl of Arundel, nephew to that prelate, landed at Ravenspur, in Yorkshire; and was immediately joined by the earls of Northumberland and Westmoreland, two of the most potent barons in England. He here took a solemn oath, that he had no other purpose hi this invasion than to recover the duchy of Lancaster, unjustly detained from him; and he invited all his friends in England, and all lovers of their country, to second him in this reasonable and moderate pretension. Every place was in commotion: the malecontents in all quarters flew to arms: London discovered the strongest symptoms of its disposition to mutiny and rebellion: and Henry’s army, increasing on every day’s march, soon amounted to the number of sixty thousand combatants.

While the people were feeling this way, Richard made the reckless decision to head to Ireland to avenge the death of his cousin, Roger, the earl of Marche, who was the likely heir to the throne and had recently been killed in a skirmish with the locals. This left the kingdom of England vulnerable to the maneuvers of his angry and ambitious enemy. Henry set sail from Nantz with a group of sixty people, including the archbishop of Canterbury and the young earl of Arundel, who was the archbishop's nephew. They landed at Ravenspur in Yorkshire and were quickly joined by the earls of Northumberland and Westmoreland, two of the most powerful barons in England. Here, he took a formal oath, stating that his only reason for this invasion was to reclaim the duchy of Lancaster, which he believed had been unjustly taken from him. He urged all his friends in England and anyone who loved their country to support him in this fair and reasonable claim. Chaos erupted everywhere: discontented individuals from all around took up arms; London showed clear signs of wanting to revolt; and Henry's army, growing with each day of marching, soon reached sixty thousand soldiers.

The duke of York was left guardian of the realm; a place to which his birth entitled him, but which both his slender abilities, and his natural connections with the duke of Lancaster, rendered him utterly incapable of filling in such a dangerous emergency. Such of the chief nobility as were attached to the crown, and could either have seconded the guardian’s good intentions, or have overawed his infidelity, had attended the king into Ireland; and the efforts of Richard’s friends were every where more feeble than those of his enemies. The duke of York, however, appointed the rendezvous of his forces at St. Albans, and soon assembled an army of forty thousand men; but found them entirely destitute of zeal and attachment to the royal cause, and more inclined to join the party of the rebels. He hearkened therefore very readily to a message from Henry, who entreated him not to oppose a loyal and humble supplicant in the recovery of his legal patrimony; and the guardian even declared publicly that he would second his nephew in so reasonable a request. His army embraced with acclamations the same measures; and the duke of Lancaster, reenforced by them, was now entirely master of the kingdom. He hastened to Bristol, into which some of the king’s ministers had thrown themselves; and soon obliging that place to surrender, he yielded to the popular wishes, and without giving them a trial, ordered the earl of Wiltshire, Sir John Bussy, and Sir Henry Green, whom he there took prisoners, to be led to immediate execution.

The Duke of York was appointed guardian of the realm; a position he was entitled to by birth, but one that his limited abilities and his ties to the Duke of Lancaster made him completely unfit for during such a critical time. Most of the leading nobles loyal to the crown, who could have either supported the guardian’s good intentions or kept his betrayal in check, had gone with the king to Ireland. Meanwhile, Richard's supporters were much weaker than his enemies. However, the Duke of York called for his forces to gather at St. Albans and quickly assembled an army of forty thousand men; yet, he found them completely lacking in enthusiasm and loyalty to the royal cause, and more inclined to join the rebels. He readily responded to a message from Henry, who pleaded with him not to oppose a loyal and humble supplicant seeking to reclaim his rightful inheritance. The guardian even publicly stated that he would support his nephew’s reasonable request. His army cheered the same plan; and the Duke of Lancaster, reinforced by them, was now in complete control of the kingdom. He rushed to Bristol, where some of the king’s ministers had taken refuge, and soon forced that location to surrender. Yielding to popular demand, he ordered the immediate execution of the Earl of Wiltshire, Sir John Bussy, and Sir Henry Green, whom he had captured, without giving them a trial.

The king, receiving intelligence of this invasion and insurrection, hastened over from Ireland, and landed in Milford Haven with a body of twenty thousand men: but even this army, so much inferior to the enemy, was either overawed oy the general combination of the kingdom, or seized with the same spirit of disaffection; and they gradually deserted him, till he found that he had not above six thousand men who followed his standard. It appeared, therefore, necessary to retire secretly from this small body, which served only to expose him to danger; and he fled to the Isle of Anglesea, where he purposed to embark either for Ireland or France, and there await the favorable opportunities which the return of his subjects to a sense of duty, or their future discontents against the duke of Lancaster, would probably afford him. Henry, sensible of the danger, sent to him the earl of Northumberland, with the strongest professions of loyalty and submission; and that nobleman, by treachery and false oaths, made himself master of the king’s person, and carried him to his enemy at Flint Castle. Richard was conducted to London by the duke of Lancaster, who was there received with the acclamations of the mutinous populace. It is pretended that the recorder met him on the road, and in the name of the city entreated him, for the public safety, to put Richard to death, with all his adherents who were prisoners; but the duke prudently determined to make many others participate in his guilt, before he would proceed to these extremities. For this purpose he issued writs of election in the king’s name, and appointed the immediate meeting of a parliament at Westminster.

The king, learning about the invasion and uprising, hurried over from Ireland and landed in Milford Haven with an army of twenty thousand men. However, even this force, significantly outnumbered by the enemy, was overwhelmed by the widespread discontent in the kingdom or caught up in the same spirit of rebellion; they gradually abandoned him until he found himself with only about six thousand loyal followers. It became clear that he needed to quietly retreat from this small group, which only exposed him to danger, and he fled to the Isle of Anglesea, intending to set sail for either Ireland or France and wait for a chance when his subjects would return to loyalty or when they would grow dissatisfied with the duke of Lancaster. Aware of the threat, Henry sent the earl of Northumberland to him, making strong vows of loyalty and submission. This nobleman, through deceit and false oaths, captured the king and took him to his enemy at Flint Castle. Richard was then taken to London by the duke of Lancaster, who was welcomed by the cheering crowd of rebellious citizens. It’s said that the city recorder met him on the road and, on behalf of the city, urged him to execute Richard and all the prisoners loyal to him for the sake of public safety. The duke, however, wisely decided to involve many others in his wrongdoing before taking such drastic measures. To this end, he issued election writs in the king’s name and called for an immediate parliament meeting at Westminster.

Such of the peers as were most devoted to the king, were either fled or imprisoned; and no opponents, even among the barons, dared to appear against Henry, amidst that scene of outrage and violence which commonly attends revolutions, especially in England during those turbulent ages, It is also easy to imagine, that a house of commons, elected during this universal ferment, and this triumph of the Lancastrian party, would be extremely attached to that cause, and ready to second every suggestion of their leaders. That order, being an yet of too little weight to stem the torrent, was always carried along with it, and served only to increase the violence which the public interest required it should endeavor to control. The duke of Lancaster, therefore, sensible that he should be entirely master, began to carry his views to the crown itself; and he deliberated with his partisans concerning the most proper means of effecting his daring purpose. He first extorted a resignation from Richard;[*] but as he knew that this deed would plainly appear the result of force and fear, he also purposed, notwithstanding the danger of the precedent to himself and his posterity, to have him solemnly deposed in parliament for his pretended tyranny and misconduct. A charge, consisting of thirty-three articles, was accordingly drawn up against him, and presented to that assembly.[**]

Many of the nobles who were most loyal to the king had either fled or been imprisoned; and no opponents, even among the barons, dared to stand against Henry during that period of chaos and violence that typically comes with revolutions, especially in England during those turbulent times. It's also easy to picture a House of Commons elected amidst this widespread unrest and the victory of the Lancastrian party, being extremely loyal to that cause and eager to support every suggestion from their leaders. That order, still too weak to resist the tide, was constantly swept along with it and only served to heighten the violence that the public good demanded it should try to control. The Duke of Lancaster, realizing he could become the sole ruler, started to set his sights on the crown itself; he discussed with his allies the best ways to achieve his bold goal. He first forced a resignation from Richard; but since he knew that this act would clearly seem to be the result of force and fear, he also planned, despite the risks that could come for himself and his descendants, to have Richard formally deposed in Parliament for his supposed tyranny and misconduct. A list of thirty-three charges was prepared against Richard and presented to that assembly.

If we examine these articles, which are expressed with extreme acrimony against Richard, we shall find that, except some rash speeches, which are imputed to him,[***] and of whose reality, as they are said to have passed in private conversation, we may reasonably entertain some doubt,—the chief amount of the charge is contained in his violent conduct during the two last years of his reign, and naturally divides itself into two principal heads. The first and most considerable is the revenge which he took on the princes and great barons who had formerly usurped, and still persevered in controlling and threatening his authority; the second is the violation of the laws and general privileges of his people. But the former, however irregular in many of its circumstances, was fully supported by authority of parliament, and was but a copy of the violence which the princes and barons themselves, during their former triumph, had exercised against him and his party. The detention of Lancaster’s estate was, properly speaking a revocation, by parliamentary authority, of a grace which the King himself had formerly granted him. The murder of Glocester (for the secret execution, however merited, of that prince certainly deserves this appellation) was a private deed formed not any precedent, and implied not any usurped or arbitrary power of the crown which could justly give umbrage to the people. It really proceeded from a defect of power in the king, rather than from his ambition; and proves that, instead of being dangerous to the constitution, he possessed not even the authority necessary for the execution of the laws.

If we look at these articles that show a lot of bitterness against Richard, we’ll see that, aside from some impulsive comments attributed to him, which we can reasonably question since they supposedly happened in private conversations, the main part of the accusation centers on his aggressive behavior during the last two years of his reign, which breaks down into two main points. The first and most significant is the revenge he took on the princes and powerful barons who had previously seized control and continued to undermine and threaten his power; the second is his disregard for the laws and general rights of his people. However, the former, despite its many irregularities, was fully supported by parliamentary authority and mirrored the violence that the princes and barons had used against him and his supporters during their earlier successes. The confiscation of Lancaster’s estate was essentially a reversal, by parliamentary authority, of a privilege that the King himself had previously granted him. The murder of Glocester (since the secret execution—though warranted—of that prince certainly deserves to be called this) was a private act that set no precedent and didn’t imply any usurped or arbitrary power of the crown that could justifiably upset the people. It actually stemmed from a lack of power in the king, rather than his ambition, and shows that instead of being a threat to the constitution, he didn’t even have the authority needed to enforce the laws.

     * Knyghton, p. 2744. Otterborne, p. 212.

     ** Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 1008, from the records,
     Knyghton, p, 2746. Otterborne, p. 214.

     *** Art 16, 26.
     * Knyghton, p. 2744. Otterborne, p. 212.

     ** Tyrrel, vol. iii. part ii. p. 1008, from the records,
     Knyghton, p. 2746. Otterborne, p. 214.

     *** Art 16, 26.

Concerning the second head of accusation, as it mostly consists of general facts, was framed by Richard’s inveterate enemies, and was never allowed to be answered by him or his friends, it is more difficult to form a judgment. The greatest part of these grievances imputed to Richard, seems to be the exertion of arbitrary prerogatives; such as the dispensing power,[*] levying purveyance,[**] employing the mareschal’s court,[***] extorting loans,[****] granting protections from lawsuits;[*****] prerogatives, which, though often complained of, had often been exercised by his predecessors, and still continued to be so by his successors. But whether his irregular acts of this kind were more frequent, and injudicious and violent than usual, or were only laid hold of and exaggerated by the factions to which the weakness of his reign had given birth, we are not able at this distance to determine with certainty. There is, however, one circumstance in which his conduct is visibly different from that of his grandfather: he is not accused of having imposed one arbitrary tax, without consent of parliament, during his whole reign;[******] scarcely a year passed during the reign of Edward, which was free from complaints with regard to this dangerous exertion of authority. But, perhaps, the ascendant which Edward had acquired over the people, together with his great prudence, enabled him to make a use very advantageous to his subjects of this and other arbitrary prerogatives, and rendered them a smaller grievance in his hands, than a less absolute authority in those of his grand son.

Regarding the second accusation, since it mostly involves general facts framed by Richard’s determined enemies and was never allowed to be addressed by him or his supporters, it's harder to make a judgment. Most of these grievances against Richard seem to revolve around the use of arbitrary powers, like the ability to dispense authority,[*] impose purveyance,[**] utilize the marshal’s court,[***] demand loans,[****] and grant protections from lawsuits;[*****] powers that, although often criticized, had been frequently used by his predecessors and continued to be used by his successors. However, whether his irregular actions in this area were more common, unwise, and violent than usual, or simply seized upon and exaggerated by factions that emerged due to the weaknesses of his reign, we cannot definitively discern from our current perspective. One notable difference in his actions compared to his grandfather's is that he is not accused of imposing any arbitrary taxes without Parliament's consent throughout his entire reign;[******] it’s rare to find a year during Edward’s reign free from complaints regarding this risky use of authority. But perhaps the influence Edward had over the people, along with his considerable wisdom, allowed him to utilize this and other arbitrary powers in a way that was quite beneficial to his subjects, making them less of a grievance under his rule compared to his grandson’s less absolute authority.

     * Art 13,17,18.

     ** Art. 22.

     *** Art 27.

     **** Art, 14.

     ****** We learn from Cotton (p. 362) that the king, by his
     chancellor, told the commons, “that they were sunderly bound
     to him, and namely, in forbearing to charge them with dismes
     and fifteens, the which he meant no more to charge
     them in his own person,” These words “no more” allude to the
     practice of his predecessors; he had not himself imposed any
     arbitrary taxes: even the parliament, in the articles of his
     deposition, though they complain of heavy taxes, affirm not
     that they were imposed illegally or by arbitrary will.
     * Art 13,17,18.

     ** Art. 22.

     *** Art 27.

     **** Art, 14.

     ****** We learn from Cotton (p. 362) that the king, through his chancellor, told the commons, “that they were distinctly obligated to him, especially for not charging them with tithes and taxes, which he intended no more to levy himself.” These words “no more” refer to the practices of his predecessors; he had not imposed any arbitrary taxes himself: even the parliament, in the articles of his deposition, while they complain of heavy taxes, do not claim that these were imposed illegally or arbitrarily.

This is a point which it would be rash for us to decide positively on either side; but it is certain, that a charge drawn up by the duke of Lancaster, and assented to by a parliament, situated in those circumstances, forms no manner of presumption with regard to the unusual irregularity or violence of the king’s conduct in this particular.[*] 16

This is a point that it would be unwise for us to firmly decide on either way; but it's clear that a charge prepared by the Duke of Lancaster, and agreed upon by a parliament in those circumstances, doesn’t imply anything about the unusual irregularity or violence of the king's actions in this matter. [*] 16

     * See note P, at the end of the volume.
     * See note P, at the end of the volume.

When the charge against Richard was presented to the parliament, though it was liable, almost in every article, to objections, it was not canvassed, nor examined, nor disputed in either house, and seemed to be received with universal approbation. One man alone, the bishop of Carlisle, had the courage, amidst this general disloyalty and violence, to appear in defence of his unhappy master, and to plead his cause against all the power of the prevailing party. Though some topics employed by that virtuous prelate may seem to favor too much the doctrine of passive obedience, and to make too large a sacrifice of the rights of mankind, he was naturally pushed into that extreme by his abhorrence of the present licentious factions; and such intrepidity, as well as disinterestedness of behavior, proves that, whatever his speculative principles were his heart was elevated far above the meanness and abject submission of a slave. He represented to the parliament, that all the abuses of government which could justly be imputed to Richard, instead of amounting to tyranny, were merely the result of error, youth, or misguided counsel, and admitted of a remedy more easy and salutary than a total subversion of the constitution. That even had they been much more violent and dangerous than they really were, they had chiefly proceeded from former examples of resistance, which, making the prince sensible of his precarious situation, had obliged him to establish his throne by irregular and arbitrary expedients. That a rebellious disposition in subjects was the principal cause of tyranny in kings; laws could never secure the subject, which did not give security to the sovereign; and if the maxim of inviolable loyalty, which formed the basis of the English government, were once rejected, the privileges belonging to the several orders of the state, instead of being fortified by that licentiousness, would thereby lose the surest foundation of their force and stability. That the parliamentary deposition of Edward II., far from making a precedent which could control this maxim, was only an example of successful violence; and it was sufficiently to be lamented, that crimes were so often committed in the world, without establishing principles which might justify and authorize them.

When the charges against Richard were brought to parliament, even though there were almost endless objections to each point, they weren’t debated, examined, or contested in either house and seemed to be accepted with widespread approval. Only one person, the bishop of Carlisle, had the bravery, amidst this overall disloyalty and chaos, to defend his unfortunate king and argue his case against the dominant party. While some of the arguments made by that principled bishop might seem to overly support the idea of passive obedience and sacrifice too much of people’s rights, he was pushed to that extreme by his disdain for the current reckless factions. His bravery and selflessness show that, regardless of his theoretical beliefs, his heart was far above the pettiness and complete submission of a slave. He informed the parliament that all the government abuses that could fairly be blamed on Richard, rather than being seen as tyranny, were simply the result of mistakes, youth, or misguided advice, and could be remedied more easily and beneficially than by completely overturning the constitution. He argued that even if the abuses had been much worse and more dangerous than they actually were, they mainly stemmed from previous instances of resistance, which made the king aware of his unstable position and forced him to secure his rule through irregular and arbitrary means. He pointed out that a rebellious attitude from subjects was the main cause of tyranny in kings; laws could never protect subjects if they didn’t also protect the sovereign; and if the principle of unbreakable loyalty, which was fundamental to English government, were ever rejected, the rights belonging to the various classes of the state would lose the strongest foundation for their strength and stability instead of being strengthened by that recklessness. He contended that the parliamentary removal of Edward II., far from setting a precedent to challenge this principle, was merely an instance of successful violence; and it was truly regrettable that crimes are often committed in the world without establishing rules that might justify and legitimize them.

That even that precedent, false and dangerous as it was, could never warrant the present excesses; which were so much greater, and which would entail distraction and misery on the nation, to the latest posterity. That the succession, at least, of the crown, was then preserved inviolate: the lineal heir was placed on the throne; and the people had an opportunity, by their legal obedience to him, of making atonement for the violence which they had committed against his predecessor. That a descendant of Lionel, duke of Clarence, the elder brother of the late duke of Lancaster, had been declared in parliament successor to the crown; he had left posterity; and their title, however it might be overpowered by present force and faction, could never be obliterated from the minds of the people. That if the turbulent disposition alone of the nation had overturned the well-established throne of so good a prince as Richard, what bloody commotions must ensue, when the same cause was united to the motive of restoring the legal and undoubted heir to his authority? That the new government intended to be established, would stand on no principle; and would scarcely retain any pretence by which it could challenge the obedience of men of sense and virtue. That the claim of lineal descent was so gross, as scarcely to deceive the most ignorant of the populace: conquest could never be pleaded by a rebel against his sovereign; the consent of the people had no authority in a monarchy not derived from consent, but established by hereditary right; and however the nation might be justified in deposing the misguided Richard, it could never have any reason for setting aside his lawful heir and successor, who was plainly innocent. And that the duke of Lancaster would give them but a bad specimen of the legal moderation which might be expected from his future government, if he added,[**typo?] to the crime of his past rebellion, the guilt of excluding the family, which, both by right of blood and by declaration of parliament, would, in case of Richard’s demise or voluntary resignation, have been received as the undoubted heirs of the monarchy.[*]

That even that precedent, false and dangerous as it was, could never justify the current excesses; which were much greater and would bring distraction and misery to the nation, even for future generations. That at least the succession of the crown was then preserved intact: the rightful heir was placed on the throne; and the people had a chance, through their lawful obedience to him, to make amends for the violence they had committed against his predecessor. That a descendant of Lionel, Duke of Clarence, the older brother of the late Duke of Lancaster, had been declared in Parliament as the successor to the crown; he had left heirs; and their claim, no matter how it might be overshadowed by present force and faction, could never be erased from the minds of the people. That if the restless nature of the nation alone had toppled the well-established throne of such a good prince as Richard, what bloody chaos would ensue when the same cause was combined with the motive of reinstating the legal and rightful heir to his power? That the new government intended to be established would stand on no solid principle; and would hardly maintain any pretense that could demand the obedience of sensible and virtuous individuals. That the claim of direct descent was so blatant that it could hardly deceive the most ignorant of the populace: conquest could never be claimed by a rebel against their sovereign; the consent of the people had no authority in a monarchy that wasn’t based on consent, but established by hereditary right; and however the nation might have had justification for ousting the misguided Richard, it could never have any reason for dismissing his lawful heir and successor, who was clearly innocent. And that the Duke of Lancaster would provide them with only a poor example of the legal moderation that might be expected from his future government, if he added to the crime of his past rebellion the guilt of excluding the family, which, by both the right of blood and the declaration of Parliament, would have been accepted as the unquestionable heirs of the monarchy in the event of Richard’s death or voluntary resignation.

     * Sir John Heywarde, p. 101.
     * Sir John Heywarde, p. 101.

All the circumstances of this event, compared to those which attended the late revolution in 1688, show the difference between a great and civilized nation, deliberately vindicating its established privileges, and a turbulent and barbarous aristocracy, plunging headlong from the extremes of one faction into those of another. This noble freedom of the bishop of Carlisle, instead of being applauded, was not so much as tolerated: he was immediately arrested by order of the duke of Lancaster, and sent a prisoner to the abbey of St. Albans. No further debate was attempted: thirty-three long articles of charge were, in one meeting, voted against Richard; and voted unanimously by the same peers and prelates who, a little before, had voluntarily and unanimously authorized those very acts of violence of which they now complained. That prince was deposed by the suffrages of both houses; and the throne being now vacant, the duke of Lancaster stepped forth, and having crossed himself on the forehead and on the breast, and called upon the name of Christ,[*] he pronounced these words, which we shall give in the original language, because of their singularity.

All the circumstances of this event, compared to those surrounding the late revolution in 1688, highlight the difference between a great and civilized nation confidently standing up for its established rights, and a chaotic and uncivilized aristocracy, blindly jumping from the extremes of one faction to those of another. The bishop of Carlisle's noble freedom, instead of being celebrated, was hardly even tolerated: he was immediately arrested by the duke of Lancaster's orders and sent as a prisoner to the abbey of St. Albans. No further discussion was attempted: thirty-three lengthy articles of accusation were voted against Richard in one meeting, and all were unanimously supported by the same peers and church leaders who, just a short time earlier, had voluntarily and unanimously approved those very acts of violence they were now complaining about. That prince was deposed by the votes of both houses; and with the throne now empty, the duke of Lancaster stepped forward, crossed himself on the forehead and chest, and called on the name of Christ,[*] pronouncing these words, which we will present in the original language, due to their uniqueness.

“In the name of Fadher, Son, and Holy Ghost, I Henry of Lancaster, challenge this rewme of Ynglande, and the croun with all the membres, and the appurtenances; als I that am descendit by right line of the blode, coming fro the gude king Henry therde, and throge that right that God of his grace hath sent me, with helpe of kyn, and of my frendes to recover it; the which rewme was in poynt to be ondone by defaut of governance, and ondoying of the gude lawes.”[**]

“In the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, I, Henry of Lancaster, challenge this realm of England and the crown along with all its members and appendages; as I am descended by direct lineage from the bloodline of the good King Henry III, and through the right that God, in His grace, has granted me, with the help of my kin and friends, to reclaim it; for this realm was on the verge of being undone due to a lack of governance and the undoing of the good laws.”

In order to understand this speech, it must be observed, that there was a silly story, received among some of the lowest vulgar, that Edmond, earl of Lancaster, son of Henry III., was really the elder brother of Edward I.; but that, by reason of some deformity in his person, he had been postponed in the succession, and his younger brother imposed on the nation in his stead. As the present duke of Lancaster inherited from Edmond by his mother, this genealogy made him the true heir of the monarchy, and it is therefore insinuated in Henry’s speech: but the absurdity was too gross to be openly avowed either by him or by the parliament. The case is the same with regard to his right of conquest: he was a subject who rebelled against his sovereign: he entered the kingdom with a retinue of no more than sixty persons.

To understand this speech, it's important to note that there was a silly rumor circulating among some of the lower classes that Edmond, the earl of Lancaster and son of Henry III, was actually the older brother of Edward I. However, due to some physical deformity, he was skipped over in the line of succession, with his younger brother taking his place. Since the current duke of Lancaster inherited from Edmond through his mother, this lineage made him the legitimate heir to the throne, which is subtly suggested in Henry’s speech. However, this idea was too ridiculous to be openly acknowledged by him or by parliament. The same applies to his claim of rightful conquest: he was a subject who rebelled against his king and entered the kingdom with only sixty followers.

     * Cotton, p. 389.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2757. could not therefore be the conqueror
     of England; and this right is accordingly insinuated, not
     avowed. Still there is a third claim, derived from his
     merits in saving the nation from tyranny and oppression; and
     this claim is also insinuated: but as it seemed, by its
     nature, better calculated as a reason for his being elected
     king by a free choice, than for giving him an immediate
     right of possession, he durst not speak openly even on this
     head; and to obviate any notion of election, he challenges
     the crown as his due, either by acquisition or inheritance.
     The whole forms such a piece of jargon and nonsense, as is
     almost without example: no objection, however, was made to
     it in parliament: the unanimous voice of lords and commons
     placed Henry on the throne: he became king, nobody could
     tell how or wherefore: the title of the house of Marche,
     formerly recognized by parliament, was neither invalidated
     nor repealed, but passed over in total silence: and as a
     concern for the liberties of the people seems to have had no
     hand in this revolution, their right to dispose of the
     government, as well as all their other privileges, was left
     precisely on the same footing as before. But Henry having,
     when he claimed the crown, dropped some obscure hint
     concerning conquest, which, it was thought, might endanger
     these privileges, he soon after made a public declaration,
     that he did not thereby intend to deprive any other of his
     franchises or liberties; which was the only circumstances
     where we shall find meaning or common sense in all these
     transactions.
     * Cotton, p. 389.

     ** Knyghton, p. 2757. could not therefore be the conqueror
     of England; and this right is suggested, not stated outright. Still, there is a third claim, based on his merits in saving the nation from tyranny and oppression; and this claim is also implied: but it seemed, by its nature, more suited as a reason for him being elected king by a free choice, rather than giving him an immediate right to the throne, so he didn’t dare express this openly even on this matter; to avoid any idea of election, he lays claim to the crown as his right, either through acquisition or inheritance. The entire argument is such a mix of confusion and nonsense that it’s almost unparalleled: no objections were raised in parliament, however: the unanimous decision of lords and commons placed Henry on the throne: he became king, and no one could explain how or why: the title of the house of Marche, which had previously been recognized by parliament, was neither invalidated nor repealed, but was completely ignored: and since concern for the people's liberties seemed to have played no role in this change, their right to govern themselves, as well as all their other privileges, remained exactly as before. But Henry, when he claimed the crown, mentioned something vague about conquest, which was thought might threaten these privileges; he soon afterward made a public statement that he did not intend to take away anyone else's rights or freedoms; which is the only point where we find any meaning or common sense in all these dealings.

The subsequent events discover the same headlong violence of conduct, and the same rude notions of civil government. The deposition of Richard dissolved the parliament: it was necessary to summon a new one: and Henry, in six days after, called together, without any new election, the same members; and this assembly he denominated a new parliament. They were employed in the usual task of reversing every deed of the opposite party. All the acts o£ the last parliament of Richard, which had been confirmed by their oaths, and by a papal bull, were abrogated: all the acts which had passed in the parliament where Glocester prevailed: which had also been confirmed by their oaths, but which had been abrogated by Richard, were anew established:[**] the answers of Tresifian and the other judges, which a parliament had annulled, but which a new parliament and new judges had approved, here received a second condemnation.

The events that followed revealed the same reckless behavior and crude ideas about government. Richard's deposition led to the dissolution of parliament, making it necessary to call a new one. Just six days later, Henry gathered the same members without any new elections and called this assembly a new parliament. They focused on the usual task of overturning all decisions made by the opposing side. All the acts from Richard's last parliament, which had been confirmed by their oaths and a papal bull, were revoked. All the acts that were passed in the parliament where Glocester had been in power—which had also been confirmed by their oaths but were overturned by Richard—were reestablished. The responses from Tresifian and the other judges, which had been annulled by one parliament but approved by a new parliament and new judges, were again condemned here.

     * Knyghton, p. 2759. Otterborne, p. 220.

     ** Cotton, p. 390.
     * Knyghton, p. 2759. Otterborne, p. 220.

     ** Cotton, p. 390.

The peers who had accused Glocester, Arundel, and Warwick, and who had received higher titles for that piece of service, were all of them degraded from their new dignities; even the practice of prosecuting appeals in parliament, which bore the air of a violent confederacy against an individual, rather than of a legal indictment, was wholly abolished, and trials were restored to the course of common law.* The natural effect of this conduct was, to render the people giddy with such rapid and perpetual changes, and to make them lose all notions of right and wrong in the measures of government.

The peers who had accused Glocester, Arundel, and Warwick, and who had received higher titles for that service, were all stripped of their new honors; even the practice of bringing appeals before parliament, which looked more like a harsh conspiracy against an individual than a legal charge, was completely abolished, and trials were returned to the normal process of common law.* The natural result of this behavior was to bewilder the people with such swift and constant changes, making them lose all sense of right and wrong regarding government actions.

The earl of Northumberland made a motion, in the house of peers, with regard to the unhappy prince whom they had deposed. He asked them, what advice they would give the king for the future treatment of him; since Henry was resolved to spare his life. They unanimously replied, that he should be imprisoned under a secure guard, in some secret place, and should be deprived of all commerce with any of his friends or partisans. It was easy to foresee, that he would not long remain alive in the hands of such barbarous and sanguinary enemies. Historians differ with regard to the manner in which he was murdered. It was long the prevailing opinion, that Sir Piers Exton, and others of his guards, fell upon him in the Castle of Pomfret, where he was confined, and despatched him with their halberts. But it is more probable that he was starved to death in prison; and after all sustenance was denied him, he prolonged his unhappy life, it is said, for a fortnight, before he reached the end of his miseries. This account is more consistent with the story, that his body was exposed in public, and that no marks of violence were observed upon it. He died in the thirty-fourth year of his age, and the twenty-third of his reign. He left no posterity, either legitimate or illegitimate.

The Earl of Northumberland brought up a proposal in the House of Peers regarding the unfortunate prince they had deposed. He asked what advice they would give the king about how to handle him in the future, since Henry was determined to spare his life. They all agreed that he should be placed under strict guard in a secret location and cut off from any contact with his friends or supporters. It was easy to predict that he wouldn’t survive long in the hands of such cruel and bloodthirsty enemies. Historians disagree on how he was murdered. For a long time, it was widely believed that Sir Piers Exton and others from his guard attacked him in the Castle of Pomfret, where he was held captive, and killed him with their halberds. However, it’s more likely that he was starved to death in prison; it’s said that after all food was taken away from him, he managed to prolong his miserable life for about two weeks before he finally succumbed. This account aligns better with the story that his body was displayed publicly and showed no signs of violence. He died at the age of thirty-four, during the twenty-third year of his reign. He left no descendants, legitimate or illegitimate.

All the writers who have transmitted to us the history of Richard, lived during the reigns of the Lancastrian princes, and candor requires, that we should not give entire credit to the reproaches which they have thrown upon his memory. But after making all proper allowances, he still appears to have been a weak prince, and unfit for government, less for want of natural parts and capacity, than of solid judgment and a good education. He was violent in his temper, profuse in his expenses, fond of idle show and magnificence, devoted to favorites, and addicted to pleasure; passions, all of them the most inconsistent with a prudent economy, and consequently dangerous in a limited and mixed government. Had he possessed the talents of gaining, and still more those of overawing, his great barons, he might have escaped all the misfortunes of his reign, and been allowed to carry much further his oppressions over the people, if he really was guilty of any, without their daring to rebel, or even to murmur against him. But when the grandees were tempted, by his want of prudence and of vigor, to resist his authority, and execute the most violent enterprises upon him, he was naturally led to seek an opportunity of retaliation: justice was neglected; the lives of the chief nobility were sacrificed; and all these enormities seem to have proceeded less from a settled design of establishing arbitrary power, than from the insolence of victory, and the necessities of the king’s situation. The manners indeed of the age were the chief source of such violence: laws, which were feebly executed in peaceable times, lost all their authority during public convulsions: both parties were alike guilty: or, if any difference may be remarked between them, we shall find, that the authority of the crown, being more legal, was commonly carried, when it prevailed, to less desperate extremities, than was that of the aristocracy.

All the writers who recorded the history of Richard lived during the reigns of the Lancastrian princes, and it's only fair that we don’t fully trust the criticisms they directed at his memory. However, even when we take everything into account, he still seems to have been a weak king, unfit for governance, not because he lacked natural talent or ability, but due to his poor judgment and lack of a solid education. He was hot-tempered, overspent, loved lavish displays and grandeur, favored his friends, and enjoyed pleasure; all these traits are highly inconsistent with sound financial management and therefore pose risks in a limited and mixed government. If he had the skills to win over, and especially intimidate, his powerful barons, he might have avoided all the troubles of his reign and could have been able to impose his will on the people much more effectively, if he truly was oppressive, without them daring to rebel or even complain. But when the nobles were led, by his lack of prudence and strength, to challenge his authority and embark on violent actions against him, he naturally sought revenge: justice was overlooked; the lives of the leading nobles were lost; and all these atrocities seem to have arisen more from the arrogance of victory and the king’s dire circumstances than from a fixed plan to establish absolute power. The customs of the time were indeed the main cause of such violence: laws, which were poorly enforced in peaceful times, lost all their power during public upheaval: both sides were culpable; or if any difference can be noted between them, we’d find that the authority of the crown, being more legitimate, often acted, when it did prevail, with less extreme measures than the aristocracy did.

On comparing the conduct and events of this reign with those of the preceding, we shall find equal reason to admire Edward and to blame Richard; but the circumstance of opposition, surely, will not lie in the strict regard paid by the former to national privileges, and the neglect of them by the latter. On the contrary, the prince of small abilities, as he felt his want of power, seems to have been more moderate in this respect than the other. Every parliament assembled during the reign of Edward, remonstrates against the exertion of some arbitrary prerogative or other: we hear not any complaints of that kind during the reign of Richard, till the assembling of his last parliament, which was summoned by his inveterate enemies, which dethroned him, which framed their complaints during the time of the most furious convultions, and whose testimony must therefore have, on that account, much less authority with every equitable judge.[*] Both these princes experienced the encroachments of the great upon their authority. Edward, reduced to necessities, was obliged to make an express bargain with his parliament and to sell some of his prerogatives for present supply; but as they were acquainted with his genius and capacity, they ventured not to demand any exorbitant concessions, or such as were incompatible with regal and sovereign power: the weakness of Richard tempted the parliament to extort a commission, which, in a manner, dethroned the prince, and transferred the sceptre into the hands of the nobility. The events of these encroachments were also suitable to the character of each. Edward had no sooner gotten the supply, than he departed from the engagements which had induced the parliament to grant it; he openly told his people, that he had but dissembled with them when he seemed to make them these concessions; and he resumed and retained all his prerogatives. But Richard, because he was detected in consulting and deliberating with the judges on the lawfulness of restoring the constitution, found his barons immediately in arms against him; was deprived of his liberty; saw his favorites, his ministers, his tutor, butchered before his face, or banished and attainted; and was obliged to give way to all this violence. There cannot be a more remarkable contrast between the fortunes of two princes: it were happy for society, did this contrast always depend on the justice or injustice of the measures which men embrace; and not rather on the different degrees of prudence and vigor with which those measures are supported.

When we compare the actions and events of this reign to the previous one, we have equal reasons to admire Edward and to criticize Richard. However, the difference lies in how the former respected national privileges while the latter neglected them. In fact, the less capable prince, aware of his limitations, appeared to be more reasonable in this regard than the other. Every parliament that met during Edward's reign protested against the use of arbitrary powers, whereas we don’t hear any complaints during Richard's reign until his final parliament, summoned by his determined enemies, which led to his downfall. Their complaints were formulated during a time of intense turmoil, and therefore their testimony carries much less weight with any fair-minded judge. Both princes faced encroachments on their authority by the powerful. Edward, facing difficulties, had to explicitly negotiate with his parliament and surrender some of his powers for immediate support. But knowing his character and abilities, they didn’t demand excessive concessions that would undermine royal power. In contrast, Richard's weakness encouraged the parliament to force a commission upon him that effectively dethroned him and handed power over to the nobility. The outcomes of these power grabs were also consistent with their natures. As soon as Edward received his funds, he broke the commitments that led parliament to grant him that support; he openly admitted to his people that he had only pretended to make those concessions and reclaimed all his powers. On the other hand, Richard, discovered discussing with judges about the legality of restoring the constitution, found his barons rising up against him. He lost his freedom, witnessed his favorites, ministers, and tutor killed in front of him or exiled and condemned, and was forced to submit to this brutality. There is no clearer contrast between the fates of two princes: it would be a blessing for society if such contrasts always stemmed from the righteousness or wrongness of their actions, rather than the differing degrees of wisdom and strength behind those actions.

There was a sensible decay of ecclesiastical authority during this period. The disgust which the laity had received from the numerous usurpations both of the court of Rome and of their own clergy, had very much weaned the kingdom from superstition; and strong symptoms appeared, from time to time, of a general desire to shake off the bondage of the Romish church. In the committee of eighteen, to whom Richard’s last parliament delegated their whole power, there is not the name of one ecclesiastic to be found; a neglect which is almost without example, while the Catholic religion subsisted in England.[**] 17

There was a noticeable decline in church authority during this time. The disgust that the general public felt from the many overreaches of both the Roman court and their own clergy had largely distanced the kingdom from superstition. There were also clear signs emerging from time to time of a collective wish to break free from the control of the Catholic Church. In the committee of eighteen, to whom Richard’s last parliament entrusted all their power, not a single ecclesiastic name can be found; a lack that is almost unprecedented while the Catholic religion existed in England. [**] 17

     * Peruse, in this view, the Abridgment of the Records, by
     Sir Robert Cotton, during these two reigns.

     ** See note Q, at the end of the volume.
     * Take a look at the Abridgment of the Records by Sir Robert Cotton, covering these two reigns.

     ** See note Q, at the end of the volume.

The aversion entertained against the established church soon found principles, and tenets, and reasonings, by which it could justify and support itself. John Wickliffe, a secular priest, educated at Oxford, began in the latter end of Edward III. to spread the doctrine of reformation by his discourses, sermons, and writings; and he made many disciples among men of all ranks and stations. He seems to have been a man of parts and learning; and has the honor of being the first person in Europe that publicly called in question those principles which had universally passed for certain and undisputed during so many ages. Wickliffe himself, as well as his disciples, who received the name of Wickliffites, or Lollards, was distinguished by a great austerity of life and manners; a circumstance common to almost all those who dogmatize in any new way; both because men who draw to them the attention of the public, and expose themselves to the odium of great multitudes, are obliged to be very guarded in their conduct, and because few who have a strong propensity to pleasure or business, will enter upon so difficult and laborious an undertaking. The doctrines of Wickliffe being derived from his search into the Scriptures and into ecclesiastical antiquity, were nearly the same with those which were propagated by the reformers in the sixteenth century: he only carried some of them farther than was done by the more sober part of these reformers. He denied the doctrine of the real presence, the supremacy of the church of Rome, the merit of monastic vows: he maintained, that the Scriptures were the sole rule of faith; that the church was dependent on the state, and should be reformed by it; that the clergy ought to possess no estates; that the begging friars were a nuisance, and ought not to be supported;[*] that the numerous ceremonies of the church were hurtful to true piety: he asserted that oaths were unlawful, that dominion was founded in grace, that everything was subject to fate and destiny, and that all men were preordained either to eternal salvation or reprobation,[**] From the whole of his doctrines, Wickliffe appears to have been strongly tinctured with enthusiasm, and to have been thereby the better qualified to oppose a church whose chief characteristic is superstition.

The disdain for the established church quickly developed into principles, beliefs, and arguments that justified and supported it. John Wycliffe, a secular priest educated at Oxford, began in the late years of Edward III to spread the doctrine of reform through his talks, sermons, and writings; he gained many followers from all walks of life. He seems to have been knowledgeable and learned, earning the distinction of being the first person in Europe to publicly challenge principles that had been accepted as certain and undisputed for centuries. Wycliffe himself, along with his followers known as Wycliffites or Lollards, was known for a strict lifestyle and demeanor; this was similar to most who advocate new ideas because those who draw public attention and risk the contempt of many must be cautious in their behavior, and few with a strong taste for pleasure or business would take on such a challenging and demanding task. Wycliffe's beliefs, which stemmed from his study of the Scriptures and church history, were similar to those later promoted by the reformers in the sixteenth century: he simply took some of those ideas further than the more cautious reformers. He rejected the doctrine of the real presence, the authority of the Church of Rome, and the value of monastic vows; he asserted that the Scriptures were the sole authority for faith, that the church should be subject to the state and reformed by it, that clergy should own no property, that begging friars were a burden and should not be supported, and that the many rituals of the church were detrimental to true piety. He claimed that oaths were wrong, that governance was based on grace, that everything was subject to fate, and that all people were predetermined for either eternal salvation or condemnation. From his teachings, Wycliffe seems to have been significantly influenced by enthusiasm, which likely better equipped him to oppose a church defined by superstition.

     * Walsing. p. 191, 208, 283, 284. Spel. Concil. vol. ii. p.
     680.

     ** Harpsfield, p. 668, 673, 674. Waldens. lib. iii. art. i.
     cap. 8.
     * Walsing. p. 191, 208, 283, 284. Spel. Concil. vol. ii. p.
     680.

     ** Harpsfield, p. 668, 673, 674. Waldens. lib. iii. art. i.
     cap. 8.

The propagation of these principles gave great alarm to the clergy; and a bull was issued by Pope Gregory XI. for taking Wickliffe into custody, and examining into the scope of his opinions.[*] Courteney, bishop of London, cited him before his tribunal; but the reformer had now acquired powerful protectors, who screened him from the ecclesiastical jurisdiction. The duke of Lancaster, who then governed the kingdom, encouraged the principles of Wickliffe; and he made no scruple, as well as Lord Piercy, the mareschal, to appear openly in court with him, in order to give him countenance upon his trial: he even insisted, that Wickliffe should sit in the bishop’s presence while his principles were examined: Courteney exclaimed against the insult: the Londoners, thinking their prelate affronted, attacked the duke and mareschal, who escaped from their hands with some difficulty.[**] And the populace, soon after, broke into the houses of both these noblemen, threatened their persons, and plundered their goods. The bishop of London had the merit of appeasing their fury and resentment.

The spread of these ideas alarmed the clergy, leading Pope Gregory XI to issue a decree to take Wickliffe into custody and investigate his views.[*] Courteney, the bishop of London, summoned him before his court; however, the reformer had gained powerful supporters who protected him from church jurisdiction. The duke of Lancaster, who was in charge of the kingdom at that time, supported Wickliffe's ideas and, along with Lord Piercy, the marshal, openly appeared in court with him to support him during his trial. He even insisted that Wickliffe sit in the bishop's presence while his beliefs were being examined. Courteney protested against this insult, and the people of London, feeling their bishop had been slighted, attacked the duke and the marshal, who managed to escape with some difficulty.[**] Shortly after, the crowd broke into the homes of both noblemen, threatened them, and looted their property. The bishop of London played a key role in calming their anger and resentment.

The duke of Lancaster, however, still continued his protection to Wickliffe, during the minority of Richard; and the principles of that reformer had so far propagated themselves, that when the pope sent to Oxford a new bull against these doctrines, the university deliberated for some time whether they should receive the bull; and they never took any vigorous measures in consequence of the papal orders.[***] Even the populace of London were at length brought to entertain favorable sentiments of this reformer: when he was cited before a synod at Lambeth, they broke into the assembly, and so overawed the prelates, who found both the people and the court against them, that they dismissed him without any further censure.

The Duke of Lancaster continued to support Wickliffe during Richard's minority. The ideas of this reformer had spread so widely that when the pope sent a new bull against these teachings to Oxford, the university debated for a while on whether to accept it. They never took any strong actions based on the papal orders. Even the citizens of London eventually started to have positive views of this reformer. When he was summoned to a synod at Lambeth, they disrupted the meeting and intimidated the bishops, who realized that both the public and the court were against them, so they let him go without any further punishment.

     * Spel. Concil. vol. ii. p. 621. Walsing. p. 201, 202, 203.

     ** Harpsfield in Hist. Wickl. p. 683.

     *** Wood’s Ant. Oxon. lib. i. p. 191, etc. Walsing, p 201.
     * Spel. Concil. vol. ii. p. 621. Walsing. p. 201, 202, 203.

     ** Harpsfield in Hist. Wickl. p. 683.

     *** Wood's Ant. Oxon. lib. i. p. 191, etc. Walsing, p 201.

The clergy, we may well believe, were more wanting in power than in inclination to punish this new heresy which struck at all their credit, possessions, and authority. But there was hitherto no law in England by which the secular arm was authorized to support orthodoxy; and the ecclesiastics endeavored to supply the defect by an extraordinary and unwarrantable artifice. In the year 1381, there was an act passed, requiring sheriffs to apprehend the preachers of heresy and their abettors; but this statute had been surreptitiously obtained by the clergy, and had the formality of an enrolment without the consent of the commons. In the subsequent session, the lower house complained of the fraud; affirmed, that they had no intention to bind themselves to the prelates further than their ancestors had done before them; and required that the pretended statute should be repealed, which was done accordingly.* But it is remarkable, that notwithstanding this vigilance of the commons, the clergy had so much art and influence, that the repeal was suppressed, and the act, which never had any legal authority, remains to this day upon the statute book;[*] though the clergy still thought proper to keep it in reserve and not proceed to the immediate execution of it.

The clergy, we can assume, had more hesitation than actual power to punish this new heresy that threatened their reputation, wealth, and authority. However, there was no law in England at that time that allowed secular authorities to enforce orthodoxy, so the ecclesiastical leaders tried to fill this gap using a dubious and unjustified tactic. In 1381, an act was passed that required sheriffs to arrest preachers of heresy and their supporters; however, this statute had been secretly obtained by the clergy and was formalized without the approval of the commons. In the following session, the lower house raised concerns about this deceit, stated that they did not intend to bind themselves to the bishops any more than their ancestors had, and demanded that the supposed statute be repealed, which was indeed done. However, it is noteworthy that despite the commons' vigilance, the clergy were so skilled and influential that the repeal was hidden away, and the act, which never had any legal standing, still exists on the statute book today; although the clergy chose to keep it on hold and did not move to enforce it immediately.

But besides this defect of power in the church, which saved Wickliffe, that reformer himself, notwithstanding his enthusiasm, seems not to have been actuated by the spirit of martyrdom; and in all subsequent trials before the prelates, he so explained away his doctrine by tortured meanings, as to render it quite innocent and inoffensive.[**] Most of his followers imitated his cautious disposition, and saved themselves either by recantations or explanations. He died of a palsy, in the year 1385, at his rectory of Lutterworth, in the county of Leicester; and the clergy, mortified that he should have escaped their vengeance, took care, besides assuring the people of his eternal damnation, to represent his last distemper as a visible judgment of Heaven upon him for his multiplied heresies and impieties.[***]

But besides this weakness of power in the church, which saved Wickliffe, that reformer himself, despite his enthusiasm, doesn't seem to have been driven by a martyr's spirit; and in all the trials he faced before the church leaders, he twisted his beliefs into such complicated explanations that they appeared completely harmless and acceptable. Most of his followers copied his cautious approach, saving themselves through renunciations or justifications. He died of a stroke in 1385 at his rectory in Lutterworth, in Leicester county; and the clergy, frustrated that he had escaped their punishment, not only assured the people of his eternal damnation but also portrayed his final illness as a clear sign of God's judgment against him for his many heresies and wickedness.

The proselytes, however, of Wickliffe’s opinions still increased in England:[****] some monkish writers represent one half of the kingdom as infected by those principles: they were carried over to Bohemia by some youth of that nation, who studied at Oxford: but though the age seemed strongly disposed to receive them, affairs were not yet fully ripe for this great revolution; and the finishing blow to ecclesiastical power was reserved to a period of more curiosity, literature, and inclination for novelties.

The supporters of Wickliffe’s ideas continued to grow in England: some monkish writers claimed that half of the kingdom was influenced by these beliefs. They were brought to Bohemia by some young people from that country who studied at Oxford. Although the time seemed ripe for such changes, the situation wasn't quite ready for this major shift in power, which would ultimately happen in a time more focused on curiosity, literature, and new ideas.

     * Cotton’s Abridg. p. 285.

     ** 5 Richard II. chap. 5.

     *** Walsing. p. 206. Knyghton, p. 2655, 2656.

     **** Knyghton, p. 2663.
     * Cotton's Abridg. p. 285.

     ** 5 Richard II. chap. 5.

     *** Walsing. p. 206. Knyghton, p. 2655, 2656.

     **** Knyghton, p. 2663.

Meanwhile the English parliament continued to check the clergy and the court of Rome, by more sober and more legal expedients. They enacted anew the statute of “provisors,” and affixed higher penalties to the transgression of it, which, in some instances, was even made capital.[*] The court of Rome had fallen upon a new device, which increased their authority over the prelates: the pope, who found that the expedient of arbitrarily depriving them was violent, and liable to opposition, attained the same end by transferring such of them as were obnoxious to poorer sees, and even to nominal sees, “in partibus infidelium.” It was thus that the archbishop of York, and the bishops of Durham and Chichester, the king’s ministers, had been treated after the prevalence of Glocester’s faction: the bishop of Carlisle met with the same fate after the accession of Henry IV. For the pope always joined with the prevailing powers, when they did not thwart his pretensions. The parliament, in the reign of Richard, enacted a law against this abuse: and the king made a general remonstrance to the court of Rome against all those usurpations, which he calls “horrible excesses” of that court.[**]

Meanwhile, the English parliament continued to keep the clergy and the court of Rome in check through more measured and legal means. They re-enacted the statute of "provisors" and imposed higher penalties for violations, some of which were even made capital.[*] The court of Rome came up with a new tactic to strengthen their control over the bishops: the pope, realizing that arbitrarily removing them was too extreme and likely to face resistance, achieved the same goal by assigning those who were unpopular to poorer dioceses, and even to nominal ones, “in partibus infidelium.” This is how the archbishop of York and the bishops of Durham and Chichester, who were the king’s ministers, were treated after the rise of Glocester’s faction; the bishop of Carlisle faced the same fate after Henry IV took power. The pope generally allied with the dominant forces unless they opposed his ambitions. During Richard's reign, parliament passed a law against this abuse, and the king made a formal complaint to the court of Rome about all these usurpations, which he referred to as “horrible excesses” of that court.[**]

It was usual for the church, that they might elude the mortmain act, to make their votaries leave lands in trust to certain persons, under whose name the clergy enjoyed the benefit of the bequest: the parliament also stopped the progress of this abuse.[***] In the seventeenth of the king, the commons prayed, “that remedy might be had against such religious persons as cause their villains to marry free women inheritable, whereby the estate comes to those religious hands by collusion.”[****] This was a new device of the clergy.

It was common for the church to bypass the mortmain act by having their followers leave land in trust to certain individuals, under whose names the clergy benefited from the bequest. Parliament also intervened to put a stop to this abuse.[***] In the seventeenth year of the king's reign, the commons requested, “that action be taken against such religious individuals who cause their serfs to marry free women who can inherit, thus transferring the estate to those religious hands through collusion.”[****] This was a new tactic used by the clergy.

     * 13 Richard II. cap. 3. 16 Richard II. cap. 4.

     ** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 672.

     **** Knyghton, p. 27, 38. Cotton, p. 355.

     **** Cotton, p. 355.
     * 13 Richard II. cap. 3. 16 Richard II. cap. 4.

     ** Rymer, vol. vii. p. 672.

     **** Knyghton, p. 27, 38. Cotton, p. 355.

     **** Cotton, p. 355.

The papacy was at this time somewhat weakened by a schism, which lasted during forty years, and gave great scandal to the devoted partisans of the holy see. After the pope had resided many years at Avignon, Gregory XI. was persuaded to return to Rome; and upon his death, which happened in 1380, the Romans, resolute to fix, for the future, the seat of the papacy in Italy, besieged the cardinals in the conclave, and compelled them, though they were mostly Frenchmen, to elect Urban VI., an Italian, into that high dignity. The French cardinals, as soon as they recovered their liberty, fled from Rome, and protesting against the forced election, chose Robert, son of the count of Geneva, who took the name of Clement VII., and resided at Avignon. All the Kingdoms of Christendom, according to their several interests and inclinations, were divided between these two pontiffs. The court of France adhered to Clement, and was followed by its allies, the king of Castile and the king of Scotland: England of course was thrown into the other party, and declared for Urban. Thus the appellation of Clementines and Urbanists distracted Europe for several years; and each party damned the other as schismatics, and as rebels to the true vicar of Christ. But this circumstance, though it weakened the papal authority, had not so great an effect as might naturally be imagined. Though any king could easily, at first, make his kingdom embrace the party of one pope or the other, or even keep it some time in suspense between them, he could not so easily transfer his obedience at pleasure: the people attached themselves to their own party, as to a religious opinion; and conceived an extreme abhorrence to the opposite party, whom they regarded as little better than Saracens, or infidels. Crusades were even undertaken in this quarrel; and the zealous bishop of Norwich, in particular, led over, in 1382 near sixty thousand bigots into Flanders against the Clementines; but after losing a great part of his followers, he returned with disgrace into England.[*] Each pope, sensible, from this prevailing spirit among the people, that the kingdom which once embraced his cause would always adhere to him, boldly maintained all the pretensions of his see, and stood not much more in awe of the temporal sovereigns, than if his authority had not been endangered by a rival.

The papacy was somewhat weakened by a schism that lasted for forty years, causing scandal among the loyal supporters of the holy see. After the pope spent many years in Avignon, Gregory XI was convinced to return to Rome. Upon his death in 1380, the Romans, determined to keep the papacy in Italy, besieged the cardinals in the conclave and forced them, despite most being French, to elect Urban VI, an Italian, to that high position. Once free, the French cardinals fled Rome and, protesting the forced election, elected Robert, the son of the count of Geneva, who took the name Clement VII, and lived in Avignon. The kingdoms of Christendom divided along the lines of their interests, with France and its allies, including the king of Castile and the king of Scotland, supporting Clement, while England naturally sided with Urban. As a result, the terms Clementines and Urbanists caused division in Europe for several years, with each side denouncing the other as schismatics and rebels against the true vicar of Christ. However, while this weakened the papal authority, it did not have as significant an impact as one might expect. Though any king could initially align his kingdom with one pope or the other or keep it undecided for a time, he couldn’t easily switch allegiance: the people were committed to their side as if it were a religious belief and harbored a strong disdain for the opposing side, whom they viewed as almost like Saracens or infidels. Crusades were even launched over this dispute; notably, the zealous bishop of Norwich led nearly sixty thousand devoted followers into Flanders in 1382 against the Clementines. However, after losing a significant portion of his followers, he returned to England in disgrace. Each pope, aware that the kingdom which supported him would likely remain loyal, confidently upheld all the claims of his see and didn’t feel particularly intimidated by the secular rulers, as if his authority was not threatened by a rival.

We meet with this preamble to a law enacted at the very beginning of this reign: “Whereas divers persons of small garrison of land or other possessions do make great retinue of people, as well of esquires as of others, in many parts of the realm, giving to them hats and other livery of one suit by year taking again towards them the value of the same livery, or percase the double value, by such covenant and assurance, that every of them shall maintain other in all quarrels, be they reasonable or unreasonable, to the great mischief and oppression of the people, etc.”[**]

We begin with this introduction to a law created at the very start of this reign: “Whereas various individuals with small amounts of land or other possessions gather large groups of people, including both knights and others, in many parts of the realm, providing them hats and other matching uniforms each year, while taking back the value of that uniform, or possibly double the value, under the agreement that they will support each other in all disputes, whether justified or not, to the great harm and oppression of the people, etc.”

     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 133, 134. Walsing. p. 298, 299,
     300. etc. Knyghtor., p. 2671.

     ** I Richard, II. chap. 7
     * Froissard, liv. i. chap. 133, 134. Walsing. p. 298, 299,
     300. etc. Knyghtor., p. 2671.

     ** I Richard, II. chap. 7

This preamble contains a true picture of the state of the kingdom. The laws had been so feebly executed, even during the long, active, and vigilant reign of Edward III., that no subject could trust to their protection. Men openly associated themselves, under the patronage of some great baron, for their mutual defence. They wore public badges, by which their confederacy was distinguished. They supported each other in all quarrels, iniquities, extortions, murders, robberies, and other crimes. Their chief was more their sovereign than the king himself; and their own band was more connected with them than their country. Hence the perpetual turbulence, disorders, factions, and civil wars of those times: hence the small regard paid to a character, or the opinion of the public: hence the large discretionary prerogatives of the crown, and the danger which might have ensued from the too great limitation of them. If the king had possessed no arbitrary powers, while all the nobles assumed and exercised them, there must have ensued an absolute anarchy in the state.

This introduction gives an accurate portrayal of the kingdom's situation. The laws had been poorly enforced, even during the long, active, and watchful reign of Edward III., so no subject could rely on their protection. People openly banded together, under the support of some powerful noble, for mutual defense. They wore public badges that identified their group. They backed each other in all disputes, wrongdoings, extortions, murders, robberies, and other crimes. Their leader was often more like their ruler than the king himself; their group felt closer to them than to their own country. This led to constant unrest, disorder, factions, and civil wars during those times: this is why there was little respect for character or public opinion, why the crown held significant discretionary power, and why there was a risk that too much limitation on those powers could lead to chaos. If the king had no arbitrary powers while all the nobles took and used them, it would have resulted in complete anarchy in the state.

One great mischief attending these confederacies was, the extorting from the king pardons for the most enormous crimes. The parliament often endeavored, in the last reign, to deprive the prince of this prerogative; but, in the present, they were content with an abridgment of it. They enacted, that no pardon for rapes, or for murder from malice prepense, should be valid, unless the crime were particularly specified in it.[*] There were also some other circumstances required for passing any pardon of this kind: an excellent law, but ill observed, like most laws that thwart the manners of the people, and the prevailing customs of the times.

One major problem with these confederacies was that they forced the king to grant pardons for the most serious crimes. The parliament often tried, during the previous reign, to take this power away from the prince; however, in the current reign, they were satisfied with limiting it. They made a law stating that no pardon for rape or premeditated murder would be valid unless the specific crime was mentioned in it.[*] There were also other requirements that needed to be met for any pardon of this nature to be granted: a great law, but poorly enforced, like most laws that go against the values of the people and the dominant customs of the time.

     * 13 Richard II. chap. 1
     * 13 Richard II. chap. 1

It is easy to observe, from these voluntary associations among the people, that the whole force of the feudal system was in a manner dissolved, and that the English had nearly returned, in that particular, to the same situation in which they stood before the Norman conquest. It was, indeed, impossible that that system could long subsist under the perpetual revolutions to winch landed property is every where subject. When the great feudal baronies were first erected, the lord lived in opulence in the midst of his vassals: he was in a situation to protect, and cherish and defend them: the quality of patron naturally united itself to that of superior: and these two principles of authority mutually supported each other. But when by the various divisions and mixtures of property, a man’s superior came to live at a distance from him, and could no longer give him shelter or countenance, the tie gradually became more fictitious than real: new connections from vicinity or other causes were formed: protection was sought by voluntary services and attachment: the appearance of valor spirit, abilities in any great man, extended his interest very far, and if the sovereign were deficient in these qualities, he was no less, if not more exposed to the usurpations of the aristocracy, than even during the vigor of the feudal system.

It's easy to see, from these voluntary associations among the people, that the entire feudal system was essentially falling apart, and that the English had almost returned, in this regard, to the same situation they were in before the Norman conquest. It was, in fact, impossible for that system to last long under the constant changes that landed property is subjected to everywhere. When the large feudal baronies were first established, the lord lived in luxury among his vassals: he was able to protect, support, and defend them. The role of patron naturally blended with that of superior, and these two principles of authority reinforced each other. But when, due to the various divisions and changes in property, a man’s superior began to live far away from him and could no longer provide shelter or support, the bond gradually became more imaginary than real: new connections formed from proximity or other reasons. Protection was sought through voluntary services and loyalty; the appearance of valor, spirit, and abilities in any significant figure greatly expanded his influence, and if the sovereign lacked these qualities, he was no less, if not more, vulnerable to the encroachments of the aristocracy than even during the height of the feudal system.

The greatest novelty introduced into the civil government during this reign was the creation of peers by patent. Lord Beauchamp, of Holt, was the first peer that was advanced to the house of lords in this manner. The practice of levying benevolences is also first mentioned in the present reign. This prince lived in a more magnificent manner than perhaps any of his predecessors or successors. His household consisted of ten thousand persons: he had three hundred in his kitchen; and all the other offices were furnished in proportion.[*] It must be remarked, that this enormous train had tables supplied them at the king’s expense, according to the mode of that age. Such prodigality was probably the source of many exactions by purveyors, and was one chief reason of the public discontents.

The biggest change in civil government during this reign was the creation of peers through patent. Lord Beauchamp, of Holt, was the first peer promoted to the House of Lords this way. The practice of imposing benevolences is also first mentioned during this reign. This prince lived more lavishly than maybe any of his predecessors or successors. His household included ten thousand people: he had three hundred in his kitchen, and all the other departments were staffed accordingly.[*] It should be noted that this massive entourage had tables provided for them at the king’s expense, as was the custom of that time. Such extravagance likely led to many demands by purveyors and was a major reason for public discontent.

     * Harding: this poet says, that he speaks from the authority
     of a clerk of the green cloth.
     * Harding: this poet says that he speaks with the authority of a clerk of the green cloth.




CHAPTER XVIII.

1_250_henry4.jpg  Henry IV.




HENRY IV

1399.

1399.

The English had so long been familiarized to the hereditary succession of their monarchs, the instances of departure from it had always borne such strong symptoms of injustice and violence, and so little of a national choice or election, and the returns to the true line had ever been deemed such fortunate incidents in their history, that Henry was afraid, lest, in resting his title on the consent of the people, he should build on a foundation to which the people themselves were not accustomed, and whose solidity they would with difficulty be brought to recognize. The idea too of choice seemed always to imply that of conditions, and a right of recalling the consent upon any supposed violation of them; an idea which was not naturally agreeable to a sovereign, and might in England be dangerous to the subjects, who, lying so much under the influence of turbulent nobles, had ever paid but an imperfect obedience even to their hereditary princes. For these reasons Henry was determined never to have recourse to this claim; the only one on which his authority could consistently stand: he rather chose to patch up his title, in the best manner he could, from other pretensions: and in the end, he left himself, in the eyes of men of sense, no ground of right but his present possession; a very precarious foundation, which, by its very nature, was liable to be overthrown by every faction of the great, or prejudice of the people. He had indeed a present advantage over his competitor: the heir of the house of Mortimer, who had been declared in parliament heir to the crown, was a boy of seven years of age:[*] his friends consulted his safety by keeping silence with regard to his title: Henry detained him and his younger brother in an honorable custody at Windsor Castle.

The English had long been used to the hereditary succession of their kings, and whenever there were departures from it, they usually showed clear signs of injustice and violence, rather than any sense of national choice or election. The returns to the legitimate line were seen as fortunate events in their history. Henry was worried that by basing his claim on the people's consent, he would be building on shaky ground that the people themselves weren’t used to, and that they would find it hard to accept. The idea of choice also suggested conditions and a right to withdraw consent if those conditions were violated, which wasn’t something a ruler would naturally welcome and could be risky for subjects in England, who often struggled to obey their hereditary kings due to the influence of rebellious nobles. For these reasons, Henry decided never to rely on this claim; it was the only claim that could consistently uphold his authority. Instead, he preferred to bolster his title in any way he could from other claims. Ultimately, he left himself, in the eyes of sensible people, with no legitimate right other than his current possession, a very unstable foundation that could easily be challenged by any powerful faction or popular bias. He did have an immediate advantage over his rival: the heir of the Mortimer family, who had been declared the heir to the crown by parliament, was just a seven-year-old boy. His supporters kept quiet about his claim to ensure his safety, while Henry kept him and his younger brother in honorable custody at Windsor Castle.

     * Dugdale, vol. i. p. 151.
     * Dugdale, vol. i. p. 151.

But he had reason to dread that, in proportion as that nobleman grew to man’s estate, he would draw to him the attachment of the people, and make them reflect on the fraud, violence, and injustice by which he had been excluded from the throne. Many favorable topics would occur in his behalf: he was a native of England; possessed an extensive interest from the greatness and alliances of his family; however criminal the deposed monarch, this youth was entirely innocent; he was of the same religion, and educated in the same manners with the people, and could not be governed by any separate interest: these views would all concur to favor his claim; and though the abilities of the present prince might ward off any dangerous revolution, it was justly to be apprehended, that his authority could with difficulty be brought to equal that of his predecessors.

But he had reason to worry that as that nobleman reached adulthood, he would win the loyalty of the people and make them think about the fraud, violence, and injustice that led to his exclusion from the throne. Many positive points would support his case: he was born in England; he had significant connections due to his family's status and alliances; no matter how guilty the ousted king was, this young man was completely innocent; he shared the same religion and was raised in the same culture as the people, so he couldn't be swayed by any separate interests. All these factors would align to strengthen his claim; and even though the current prince might be able to prevent any serious upheaval, it was reasonable to fear that his authority would struggle to match that of his predecessors.

Henry, in his very first parliament, had reason to see the danger attending that station which he had assumed, and the obstacles which he would meet with in governing an unruly aristocracy, always divided by faction, and at present inflamed with the resentments consequent on such recent convulsions. The peers, on their assembling, broke out into violent animosities against each other; forty gauntlets, the pledges of furious battle, were thrown on the floor of the house by noblemen who gave mutual challenges; and “liar” and “traitor” resounded from all quarters. The king had so much authority with these doughty champions, as to prevent all the combats which they threatened; but he was not able to bring them to a proper composure, or to an amicable disposition towards each other.

Henry, in his very first parliament, recognized the dangers that came with the position he had taken on and the challenges he would face in leading a rebellious aristocracy, always split by factions and currently heated by the resentments that followed recent upheavals. When the peers gathered, they erupted into fierce hostilities against one another; forty gauntlets, the tokens of fierce battles, were thrown onto the floor of the house by nobles issuing mutual challenges, and accusations of “liar” and “traitor” echoed from all sides. The king had enough influence with these fierce champions to prevent the fights they were threatening, but he couldn't get them to calm down or foster a friendly attitude toward each other.

1400.

1400.

It was not long before these passions broke into action. The earls of Rutland, Kent, and Huntingdon, and Lord Spenser, who were now degraded from the respective titles of Albemarle, Surrey, Exeter, and Glocester, conferred on them by Richard, entered into a conspiracy, together with the earl of Salisbury and Lord Lumley, for raising an insurrection, and for seizing the king’s person at Windsor;[*] but the treachery of Rutland gave him warning of the danger. He suddenly withdrew to London; and the conspirators, who came to Windsor with a body of five hundred horse, found that they had missed this blow, on which all the success of their enterprise depended.

It wasn't long before these passions turned into action. The earls of Rutland, Kent, and Huntingdon, along with Lord Spenser, who had been stripped of their titles of Albemarle, Surrey, Exeter, and Gloucester by Richard, joined forces with the earl of Salisbury and Lord Lumley to plot an uprising and capture the king at Windsor;[*] however, Rutland's betrayal alerted him to the impending danger. He quickly retreated to London, and the conspirators, arriving at Windsor with five hundred horsemen, discovered that they had missed the opportunity crucial to the success of their plan.

     * Walsing. p. 362. Otterborne. p. 224.
     * Walsing. p. 362. Otterborne. p. 224.

Henry appeared, next day, at Kingston upon Thames, at the head of twenty thousand men, mostly drawn from the city; and his enemies, unable to resist his power, dispersed themselves, with a view of raising their followers in the several counties which were the seat of their interest. But the adherents of the king were hot in the pursuit, and every where opposed themselves to their progress. The earls of Kent and Salisbury were seized at Cirencester by the citizens, and were next day beheaded without further ceremony, according to the custom of the times.[*] The citizens of Bristol treated Spenser and Lumley in the same manner. The earl of Huntingdon, Sir Thomas Blount, and Sir Benedict Sely, who were also taken prisoners, suffered death, with many others of the conspirators, by orders from Henry. And when the quarters of these unhappy men were brought to London, no less than eighteen bishops and thirty-two mitred abbots joined the populace, and met them with the most indecent marks of joy and exultation.

Henry showed up the next day at Kingston upon Thames, leading twenty thousand men, mostly from the city. His enemies, unable to stand against his strength, scattered in hopes of gathering support from their followers in the various counties where they held influence. But the king's supporters were relentless in their pursuit, obstructing their advances everywhere. The earls of Kent and Salisbury were captured by the citizens at Cirencester and beheaded the next day with no further formality, as was customary at the time.[*] The citizens of Bristol treated Spenser and Lumley the same way. The earl of Huntingdon, Sir Thomas Blount, and Sir Benedict Sely, who were also captured, faced execution, along with many other conspirators, by Henry’s orders. When the bodies of these unfortunate men were brought to London, eighteen bishops and thirty-two abbots joined the crowd, greeting them with shocking displays of joy and celebration.

But the spectacle the most shocking to every one, who retained any sentiment either of honor or humanity, still remained. The earl of Rutland appeared, carrying on a pole the head of Lord Spenser, his brother-in-law, which he presented in triumph to Henry as a testimony of his loyalty. This infamous man, who was soon after duke of York by the death of his father, and first prince of the blood, had been instrumental in the murder of his uncle, the duke of Glocester;[**] had then deserted Richard, by whom he was trusted; had conspired against the life of Henry, to whom he had sworn allegiance; had betrayed his associates, whom he had seduced into this enterprise; and now displayed, in the face of the world, these badges of his multiplied dishonor.

But the most shocking spectacle for anyone who still felt any sense of honor or humanity was yet to come. The Earl of Rutland appeared, carrying the head of Lord Spenser, his brother-in-law, on a pole, which he triumphantly presented to Henry as proof of his loyalty. This infamous man, who would soon become the Duke of York after his father's death and was the first prince of the blood, had played a key role in the murder of his uncle, the Duke of Gloucester; had then betrayed Richard, who had trusted him; had plotted against Henry, to whom he had sworn loyalty; had betrayed his associates, whom he had lured into this conspiracy; and now, in front of the world, displayed these marks of his many shameful acts.

     * Walsing. p. 363. Ypod. Neust. p. 556.

     ** Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 171.
     * Walsing. p. 363. Ypod. Neust. p. 556.

     ** Dugdale, vol. ii. p. 171.

1401.

1401.

Henry was sensible that, though the execution of these conspirators might seem to give security to his throne, the animosities which remain after such bloody scenes, are always dangerous to royal authority; and he therefore determined not to increase, by any hazardous enterprise, those numerous enemies with whom he was every where environed. While a subject, he was believed to have strongly imbibed all the principles of his father, the duke of Lancaster, and to have adopted the prejudices which the Lollards inspired against the abuses of the established church: but finding, himself possessed of the throne by so precarious a title, he thought superstition a necessary implement of public authority; and he resolved, by every expedient, to pay court to the clergy. There were hitherto no penal laws enacted against heresy; an indulgence which had proceeded, not from a spirit of toleration in the Romish church, but from the ignorance and simplicity of the people, which had rendered them unfit either for starting or receiving any new or curious doctrines, and which needed not to be restrained by rigorous penalties. But when the learning and genius of Wickliffe had once broken, in some measure, the fetters of prejudice, the ecclesiastics called aloud for the punishment of his disciples; and the king, who was very little scrupulous in his conduct, was easily induced to sacrifice his principles to his interest, and to acquire the favor of the church by that most effectual method, the gratifying of their vengeance against opponents. He engaged the parliament to pass a law for that purpose: it was enacted, that when any heretic, who relapsed, or refused to abjure his opinions, was delivered over to the secular arm by the bishop or his commissaries, he should be committed to the flames by the civil magistrate before the whole people.[*] This weapon did not long remain unemployed in the hands of the clergy: William Sautré, rector of St. Osithes in London, had been condemned by the convocation of Canterbury; his sentence was ratified by the house of peers; the king issued his writ for the execution; [**] and the unhappy man atoned for his erroneous opinions by the penalty of fire. This is the first instance of that kind in England; and thus one horror more was added to those dismal scenes which at that time were already but too familiar to the people.

Henry understood that while executing these conspirators might seem to secure his throne, the lingering resentments that follow such bloody events are always a threat to royal authority. He decided not to risk increasing the many enemies surrounding him through any reckless actions. As a subject, he was thought to have strongly adopted his father, the Duke of Lancaster's, principles and the biases inspired by the Lollards against the abuses of the established church. However, finding himself on the throne by such an unstable claim, he saw superstition as a necessary tool for public authority and resolved to do everything he could to win favor with the clergy. So far, there were no laws against heresy; this leniency stemmed not from a spirit of tolerance in the Roman church but from the ignorance and simplicity of the people, who were unfit to either propose or accept any new or complex doctrines and did not require strict penalties. But once Wickliffe's learning and talent had started to loosen the chains of prejudice, the clergy loudly demanded punishment for his followers. The king, lacking scruples, was easily convinced to prioritize his interests over his principles and sought to gain the church’s favor through the most effective means: satisfying their desire for vengeance against opponents. He got Parliament to pass a law for this purpose: it stated that if any heretic relapsed or refused to renounce their beliefs, they would be handed over to the secular authorities by the bishop or his delegates, and the civil magistrate would execute them by fire in front of everyone. This weapon wasn't idle in the hands of the clergy for long: William Sautré, rector of St. Osithes in London, had been condemned by the Canterbury convocation; his sentence was confirmed by the House of Peers; the king issued his order for execution; and the unfortunate man paid for his mistaken beliefs with his life in the flames. This was the first instance of this kind in England and added yet another horror to the already familiar grim scenes of that time.

But the utmost precaution and prudence of Henry could not shield him from those numerous inquietudes which assailed him from every quarter. The connections of Richard with the royal family of France, made that court exert its activity to recover his authority, or revenge his death. [***]

But Henry's utmost caution and carefulness couldn't protect him from the many troubles that came at him from all directions. Richard's ties to the royal family of France caused that court to do everything it could to restore his power or avenge his death. [***]

     * 2 Henry IV. chap. vii.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 178.

     *** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 123.
     * 2 Henry IV. chap. vii.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 178.

     *** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 123.

But though the confusions in England tempted the French to engage in some enterprise by which they might distress their ancient enemy, the greater confusions which they experienced at home, obliged them quickly to accommodate matters; and Charles, content with recovering his daughter from Henry’s hands, laid aside his preparations, and renewed the truce between the kingdoms.[*] The attack of Guienne was also an inviting attempt, which the present factions that prevailed among the French obliged them to neglect. The Gascons, affectionate to the memory of Richard, who was born among them, refused to swear allegiance to a prince that had dethroned and murdered him; and the appearance of a French army on their frontiers would probably have tempted them to change masters.[**] But the earl of Worcester, arriving with some English troops, gave countenance to the partisans of Henry, and overawed their opponents. Religion too was here found a cement to their union with England. The Gascons had been engaged by Richard’s authority to acknowledge the pope of Rome; and they were sensible that, if they submitted to France, it would be necessary for them to pay obedience to the pope of Avignon, whom they had been taught to detest as a schismatic. Their principles on this head were too fast rooted to admit of any sudden or violent alteration.

But even though the chaos in England tempted the French to take action against their long-time enemy, the bigger troubles they faced at home forced them to quickly resolve things. Charles, satisfied with getting his daughter back from Henry, set aside his plans and renewed the truce between the kingdoms.[*] The attack on Guienne was also an attractive option, but the current factions within France made them ignore it. The Gascons, loyal to the memory of Richard, who was born among them, refused to pledge allegiance to a prince who had dethroned and killed him; and the sight of a French army on their borders would likely have tempted them to switch sides.[**] However, the Earl of Worcester arrived with some English troops, supporting Henry's allies and intimidating their opponents. Religion also helped solidify their bond with England. The Gascons had been persuaded by Richard’s authority to recognize the pope of Rome; and they realized that if they submitted to France, they would have to obey the pope of Avignon, whom they had been taught to hate as a schismatic. Their beliefs on this matter were too deeply rooted to accept any quick or drastic change.

The revolution in England proved likewise the occasion of an insurrection in Wales. Owen Glendour, or Glendourduy, descended from the ancient princes of that country, had become obnoxious on account of his attachment to Richard: and Reginald, Lord Gray of Ruthyn, who was closely connected with the new king, and who enjoyed a great fortune in the marches of Wales, thought the opportunity favorable for oppressing his neighbor, and taking possession of his estate. [***] Glendour, provoked at the injustice, and still more at the indignity, recovered possession by the sword; [****] Henry sent assistance to Gray; [*****] the Welsh took part with Glendour: a troublesome and tedious war was kindled, which Glendour long sustained by his valor and activity, aided by the natural strength of the country, and the untamed spirit of its inhabitants.

The revolution in England also sparked an uprising in Wales. Owen Glendour, or Glendourduy, who was descended from the ancient princes of that land, became unpopular because of his loyalty to Richard. Reginald, Lord Gray of Ruthyn, who was closely connected to the new king and had significant wealth in the borderlands of Wales, saw this as a chance to oppress his neighbor and seize his land. [***] Glendour, angered by the injustice and even more by the disrespect, took back his land by force; [****] Henry sent support to Gray; [*****] the Welsh sided with Glendour: a long and troublesome war ignited, which Glendour sustained for a long time through his bravery and effort, backed by the natural strength of the region and the fierce spirit of its people.

     * Rymer, vol. viii. p. 142, 152, 219.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 110, 111.

     *** Vita Ric. Sec. p. 171, 172

     **** Walsing, p. 364.

     * Rymer, vol. viii. p. 142, 152, 219.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 110, 111.

     *** Vita Ric. Sec. p. 171, 172

     **** Walsing, p. 364.

As Glendour committed devastations promiscuously on all the English, he infested the estate of the earl of Marche; and Sir Edmund Mortimer, uncle to that nobleman, led out the retainers of the family, and gave battle to the Welsh chieftain: his troops were routed, and he was taken prisoner:[*] at the same time, the earl himself, who had been allowed to retire to his castle of Wigmore, and who, though a mere boy, took the field with his followers, fell also into Glendour’s hands, and was carried by him into Wales.[**] As Henry dreaded and hated all the family of Marche, he allowed the earl to remain in captivity; and though that young nobleman was nearly allied to the Piercies, to whose assistance he himself had owed his crown, he refused to the earl of Northumberland permission to treat of his ransom with Glendour.

As Glendour caused chaos among the English, he attacked the estate of the Earl of Marche. Sir Edmund Mortimer, the earl's uncle, gathered the family’s supporters and went to battle against the Welsh leader. His forces were defeated, and he was captured. Meanwhile, the earl himself, who had been allowed to retreat to his castle at Wigmore, and despite being just a boy, took to the field with his followers but was also captured by Glendour and taken into Wales. Henry, who feared and despised the entire Marche family, allowed the earl to stay in captivity. Even though the young nobleman was closely related to the Percies, who had helped him secure his crown, he refused the Earl of Northumberland permission to negotiate for the earl's ransom with Glendour.

The uncertainty in which Henry’s affairs stood during a long time with France, as well as the confusions incident to all great changes in government, tempted the Scots to make incursions into England; and Henry, desirous of taking revenge upon them, but afraid of rendering his new government unpopular by requiring great supplies from his subjects, summoned at Westminster a council of the peers, without the commons, and laid before them the state of his affairs.[***] The military part of the feudal constitution was now much decayed: there remained only so much of that fabric as affected the civil rights and properties of men: and the peers here undertook, but voluntarily, to attend the king in an expedition against Scotland, each of them at the head of a certain number of his retainers. [****] Henry conducted this army to Edinburgh, of which he easily made himself master; and he there summoned Robert III. to do homage to him for his crown.[*****] But finding that the Scots would neither submit nor give him battle, he returned in three weeks, after making this useless bravado; and he disbanded his army.

The uncertainty surrounding Henry’s situation with France, along with the chaos that comes with major government changes, encouraged the Scots to raid England. Henry, eager to take revenge but worried about making his new rule unpopular by demanding too much from his subjects, called a council of the lords at Westminster, without the commons, and presented them with the state of his affairs.[***] The military aspect of the feudal system had significantly weakened; only the parts that affected people's civil rights and properties remained. The lords voluntarily agreed to accompany the king on an expedition against Scotland, each leading a certain number of their followers.[****] Henry took this army to Edinburgh, which he easily captured, and there he summoned Robert III. to swear loyalty to him for his crown.[*****] However, when he realized that the Scots would neither surrender nor engage in battle, he returned home in three weeks after this pointless display and disbanded his army.

1402.

1402.

In the subsequent season, Archibald, earl of Douglas, at the head of twelve thousand men, and attended by many of the principal nobility of Scotland, made an irruption into England, and committed devastations on the northern counties. On his return home, he was overtaken by the Piercies, at Homeldom, on the borders of England, and a fierce battle ensued, where the Scots were totally routed. Douglas himself was taken prisoner; as was Mordác, earl of Fife, son of the duke of Albany, and nephew of the Scottish king, with the earls of Angus, Murray, and Orkney, and many others of the gentry and nobility. [******] | When Henry received intelligence of this victory, he sent the earl of Northumberland orders not to ransom his prisoners, which that nobleman regarded as his right by the laws of war received in that age. The king intended to detain them, that he might be able by their means to make an advantageous peace with Scotland; but by this policy he gave a fresh disgust to the family of Piercy.

In the following season, Archibald, Earl of Douglas, leading twelve thousand men and accompanied by many of Scotland's key nobles, invaded England and caused destruction in the northern counties. On his way back, he was intercepted by the Percys at Homeldom, on the border of England, and a fierce battle broke out, resulting in a complete defeat for the Scots. Douglas himself was captured, along with Mordác, Earl of Fife, the son of the Duke of Albany and nephew of the Scottish king, as well as the Earls of Angus, Murray, and Orkney, along with many other members of the gentry and nobility. [******] | When Henry learned of this victory, he ordered the Earl of Northumberland not to ransom his prisoners, which the nobleman saw as his right under the war laws of that time. The king intended to keep them in order to negotiate a favorable peace with Scotland, but this strategy only caused more resentment from the Percy family.

     * Dugdale, vol. i. p. 150.

     ** Dugdale, vol. i. p. 151.

     *** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 125, 126.

     **** Rymer, Vol. viii. p.. 125.

     ****** Walsing p. 336. Vita Ric. Sec p. 180. Chron.
     Otterborne. p. 237.
     * Dugdale, vol. i. p. 150.

     ** Dugdale, vol. i. p. 151.

     *** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 125, 126.

     **** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 125.

     ****** Walsing p. 336. Vita Ric. Sec p. 180. Chron.
     Otterborne. p. 237.

1403.

1403.

The obligations which Henry had owed to Northumberland, were of a kind the most likely to produce ingratitude on the one side, and discontent on the other. The sovereign naturally became jealous of that power which had advanced him to the throne; and the subject was not easily satisfied in the returns which he thought so great a favor had merited. Though Henry, on his accession, had bestowed the office of constable on Northumberland for life,[*] and conferred other gifts on that family, these favors were regarded as their due; the refusal of any other request was deemed an injury.

The obligations Henry owed to Northumberland were the kind most likely to foster ingratitude on one side and discontent on the other. The king naturally grew jealous of the power that had helped him take the throne, while Northumberland was not easily satisfied with what he believed was deserved for such a significant favor. Even though Henry had granted Northumberland the position of constable for life and given other gifts to his family when he became king, these favors were seen as simply what they were owed; any denial of further requests was considered an offense.

     * Rymer, vol. viii. p. 89.
     * Rymer, vol. viii. p. 89.

The impatient spirit of Harry Piercy, and the factious disposition of the earl of Worcester, younger brother of Northumberland, inflamed the discontents of that nobleman; and the precarious title of Henry tempted him to seek revenge, by overturning that throne which he had at first established. He entered into a correspondence with Glendour: he gave liberty to the earl of Douglas, and made an alliance with that martial chief: he roused up all his partisans to arms; and such unlimited authority at that time belonged to the great families, that the same men, whom, a few years before, he had conducted against Richard, now followed his standard in opposition to Henry. When war was ready to break out, Northumberland was seized with a sudden illness at Berwick: and young Piercy, taking the command of the troops, marched towards Shrewsbury, in order to join his forces with those of Glendour, The king had happily a small army on foot, with which he had intended to act against the Scots; and knowing the importance of celerity in all civil wars, he instantly hurried down, that he might give battle to the rebels. He approached Piercy near Shrewsbury, before that nobleman was joined by Glendour; and the policy of one leader, and impatience of the other, made them hasten to a general engagement.

The restless nature of Harry Piercy and the rebellious attitude of the Earl of Worcester, the younger brother of Northumberland, fueled the nobleman's dissatisfaction. The shaky claim of Henry motivated him to seek revenge by toppling the throne he had originally helped establish. He began communicating with Glendour, freed the Earl of Douglas, and formed an alliance with that fierce leader. He rallied all of his supporters to arms, and the immense power held by major families at that time meant that the same men he had led against Richard just a few years earlier were now following him in opposition to Henry. As preparations for war were underway, Northumberland suddenly fell ill in Berwick. Young Piercy took command of the troops and marched toward Shrewsbury to join forces with Glendour. Fortunately for the king, he had a small army ready, initially meant to fight the Scots, and understanding the need for quick action in civil wars, he rushed down to confront the rebels. He reached Piercy near Shrewsbury before that nobleman had connected with Glendour, and the strategy of one leader combined with the urgency of the other pushed them towards a full-scale battle.

The evening before the battle, Piercy sent a manifesto to Henry, in which he renounced his allegiance, set that prince at defiance, and, in the name of his father and uncle, as well as his own, enumerated all the grievances of which, he pretended, the nation had reason to complain; He upbraided him with the perjury of which he had been guilty, when, on landing at Ravenspur, he had sworn upon the Gospels, before the earl of Northumberland, that he had no other intension than to recover the duchy of Lancaster, and that he would ever remain a faithful subject to King Richard. He aggravated his guilt in first dethroning, then murdering that prince, and in usurping on the title of the house of Mortimer, to whom, both by lineal succession, and by declarations of parliament, the throne, when vacant by Richard’s demise, did of right belong. He complained of his cruel policy in allowing the young earl of Marche, whom he ought to regard as his sovereign, to remain a captive in the hands of his enemies, and in even refusing to all his friends permission to treat of his ransom; He charged him again with perjury in loading the nation with heavy taxes, after having sworn that, without the utmost necessity, he would never levy any impositions upon them. And he reproached him with the arts employed in procuring favorable elections into parliament; arts which he himself had before imputed as a crime to Richard, and which he had made one chief reason of that prince’s arraignment and deposition.[*] This manifesto was well calculated to inflame the quarrel between the parties: the bravery of the two leaders promised an obstinate engagement; and the equality of the armies, being each about twelve thousand men, a number which was not unmanageable by the commanders, gave reason to expect a great effusion of blood on both sides, and a very doubtful issue to the combat.

The night before the battle, Piercy sent a manifesto to Henry in which he renounced his loyalty, challenged that prince, and, in the names of his father and uncle as well as his own, listed all the complaints that, he claimed, the nation had reason to voice. He accused him of the betrayal he committed when, upon landing at Ravenspur, he swore on the Gospels, before the earl of Northumberland, that he had no other intention than to reclaim the duchy of Lancaster and that he would always remain a faithful subject to King Richard. He intensified his accusations by pointing out that he first dethroned, then murdered that prince, and usurped the title of the house of Mortimer, to whom, by both lineage and parliamentary declarations, the throne rightfully belonged when Richard died. He criticized his cruel policy of allowing the young earl of Marche, who he should regard as his sovereign, to remain a prisoner in the hands of his enemies and even denying all his friends permission to negotiate his ransom. He charged him again with betrayal for imposing heavy taxes on the nation after swearing that he would never impose any burdens on them unless absolutely necessary. Moreover, he reproached him for the tactics used to secure favorable elections to parliament—tactics he had previously accused Richard of as a crime and had made a key reason for that prince's trial and removal. This manifesto was designed to escalate the conflict between the factions: the courage of the two leaders promised a fierce confrontation, and the armies, each about twelve thousand strong, which was a manageable size for the commanders, indicated that there would likely be a significant loss of life on both sides and an uncertain outcome to the battle.

We shall scarcely find any battle in those ages where the shock was more terrible and more constant. Henry exposed his person in the thickest of the fight: his gallant son, whose military achievements were afterwards so renowned, and who here performed his novitiate in arms, signalized himself on his father’s footsteps; and even a wound, which he received in the face with tin arrow, could not oblige him to quit the field.[**]

We can hardly find any battle from those times where the impact was more intense and relentless. Henry put himself right in the middle of the fight: his brave son, whose military victories later became famous, followed closely in his father’s footsteps; even a wound he received in the face from a tin arrow couldn't make him leave the battlefield.

     * Hall, fol. 21, 22, etc.

     ** T. Livii, p. 3
     * Hall, fol. 21, 22, etc.

     ** T. Livii, p. 3

Piercy supported that fame which he had acquired in many a bloody combat. And Douglas, his ancient enemy, and now his friend, still appeared his rival amidst the horror and confusion of the day. This nobleman performed feats of valor which are almost incredible: he seemed determined that the king of England should that day fall by his arm: he sought him all over the field of battle: and as Henry, either to elude the attacks of the enemy upon his person, or to encourage his own men by the belief of his presence every where, had accoutred several captains in the royal garb, the sword of Douglas rendered this honor fatal to many.[*] But while the armies were contending in this furious manner, the death of Piercy, by an unknown hand, decided the victory, and the royalists prevailed. There are said to have fallen that day on both sides near two thousand three hundred gentlemen; but the persons of greatest distinction were on the king’s; the earl of Stafford, Sir Hugh Shirley, Sir Nicholas Gausel, Sir Hugh Mortimer, Sir John Massey, Sir John Calverly. About six thousand private men perished, of whom two thirds were of Piercy’s army.[**] The earls of Worcester and Douglas were taken prisoners: the former was beheaded at Shrewsbury; the latter was treated with the courtesy due to his rank and merit.

Piercy backed the fame he had earned through many bloody battles. And Douglas, his old enemy who was now his friend, still seemed like a rival amid the chaos and confusion of the day. This nobleman performed incredible acts of bravery; he was determined that the king of England would fall by his hand that day. He searched for him all over the battlefield, and while Henry, either to avoid enemy attacks or to boost his own men’s morale by making them believe he was everywhere, had several captains dressed in royal attire, Douglas’s sword made this honor deadly for many. But as the armies fought fiercely, the death of Piercy, caused by an unknown assailant, turned the tide of victory, allowing the royalists to triumph. It’s said that nearly two thousand three hundred gentlemen fell that day on both sides; however, the most notable figures were on the king’s side: the Earl of Stafford, Sir Hugh Shirley, Sir Nicholas Gausel, Sir Hugh Mortimer, Sir John Massey, Sir John Calverly. About six thousand common soldiers died, two-thirds of whom were from Piercy’s army. The Earls of Worcester and Douglas were captured; the former was executed at Shrewsbury, while the latter was treated with the respect his rank and worth deserved.

The earl of Northumberland, having recovered from his sickness, had levied a fresh army, and was on his march to join his son; but being opposed by the earl of Westmoreland, and hearing of the defeat at Shrewsbury, he dismissed his forces, and came with a small retinue to the king at York.[***] He pretended that his sole intention in arming was to mediate between the parties: Henry thought proper to accept of the apology, and even granted him a pardon for his offence: all the other rebels were treated with equal lenity; and, except the earl of Worcester and Sir Richard Vernon, who were regarded as the chief authors of the insurrection, no person engaged in this dangerous enterprise seems to have perished by the hands of the executioner.[****]

The Earl of Northumberland, having recovered from his illness, had gathered a new army and was on his way to join his son. However, after facing opposition from the Earl of Westmoreland and hearing about the defeat at Shrewsbury, he disbanded his forces and came with a small group to meet the king in York. He claimed that his only goal in raising an army was to mediate between the factions. Henry decided to accept this excuse and even granted him a pardon for his wrongdoing. All the other rebels were treated with similar leniency, and aside from the Earl of Worcester and Sir Richard Vernon, who were seen as the main instigators of the uprising, no one else involved in this risky venture ended up being executed.

     * Walsing. p. 366, 367. Hall, fol. 22.

     ** Chron. Otterborne, p. 224. Ypod. Neust. p. 560.

     *** Chron. Otterborne, p. 225.

     **** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 353.
     * Walsing. p. 366, 367. Hall, fol. 22.

     ** Chron. Otterborne, p. 224. Ypod. Neust. p. 560.

     *** Chron. Otterborne, p. 225.

     **** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 353.

1405.

1405.

But Northumberland, though he had been pardoned, knew that he never should be trusted, and that he was too powerful to be cordially forgiven by a prince whose situation gave him such reasonable grounds of jealousy. It was the effect either of Henry’s vigilance or good fortune, or of the narrow genius of his enemies, that no proper concert was ever formed among them: they rose in rebellion one after another; and thereby afforded him an opportunity of suppressing singly those insurrections which, had they been united, might have proved fatal to his authority. The earl of Nottingham, son of the duke of Norfolk, and the archbishop of York, brother to the earl of Wiltshire, whom Henry, then duke of Lancaster, had beheaded at Bristol, though they had remained quiet while Piercy was in the field, still harbored in their breast a violent hatred against the enemy of their families; and they determined, in conjunction with the earl of Northumberland, to seek revenge against him. They betook themselves to arms before that powerful nobleman was prepared to join them; and publishing a manifesto, in which they reproached Henry with his usurpation of the crown and the murder of the late king, they required that the right line should be restored, and all public grievances be redressed. The earl of Westmoreland, whose power lay in the neighborhood, approached them with an inferior force at Shipton, near York; and being afraid to hazard an action, he attempted to subdue them by a stratagem, which nothing but the greatest folly and simplicity on their part could have rendered successful. He desired a conference with the archbishop and earl between the armies: he heard their grievances with great patience: he begged them to propose the remedies: he approved of every expedient which they suggested: he granted them all their demands: he also engaged that Henry should give them entire satisfaction: and when he saw them pleased with the facility of his concessions, he observed to them, that, since amity was now in effect restored between them, it were better on both sides to dismiss their forces, which otherwise would prove an insupportable burden to the country. The archbishop and the earl of Nottingham immediately gave directions to that purpose: their troops disbanded upon the field: but Westmoreland, who had secretly issued contrary orders to his army, seized the two rebels without resistance, and carried them to the king, who was advancing with hasty marches to suppress the insurrection.[*]

But Northumberland, even though he had been pardoned, knew he could never be fully trusted and that he was too powerful for a prince who had good reason to feel jealous. It was either Henry’s vigilance or luck, or the narrow-mindedness of his enemies, that no effective coordination was ever made among them: they rebelled one after the other, giving him the chance to handle these uprisings individually, which, if united, could have seriously threatened his power. The Earl of Nottingham, son of the Duke of Norfolk, and the Archbishop of York, brother to the Earl of Wiltshire—whom Henry, then Duke of Lancaster, had executed at Bristol—had stayed quiet while Piercy was active but still harbored intense hatred for their family’s rival. They decided, along with the Earl of Northumberland, to seek revenge against him. They took up arms before that powerful nobleman was ready to join them; and releasing a manifesto, they accused Henry of usurping the crown and killing the late king, demanding the restoration of the rightful line and redress of public grievances. The Earl of Westmoreland, who had influence in the area, approached them with a smaller force at Shipton, near York. Afraid to risk a confrontation, he tried to outsmart them, which would have only worked with the greatest foolishness and naivety on their part. He requested a meeting with the Archbishop and the Earl between their forces: he listened to their complaints patiently, asked them to suggest solutions, agreed with every proposal they made, granted all their demands, and even promised that Henry would address their concerns fully. When he saw they were happy with his concessions, he suggested that since peace had essentially been restored, it would be best for both sides to disband their armies, which would otherwise burden the country too heavily. The Archbishop and the Earl of Nottingham immediately acted on this advice: their troops disbanded on the field; but Westmoreland, who had secretly given different orders to his army, captured the two rebels without resistance and brought them to the king, who was hurrying to quell the uprising.[*]

     * Walsing. p. 373. Otterborne, p 255.
     * Walsing. p. 373. Otterborne, p 255.

The trial and punishment of an archbishop might have proved a troublesome and dangerous undertaking, had Henry proceeded regularly, and allowed time for an opposition to form itself against that unusual measure: the celerity of the execution alone could here render it safe and prudent. Finding that Sir William Gascoigne, the chief justice, made some scruple of acting on this occasion, he appointed Sir William Fulthorpe for judge; who, without any indictment, trial, or defence pronounced sentence of death upon the prelate which was presently executed. This was the first instance in England of a capital punishment inflicted on a bishop; whence the clergy of that rank might learn that their crimes, more than those of laies, were not to pass with impunity. The earl of Nottingham was condemned and executed in the same summary manner: but though many other persons of condition, such as Lord Falconberg, Sir Ralph Hastings, Sir John Colville, were engaged in this rebellion, no others seem to have fallen victims to Henry’s severity.

The trial and punishment of an archbishop could have been a tricky and risky move if Henry had followed the usual procedures and given time for opposition to build against such an unusual action. The speed of the execution was the only thing that made it safe and sensible. When he noticed that Sir William Gascoigne, the chief justice, hesitated to act in this situation, he appointed Sir William Fulthorpe as the judge; who, without any indictment, trial, or defense, declared the death sentence on the archbishop, which was carried out immediately. This was the first time in England that a bishop faced capital punishment, showing the clergy of that rank that their crimes, unlike those of common people, would not go unpunished. The Earl of Nottingham was also condemned and executed in the same quick manner; however, although many others of note, such as Lord Falconberg, Sir Ralph Hastings, and Sir John Colville, were part of this rebellion, it seems that none other than them suffered under Henry’s harsh rule.

The earl of Northumberland, on receiving this intelligence, fled into Scotland, together with Lord Bardolf;[*] and the king, without opposition, reduced all the castles and fortresses belonging to these noblemen. He thence turned his arms against Glendour, over whom his son, the prince of Wales, had attained some advantages; but that enemy, more troublesome than dangerous, still found means of defending himself in his fastnesses, and of eluding, though not resisting, all the force of England.

The Earl of Northumberland, after hearing this news, ran away to Scotland, along with Lord Bardolf;[*] and the king, facing no resistance, took control of all the castles and fortresses owned by these nobles. He then directed his efforts against Glendour, against whom his son, the Prince of Wales, had achieved some victories; however, that enemy, more annoying than threatening, still managed to defend himself in his strongholds and to avoid, though not truly fight back against, all the power of England.

1407.

1407.

In a subsequent season, the earl of Northumberland and Lord Bardolf, impatient of their exile, entered the north, in hopes of raising the people to arms; but found the country in such a posture as rendered all their attempts unsuccessful. Sir Thomas Rokesby, sheriff of Yorkshire, levied some forces, attacked the invaders at Bramham, and gained a victory, in which both Northumberland and Bardolf were slain.** This prosperous event, joined to the death of Glendour, which happened soon after, freed Henry from all his domestic enemies; and this prince, who had mounted the throne by such unjustifiable means, and held it by such an exceptionable title, had yet, by his valor, prudence, and address, accustomed the people to the yoke, and had obtained a greater ascendant over his haughty barons, than the law alone, not supported by these active qualities, was ever able to confer.

In a later season, the Earl of Northumberland and Lord Bardolf, eager to end their exile, ventured into the north, hoping to rally the people to take up arms; however, they found the region in such a state that all their efforts failed. Sir Thomas Rokesby, the sheriff of Yorkshire, gathered some forces, attacked the intruders at Bramham, and won a victory, during which both Northumberland and Bardolf were killed. This successful event, along with the death of Glendour that occurred shortly after, liberated Henry from all his domestic foes; and this prince, who had ascended to the throne through such questionable means and held it by such a problematic title, had nonetheless, through his bravery, wisdom, and skill, familiarized the people with the burden of his rule, and had gained more influence over his proud barons than the law alone, without the support of these active qualities, could have ever granted.

     * Walsing. p. 374.

     ** Walsing, p. 377. Chron. Otterb. p. 261.
     * Walsing. p. 374.

     ** Walsing, p. 377. Chron. Otterb. p. 261.

About the same time, fortune gave Henry an advantage over that neighbor, who, by his situation, was most enabled to disturb his government. Robert III., king of Scots, was a prince, though of slender capacity, extremely innocent and inoffensive in his conduct: but Scotland, at that time, was still less fitted than England for cherishing, or even enduring sovereigns of that character. The duke of Albany, Robert’s brother, a prince of more abilities, at least of a more boisterous and violent disposition, had assumed the government of the state; and, not satisfied with present authority, he entertained the criminal purpose of extirpating his brother’s children, and of acquiring the crown to his own family. He threw in prison David, his eldest nephew; who there perished by hunger: James alone, the younger brother of David, stood between that tyrant and the throne; and King Robert, sensible of his son’s danger, embarked him on board a ship, with a view of sending him to France, and intrusting him to the protection of that friendly power. Unfortunately, the vessel was taken by the English; Prince James, a boy about nine years of age, was carried to London; and though there subsisted at that time a truce between the kingdoms, Henry refused to restore the young prince to his liberty. Robert, worn out with cares and infirmities, was unable to bear the shock of this last misfortune; and he soon after died, leaving the government in the hands of the duke of Albany.[*] Henry was now more sensible than ever of the importance of the acquisition which he had made: while he retained such a pledge, he was sure of keeping the duke of Albany in dependence; or, if offended, he could easily, by restoring the true heir, take ample revenge upon the usurper. But though the king, by detaining James in the English court, had shown himself somewhat deficient in generosity, he made ample amends by giving that prince an excellent education, which afterwards qualified him, when he mounted the throne, to reform in some measure the rude and barbarous manners of his native country.

About the same time, fortune gave Henry an edge over his neighbor, who was most able to disrupt his rule. Robert III, king of Scots, was a prince who, despite his limited abilities, was very innocent and harmless in his actions. However, Scotland at that time was even less suited than England to support or tolerate monarchs like him. The Duke of Albany, Robert's brother, a prince with more capability, at least with a more loud and aggressive nature, had taken control of the government; and not content with his current authority, he plotted to eliminate his brother’s children and take the crown for his own family. He imprisoned David, his eldest nephew, who died there from starvation. Only James, the younger brother of David, stood between that tyrant and the throne. King Robert, realizing his son was in danger, put him on a ship to send him to France, hoping to secure his safety with the help of that friendly nation. Unfortunately, the ship was captured by the English; Prince James, just nine years old, was taken to London. Even though there was a truce between the kingdoms at the time, Henry refused to release the young prince. Robert, overwhelmed with worry and illness, couldn’t handle the blow of this latest misfortune; he soon passed away, leaving the government in the hands of the Duke of Albany. Henry now understood more than ever the significance of the hold he had: as long as he kept James, he could keep the Duke of Albany dependent on him; or, if he was offended, he could easily restore the true heir and take great revenge on the usurper. Though the king showed a lack of generosity by keeping James in the English court, he made up for it by giving him an excellent education, which later helped him, when he took the throne, to improve the rough and barbaric customs of his homeland.

     * Buchanan, lib. x.
* Buchanan, book x.

The hostile dispositions which of late had prevailed between France and England, were restrained, during the greater part of this reign, from appearing in action. The jealousies and civil commotions with which both nations were disturbed, kept each of them from taking advantage of the unhappy situation of its neighbor. But as the abilities and good fortune of Henry had sooner been able to compose the English factions, this prince began, in the latter part of his reign, to look abroad, and to foment the animosities between the families of Burgundy and Orleans, by which the government of France was, during that period, so much distracted. He knew that one great source of the national discontent against his predecessor was the inactivity of his reign; and he hoped, by giving a new direction to the restless and unquiet spirits of his people, to prevent their breaking out in domestic wars and disorders.

The tensions that had recently existed between France and England were mostly kept in check during this time, preventing any real conflict. The rivalries and civil unrest in both countries prevented either from taking full advantage of the other's troubles. However, since Henry was able to unite the English factions more quickly, towards the end of his reign, he started looking beyond his borders and stirring up the conflicts between the Burgundy and Orleans families, which were causing significant turmoil in France at that time. He understood that one major reason for the national dissatisfaction with his predecessor was the lack of action during that reign. He hoped that by channeling the restless and dissatisfied nature of his people into new pursuits, he could avoid outbreaks of internal wars and chaos.

1411.

1411.

That he might unite policy with force, he first entered into treaty with the duke of Burgundy, and sent that prince a small body of troops, which supported him against his enemies.[*] Soon after, he hearkened to more advantageous proposals made him by the duke of Orleans, and despatched a greater body to support that party.

That he wanted to combine strategy with strength, he first made a deal with the duke of Burgundy and sent him a small group of soldiers to help him against his foes.[*] Shortly after, he considered more beneficial offers from the duke of Orleans and sent a larger group to back that faction.

1412.

1412.

But the leaders of the opposite factions having made a temporary accommodation, the interests of the English were sacrificed; and this effort of Henry proved, in the issue, entirely vain and fruitless. The declining state of his health, and the shortness of his reign, prevented him from renewing the attempt, which his more fortunate son carried to so great a length against the French monarchy.

But the leaders of the opposing factions reached a temporary agreement, which resulted in the interests of the English being overlooked; as a result, Henry’s efforts ended up being completely pointless and ineffective. His declining health and short reign prevented him from making another attempt, which his more fortunate son pursued much further against the French monarchy.

Such were the military and foreign transactions of this reign: the civil and parliamentary are somewhat more memorable, and more worthy of our attention. During the two last reigns, the elections of the commons had appeared a circumstance of government not to be neglected; and Richard was even accused of using unwarrantable methods for procuring to his partisans a seat in that house. This practice formed one considerable article of charge against him in his deposition; yet Henry scrupled not to tread in his footsteps, and to encourage the same abuses in elections. Laws were enacted against such undue influence; and even a sheriff was punished for an iniquitous return which he had made:[**] but laws were commonly at that time very ill executed; and the liberties of the people, such as they were, stood on a surer basis than on laws and parliamentary elections.

The military and foreign affairs during this reign were noteworthy, but the civil and parliamentary matters are more memorable and deserve our attention. In the last two reigns, elections for the Commons became a significant aspect of governance that couldn't be overlooked. Richard was even accused of using questionable methods to secure seats in that house for his supporters. This practice was a major point against him during his deposition; however, Henry didn't hesitate to follow in his footsteps and support the same election abuses. Laws were enacted to prevent this kind of undue influence, and even a sheriff faced punishment for making an unfair return. But at that time, laws were often poorly enforced, and the people's liberties, as limited as they were, relied more on stronger foundations than on laws and parliamentary elections.

     * Walsing. p. 380.

     ** Cotton, p. 429.
     * Walsing. p. 380.

     ** Cotton, p. 429.

Though the house of commons was little able to withstand the violent currents which perpetually ran between the monarchy and the aristocracy, and though that house might easily be brought, at a particular time, to make the most unwarrantable concessions to either, the general institutions of the state still remained invariable; the interests of the several members continued on the same footing; the sword was in the hands af the subject; and the government, though thrown into temporary disorder, soon settled itself on its ancient foundations.

Though the House of Commons struggled to handle the constant tensions between the monarchy and the aristocracy, and even though it could be pushed, at times, to make unreasonable concessions to either side, the overall institutions of the state remained unchanged; the interests of the various members stayed consistent; the power was in the hands of the people; and the government, despite experiencing temporary turmoil, quickly reestablished itself on its traditional foundations.

During the greater part of this reign, the king was obliged to court popularity; and the house of commons, sensible of their own importance, began to assume powers which had not usually been exercised by their predecessors. In the first year of Henry, they procured a law, that no judge, in concurring with any iniquitous measure, should be excused by pleading the orders of the king, or even the danger of his* own life from the menaces of the sovereign.[*] In the second year, they insisted on maintaining the practice of not granting any supply before they received an answer to their petitions, which was a tacit manner of bargaining with the prince.[**] In the fifth year, they desired the king to remove from his household four persons who had displeased them, among whom was his own confessor, and Henry, though he told them that he knew of no offence which these men had committed, yet, in order to gratify them, complied with their request.[***] In the sixth year, they voted the king supplies, but appointed treasurers of their own, to see the money disbursed for the purposes intended, and required them to deliver in their accounts to the house.[****] In the eighth year, they proposed, for the regulation of the government and household, thirty important articles, which were all agreed to; and they even obliged all the members of council, all the judges, and all the officers of the household, to swear to the observance of them.[*****] The abridger of the records remarks the unusual liberties taken by the speaker and the house during this period.[******] But the great authority of the commons was but a temporary advantage, arising from the present situation. In a subsequent parliament, when the speaker made his customary application to the throne for liberty of speech, the king, having now overcome all his domestic difficulties, plainly told him that he would have no novelties introduced, and would enjoy his prerogatives. But on the whole, the limitations of the government seem to have been more sensibly felt, and more carefully maintained, by Henry than by any of his predecessors.

During most of this reign, the king had to seek popularity, and the House of Commons, aware of their own significance, started to take on powers that their predecessors usually didn’t. In the first year of Henry’s reign, they got a law passed that no judge could excuse his involvement in any corrupt action by claiming he was following the king's orders or even that his life was at risk from the king’s threats. In the second year, they insisted that they wouldn’t provide any funding until they received responses to their petitions, a subtle way of negotiating with the king. In the fifth year, they asked the king to remove four people from his court who had upset them, including his own confessor. Henry, although he said he didn’t know of any wrongdoing by these individuals, agreed to their demand to appease them. In the sixth year, they granted the king supplies but appointed their own treasurers to ensure the money was used for its intended purposes and required those treasurers to present their accounts to the House. In the eighth year, they suggested thirty significant articles for the regulation of the government and the royal household, all of which were accepted, and they even made all council members, judges, and household officials swear to adhere to them. The compiler of the records noted the unprecedented liberties taken by the speaker and the House during this time. However, the power the Commons held was just a temporary advantage due to the current circumstances. In a later parliament, when the speaker made his usual request for freedom of speech, the king, having resolved all his domestic issues, plainly stated that he wouldn’t allow any changes and intended to uphold his rights. Overall, it seems that Henry was more aware of the limits of government and maintained them more diligently than any of his predecessors.

     * Cotton, p. 364.

     ** Cotton, p. 406.

     *** Cotton, p. 426.

     **** Cotton, p. 438.

     ****** Cotton, p 462.
     * Cotton, p. 364.

     ** Cotton, p. 406.

     *** Cotton, p. 426.

     **** Cotton, p. 438.

     ****** Cotton, p 462.

During this reign, when the house of commons were at any time brought to make unwary concessions to the crown they also showed their freedom by a speedy retractation of them. Henry, though he entertained a perpetual and well grounded jealousy of the family of Mortimer, allowed not their name to be once mentioned in parliament; and as none of the rebels had ventured to declare the earl of Marche king, he never attempted to procure, what would not have been refused him, an express declaration against the claim of that nobleman; because he knew that such a declaration, in the present circumstances, would have no authority, and would only serve to revive the memory of Mortimer’s title in the minds of the people. He proceeded in his purpose after a more artful and covert manner. He procured a settlement of the crown on himself and his heirs male,[*] thereby tacitly excluding the females, and transferring the Salic law into the English government. He thought that, though the house of Plantagenet had at first derived their title from a female, this was a remote event, unknown to the generality of the people; and if he could once accustom them to the practice of excluding women, the title of the earl of Marche would gradually be forgotten and neglected by them. But he was very unfortunate in this attempt. During the long contests with France, the injustice of the Salic law had been so much exclaimed against by the nation, that a contrary principle had taken deep root in the minds of men; and it was now become impossible to eradicate it. The same house of commons, therefore, in a subsequent session, apprehensive that they had overturned the foundations of the English government, and that they had opened the door to more civil wars than might ensue even from the irregular elevation of the house of Lancaster, applied with such earnestness for a new settlement of the crown, that Henry yielded to their request, and agreed to the succession of the princesses of his family;[**] a certain proof that nobody was, in his heart, satisfied with the king’s title to the crown, or knew on what principle to rest it.

During this reign, whenever the House of Commons was a bit too hasty in granting concessions to the crown, they quickly regained their autonomy by retracting those concessions. Henry, despite having a constant and justified paranoia about the Mortimer family, never allowed their name to be mentioned in parliament. Since none of the rebels dared to name the Earl of Marche as king, he never sought what wouldn't have been denied, a clear statement against that nobleman's claim; he understood that such a statement, under the current circumstances, would lack authority and only serve to remind people of Mortimer’s title. Instead, he pursued his agenda in a more cunning and discreet way. He arranged for the crown to settle on himself and his male heirs,[*] effectively excluding females and implementing the Salic law into English governance. He believed that, even though the House of Plantagenet initially derived their title from a woman, this fact was a distant event unknown to most people; if he could get them accustomed to the idea of excluding women, the Earl of Marche’s title would eventually be forgotten. However, he was quite unfortunate in this endeavor. During the prolonged conflicts with France, the public had voiced so much against the injustice of the Salic law that an opposing principle had taken deep root in people’s minds, making it impossible to erase. Therefore, in a later session, the same House of Commons, fearing that they had undermined the foundations of English governance and that they had opened the door to even more civil wars than could arise from the irregular rise of the House of Lancaster, fervently requested a new settlement of the crown. Henry conceded to their demands and accepted the succession of his family’s princesses;[**] this was clear evidence that no one was truly satisfied with the king’s claim to the crown or knew what principle to base it on.

But though the commons, during this reign, showed a laudable zeal for liberty in their transactions with the crown, their efforts against the church were still more extraordinary, and seemed to anticipate very much the spirit which became so general in little more than a century afterwards. I know that the credit of these passages rests entirely on one ancient historian;[***] but that historian was contemporary, was a clergyman, and it was contrary to the interests of his order to preserve the memory of such transactions, much more to forge precedents which posterity might some time be tempted to imitate.

But even though the common people, during this time, showed a commendable enthusiasm for freedom in their dealings with the crown, their actions against the church were even more remarkable and seemed to foreshadow the widespread spirit that became common just over a century later. I know that the accuracy of these events relies entirely on one ancient historian;[***] but that historian was contemporary, was a clergyman, and it was against the interests of his position to remember such events, let alone to create examples that future generations might be tempted to follow.

     * Cotton, p. 454.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 462.

     *** Walsingham.
     * Cotton, p. 454.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 462.

     *** Walsingham.

This is a truth so evident, that the most likely way of accounting for the silence of the records on this head, is by supposing that the authority of some churchmen was so great as to procure a razure, with regard to these circumstances, which the indiscretion of one of that order has happily preserved to us.

This is such an obvious truth that the most plausible explanation for the silence of the records on this matter is that the influence of certain church leaders was so strong that they managed to have these details erased. Fortunately, the carelessness of one individual in that group has left us with this information.

In the sixth of Henry, the commons, who had been required to grant supplies, proposed in plain terms to the king, that he should seize all the temporalities of the church, and employ them as a perpetual fund to serve the exigencies of the state. They insisted that the clergy possessed a third of the lands of the kingdom; that they contributed nothing to the public burdens; and that their riches tended only to disqualify them from performing their ministerial functions with proper zeal and attention. When this address was presented, the archbishop of Canterbury, who then attended the king, objected that the clergy, though they went not in person to the wars, sent their vassals and tenants in all cases of necessity; while at the same time they themselves, who staid at home, were employed night and day in offering up their prayers for the happiness and prosperity of the state. The speaker smiled, and answered without reserve, that he thought the prayers of the church but a very slender supply. The archbishop, however, prevailed in the dispute; the king discouraged the application of the commons; and the lords rejected the bill which the lower house had framed for stripping the church of her revenues.[*]

In the sixth year of Henry’s reign, the common people, who had been asked to provide funding, straightforwardly suggested to the king that he should take control of all the church’s assets and use them as a permanent source of income for the state’s needs. They argued that the clergy owned a third of the land in the kingdom, contributed nothing to the public expenses, and that their wealth only made them less effective in carrying out their ministerial duties with the necessary enthusiasm and focus. When this proposal was presented, the Archbishop of Canterbury, who was attending the king at the time, countered that although the clergy didn’t fight in wars themselves, they sent their servants and tenants in times of need; while those who stayed home were dedicated to praying day and night for the happiness and success of the state. The speaker smirked and replied bluntly that he considered the church's prayers to be a very meager resource. However, the archbishop won the argument; the king rejected the commons' proposal, and the lords dismissed the bill that the lower house had created to take the church’s revenues.[*]

     * Walsing. p. 371. Ypod. Neust. p. 563.
     * Walsing. p. 371. Ypod. Neust. p. 563.

The commons were not discouraged by this repulse: in the eleventh of the king, they returned to the charge with more zeal than before: they made a calculation of all the ecclesiastical revenues, which, by their account, amounted to four hundred and eighty-five thousand marks a year, and contained eighteen thousand four hundred ploughs of land. They proposed to divide this property among fifteen new earls, one thousand five hundred knights, six thousand esquires, and a hundred hospitals, besides twenty thousand pounds a year, which the king might take for his own use; and they insisted, that the clerical functions would be better performed than at present by fifteen thousand parish priests, paid at the rate of seven marks apiece of yearly stipend.[*] This application was accompanied with an address for mitigating the statutes enacted against the Lollards, which shows from what source the address came. The king gave the commons a severe reply and further to satisfy the church, and to prove that he was quite in earnest, he ordered a Lollard to be burned before the dissolution of the parliament.[**]

The common people weren't discouraged by this setback: in the eleventh year of the king’s reign, they came back with even more determination than before. They calculated all the church revenues, which they claimed amounted to four hundred and eighty-five thousand marks a year and included eighteen thousand four hundred plots of land. They proposed to distribute this wealth among fifteen new earls, one thousand five hundred knights, six thousand squires, and a hundred hospitals, in addition to allowing the king twenty thousand pounds a year for his personal use. They argued that fifteen thousand parish priests, each paid seven marks a year, would do a better job of performing clerical duties than the current setup. This proposal was accompanied by a request to ease the laws against the Lollards, indicating where the request originated. The king responded harshly to the common people, and to further appease the church and demonstrate his seriousness, he ordered a Lollard to be executed by burning before the parliament was dissolved.

     * Walsing. p. 379. Tit. Livius.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 627. Otterborne> p. 267.
     * Walsing. p. 379. Tit. Livius.

     ** Rymer, vol. viii. p. 627. Otterborne> p. 267.

1413.

1413.

We have now related almost all the memorable transactions of this reign, which was busy and active, but produced few events that deserve to be transmitted to posterity. The king was so much employed in defending his crown, which he had obtained by unwarrantable means, and possessed by a bad title, that he had little leisure to look abroad, or perform any action which might redound to the honor and advantage of the nation. His health declined some months before his death; he was subject to fits, which bereaved him, for the time, of his senses; and though he was yet in the flower of his age, his end was visibly approaching. He expired at Westminster, in the forty-sixth year of his age, and the thirteenth of his reign.

We have now covered almost all the significant events of this reign, which was busy and active but produced few noteworthy occurrences that are worth remembering. The king was so focused on defending his crown, which he had acquired through questionable means and held by a weak claim, that he had little time to look outward or take actions that could enhance the honor and benefit of the nation. His health started to decline several months before his death; he suffered from fits that temporarily took away his senses; and even though he was still in the prime of his life, his end was clearly near. He passed away at Westminster, in his forty-sixth year and the thirteenth of his reign.

The great popularity which Henry enjoyed before he attained the crown, and which had so much aided him in the acquisition of it, was entirely lost many years before the end of his reign; and he governed his people more by terror than by affection, more by his own policy than by their sense of duty or allegiance. When men came to reflect, in cool blood, on the crimes which had led him to the throne; the rebellion against his prince; the deposition of a lawful king, guilty sometimes, perhaps, of oppression, but more frequently of indiscretion; the exclusion of the true heir; the murder of his sovereign and near relation; these were such enormities as drew on him the hatred of his subjects, sanctified all the rebellions against him, and made the executions, though not remarkably severe, which he found necessary for the maintenance of his authority, appear cruel as well as iniquitous to the people. Yet, without pretending to apologize for these crimes, which must ever be held in detestation, it may be remarked, that he was insensibly led into this blamable conduct by a train of incidents which few men possess virtue enough to withstand. The injustice with which his predecessor had treated him, in first condemning him to banishment, then despoiling him of his patrimony, made him naturally think of revenge, and of recovering his lost rights; the headlong zeal of the people hurried him into the throne; the care of his own security, as well as his ambition, made him a usurper; and the steps have always been so few between the prisons of princes and their graves, that we need not wonder that Richard’s fate was no exception to the general rule. All these considerations make Henry’s situation, if he retained any sense of virtue, much to be lamented; and the inquietude with which he possessed his envied greatness, and the remorses by which, it is said, he was continually haunted, render him an object of our pity, even when seated upon the throne. But it must be owned, that his prudence, and vigilance, and foresight, in maintaining his power, were admirable; his command of temper remarkable; his courage, both military and political, without blemish; and he possessed many qualities which fitted him for his high station, and which rendered his usurpation of it, though pernicious in after times, rather salutary, during his own reign, to the English nation.

The immense popularity that Henry had before he became king, which greatly helped him gain the crown, was completely lost many years before his reign ended. He ruled his people more through fear than through love, relying more on his own plans than on their sense of duty or loyalty. When people started to reflect calmly on the crimes that brought him to power—the rebellion against his ruler, the ousting of a legitimate king who was sometimes guilty of oppression but often just imprudent, the exclusion of the rightful heir, the murder of his sovereign and close relative—those were such heinous acts that they earned him the hatred of his subjects. They justified all rebellions against him and made the executions he deemed necessary to maintain his authority, though not particularly harsh, seem both cruel and unjust to the people. However, while we shouldn't excuse these horrible deeds, which will always be looked upon with disdain, it's worth noting that he was gradually led into this blameworthy behavior by a series of events that few people could resist. The unfair treatment he received from his predecessor, who first exiled him and then stripped him of his inheritance, naturally drove him to think about revenge and reclaiming his lost rights. The reckless passion of the people rushed him into power, and his need for security, combined with his ambition, turned him into a usurper. Historically, the distance between the prisons of princes and their graves is often very short, so it’s not surprising that Richard's fate was no exception. All these factors make Henry’s situation, if he had any sense of virtue, quite tragic. The unease that came with his coveted position and the guilt that reportedly plagued him render him a figure of pity, even while sitting on the throne. Still, it's important to recognize that his wisdom, vigilance, and foresight in maintaining his power were impressive—his self-control was remarkable, his courage, both in battle and politics, was impeccable, and he had many qualities that suited him for his high office. In his own time, his usurpation was somewhat beneficial to the English nation, despite the issues it caused later on.

Henry was twice married: by his first wife, Mary deBohun, daughter and coheir of the earl of Hereford, he had four sons, Henry, his successor in the throne, Thomas, duke of Clarence, John, duke of Bedford, and Humphrey, duke of Glocester: and two daughters, Blanche and Philippa; the former married to the duke of Bavaria, the latter to the king of Denmark. His second wife, Jane, whom he married after he was king, and who was daughter of the king of Navarre, and widow of the duke of Brittany, brought him no issue.

Henry was married twice. With his first wife, Mary deBohun, the daughter and coheir of the Earl of Hereford, he had four sons: Henry, who succeeded him on the throne, Thomas, Duke of Clarence, John, Duke of Bedford, and Humphrey, Duke of Gloucester. He also had two daughters, Blanche and Philippa; Blanche married the Duke of Bavaria, and Philippa married the King of Denmark. His second wife, Jane, whom he married after becoming king, was the daughter of the King of Navarre and the widow of the Duke of Brittany, but they had no children together.

By an act of the fifth of this reign, it is made felony to cut out any person’s tongue, or put out his eyes; crimes which, the act says, were very frequent. This savage spirit of revenge denotes a barbarous people; though, perhaps, it was increased by the prevailing factions and civil commotions.

By a law from the fifth year of this reign, it's now a felony to cut out someone's tongue or to put out their eyes; these crimes were, according to the law, quite common. This brutal desire for revenge reflects a barbaric society; although, it may have been fueled by the ongoing factions and civil unrest.

Commerce was very little understood in this reign, as in all the preceding. In particular, a great jealousy prevailed against merchant strangers; and many restraints were by law imposed upon them; namely, that they should lay out in English manufactures or commodities all the money acquired by the sale of their goods; that they should not buy or sell with one another; and that all their goods should be disposed of three months after importation.[*]

Commerce was hardly understood during this reign, just like in all the previous ones. There was a strong jealousy towards foreign merchants, leading to many legal restrictions against them. Specifically, they were required to spend all the money made from selling their goods on English-made products or commodities; they were prohibited from buying or selling to each other; and all their goods had to be sold within three months of importation.[*]

     * 4 Henry IV. cap. 15, and 5 Henry IV. cap. 9.
     * 4 Henry IV. cap. 15, and 5 Henry IV. cap. 9.

This last clause was found so inconvenient, that it was soon after repealed by parliament.

This last clause was found to be so inconvenient that it was quickly repealed by parliament.

It appears that the expense of this king’s household amounted to the yearly sum of nineteen thousand five hundred pounds, money of that age.[*]

It seems that the cost of this king’s household totaled nineteen thousand five hundred pounds a year, in the currency of that time.[*]

     * Rymer, tom. viii. p. 610.
     * Rymer, tom. viii. p. 610.

Guicciardin tells us, that the Flemings in this century learned from Italy all the refinements in arts, which they taught the rest of Europe. The progress, however, of the arts was still very slow and backward in England.

Guicciardin tells us that the Flemings in this century learned all the art refinements from Italy, which they then taught to the rest of Europe. However, the advancement of the arts in England was still very slow and lagging behind.





CHAPTER XIX.

1_256_henry5.jpg  Henry V.




HENRY V.

1413.

1413.

THE many jealousies to which Henry IV.‘s situation naturally exposed him, had so infected his temper, that he had entertained unreasonable suspicions with regard to the fidelity of his eldest son; and during the latter years of his life, he had excluded that prince from all share in public business, and was even displeased to see him at the head of armies, where his martial talents, though useful to the support of government, acquired him a renown, which he thought might prove dangerous to his own authority. The active spirit of young Henry, restrained from its proper exercise, broke out into extravagances of every kind; and the riot of pleasure, the frolic of debauchery, the outrage of wine, filled the vacancies of a mind better adapted to the pursuits of ambition and the cares of government. This course of life threw him among companions, whose disorders, if accompanied with spirit and humor, he indulged and seconded; and he was detected in many sallies, which, to severer eyes, appeared totally unworthy of his rank and station. There even remains a tradition that, when heated with liquor and jollity, he scrupled not to accompany his riotous associates in attacking the passengers on the streets and highways, and despoiling them of their goods; and he found an amusement in the incidents which the terror and regret of these defenceless people produced on such occasions. This extreme of dissoluteness proved equally disagreeable to his father, as that eager application to business which had at first given him occasion of jealousy; and he saw in his son’s behavior the same neglect of decency, the same attachment to low company, which had degraded the personal character of Richard, and which, more than all his errors in government, had tended to overturn his throne. But the nation in general considered the young prince with more indulgence; and observed so many gleams of generosity, spirit, and magnanimity, breaking continually through the cloud which a wild conduct threw over his character, that they never ceased hoping for his amendment; and they ascribed all the weeds, which shot up in that rich soil, to the want of proper culture and attention in the king and his ministers. There happened an incident which encouraged these agreeable views, and gave much occasion for favorable reflections to all men of sense and candor. A riotous companion of the prince’s had been indicted before Gascoigne, the chief justice, for some disorders; and Henry was not ashamed to appear at the bar with the criminal, in order to give him countenance and protection. Finding that his presence had not overawed the chief justice, he proceeded to insult that magistrate on his tribunal; but Gascoigne, mindful of the character which he then bore, and the majesty of the sovereign and of the laws which he sustained, ordered the prince to be carried to prison for his rude behavior.[*] The spectators were agreeably disappointed, when they saw the heir of the crown submit peaceably to this sentence, make reparation for his error by acknowledging it, and check his impetuous nature in the midst of its extravagant career.

The many jealousies that Henry IV’s position naturally exposed him to had so affected his temperament that he developed unreasonable doubts about his eldest son’s loyalty. In the latter years of his life, he excluded the prince from all public affairs and was even unhappy to see him leading armies, where his skills in battle, despite being useful for the government, earned him a reputation that Henry IV thought could threaten his own authority. Young Henry's active spirit, unable to pursue its rightful purpose, erupted into all kinds of recklessness; he filled his time with parties, debauchery, and drunkenness, all of which distracted his mind that was better suited for ambition and governance. This lifestyle led him to surround himself with companions whose rowdiness, if spirited and humorous, he indulged in and supported. He got caught up in many escapades that, to stricter observers, seemed completely unworthy of his status. There’s even a rumor that when he was drunk and merry, he didn't hesitate to join his wild friends in attacking passersby in the streets and stealing from them, finding amusement in the fear and regret of those defenseless people. This extreme way of living displeased his father just as much as his earlier zealous commitment to business, which had initially caused the king’s jealousy. He saw in his son’s actions the same disregard for propriety and the same attachment to low company that had tarnished Richard's reputation and contributed to his downfall more than any of his failures in governance. However, the public viewed the young prince with more leniency, noticing so many glimpses of generosity, spirit, and nobility shining through the shadow cast by his wild behavior that they continued to hope for his improvement, attributing all the flaws in that promising character to the lack of proper guidance and attention from the king and his advisors. An event occurred that bolstered these hopeful sentiments and sparked positive reflections among reasonable and fair-minded people. A rowdy companion of the prince had been charged before Chief Justice Gascoigne for some misdeeds, and Henry was not embarrassed to stand beside the accused in order to support and protect him. Realizing that his presence didn’t intimidate the chief justice, he then proceeded to insult the magistrate from the stand; but Gascoigne, aware of the dignity he held and the authority of the crown and laws he represented, ordered that the prince be taken to jail for his disrespectful conduct. The audience was pleasantly surprised when they saw the heir to the throne accept this sentence without resistance, acknowledge his mistake, and curb his impulsive behavior amid its wild excesses.

The memory of this incident, and of many others of a like nature, rendered the prospect of the future reign nowise disagreeable to the nation, and increased the joy which the death of so unpopular a prince as the late king naturally occasioned. The first steps taken by the young prince confirmed all those prepossessions entertained in his favor.[**] He called together his former companions, acquainted them with his intended reformation, exhorted them to imitate his example, but strictly inhibited them, till they had given proofs of their sincerity in this particular, from appearing any more in his presence; and he thus dismissed them with liberal presents.[***]

The memory of this incident, along with many others like it, made the idea of the future reign quite agreeable to the nation and increased the joy that the death of such an unpopular king as the late monarch naturally brought. The first actions taken by the young prince confirmed all the positive expectations people had about him. He gathered his former friends, informed them of his plans for reform, encouraged them to follow his lead, but firmly instructed them not to show up in his presence again until they proved their sincerity in this matter. He then sent them away with generous gifts.

     * Hall, fol, 33.

     ** Walsing, p. 382.

     *** Hall, fol. 33. Holingshed, p. 543. Godwin’s Life of
     Henry V, p. 1
     * Hall, fol, 33.

     ** Walsing, p. 382.

     *** Hall, fol. 33. Holingshed, p. 543. Godwin’s Life of 
     Henry V, p. 1

The wise ministers of his father, who had checked his riots, found that they had unknowingly been paying the highest court to him; and were received with all the marks of favor and confidence. The chief justice himself, who trembled to approach the royal presence, met with praises instead of reproaches for his past conduct, and was exhorted to persevere in the same rigorous and impartial execution of the laws. The surprise of those who expected an opposite behavior, augmented their satisfaction; and the character of the young king appeared brighter than if it had never been shaded by any errors.

The wise advisors of his father, who had kept his outbursts in check, realized that they had unknowingly been reporting to him; and they were welcomed with all the signs of favor and trust. The chief justice himself, who had been nervous about meeting the king, received praise instead of criticism for his past actions and was encouraged to continue enforcing the laws rigorously and fairly. The shock of those who anticipated a different reaction only added to their satisfaction, and the young king’s reputation seemed even more impressive than if it had never been tarnished by any mistakes.

But Henry was anxious not only to repair his own misconduct, but also to make amends for those iniquities into which policy or the necessity of affairs had betrayed his father. He expressed the deepest sorrow for the fate of the unhappy Richard, did justice to the memory of that unfortunate prince, even performed his funeral obsequies with pomp and solemnity, and cherished all those who had distinguished themselves by their loyalty and attachment towards him.[*] Instead of continuing the restraints which the jealousy of his father had imposed on the earl of Marche, he received that young nobleman with singular courtesy and favor; and by this magnanimity so gained on the gentle and unambitious nature of his competitor, that he remained ever after sincerely attached to him, and gave him no disturbance in his future government. The family of Piercy was restored to its fortune and honors.[**] The king seemed ambitious to bury all party distinctions in oblivion: the instruments of the preceding reign, who had been advanced from their blind zeal for the Lancastrian interests, more than from their merits, gave place every where to men of more honorable characters; virtue seemed now to have an open career, in which it might exert itself: the exhortations, as well as example of the prince, gave it encouragement: all men were unanimous in their attachment to Henry; and the defects of his title were forgotten, amidst the personal regard which was universally paid to him.

But Henry was eager not only to mend his own mistakes but also to make up for the wrongs that circumstances or the demands of the situation had led his father into. He deeply mourned the fate of the unfortunate Richard, honoring the memory of that tragic prince by holding an elaborate funeral and showing respect to those who had stood by him with loyalty and support.[*] Instead of keeping the restrictions that his father’s jealousy had placed on the Earl of Marche, he welcomed that young nobleman with extraordinary kindness and favor; this generosity won over the gentle and unambitious nature of his rival, who remained sincerely loyal to him from then on and caused no trouble during his future reign. The Piercy family was restored to its wealth and status.[**] The king seemed determined to erase all party divisions: those who had risen during the previous reign out of blind loyalty to the Lancastrian cause, rather than merit, were replaced by individuals of more respected character; virtues now seemed to have a clear path to thrive. The prince’s encouragement and example supported this shift: everyone rallied around Henry, and the flaws in his claim to the throne were overshadowed by the genuine affection people felt for him.

There remained among the people only one party distinction, which was derived from religious differences, and which, as it is of a peculiar and commonly a very obstinate nature, the popularity of Henry was not able to overcome. The Lollards were every day increasing in the kingdom, and were become a formed party, which appeared extremely dangerous to the church, and even formidable to the civil authority.[***] The enthusiasm by which these sectaries were generally actuated the great alterations which they pretended to introduce, the hatred which they expressed against the established hierarchy, gave an alarm to Henry; who, either from a sincere attachment to the ancient religion, or from a dread of the unknown consequences which attend all important changes, was determined to execute the laws against such bold innovators.

There was only one political division left among the people, based on religious differences, which was particularly stubborn and couldn't be overcome by Henry's popularity. The Lollards were growing in numbers across the kingdom and had formed a solid group that seemed extremely threatening to the church and even posed a challenge to civil authority. The passion that drove these members for the significant changes they sought and their expressed hatred for the established hierarchy alarmed Henry. Whether out of genuine loyalty to the traditional religion or fear of the unpredictable outcomes of major changes, he was intent on enforcing the laws against such daring innovators.

     * Hist. Croyland. Contin. Hall, fol. 34. Holing, p. 544.

     ** Holing, p. 545.

     *** Walsing. p. 382.
     * Hist. Croyland. Contin. Hall, fol. 34. Holing, p. 544.

     ** Holing, p. 545.

     *** Walsing. p. 382.

The head of this sect was Sir John Oldcastle, Lord Cobham, a nobleman who had distinguished himself by his valor and his military talents, and had, on many occasions, acquired the esteem both of the late and of the present king.[*] His high character and his zeal for the new sect pointed him out to Arundel, archbishop of Canterbury, as the proper victim of ecclesiastical severity, whose punishment would strike a terror into the whole party, and teach them that they must expect no mercy under the present administration. He applied to Henry for a permission to indict Lord Cobham;[**] but the generous nature of the prince was averse to such sanguinary methods of conversion. He represented to the primate, that reason and conviction were the best expedients for supporting truth; that all gentle means ought first to be tried, in order to reclaim men from error; and that he himself would endeavor, by a conversation with Cobham, to reconcile him to the Catholic faith. But he found that nobleman obstinate in his opinions, and determined not to sacrifice truths of such infinite moment to his complaisance for sovereigns.[***]

The leader of this sect was Sir John Oldcastle, Lord Cobham, a nobleman known for his bravery and military skills, who had earned the respect of both the late and current king on many occasions.[*] His strong character and passion for the new sect made him a prime target for Arundel, the archbishop of Canterbury, who saw him as the perfect victim for severe ecclesiastical punishment. This would instill fear in the entire group and show them that they could expect no mercy from the current administration. He asked Henry for permission to charge Lord Cobham;[**] however, the prince’s generous nature was against such violent methods of conversion. He told the archbishop that reason and belief were the best ways to uphold the truth and that all gentle approaches should be tried first to bring people back from error. He also said he would talk with Cobham to try to reconcile him with the Catholic faith. But he found that nobleman stubborn in his beliefs, unwilling to sacrifice truths that were of such great importance for the sake of pleasing rulers.[***]

     * Walsing. p 382.

     ** Fox’s Acts and Monuments, p. 513.

     *** Rymer, vol ix. p. 61. Walsing. p. 383.
     * Walsing, p. 382.

     ** Fox's Acts and Monuments, p. 513.

     *** Rymer, vol. IX, p. 61. Walsing, p. 383.

Henry’s principles of toleration, or rather his love of the practice, could carry him no farther; and he then gave full reins to ecclesiastical severity against the inflexible heresiarch. The primate indicted Cobham, and with the assistance of his three suffragans, the bishops of London, Winchester, and St. David’s, condemned him to the flames for his erroneous opinions. Cobham, who was confined in the Tower, made his escape before the day appointed for his execution. The bold spirit of the man, provoked by persecution and stimulated by zeal, was urged to attempt the most criminal enterprises; and his unlimited authority over the new sect proved that he well merited the attention of the civil magistrate. He formed in his retreat very violent designs against his enemies; and despatching his emissaries to all quarters, appointed a general rendezvous of the party, in order to seize the person of the king at Eltham, and put their persecutors to the sword.[*]

Henry’s principles of tolerance, or rather his enjoyment of the practice, could only take him so far; then he fully unleashed the church's harshness against the unyielding heretic. The archbishop charged Cobham, and with the help of his three bishops—those of London, Winchester, and St. David’s—condemned him to be burned for his misguided beliefs. Cobham, who was locked up in the Tower, managed to escape before the day set for his execution. His brave spirit, stirred by persecution and motivated by passion, pushed him to attempt the most reckless schemes. His complete authority over the new sect showed that he caught the attention of the civil authorities. In his hiding place, he devised very radical plans against his enemies and sent out his agents to various places, calling for a general meeting of his followers to capture the king at Eltham and take revenge on their oppressors.

1414.

1414.

Henry, apprised of their intention, removed to Westminster: Cobham was not discouraged by this disappointment; but changed the place of rendezvous to the field near St. Giles; the king, having shut the gates of the city, to prevent any reënforcement to the Lollards from that quarter, came into the field in the night-time, seized such of the conspirators as appeared, and afterwards laid hold of the several parties who were hastening to the place appointed. It appeared, that a few only were in the secret of the conspiracy; the rest implicitly followed their leaders: but upon the trial of the prisoners, the treasonable designs of the sect were rendered certain, both from evidence and from the confession of the criminals themselves.[**] Some were executed; the greater number pardoned.[***] Cobham himself, who made his escape by flight, was not brought to justice till four years after; when he was hanged as a traitor; and his body was burnt on the gibbet, in execution of the sentence pronounced against him as a heretic.[****] This criminal design, which was perhaps somewhat aggravated by the clergy, brought discredit upon the party, and checked the progress of that sect, which had embraced the speculative doctrines of Wickliffe, and at the same time aspired to a reformation of ecclesiastical abuses.

Henry, aware of their plans, moved to Westminster. Cobham wasn’t discouraged by this setback; instead, he changed the meeting place to the field near St. Giles. The king, having closed the city gates to prevent any reinforcements to the Lollards, went into the field at night, captured those conspirators who showed up, and later apprehended several groups heading to the designated spot. It turned out that only a few were aware of the conspiracy; the others were simply following their leaders. However, during the trial of the prisoners, the treasonous intentions of the sect were confirmed through evidence and the confessions of the criminals themselves.[**] Some were executed; the majority were pardoned.[***] Cobham, who escaped by fleeing, wasn’t brought to justice until four years later when he was hanged as a traitor; his body was burned on the gallows, as part of the sentence against him for heresy.[****] This criminal plot, which was perhaps somewhat exaggerated by the clergy, discredited the group and hindered the progress of that sect, which had adopted the ideas of Wycliffe and simultaneously aimed to reform church abuses.

     * Walsing. p. 385.

     ** Cotton, p. 554. Hall, fol. 35. Holing, p. 544.

     *** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 119, 129, 193.

     **** Walsing. p. 400. Otterborne, p. 280. Holing, p. 561.
     * Walsing. p. 385.

     ** Cotton, p. 554. Hall, fol. 35. Holing, p. 544.

     *** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 119, 129, 193.

     **** Walsing. p. 400. Otterborne, p. 280. Holing, p. 561.

These two points were the great objects of the Lollards; but the bulk of the nation was not affected in the same degree by both of them. Common sense and obvious reflection had discovered to the people the advantages of a reformation in discipline; but the age was not yet so far advanced as to be seized with the spirit of controversy, or to enter into those abstruse doctrines which the Lollards endeavored to propagate throughout the kingdom. The very notion of heresy alarmed the generality of the people: innovation in fundamental principles was suspicious: curiosity was not, as yet, a sufficient counterpoise to authority; and even many, who were the greatest friends to the reformation of abuses, were anxious to express their detestation of the speculative tenants of the Wickliffites, which, they feared, threw disgrace on so good a cause. This turn of thought appears evidently in the proceedings of the parliament which was summoned immediately after the detection of Cobham’s conspiracy. That assembly passed severe laws against the new heretics: they enacted, that whoever was convicted of Lollardy before the ordinary besides suffering capital punishment according to the laws formerly established, should also forfeit his lands and goods to the king; and that the chancellor, treasurer, justices of the two benches, sheriffs, justices of the peace, and all the chief magistrates in every city and borough, should take an oath to use their utmost endeavors for the extirpation of heresy.[*] Yet this very parliament, when the king demanded supply, renewed the offer formerly pressed upon his father, and entreated him to seize all the ecclesiastical revenues, and convert them to the use of the crown.[**] The clergy were alarmed: they could offer the king no bribe which was equivalent: they only agreed to confer on him all the priories alien, which depended on capital abbeys in Normandy, and had been bequeathed to these abbeys, when that province remained united to England: and Chicheley, now archbishop of Canterbury, endeavored to divert the blow by giving occupation to the king, and by persuading him to undertake a war against France, in order to recover his lost rights to that kingdom.[***]

These two points were the main goals of the Lollards, but most people in the nation weren’t equally influenced by both. Common sense and clear thinking had shown the people the benefits of reforming discipline; however, society wasn’t far enough along to get caught up in heated debates or to delve into the complex beliefs that the Lollards tried to spread across the kingdom. The very idea of heresy frightened most people: changing fundamental ideas made them wary; curiosity wasn’t yet strong enough to challenge authority; and even many who strongly supported reforming abuses were eager to denounce the speculative views of the Wickliffites, fearing it would tarnish such a good cause. This mindset is clearly reflected in the actions of the parliament that was called immediately after the discovery of Cobham’s conspiracy. That assembly enacted harsh laws against the new heretics: they decided that anyone found guilty of Lollardy before the ordinary, in addition to facing capital punishment according to established laws, would also lose their lands and possessions to the king; and that the chancellor, treasurer, judges of the two benches, sheriffs, justices of the peace, and all the top officials in every city and borough would take an oath to do everything possible to root out heresy.[*] Yet this very parliament, when the king asked for support, renewed the suggestion previously made to his father, urging him to take all the church revenues and use them for the crown.[**] The clergy were alarmed: they couldn’t offer the king any bribe that measured up; they only agreed to give him all the alien priories that were tied to major abbeys in Normandy, which had been left to these abbeys when that province was still part of England; and Chicheley, now the archbishop of Canterbury, tried to divert the king’s attention by encouraging him to start a war against France, to reclaim his lost rights to that kingdom.[***]

     * 2 Henry V. chap. 7.

     ** Hall, fol. 35.

     *** Hall, fol. 35. 36.
     * 2 Henry V. chap. 7.

     ** Hall, fol. 35.

     *** Hall, fol. 35. 36.

It was the dying injunction of the late king to his son, not to allow the English to remain long in peace, which was apt to breed intestine commotions; but to employ them in foreign expeditions, by which the prince might acquire honor; the nobility, in sharing his dangers, might attach themselves to his person; and all the restless spirits find occupation for their inquietude. The natural disposition of Henry sufficiently inclined him to follow this advice, and the civil disorders of France, which had been prolonged beyond those of England, opened a full career to his ambition.

It was the last wish of the late king to his son, to not let the English stay in peace for too long, as that tended to cause internal conflicts; instead, he should send them on foreign missions, where the prince could gain honor, the nobles could bond with him by sharing in his risks, and all the restless individuals could find something to occupy their anxious minds. Henry's natural temperament made him inclined to follow this advice, and the ongoing civil unrest in France, which had lasted longer than that in England, provided ample opportunity for his ambition.

1415.

1415.

The death of Charles V., which followed soon after that of Edward III., and the youth of his son, Charles VI., put the two kingdoms for some time in a similar situation; and it was not to be apprehended, that either of them, during a minority, would be able to make much advantage of the weakness of the other. The jealousies also between Charles’s three uncles, the dukes of Anjou, Bern, and Burgundy, had distracted the affairs of France rather more than those between the dukes of Lancaster, York, and Gloucester. Richard’s three uncles, disordered those of England; and had carried off the attention of the French nation from any vigorous enterprise against foreign states. But in proportion as Charles advanced in years, the factions were composed; his two uncles, the dukes of Anjou and Burgundy, died; and the king himself, assuming the reins of government, discovered symptoms of genius and spirit, which revived the drooping hopes of his country. This promising state of affairs was not of long duration: the unhappy prince fell suddenly into a fit of frenzy, which rendered him incapable of exercising his authority; and though he recovered from this disorder, he was so subject to relapses, that his judgment was gradually but sensibly impaired, and no steady plan of government could be pursued by him. The administration of affairs was disputed between his brother, Lewis, duke of Orleans, and his cousin-german, John, duke of Burgundy: the propinquity to the crown pleaded in favor of the former: the latter, who, in right of his mother, had inherited the county of Flanders, which he annexed to his father’s extensive dominions, derived a lustre from his superior power: the people were divided between these contending princes; and the king, now resuming, now dropping his authority, kept the victory undecided, and prevented any regular settlement of the state by the final prevalence of either party.

The death of Charles V, which came soon after Edward III’s, along with the young age of his son, Charles VI, put the two kingdoms in a similar position for a while; and it was unlikely that either would gain much from the other's weakness during a minority. The rivalries among Charles's three uncles, the dukes of Anjou, Bern, and Burgundy, caused more disruption in France than the rivalries among the dukes of Lancaster, York, and Gloucester in England. Richard’s three uncles threw the English affairs into chaos and distracted the French nation from launching any strong attacks against foreign countries. However, as Charles grew older, the factions began to settle down; his two uncles, the dukes of Anjou and Burgundy, died, and the king himself, taking control of the government, showed signs of talent and determination, which lifted the country's hopes. This promising situation didn’t last long: the unfortunate prince suddenly fell into a fit of madness that made him unable to wield his power; and although he recovered from this episode, he was prone to relapses that gradually but noticeably impaired his judgment, preventing him from sticking to a consistent plan for governance. The management of affairs became a contest between his brother, Lewis, the duke of Orleans, and his cousin, John, the duke of Burgundy: the closeness to the crown favored the former, while the latter, who inherited the county of Flanders through his mother and integrated it into his father's vast territories, gained prestige from his greater power. The people were split between these rival princes; and the king, intermittently asserting and withdrawing his authority, kept the outcome uncertain and thwarted any settled resolution of state matters through the dominance of either faction.

At length, the dukes of Orleans and Burgundy, seeming to be moved by the cries of the nation, and by the interposition of common friends, agreed to bury all past quarrels in oblivion, and to enter into strict amity: they swore before the altar the sincerity of their friendship; the priest administered the sacrament to both of them; they gave to each other every pledge which could be deemed sacred among men: but all this solemn preparation was only a cover for the basest treachery, which was deliberately premeditated by the duke of Burgundy. He procured his rival to be assassinated in the streets of Paris: he endeavored for some time to conceal the part which he took in the crime; but being detected, he embraced a resolution still more criminal and more dangerous to society, by openly avowing and justifying it.[*]

Eventually, the dukes of Orleans and Burgundy, appearing to be influenced by the pleas of the people and the intervention of mutual friends, decided to put aside all past disputes and commit to a close friendship. They vowed their loyalty before the altar, the priest administered the sacrament to both of them, and they exchanged every promise that could be considered sacred among men. However, all this formal preparation was just a facade for the most despicable betrayal, which the duke of Burgundy had planned in advance. He arranged for his rival to be assassinated in the streets of Paris. For a while, he tried to hide his involvement in the crime, but once he was discovered, he made an even more criminal and dangerous choice by openly admitting to and justifying it.[*]

     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxvii. chap. 23, 24.
     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxvii. chap. 23, 24.

The parliament itself of Paris, the tribunal of justice, heard the harangues of the duke’s advocate in defence of assassination, which he termed tyrannicide; and that assembly, partly influenced by faction, partly overawed by power, pronounced no sentence of condemnation against this detestable doctrine.[*]

The Paris parliament, the justice tribunal, listened to the speeches from the duke’s lawyer defending the assassination, which he called tyrannicide; and that assembly, influenced by rivalries and intimidated by authority, did not issue a condemnation against this reprehensible doctrine.[*]

     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxvii. chap. 27. Monstrelet. chap. 39.
     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxvii. chap. 27. Monstrelet. chap. 39.

The same question was afterwards agitated before the council of Constance; and it was with difficulty that a feeble decision in favor of the contrary opinion, was procured from these fathers of the church, the ministers of peace and of religion. But the mischievous effects of that tenet, had they been before anywise doubtful, appeared sufficiently from the present incidents. The commission of this crime, which destroyed all trust and security, rendered the war implacable between the French parties, and cut off every means of peace and accommodation. The princes of the blood, combining with the young duke of Orleans and his brothers, made violent war on the duke of Burgundy; and the unhappy king, seized sometimes by one party, sometimes by the other, transferred alternately to each of them the appearance of legal authority. The provinces were laid waste by mutual depredations: assassinations were every where committed, from the animosity of the several leaders; or, what was equally terrible, executions were ordered, without any legal or free trial, by pretended courts of judicature. The whole kingdom was distinguished into two parties, the Burgundians and the Armagnacs; so the adherents of the young duke of Orleans were called, from the count of Armagnac, father-in-law to that prince. The city of Paris, distracted between them, but inclining more to the Burgundians, was a perpetual scene of blood and violence; the king and royal family were often detained captives in the hands of the populace; their faithful ministers were butchered or imprisoned before their face; and it was dangerous for any man, amidst these enraged factions, to be distinguished by a strict adherence to the principles of probity and honor.

The same question was later discussed at the Council of Constance; and it took a lot of effort to get a weak decision favoring the opposing view from the church leaders, those who were supposed to promote peace and religion. But the harmful effects of that belief, if there had been any doubt before, became clear from the current events. The commission of this crime, which shattered all trust and security, made the war between the French factions relentless and eliminated every possibility for peace and reconciliation. The royal princes, joining forces with the young Duke of Orleans and his brothers, waged fierce war against the Duke of Burgundy; and the unfortunate king, captured at times by one faction and at other times by the other, alternately gave each of them the appearance of legal authority. The provinces were devastated by mutual assaults: murders were committed everywhere due to the hostility among the various leaders, or, just as horrifying, executions were carried out without any legal or fair trials by so-called courts of justice. The entire kingdom was divided into two factions, the Burgundians and the Armagnacs; the followers of the young Duke of Orleans were called this because of the Count of Armagnac, who was the father-in-law of that prince. The city of Paris, torn between them but leaning more toward the Burgundians, became a constant scene of bloodshed and violence; the king and royal family were often held captive by the mob; their loyal ministers were slaughtered or imprisoned in front of them; and it was dangerous for anyone to stand out during these furious factions by strictly sticking to principles of honesty and honor.

During this scene of general violence, there rose into some consideration a body of men, which usually makes no figure in public transactions, even during the most peaceful times; and that was the university of Paris, whose opinion was sometimes demanded, and more frequently offered, in the multiplied disputes between the parties. The schism by which the church was at that time divided, and which occasioned frequent controversies in the university, had raised the professors to an unusual degree of importance; and this connection between literature and superstition had bestowed on the former a weight to which reason and knowledge are not of themselves anywise entitled among men. But there was another society, whose sentiments were much more decisive, at Paris,—the fraternity of butchers, who, under the direction of their ringleaders, had declared for the duke of Burgundy, and committed the most violent outrages against the opposite party. To counterbalance their power, the Armagnacs made interest with the fraternity of carpenters; the populace ranged themselves on one side or the other; and the fate of the capital depended on the prevalence of either party.

During this chaotic time, a group of men emerged who typically don't play a significant role in public matters, even during peaceful periods: the University of Paris. Their opinions were sometimes sought and more often offered in the many disputes between the rival factions. The split in the church at that time, which led to frequent arguments within the university, had elevated the professors' importance in an unusual way. This link between academia and superstition granted the former a weight that reason and knowledge alone don't typically carry among people. However, there was another group whose views were much more influential in Paris—the butchers' guild, which, led by their leaders, had sided with the duke of Burgundy and committed extreme acts of violence against the opposing faction. To counter their influence, the Armagnacs allied with the carpenters' guild; the public divided into factions, and the fate of the city relied on which party gained the upper hand.

The advantage which might be made of these confusions was easily perceived in England; and, according to the maxims which usually prevail among nations, it was determined to lay hold of the favorable opportunity. The late king, who was courted by both the French parties, fomented the quarrel, by alternately sending assistance to each; but the present sovereign, impelled by the vigor of youth and the ardor of ambition, determined to push his advantages to a greater length, and to carry violent war into that distracted kingdom. But while he was making preparations for this end, he tried to effect his purpose by negotiation; and he sent over ambassadors to Paris, offering a perpetual peace and alliance; but demanding Catharine, the French king’s daughter, in marriage, two millions of crowns as her portion, one million six hundred thousand as the arrears of King John’s ransom, and the immediate possession and full sovereignty of Normandy, and of all the other provinces which had been ravished from England by the arms of Philip Augustus; together with the superiority of Brittany and Flanders.[*] Such exorbitant demands show that he was sensible of the present miserable condition of France; and the terms offered by the French court, though much inferior, discover their consciousness of the same melancholy truth. They were willing to give him the princess in marriage, to pay him eight hundred thousand crowns, to resign the entire sovereignty of Guienne, and to annex to that province the country of Perigord, Rovergue Xaintonge, the Angoumois, and other territories.[**]

The advantage that could be gained from this chaos was clear in England, and in line with the usual practices among nations, it was decided to take advantage of the favorable opportunity. The late king, who was sought after by both French factions, stirred up the conflict by sending support to each side alternately. However, the current king, driven by youthful energy and ambition, planned to escalate his advantages further and wage an aggressive war in that troubled kingdom. As he prepared for this, he also attempted to achieve his goals through negotiation, sending ambassadors to Paris to offer a lasting peace and alliance, but demanding that Catharine, the French king’s daughter, be given to him in marriage, with a dowry of two million crowns, one million six hundred thousand for the outstanding balance of King John’s ransom, and the immediate possession and full control of Normandy and all the other territories that had been taken from England by Philip Augustus. He also sought supremacy over Brittany and Flanders. Such outrageous demands indicated that he was aware of France's dire situation, and although the terms offered by the French court were significantly less, they revealed their recognition of the same unfortunate reality. They were willing to marry off the princess to him, pay him eight hundred thousand crowns, give up all sovereignty over Guienne, and extend that province to include Perigord, Rovergue, Xaintonge, Angoumois, and other regions.

     * Rymer, vol. ix. p. 208.

     ** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 211.
* Rymer, vol. ix. p. 208.

** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 211.

It is reported by some historians, (see Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 500,) that the dauphin, in derision of Henry’s claims and dissolute character, sent him a box of tennis balls; intimating, that these implements of play were better adapted to him than the instruments of war. But this story is by no means credible; rejected these conditions, and scarcely hoped that his own demands would be complied with, he never intermitted a moment his preparations for war; and having assembled a great fleet and army at Southampton, having invited all the nobility and military men of the kingdom to attend him by the hopes of glory and of conquest, he came to the sea-side with a purpose of embarking on his expedition.

Some historians report (see Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 500) that the dauphin, mocking Henry’s claims and reckless character, sent him a box of tennis balls, suggesting that these playthings were more suited for him than weapons of war. However, this story is not credible; Henry rejected these conditions and hardly hoped that his own demands would be met. Nonetheless, he never stopped preparing for war. He gathered a large fleet and army at Southampton and invited all the nobility and military leaders of the kingdom to join him, driven by the promise of glory and conquest. He arrived at the seaside ready to embark on his expedition.

But while Henry was meditating conquests upon his neighbors, he unexpectedly found himself in danger from a conspiracy at home, which was happily detected in its infancy. The earl of Cambridge, second son of the late duke of York, having espoused the sister of the earl of Marche, had zealously embraced the interests of that family; and had held some conferences with Lord Scrope of Masham, and Sir Thomas Grey of Heton, about the means of recovering to that nobleman his right to the crown of England. The conspirators, as soon as detected, acknowledged their guilt to the king; [*] and Henry proceeded without delay to their trial and condemnation. The utmost that could be expected of the best king in those ages, was, that he would so far observe the essentials of justice, as not to make an innocent person a victim to his severity; but as to the formalities of law, which are often as material as the essentials themselves, they were sacrificed without scruple to the least interest or convenience. A jury of commoners was summoned: the three conspirators were indicted before them: the constable of Southampton Castle swore that they had separately confessed their guilt to him: without other evidence, Sir Thomas Grey was condemned and executed; but as the earl of Cambridge and Lord Scrope pleaded the privilege of their peerage, Henry thought proper to summon a court of eighteen barons, in which the duke of Clarence presided: the evidence given before the jury was read to them: the prisoners, though one of them was a prince of the blood, were not examined, nor produced in court, nor heard in their own defence; but received sentence of death upon this proof, which was every way irregular and unsatisfactory; and the sentence was soon after executed. The earl of Marche was accused of having given his approbation to the conspiracy, and received a general pardon from the great offers made by the court of France show that they had already entertained a just idea of Henry’s character, as well as of their own situation.

But while Henry was plotting to conquer his neighbors, he unexpectedly faced a threat from a conspiracy at home that was fortunately caught early. The Earl of Cambridge, the second son of the late Duke of York, had married the sister of the Earl of Marche and was strongly supporting that family's interests. He had held discussions with Lord Scrope of Masham and Sir Thomas Grey of Heton about how to restore the nobleman’s claim to the English crown. Once the conspirators were discovered, they confessed their guilt to the king; and Henry quickly moved forward with their trial and sentencing. The most anyone could expect from the best king of that era was that he would ensure that an innocent person wouldn’t be punished for his harshness; however, the formalities of law, which are often just as important as the core principles, were thoughtlessly overlooked for the slightest interest or convenience. A jury of common people was called: the three conspirators were charged in front of them. The constable of Southampton Castle testified that they had confessed their guilt separately; with no other evidence, Sir Thomas Grey was condemned and executed. But since the Earl of Cambridge and Lord Scrope claimed their rights as peers, Henry decided to call a court of eighteen barons, with the Duke of Clarence presiding. The evidence presented to the jury was read to them; the prisoners, despite one being a royal prince, were not questioned, brought to court, or allowed to speak in their defense, and were sentenced to death based on this proof, which was irregular and unsatisfactory in every way; the sentence was carried out shortly afterward. The Earl of Marche was accused of supporting the conspiracy but received a general pardon; the significant offers made by the French court indicated they already had a clear understanding of Henry’s character and their own situation.

The successes which the arms of England have, in different ages, obtained over those of France, have been much owing to the favorable situation of the former kingdom. The English, happily seated in an island, could make advantage of every misfortune which attended their neighbors, and were little exposed to the danger of reprisals. They never left their own country but when they were conducted by a king of extraordinary genius, or found their enemy divided by intestine factions, or were supported by a powerful alliance on the continent; and as all these circumstances concurred at present to favor their enterprise, they had reason to expect from it proportionable success. The duke of Burgundy, expelled France by a combination of the princes, had been secretly soliciting the alliance of England; [**] and Henry knew that this prince, though he scrupled at first to join the inveterate enemy of his country, would willingly, if he saw any probability of success, both assist him with his Flemish subjects, and draw over to the same side all his numerous partisans in France. Trusting, therefore, to this circumstance, but without establishing any concert with the duke, he put to sea, and landed near Harfleur, at the head of an army of six thousand men at arms, and twenty-four thousand foot, mostly archers. He immediately began the siege of that place, which was valiantly defended by D’Estouteville, and under him by De Guitri, De Gaucourt, and others of the French nobility; but as the garrison was weak, and the fortifications in bad repair, the governor was at last obliged to capitulate; and he promised to surrender the place, if he received no succor before the eighteenth of September. The day came, and there was no appearance of a French army to relieve him. Henry, taking possession of the town, placed a garrison in it, and expelled all the French inhabitants, with an intention of peopling it anew with English.

The victories that England’s forces have achieved over France throughout different times can be largely attributed to the advantageous position of England itself. The English, fortunate to be situated on an island, were able to take advantage of every misfortune that befell their neighbors and were less vulnerable to retaliation. They only left their own land when led by a particularly capable king, when their enemy was divided by internal conflicts, or when bolstered by a strong alliance on the continent; and since all these factors now aligned to support their campaign, they had good reason to expect significant success. The Duke of Burgundy, driven out of France by a coalition of princes, had been quietly seeking the alliance of England; [**] and Henry understood that although this prince hesitated at first to team up with his country's long-time enemy, he would willingly assist if he saw any chance of victory. He could not only provide support from his Flemish subjects but also rally his many supporters in France to their cause. Relying on this possibility, but without coordinating with the duke, he set sail and landed near Harfleur, leading an army of six thousand knights and twenty-four thousand foot soldiers, mostly archers. He quickly began the siege of the town, which was bravely defended by D’Estouteville, assisted by De Guitri, De Gaucourt, and other French nobles. However, since the garrison was weak and the fortifications were in poor condition, the governor eventually had to agree to terms; he promised to surrender the town if no help arrived by the eighteenth of September. That day came, and there was no sign of a French army to rescue him. Henry took control of the town, establishing a garrison and evicting all the French inhabitants with plans to settle it anew with English people.

     * Rymer, vol. ix. p. 303.

     ** St. Remi, chap. lv. Godwin, p. 65
     * Rymer, vol. ix. p. 303.

     ** St. Remi, chap. lv. Godwin, p. 65

The fatigues of this siege, and the unusual heat of the season, had so wasted the English army, that Henry could enter on no further enterprise; and was obliged to think of returning into England. He had dismissed his transports, which could not anchor in an open road upon the enemy’s coasts; and he lay under a necessity of marching by land to Calais, before he could reach a place of safety. A numerous French army of fourteen thousand men at arms and forty thousand foot, was by this time assembled in Normandy under the constable D’Albret; a force which, if prudently conducted, was sufficient either to trample down the English in the open field, or to harass and reduce to nothing their small army, before they could finish so long and difficult a march. Henry, therefore, cautiously offered to sacrifice his conquest of Harfleur for a safe passage to Calais; but his proposal being rejected, he determined to make his way by valor and conduct through all the opposition of the enemy.[*] That he might not discourage his army by the appearance of flight, or expose them to those hazards which naturally attend precipitate marches, he made slow and deliberate journeys,[*] till he reached the Somme, which he purposed to pass at the ford of Blanquetague, the same place where Edward, in a like situation, had before escaped from Philip de Valois. But he found the ford rendered impassable by the precaution of the French general, and guarded by a strong body on the opposite bank;[*] and he was obliged to march higher up the river, in order to seek for a safe passage. He was continually harassed on his march by flying parties of the enemy; saw bodies of troops on the other side ready to oppose every attempt; his provisions were cut off; his soldiers languished with sickness and fatigue; and his affairs seemed to be reduced to a desperate situation; when he was so dexterous or so fortunate as to seize, by surprise, a passage near St. Quintin, which had not been sufficiently guarded; and he safely carried over his army.[**]

The challenges of this siege, combined with the unusual heat of the season, had drained the English army to the point where Henry could not pursue any further missions; he had to think about returning to England. He had sent away his ships, which couldn't anchor in open water along the enemy’s coast, and he had to march overland to Calais before he could get to safety. By this time, a large French army of fourteen thousand knights and forty thousand infantry had gathered in Normandy under Constable D’Albret; a force that, if managed wisely, was strong enough to either defeat the English in open battle or to wear down their small army before they could complete such a long and arduous march. Therefore, Henry cautiously offered to trade his conquest of Harfleur for a safe passage to Calais; however, when his proposal was rejected, he resolved to push forward with bravery and skill despite the enemy's resistance. To avoid discouraging his troops with the look of retreat or exposing them to the risks that come with hasty marches, he moved slowly and deliberately until reaching the Somme, which he aimed to cross at the ford of Blanquetague, the same spot where Edward had previously escaped from Philip de Valois in a similar situation. But he found the ford made impassable by the French general's precautions and guarded by a strong force on the other side; thus, he had to march further up the river in search of a safe crossing. He faced constant harassment from enemy skirmishers on his march, spotted troops ready to obstruct any attempts on the other side; his supply lines were cut off, his soldiers suffered from illness and exhaustion, and his situation appeared dire, when he skillfully or fortuitously managed to seize a poorly guarded crossing near St. Quintin and successfully led his army across.

     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxxv. chap. 6. * T. Livii, p. 12

     ** St. Remi, chap, 58. * T. Livii, p. 13
     * Le Laboureur, vol. xxxv, ch. 6. * T. Livii, p. 12

     ** St. Remi, ch. 58. * T. Livii, p. 13

Henry then bent his march northwards to Calais; but he was still exposed to great and imminent danger from the enemy, who had also passed the Somme, and threw themselves full in his way, with a purpose of intercepting his retreat. After he had passed the small river of Ternois at Blangi, he was surprised to observe from the heights the whole French army drawn up in the plains of Azincour, and so posted that it was impossible for him to proceed on his march without coming to an engagement. Nothing in appearance could be more unequal than the battle upon which his safety and all his fortunes now depended. The English army was little, more than half the number which had disembarked at Harfleur; and they labored under every discouragement and necessity. The enemy was four times more numerous; was headed by the dauphin and all the princes of the blood; and was plentifully supplied with provisions of every kind. Henry’s situation was exactly similar to that of Edward at Crecy, and that of the Black Prince at Poietiers; and the memory of these great events, inspiring the English with courage, made them hope for a like deliverance from their present difficulties. The king likewise observed the same prudent conduct which had been followed by these great commanders: he drew up his army on a narrow ground between two woods, which guarded each flank; and he patiently expected in that posture the attack of the enemy.[*] Had the French constable been able either to reason justly upon the present circumstances of the two armies, or to profit by past experience, he had declined a combat, and had waited till necessity, obliging the English to advance, had made them relinquish the advantages of their situation. But the impetuous valor of the nobility, and a vain confidence in superior numbers, brought on this fatal action, which proved the source of infinite calamities to their country. The French archers on horseback and their men at arms, crowded in their ranks, advanced upon the English archers, who had fixed palisadoes in their front to break the impression of the enemy, and who safely plied them, from behind that defence, with a shower of arrows, which nothing could resist.[**]

Henry then turned his march north towards Calais, but he was still at significant risk from the enemy, who had crossed the Somme and positioned themselves directly in his path with the intent to cut off his retreat. After crossing the small river Ternois at Blangi, he was shocked to see the entire French army assembled in the plains of Azincour, making it impossible for him to continue his march without facing battle. The odds seemed overwhelmingly unfair in the fight that now determined his safety and fortune. The English army was only a little more than half the size of the force that had landed at Harfleur, and they faced many challenges and hardships. The enemy outnumbered them four to one, led by the dauphin and the princes of the royal family, and was well-stocked with supplies of all kinds. Henry’s situation was strikingly similar to that of Edward at Crecy and the Black Prince at Poitiers; the memory of these significant events inspired the English soldiers with courage, giving them hope for a similar rescue from their current troubles. The king also followed the wise strategy used by these great leaders: he positioned his army on narrow ground between two woods, which protected each side; and he patiently waited in this stance for the enemy to attack. If the French constable had been able to think clearly about the situation of the two armies, or if he had learned from past experiences, he would have avoided battle and waited until necessity forced the English to advance, which would have made them give up the advantages of their position. However, the reckless bravery of the nobility and a misguided belief in their greater numbers led to this disastrous confrontation, which brought countless hardships to their country. The French mounted archers and their armored soldiers, packed tightly in their ranks, charged toward the English archers, who had set up barricades in front of them to absorb the enemy's assault, and from behind that defense, they unleashed a barrage of arrows that nothing could withstand.

     * St. Remi, chap. 62.

     ** Walsing. p. 392. T. Livii, p. 19. Le Laboureur, liv. xxxv
     chap, 7. Monstrelet, chap. 147.
     * St. Remi, chap. 62.

     ** Walsing. p. 392. T. Livii, p. 19. Le Laboureur, liv. xxxv chap, 7. Monstrelet, chap. 147.

The clay soil, moistened by some rain which had lately fallen, proved another obstacle to the force of the French cavalry: the wounded men and horses discomposed their ranks: the narrow compass in which they were pent hindered them from recovering any order: the whole army was a scene of confusion, terror, and dismay: and Henry, perceiving his advantage, ordered the English archers, who were light and unencumbered, to advance upon the enemy, and seize the moment of victory. They fell with their battle-axes upon the French, who, in their present posture, were incapable either of flying or of making defence: they hewed them in pieces without resistance:[*] and being seconded by the men at arms who also pushed on against the enemy, they covered the field with the killed, wounded, dismounted, and overthrown.

The clay soil, dampened by some recent rain, created another obstacle for the French cavalry: the injured men and horses disrupted their ranks. The tight space they were trapped in prevented them from reestablishing order. The entire army was a scene of chaos, fear, and despair. Sensing his advantage, Henry ordered the English archers, who were light and unburdened, to move towards the enemy and seize the moment for victory. They charged in with their battle-axes against the French, who, in their current position, were unable to flee or defend themselves. They cut them down without any resistance, and supported by the armored men who also advanced against the enemy, they turned the field into a graveyard of the dead, injured, dismounted, and fallen.

     * Walsing. p. 393. Ypod. Neust. p. 584.
     * Walsing, p. 393. Ypod, Neust, p. 584.

After all appearance of opposition was over, the English had leisure to make prisoners; and having advanced with uninterrupted success to the open plain, they there saw the remains of the French rear guard, which still maintained the appearance of a line of battle. At the same time, they heard an alarm from behind: some gentlemen of Picardy, having collected about six hundred peasants, had fallen upon the English baggage, and were doing execution on the unarmed followers of the camp, who fled before them, Henry, seeing the enemy on all sides of him, began to entertain apprehensions from his prisoners; and he thought it necessary to issue general orders for putting them to death: but on discovering the truth, he stopped the slaughter, and was still able to save a great number.

After everything that looked like opposition was over, the English had time to take prisoners. They moved forward with smooth success to the open plain, where they saw the remnants of the French rear guard, which still looked like a battle line. At the same time, they heard commotion from behind: some gentlemen from Picardy, having gathered about six hundred peasants, had attacked the English supply train and were wreaking havoc on the unarmed members of the camp, who were fleeing in panic. Henry, seeing the enemy all around him, began to worry about his prisoners and thought it was necessary to order their execution. But after finding out the truth, he stopped the killing and was still able to save a large number of them.

No battle was ever more fatal to France, by the number of princes and nobility slain or taken prisoners. Among the former were the constable himself, the count of Nevers and the duke of Brabant, brothers to the duke of Burgundy; the count of Vaudemont, brother to the duke of Lorraine, the duke of Alençon, the duke of Barre, the count of Marle. The most eminent prisoners were the dukes of Orleans and Bourbon, the Counts d’Eu, Vendôme, and Richemont, and the mareschal of Boucicaut. An archbishop of Sens also was slain in this battle. The killed are computed on the whole to have amounted to ten thousand men; and as the slaughter fell chiefly upon the cavalry, it is pretended that, of these, eight thousand were gentlemen. Henry was master of fourteen thousand prisoners. The person of chief note who fell among the English, was the duke of York, who perished fighting by the king’s side, and had an end more honorable than his life. He was succeeded in his honors and fortune by his nephew, son of the earl of Cambridge, executed in the beginning of the year. All the English who were slain exceeded not forty; though some writers, with greater probability, make the number more considerable.

No battle was more devastating for France, considering the number of princes and nobles who were killed or captured. Among the slain were the constable himself, the count of Nevers, and the duke of Brabant, who were brothers of the duke of Burgundy; the count of Vaudemont, brother of the duke of Lorraine; the duke of Alençon; the duke of Barre; and the count of Marle. The most notable prisoners included the dukes of Orleans and Bourbon, the Counts d’Eu, Vendôme, and Richemont, along with the mareschal of Boucicaut. An archbishop of Sens was also killed in this battle. The total number of dead is estimated to be around ten thousand men, and since most of the casualties were among the cavalry, it's claimed that about eight thousand of these were gentlemen. Henry had control over fourteen thousand prisoners. The most notable English casualty was the duke of York, who died fighting alongside the king and had a more honorable end than his life. He was succeeded in his titles and fortunes by his nephew, the son of the earl of Cambridge, who had been executed earlier in the year. The total number of English soldiers killed did not exceed forty, although some writers suggest the number might be higher.

The three great battles of Crecy, Poictiers, and Azincour bear a singular resemblance to each other in their most considerable circumstances. In all of them there appears the same temerity in the English princes, who, without any object of moment, merely for the sake of plunder, had ventured so far into the enemy’s country as to leave themselves no retreat; and unless saved by the utmost imprudence in the French commanders, were, from their very situation, exposed to inevitable destruction. But allowance being made for this temerity, which, according to the irregular plans of war followed in those ages, seems to have been, in some measure, unavoidable there appears, in the day of action, the same presence of mind, dexterity, courage, firmness, and precaution on the part of the English; the same precipitation, confusion, and vain confidence on the part of the French: and the events were such as might have been expected from such opposite conduct. The immediate consequences too of these three great victories were similar: instead of pushing the French with vigor, and taking advantage of their consternation, the English princes, after their victory, seem rather to have relaxed their efforts, and to have allowed the enemy leisure to recover from his losses. Henry interrupted not his march a moment after the battle of Azincour; he carried his prisoners to Calais, thence to England; he even concluded a truce with the enemy; and it was not till after an interval of two years that any body of English troops appeared in France.

The three major battles of Crecy, Poictiers, and Agincourt share a striking similarity in their key aspects. In all of them, the English princes displayed the same recklessness, venturing deep into enemy territory without any significant goal, just for the sake of looting, leaving themselves with no way to retreat; and if not for the extreme foolishness of the French commanders, they would have been, due to their position, inevitably doomed. However, considering this recklessness, which seems to have been somewhat unavoidable given the irregular warfare strategies of that time, there is a consistent display of sharp thinking, skill, bravery, resolve, and caution from the English; while the French exhibited haste, disorder, and overconfidence, leading to outcomes that could be anticipated from such contrasting behavior. The immediate aftermath of these three significant victories was also alike: rather than aggressively pursuing the French and taking advantage of their disarray, the English princes, following their victory, seemed to ease their efforts, allowing the enemy time to regroup. Henry didn't pause his march for a moment after the Battle of Agincourt; he took his prisoners to Calais and then to England; he even negotiated a truce with the enemy; and it wasn't until two years later that any English troops showed up in France.

The poverty of all the European princes, and the small resources of their kingdoms, were the cause of these continual interruptions in their hostilities; and though the maxims of war were in general destructive, their military operations were mere incursions, which, without any settled plan, they carried on against each other. The lustre, however, attending the victory of Azincour, procured some supplies from the English parliament; though still unequal to the expenses of a campaign. They granted Henry an entire fifteenth of movables; and they conferred on him for life the duties of tonnage and poundage, and the subsidies on the exportation of wool and leather. This concession is more considerable than that which had been granted to Richard II. by his last parliament and which was afterwards, on his deposition, made so great an article of charge against him.

The financial struggles of all the European princes and the limited resources of their kingdoms led to constant interruptions in their conflicts. Although the principles of war were generally destructive, their military actions were just random raids, carried out against each other without any solid plan. However, the glory that came from the victory at Azincourt secured some funding from the English parliament, though it still fell short of covering the costs of a campaign. They granted Henry a full fifteenth of movable goods, and they gave him the rights to tonnage and poundage for life, along with subsidies on wool and leather exports. This concession was more significant than what Richard II had received from his last parliament, which later became a major point of accusation against him after he was deposed.

But during this interruption of hostilities from England, France was exposed to all the furies of civil war, and the several parties became every day more enraged against each other. The duke of Burgundy, confident that the French ministers and generals were entirely discredited by the misfortune at Azincour, advanced with a great army to Paris, and attempted to reinstate himself in possession of the government, as well as of the person of the king. But his partisans in that city were overawed by the court, and kept in subjection: the duke despaired of success; and he retired with his forces, which he immediately disbanded in the Low Countries.[*]

But during this break in hostilities with England, France faced the full force of civil war, and the different factions grew more and more furious with each other every day. The Duke of Burgundy, believing that the French ministers and generals had completely lost their credibility due to the disaster at Azincourt, marched a large army toward Paris, hoping to take control of the government and the king. However, his supporters in the city were intimidated by the court and kept under control. The duke lost hope for success and retreated with his troops, who he quickly disbanded in the Low Countries.[*]

1417.

1417.

He was soon after invited to make a new attempt, by some violent quarrels which broke out in the royal family. The queen, Isabella, daughter of the duke of Bavaria, who had been hitherto an inveterate enemy to the Burgundian faction, had received a great injury from the other party, which the implacable spirit of that princess was never able to forgive. The public necessities obliged the count of Armagnac, created constable of France in the place of D’Albret, to seize the great treasures which Isabella had amassed: and when she expressed her displeasure at this injury, he inspired into the weak mind of the king some jealousies concerning her conduct, and pushed him to seize, and put to the torture, and afterwards throw into the Seine, Boisbourdon, her favorite, whom he accused of a commerce of gallantry with that princess. The queen herself was sent to Tours, and confined under a guard;[**] and after suffering these multiplied insults, she no longer scrupled to enter into a correspondence with the duke of Burgundy. As her son, the dauphin Charles, a youth of sixteen, was entirely governed by the faction of Armagnac, she extended her animosity to him, and sought his destruction with the most unrelenting hatred. She had soon an opportunity of rendering her unnatural purpose effectual. The duke of Burgundy, in concert with her, entered France at the head of a great army: he made himself master of Amiens, Abbeville, Dourlens, Montreuil, and other towns in Picardy; Senlis, Rheims, Chalons, Troye, and Auxerre, declared themselves of his party.[***] He got possession of Beaumont, Pontoise, Vernon, Meulant, Montlheri, towns in the neighborhood of Paris; and carrying further his progress towards the west, he seized Etampes, Chartres, and other fortresses; and was at last able to deliver the queen, who fled to Troye, and openly declared against those ministers who, she said, detained her husband in captivity.[****]

He was soon invited to try again due to some intense disagreements that broke out in the royal family. Queen Isabella, the daughter of the Duke of Bavaria, who had previously been a staunch enemy of the Burgundian faction, felt deeply wronged by the other side, and her unforgiving nature made it impossible for her to let it go. The public demands forced the Count of Armagnac, who replaced D’Albret as the constable of France, to take the vast treasures that Isabella had gathered. When she showed her frustration over this act, he stoked the king's insecurities about her behavior and pushed him to capture, torture, and eventually throw Boisbourdon, her favorite, into the Seine, accusing him of having an affair with the queen. Isabella herself was sent to Tours and put under guard; after enduring these numerous humiliations, she no longer hesitated to reach out to the Duke of Burgundy. Since her son, the Dauphin Charles, a sixteen-year-old, was completely under the influence of the Armagnac faction, she extended her hostility towards him and pursued his downfall with relentless hatred. An opportunity soon arose for her to carry out her unnatural scheme. The Duke of Burgundy, collaborating with her, invaded France with a large army: he took control of Amiens, Abbeville, Dourlens, Montreuil, and other towns in Picardy; Senlis, Rheims, Chalons, Troyes, and Auxerre all declared support for him. He captured Beaumont, Pontoise, Vernon, Meulan, Montlhéry, towns near Paris, and continued to push westward, seizing Etampes, Chartres, and other strongholds; ultimately, he was able to rescue the queen, who fled to Troyes and openly opposed those officials who, she claimed, were holding her husband prisoner.

     * Le Laboureur, liv. xxxv. chap. 10.

     ** St. Remi, chap. 74. Monstrelet, chap. 167.

     *** St. Remi, chap. 79.

     **** St. Remi, chap. 81. Monstrelet, chap. 178, 179.
* Le Laboureur, liv. xxxv. chap. 10.

** St. Remi, chap. 74. Monstrelet, chap. 167.

*** St. Remi, chap. 79.

**** St. Remi, chap. 81. Monstrelet, chap. 178, 179.

Meanwhile the partisans of Burgundy raised a commotion in Paris, which always inclined to that faction. Lile-Adam, one of the duke’s captains, was received into the city in the night-time, and headed the insurrection of the people, which in a moment became so impetuous that nothing could oppose it. The person of the king was seized: the dauphin made his escape with difficulty; great numbers of the faction of Armagnac were immediately butchered: the count himself, and many persons of note, were thrown into prison: murders were daily committed from private animosity, under pretence of faction: and the populace, not satiated with their fury, and deeming the course of public justice too dilatory, broke into the prisons, and put to death the count of Armagnac, and all the other nobility who were there confined.[*]

Meanwhile, the supporters of Burgundy stirred up trouble in Paris, which always leaned towards that faction. Lile-Adam, one of the duke’s captains, was welcomed into the city at night and led the people's uprising, which quickly became so intense that nothing could stop it. The king was captured; the dauphin barely managed to escape; many members of the Armagnac faction were immediately killed; the count himself and several notable individuals were thrown in prison; murders were carried out daily out of personal grudges, disguised as factional conflict; and the angry crowd, unsatisfied with their rage and finding the process of public justice too slow, stormed the prisons and executed the count of Armagnac and all the other nobles who were detained there.[*]

1418.

1418.

While France was in such furious combustion, and was so ill prepared to resist a foreign enemy, Henry, having collected some treasure and levied an army, landed in Normandy at the head of twenty-five thousand men; and met with no considerable opposition from any quarter. He made himself master of Falaise; Evreux and Caen submitted to him; Pont de l’Arche opened its gates; and Henry, having subdued all the lower Normandy, and having received a reënforcement of fifteen thousand men from England,[**] formed the siege of Rouen, which was defended by a garrison of four thousand men, seconded by the inhabitants, to the number of fifteen thousand.[***] The cardinal des Ursins here attempted to incline him towards peace, and to moderate his pretensions; but the king replied to him in such terms as showed that he was fully sensible of all his present advantages: “Do you not see,” said he, “that God has led me hither as by the hand? France has no sovereign: I have just pretensions to that kingdom: every thing is here in the utmost confusion: no one thinks of resisting me. Can I have a more sensible proof, that the Being who disposes of empires has determined to put the crown of France upon my head?”[****]

While France was in chaos and poorly equipped to fend off a foreign threat, Henry raised some funds and gathered an army, landing in Normandy at the head of twenty-five thousand men with little significant opposition. He took control of Falaise; Evreux and Caen surrendered to him; Pont de l’Arche opened its gates. After conquering all of lower Normandy and receiving an additional fifteen thousand men from England,[**] he laid siege to Rouen, which was defended by a garrison of four thousand men, supported by about fifteen thousand locals.[***] The cardinal des Ursins tried to persuade him to consider peace and temper his demands, but the king responded in a way that made it clear he was fully aware of his advantages: “Don’t you see,” he said, “that God has guided me here? France has no ruler: I have a legitimate claim to that kingdom: everything is in complete disarray here: no one is trying to resist me. Can I have a clearer sign that the Being who controls empires has decided to place the crown of France on my head?”[****]

     * St. Remi, chap. 85, 86. Monstrelet, chap. 118.

     ** Walsing. p. 100.

     *** St. Remi, chap. 31

     **** Juvenal des Ursins.
     * St. Remi, chap. 85, 86. Monstrelet, chap. 118.

     ** Walsing. p. 100.

     *** St. Remi, chap. 31

     **** Juvenal des Ursins.

But though Henry had opened his mind to this scheme of ambition, he still continued to negotiate with his enemies, and endeavored to obtain more secure, though less considerable advantages. He made, at the same time, offers of peace to both parties; to the queen and duke of Burgundy on the one hand, who, having possession of the king’s person, carried the appearance of legal authority;[*] and to the dauphin on the other, who, being the undoubted heir of the monarchy, was adhered to by every one that paid any regard to the true interests of their country.[****] These two parties also carried on a continual negotiation with each other. The terms proposed on all sides were perpetually varying: the events of the war and the intrigues of the cabinet intermingled with each other: and the fate of France remained long in this uncertainty. After many negotiations, Henry offered the queen and the duke of Burgundy to make peace with them, to espouse the Princess Catharine, and to accept of all the provinces ceded to Edward III. by the treaty of Bretigni, with the addition of Normandy, which he was to receive in full and entire sovereignty.[*]

But even though Henry had considered this ambitious plan, he still kept talking to his enemies and tried to secure safer, though less significant, benefits. At the same time, he offered peace to both sides: to the queen and the duke of Burgundy, who had control over the king and appeared to have legal authority; and to the dauphin, who was the rightful heir to the throne and was supported by everyone who cared about the true interests of their country. These two parties also maintained ongoing discussions with each other. The proposals from all sides kept changing; the war's developments and the government intrigues mixed together, leaving the fate of France in a prolonged state of uncertainty. After many talks, Henry proposed to the queen and the duke of Burgundy that he would make peace with them, marry Princess Catharine, and accept all the provinces given to Edward III by the Treaty of Brétigny, along with Normandy, which he would receive in full sovereignty.

1419.

1419.

These terms were submitted to: there remained only some circumstances to adjust, in order to the entire completion of the treaty; but in this interval the duke of Burgundy secretly finished his treaty with the dauphin; and these two princes agreed to share the royal authority during King Charles’s lifetime, and to unite their arms in order to expel foreign enemies.[****]

These terms were submitted: there were just a few details left to finalize for the complete agreement; however, during this time, the Duke of Burgundy quietly completed his deal with the Dauphin. The two princes decided to share royal power for King Charles’s lifetime and to join forces to drive out foreign enemies.[****]

     * Rymer, vol. ix. p. 717, 749.

     ** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 626, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 762.

     **** Rymer, vol. ix. p. 776. St. Remi, chap. 95.
     * Rymer, vol. 9, p. 717, 749.

     ** Rymer, vol. 9, p. 626, etc.

     *** Rymer, vol. 9, p. 762.

     **** Rymer, vol. 9, p. 776. St. Remi, chap. 95.

This alliance which seemed to cut off from Henry all hopes of further success, proved in the issue the most favorable event that could have happened for his pretensions. Whether the dauphin and the duke of Burgundy were ever sincere in their mutual engagements, is uncertain; but very fatal effects resulted from their momentary and seeming union. The two princes agreed to an interview, in order to concert the means of rendering effectual their common attack on the English; but how both or either of them could with safety venture upon this conference, it seemed somewhat difficult to contrive. The assassination perpetrated by the duke of Burgundy, and still more his open avowal of the deed, and defence of the doctrine, tended to dissolve all the bands of civil society; and even men of honor, who detested the example, might deem it just, on a favorable opportunity, to retaliate upon the author. The duke, therefore, who neither dared to give, nor could pretend to expect, any trust, agreed to all the contrivances for mutual security which were proposed by the ministers of the dauphin. The two princes came to Montereau: the duke lodged in the Castle; the dauphin in the town, which was divided from the castle by the River Yonne: the bridge between them was chosen for the place of interview: two high rails were drawn across the bridge: the gates on each side were guarded, one by the officers of the dauphin, the other by those of the duke: the princes were to enter into the intermediate space by the opposite gates, accompanied each by ten persons; and with all these marks of diffidence, to conciliate their mutual friendship. But it appeared that no precautions are sufficient where laws have no place, and where all principles of honor are utterly abandoned. Tannegui de Chatel, and others of the dauphin’s retainers, had been zealous partisans of the late duke of Orleans; and they determined to seize the opportunity of revenging on the assassin the murder of that prince; they no sooner entered the rails, than they drew their swords and attacked the duke of Burgundy; his friends were astonished and thought not of making any defence; and all of them either shared his fate, or were taken prisoners by the retinue of the dauphin.[*]

This alliance, which appeared to cut off all hopes of further success for Henry, turned out to be the best thing that could have happened for his claims. Whether the dauphin and the duke of Burgundy were ever genuinely committed to their mutual agreements is unclear, but their brief and seemingly united front had disastrous consequences. The two princes arranged a meeting to discuss how they could effectively combine their efforts against the English, but it seemed tricky for either of them to safely attend this conference. The assassination carried out by the duke of Burgundy, and even more so his open confession of the act and justification of the principle behind it, threatened to unravel the bonds of civil society. Even honorable men, who disliked this example, might consider it justifiable to retaliate against the perpetrator when a chance arose. Therefore, the duke, feeling unable to trust or expect any trust in return, agreed to all the security measures proposed by the dauphin's ministers. The two princes met in Montereau: the duke stayed at the Castle, while the dauphin stayed in the town, which was separated from the castle by the River Yonne. The bridge connecting them was chosen as the meeting spot, with two high rails set up across it. Each side was guarded, one by the dauphin's officers and the other by the duke's. The princes were to enter the space between the rails through opposite gates, each accompanied by ten people, trying to establish a friendship despite these signs of mistrust. However, it became clear that no precautions are enough when there are no laws and all codes of honor are completely disregarded. Tannegui de Chatel and others loyal to the dauphin, who had been passionate supporters of the late duke of Orleans, decided to take the chance to avenge that prince’s murder by attacking the assassin. As soon as they entered the rails, they drew their swords and went after the duke of Burgundy. His friends were surprised and didn't think to defend him, and all either shared his fate or were captured by the dauphin's entourage.[*]

     * St. Remi, chap. 97. Monstrelet, chap. 211.
     * St. Remi, chap. 97. Monstrelet, chap. 211.

The extreme youth of this prince made it doubtful whether he had been admitted into the secret of the conspiracy; but as the deed was committed under his eye, by his most intimate friends, who still retained their connections with him, the blame of the action, which was certainly more imprudent than criminal, fell entirely upon him. The whole state of affairs was every where changed by this unexpected incident. The city of Paris, passionately devoted to the family of Burgundy, broke out into the highest fury against the dauphin. The court of King Charles entered from interest into the same views; and as all the ministers of that monarch had owed their preferment to the late duke, and foresaw their downfall if the dauphin should recover possession of his father’s person, they were concerned to prevent by any means the success of his enterprise. The queen, persevering in her unnatural animosity against her son, increased the general flame, and inspired into the king, as far as he was susceptible of any sentiment the same prejudices by which she herself had long been actuated. But above all, Philip, count of Charolois, now duke of Burgundy, thought himself bound by every tie of honor and of duty to revenge the murder of his father, and to prosecute the assassin to the utmost extremity. And in this general transport of rage, every consideration of national and family interest was buried in oblivion by all parties: the subjection to a foreign enemy, the expulsion of the lawful heir, the slavery of the kingdom, appeared but small evils, if they led to the gratification of the present passion.

The prince's young age made it uncertain whether he was aware of the conspiracy, but since the deed was done right in front of him by his closest friends, who still had ties to him, the blame—more foolish than criminal—fell squarely on him. The whole situation changed dramatically due to this unexpected event. The city of Paris, fiercely loyal to the Burgundy family, erupted in outrage against the dauphin. King Charles's court aligned with these interests, as all of his ministers had risen to power thanks to the late duke and feared losing their positions if the dauphin regained control over his father's affairs; they were determined to thwart his plans by any means necessary. The queen, holding onto her unnatural hatred for her son, fueled the widespread anger and influenced the king—who was only as receptive to feelings as she was—to adopt her long-held prejudices. Most importantly, Philip, count of Charolois, now duke of Burgundy, felt obligated by honor and duty to avenge his father's murder and pursue the assassin relentlessly. In this collective fury, all considerations of national and family interests were forgotten by everyone: the threat of foreign domination, the ousting of the rightful heir, and the kingdom's subjugation seemed like minor issues if they served to satisfy their current rage.

The king of England had, before the death of the duke of Burgundy, profited extremely by the distractions of France and was daily making a considerable progress in Normandy. He had taken Rouen after an obstinate siege:[*] he had made himself master of Pontoise and Gisors: he even threatened Paris, and by the terror of his arms had obliged the court to remove to Troye: and in the midst of his successes, he was agreeably surprised to find his enemies, instead of combining against him for their mutual defence, disposed to rush into his arms, and to make him the instrument of their vengeance upon each other. A league was immediately concluded at Arras between him and the duke of Burgundy. This prince, without stipulating any thing for himself, except the prosecution of his father’s murder, and the marriage of the duke of Bedford with his sister, was willing to sacrifice the kingdom to Henry’s ambition; and he agreed to every demand made by that monarch.

The king of England had, before the duke of Burgundy's death, taken full advantage of France's distractions and was making significant gains in Normandy every day. He captured Rouen after a stubborn siege; he took control of Pontoise and Gisors; he even threatened Paris, and the fear of his army forced the court to move to Troyes. Amid his successes, he was pleasantly surprised to find that his enemies, instead of uniting against him for their mutual defense, were eager to come to him and use him as a tool for revenge against each other. A pact was quickly formed in Arras between him and the duke of Burgundy. This duke, asking for nothing for himself except the pursuit of his father's murder and the marriage of the duke of Bedford to his sister, was ready to sacrifice the kingdom to Henry's ambitions and agreed to every demand made by that king.

1420.

1420.

In order to finish this astonishing treaty, which was to transfer the crown of France to a stranger, Henry went to Troye, accompanied by his brothers, the dukes of Clarence and Glocester; and was there met by the duke of Burgundy. The imbecility into which Charles had fallen, made him incapable of seeing any thing but through the eyes of those who attended him; as they, on their part, saw every thing through the medium of their passions. The treaty, being already concerted among the parties, was immediately drawn, and signed, and ratified: Henry’s will seemed to be a law throughout the whole negotiation: nothing was attended to but his advantages.

To finalize this incredible treaty, which would hand the crown of France to an outsider, Henry traveled to Troyes, accompanied by his brothers, the dukes of Clarence and Gloucester; there, he was met by the duke of Burgundy. Charles had become so feeble-minded that he could only see things through the perspective of those around him, who themselves viewed everything through the lens of their emotions. The treaty, which had already been agreed upon by the parties involved, was quickly drawn up, signed, and ratified: Henry's wishes became the law throughout the entire negotiation, with nothing considered but his benefits.

     * T. Livii, p. 69. Monstrelet, chap. 201.
     * T. Livii, p. 69. Monstrelet, chap. 201.

The principal articles of the treaty were, that Henry should espouse the Princess Catharine: that King Charles, during his lifetime, should enjoy the title and dignity of king of France: that Henry should be declared and acknowledged heir of the monarchy, and be intrusted with the present administration of the government: that that kingdom should pass to his heirs general: that France and England should forever be united under one king; but should still retain their several usages, customs, and privileges: that all the princes, peers, vassals, and communities of France should swear, that they would both adhere to the future succession of Henry, and pay him present obedience as regent: that this prince should unite his arms to those of King Charles and the duke of Burgundy, in order to subdue the adherents of Charles, the pretended dauphin: and that these three princes should make no peace or truce with him but by common consent and agreement.[*]

The main points of the treaty were that Henry would marry Princess Catharine; that King Charles would keep the title and honor of king of France during his lifetime; that Henry would be recognized as the heir to the monarchy and take charge of the current government; that the kingdom would pass to his heirs; that France and England would always be united under one king, while still keeping their own customs and privileges; that all the princes, peers, vassals, and communities of France would swear to support Henry's future succession and obey him as regent; that this prince would join forces with King Charles and the Duke of Burgundy to defeat the supporters of Charles, the rival dauphin; and that these three princes would only make peace or a truce with him by mutual agreement.

     * Rymer, vol. ix. p. 895. St. Remi, chap 101. Monstrelet,
     chap. 223.
* Rymer, vol. ix. p. 895. St. Remi, chap 101. Monstrelet, chap. 223.

Such was the tenor of this famous treaty; a treaty which, as nothing but the most violent animosity could dictate it, so nothing but the power of the sword could carry into execution. It is hard to say whether its consequences, had it taken effect, would have proved more pernicious to England or to France. It must have reduced the former kingdom to the rank of a province: it would have entirely disjointed the succession of the latter, and have brought on the destruction of every descendant of the royal family; as the houses of Orleans, Anjou, Alençon, Brittany, Bourbon, and of Burgundy itself, whose titles were preferable to that of the English princes, would on that account have been exposed to perpetual jealousy and persecution from the sovereign. There was even a palpable deficiency in Henry’s claim, which no art could palliate. For, besides the insuperable objections to which Edward III.‘s pretensions were exposed, he was not heir to that monarch: if female succession were admitted, the right had devolved on the house of Mortimer: allowing that Richard II. was a tyrant, and that Henry IV.‘s merits in deposing him were so great towards the English, as to justify that nation in placing him on the throne, Richard had nowise offended France, and his rival had merited nothing of that kingdom: it could not possibly be pretended, that the crown of France was become an appendage to that of England; and that a prince, who by any means got possession of the latter, was, without further question, entitled to the former. So that, on the whole, it must be allowed that Henry’s claim to France was, if possible, still more unintelligible than the title by which his father had mounted the throne of England.

Such was the nature of this famous treaty; a treaty that, as nothing but the most intense hostility could create it, so nothing but the power of the sword could enforce it. It's difficult to say whether its effects, if it had been implemented, would have been more harmful to England or to France. It would have lowered England to the status of a province and completely disrupted the succession of France, leading to the downfall of every descendant of the royal family. The houses of Orleans, Anjou, Alençon, Brittany, Bourbon, and even Burgundy, whose claims were stronger than those of the English princes, would consequently face ongoing jealousy and persecution from the ruling power. There was also a clear weakness in Henry’s claim that no amount of argument could fix. In addition to the insurmountable issues surrounding Edward III's claims, he was not the rightful heir to that monarch; if female succession was accepted, the right had passed to the house of Mortimer. Even assuming Richard II was a tyrant and that Henry IV’s actions to depose him were justified in the eyes of the English people, Richard hadn’t wronged France, and his rival deserved nothing from that kingdom. It couldn’t possibly be argued that the crown of France had become a mere extension of that of England; just because a prince managed to seize the latter did not mean he was automatically entitled to the former. Overall, it must be acknowledged that Henry's claim to France was, if anything, even less clear than the title by which his father had taken the throne of England.

But though all these considerations were overlooked, amidst the hurry of passion by which the courts of France and Burgundy were actuated, they would necessarily revive during times of more tranquillity; and it behoved Henry to push his present advantages, and allow men no leisure for reason or reflection. In a few days after, he espoused the Princess Catharine: he carried his father-in-law to Paris, and put himself in possession of that capital: he obtained from the parliament and the three estates a ratification of the treaty of Troye: he supported the duke of Burgundy in procuring a sentence against the murderers of his father: and he immediately turned his arms with success against the adherents of the dauphin, who, as soon as he heard of the treaty of Troye, took on him the style and authority of regent, and appealed to God and his sword for the maintenance of his title.

But even though all these factors were ignored in the heat of passion driving the courts of France and Burgundy, they would inevitably resurface during calmer times; it was important for Henry to take advantage of the situation and not give anyone time to think or reflect. A few days later, he married Princess Catharine, brought his father-in-law to Paris, and took control of that city. He secured a ratification of the Treaty of Troyes from Parliament and the three estates. He supported the Duke of Burgundy in getting a verdict against his father's murderers and quickly turned his forces against the supporters of the Dauphin, who, upon hearing of the Treaty of Troyes, declared himself regent and called upon God and his sword to defend his claim.

The first place that Henry subdued was Sens, which opened its gates after a slight resistance. With the same facility he made himself master of Montereau. The defence of Melun was more obstinate: Barbasan, the governor, held out for the space of four months against the besiegers; and it was famine alone which obliged him to capitulate. Henry stipulated to spare the lives of all the garrison, except such as were accomplices in the murder of the duke of Burgundy; and as Barbasan himself was suspected to be of the number, his punishment was demanded by Philip: but the king had the generosity to intercede for him, and to prevent his execution.[*]

The first place that Henry took was Sens, which opened its gates after a bit of resistance. He easily gained control of Montereau as well. The defense of Melun was tougher: Barbasan, the governor, held out for four months against the attackers, and it was only hunger that forced him to surrender. Henry agreed to spare the lives of the entire garrison, except for those involved in the murder of the Duke of Burgundy; since Barbasan was suspected to be among them, Philip demanded his punishment. However, the king was generous enough to intercede for him and prevent his execution.[*]

1421.

1421.

The necessity of providing supplies both of men and money, obliged Henry to go over to England; and he left the duke of Exeter, his uncle, governor of Paris during his absence. The authority which naturally attends success, procured from the English parliament a subsidy of a fifteenth; but, if we may judge by the scantiness of the supply, the nation was nowise sanguine on their king’s victories; and in proportion as the prospect of their union with France became nearer, they began to open their eyes, and to see the dangerous consequences with which that event must necessarily be attended. It was fortunate for Henry that he had other resources, besides pecuniary supplies from his native subjects. The provinces which he had already conquered maintained his troops; and the hopes of further advantages allured to his standard all men of ambitious spirits in England, who desired to signalize themselves by arms. He levied a new army of twenty-four thousand archers and four thousand horsemen,[**] and marched them to Dover, the place of rendezvous.

The need to gather both men and money forced Henry to travel to England, leaving his uncle, the Duke of Exeter, as the governor of Paris while he was away. The support that naturally comes with success allowed him to secure a subsidy of a fifteenth from the English parliament; however, judging by the limited amount, it was clear that the nation wasn’t very optimistic about their king’s victories. As the possibility of their union with France grew closer, people began to realize the serious risks that would come with it. Fortunately for Henry, he had other sources of resources besides financial help from his fellow countrymen. The territories he had already conquered were supporting his troops, and the prospect of more gains attracted ambitious individuals in England who wanted to make a name for themselves in battle. He raised a new army of twenty-four thousand archers and four thousand cavalry and marched them to Dover, the meeting point.

     * Holingshed, p. 577.

     ** Monstrelet, chap. 242.
     * Holingshed, p. 577.

     ** Monstrelet, chap. 242.

Every thing had remained in tranquillity at Paris under the duke of Exeter but there had happened, in another quarter of the kingdom, a misfortune which hastened the king’s embarkation.

Everything had stayed calm in Paris under the duke of Exeter, but in another part of the kingdom, an unfortunate event occurred that hurried the king's departure.

The detention of the young king of Scots in England had hitherto proved advantageous to Henry; and by keeping the regent in awe, had preserved, during the whole course of the French war, the northern frontier in tranquillity. But when intelligence arrived in Scotland of the progress made by Henry, and the near prospect of his succession to the crown of France, the nation was alarmed, and foresaw their own inevitable ruin, if the subjection of their ally left them to combat alone a victorious enemy, who was already so much superior in power and riches. The regent entered into the same views; and though he declined an open rupture with England, he permitted a body of seven thousand Scots, under the command of the earl of Buchan, his second son, to be transported into France for the service of the dauphin. To render this aid ineffectual, Henry had, in his former expedition, carried over the king of Scots, whom he obliged to send orders to his countrymen to leave the French service; but the Scottish general replied, that he would obey no commands which came from a king in captivity, and that a prince, while in the hands of his enemy, was nowise entitled to authority. These troops, therefore, continued still to act under the earl of Buchan: and were employed by the dauphin to oppose the progress of the duke of Clarence in Anjou. The two armies encountered at Baugé: the English were defeated: the duke himself was slain by Sir Allan Swinton, a Scotch knight, who commanded a company of men at arms: and the earls of Somerset,[*] Dorset, and Huntingdon were taken prisoners.[**] This was the first action that turned the tide of success against the English; and the dauphin, that he might both attach the Scotch to his service, and reward the valor and conduct of the earl of Buchan, honored that nobleman with the office of constable.

The detention of the young Scottish king in England had been beneficial for Henry; and by keeping the regent intimidated, it had kept the northern border calm throughout the entire French war. However, when news reached Scotland about Henry's advancements and the likelihood of his succession to the French throne, the nation became alarmed, realizing they would face certain destruction if their ally's submission left them to fight a victorious enemy alone, one that was already significantly stronger and wealthier. The regent shared these concerns; and although he avoided a direct confrontation with England, he allowed a force of seven thousand Scots, led by the Earl of Buchan, his second son, to be sent to France to support the dauphin. To undermine this assistance, Henry had previously captured the Scottish king and forced him to order his countrymen to withdraw from the French service. However, the Scottish general responded that he would not follow commands from a captive king, asserting that a prince in enemy hands had no right to authority. Therefore, these troops continued to operate under the Earl of Buchan and were utilized by the dauphin to counter the advance of the Duke of Clarence in Anjou. The two armies clashed at Baugé: the English were defeated, the duke himself was killed by Sir Allan Swinton, a Scottish knight commanding a company of men-at-arms, and the earls of Somerset, Dorset, and Huntingdon were taken prisoner. This was the first battle that changed the momentum of success against the English; and to both secure the loyalty of the Scots and reward the bravery and leadership of the Earl of Buchan, the dauphin appointed him as constable.

     * His name was John, and he was afterwards created duke of
     Somerset. He was grandson of John of Gaunt, duke of
     Lancaster. The earl of Dorset was brother to Somerset, and
     succeeded him in that title.

     ** St. Remi, chap. 110. Monstrelet, chap. 239. Hall, fol.
     76.
     * His name was John, and he was later made duke of Somerset. He was the grandson of John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster. The earl of Dorset was John's brother and took over that title after him.

     ** St. Remi, chap. 110. Monstrelet, chap. 239. Hall, fol. 76.

But the arrival of the king of England with so considerable an army, was more than sufficient to repair this loss. Henry was received at Paris with great expressions of joy, so obstinate were the prejudices of the people; and he immediately conducted his army to Chartres, which had long been besieged by the dauphin. That prince raised the siege on the approach of the English; and being resolved to decline a battle, he retired with his army.[*] Henry made himself master of Dreux without a blow: he laid siege to Meaux, at the Solicitation of the Parisians, who were much incommoded by the garrison of that place. This enterprise employed the English arms during the space of eight months: the bastard of Vaurus, governor of Meaux, distinguished himself by an obstinate defence; but was at last obliged to surrender at discretion. The cruelty of this officer was equal to his bravery: he was accustomed to hang, without distinction, all the English and Burgundians who fell into his hands: and Henry, in revenge of his barbarity, ordered him immediately to be hanged on the same tree which he had made the instrument of his inhuman executions.[**]

But the arrival of the king of England with a large army was more than enough to make up for this loss. Henry was welcomed to Paris with great joy, reflecting the strong biases of the people; and he quickly led his army to Chartres, which had been under siege by the dauphin for a long time. The dauphin lifted the siege upon seeing the English approach and, wanting to avoid a battle, retreated with his army. Henry easily took control of Dreux without any fighting and then laid siege to Meaux at the request of the Parisians, who were greatly troubled by the garrison there. This campaign occupied the English forces for eight months: the bastard of Vaurus, the governor of Meaux, strongly defended the city, but in the end, he had to surrender unconditionally. This officer's cruelty matched his bravery: he was known to hang all the English and Burgundians he captured without hesitation. In retaliation for his brutality, Henry ordered him to be hanged on the same tree he had used for his inhumane executions.

     * St. Remi, chap. 3.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 212 T. Livii, p. 92, 93. St. Remi, chap
     116 Monstrelet, chap. 260.
     * St. Remi, chap. 3.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 212 T. Livii, p. 92, 93. St. Remi, chap
     116 Monstrelet, chap. 260.

This success was followed by the surrender of many other places in the neighborhood of Paris, which held for the dauphin: that prince was chased beyond the Loire, and he almost totally abandoned all the northern provinces: he was even pursued into the south by the united arms of the English and Burgundians, and threatened with total destruction. Notwithstanding the bravery and fidelity of his captains, he saw himself unequal to his enemies in the field; and found it necessary to temporize, and to avoid all hazardous actions with a rival who had gained so much the ascendant over him. And to crown all the other prosperities of Henry, his queen was delivered of a son, who was called by his father’s name, and whose birth was celebrated by rejoicings no less pompous, and no less sincere, at Paris than at London. The infant prince seemed to be universally regarded as the future heir of both monarchies.

This success led to the surrender of many other areas around Paris that were loyal to the dauphin. That prince was pushed back beyond the Loire and nearly abandoned all the northern provinces. He was even chased into the south by the combined forces of the English and Burgundians, facing the threat of total defeat. Despite the courage and loyalty of his commanders, he realized he was outmatched by his enemies in battle and decided it was necessary to bide his time and avoid risky confrontations with a rival who had gained such an advantage over him. To top off Henry's other victories, his queen gave birth to a son who was named after his father, and his arrival was celebrated with pompous and genuine festivities in both Paris and London. The infant prince was seen as the future heir of both kingdoms.

1422.

1422.

But the glory of Henry, when it had nearly reached the summit, was stopped short by the hand of nature; and all his mighty projects vanished into smoke. He was seized with a fistula, a malady which the surgeons at that time had not skill enough to cure; and he was at last sensible that his distemper was mortal, and that his end was approaching He sent for his brother the duke of Bedford, the earl of Warwick, and a few noblemen more, whom he had honored with his friendship; and he delivered to them, in great tranquillity, his last will with regard to the government of his kingdom and family. He entreated them to continue towards his infant son the same fidelity and attachment which they had always professed to himself during his lifetime, and which had been cemented by so many mutual good offices. He expressed his indifference on the approach of death; and though he regretted that he must leave unfinished a work so happily begun, he declared himself confident that the final acquisition of France would be the effect of their prudence and valor. He left the regency of that kingdom to his elder brother, the duke of Bedford; that of England to his younger, the duke of Glocester; and the care of his son’s person to the earl of Warwick. He recommended to all of them a great attention to maintain the friendship of the duke of Burgundy; and advised them never to give liberty to the French princes taken at Azincour, till his son were of age, and could himself hold the reins of government. And he conjured them, if the success of their arms should not enable them to place young Henry on the throne of France, never at least to make peace with that kingdom, unless the enemy, by the cession of Normandy, and its annexation to the crown of England, made compensation for all the hazard and expense of his enterprise.[*]

But Henry's glory, just as it was about to reach its peak, was suddenly cut short by the hand of nature; all his grand plans faded away. He was afflicted with a fistula, an illness that the surgeons of his time couldn't cure; and he finally realized that his condition was fatal, and that his end was near. He called for his brother the Duke of Bedford, the Earl of Warwick, and a few other noblemen he had honored with his friendship; and he calmly shared with them his final wishes regarding the governance of his kingdom and family. He urged them to remain loyal to his young son just as they had been to him throughout his life, a loyalty strengthened by many mutual good deeds. He showed indifference towards his impending death; and although he lamented that he had to leave a work so well started unfinished, he expressed confidence that their wisdom and bravery would ultimately achieve the conquest of France. He designated the regency of that kingdom to his elder brother, the Duke of Bedford; the regency of England to his younger brother, the Duke of Gloucester; and entrusted the care of his son to the Earl of Warwick. He advised all of them to pay close attention to maintaining the friendship of the Duke of Burgundy; and to never grant freedom to the French princes captured at Azincourt until his son was old enough to take charge of the government. He urged them that if their military success did not enable them to place young Henry on the throne of France, they should at least never make peace with that kingdom unless the enemy compensated for all the risks and costs of his campaign by giving up Normandy and attaching it to the crown of England.

He next applied himself to his devotions, and ordered his chaplain to recite the seven penitential psalms. When that passage of the fifty-first psalm was read, “build thou the walls of Jerusalem,” he interrupted the chaplain, and declared his serious intention, after he should have fully subdued France, to conduct a crusade against the infidels, and recover possession of the Holy Land.[**] So ingenious are men in deceiving themselves, that Henry forgot, in those moments, all the blood spilt by his ambition; and received comfort from this late and feeble resolve, which, as the mode of these enterprises was now passed, he certainly would never have carried into execution. He expired in the thirty-fourth year of his age and the tenth of his reign.

He then focused on his prayers and instructed his chaplain to recite the seven penitential psalms. When the section of the fifty-first psalm was read, “build thou the walls of Jerusalem,” he interrupted the chaplain and shared his serious intention, after he fully subdued France, to lead a crusade against non-believers and reclaim the Holy Land.[**] People can be so clever at deceiving themselves that Henry forgot, in those moments, all the blood shed by his ambition; and he found comfort in this late and weak resolution, which, since the way these missions were conducted had changed, he definitely would never have fulfilled. He died at the age of thirty-four and had reigned for ten years.

     * Monstrelet, chap. 265. Hall, fol. 80.

     ** St. Remi, chap. 118, Monstrelet, el ap. 265.
     * Monstrelet, chap. 265. Hall, fol. 80.

     ** St. Remi, chap. 118, Monstrelet, el ap. 265.

This prince possessed many eminent virtues; and if we give indulgence to ambition in a monarch, or rank it, as the vulgar are inclined to do, among his virtues, they were unstained by any considerable blemish. His abilities appeared equally in the cabinet and in the field: the boldness of his enterprises was no less remarkable than his personal valor in conducting them. He had the talent of attaching his friends by affability, and of gaining his enemies by address and clemency. The English, dazzled by the lustre of his character, still more than by that of his victories, were reconciled to the defects in his title: the French almost forgot that he was an enemy: and his care in maintaining justice in his civil administration, and preserving discipline in his armies, made some amends to both nations for the calamities inseparable from those wars in which his short reign was almost entirely occupied, That he could forgive the earl of Marche, who had a better title to the crown than himself, is a sure indication of his magnanimity; and that the earl relied so entirely on his friendship, is no less a proof of his established character for candor and sincerity. There remain in history few instances of such mutual trust; and still fewer where neither party found reason to repent it.

This prince had many great qualities; and if we allow room for ambition in a ruler, or consider it, as most people do, one of his virtues, it was free from any major flaws. His skills showed both in governance and on the battlefield: the boldness of his ventures was just as impressive as his personal bravery in leading them. He was able to win over his friends with his friendliness and to win over his enemies with his cleverness and kindness. The English, captivated by the brilliance of his character, even more than by his victories, accepted the flaws in his claim to the throne: the French nearly forgot he was their enemy. His commitment to upholding justice in his civil administration and maintaining discipline within his armies helped make up for the hardships that came with the wars that occupied most of his short reign. That he could forgive the Earl of Marche, who had a stronger claim to the crown than he did, clearly demonstrates his greatness; and the fact that the Earl fully relied on his friendship further proves his reputation for honesty and straightforwardness. There are few examples in history of such mutual trust, and even fewer where both sides had no reason to regret it.

The exterior figure of this great prince, as well as his deportment, was engaging. His stature was somewhat above the middle size; his countenance beautiful; his limbs genteel and slender, but full of vigor; and he excelled in all warlike and manly exercises.[*] He left by his queen, Catharine of France, only one son, not full nine months old; whose misfortunes, in the course of his life, surpassed all the glories and successes of his father.

The great prince's appearance and demeanor were captivating. He was slightly taller than average, had a beautiful face, and his limbs were both slim and elegant, yet strong; he excelled in all martial and masculine activities. He had one son with his queen, Catharine of France, who was not yet nine months old; the son's struggles throughout his life overshadowed all the glories and achievements of his father.

     * T. Livii, p. 4.
* T. Livii, p. 4.

In less than two months after Henry’s death, Charles VI. of France, his father-in-law, terminated his unhappy life. He had for several years possessed only the appearance of royal authority: yet was this mere appearance of considerable advantage to the English; and divided the duty and affections of the French between them and the dauphin. This prince was proclaimed and crowned king of France at Poictiers, by the name of Charles VII. Rheims, the place where this ceremony is usually performed, was at that time in the hands of his enemies.

In less than two months after Henry’s death, Charles VI of France, his father-in-law, ended his troubled life. For several years, he had only the outward appearance of royal authority; however, this mere facade was quite beneficial to the English and split the loyalty and support of the French between them and the dauphin. This prince was declared and crowned king of France at Poictiers, taking the name Charles VII. Rheims, the usual site for this ceremony, was under the control of his enemies at that time.

Catharine of France, Henry’s widow, married, soon after his death, a Welsh gentleman, Sir Owen Tudor, said to be descended from the ancient princes of that country: she bore him two sons, Edmund and Jasper, of whom the eldest was created earl of Richmond; the second earl of Pembroke The family of Tudor, first raised to distinction by this alliance, mounted afterwards the throne of England.

Catharine of France, Henry’s widow, married a Welsh gentleman, Sir Owen Tudor, not long after his death. He was said to be descended from the ancient princes of that country. She had two sons with him, Edmund and Jasper. The older son was made Earl of Richmond, while the younger became Earl of Pembroke. The Tudor family, initially elevated to prominence through this marriage, later took the throne of England.

The long schism, which had divided the Latin church for near forty years, was finally terminated in this reign by the council of Constance; which deposed the pope, John XXIII., for his crimes, and elected Martin V. in his place, who was acknowledged by almost all the kingdoms of Europe. This great and unusual act of authority in the council, gave the Roman pontiffs ever after a mortal antipathy to those assemblies. The same jealousy which had long prevailed in most European countries, between the civil aristocracy and monarchy, now also took place between these powers in the ecclesiastical body. But the great separation of the bishops in the several states, and the difficulty of assembling them, gave the pope a mighty advantage, and made it more easy for him to centre all the powers of the hierarchy in his own person. The cruelty and treachery which attended the punishment of John Huss and Jerome of Prague, the unhappy disciples of Wickliffe, who, in violation of a safe-conduct were burned alive for their errors by the council of Constance prove this melancholy truth, that toleration is none of the virtues of priests in any form of ecclesiastical government But as the English nation had little or no concern in these great transactions, we are here the more concise in relating them.

The long split that had divided the Latin church for nearly forty years finally ended during this reign with the council of Constance, which deposed Pope John XXIII. for his crimes and elected Martin V. in his place; he was recognized by almost all European kingdoms. This significant and unusual display of authority by the council created a lasting dislike among the Roman pontiffs for such assemblies. The same rivalry that had existed in many European countries between the civil aristocracy and monarchy also emerged within the church. However, the significant separation of bishops across various states and the difficulty in assembling them gave the pope a major advantage and made it easier for him to consolidate all the powers of the hierarchy in his own hands. The cruelty and betrayal that accompanied the executions of John Huss and Jerome of Prague, unfortunate followers of Wycliffe, who were burned alive by the council of Constance in violation of a safe conduct, highlight the sad truth that tolerance is not one of the virtues of priests in any type of ecclesiastical government. But since the English nation had little involvement in these major events, we will keep our account of them brief.

The first commission of array which we meet with, was issued in this reign.[*] The military part of the feudal system, which was the most essential circumstance of it, was entirely dissolved, and could no longer serve for the defence of the kingdom. Henry, therefore, when he went to France, in 1415, empowered certain commissioners to take in each county a review of all the freemen able to bear arms, to divide them into companies, and to keep them in readiness for resisting an enemy. This was the era when the feudal militia in England gave place to one which was perhaps still less orderly and regular.

The first military draft we encounter was issued during this reign.[*] The military aspect of the feudal system, which was its most crucial element, had completely broken down and could no longer protect the kingdom. Therefore, when Henry went to France in 1415, he authorized certain commissioners to review all the free men capable of bearing arms in each county, to organize them into companies, and to keep them prepared to defend against an enemy. This marked the time when the feudal militia in England was replaced by one that was perhaps even less organized and structured.

* Rymer, vol, ix. p. 254, 255.

* Rymer, vol. ix, p. 254, 255.

We have an authentic and exact account of the ordinary revenue of the crown during this reign; and it amounts only to fifty-five thousand seven hundred and fourteen pounds ten shillings and tenpence a year. [*] This is nearly the same with the revenue of Henry III.; and the kings of England had neither become much richer nor poorer in the course of so many years. The ordinary expense of the government amounted to forty-two thousand five hundred and seven pounds sixteen shillings and tenpence; so that the king had a surplus only of thirteen thousand two hundred and six pounds fourteen shillings for the support of his household; for his wardrobe; for the expense of embassies; and other articles. This sum was nowise sufficient: he was therefore obliged to have frequent recourse to parliamentary supplies, and was thus, even in time of peace, not altogether independent of his people. But wars were attended with a great expense, which neither the prince’s ordinary revenue, nor the extraordinary supplies, were able to bear; and the sovereign was always reduced to many miserable shifts, in order to make any tolerable figure in them. He commonly borrowed money from all quarters; he pawned his jewels, and sometimes the crown itself;[**] he ran in arrears to his army; and he was often obliged, notwithstanding all these expedients, to stop in the midst of his career of victory, and to grant truces to the enemy. The high pay which was given to soldiers agreed very ill with this low income. All the extraordinary supplies, granted by parliament to Henry during the course of his reign, were only seven tenths and fifteenths, about two hundred and three thousand pounds.[***] It is easy to compute how soon this money must be exhausted by armies of twenty-four thousand archers and six thousand horse; when each archer had sixpence a day,[****] and each horseman two shillings. The most splendid successes proved commonly fruitless when supported by so poor a revenue; and the debts and difficulties which the king thereby incurred, made him pay dear for his victories. The civil administration, likewise, even in time of peace, could never be very regular, where the government was so ill enabled to support itself.

We have a real and precise account of the crown's regular revenue during this reign, which amounts to only fifty-five thousand seven hundred fourteen pounds, ten shillings, and ten pence a year. [*] This is nearly the same as the revenue during Henry III.'s reign; the kings of England had hardly become any richer or poorer over so many years. The normal government expenses totaled forty-two thousand five hundred seven pounds, sixteen shillings, and ten pence, leaving the king with a surplus of only thirteen thousand two hundred six pounds, fourteen shillings to support his household, manage his wardrobe, cover embassy expenses, and other costs. This amount was by no means sufficient. He had to frequently rely on parliamentary support, so he wasn't fully independent of his people even in peacetime. Wars added a huge burden of expenses that neither the prince's regular revenue nor the extraordinary supplies could handle, forcing the sovereign into many desperate situations to maintain any decent appearance. He often borrowed money from various sources, pawned his jewels, and sometimes even the crown itself; he fell behind on payments to his army and was frequently compelled to halt his victorious campaigns to grant truces to the enemy. The high wages paid to soldiers clashed terribly with this low income. All the extra supplies granted by parliament to Henry during his reign totaled just seven tenths and fifteenths, about two hundred three thousand pounds.[***] It's easy to see how quickly this money would be spent on armies of twenty-four thousand archers and six thousand cavalry, with each archer earning six pence a day[****] and each horseman two shillings. The most impressive victories often turned out to be meaningless when backed by such meager revenue, and the debts and challenges the king faced made him pay dearly for his triumphs. The civil administration also struggled to be efficient, even in peacetime, where the government was poorly equipped to sustain itself.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 113.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 190.

     *** Parliamentary History, vol. ii. p. 168.

     **** It appears from many passages of Rymer, particularly
     vol. ix p. 258, that the king paid twenty marks a year for
     an archer, which is a good deal above sixpence a day. The
     price had risen, as it is natural, by raising the
     denomination of money.
     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 113.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 190.

     *** Parliamentary History, vol. ii. p. 168.

     **** It seems from several parts of Rymer, especially vol. ix p. 258, that the king paid twenty marks a year for an archer, which is significantly more than sixpence a day. The cost had increased, as one would expect, due to the rise in the value of money.

Henry, till within a year of his death, owed debts which he had contracted when prince of Wales.[*] It was in vain that the parliament pretended to restrain him from arbitrary practices, when he was reduced to such necessities. Though the right of levying purveyance for instance, had been expressly guarded against by the Great Charter itself, and was frequently complained of by the commons, it was found absolutely impracticable to abolish it; and the parliament at length, submitting to it as a legal prerogative, contented themselves with enacting laws to limit and confine it. The duke of Glocester, in the reign of Richard II., possessed a revenue of sixty thousand crowns, (about thirty thousand pounds a year of our present money,) as we learn from Froissard,[**] and was consequently richer than the king himself, if all circumstances be duly considered.

Henry, until a year before his death, had debts that he had accumulated when he was the Prince of Wales. It was pointless for parliament to pretend to restrain him from acting arbitrarily when he was in such desperate situations. Even though the right to collect purveyance was explicitly protected by the Great Charter itself and was often criticized by the commoners, it proved completely impossible to eliminate it. Eventually, parliament accepted it as a legal prerogative and instead focused on passing laws to limit and regulate it. The Duke of Gloucester, during Richard II's reign, had an income of sixty thousand crowns (about thirty thousand pounds a year in today's money), as noted by Froissart, making him wealthier than the king himself when all factors were considered.

It is remarkable, that the city of Calais alone was an annual expense to the crown of nineteen thousand one hundred and nineteen pounds;[***] that is, above a third of the common charge of the government in time of peace. This fortress was of no use to the defence of England, and only gave that kingdom an inlet to annoy France. Ireland cost two thousand pounds a year, over and above its own revenue; which was certainly very low. Every thing conspires to give us a very mean idea of the state of Europe in those ages.

It’s striking that the city of Calais alone cost the crown nineteen thousand one hundred nineteen pounds a year; that is, more than a third of the government’s total expenses during peacetime. This fortress didn’t help defend England at all and simply provided a way for that kingdom to bother France. Ireland added two thousand pounds a year on top of its own revenue, which was definitely quite low. Everything points to a pretty poor view of Europe’s situation during those times.

From the most early times till the reign of Edward III., the denomination of money had never been altered; a pound sterling was still a pound troy; that is, about three pounds of our present money. That conqueror was the first that innovated in this important article. In the twentieth of his reign, he coined twenty-two shillings from a pound troy; in his twenty-seventh year, he coined twenty-five shillings. But Henry V., who was also a conqueror, raised still farther the denomination, and counted thirty shillings from a pound troy:[****] his revenue therefore must have been about one hundred and ten thousand pounds of our present money; and by the cheapness of provisions, was equivalent to above three hundred and thirty thousand pounds.

From ancient times up until the reign of Edward III, the currency had never changed; a pound sterling was still equivalent to a pound troy, which is about three pounds in today's money. That conqueror was the first to make a change in this crucial matter. In the twentieth year of his reign, he minted twenty-two shillings from a pound troy; in his twenty-seventh year, he minted twenty-five shillings. However, Henry V, who was also a conqueror, increased the currency even further and counted thirty shillings from a pound troy: his revenue must have been around one hundred and ten thousand pounds in today’s money, and because of the low cost of goods, it equated to over three hundred and thirty thousand pounds.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 114.

     ** Liv. iv. chap. 86.

     *** Rymer, vol. x. p. 113.

     **** Fleetwood’s Chronicon Preciosum, p. 52
     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 114.

     ** Liv. iv. chap. 86.

     *** Rymer, vol. x. p. 113.

     **** Fleetwood’s Chronicon Preciosum, p. 52

None of the princes of the house of Lancaster ventured to impose taxes without consent of parliament: their doubtful or bad title became so far of advantage to the constitution. The rule was then fixed, and could not safely be broken afterwards, even by more absolute princes.

None of the princes of the Lancaster family tried to impose taxes without the approval of parliament: their questionable or poor claim to the throne actually benefited the constitution. The rule was established and couldn't be safely violated later, even by more authoritarian rulers.





CHAPTER XX.

1_265_henry6.jpg  Henry VI.




HENRY VI.

CONTEMPORARY MONARCHS.

1422.

1422.

During the reigns of the Lancastrian princes, the authority of parliament seems to have been more confirmed, and the privileges of the people more regarded, than during any former period; and the two preceding kings, though men of great spirit and abilities, abstained from such exertions of prerogative, as even weak princes, whose title was undisputed, were tempted to think they might venture upon with impunity. The long minority, of which there was now the prospect, encouraged still further the lords and commons to extend their influence; and without paying much regard to the verbal destination of Henry V., they assumed the power of giving a new arrangement to the whole administration. They declined altogether the name of “Regent” with regard to England: they appointed the duke of Bedford “protector” or “guardian” of that kingdom, a title which they supposed to imply less authority: they invested the duke of Glocester with the same dignity during the absence of his elder brother;[*] and in order to limit the power of both these princes, they appointed a council, without whose advice and approbation no measure of importance could be determined.[**] The person and education of the infant prince were committed to Henry Beaufort, bishop of Winchester, his great uncle, and the legitimated son of John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster; a prelate who, as his family could never have any pretensions to the crown, might safely, they thought, be intrusted with that important charge.[***]

During the reigns of the Lancastrian princes, the authority of Parliament seems to have been strengthened, and the rights of the people were taken more seriously than in any previous period. The two kings before them, despite being strong and capable, avoided exercising their powers in ways that even weaker kings, whose claims were uncontested, might have thought they could do without consequence. The prospect of a long minority encouraged the lords and commons to increase their influence even more; disregarding Henry V.'s stated intentions, they took on the power to reorganize the entire administration. They completely rejected the title of “Regent” for England, appointing the Duke of Bedford as “Protector” or “Guardian” of the kingdom, a title they believed implied less authority. They gave the same title to the Duke of Gloucester during his older brother's absence; and to limit the power of both princes, they set up a council that had to approve any major decisions. The care and education of the young prince were entrusted to Henry Beaufort, Bishop of Winchester, his great-uncle and the legitimized son of John of Gaunt, Duke of Lancaster; a bishop who, since his family had no claims to the throne, they believed could be safely given that important responsibility.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 261. Cotton, p. 564.

     ** Cotton, p. 564.

     *** Hall, fol. 83. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 27.
     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 261. Cotton, p. 564.

     ** Cotton, p. 564.

     *** Hall, fol. 83. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 27.

The two princes, the dukes of Bedford and Glocester, who seemed injured by this plan of government, yet, being persons of great integrity and honor, acquiesced in any appointment which tended to give security to the public; and as the wars in France appeared to be the object of greatest moment, they avoided every dispute which might throw an obstacle in the way of foreign conquests.

The two princes, the dukes of Bedford and Gloucester, who felt wronged by this government plan, still, being men of great integrity and honor, accepted any decision that aimed to ensure public safety. And since the wars in France seemed to be the most important issue, they steered clear of any conflicts that could hinder foreign victories.

When the state of affairs between the English and French kings was considered with a superficial eye, every advantage seemed to be on the side of the former; and the total expulsion of Charles appeared to be an event which might naturally be expected from the superior power of his competitor. Though Henry was yet in his infancy, the administration was devolved on the duke of Bedford, the most accomplished prince of his age; whose experience, prudence, valor, and generosity qualified him for his high office, and enabled him both to maintain union among his friends, and to gain the confidence of his enemies. The whole power of England was at his command; he was at the head of armies inured to victory; he was seconded by the most renowned generals of the age, the earls of Somerset, Warwick, Salisbury, Suffolk, and Arundel, Sir John Talbot, and Sir John Fastolffe: and besides Guienne, the ancient inheritance of England, he was master of the capital, and of almost all the northern provinces, which were well enabled to furnish him with supplies both of men and money, and to assist and support his English forces.

When you look at the situation between the English and French kings from a surface level, it seems like the English have all the advantages. The complete removal of Charles seemed like something that was reasonably expected, given the stronger position of his rival. Even though Henry was still just a child, leadership was handed over to the Duke of Bedford, the most skilled prince of his time. His experience, wisdom, bravery, and generosity made him fit for his important role, allowing him to keep his allies united and earn the trust of his enemies. He had the full power of England at his fingertips; he led armies that were used to winning, supported by the most famous generals of the time, including the earls of Somerset, Warwick, Salisbury, Suffolk, and Arundel, along with Sir John Talbot and Sir John Fastolffe. Besides Guienne, the historical territory of England, he controlled the capital and nearly all the northern regions, which could easily provide him with both troops and funds to support his English forces.

But Charles, notwithstanding the present inferiority of his power, possessed some advantages, derived partly from his situation, partly from his personal character, which promised him success, and served, first to control, then to overbalance, the superior force and opulence of his enemies. He was the true and undoubted heir of the monarchy: all Frenchmen, who knew the interests, or desired the independence, of their country, turned their eyes towards him as its sole resource; the exclusion given him by the imbecility of his father, and the forced or precipitate consent of the states, had plainly no validity: that spirit of faction which had blinded the people, could not long hold them in so gross a delusion: their national and inveterate hatred against the English, the authors of all their calamities, must soon revive, and inspire them with indignation at bending their necks under the yoke of that hostile people: great nobles and princes, accustomed to maintain an independence against their native sovereigns, would never endure a subjection to strangers; and though most of the princes of the blood were, since the fatal battle of Azincour detained prisoners in England, the inhabitants of their de mesnes, their friends their vassals, all declared a zealous attachment to the king and exerted themselves in resisting the violence of foreign invaders.

But Charles, despite currently having less power, had some advantages from both his situation and his character that seemed to promise him success. These factors helped him first to control and then to outbalance the greater strength and wealth of his enemies. He was the true and undeniable heir to the monarchy: all Frenchmen who cared about their country's interests or wanted its independence looked towards him as their only hope. The exclusion imposed on him due to his father’s incompetence, along with the forced or rushed approval of the states, clearly held no real validity. The factional spirit that had misled the people couldn’t keep them in such a stark delusion for long. Their longstanding and deep-seated hatred for the English, who were responsible for all their troubles, would soon resurface, filling them with anger at being subjugated by that hostile nation. The noblemen and princes, used to resisting control from their own kings, would never accept being ruled by outsiders; and although most of the royal princes had been imprisoned in England since the disastrous Battle of Agincourt, the people in their lands, their friends, and their vassals all showed strong loyalty to the king and worked hard to push back against the foreign invaders.

Charles himself, though only in his twentieth year, was of a character well calculated to become the object of these benevolent sentiments; and perhaps from the favor which naturally attends youth, was the more likely, on account of his tender age, to acquire the good-will of his native subjects. He was a prince of the most friendly and benign disposition, of easy and familiar manners, and of a just and sound, though not a very vigorous understanding. Sincere, generous, affable, he engaged from affection the services of his followers, even while his low fortunes might make it their interest to desert him; and the lenity of his temper could pardon in them those sallies of discontent, to which princes in his situation are so frequently exposed. The love of pleasure often seduced him into indolence; but amidst all his irregularities, the goodness of his heart still shone forth; and by exerting at intervals his courage and activity, he proved that his general remissness proceeded not from the want either of a just spirit of ambition, or of personal valor.

Charles himself, even though he was only twenty, had a character that made him the target of these kind feelings. And maybe because of the natural favor that comes with youth, he was more likely, due to his young age, to win the goodwill of his fellow subjects. He was a prince with a friendly and kind nature, easygoing and approachable, and he had a fair mind that wasn’t particularly strong. Sincere, generous, and friendly, he won over his followers’ loyalty out of affection, even when his situation might have made it more beneficial for them to abandon him. His gentle demeanor allowed him to overlook their occasional outbursts of discontent, which princes in his position often face. His love for pleasure sometimes led him to be lazy, but despite his flaws, his kind heart always shone through. By occasionally showing his courage and energy, he demonstrated that his overall lack of drive didn’t come from a lack of ambition or personal bravery.

Though the virtues of this amiable prince lay some time in obscurity, the duke of Bedford knew that his title alone made him formidable, and that every foreign assistance would be requisite, ere an English regent could hope to complete the conquest of France; an enterprise which, however it might seem to be much advanced, was still exposed to many and great difficulties. The chief circumstance which had procured to the English all their present advantages, was the resentment of the duke of Burgundy against Charles; and as that prince seemed intent rather on gratifying his passion than consulting his interests, it was the more easy for the regent, by demonstrations of respect and confidence, to retain him in the alliance of England. He bent, therefore, all his endeavors to that purpose: he gave the duke every proof of friendship and regard: he even offered him the regency of France, which Philip declined: and that he might corroborate national connections by private ties, he concluded his own marriage with the princess of Burgundy, which had been stipulated by the treaty of Arras.

Though the virtues of this friendly prince were somewhat hidden for a while, the Duke of Bedford understood that his title alone made him a force to be reckoned with and that foreign support would be necessary before an English regent could hope to finish conquering France. This task, despite appearing to be well underway, still faced many significant challenges. The main reason the English held all their current advantages was the Duke of Burgundy's anger toward Charles. Since that prince seemed more focused on satisfying his emotions than considering his own interests, it became easier for the regent to keep him allied with England through gestures of respect and trust. Therefore, he put all his efforts into that aim: he showed the duke every sign of friendship and admiration; he even offered him the regency of France, which Philip turned down. To strengthen national ties with personal connections, he arranged his own marriage with the princess of Burgundy, as outlined in the treaty of Arras.

1423.

1423.

Being sensible that, next to the alliance of Burgundy, the friendship of the duke of Brittany was of the greatest importance towards forwarding the English conquests; and that, as the provinces of France, already subdued, lay between the dominions of these two princes, he could never hope for any security without preserving his connections with them; he was very intent on strengthening himself also from that quarter. The duke of Brittany, having received many just reasons of displeasure from the ministers of Charles, had already acceded to the treaty of Troye, and had, with other vassals of the crown, done homage to Henry V. in quality of heir to the kingdom: but as the regent knew that the duke was much governed by his brother, the count of Richemont, he endeavored to fix his friendship, by paying court and doing services to this haughty and ambitious prince.

Recognizing that, after the alliance with Burgundy, the friendship of the Duke of Brittany was crucial for advancing English conquests, and that the already subdued provinces of France lay between the territories of these two leaders, he realized he could never hope for security without maintaining good relations with them. Therefore, he was very focused on strengthening his position in that area as well. The Duke of Brittany, having been given plenty of valid reasons to be displeased with the ministers of Charles, had already agreed to the Treaty of Troyes and, along with other vassals of the crown, had pledged loyalty to Henry V as the heir to the kingdom. However, since the regent knew that the duke was heavily influenced by his brother, the Count of Richemont, he tried to secure their friendship by courting and providing services to this proud and ambitious prince.

Arthur, count of Richemont, had been taken prisoner at the battle of Azincour, had been treated with great indulgence by the late king, and had even been permitted on his parole to take a journey into Brittany, where the state of affairs required his presence. The death of that victorious monarch happened before Richemont’s return; and this prince pretended that, as his word was given personally to Henry V., he was not bound to fulfil it towards his son and successor; a chicane which the regent, as he could not force him to compliance, deemed it prudent to overlook. An interview was settled at Amiens between the dukes of Bedford, Burgundy, and Brittany, at which the count of Richemont was also present:[*] the alliance was renewed between these princes: and the regent persuaded Philip to give in marriage to Richemont his eldest sister, widow of the deceased dauphin, Lewis, the elder brother of Charles. Thus Arthur was connected both with the regent and the duke of Burgundy, and seemed engaged by interest to prosecute the same object, in forwarding the success of the English arms.

Arthur, Count of Richemont, had been captured at the Battle of Azincourt and was treated with considerable leniency by the late king. He was even allowed, under his parole, to travel to Brittany, where his presence was necessary given the circumstances. The death of that victorious monarch occurred before Richemont returned. This prince claimed that since his word was given personally to Henry V., he was not obligated to honor it to his son and successor. This excuse, which the regent could not force him to comply with, was deemed wise to overlook. A meeting was arranged in Amiens involving the Dukes of Bedford, Burgundy, and Brittany, where Count Richemont was also present: the alliance among these princes was renewed, and the regent persuaded Philip to marry his eldest sister, the widow of the deceased Dauphin, Louis, the older brother of Charles, to Richemont. Thus, Arthur became connected to both the regent and the Duke of Burgundy and appeared to have a vested interest in promoting the success of the English forces.

     * Hall. fol. 84. Monstrelet, vol. i. p 4. Stowe, p. 364.
     * Hall. fol. 84. Monstrelet, vol. i. p 4. Stowe, p. 364.

While the vigilance of the duke of Bedford was employed in gaining or confirming these allies, whose vicinity rendered them so important, he did not overlook the state of more remote countries. The duke of Albany, regent of Scotland, had died: and his power had devolved on Murdac, his son, a prince of a weak understanding and indolent disposition; who, far from possessing the talents requisite for the government of that fierce people, was not even able to maintain authority in his own family, or restrain the petulance and insolence of his sons. The ardor of the Scots to serve in France, where Charles treated them with great honor and distinction, and where the regent’s brother enjoyed the dignity of constable, broke out afresh under this feeble administration: new succors daily came over, and filled the armies of the French king: the earl of Douglas conducted a reënforcement of five thousand men to his assistance: and it was justly to be dreaded that the Scots, by commencing open hostilities in the north, would occasion a diversion still more considerable of the English power, and would ease Charles, in part, of that load by which he was at present so grievously oppressed. The duke of Bedford, therefore, persuaded the English council to form an alliance with James, their prisoner; to free that prince from his long captivity; and to connect him with England by marrying him to a daughter of the earl of Somerset, and cousin of the young king.[*] As the Scottish regent, tired of his present dignity, which he was not able to support, was now become entirely sincere in his applications for James’s liberty, the treaty was soon concluded; a ransom of forty thousand pounds was stipulated;[**] and the king of Scots was restored to the throne of his ancestors, and proved, in his short reign, one of the most illustrious princes that had ever governed that kingdom. He was murdered, in 1437, by his traitorous kinsman the earl of Athole. His affections inclined to the side of France; but the English had never reason during his lifetime to complain of any breach of the neutrality by Scotland.

While the duke of Bedford focused on securing and confirming alliances that were crucial due to their proximity, he didn’t ignore the situation in more distant countries. The duke of Albany, regent of Scotland, had died, and his power passed to his son Murdac, a prince with a weak mind and lazy attitude; he lacked the qualities needed to govern such a fierce people and couldn’t even maintain authority in his own family or control the arrogance and insolence of his sons. The Scots, eager to serve in France where Charles treated them with great honor and distinction, and where the regent’s brother held the position of constable, were motivated again under this ineffective leadership: fresh reinforcements were arriving daily to support the French king. The earl of Douglas brought an additional five thousand men to help him. There was a real concern that the Scots, by starting open hostilities in the north, would divert even more English resources and partially relieve Charles of the heavy burden he was currently facing. Therefore, the duke of Bedford convinced the English council to ally with James, their prisoner, to free him from his long captivity and to connect him to England by marrying him to a daughter of the earl of Somerset, who was also a cousin of the young king.[*] As the Scottish regent, tired of his position which he could not uphold, became completely earnest in his requests for James’s freedom, the treaty was quickly finalized; a ransom of forty thousand pounds was agreed upon;[**] and the king of Scots was restored to his ancestral throne, proving to be one of the most notable princes ever to govern that kingdom during his short reign. He was murdered in 1437 by his treacherous relative, the earl of Athole. He favored France, but during his lifetime, the English had no grounds to complain about any breach of neutrality by Scotland.

     * Hall, fol. 86. Stowe, p. 364. Grafton, p. 501.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 299, 300, 326.
     * Hall, fol. 86. Stowe, p. 364. Grafton, p. 501.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 299, 300, 326.

But the regent was not so much employed in these political negotiations as to neglect the operations of war, from which alone he could hope to succeed in expelling the French monarch. Though the chief seat of Charles’s power lay in the southern provinces beyond the Loire, his partisans were possessed of some fortresses in the northern, and even in the neighborhood of Paris; and it behoved the duke of Bedford first to clear these countries from the enemy, before he could think of attempting more distant conquests. The Castle of Dorsoy was taken after a siege of six weeks: that of Noyelle and the town of Rue, in Picardy, underwent the same fate: Pont sur Seine, Vertus, Montaigu, were subjected by the English arms: and a more considerable advantage was soon after gained by the united forces of England and Burgundy. John Stuart, constable of Scotland, and the lord of Estissac had formed the siege of Crevant, in Burgundy: the earls of Salisbury and Suffolk, with the count of Toulongeon, were sent to its relief: a fierce and well-disputed action ensued; the Scots and French were defeated: the constable of Scotland and the count of Ventadour were taken prisoners; and above a thousand men, among whom was Sir William Hamilton, were left on the field of battle.[*] The taking of Gaillon upon the Seine, and of La Charité upon the Loire, was the fruit of this victory: and as this latter place opened an entrance into the southern provinces, the acquisition of it appeared on that account of the greater importance to the duke of Bedford, and seemed to promise a successful issue to the war.

But the regent was not so focused on these political negotiations that he neglected the military operations, which were his only hope for getting rid of the French king. Although Charles’s main base of power was in the southern provinces beyond the Loire, his supporters held some fortresses in the north, even near Paris; it was necessary for the Duke of Bedford to first clear these areas of the enemy before he could consider more distant conquests. The Castle of Dorsoy was captured after a six-week siege: the same happened to Noyelle and the town of Rue in Picardy; Pont sur Seine, Vertus, and Montaigu fell to English forces; and a more significant victory was soon achieved by the combined forces of England and Burgundy. John Stuart, the constable of Scotland, along with the lord of Estissac, laid siege to Crevant in Burgundy: the earls of Salisbury and Suffolk, along with the count of Toulongeon, were sent to its rescue: a fierce, hard-fought battle followed; the Scots and French were defeated; the constable of Scotland and the count of Ventadour were taken prisoner; and over a thousand men, including Sir William Hamilton, were left on the battlefield.[*] The capture of Gaillon on the Seine and La Charité on the Loire was the result of this victory: since this latter location provided access to the southern provinces, acquiring it was particularly important for the Duke of Bedford and seemed to promise a successful outcome to the war.

     * Hall, fol. 86. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 8. Holingshed, p.
     586., Grafton, p. 500.
* Hall, fol. 86. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 8. Holingshed, p. 586., Grafton, p. 500.

1424.

1424.

The more Charles was threatened with an invasion in those provinces which adhered to him, the more necessary it became that he should retain possession of every fortress which he still held within the quarters of the enemy. The duke of Bedford had besieged in person, during the space of three months, the town of Yvri, in Normandy: and the brave governor, unable to make any longer defence, was obliged to capitulate; and he agreed to surrender the town, if, before a certain term, no relief arrived. Charles, informed of these conditions, determined to make an attempt for saving the place. He collected, with some difficulty, an army of fourteen thousand men, of whom one half were Scots; and he sent them thither under the command of the earl of Buchan, constable of France; who was attended by the earl of Douglas, his countryman, the duke of Alençon, the mareschal de la Fayette, the count of Aumale, and the viscount of Narbonne. When the constable arrived within a few leagues of Yvri, he found that he was come too late, and that the place was already surrendered. He immediately turned to the left, and sat down before Verneuil, which the inhabitants, in spite of the garrison, delivered up to him.[*] Buchan might now have returned in safety, and with the glory of making an acquisition no less important than the place which he was sent to relieve: but hearing of Bedford’s approach, he called a council of war, in order to deliberate concerning the conduct which he should hold in this emergence.

The more Charles faced the threat of invasion in the provinces loyal to him, the more important it became for him to keep hold of every fortress he still possessed within enemy territory. The Duke of Bedford had personally besieged the town of Yvri in Normandy for three months. The brave governor, unable to defend the town any longer, had to surrender; he agreed to give up the town if no help arrived by a certain deadline. Once Charles learned about these terms, he decided to try to save the place. He managed, with difficulty, to gather an army of fourteen thousand men, half of whom were Scots, and sent them there under the command of the Earl of Buchan, the constable of France, accompanied by the Earl of Douglas, his fellow countryman, the Duke of Alençon, Marshal de la Fayette, Count of Aumale, and Viscount of Narbonne. When the constable got within a few leagues of Yvri, he found that he was too late and that the town had already surrendered. He quickly turned left and laid siege to Verneuil, which the inhabitants gave up to him despite the presence of the garrison. Buchan could have returned safely with the victory of capturing a town that was just as important as the one he was sent to rescue. However, hearing of Bedford’s approach, he called a council of war to discuss how to handle the situation.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 14. Grafton, p. 504.
* Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 14. Grafton, p. 504.

The wiser part of the council declared for a retreat; and represented, that all the past misfortunes of the French had proceeded from their rashness in giving battle when no necessity obliged them; that this army was the last resource of the king, and the only defence of the few provinces which remained to him; and that every reason invited him to embrace cautious measures, which might leave time for his subjects to return to a sense of their duty, and give leisure for discord to arise among his enemies, who, being united by no common bond of interest or motive of alliance, could not long persevere in their animosity against him. All these prudential considerations were overborne by a vain point of honor, not to turn their backs to the enemy; and they resolved to await the arrival of the duke of Bedford.

The wiser members of the council called for a retreat and argued that all the past misfortunes of the French came from their reckless decision to battle when there was no real need. They pointed out that this army was the king's last hope and the only defense for the few provinces left to him. Every reason suggested that he should take cautious steps, which would allow time for his subjects to remember their duty and provide an opportunity for discord to grow among his enemies, who, lacking a common interest or alliance, couldn't maintain their hostility for long. However, all these sensible arguments were overridden by a foolish sense of honor, which refused to turn their backs on the enemy, and they decided to wait for the arrival of the Duke of Bedford.

The numbers were nearly equal in this action; and as the long continuance of war had introduced discipline, which, however imperfect, sufficed to maintain some appearance of order in such small armies, the battle was fierce, and well disputed, and attended with bloodshed on both sides. The constable drew up his forces under the walls of Verneuil, and resolved to abide the attack of the enemy: but the impatience of the viscount of Narbonne, who advanced precipitately, and obliged the whole line to follow him in some hurry and confusion, was the cause of the misfortune which ensued. The English archers, fixing their palisadoes before them, according to their usual custom, sent a volley of arrows amidst the thickest of the French army; and though beaten from their ground, and obliged to take shelter among the baggage, they soon rallied, and continued to do great execution upon the enemy. The duke of Bedford, meanwhile, at the head of the men at arms, made impression on the French, broke their ranks, chased them off the field, and rendered the victory entirely complete and decisive.[*]

The numbers were nearly even in this battle; and since the long duration of war had instilled some discipline, though imperfect, that was enough to maintain a semblance of order in such small armies, the fight was intense, fiercely contested, and resulted in bloodshed on both sides. The constable positioned his forces under the walls of Verneuil and decided to withstand the enemy's attack. However, the impatience of the viscount of Narbonne, who rushed forward and forced the entire line to follow him in haste and confusion, led to the misfortune that followed. The English archers, setting up their barriers in front of them as they usually did, launched a barrage of arrows into the thick of the French army; and although they were pushed back and had to take cover among their supplies, they quickly regrouped and dealt significant damage to the enemy. Meanwhile, the duke of Bedford, at the forefront of the armored men, struck the French, broke their formation, drove them from the field, and ensured a complete and decisive victory.[*]

     * Hall, fol. 83, 89, 90. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 15. Stowe,
     p 365., Holingshed, p. 588.
* Hall, fol. 83, 89, 90. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 15. Stowe, p 365., Holingshed, p. 588.

The constable himself perished in battle as well as the earl of Douglas and his son, the counts of Aumale, Tonnerre, and Ventadour, with many other considerable nobility. The duke of Alençon, the mareschal de la Fayette, the lords of Gaucour and Mortemar, were taken prisoners. There fell about four thousand of the French, and sixteen hundred of the English; a loss esteemed, at that time, so unusual on the side of the victors, that the duke of Bedford forbade all rejoicings for his success, Verneuil was surrendered next day by capitulation.[*]

The constable died in battle, along with the earl of Douglas and his son, the counts of Aumale, Tonnerre, and Ventadour, and many other significant nobles. The duke of Alençon, the mareschal de la Fayette, and the lords of Gaucour and Mortemar were captured. About four thousand French soldiers and sixteen hundred English soldiers were killed; this loss was considered so unusual for the victors at that time that the duke of Bedford prohibited any celebrations for his victory. Verneuil was surrendered the next day by agreement.[*]

     * Monstrelet. vol. ii. p. 15.
     * Monstrelet. vol. ii. p. 15.

The condition of the king of France now appeared very terrible, and almost desperate. He had lost the flower of his army and the bravest of his nobles in this fatal action: he had no resource either for recruiting or subsisting his troops; he wanted money even for his personal subsistence; and though all parade of a court was banished, it was with difficulty he could keep a table, supplied with the plainest necessaries, for himself and his few followers: every day brought him intelligence of some loss or misfortune: towns which were bravely defended, were obliged at last to surrender for want of relief or supply: he saw his partisans entirely chased from all the provinces which lay north of the Loire: and he expected soon to lose, by the united efforts of his enemies, all the territories of which he had hitherto continued master; when an incident happened which saved him on the brink of ruin, and lost the English such an opportunity for completing their conquests, as they never afterwards were able to recall.

The condition of the king of France now seemed very dire and nearly hopeless. He had lost the best of his army and the bravest of his nobles in this disastrous battle: he had no way to recruit or supply his troops; he lacked money even for his own basic needs; and although all traces of a court had disappeared, it was a struggle to maintain a table with just the simplest necessities for himself and his few followers: each day brought news of some loss or misfortune: towns that had been valiantly defended were ultimately forced to surrender for lack of aid or supplies: he saw his supporters completely driven out of all the regions north of the Loire: and he anticipated soon losing, through the combined efforts of his enemies, all the territories he had managed to hold onto so far; when an event occurred that pulled him back from the edge of disaster, and deprived the English of an opportunity to complete their conquests that they would never be able to regain.

Jacqueline, countess of Hainault and Holland, and heir of these provinces, had espoused John, duke of Brabant cousin-german to the duke of Burgundy; but having made this choice from the usual motives of princes, she soon found reason to repent of the unequal alliance. She was a princess of a masculine spirit and uncommon understanding: the duke of Brabant was of a sickly complexion and weak mind: she was in the vigor of her age; he had only reached his fifteenth year: these causes had inspired her with such contempt for her husband, which soon proceeded to antipathy that she determined to dissolve a marriage, where, it is probable, nothing but the ceremony had as yet intervened. The court of Rome was commonly very open to applications of this nature, when seconded by power and money; but as the princess foresaw great opposition from her husband’s relations, and was impatient to effect her purpose, she made her escape into England, and threw herself under the protection of the duke of Glocester. That prince, with many noble qualities had the defect of being governed by an impetuous temper and vehement passions; and he was rashly induced, as well by the charms of the countess herself, as by the prospect of possessing her rich inheritance, to offer himself to her as a husband. Without waiting for a papal dispensation; without endeavoring to reconcile the duke of Burgundy to the measure; he entered into a contract of marriage with Jaqueline, and immediately attempted to put himself in possession of her dominions. Philip was disgusted with so precipitate a conduct: he resented the injury done to the duke of Brabant, his near relation: he dreaded to have the English established on all sides of him: and he foresaw the consequences which must attend the extensive and uncontrolled dominion of that nation, if, before the full settlement of their power, they insulted and injured an ally to whom they had already been so much indebted, and who was still so necessary for supporting them in their further progress. He encouraged, therefore, the duke of Brabant to make resistance: he engaged many of Jaqueline’s subjects to adhere to that prince: he himself marched troops to his support: and as the duke of Glocester still persevered in his purpose, a sharp war was suddenly kindled in the Low Countries. The quarrel soon became personal as well as political. The English prince wrote to the duke of Burgundy, complaining of the opposition made to his pretensions; and though, in the main, he employed amicable terms in his letter, he took notice of some falsehoods into which, he said, Philip had been betrayed during the course of these transactions. This unguarded expression was highly resented: the duke of Burgundy insisted that he should retract it; and mutual challenges and defiances passed between them on this occasion.[*]

Jacqueline, Countess of Hainault and Holland, and the heir to these provinces, had married John, Duke of Brabant, who was a cousin of the Duke of Burgundy. However, she quickly regretted this choice, which was made for the usual reasons of royalty, due to the mismatch in their qualities. Jacqueline was a strong and intelligent woman, while the Duke of Brabant was sickly and mentally weak; she was in the prime of her life, and he was only fifteen. These factors led her to develop a deep contempt for her husband, eventually turning into a strong aversion that made her want to end their marriage, which had likely never been consummated. The Roman court was usually quite open to these types of requests if backed by power and money, but Jacqueline anticipated significant resistance from her husband's family. Eager to reach her goal, she fled to England and sought protection from the Duke of Gloucester. This prince, despite his many noble traits, was known for his impulsive temperament and strong passions. He was quickly swayed by Jacqueline's beauty and the possibility of inheriting her wealth, prompting him to propose to her. Without waiting for papal approval or attempting to negotiate with the Duke of Burgundy about this plan, he entered into a marriage contract with Jacqueline and immediately tried to take control of her lands. Philip, the Duke of Burgundy, was outraged by such hasty actions; he felt wronged on behalf of his relative, the Duke of Brabant, and worried about having the English surrounding him. He foresaw the problems that could arise if the English, before fully establishing themselves, provoked an ally they had already relied on. Therefore, he encouraged the Duke of Brabant to resist, rallied many of Jacqueline's subjects to support him, and marched troops to aid him. As the Duke of Gloucester remained determined in his plans, a fierce war erupted in the Low Countries. The conflict soon became both personal and political. The English prince wrote to the Duke of Burgundy, complaining about the opposition to his claims, and while his letter mainly used conciliatory language, he mentioned some lies he claimed Philip had fallen for during these events. This careless remark was taken very seriously, and the Duke of Burgundy demanded a retraction, leading to mutual challenges and defiance between them on this matter.[*]

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 19, 20, 21.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 19, 20, 21.

The duke of Bedford could easily foresee the bad effects of so ill-timed and imprudent a quarrel. All the succors which he expected from England, and which were so necessary in this critical emergence, were intercepted by his brother, and employed in Holland and Hainault: the forces of the duke of Burgundy, which he also depended on, were diverted by the same wars: and besides this double loss, he was in imminent danger of alienating forever that confederate whose friendship was of the utmost importance, and whom the late king had enjoined him, with his dying breath, to gratify by every mark of regard and attachment. He represented all these topics to the duke of Glocester: he endeavored to mitigate the resentment of the duke of Burgundy: he interposed with his good offices between these princes, but was not successful in any of his endeavors; and he found that the impetuosity of his brother’s temper was still the chief obstacle to all accommodation.[*] For this reason, instead of pushing the victory gained at Verneuil, he found himself obliged to take a journey into England, and to try, by his counsels and authority, to moderate the measures of the duke of Glocester.

The Duke of Bedford could easily see the negative consequences of such a poorly timed and careless quarrel. All the support he expected from England, which was crucial in this critical situation, was intercepted by his brother and sent to Holland and Hainault. The forces of the Duke of Burgundy, which he also relied on, were diverted by the same wars. On top of this double loss, he faced the real threat of permanently alienating a crucial ally whose friendship was extremely important, and whom the late king had urged him, with his final words, to treat with respect and affection. He brought all these points to the Duke of Gloucester's attention; he tried to ease the Duke of Burgundy's anger; he acted as a mediator between these princes, but he was unsuccessful in any of his efforts, and he realized that his brother’s impulsive temperament was still the main barrier to any resolution. For this reason, instead of capitalizing on the victory achieved at Verneuil, he found himself having to make a trip to England to try, through his advice and influence, to temper the actions of the Duke of Gloucester.

There had likewise broken out some differences among the English ministry, which had proceeded to great extremities, and which required the regent’s presence to compose them.[**] The bishop of Winchester, to whom the care of the king’s person and education had been intrusted, was a prelate of great capacity and experience, but of an intriguing and dangerous character; and as he aspired to the government of affairs, he had continual disputes with his nephew the protector; and he gained frequent advantages over the vehement and impolitic temper of that prince.

Some disagreements had also emerged within the English government, which escalated significantly and needed the regent’s presence to resolve them. The bishop of Winchester, who was responsible for the king’s care and education, was a highly capable and experienced leader, but he had a scheming and risky nature. He aimed to take control of the affairs and constantly clashed with his nephew, the protector, often gaining the upper hand due to the protector's impulsive and unwise temperament.

1425.

1425.

The duke of Bedford employed the authority of parliament to reconcile them; and these rivals were obliged to promise, before that assembly, that they would bury all quarrels in oblivion.[***] Time also seemed to open expedients for composing the difference with the duke of Burgundy. The credit of that prince had procured a bull from the pope; by which not only Jaqueline’s contract with the duke of Glocester was annulled, but it was also declared that, even in case of the duke of Brabant’s death, it should never be lawful for her to espouse the English prince. Humphrey, despairing of success, married another lady of inferior rank, who had lived some time with him as his mistress.[****]

The Duke of Bedford used the power of parliament to bring them together; these rivals had to promise, in front of that assembly, that they would put all their disputes behind them. Time also seemed to offer ways to resolve the issue with the Duke of Burgundy. The influence of that prince had secured a papal bull that not only annulled Jaqueline’s contract with the Duke of Gloucester, but also stated that, even if the Duke of Brabant died, it would never be allowed for her to marry the English prince. Humphrey, losing hope, married another woman of lower status, who had been living with him as his mistress for some time.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 18.

     ** Stowe, p. 368. Holingshed, p. 530.

     *** Hall, fol. 98, 99. Hollingshed, p. 593, 594. Polydore
     Virgil, p. 466. Grafton, p. 512, 519.

     **** Stowe, p 367.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 18.

     ** Stowe, p. 368. Holingshed, p. 530.

     *** Hall, fol. 98, 99. Hollingshed, p. 593, 594. Polydore
     Virgil, p. 466. Grafton, p. 512, 519.

     **** Stowe, p 367.

The duke of Brabant died; and his widow, before she could recover possession of her dominions, was obliged to declare the duke of Burgundy her heir, in case she should die without issue, and to promise never to marry without his consent. But though the affair was thus terminated to the satisfaction of Philip, it left a disagreeable impression on his mind: it excited an extreme jealousy of the English, and opened his eyes to his true interests: and as nothing but his animosity against Charles had engaged him in alliance with them, it counterbalanced that passion by another of the same kind, which in the end became prevalent, and brought him back, by degrees, to his natural connections with his family and his native country.

The Duke of Brabant died, and his widow, before she could regain control of her lands, had to declare the Duke of Burgundy as her heir in case she died without children and promised never to remarry without his consent. Even though this situation satisfied Philip, it left him feeling uneasy; it sparked a strong jealousy towards the English and made him realize his true interests. Since his alliance with them was only fueled by his resentment against Charles, that animosity was eventually replaced by a similar feeling, which ultimately led him back, gradually, to his natural ties with his family and homeland.

About the same time, the duke of Brittany began to withdraw himself from the English alliance. His brother, the count of Richemont, though connected by marriage with the dukes of Burgundy and Bedford, was extremely attached by inclination to the French interest; and he willingly hearkened to all the advances which Charles made him for obtaining his friendship. The staff of constable, vacant by the earl of Buchan’s death, was offered him; and as his martial and ambitious temper aspired to the command of armies, which he had in vain attempted to obtain from the duke of Bedford, he not only accepted that office, but brought over his brother to an alliance with the French monarch. The new constable, having made this one change in his measures, firmly adhered ever after to his engagements with France. Though his pride and violence, which would admit of no rival in his master’s confidence, and even prompted him to assassinate the other favorites, had so much disgusted Charles, that he once banished him the court, and refused to admit him to his presence, he still acted with vigor for the service of that monarch, and obtained at last, by his perseverance, the pardon of all past offences.

Around the same time, the Duke of Brittany started pulling away from the English alliance. His brother, the Count of Richemont, although connected by marriage to the Dukes of Burgundy and Bedford, was very inclined towards the French cause; he eagerly listened to all the overtures Charles made to gain his friendship. The position of constable, which became available after the Earl of Buchan's death, was offered to him. Since his ambitious nature sought command of armies—a position he had unsuccessfully tried to get from the Duke of Bedford—he not only accepted that role but also convinced his brother to ally with the French king. After making this significant shift in his approach, the new constable remained committed to his obligations to France. Although his pride and aggression, which allowed no rivals in his master's favor, even led him to attempt to assassinate other favorites, had so annoyed Charles that he once banished him from court and refused to see him, he still worked diligently for that monarch and ultimately secured forgiveness for all his previous wrongs.

1426.

1426.

In this situation, the duke of Bedford, on his return, found the affairs of France, after passing eight months in England. The duke of Burgundy was much disgusted. The duke of Brittany had entered into engagements with Charles, and had done homage to that prince for his duchy. The French had been allowed to recover from the astonishment into which their frequent disasters had thrown them. An incident too had happened, which served extremely to raise their courage. The earl of Warwick had besieged Montargis with a small army of three thousand men, and the place was reduced to extremity, when the bastard of Orleans undertook to throw relief into it. This general, who was natural son to the prince assassinated by the duke of Burgundy, and who was afterwards created count of Dunois, conducted a body of one thousand six hundred men to Montargis, and made an attack on the enemy’s trenches with so much valor, prudence, and good fortune, that he not only penetrated into the place, but gave a severe blow to the English, and obliged Warwick to raise the siege.[*] This was the first signal action that raised the fame of Dunois, and opened him the road to those great honors which he afterwards attained.

In this situation, the Duke of Bedford, upon his return, found the state of affairs in France after spending eight months in England. The Duke of Burgundy was very frustrated. The Duke of Brittany had made agreements with Charles and had pledged loyalty to him for his duchy. The French had begun to recover from the shock of their many disasters. An event had also occurred that greatly boosted their morale. The Earl of Warwick had laid siege to Montargis with a small army of three thousand men, and the town was on the brink of collapse when the Bastard of Orleans stepped in to provide relief. This general, who was the illegitimate son of the prince murdered by the Duke of Burgundy and who was later made Count of Dunois, led a force of one thousand six hundred men to Montargis. He launched an attack on the enemy's trenches with such bravery, wisdom, and luck that he not only broke into the town but also dealt a heavy blow to the English, forcing Warwick to lift the siege. This was the first significant action that raised Dunois's reputation and paved the way for the great honors he later achieved.

But the regent, soon after his arrival, revived the reputation of the English arms by an important enterprise which he happily achieved. He secretly brought together, in separate detachments, a considerable army to the frontiers of Brittany; and fell so unexpectedly upon that province, that the duke, unable to make resistance, yielded to all the terms required of him. he renounced the French alliance; he engaged to maintain the treaty of Troye; he acknowledged the duke of Bedford for regent of France; and promised to do homage for his duchy to King Henry.[**] And the English prince, having thus freed himself from a dangerous enemy who lay behind him, resolved on an undertaking, which, if successful, would, he hoped, cast the balance between the two nations, and prepare the way for the final conquest of France.

But the regent, shortly after he arrived, restored the reputation of the English military through a significant operation that he successfully completed. He secretly gathered, in separate groups, a large army at the borders of Brittany; and launched a surprise attack on that region, leaving the duke unable to resist, forcing him to agree to all the demands made of him. He renounced the French alliance; he committed to uphold the treaty of Troyes; he recognized the Duke of Bedford as regent of France; and promised to pay homage for his duchy to King Henry.[**] After freeing himself from a dangerous enemy behind him, the English prince planned a venture that, if successful, would hopefully tip the balance between the two nations and pave the way for the ultimate conquest of France.

1428.

1428.

The city of Orleans was so situated between the provinces commanded by Henry, and those possessed by Charles, that it opened an easy entrance to either; and as the duke of Bedford intended to make a great effort for penetrating into the south of France, it behoved him to begin with this place, which, in the present circumstances, was become the most important in the kingdom. He committed the conduct of the enterprise to the earl of Salisbury, who had newly brought him a reënforcement of six thousand men from England, and who had much distinguished himself by his abilities during the course of the present war. Salisbury, passing the Loire, made himself master of several small places, which surrounded Orleans on that side;[***] and as his intentions were thereby known, the French king used every expedient to supply the city with a garrison and provisions, and enable it to maintain a long and obstinate siege.

The city of Orleans was located between the provinces controlled by Henry and those held by Charles, making it an easy entry point for either side. Since the Duke of Bedford planned to make a significant push into southern France, he needed to start with this place, which had become the most important location in the kingdom under the current circumstances. He assigned the operation to the Earl of Salisbury, who had just brought him a reinforcement of six thousand men from England and had distinguished himself with his skills during the ongoing war. Salisbury crossed the Loire and took control of several small areas surrounding Orleans on that side; and since his plans were now clear, the French king did everything possible to supply the city with soldiers and supplies, to enable it to withstand a long and fierce siege.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 32, 33. Holingshed, p. 597.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 35, 36.

     *** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 38, 39. Polyd. Virg. p. 468.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 32, 33. Holingshed, p. 597.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 35, 36.

     *** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 38, 39. Polyd. Virg. p. 468.

The lord of Gaucour, a brave and experienced captain, was appointed governor: many officers of distinction threw themselves into the place: the troops which they conducted were inured to war, and were determined to make the most obstinate resistance: and even the inhabitants, disciplined by the long continuance of hostilities, were well qualified, in their own defence, to second the efforts of the most veteran forces. The eyes of all Europe were turned towards this scene; where, it was reasonably supposed, the French were to make their last stand for maintaining the independence of their monarchy, and the rights of their sovereign.

The lord of Gaucour, a brave and experienced leader, was appointed governor: many distinguished officers joined the cause: the troops they led were battle-hardened and ready to put up fierce resistance: and even the local people, shaped by years of conflict, were well-equipped to support the experienced forces in their own defense. Everyone in Europe was focused on this situation; it was believed that the French were making their final stand to protect the independence of their monarchy and the rights of their king.

The earl of Salisbury at last approached the place with an army, which consisted only of ten thousand men; and not being able, with so small a force, to invest so great a city, that commanded a bridge over the Loire, he stationed himself on the southern side towards Sologne, leaving the other, towards the Beausse, still open to the enemy. He there attacked the fortifications which guarded the entrance to the bridge; and, after an obstinate resistance, he carried several of them; but was himself killed by a cannon ball as he was taking a view of the enemy.[*]

The Earl of Salisbury finally arrived at the location with an army of just ten thousand men. Unable to surround such a large city that controlled a bridge over the Loire with such a small force, he set up camp on the southern side toward Sologne, leaving the other side toward Beausse open to the enemy. He then launched an attack on the fortifications protecting the bridge entrance; after fierce resistance, he captured several of them but was ultimately killed by a cannonball while surveying the enemy. [*]

     * Hall, fol. 105. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 39., Stowe, p.
     369. Hoingshed, p. 599. Grafton, p. 531.
     * Hall, fol. 105. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 39., Stowe, p. 369. Hoingshed, p. 599. Grafton, p. 531.

The earl of Suffolk succeeded to the command; and being reënforced with great numbers of English and Burgundians, he passed the river with the main body of his army, and invested Orleans on the other side. As it was now the depth of winter, Suffolk, who found it difficult, in that season, to throw up intrenchments all around, contented himself, for the present, with erecting redoubts at different distances, where his men were lodged in safety, and were ready to intercept the supplies which the enemy might attempt to throw into the place. Though he had several pieces of artillery in his camp, (and this is among the first sieges in Europe where cannon were found to be of importance,) the art of engineering was hitherto so imperfect, that Suffolk trusted more to famine than to force for subduing the city; and he purposed in the spring to render the circumvallation more complete, by drawing intrenchments from one redoubt to another. Numberless feats of valor were performed both by the besiegers and besieged during the winter: bold sallies were made, and repulsed with equal boldness: convoys were sometimes introduced, and often intercepted: the supplies were still unequal to the consumption of the place: and the English seemed daily, though slowly, to be advancing towards the completion of their enterprise.

The Earl of Suffolk took command and, bolstered by many English and Burgundian troops, crossed the river with the main part of his army, laying siege to Orleans on the opposite side. Since it was deep into winter, Suffolk found it challenging to build fortifications all around, so he settled for setting up redoubts at various distances where his men could be safely stationed and ready to cut off any supplies the enemy might try to send into the city. Although he had several pieces of artillery in his camp—which was one of the first sieges in Europe to show the importance of cannon—engineering techniques were still quite basic. Thus, Suffolk relied more on starvation than force to conquer the city, planning to make the siege more effective in the spring by connecting the redoubts with trenches. Numerous acts of bravery were undertaken by both the attackers and defenders throughout the winter: daring raids were launched and repelled with equal bravery, convoys were occasionally allowed through, but often cut off, and the supplies were still not enough for the city’s needs. Despite the slow progress, it appeared that the English were steadily moving towards achieving their goal.

1429.

1429.

But while Suffolk lay in this situation, the French parties ravaged all the country around; and the besiegers, who were obliged to draw their provisions from a distance were themselves exposed to the danger of want and famine. Sir John Fastolffe was bringing up a large convoy of even kind of stores, which he escorted with a detachment of two thousand five hundred men; when he was attacked by a body of four thousand French, under the command of the counts of Clermont and Dunois. Fastolffe drew up his troops behind the wagons; but the French generals, afraid of attacking him in that posture, planted a battery of cannon against him; which threw every thing into confusion, and would have insured them the victory, had not the impatience of some Scottish troops, who broke the line of battle, brought on an engagement, in which Fastolffe was victorious. The count of Dunois was wounded; and about five hundred French were left on the field of battle. This action, which was of great importance in the present conjuncture, was commonly called the battle of Herrings; because the convoy brought a great quantity of that kind of provisions, for the use of the English army during the Lent season.[*]

But while Suffolk was in this situation, the French forces ravaged all the surrounding areas; and the besiegers, who had to get their supplies from afar, faced the danger of starvation. Sir John Fastolffe was leading a large convoy of various supplies, accompanied by a detachment of two thousand five hundred men, when he was attacked by a group of four thousand French soldiers, led by the counts of Clermont and Dunois. Fastolffe positioned his troops behind the wagons; however, the French generals, wary of attacking him directly in that formation, set up a cannon battery against him, creating chaos and likely ensuring their victory. But the impatience of some Scottish troops, who broke the formation, led to an engagement, in which Fastolffe emerged victorious. The count of Dunois was injured, and about five hundred French soldiers were left dead on the battlefield. This event, which was very significant in the current situation, became known as the Battle of Herrings, because the convoy carried a large supply of that type of food for the English army during Lent season.[*]

Charles seemed now to have but one expedient for saving this city, which had been so long invested. The duke of Orleans, who was still prisoner in England, prevailed on the protector and the council to consent that all his demesnes should be allowed to preserve a neutrality during the war, and should be sequestered, for greater security, into the hands of the duke of Burgundy. This prince, who was much less cordial in the English interests than formerly, went to Paris, and made the proposal to the duke of Bedford; but the regent coldly replied, that he was not of a humor to beat the bushes while others ran away with the game; an answer which so disgusted the duke, that he recalled all the troops of Burgundy that acted in the siege.[**]

Charles now seemed to have only one way to save the city, which had been under siege for so long. The Duke of Orleans, still a prisoner in England, convinced the protector and the council to agree to let all his lands remain neutral during the war, and to place them in the hands of the Duke of Burgundy for additional security. This prince, who was much less supportive of English interests than before, went to Paris and made the proposal to the Duke of Bedford; however, the regent replied coolly that he wasn't in the mood to do the work while others benefited from it. This response so angered the duke that he withdrew all the Burgundian troops involved in the siege.

     * Hall, fol. 100. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 41, 42. Stowe, p.
     369. Holingshed, p. 600. Polyd. Virg. p. 469. Grafton, p.
     532.

     ** Hall, fol. 106. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 42. Stowe, p. 369.
     Grafton, p. 533
* Hall, fol. 100. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 41, 42. Stowe, p. 369. Holingshed, p. 600. Polyd. Virg. p. 469. Grafton, p. 532.

** Hall, fol. 106. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 42. Stowe, p. 369. Grafton, p. 533

This place, however, was every day more and more closely invested by the English: great scarcity began already to be felt by the garrison and inhabitants: Charles, in despair of collecting an army which should dare to approach the enemy’s intrenchments, not only gave the city for lost, but began to entertain a very dismal prospect with regard to the general state of his affairs. He saw that the country in which he had hitherto with great difficulty subsisted, would be laid entirely open to the invasion of a powerful and victorious enemy; and he already entertained thoughts of retiring with the remains of his forces into Languedoc and Dauphiny, and defending himself as long as possible in those remote provinces. But it was fortunate for this good prince that, as he lay under the dominion of the fair, the women whom he consulted had the spirit to support his sinking resolution in this desperate extremity. Mary of Anjou, his queen, a princess of great merit and prudence, vehemently opposed this measure, which, she foresaw, would discourage all his partisans, and serve as a general signal for deserting a prince who seemed himself to despair of success. His mistress too, the fair Agnes Sorel, who lived in entire amity with the queen, seconded all her remonstrances, and threatened that, if he thus pusillanimously threw away the sceptre of France, she would seek in the court of England a fortune more correspondent to her wishes. Love was able to rouse in the breast of Charles that courage which ambition had failed to excite: he resolved to dispute every inch of ground with an imperious enemy, and rather to perish with honor in the midst of his friends, than yield ingloriously to his bad fortune; when relief was unexpectedly brought him by another female of a very different character, who gave rise to one of the most singular revolutions that is to be met with in history.

This place, however, was becoming more and more surrounded by the English every day. The soldiers and residents were starting to feel a real shortage of resources. Charles, in despair over his inability to gather an army brave enough to approach the enemy's defenses, not only gave up on the city but also faced a very bleak outlook regarding his overall situation. He realized that the region where he had struggled to survive would be completely exposed to the invasion of a powerful and victorious enemy; he was already considering withdrawing with the remnants of his forces to Languedoc and Dauphiny, planning to defend himself for as long as he could in those remote areas. But it was fortunate for this noble prince that, while he was feeling defeated, the women he consulted had the resolve to lift his faltering spirits in this desperate time. Mary of Anjou, his queen, a woman of great merit and wisdom, strongly opposed this plan, foreseeing that it would discourage all his supporters and serve as a general signal for abandoning a prince who seemed to have given up hope. His mistress, the lovely Agnes Sorel, who maintained a friendly relationship with the queen, echoed her concerns and threatened that if he cowardly threw away the crown of France, she would seek a fortune in the court of England more aligned with her desires. Love was able to awaken in Charles the courage that ambition had failed to inspire: he decided to fight for every inch of ground against a domineering enemy and preferred to die with honor among his friends rather than surrender ingloriously to his bad luck; just as he made this resolution, unexpected help arrived from another woman of a very different nature, leading to one of the most unique revolutions in history.

In the village of Domremi, near Vaucouleurs, on the borders of Lorraine, there lived a country girl of twenty-seven years of age, called Joan d’Arc, who was servant in a small inn, and who in that station had been accustomed to tend the horses of the guests, to ride them without a saddle to the watering-place, and to perform other offices which, in well frequented inns, commonly fall to the share of the men servants.[*]

In the village of Domremi, near Vaucouleurs, on the borders of Lorraine, there lived a twenty-seven-year-old country girl named Joan d’Arc. She worked as a servant in a small inn, where she was used to taking care of the guests' horses, riding them without a saddle to the watering place, and doing other tasks that are usually assigned to male servants in busy inns.[*]

     * Hall, fol. 107. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 42. Grafton, p.
     534.
* Hall, fol. 107. Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 42. Grafton, p. 534.

This girl was of an irreproachable life, and had not hitherto been remarked for any singularity; whether that she had met with no occasion to excite her genius, or that the unskilful eyes of those who conversed with her had not been able to discern her uncommon merit. It is easy to imagine, that the present situation of France was an interesting object even to persons of the lowest rank, and would become the frequent subject of conversation: a young prince, expelled his throne by the sedition of native subjects, and by the arms of strangers, could not fail to move the compassion of all his people whose hearts were uncorrupted by faction; and the peculiar character of Charles, so strongly inclined to friendship and the tender passions, naturally rendered him the hero of that sex whose generous minds know no bounds in their affections. The siege of Orleans, the progress of the English before that place, the great distress of the garrison and inhabitants, the importance of saving this city and its brave defenders, had turned thither the public eye; and Joan, inflamed by the general sentiment, was seized with a wild desire of bringing relief to her sovereign in his present distresses. Her unexperienced mind, working day and night on this favorite object, mistook the impulses of passion for heavenly inspirations; and she fancied that she saw visions, and heard voices, exhorting her to reëstablish the throne of France, and to expel the foreign invaders. An uncommon intrepidity of temper made her overlook all the dangers which might attend her in such a path; and thinking herself destined by Heaven to this office, she threw aside all that bashfulness and timidity so natural to her sex, her years, and her low station. She went to Vaucouleurs; procured admission to Baudricourt, the governor; informed him of her inspirations and intentions; and conjured him not to neglect the voice of God, who spoke through her, but to second those heavenly revelations which impelled her to this glorious enterprise. Baudricourt treated her at first with some neglect; but on her frequent returns to him, and importunate solicitations, he began to remark something extraordinary in the maid, and was inclined, at all hazards, to make so easy an experiment. It is uncertain whether this gentleman had discernment enough to perceive, that great use might be made with the vulgar of so uncommon an engine; or, what is more likely in that credulous age, was himself a convert to this visionary; but he adopted at last the schemes of Joan; and he gave her some attendants, who conducted her to the French court, which at that time resided at Chinon.

This girl lived a perfectly respectable life and had not previously stood out for anything unique—whether because she hadn’t had the chance to show her talent, or because those around her couldn’t see her true worth. It’s easy to imagine that the current situation in France was a topic of interest even to the lowest of citizens and would often come up in conversation: a young prince, ousted from his throne by the rebellion of his own subjects and by foreign forces, would undoubtedly stir the compassion of his people, especially those whose hearts were untainted by faction. Charles’s unique character, deeply inclined toward friendship and heartfelt emotions, naturally made him a hero to those women whose generous spirits knew no limits to their affections. The siege of Orleans, the advances of the English there, the severe suffering of the garrison and the civilians, and the crucial need to save the city and its brave defenders had captured the public’s attention. Joan, inspired by this shared feeling, was filled with a passionate desire to help her king in his time of distress. Her inexperienced mind, consumed day and night by this goal, mistook her feelings for divine inspiration; she believed she saw visions and heard voices urging her to restore the French throne and drive out the foreign invaders. Her remarkable bravery allowed her to ignore the dangers that might come with such a mission, and believing she was chosen by Heaven for this task, she cast aside all the shyness and fear that were so typical for someone of her age, gender, and lower status. She went to Vaucouleurs; gained access to Baudricourt, the governor; told him about her visions and goals; and implored him not to ignore the voice of God speaking through her but to support the divine messages that beckoned her toward this noble quest. Baudricourt initially treated her with some indifference, but after she repeatedly returned to plead her case, he began to see something remarkable in the girl and was inclined to take a chance on such an unusual endeavor. It’s unclear whether he was insightful enough to recognize the potential of leveraging such a unique figure with the common people or, more likely in that gullible era, if he himself had become a believer in her visions. Ultimately, he accepted Joan’s plans and provided her with some attendants who took her to the French court, which was then based in Chinon.

It is the business of history to distinguish between the miraculous and the marvellous; to reject the first in all narrations merely profane and human; to doubt the second; and when obliged by unquestionable testimony, as in the present case, to admit of something extraordinary, to receive as little of it as is consistent with the known facts and circumstances. It is pretended, that Joan, immediately on her admission, knew the king, though she had never seen his face before, and though he purposely kept himself in the crowd of courtiers, and had laid aside every thing in his dress and apparel which might distinguish him: that she offered him, in the name of the supreme Creator, to raise the siege of Orleans, and conduct him to Rheims to be there crowned and anointed; and on his expressing doubts of her mission, revealed to him, before some sworn confidants, a secret which was unknown to all the world beside himself, and which nothing but a heavenly inspiration could have discovered to her: and that she demanded, as the instrument of her future victories, a particular sword, which was kept in the church of St. Catharine of Fierbois, and which, though she had never seen it, she described by all its marks, and by the place in which it had long lain neglected.[*] This is certain, that all these miraculous stories were spread abroad, in order to captivate the vulgar. The more the king and his ministers were determined to give into the illusion, the more scruples they pretended. An assembly of grave doctors and theologians cautiously examined Joan’s mission, and pronounced it undoubted and supernatural. She was sent to the parliament, then residing at Poictiers; and was interrogated before that assembly: the presidents, the counsellors, who came persuaded of her imposture, went away convinced of her inspiration. A ray of hope began to break through that despair in which the minds of all men were before enveloped. Heaven had now declared itself in favor of France, and had laid bare its outstretched arm to take vengeance on her invaders. Few could distinguish between the impulse of inclination and the force of conviction; and none would submit to the trouble of so disagreeable a scrutiny.

It's history's job to differentiate between the miraculous and the marvelous; to dismiss the first in all narratives that are simply worldly and human; to question the second; and when faced with undeniable evidence, as in this case, to accept something extraordinary while taking in as little as possible that aligns with the known facts and circumstances. It's claimed that Joan, immediately upon her arrival, recognized the king, even though she had never seen him before, and he deliberately blended in with the crowd of courtiers, hiding any distinguishing features in his clothing: that she promised, in the name of the supreme Creator, to lift the siege of Orleans and guide him to Rheims for his crowning and anointing; and when he expressed doubts about her mission, she revealed to him, in front of some sworn confidants, a secret that was known only to him, which nothing but divine inspiration could have revealed to her: and that she requested, as her tool for future victories, a specific sword held in the church of St. Catharine of Fierbois, which she described perfectly, despite having never seen it, and knew where it had long been forgotten. It’s certain that all these miraculous stories were spread to capture the public's imagination. The more the king and his ministers were eager to believe the illusion, the more doubts they acted to have. A gathering of serious doctors and theologians carefully examined Joan's mission and declared it undeniable and supernatural. She was sent to the parliament, then meeting in Poictiers; and was questioned before that assembly: the presidents and counselors, who arrived convinced of her deceit, left believing in her inspiration. A glimmer of hope began to emerge from the despair that had enveloped everyone. Heaven had now shown its support for France and was ready to take revenge on her invaders. Few could tell the difference between the urge of desire and the power of conviction; and no one wanted to deal with the unpleasant task of such a meticulous examination.

     * Hall, fol. 107. Holingshed, p. 600.
     * Hall, fol. 107. Holingshed, p. 600.

After these artificial precautions and preparations had been for some time employed, Joan’s requests were at last complied with: she was armed cap-à-pie, mounted on horseback, and shown in that martial habiliment before the whole people. Her dexterity in managing her steed, though acquired in her former occupation, was regarded as a fresh proof of her mission; and she was received with the loudest acclamations by the spectators. Her former occupation was even denied: she was no longer the servant of an inn. She was converted into a shepherdess, an employment much more agreeable to the imagination. To render her still more interesting, near ten years were subtracted from her age; and all the sentiments of love and of chivalry were thus united to those of enthusiasm, in order to inflame the fond fancy of the people with prepossessions in her favor.

After some time of using these fake precautions and preparations, Joan's requests were finally granted: she was fully armed, mounted on a horse, and paraded in that warrior outfit in front of the entire crowd. Her skill in riding, although developed from her previous job, was seen as further evidence of her mission, and she was greeted with loud cheers from the audience. Her past job was even denied: she was no longer just an inn servant. Instead, she was reimagined as a shepherdess, a role much more appealing to the public’s imagination. To make her even more captivating, they cut about ten years off her age; all feelings of love and chivalry were combined with enthusiasm to ignite the people's imaginations and win their favor.

When the engine was thus dressed up in full splendor, it was determined to essay its force against the enemy. Joan was sent to Blois, where a large convoy was prepared for the supply of Orleans, and an army of ten thousand men, under the command of St. Severe, assembled to escort it. She ordered all the soldiers to confess themselves before they set out on the enterprise: she banished from the camp all women of bad fame: she displayed in her hands a consecrated banner, where the Supreme Being was represented, grasping the globe or earth, and surrounded with flower de luces. And she insisted, in right of her prophetic mission, that the convoy should enter Orleans by the direct road from the side of Beausse: but the count of Dunois, unwilling to submit the rules of the military art to her inspirations, ordered it to approach by the other side of the river, where he knew the weakest part of the English army was stationed.

When the engine was decked out in full glory, it was decided to test its strength against the enemy. Joan was sent to Blois, where a large convoy was organized to supply Orleans, and an army of ten thousand men, led by St. Severe, gathered to escort it. She commanded all the soldiers to confess before they embarked on the mission; she expelled all disreputable women from the camp; she held a consecrated banner in her hands, depicting the Supreme Being holding the globe and surrounded by fleur-de-lis. She insisted, based on her prophetic mission, that the convoy should enter Orleans via the direct route from Beausse. But Count Dunois, unwilling to bend military tactics to her visions, ordered it to approach from the other side of the river, where he knew the weakest part of the English army was positioned.

Previous to this attempt, the maid had written to the regent, and to the English generals before Orleans, commanding them, in the name of the omnipotent Creator, by whom she was commissioned, immediately to raise the siege; and to evacuate France; and menacing them with divine vengeance in case of their disobedience. All the English affected to speak with derision of the maid, and of her heavenly commission; and said, that the French king was now indeed reduced to a sorry pass, when he had recourse to such ridiculous expedients: but they felt their imagination secretly struck with the vehement persuasion which prevailed in all around them; and they waited with an anxious expectation, not unmixed with horror, for the issue of these extraordinary preparations.

Before this attempt, the maid had written to the regent and the English generals before Orleans, commanding them, in the name of the all-powerful Creator who sent her, to immediately lift the siege and leave France, threatening them with divine punishment if they disobeyed. The English pretended to mock the maid and her heavenly mission, saying that the French king had truly hit rock bottom when he resorted to such absurd tactics. However, they secretly felt captivated by the intense belief that surrounded them, and they waited with a mix of anxious anticipation and dread for the outcome of these unusual preparations.

As the convoy approached the river, a sally was made by the garrison on the side of Beausse, to prevent the English general from sending any detachment to the other side: the provisions were peaceably embarked in boats, which the inhabitants of Orleans had sent to receive them: the maid covered with her troops the embarkation: Suffolk did not venture to attack her: and the French general carried back the army in safety to Blois; an alteration of affairs which was already visible to all the world, and which had a proportional effect on the minds of both parties.

As the convoy got closer to the river, the garrison on the Beausse side launched an attack to stop the English general from sending any troops across. The supplies were calmly loaded onto boats that the people of Orleans had sent to pick them up. The maid protected the loading process with her troops, and Suffolk didn't dare to attack her. The French general safely brought the army back to Blois, a shift in the situation that was clear to everyone and had a significant impact on both sides' morale.

The maid entered the city of Orleans, arrayed in her military garb, and displaying her consecrated standard; and was received as a celestial deliverer by all the inhabitants. They now believed themselves invincible under her influence; and Dunois himself, perceiving such a mighty alteration both in friends and foes, consented, that the next convoy, which was expected in a few days, should enter by the side of Beausse. The convoy approached: no sign of resistance appeared in the besiegers: the wagons and troops passed without interruption between the redoubts of the English: a dead silence and astonishment reigned among those troops, formerly so elated with victory, and so fierce for the combat.

The maid entered the city of Orleans, dressed in her military uniform and holding her sacred standard. She was welcomed as a heavenly savior by all the residents. They now felt invincible under her influence. Dunois himself, noticing such a significant change in both allies and enemies, agreed that the next convoy, which was expected in a few days, should enter from the side of Beausse. The convoy approached: there was no sign of resistance from the besiegers. The wagons and troops passed unimpeded between the English redoubts; a dead silence and astonishment filled the ranks of those soldiers, who had once been so confident in their victory and eager for battle.

The earl of Suffolk was in a situation very unusual and extraordinary, and which might well confound the man of the greatest capacity and firmest temper. He saw his troops overawed, and strongly impressed with the idea of a divine influence accompanying the maid. Instead of banishing these vain terrors by hurry, and action, and war, he waited till the soldiers should recover from the panic; and he thereby gave leisure for those prepossessions to sink still deeper into their minds. The military maxims which are prudent in common cases, deceived him in these unaccountable events. The English felt their courage daunted and overwhelmed; and thence inferred a divine vengeance hanging over them. The French drew the same inference from an inactivity so new and unexpected. Every circumstance was now reversed in the opinions of men, on which all depends: the spirit resulting from a long course of uninterrupted success, was on a sudden transferred from the victors to the vanquished.

The Earl of Suffolk was in a situation that was very unusual and extraordinary, one that could easily confuse even the most capable and steadfast person. He noticed that his troops were intimidated and strongly believed that there was a divine influence supporting the maid. Rather than dispelling these unfounded fears through urgency, action, and warfare, he chose to wait for the soldiers to recover from their panic; this decision only allowed those beliefs to sink even deeper into their minds. The military strategies that are usually wise in normal situations misled him in these bizarre circumstances. The English felt their courage crushed and overwhelmed, and as a result, they concluded that divine punishment was looming over them. The French came to the same conclusion based on the inactivity, which was so unusual and unexpected. Every factor was now flipped in the perspectives of people, which everything relies on: the confidence that came from a long period of uninterrupted success suddenly shifted from the victors to the defeated.

The maid called aloud, that the garrison should remain no longer on the defensive; and she promised her followers the assistance of Heaven in attacking those redoubts of the enemy which had so long kept them in awe, and which they had never hitherto dared to insult. The generals seconded her ardor: an attack was made on one redoubt, and it proved successful:[*] all the English who defended the intrenchments were put to the sword or taken prisoners: and Sir John Talbot himself, who had drawn together, from the other redoubts, some troops to bring them relief, durst not appear in the open field against so formidable an enemy.

The maid yelled that the garrison shouldn’t stay on the defensive any longer; she promised her supporters that Heaven would help them attack those enemy strongholds that had intimidated them for so long and that they had never dared to challenge. The generals supported her enthusiasm: they launched an attack on one stronghold, and it was successful: all the English defending the trenches were either killed or captured, and Sir John Talbot himself, who had gathered some troops from the other strongholds to provide assistance, didn’t dare to show up in the open against such a powerful enemy.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 45.
* Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 45.

Nothing, after this success, seemed impossible to the maid and her enthusiastic votaries. She urged the generals to attack the main body of the English in their intrenchments, but Dunois, still unwilling to hazard the fate of France by too great temerity, and sensible that the least reverse of fortune would make all the present visions evaporate, and restore every thing to its former condition, checked her vehemence and proposed to her first to expel the enemy from their forts on the other side of the river, and thus lay the communication with the country entirely open, before she attempted any more hazardous enterprise. Joan was persuaded, and these forts were vigorously assailed. In one attack the French were repulsed; the maid was left almost alone; she was obliged to retreat, and join the runaways; but, displaying her sacred standard, and animating them with her countenance, her gestures, her exhortations, she led them back to the charge, and overpowered the English in their intrenchments. In the attack of another fort, she was wounded in the neck with an arrow; she retreated a moment behind the assailants; she pulled out the arrow with her own hands; she had the wound quickly dressed; and she hastened back to head the troops, and to plant her victorious banner on the ramparts of the enemy.

Nothing seemed impossible for the maid and her enthusiastic followers after this success. She urged the generals to attack the main force of the English in their trenches, but Dunois, still reluctant to risk the fate of France with too much boldness and aware that even a small setback could make all their current hopes vanish and return everything to how it was before, restrained her enthusiasm. He suggested that they first drive the enemy out of their forts on the other side of the river, thereby fully opening up communication with the countryside, before attempting any more dangerous ventures. Joan was convinced, and they vigorously attacked these forts. During one assault, the French were pushed back, leaving the maid almost alone; she had to retreat and join the fleeing soldiers. However, by displaying her sacred standard and encouraging them with her presence, gestures, and words, she rallied them to charge again and overwhelmed the English in their trenches. In the attack on another fort, she was shot in the neck by an arrow. She fell back for a moment behind the attackers, pulled out the arrow with her own hands, had her wound quickly treated, and rushed back to lead her troops, planting her victorious banner on the enemy's ramparts.

By all these successes, the English were entirely chased from their fortifications on that side: they had lost above six thousand men in these different actions; and, what was still more important, their wonted courage and confidence were wholly gone, and had given place to amazement and despair. The maid returned triumphant over the bridge, and was again received as the guardian angel of the city. After performing such miracles, she convinced the most obdurate incredulity of her divine mission: men felt themselves animated as by a superior energy, and thought nothing impossible to that divine hand which so visibly conducted them. It was in vain even for the English generals to oppose with their soldiers the prevailing opinion of supernatural influence: they themselves were probably moved by the same belief: the utmost they dared to advance was, that Joan was not an instrument of God; she was only the implement of the devil: but as the English had felt, to their sad experience, that the devil might be allowed sometimes to prevail, they derived not much consolation from the enforcing of this opinion.

Because of all these victories, the English were completely driven out of their fortifications on that side; they had lost over six thousand men in these various battles. Even more importantly, their usual courage and confidence had vanished, replaced by shock and despair. The maid returned triumphantly over the bridge and was welcomed back as the city’s guardian angel. After performing such miracles, she convinced even the most stubborn skeptics of her divine mission: people felt empowered as if by a higher force, believing that nothing was impossible for that divine hand guiding them so clearly. It was futile for the English generals to try to counter the widespread belief in supernatural influence with their troops; they likely shared the same belief. The most they dared to suggest was that Joan wasn't a tool of God; she was merely an instrument of the devil. But since the English had learned, to their great misfortune, that the devil could sometimes succeed, they found little comfort in promoting this idea.

It might prove extremely dangerous for Suffolk, with such intimidated troops, to remain any longer in the presence of so courageous and victorious an enemy; he therefore raised the siege, and retreated with all the precaution imaginable. The French resolved to push their conquests, and to allow the English no leisure to recover from their consternation. Charles formed a body of six thousand men, and sent them to attack Jergeau, whither Suffolk had retired with a detachment of his army. The siege lasted ten days; and the place was obstinately defended. Joan displayed her wonted intrepidity on the occasion. She descended into the fosse, in leading the attack: and she there received a blow on the head with a stone, by which she was confounded and beaten to the ground: but she soon recovered herself, and in the end rendered the assault successful: Suffolk was obliged to yield himself prisoner to a Frenchman called Renaud; but before he submitted, he asked his adversary whether he were a gentleman. On receiving a satisfactory answer, he demanded whether he were a knight. Renaud replied, that he had not yet attained that honor. “Then I make you one,” replied Suffolk; upon which he gave him the blow with his sword which dubbed him into that fraternity; and he immediately surrendered himself his prisoner.

It could be very dangerous for Suffolk to stay any longer around such a brave and successful enemy with his demoralized troops, so he lifted the siege and retreated as carefully as possible. The French decided to continue their conquests and not give the English any time to recover from their shock. Charles assembled a force of six thousand men and sent them to attack Jergeau, where Suffolk had fallen back with part of his army. The siege lasted ten days, and the town was fiercely defended. Joan showed her usual bravery during this time. She went down into the ditch to lead the charge and got hit on the head by a stone, which knocked her to the ground. However, she quickly got back up and ultimately made the attack successful: Suffolk had to surrender to a Frenchman named Renaud, but before he did, he asked Renaud if he was a gentleman. After getting a satisfactory answer, he asked if Renaud was a knight. Renaud replied that he hadn't yet earned that title. "Then I make you one," said Suffolk, and with that, he tapped him with his sword, officially making him a knight, after which he surrendered as his prisoner.

The remainder of the English army was commanded by Fastolffe, Scales, and Talbot, who thought of nothing but of making their retreat, as soon as possible, into a place of safety; while the French esteemed the overtaking them equivalent to a victory; so much had the events which passed before Orleans altered every thing between the two nations! The vanguard of the French under Richemont and Xaintrailles attacked the rear of the enemy at the village of Patay. The battle lasted not a moment: the English were discomfited and fled: the brave Fastolffe himself showed the example of flight to his troops; and the order of the garter was taken from him, as a punishment for this instance of cowardice.[*] Two thousand men were killed in this action, and both Talbot and Scales taken prisoners.

The rest of the English army was led by Fastolffe, Scales, and Talbot, who cared only about retreating as quickly as possible to a safe place. Meanwhile, the French saw catching up to them as a victory; the events that unfolded in front of Orleans had completely changed everything between the two nations! The vanguard of the French, led by Richemont and Xaintrailles, attacked the rear of the enemy at the village of Patay. The battle was over in an instant: the English were defeated and fled. The brave Fastolffe himself set an example of flight for his troops, and he lost his order of the garter as punishment for this act of cowardice.[*] Two thousand men were killed in this engagement, and both Talbot and Scales were taken prisoner.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 46.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 46.

In the account of all these successes, the French writers, to magnify the wonder, represent the maid (who was now known by the appellation of “the Maid of Orleans”) as not only active in combat, but as performing the office of general; directing the troops, conducting the military operations, and swaying the deliberations in all councils of war. It is certain that the policy of the French court endeavored to maintain this appearance with the public: but it is much more probable, that Dunois and the wiser commanders prompted her in all her measures, than that a country girl, without experience of education, could on a sudden become expert in a profession which requires more genius and capacity than any other active scene of life. It is sufficient praise, that she could distinguish the persons on whose judgment she might rely; that she could seize their hints and suggestions, and on a sudden, deliver their opinions as her own; and that she could curb, on occasion, that visionary and enthusiastic spirit with which she was actuated, and could temper it with prudence and discretion.

In the story of all these successes, French writers, to emphasize the amazement, portray the maid (now known as “the Maid of Orleans”) as not just active in battle but also as taking on the role of a general; directing the troops, managing military operations, and influencing decisions in all war councils. It’s clear that the French court wanted to maintain this image with the public: however, it’s much more likely that Dunois and the more experienced commanders guided her in all her actions than that a country girl, without any education or experience, could suddenly become skilled in a profession that requires more talent and ability than any other active role in life. It’s enough to say that she could identify the people whose judgment she could trust; that she could grasp their suggestions and quickly present their ideas as her own; and that she could, when necessary, temper her visionary and passionate spirit with caution and good sense.

The raising of the siege of Orleans was one part of the maid’s promise to Charles: the crowning of him at Rheims was the other: and she now vehemently insisted that he should forthwith set out on that enterprise. A few weeks before, such a proposal would have appeared the most extravagant in the world. Rheims lay in a distant quarter of the kingdom; was then in the hands of a victorious enemy; the whole road which led to it was occupied by their garrisons; and no man could be so sanguine as to imagine that such an attempt could so soon come within the bounds of possibility. But as it was extremely the interest of Charles to maintain the belief of something extraordinary and divine in these events, and to avail himself of the present consternation of the English, he resolved to follow the exhortations of his warlike prophetess, and to lead his army upon this promising adventure. Hitherto he had kept remote from the scene of war: as the safety of the state depended upon his person, he had been persuaded to restrain his military ardor: but observing this prosperous turn of affairs, he now determined to appear at the head of his armies, and to set the example of valor to all his soldiers, And the French nobility saw at once their young sovereign assuming a new and more brilliant character, seconded by fortune, and conducted by the hand of Heaven, and they caught fresh zeal to exert themselves in replacing him on the throne of his ancestors.

The lifting of the siege at Orleans was part of the promise the maid made to Charles: the other part was his coronation at Rheims. She strongly insisted that he should immediately embark on that mission. Just a few weeks earlier, such a suggestion would have seemed utterly absurd. Rheims was far away and held by a victorious enemy; the entire route to it was controlled by their troops, and no one could realistically believe that such a venture could soon become feasible. However, since it was in Charles's best interest to keep the idea of something extraordinary and divine behind these events alive, and to take advantage of the current panic among the English, he decided to heed his warlike prophetess's advice and lead his army on this promising quest. Until then, he had stayed away from the battlefield; as the safety of the state relied on him, he had been convinced to control his military enthusiasm. But seeing this favorable turn of events, he now resolved to present himself at the front of his armies and demonstrate courage to all his soldiers. The French nobility immediately noticed their young king taking on a new, more glorious persona, favored by fortune and guided by divine intervention, igniting their eagerness to help restore him to the throne of his ancestors.

Charles set out for Rheims at the head of twelve thousand men: he passed by Troye, which opened its gates to him; Chalons imitated the example: Rheims sent him a deputation with its keys, before his approach to it: and he scarcely perceived, as he passed along, that he was marching through an enemy’s country. The ceremony of his coronation was here performed[*] with the holy oil, which a pigeon had brought to King Clovis from heaven, on the first establishment of the French monarchy: the maid of Orleans stood by his side in complete armor, and displayed her sacred banner, which had so often dissipated and confounded his fiercest enemies: and the people shouted with the most unfeigned joy, on viewing such a complication of wonders. After the completion of the ceremony, the maid threw herself at the king’s feet, embraced his knees, and with a flood of tears, which pleasure and tenderness extorted from her, she congratulated him on this singular and marvellous event.

Charles set out for Rheims at the head of twelve thousand men. He passed through Troyes, which welcomed him with open gates; Chalons followed suit. Rheims sent him a group to hand over its keys before he even arrived. As he made his way, he barely noticed that he was marching through enemy territory. The ceremony for his coronation took place here with the holy oil that a dove had brought to King Clovis from heaven, marking the beginning of the French monarchy. The Maid of Orleans stood by his side in full armor, holding her sacred banner that had often defeated his fiercest foes. The crowd erupted in genuine joy at witnessing such a remarkable spectacle. After the ceremony, the Maid fell to her knees before the king, hugged his legs, and with tears of happiness and tenderness, congratulated him on this unique and extraordinary occasion.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 48.
* Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 48.

Charles, thus crowned and anointed, became more respectable in the eyes of all his subjects, and seemed, in a manner, to receive anew, from a heavenly commission, his title to their allegiance. The inclinations of men swaying their belief, no one doubted of the inspirations and prophetic spirit of the maid: so many incidents which passed all human comprehension, left little room to question a superior influence: and the real and undoubted facts brought credit to every exaggeration, which could scarcely be rendered more wonderful. Laon, Soissons, Chateau-Thierri, Provins, and many other towns and fortresses in that neighborhood, immediately after Charles’s coronation, submitted to him on the first summons; and the whole nation was disposed to give him the most zealous testimonies of their duty and affection.

Charles, now crowned and anointed, gained more respect from all his subjects and seemed, in a way, to receive a renewed divine commission for their loyalty. Since people's beliefs are influenced by their feelings, no one questioned the inspiration and prophetic spirit of the young woman; so many events that defied human understanding left little doubt of a higher power at work. The real and undeniable facts gave credibility to every exaggeration, which seemed almost impossible to surpass in awe. Laon, Soissons, Chateau-Thierri, Provins, and several other towns and fortifications in the area quickly submitted to him at his first call after Charles’s coronation, and the entire nation was eager to show their commitment and affection.

Nothing can impress us with a higher idea of the wisdom, address, and resolution of the duke of Bedford, than his being able to maintain himself in so perilous a situation, and to preserve some footing in France, after the defection of so many places, and amidst the universal inclination of the rest to imitate that contagious example. This prince seemed present every where by his vigilance and foresight: he employed every resource which fortune had yet left him: he put all the English garrisons in a posture of defence: he kept a watchful eye over every attempt among the French towards an insurrection: he retained the Parisians in obedience, by alternately employing caresses and severity: and knowing that the duke of Burgundy was already wavering in his fidelity, he acted with so much skill and prudence, as to renew, in this dangerous crisis, his alliance with that prince; an alliance of the utmost importance to the credit and support of the English government.

Nothing can showcase the wisdom, skill, and determination of the Duke of Bedford more than his ability to stay afloat in such a risky situation and maintain a presence in France, despite the loss of so many regions and the widespread tendency of the others to follow that troubling example. This leader seemed to be everywhere through his vigilance and foresight: he used every resource that fortune had left him: he positioned all the English garrisons defensively: he kept a close watch on any potential insurrections among the French: he held the Parisians in check with a mix of kindness and toughness: and knowing that the Duke of Burgundy was already wavering in his loyalty, he acted with such skill and caution that he renewed his alliance with that prince during this critical time; an alliance that was crucial for the credibility and support of the English government.

The small supplies which he received from England set the talents of this great man in a still stronger light. The ardor of the English for foreign conquests was now extremely abated by time and reflection: the parliament seems even to have become sensible of the danger which might attend their further progress: no supply of money could be obtained by the regent during his greatest distresses: and men enlisted slowly under his standard, or soon deserted, by reason of the wonderful accounts which had reached England, of the magic and sorcery, and diabolical power of the maid of Orleans.[*] It happened fortunately, in this emergency, that the bishop of Winchester, now created a cardinal, landed at Calais with a body of five thousand men, which he was conducting into Bohemia, on a crusade against the Hussites. He was persuaded to lend these troops to his nephew during the present difficulties;[**] and the regent was thereby enabled to take the field, and to oppose the French king, who was advancing with his army to the gates of Paris.

The small supplies he received from England highlighted the abilities of this great man even more. The enthusiasm of the English for foreign conquests had significantly decreased over time and with reflection: parliament seemed to have realized the danger that could come from pushing further; the regent couldn’t secure any funds during his toughest times; and men joined his cause slowly or deserted quickly due to the incredible stories coming from England about the magic, sorcery, and terrifying powers of the maid of Orleans.[*] In this moment of need, the bishop of Winchester, now a cardinal, arrived in Calais with a group of five thousand men, whom he was leading to Bohemia on a crusade against the Hussites. He was convinced to lend these troops to his nephew to help with the current troubles;[**] and this allowed the regent to take the field and confront the French king, who was marching with his army toward the gates of Paris.

The extraordinary capacity of the duke of Bedford appeared also in his military operations. He attempted to restore the courage of his troops by boldly advancing to the face of the enemy; but he chose his posts with so much caution, as always to decline a combat, and to render it impossible for Charles to attack him. He still attended that prince in all his movements; covered his own towns and garrisons; and kept himself in a posture to reap advantage from every imprudence or false step of the enemy. The French army, which consisted mostly of volunteers, who served at their own expense, soon after retired and was disbanded: Charles went to Bourges, the ordinary place of his residence; but not till he made himself master of Compiegne, Beauvais, Senlis, Sens, Laval, Lagni, St. Denis, and of many places in the neighborhood of Paris, which the affections of the people had put into his hands.

The duke of Bedford’s remarkable abilities were evident in his military actions. He tried to boost his troops' morale by boldly confronting the enemy; however, he was very careful in choosing his positions, always avoiding direct combat and making it hard for Charles to attack him. He closely followed that prince in all his movements, protected his own towns and garrisons, and positioned himself to take advantage of any mistakes or missteps by the enemy. The French army, primarily made up of volunteers serving at their own expense, soon withdrew and disbanded. Charles went to Bourges, his usual residence, but not before gaining control of Compiegne, Beauvais, Senlis, Sens, Laval, Lagni, St. Denis, and many other areas near Paris, which the local people had willingly given to him.

1430.

1430.

The regent endeavored to revive the declining state of his affairs, by bringing over the young king of England, and having him crowned and anointed at Paris,[***] All the vassals of the crown who lived within the provinces possessed by the English, swore anew allegiance, and did homage to him.

The regent tried to revive the declining state of his situation by bringing the young king of England to Paris and having him crowned and anointed. All the vassals of the crown who lived in the provinces controlled by the English swore their loyalty again and paid him homage.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 459, 472.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 421.

     *** Rymer, vol. x. p 432.
     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 459, 472.

     ** Rymer, vol. x. p. 421.

     *** Rymer, vol. x. p. 432.

But this ceremony was cold and insipid, compared with the lustre which had attended the coronation of Charles at Rheims; and the duke of Bedford expected more effect from an accident, which put into his hands the person that had been the author of all his calamities.

But this ceremony was dull and uninspired, compared to the brilliance that had surrounded the coronation of Charles at Rheims; and the Duke of Bedford anticipated a greater impact from an incident that brought him the person responsible for all his troubles.

The maid of Orleans, after the coronation of Charles, declared to the count of Dunois that her wishes were now fully gratified, and that she had no further desire than to return to her former condition, and to the occupation and course of life which became her sex: but that nobleman, sensible of the great advantages which might still be reaped from her presence in the army, exhorted her to persevere, till, by the final expulsion of the English, she had brought all her prophecies to their full completion. In pursuance of this advice, she threw herself into the town of Compiegne, which was at that time besieged by the duke of Burgundy, assisted by the earls of Arundel and Suffolk; and the garrison, on her appearance, believed themselves thenceforth invincible. But their joy was of short duration. The maid, next day after her arrival, headed a sally upon the quarters of John of Luxembourg; she twice drove the enemy from their intrenchments; finding their numbers to increase every moment, she ordered a retreat; when hard pressed by the pursuers, she turned upon them, and made them again recoil; but being here deserted by her friends, and surrounded by the enemy, she was at last, after exerting the utmost valor, taken prisoner by the Burgundians.[*] The common opinion was, that the French officers, finding the merit of every victory ascribed to her, had, in envy to her renown, by which they were themselves so much eclipsed, willingly exposed her to this fatal accident.

The Maid of Orleans, after Charles's coronation, told the Count of Dunois that she was completely satisfied and only wanted to return to her previous life and the role that suited her gender. However, the nobleman, recognizing the significant benefits her presence could still bring to the army, urged her to continue fighting until she had fulfilled all her prophecies by driving the English out for good. Following this advice, she joined the town of Compiègne, which was then under siege by the Duke of Burgundy, supported by the Earls of Arundel and Suffolk. The garrison felt invincible upon her arrival. However, their happiness was short-lived. The day after she arrived, she led a charge against John of Luxembourg’s forces, driving the enemy from their fortifications twice. But as their numbers kept growing, she ordered a retreat. When the pursuers pressed hard, she turned on them, forcing them to retreat again. Unfortunately, she was ultimately abandoned by her allies and surrounded by the enemy, captured by the Burgundians after demonstrating incredible bravery. The general belief was that the French officers, seeing every victory credited to her, had envied her fame, which overshadowed their own, and had deliberately put her in harm's way, leading to this tragic outcome.

     * Stowe, p. 371.
* Stowe, p. 371.

The envy of her friends, on this occasion, was not a greater proof of her merit than the triumph of her enemies. A complete victory would not have given more joy to the English and their partisans. The service of Te Deum, which has so often been profaned by princes, was publicly celebrated on this fortunate event at Paris. The duke of Bedford fancied that, by the captivity of that extraordinary woman, who had blasted all his successes, he should again recover his former ascendant over France; and to push farther the present advantage, he purchased the captive from John of Luxembourg, and formed a prosecution against her, which, whether it proceeded from vengeance or policy, was equally barbarous and dishonorable.

The jealousy of her friends, this time, was no greater proof of her worth than the victory of her enemies. A complete win would have brought the English and their supporters just as much joy. The Te Deum service, often misused by rulers, was publicly held in Paris to celebrate this fortunate event. The Duke of Bedford believed that by capturing that remarkable woman, who had thwarted all his successes, he would regain his previous dominance over France. To capitalize on this advantage, he bought the captive from John of Luxembourg and set up a prosecution against her, which, whether motivated by revenge or strategy, was both brutal and dishonorable.

1431.

1431.

There was no possible reason why Joan should not be regarded as a prisoner of war, and be entitled to all the courtesy and good usage which civilized nations practise towards enemies on these occasions. She had never, in her military capacity, forfeited, by any act of treachery or cruelty, her claim to that treatment: she was unstained by any civil crime: even the virtues and the very decorums of her sex had ever been rigidly observed by her: and though her appearing in war, and leading armies to battle, may seem an exception, she had thereby performed such signal service to her prince, that she had abundantly compensated for this irregularity; and was, on that very account, the more an object of praise and admiration. It was necessary, therefore, for the duke of Bedford to interest religion some way in the prosecution, and to cover under that cloak his violation of justice and humanity.

There was no reason why Joan shouldn't be considered a prisoner of war and entitled to all the respect and decent treatment that civilized nations show to enemies in such situations. She had never, in her military role, done anything treacherous or cruel to lose that right; she was unblemished by any civil crimes. Even the virtues and proper behavior expected of her gender had always been strictly upheld by her. Although her participation in warfare and leading armies may seem unusual, she had provided such significant service to her prince that she more than made up for this irregularity, making her even more deserving of praise and admiration. Therefore, it was necessary for the Duke of Bedford to involve religion in the prosecution to disguise his violation of justice and humanity under that pretext.

1_272_joan_darc.jpg Joan D’Arc

The bishop of Beauvais, a man wholly devoted to the English interests, presented a petition against Joan, on pretence that she was taken within the bounds of his diocese; and he desired to have her tried by an ecclesiastical court for sorcery, impiety, idolatry, and magic: the university of Paris was so mean as to join in the same request: several prelates, among whom the cardinal of Winchester was the only Englishman, were appointed her judges: they held their court in Rouen, where the young king of England then resided: and the maid, clothed in her former military apparel, but loaded with irons, was produced before this tribunal.

The bishop of Beauvais, a man completely dedicated to English interests, submitted a petition against Joan, claiming that she was captured within his diocese. He wanted her to be tried by a church court for sorcery, impiety, idolatry, and magic. The University of Paris shamefully supported this request. Several bishops, with the cardinal of Winchester being the only English representative, were appointed as her judges. They held their court in Rouen, where the young king of England was staying at the time. The maid, dressed in her old military clothes but shackled in chains, was brought before this court.

She first desired to be eased of her chains: her judges answered, that she had once already attempted an escape by throwing herself from a tower: she confessed the fact, maintained the justice of her intention, and owned that, if she could, she would still execute that purpose. All her other speeches showed the same firmness and intrepidity: though harassed with interrogatories during the course of near four months, she never betrayed any weakness or womanish submission; and no advantage was gained over her. The point which her judges pushed most vehemently, was her visions and revelations, and intercourse with departed saints; and they asked her, whether she would submit to the church the truth of these inspirations: she replied, that she would submit them to God, the fountain of truth. They then exclaimed, that she was a heretic, and denied the authority of the church. She appealed to the pope: they rejected her appeal.

She first wanted to be freed from her chains. Her judges responded that she had already tried to escape by throwing herself from a tower. She admitted this, stood by the justice of her intention, and acknowledged that if she could, she would still pursue that goal. All her other statements displayed the same strength and bravery. Although she was questioned for nearly four months, she never showed any weakness or dependence; no advantage was taken over her. The main issue her judges focused on the most was her visions and communications with saints who had passed away. They asked her if she would submit the truth of these inspirations to the church. She replied that she would submit them to God, the source of truth. They then declared that she was a heretic and denied the authority of the church. She appealed to the pope, but they dismissed her appeal.

They asked her, why she put trust in her standard, which had been consecrated by magical incantations: she replied that she put trust in the Supreme Being alone, whose image was impressed upon it. They demanded, why she carried in her hand that standard at the anointment and coronation of Charles at Rheims: she answered, that the person who had shared the danger was entitled to share the glory. When accused of going to war, contrary to the decorums of her sex, and of assuming government and command over men, she scrupled not to reply, that her sole purpose was to defeat the English, and to expel them the kingdom. In the issue, she was condemned for all the crimes of which she had been accused, aggravated by heresy; her revelations were declared to be inventions of the devil to delude the people; and she was sentenced to be delivered over to the secular arm.

They asked her why she trusted in her standard, which had been blessed by magical spells; she replied that she placed her trust in the Supreme Being alone, whose image was imprinted on it. They questioned why she carried that standard during the anointment and coronation of Charles at Rheims; she answered that someone who shared the danger had the right to share the glory. When accused of going to war, against what was proper for her gender, and of taking command over men, she confidently replied that her only goal was to defeat the English and drive them out of the kingdom. In the end, she was found guilty of all the crimes she was accused of, compounded by charges of heresy; her visions were labeled as the devil's tricks to mislead the people, and she was sentenced to be handed over to the secular authorities.

Joan, so long surrounded by inveterate enemies, who treated her with every mark of contumely; browbeaten and overawed by men of superior rank, and men invested with the ensigns of a sacred character, which she had been accustomed to revere, felt her spirit at last subdued; and those visionary dreams of inspiration, in which she had been buoyed up by the triumphs of success and the applauses of her own party, gave way to the terrors of that punishment to which she was sentenced. She publicly declared herself willing to recant: she acknowledged the illusion of those revelations which the church had rejected; and she promised never more to maintain them. Her sentence was then mitigated: she was condemned to perpetual imprisonment, and to be fed during life on bread and water.

Joan, who had been surrounded by relentless enemies that treated her with disrespect; bullied and intimidated by men of higher status and those holding sacred positions she had once revered, ultimately felt her spirit broken. The imaginative dreams of inspiration that had once uplifted her through her successes and the cheers of her supporters faded away in the face of the fear of the punishment she was given. She publicly stated that she was willing to recant; she admitted that the visions she had were illusions rejected by the church, and she promised not to support them again. Her sentence was then lessened: she was sentenced to life in solitary confinement and to be fed only bread and water.

Enough was now done to fulfil all political views, and to convince both the French and the English, that the opinion of divine influence, which had so much encouraged the one and daunted the other, was entirely without foundation. But the barbarous vengeance of Joan’s enemies was not satisfied with this victory. Suspecting that the female dress, which she had now consented to wear, was disagreeable to her, they purposely placed in her apartment a suit of men’s apparel; and watched for the effects of that temptation upon her. On the sight of a dress in which she had acquired so much renown, and which, she once believed, she wore by the particular appointment of Heaven, all her former ideas and passions revived; and she ventured in her solitude to clothe herself again in the forbidden garment. Her insidious enemies caught her in that situation: her fault was interpreted to be no less than a relapse into heresy: no recantation would now suffice; and no pardon could be granted her. She was condemned to be burned in the market-place of Rouen; and the infamous sentence was accordingly executed. This admirable heroine, to whom the more generous superstition of the ancients would have erected altars, was, on pretence of heresy and magic, delivered over alive to the flames, and expiated, by that dreadful punishment, the signal services which she had rendered to her prince and to her native country.

Enough was done to satisfy all political interests and to convince both the French and the English that the belief in divine influence, which had encouraged one side and intimidated the other, was completely unfounded. However, Joan's enemies were not satisfied with this victory. Doubting that the female dress she had started wearing was to her liking, they intentionally placed a men's outfit in her room and observed how she would react to that temptation. Upon seeing the dress in which she had gained so much fame and which she once thought she wore by divine appointment, all her past feelings and passions came flooding back; she dared to put on the forbidden garment again in her solitude. Her treacherous enemies found her in that situation: her mistake was interpreted as a full-blown relapse into heresy; no recantation would be enough, and no forgiveness could be granted. She was sentenced to be burned in the marketplace of Rouen, and the infamous sentence was carried out

1432.

1432.

The affairs of the English, far from being advanced by this execution, went every day more and more to decay: the great abilities of the regent were unable to resist the strong inclination which had seized the French to return under the obedience of their rightful sovereign, and which that act of cruelty was ill fitted to remove. Chartres was surprised, by a stratagem of the count of Dunois: a body of the English, under Lord Willoughby, was defeated at St. Celerin upon the Sarte:[*] the fair in the suburbs of Caen, seated in the midst of the English territories, was pillaged by De Lore, a French officer: the duke of Bedford himself was obliged by Dunois to raise the siege of Lagni with some loss of reputation: and all these misfortunes, though light, yet being continued and uninterrupted, brought discredit on the English, and menaced them with an approaching revolution. But the chief detriment which the regent sustained, was by the death of his duchess, who had hitherto preserved some appearance of friendship between him and her brother, the duke of Burgundy:[**] and his marriage, soon afterwards, with Jaqueline of Luxembourg, was the beginning of a breach between them.[***] Philip complained, that the regent had never had the civility to inform him of his intentions, and that so sudden a marriage was a slight on his sister’s memory.

The situation for the English, rather than improving with this execution, was deteriorating more and more each day. The regent’s considerable skills couldn't overcome the strong desire among the French to return to the rule of their rightful sovereign, and that act of cruelty was poorly timed to change their minds. Chartres was caught off guard by a trick from the Count of Dunois; a group of English forces, led by Lord Willoughby, was defeated at St. Celerin on the Sarthe. The fair in the suburbs of Caen, right in the middle of English-held territory, was looted by De Lore, a French officer. The Duke of Bedford himself was forced by Dunois to lift the siege of Lagni, which cost him some reputation. All these minor setbacks, although not severe individually, piled up and brought shame to the English and threatened them with a coming upheaval. However, the most significant blow to the regent was the death of his duchess, who had been keeping up some semblance of friendliness between him and her brother, the Duke of Burgundy. His marriage soon after to Jaqueline of Luxembourg marked the start of a rift between them. Philip complained that the regent never had the courtesy to inform him of his intentions and that such a sudden marriage showed disrespect for his sister’s memory.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 100.

     ** Monstrolet, vol. ii. p. 87.

     *** Stowe, p. 373. Grafton, p. 554.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 100.

     ** Monstrolet, vol. ii. p. 87.

     *** Stowe, p. 373. Grafton, p. 554.

The cardinal of Winchester meditated a reconciliation between these princes, and brought both of them to St. Omers for that purpose. The duke of Bedford here expected the first visit, both as he was son, brother, and uncle to a king, and because he had already made such advances as to come into the duke of Burgundy’s territories, in order to have an interview with him: but Philip, proud of his great power and independent dominions, refused to pay this compliment to the regent; and the two princes, unable to adjust the ceremonial, parted without seeing each other.[*] A bad prognostic of their cordial intentions to renew past amity!

The cardinal of Winchester was thinking about reconciling these princes and brought both of them to St. Omers for that reason. The duke of Bedford expected the first visit since he was the son, brother, and uncle of a king, and because he had already made efforts to enter the duke of Burgundy’s territories for a meeting with him. However, Philip, feeling proud of his power and independent lands, refused to acknowledge the regent with this visit. The two princes, unable to agree on the formalities, ended up parting ways without seeing each other. A bad sign of their true intentions to restore past friendship!

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 90. Grafton, p. 561.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 90. Grafton, p. 561.

Nothing could be more repugnant to the interests of the house of Burgundy, than to unite the crowns of France and England on the same head; an event which, had it taken place, would have reduced the duke to the rank of a petty prince, and have rendered his situation entirely dependent and precarious. The title also to the crown of France, which, after the failure of the elder branches, might accrue to the duke or his posterity, had been sacrificed by the treaty of Troye; and strangers and enemies were thereby irrevocably fixed upon the throne. Revenge alone had carried Philip into these impolitic measures; and a point of honor had hitherto induced him to maintain them. But as it is the nature of passion gradually to decay, while the sense of interest maintains a permanent influence and authority, the duke had, for some years, appeared sensibly to relent in his animosity against Charles, and to hearken willingly to the apologies made by that prince for the murder of the late duke of Burgundy. His extreme youth was pleaded in his favor; his incapacity to judge for himself; the ascendant gained over him by his ministers; and his inability to resent a deed which, without his knowledge, had been perpetrated by those under whose guidance he was then placed. The more to flatter the pride of Philip, the king of France had banished from his court and presence Tanegui de Chatel, and all those who were concerned in that assassination; and had offered to make every other atonement which could be required of him. The distress which Charles had already suffered, had tended to gratify the duke’s revenge; the miseries to which France had been so long exposed, had begun to move his compassion; and the cries of all Europe admonished him, that his resentment, which might hitherto be deemed pious, would, if carried further, be universally condemned as barbarous and unrelenting. While the duke was in this disposition, every disgust which he received from England made a double impression upon him; the entreaties of the count of Richemont and the duke of Bourbon, who had married his two sisters, had weight; and he finally determined to unite himself to the royal family of France, from which his own was descended.

Nothing could be more distasteful to the interests of the house of Burgundy than to join the crowns of France and England under one ruler. If that had happened, it would have reduced the duke to the status of a minor prince, making his position completely dependent and uncertain. The claim to the crown of France, which might have passed to the duke or his descendants after the older branches failed, had been given up by the treaty of Troyes; this solidified the foreign and enemy presence on the throne. Revenge was the only reason Philip had pursued these unwise actions, and a sense of honor had so far motivated him to stick with them. However, as is typical with passions that fade over time while self-interest remains powerful, the duke had started to soften his hostility towards Charles and was open to the prince's apologies for the murder of the late duke of Burgundy. His extreme youth was cited as a reason; his lack of ability to judge for himself; the influence exerted over him by his advisors; and his inability to react to a crime that had been committed without his knowledge by those in charge of him. To further flatter Philip's pride, the king of France had exiled Tanegui de Chatel and everyone involved in that assassination from his court and his sight; he had also offered to make any other reparations that could be asked of him. The suffering Charles had already endured had served to satisfy the duke’s desire for revenge; the hardships France had faced for so long had started to evoke his sympathy; and the outcry from all of Europe warned him that his anger, which until now could have been seen as righteous, would be viewed as cruel and unforgiving if it continued. While the duke was in this frame of mind, every offense he received from England affected him even more deeply; the pleas from the Count of Richemont and the Duke of Bourbon, who had married his two sisters, carried weight; and he ultimately decided to align himself with the royal family of France, from which his own line was descended.

1435.

1435.

For this purpose, a congress was appointed at Arras under the mediation of deputies from the pope and the council of Basle: the duke of Burgundy came thither in person: the duke of Bourbon, the count of Richemont, and other persons of high rank, appeared as ambassadors from France: and the English having also been invited to attend, the cardinal of Winchester, the bishops of Norwich and St. David’s, the earls of Huntingdon and Suffolk, with others, received from the protector and council a commission for that purpose.[*]

For this purpose, a congress was organized in Arras with the help of representatives from the pope and the council of Basle: the duke of Burgundy came there in person; the duke of Bourbon, the count of Richemont, and other high-ranking individuals attended as ambassadors from France; and the English were also invited to join, with the cardinal of Winchester, the bishops of Norwich and St. David’s, the earls of Huntingdon and Suffolk, among others, receiving a mandate from the protector and council for this purpose.[*]

The conferences were held in the abbey of St. Vaast, and began with discussing the proposals of the two crowns which were so wide of each other as to admit of no hopes of accommodation. France offered to cede Normandy with Guienne, but both of them loaded with the usual homage and vassalage to the crown. As the claims of England upon France were universally unpopular in Europe, the mediators declared the offers of Charles very reasonable, and the cardinal of Winchester, with the other English ambassadors, without giving a particular detail of their demands, immediately left the congress. There remained nothing but to discuss the mutual pretensions of Charles and Philip. These were easily adjusted: the vassal was in a situation to give law to his superior; and he exacted conditions which, had it not been for the present necessity, would have been deemed, to the last degree, dishonorable and disadvantageous to the crown of France. Besides making repeated atonements and acknowledgments for the murder of the duke of Burgundy, Charles was obliged to cede all the towns of Picardy which lay between the Somme and the Low Countries; he yielded several other territories; he agreed that these and all the other dominions of Philip should be held by him, during his life, without doing any homage, or swearing fealty to the present king; and he freed his subjects from all obligations to allegiance, if ever he infringed this treaty.[**] Such were the conditions upon which France purchased the friendship of the duke of Burgundy.

The conferences took place at the Abbey of St. Vaast and started by discussing the proposals from both crowns, which were so different that there was no hope for a compromise. France offered to give up Normandy and Guienne, but both would come with the usual homage and vassalage to the crown. Since England's claims on France were widely unpopular in Europe, the mediators deemed Charles's offers very reasonable. The Cardinal of Winchester and the other English ambassadors, without detailing their demands, immediately left the congress. All that was left was to discuss the claims of Charles and Philip. These were easily settled; the vassal was in a position to dictate terms to his superior, and he imposed conditions that, but for the urgent situation, would have been considered extremely dishonorable and disadvantageous to the French crown. In addition to making repeated apologies and acknowledgments for the murder of the Duke of Burgundy, Charles was forced to hand over all the towns in Picardy between the Somme and the Low Countries; he conceded several other territories; he agreed that these and all Philip's other territories would be held by him for life without having to pay homage or swear loyalty to the current king; and he freed his subjects from any allegiance if he ever violated this treaty. [**] These were the terms under which France secured the friendship of the Duke of Burgundy.

     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 611, 612.

     ** Monstrelet, vol ii. p. 112. Grafton, p. 565.
     * Rymer, vol. x. p. 611, 612.

     ** Monstrelet, vol ii. p. 112. Grafton, p. 565.

The duke sent a herald to England with a letter, in which he notified the conclusion of the treaty of Arras, and apologized for his departure from that of Troye. The council received the herald with great coldness: they even assigned him his lodgings in a shoemaker’s house, by way of insult; and the populace were so incensed, that if the duke of Glocester had not given him guards, his life had been exposed to danger when he appeared in the streets. The Flemings, and other subjects of Philip, were insulted, and some of them murdered by the Londoners; and every thing seemed to tend towards a rupture between the two nations.[*] These violences were not disagreeable to the duke of Burgundy; as they afforded him a pretence for the further measures which he intended to take against the English, whom he now regarded as implacable and dangerous enemies.

The duke sent a messenger to England with a letter, informing them about the end of the treaty of Arras and explaining his departure from the one made at Troye. The council received the messenger very coldly; they even gave him a place to stay in a shoemaker's house as an insult. The people were so furious that if the duke of Gloucester hadn't provided him with guards, his life would have been in danger when he walked through the streets. The Flemings and other subjects of Philip were insulted, and some were even killed by the people of London; everything seemed to be heading towards a clash between the two nations. These acts of violence were welcomed by the duke of Burgundy, as they gave him a reason to take further actions against the English, whom he now saw as relentless and dangerous enemies.

A few days after the duke of Bedford received intelligence of this treaty, so fatal to the interests of England, he died at Rouen; a prince of great abilities, and of many virtues; and whose memory, except from the barbarous execution of the maid of Orleans, was unsullied by any considerable blemish. Isabella, queen of France, died a little before him, despised by the English, detested by the French, and reduced, in her latter years, to regard with an unnatural horror the progress and success of her own son, in recovering possession of his kingdom. This period was also signalized by the death of the earl of Arundel,[**] a great English general, who, though he commanded three thousand men, was foiled by Xaintrailles at the head of six hundred, and soon after expired of the wounds which he received in the action.

A few days after the Duke of Bedford learned about this treaty, which was disastrous for England, he died in Rouen; he was a prince of great talent and many virtues, and his legacy, apart from the brutal execution of the Maid of Orleans, was free from significant flaws. Isabella, Queen of France, passed away shortly before him, looked down upon by the English, hated by the French, and in her final years, she had to face with unnatural horror the advancements and success of her own son in reclaiming his kingdom. This time was also marked by the death of the Earl of Arundel,[**] a prominent English general, who, despite commanding three thousand men, was defeated by Xaintrailles leading six hundred, and soon after succumbed to the wounds he sustained in the battle.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 120. Holing. p. 612.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 105. Holing, p. 610.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 120. Holing. p. 612.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 105. Holing, p. 610.

1436

1436

The violent factions which prevailed between the duke of Glocester and the cardinal of Winchester, prevented the English from taking the proper measures for repairing these multiplied losses, and threw all their affairs into confusion. The popularity of the duke, and his near relation to the crown, gave him advantages in the contest, which he often lost by his open and unguarded temper, unfit to struggle with the politic and interested spirit of his rival. The balance, meanwhile, of these parties, kept every thing in suspense; foreign affairs were much neglected; and though the duke of York, son to that earl of Cambridge who was executed in the beginning of the last reign, was appointed successor to the duke of Bedford, it was seven months before his commission passed the seals; and the English remained so long in an enemy’s country, without a proper head or governor.

The violent conflicts between the Duke of Gloucester and the Cardinal of Winchester prevented the English from taking the necessary steps to address their many losses and threw everything into chaos. The Duke's popularity and close relation to the crown gave him an edge in the struggle, which he often lost due to his blunt and reckless nature, unfit to compete with the crafty and self-serving tactics of his rival. Meanwhile, the balance of power between these factions kept everything in limbo; foreign affairs were largely ignored, and although the Duke of York, son of the Earl of Cambridge who was executed early in the last reign, was appointed as the successor to the Duke of Bedford, it took seven months for his commission to be finalized. The English remained for too long in enemy territory without a proper leader or governor.

The new governor, on his arrival, found the capital already lost. The Parisians had always been more attached to the Burgundian than to the English interest; and after the conclusion of the treaty of Arras, their affections, without any further control, universally led them to return to their allegiance under their native sovereign. The constable, together with Lile-Adam, the same person who had before put Paris into the hands of the duke of Burgundy, was introduced in the night-time by intelligence with the citizens: Lord Willoughby, who commanded only a small garrison of fifteen hundred men, was expelled: this nobleman discovered valor and presence of mind on the occasion; but unable to guard so large a place against such multitudes, he retired into the Bastile, and being there invested, he delivered up that fortress, and was contented to stipulate for the safe retreat of his troops into Normandy.[*]

The new governor, upon his arrival, found the capital already lost. The Parisians had always been more loyal to the Burgundian side than to the English. After the treaty of Arras was signed, their feelings quickly led them back to their allegiance to their native king. The constable, along with Lile-Adam, the same person who had previously handed Paris over to the Duke of Burgundy, was brought in under the cover of night with help from the citizens. Lord Willoughby, who was in command of a small garrison of fifteen hundred men, was forced out. This nobleman showed bravery and quick thinking during the situation, but unable to defend such a large city against overwhelming numbers, he retreated to the Bastille. Once surrounded there, he surrendered the fortress and agreed to ensure the safe departure of his troops to Normandy.[*]

In the same season, the duke of Burgundy openly took part against England, and commenced hostilities by the siege of Calais, the only place which now gave the English any sure hold of France, and still rendered them dangerous. As he was beloved among his own subjects, and had acquired the epithet of Good, from his popular qualities, he was able to interest all the inhabitants of the Low Countries in the success of this enterprise; and he invested that place with an army formidable from its numbers, but without experience, discipline, or military spirit.[**] On the first alarm of this siege, the duke of Glocester assembled some forces, sent a defiance to Philip, and challenged him to wait the event of a battle, which he promised to give, as soon as the wind would permit him to reach Calais. The warlike genius of the English had at that time rendered them terrible to all the northern parts of Europe; especially to the Flemings, who were more expert in manufactures than in arms; and the duke of Burgundy, being already foiled in some attempts before Calais, and observing the discontent and terror of his own army, thought proper to raise the siege, and to retreat before the arrival of the enemy.[***]

In the same season, the Duke of Burgundy openly joined the fight against England and started hostilities by laying siege to Calais, the only place that still provided the English a firm foothold in France and made them a threat. Because he was loved by his subjects and earned the nickname "Good" due to his popular qualities, he got all the people of the Low Countries invested in the success of this mission. He surrounded the city with a large army, which was intimidating in size but lacked experience, discipline, or military spirit. At the first sign of trouble from the siege, the Duke of Gloucester gathered some troops, sent a challenge to Philip, and dared him to face him in battle, promising to deliver it as soon as the winds allowed him to reach Calais. The competitive nature of the English made them feared across northern Europe at that time, especially by the Flemings, who were better at manufacturing than fighting. After experiencing some setbacks near Calais and noticing the dissatisfaction and fear in his own army, the Duke of Burgundy decided to lift the siege and retreat before the enemy arrived.

     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 127. Grafton, p. 568.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii, p. 126, 130, 132. Holing. p. 613.
     Grafton, p 571.

     *** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 136. Holing. p. 614.
     * Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 127. Grafton, p. 568.

     ** Monstrelet, vol. ii, p. 126, 130, 132. Holing. p. 613.
     Grafton, p 571.

     *** Monstrelet, vol. ii. p. 136. Holing. p. 614.

The English were still masters of many fine provinces in France; but retained possession more by the extreme weakness of Charles, than by the strength of their own garrisons or the force of their armies. Nothing, indeed, can be more surprising than the feeble efforts made, during the course of several years, by these two potent nations against each other while the one struggled for independence, and the other aspired to a total conquest of its rival. The general want of industry, commerce, and police in that age, had rendered all the European nations, and France and England no less than the others, unfit for bearing the burdens of war, when it was prolonged beyond one season; and the continuance of hostilities had, long ere this time, exhausted the force and patience of both kingdoms. Scarcely could the appearance of an army be brought into the field on either side; and all the operations consisted in the surprisal of places, in the rencounter of detached parties, and in incursions upon the open country; which were performed by small bodies, assembled on a sudden from the neighboring garrisons. In this method of conducting the war, the French king had much the advantage: the affections of the people were entirely on his side: intelligence was early brought him of the state and motions of the enemy: the inhabitants were ready to join in any attempts against the garrisons: and thus ground was continually, though slowly, gained upon the English. The duke of York, who was a prince of abilities, struggled against these difficulties during the course of five years; and being assisted by the valor of Lord Talbot, soon after created earl of Shrewsbury, he performed actions which acquired him honor, but merit not the attention of posterity. It would have been well, had this feeble war, in sparing the blood of the people, prevented likewise all other oppressions; and had the fury of men, which reason and justice cannot restrain, thus happily received a check from their impotence and inability. But the French and English, though they exerted such small force, were, however, stretching beyond their resources, which were still smaller; and the troops, destitute of pay, were obliged to subsist by plundering and oppressing the country, both of friends and enemies. The fields in all the north of France, which was the seat of war, were laid waste and left uncultivated.[*]

The English still controlled many beautiful provinces in France, but they held onto them more because of Charles's extreme weakness than the strength of their own troops or armies. It's really surprising how weak the efforts were over several years by these two powerful nations against each other, with one fighting for independence and the other aiming for total conquest. The general lack of industry, commerce, and law enforcement during that time made all European nations, including France and England, unable to handle the strains of war once it dragged on beyond a season; the ongoing conflict had long since drained the strength and patience of both kingdoms. It was hard for either side to muster an army; their operations mostly consisted of surprising locations, encounters with small groups, and raids in the countryside, carried out by small units that suddenly gathered from nearby garrisons. In this style of warfare, the French king had a significant advantage: the people fully supported him, he received early reports about the enemy’s movements, the locals were eager to participate in efforts against the garrisons, and thus ground was continuously, if slowly, gained on the English. The Duke of York, a capable prince, faced these challenges for five years; with help from the bravery of Lord Talbot, who would later be made Earl of Shrewsbury, he achieved actions that earned him honor but have been mostly overlooked by history. It would have been better if this weakened war, while saving the blood of the people, had also prevented other forms of oppression; if the rage of men, which reason and justice cannot control, had been surprisingly curtailed by their powerlessness. Yet, even with such limited forces, the French and English were still overextending themselves, with their resources even scarcer; the troops, without pay, resorted to plundering and oppressing the countryside, both of allies and enemies. The fields in northern France, the war's battleground, were devastated and left uncultivated.[*]

     * Grafton, p 562.
* Grafton, p. 562.

1440.

1440.

The cities were gradually depopulated, not by the blood spilt in battle, but by the more destructive pillage of the garrisons;[*] and both parties, weary of hostilities which decided nothing, seemed at last desirous of peace, and they set on foot negotiations for that purpose. But the proposals of France, and the demands of England, were still so wide of each other, that all hope of accommodation immediately vanished. The English ambassadors demanded restitution of all the provinces which had once been annexed to England, together with the final cession of Calais and its district; and required the possession of these extensive territories without the burden of any fealty or homage on the part of their prince: the French offered only part of Guienne, part of Normandy, and Calais, loaded with the usual burdens. It appeared in vain to continue the negotiation while there was so little prospect of agreement. The English were still too haughty to stoop from the vast hopes which they had formerly entertained, and to accept of terms more suitable to the present condition of the two kingdoms.

The cities were slowly losing their populations, not from bloodshed in battle, but from the more damaging looting by the troops;[*] and both sides, tired of fighting that achieved nothing, finally seemed eager for peace, prompting them to start negotiations for that purpose. However, the proposals from France and the demands from England were still so far apart that any hope of a deal quickly vanished. The English ambassadors demanded the return of all the regions that had once been part of England, along with the permanent handover of Calais and its surrounding area; they insisted on controlling these large territories without any obligation of loyalty or tribute from their king. The French only offered parts of Guienne, parts of Normandy, and Calais, with the usual obligations attached. It seemed pointless to continue the talks with such a slim chance of reaching an agreement. The English remained too proud to lower their sights from the grand expectations they once had and to accept terms that were more in line with the current state of both kingdoms.

The duke of York soon after resigned his government to the earl of Warwick, a nobleman of reputation, whom death prevented from long enjoying this dignity. The duke, upon the demise of that nobleman, returned to his charge; and during his administration, a truce was concluded between the king of England and the duke of Burgundy, which had become necessary for the commercial interests of their subjects.[**] The war with France continued in the same languid and feeble state as before.

The Duke of York soon resigned his position to the Earl of Warwick, a well-regarded nobleman, but death prevented him from holding this position for long. After the nobleman’s death, the Duke resumed his role, and during his time in charge, a truce was established between the King of England and the Duke of Burgundy, which was essential for the trade interests of their people. The war with France continued in the same weak and sluggish condition as before.

The captivity of five princes of the blood, taken prisoners in the battle of Azincour, was a considerable advantage, which England long enjoyed over its enemy; but this superiority was now entirely lost. Some of these princes had died; some had been ransomed; and the duke of Orleans, the most powerful among them, was the last that remained in the hands of the English. He offered the sum of fifty-four thousand nobles[***] for his liberty; and when this proposal was laid before the council of England, as every question was there an object of faction, the party of the duke of Glocester, and that of the cardinal of Winchester, were divided in their sentiments with regard to it.

The captivity of five royal princes, captured in the battle of Azincourt, was a significant advantage that England held over its enemy for a long time; however, this edge was now completely lost. Some of these princes had died, others had been ransomed, and the duke of Orleans, the most powerful among them, was the last one still in English hands. He offered fifty-four thousand nobles for his freedom, and when this proposal was presented to the council of England, where every issue was a matter of faction, the supporters of the duke of Gloucester and those of the cardinal of Winchester were divided in their opinions on it.

     * Fortescue, who soon after this period visited France, in
     the train of Prince Henry, speaks of that kingdom as a
     desert, in comparison of England. See his treatise De
     Laudibus Legum Angliæ. Though we make allowance for the
     partialities of Fortescue, there must have been some
     foundation for his account; and these destructive wars are
     the most likely reason to be assigned for the difference
     remarked by this author.

     ** Grafton, p. 673.

     *** Rymer, vol. x. p. 764, 776, 782, 795, 796. This sum was
     equal to thirty-six thousand pounds sterling of our present
     money. A subsidy of a tenth and fifteenth was fixed by
     Edward III. at twenty-nine thousand pounds, which, in the
     reign of Henry VI., made only fifty-eight thousand pounds of
     our present money. The parliament granted only one subsidy
     during the course of seven years, from 1437 to 1444.
* Fortescue, who shortly after this time visited France with Prince Henry, describes that country as a wasteland compared to England. See his treatise De Laudibus Legum Angliæ. Even accounting for Fortescue's biases, there must have been some truth to his observations, and the destructive wars are the most likely reason for the differences noted by this author.

** Grafton, p. 673.

*** Rymer, vol. x. p. 764, 776, 782, 795, 796. This amount was equivalent to thirty-six thousand pounds in today's currency. A subsidy of a tenth and fifteenth was set by Edward III at twenty-nine thousand pounds, which, during Henry VI's reign, was only worth fifty-eight thousand pounds today. The parliament approved only one subsidy over seven years, from 1437 to 1444.

The duke reminded the council of the dying advice of the late king, that none of these prisoners should on any account be released, till his son should be of sufficient age to hold himself the reins of government. The cardinal insisted on the greatness of the sum offered, which, in reality, was nearly equal to two thirds of all the extraordinary supplies that the parliament, during the course of seven years, granted for the support of the war. And he added, that the release of this prince was more likely to be advantageous than prejudicial to the English interests; by filling the court of France with faction, and giving a head to those numerous malecontents whom Charles was at present able with great difficulty to restrain. The cardinal’s party, as usual, prevailed: the duke of Orleans was released, after a melancholy captivity of twenty-five years:[*] and the duke of Burgundy, as a pledge of his entire reconciliation with the family of Orleans, facilitated to that prince the payment of his ransom. It must be confessed, that the princes and nobility, in those ages, went to war on very disadvantageous terms. If they were taken prisoners, they either remained in captivity during life, or purchased their liberty at the price which the victors were pleased to impose, and which often reduced their families to want and beggary.

The duke reminded the council of the dying advice from the late king that none of these prisoners should be released under any circumstances until his son was old enough to take charge of the government. The cardinal emphasized the significance of the large sum offered, which was nearly two-thirds of all the extra funds that parliament had approved over seven years to support the war. He added that releasing this prince would likely benefit English interests by creating factionalism in the French court and providing leadership to the many discontented individuals that Charles was struggling to control. As usual, the cardinal's faction won out: the duke of Orleans was released after a sorrowful captivity of twenty-five years, and the duke of Burgundy, as a sign of his full reconciliation with the Orleans family, helped that prince pay his ransom. It must be acknowledged that princes and nobles in those times went to war under very unfavorable conditions. If they were captured, they either stayed in captivity for life or had to buy their freedom at the price set by their captors, which often left their families in poverty and begging.

     * Grafton, p. 578.
Grafton, p. 578.

1443.

1443.

The sentiments of the cardinal, some time after, prevailed in another point of still greater moment. That prelate had always encouraged every proposal of accommodation with France; and had represented the utter impossibility, in the present circumstances, of pushing farther the conquests in that kingdom, and the great difficulty of even maintaining those which were already made. He insisted on the extreme reluctance of the parliament to grant supplies; the disorders in which the English affairs in Normandy were involved; the daily progress made by the French king; and the advantage of stopping his hand by a temporary accommodation which might leave room for time and accidents to operate in favor of the English. The duke of Glocester, high-spirited and haughty, and educated in the lofty pretensions which the first successes of his two brothers had rendered familiar to him, could not yet be induced to relinquish all hopes of prevailing over France; much less could he see with patience his own opinion thwarted and rejected by the influence of his rival in the English council. But, notwithstanding his opposition, the earl of Suffolk, a nobleman who adhered to the cardinal’s party, was despatched to Tours, in order to negotiate with the French ministers. It was found impossible to adjust the terms of a lasting peace; but a truce for twenty-two months was concluded, which left every thing on the present footing between the parties. The numerous disorders under which the French government labored, and which time alone could remedy, induced Charles to assent to this truce; and the same motives engaged him afterwards to prolong it.[*] But Suffolk, not content with executing this object of his commission, proceeded also to finish another business, which seems rather to have been implied than expressed in the powers that had been granted him.[**]

The cardinal's feelings eventually became important regarding another matter of even greater significance. This church official had always supported any effort to make peace with France and emphasized the complete impossibility, given the current situation, of further expanding conquests in that country, as well as the significant challenge of even maintaining those already achieved. He pointed out the extreme hesitance of parliament to provide funding, the chaos surrounding English affairs in Normandy, the steady advances made by the French king, and the benefit of halting further conflict through a temporary peace that could allow time and circumstances to work in England's favor. The Duke of Gloucester, proud and arrogant, and raised with the high expectations that his brothers' early victories had instilled in him, still couldn't be convinced to give up on turning the tide against France; even less could he tolerate seeing his own views contradicted and dismissed by the influence of his rival in the English council. However, despite his resistance, the Earl of Suffolk, a nobleman loyal to the cardinal's faction, was sent to Tours to negotiate with the French officials. Although it proved impossible to reach terms for a lasting peace, a truce for twenty-two months was established, keeping everything as it was between the two sides. The numerous issues facing the French government, which only time could resolve, led Charles to agree to this truce, and the same reasons later prompted him to extend it. But Suffolk, not satisfied with merely accomplishing this goal, also took it upon himself to address another matter that seemed more implied than explicitly stated in the authority he had received.

     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 101, 108, 206, 214.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 53.
     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 101, 108, 206, 214.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 53.

In proportion as Henry advanced in years, his character became fully known in the court, and was no longer ambiguous to either faction. Of the most harmless, inoffensive, simple manners, but of the most slender capacity, he was fitted, both by the softness of his temper and the weakness of his understanding, to be perpetually governed by those who surrounded him; and it was easy to foresee that his reign would prove a perpetual minority. As he had now reached the twenty-third year of his age, it was natural to think of choosing him a queen; and each party was ambitious of having him receive one from their hand, as it was probable that this circumstance would decide forever the victory between them. The duke of Glocester proposed a daughter of the count of Armagnac; but had not credit to effect his purpose. The cardinal and his friends had cast their eye on Margaret of Anjou, daughter of Regnier, titular king of Sicily, Naples, and Jerusalem, descended from the count of Anjou, brother of Charles V., who had left these magnificent titles, but without any real power or possessions, to his posterity. This princess herself was the most accomplished of her age, both in body and mind; and seemed to possess those qualities which would equally qualify her to acquire the ascendant over Henry, and to supply all his defects and weaknesses. Of a masculine, courageous spirit, of an enterprising temper, endowed with solidity as well as vivacity of understanding, she had not been able to conceal these great talents even in the privacy of her father’s family; and it was reasonable to expect, that when she should mount the throne, they would break out with still superior lustre. The earl of Suffolk, therefore, in concert with his associates of the English council, made proposals of marriage to Margaret, which were accepted. But this nobleman, besides preoccupying the princess’s favor by being the chief means of her advancement, endeavored to ingratiate himself with her and her family, by very extraordinary concessions: though Margaret brought no dowry with her, he ventured of himself, without any direct authority from the council, but probably with the approbation of the cardinal and the ruling members, to engage, by a secret article, that the province of Maine, which was at that time in the hands of the English, should be ceded to Charles of Anjou, her uncle,[*] who was prime minister and favorite of the French king, and who had already received from his master the grant of that province as his appanage.

As Henry grew older, his character became well-known in the court, and neither side had any doubts about him. He had a harmless and simple demeanor, but a limited intellect, which meant he was easily controlled by those around him. It was clear that his reign would be one where he was constantly overshadowed. Now that he had turned twenty-three, it was natural to consider choosing a queen for him. Each faction wanted him to marry someone from their side, as it seemed likely that this would settle their rivalry for good. The Duke of Glocester suggested a daughter of the Count of Armagnac, but he lacked the influence to make it happen. Meanwhile, the cardinal and his allies had their sights set on Margaret of Anjou, daughter of Regnier, who claimed the titles of King of Sicily, Naples, and Jerusalem. She came from the House of Anjou, which included Charles V’s brother, who had left behind these grand titles with no real power or land for his descendants. Margaret was the most accomplished of her time, both physically and intellectually, possessing qualities that would allow her to gain control over Henry and compensate for his shortcomings. With a bold and adventurous spirit, as well as a sharp and lively mind, she had not been able to hide her considerable talents even within her father’s household, and it was reasonable to think that these would shine even brighter when she took the throne. Therefore, the Earl of Suffolk, along with his colleagues on the English council, proposed marriage to Margaret, and she accepted. However, besides winning her favor as a key player in her rise, he also tried to win over her and her family with unusual concessions. Even though Margaret came without a dowry, he took it upon himself, without direct approval from the council but likely with the backing of the cardinal and other leaders, to secretly agree that the province of Maine, which was then under English control, would be handed over to Charles of Anjou, her uncle, who was the prime minister and favorite of the French king, and who had already received that province as part of his official role.

The treaty of marriage was ratified in England: Suffolk obtained first the title of marquis, then that of duke; and even received the thanks of parliament for his services in concluding it.[**] The princess fell immediately into close connections with the cardinal and his party, the dukes of Somerset, Suffolk, and Buckingham;[***] who, fortified by her powerful patronage, resolved on the final ruin of the duke of Glocester.

The marriage treaty was approved in England: Suffolk was first granted the title of marquis and then duke; he even received thanks from parliament for his efforts in securing it.[**] The princess quickly formed strong ties with the cardinal and his allies, the dukes of Somerset, Suffolk, and Buckingham;[***] who, backed by her influential support, decided to finally take down the duke of Gloucester.

     * Grafton, p. 590.

     ** Cotton, p. 630.

     *** Holingshed, p. 626.
     * Grafton, p. 590.

     ** Cotton, p. 630.

     *** Holingshed, p. 626.

1447.

1447.

This generous prince, worsted in all court intrigues, for which his temper was not suited, but possessing in a high degree the favor of the public, had already received from his rivals a cruel mortification, which he had hitherto borne without violating public peace, but which it was impossible that a person of his spirit and humanity could ever forgive. His duchess, the daughter of Reginald Lord Cobham, had been accused of the crime of witchcraft; and it was pretended, that there was found in her possession a waxen figure of the king, which she and her associates, Sir Roger Bolingbroke, a priest, and one Margery Jordan, of Eye, melted in a magical manner before a slow fire, with an intention of making Henry’s force and vigor waste away by like insensible degrees. The accusation was well calculated to affect the weak and credulous mind of the king, and to gain belief in an ignorant age; and the duchess was brought to trial with her confederates. The nature of this crime, so opposite to all common sense, seems always to exempt the accusers from observing the rules of common sense in their evidence: the prisoners were pronounced guilty; the duchess was condemned to do public penance, and to suffer perpetual imprisonment; the others were executed.[*] But as these violent proceedings were ascribed solely to the malice of the duke’s enemies, the people, contrary to their usual practice in such marvellous trials, acquitted the unhappy sufferers; and increased their esteem and affection towards a prince who was thus exposed, without protection, to those mortal injuries.

This generous prince, overwhelmed by all the court intrigues that he wasn’t suited for, but highly favored by the public, had already suffered a cruel humiliation from his rivals. He had managed to endure it without disrupting public peace, but it was impossible for someone with his spirit and compassion to ever forgive. His duchess, the daughter of Reginald Lord Cobham, was accused of witchcraft; it was claimed that she possessed a wax figure of the king, which she and her accomplices, Sir Roger Bolingbroke, a priest, and Margery Jordan from Eye, melted in a magical way over a slow fire, intending to drain Henry's strength gradually. The accusation was designed to prey on the king's weak and gullible mind, gaining traction in an ignorant era; thus, the duchess was put on trial with her co-conspirators. The nature of this bizarre accusation seemed to exempt the accusers from applying any common sense in their testimony: the prisoners were declared guilty; the duchess was sentenced to perform public penance and to endure life imprisonment; the others were executed. However, since these harsh actions were solely blamed on the spite of the duke’s enemies, the public, contrary to their usual behavior in such sensational trials, exonerated the unfortunate victims and deepened their respect and affection for a prince who was left defenseless against such cruel attacks.

These sentiments of the public made the cardinal of Winchester and his party sensible that it was necessary to destroy a man whose popularity might become dangerous, and whose resentment they had so much cause to apprehend. In order to effect their purpose, a parliament was summoned to meet, not at London, which was supposed to be too well affected to the duke, but at St. Edmondsbury, where they expected that he would lie entirely at their mercy. As soon as he appeared, he was accused of treason, and thrown into prison. He was soon after found dead in his bed;[**] and though it was pretended that his death was natural, and though his body, which was exposed to public view, bore no marks of outward violence, no one doubted but he had fallen a victim to the vengeance of his enemies.

The public's feelings led the cardinal of Winchester and his allies to realize they needed to eliminate a man whose popularity could be a threat and whose anger they feared. To achieve this, they called for a parliament to meet not in London—which was thought to be too sympathetic to the duke—but in St. Edmondsbury, where they believed he would be completely at their mercy. As soon as he arrived, he was accused of treason and imprisoned. Shortly after, he was found dead in his bed; although it was claimed that his death was natural and his body, displayed for all to see, showed no signs of external harm, nobody doubted that he had fallen victim to his enemies' vengeance.

     * Stowe, p. 381. Holingshed, p. 622. Grafton, p. 687.

     ** Grafton, p. 597.
     * Stowe, p. 381. Holingshed, p. 622. Grafton, p. 687.

     ** Grafton, p. 597.

An artifice, formerly practised in the case of Edward II., Richard II., and Thomas of Woodstock, duke of Glocester, could deceive nobody. The reason of this assassination of the duke seems, not that the ruling party apprehended his acquittal in parliament on account of his innocence, which, in such times, was seldom much regarded, but that they imagined his public trial and execution would have been more invidious than his private murder which they pretended to deny. Some gentlemen of his retinue were afterwards tried as accomplices in his treasons, and were condemned to be hanged, drawn, and quartered, They were hanged and cut down; but just as the executioner was proceeding to quarter them, their pardon was produced, and they were recovered to life;[*] the most barbarous kind of mercy that can possibly be imagined!

An act, previously seen in the cases of Edward II, Richard II, and Thomas of Woodstock, Duke of Gloucester, could fool no one. The motive behind the assassination of the duke seems to be not that the ruling party feared his acquittal in parliament due to his innocence—something rarely taken seriously in those times—but that they believed a public trial and execution would attract more condemnation than his secret murder, which they claimed didn't happen. Some of his associates were later tried as accomplices to his supposed treason and were sentenced to be hanged, drawn, and quartered. They were hanged and taken down; just as the executioner was about to quarter them, their pardon was presented, and they were brought back to life; the most barbaric form of mercy imaginable!

This prince is said to have received a better education than was usual in his age, to have founded one of the first public libraries in England, and to have been a great patron of learned men. Among other advantages which he reaped from this turn of mind, it tended much to cure him of credulity of which the following instance is given by Sir Thomas More. There was a man who pretended that, though he was born blind, he had recovered his sight by touching the shrine of St. Albans. The duke, happening soon after to pass that way, questioned the man, and seeming to doubt of his sight, asked him the colors of several cloaks, worn by persons of his retinue. The man told them very readily. “You are a knave,” cried the prince; “had you been born blind, you could not so soon have learned to distinguish colors;” and immediately ordered him to be set in the stocks as an impostor.[**]

This prince is said to have received a better education than what was typical for his time, to have established one of the first public libraries in England, and to have been a great supporter of scholars. One of the benefits he gained from this mindset was that it greatly helped him overcome his gullibility, as illustrated by the following example from Sir Thomas More. There was a man who claimed that, although he was born blind, he had regained his sight by touching the shrine of St. Albans. The duke, passing through the area soon after, questioned the man and, seeming to doubt his ability to see, asked him to identify the colors of several cloaks worn by people in his entourage. The man answered without hesitation. "You are a liar," exclaimed the prince; "if you had been born blind, you wouldn’t have been able to learn to tell colors so quickly;" and immediately ordered him to be put in the stocks as a fraud.[**]

     * Fabian, Chron. anno 1447.

     ** Grafton, p. 597.
     * Fabian, Chron. anno 1447.

     ** Grafton, p. 597.

The cardinal of Winchester died six weeks after his nephew whose murder was universally ascribed to him as well as to the duke of Suffolk, and which, it is said, gave him more remorse in his last moments than could naturally be expected from a man hardened, during the course of a long life, in falsehood and in politics. What share the queen had in this guilt is uncertain; her usual activity and spirit made the public conclude, with some reason, that the duke’s enemies durst not have ventured on such a deed without her privity. But there happened, soon after, an event of which she and her favorite, the duke of Suffolk, bore incontestably the whole odium.

The cardinal of Winchester died six weeks after his nephew, whose murder everyone blamed on him and the duke of Suffolk. It's said that this caused him more guilt in his final moments than you would typically expect from a man who spent a long life entrenched in deceit and politics. It's unclear how much the queen was involved in this wrongdoing; her usual energy and determination led the public to reasonably conclude that the duke’s enemies wouldn’t have dared to commit such an act without her knowledge. Soon after, however, an event occurred for which she and her favorite, the duke of Suffolk, undeniably took all the blame.

That article of the marriage treaty by which the province of Maine was to be ceded to Charles of Anjou, the queen’s unele, had probably been hitherto kept secret; and during the lifetime of the duke of Glocester, it might have been dangerous to venture on the execution of it. But as the court of France strenuously insisted on performance, orders were now despatched, under Henry’s hand, to Sir Francis Surienne, governor of Mans, commanding him to surrender that place to Charles of Anjou. Surienne, either questioning the authenticity of the order, or regarding his government as his sole fortune, refused compliance; and it became necessary for a French army, under the count of Dunois, to lay siege to the city. The governor made as good a defence as his situation could permit; but receiving no relief from Edmund, duke of Somerset, who was at that time governor of Normandy, he was at last obliged to capitulate, and to surrender not only Mans, but all the other fortresses of that province, which was thus entirely alienated from the crown of England.

That part of the marriage agreement where the province of Maine was supposed to be given to Charles of Anjou, the queen’s uncle, had probably been kept secret until now; and while the duke of Gloucester was alive, it might have been risky to carry it out. However, since the French court insisted on fulfilling the agreement, orders were sent from Henry to Sir Francis Surienne, the governor of Mans, instructing him to hand over the city to Charles of Anjou. Surienne, either doubting the legitimacy of the order or seeing his position as his only fortune, refused to comply; as a result, a French army led by the count of Dunois had to lay siege to the city. The governor defended as best as he could given the circumstances, but with no support from Edmund, duke of Somerset, who was then governor of Normandy, he eventually had to surrender, giving up not only Mans but all the other fortresses in that province, which was completely taken away from the English crown.

1448.

1448.

The bad effects of this measure stopped not here. Surienne, at the head of all his garrisons, amounting to two thousand five hundred men, retired into Normandy, in expectation of being taken into pay, and of being quartered in some towns of that province. But Somerset, who had no means of subsisting such a multitude, and who was probably incensed at Surienne’s disobedience, refused to admit him; and this adventurer, not daring to commit depredations on the territories either of the king of France or of England, marched into Brittany, seized the town of Fougeres, repaired the fortifications of Pontorson and St. James de Beuvron, and subsisted his troops by the ravages which he exercised on that whole province.[*] The duke of Brittany complained of this violence to the king of France, his liege lord: Charles remonstrated with the duke of Somerset: that nobleman replied, that the injury was done without his privity, and that he had no authority over Surienne and his companions.[**] Though this answer ought to have appeared satisfactory to Charles, who had often felt severely the licentious independent spirit of such mercenary soldiers, he never would admit of the apology. He still insisted that these plunderers should be recalled, and that reparation should be made to the duke of Brittany for all the damages which he had sustained: and in order to render an accommodation absolutely impracticable, he made the estimation of damages amount to no less a sum than one million six hundred thousand crowns. He was sensible of the superiority which the present state of his affairs gave him over England; and he determined to take advantage of it.

The negative consequences of this decision didn't stop there. Surienne, leading his garrison of about two thousand five hundred men, retreated into Normandy, hoping to be paid and stationed in some towns in that region. However, Somerset, having no way to support such a large group and likely angered by Surienne’s defiance, refused to take him in. Not wanting to raid the lands of either the king of France or England, this adventurer moved into Brittany, captured the town of Fougeres, strengthened the defenses of Pontorson and St. James de Beuvron, and supported his troops by pillaging that entire province. The duke of Brittany reported this aggression to the king of France, his feudal lord: Charles confronted the duke of Somerset about it. Somerset replied that the damage was done without his knowledge and that he had no control over Surienne and his men. Although this response should have been acceptable to Charles, who had often suffered from the unruly behavior of such mercenary soldiers, he refused to accept the excuse. He insisted that these raiders be recalled and that compensation be made to the duke of Brittany for all the losses he had incurred. To make reconciliation nearly impossible, he set the estimated damages at no less than one million six hundred thousand crowns. He was aware of the upper hand his current situation gave him over England and decided to take advantage of it.

     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 6.

     ** Monstrelet vol. iii. p. 7. Holingshed, p. 629.
     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 6.

     ** Monstrelet vol. iii. p. 7. Holingshed, p. 629.

No sooner was the truce concluded between the two kingdoms, than Charles employed himself, with great industry and judgment, in repairing those numberless ills to which France, from the continuance of wars both foreign and domestic, had so long been exposed. He restored the course of public justice; he introduced order into the finances; he established discipline in his troops; he repressed faction in his court; he revived the languid state of agriculture and the arts; and, in the course of a few years, he rendered his kingdom flourishing within itself, and formidable to its neighbors. Meanwhile, affairs in England had taken a very different turn. The court was divided into parties, which were enraged against each other: the people were discontented with the government: conquests in France, which were an object more of glory than of interest, were overlooked amidst domestic incidents, which engrossed the attention of all men: the governor of Normandy, ill supplied with money, was obliged to dismiss the greater part of his troops, and to allow the fortifications of the towns and castles to become ruinous; and the nobility and people of that province had, during the late open communication with France, enjoyed frequent opportunities of renewing connections with their ancient master, and of concerting the means for expelling the English. The occasion, therefore, seemed favorable to Charles for breaking the truce.

No sooner had the truce been established between the two kingdoms than Charles dedicated himself, with great effort and insight, to addressing the countless issues that France had faced due to ongoing foreign and domestic wars. He reinstated the public justice system; organized the finances; established discipline among his troops; quelled factions in his court; revived the stagnant agricultural sector and the arts; and within a few years, transformed his kingdom into a prosperous entity and a formidable presence to its neighbors. Meanwhile, events in England had taken a very different turn. The court was split into factions that were fiercely opposed to each other: the populace was dissatisfied with the government: military campaigns in France, which were more about pride than financial gain, were overshadowed by domestic issues that consumed everyone's attention: the governor of Normandy, lacking sufficient funds, was forced to let go of most of his troops and allowed the fortifications of towns and castles to fall into disrepair; and the nobility and people of that region had, during the recent open contact with France, found many opportunities to rekindle ties with their former ruler and strategize ways to drive out the English. Thus, the situation appeared to be favorable for Charles to break the truce.

1449.

1449.

Normandy was at once invaded by four powerful armies: one commanded by the king himself; a second by the duke of Brittany; a third by the duke of Alençon; and a fourth by the count of Dunois. The places opened their gates almost as soon as the French appeared before them; Verneuil, Nogent, Chateau Gaillard, Ponteau de Mer, Gisors, Mante, Vernon, Argentan Lisieux, Fecamp, Coutances, Belesme, Pont de l’Arche, fell in an instant into the hands of the enemy. The duke of Somerset, so far from having an army which could take the field and relieve these places, was not able to supply them with the necessary garrisons and provisions. He retired, with the few troops of which he was master, into Rouen; and thought it sufficient, if, till the arrival of succors from England, he could save that capital from the general fate of the province. The king of France, at the head of a formidable army, fifty thousand strong, presented himself before the gates: the dangerous example of revolt had infected the inhabitants; and they called aloud for a capitulation. Somerset, unable to resist at once both the enemies within one from without, retired with his garrison into the palace and castle; which, being places not tenable he was obliged to surrender: he purchased a retreat to Harfleur by the payment of fifty-six thousand crowns, by engaging to surrender Arques, Tancarville, Caudebec, Honfleur, and other places in the higher Normandy, and by delivering. hostages for the performance of articles.[*]

Normandy was invaded at once by four powerful armies: one led by the king himself; a second by the duke of Brittany; a third by the duke of Alençon; and a fourth by the count of Dunois. The towns opened their gates almost as soon as the French arrived; Verneuil, Nogent, Chateau Gaillard, Ponteau de Mer, Gisors, Mante, Vernon, Argentan, Lisieux, Fecamp, Coutances, Belesme, and Pont de l’Arche quickly fell to the enemy. The duke of Somerset, far from having an army capable of taking the field to relieve these towns, couldn't even provide them with necessary garrisons and supplies. He retreated with the few troops he had to Rouen, thinking it was enough to save that city from the overall fate of the province until help arrived from England. The king of France, leading a formidable army of fifty thousand, showed up at the gates; the dangerous example of rebellion had spread among the residents, and they loudly called for a truce. Somerset, unable to defend against both the enemies within and those outside, withdrew with his garrison to the palace and castle, which were not defensible, forcing him to surrender. He bought a retreat to Harfleur by agreeing to pay fifty-six thousand crowns, promising to surrender Arques, Tancarville, Caudebec, Honfleur, and other locations in upper Normandy, and by providing hostages to ensure the terms would be met.[*]

1450.

1450.

The governor of Honfleur refused to obey his orders; upon which the earl of Shrewsbury, who was one of the hostages, was detained prisoner; and the English were thus deprived of the only general capable of recovering them from their present distressed; situation. Harfleur made a better defence under Sir Thomas Curson, the governor; but was finally obliged to open its gates to Dunois. Succors at last appeared from England, under Sir Thomas Kyriel, and landed at Cherbourg: but these came very late, amounted only to four thousand men, and were soon after put to rout at Fourmigni by the count of Clermont.[**] This battle, or rather skirmish, was the only action fought by the English for the defence of their dominions in France, which they had purchased at such an expense of blood and treasure. Somerset, shut up in Caen, without any prospect of relief, found it necessary to capitulate: Falaise opened its gates, on condition that the earl of Shrewsbury should be restored to liberty: and Cherbourg, the last place of Normandy which remained in the hands of the English, being delivered up, the conquest of that important province was finished in a twelvemonth by Charles, to the great joy of the inhabitants, and of his whole kingdom.[***]

The governor of Honfleur refused to follow his orders; as a result, the earl of Shrewsbury, who was one of the hostages, was kept imprisoned, leaving the English without their only general who could lead them out of their current troubled situation. Harfleur put up a better defense under Sir Thomas Curson, the governor, but ultimately had to open its gates to Dunois. Reinforcements finally arrived from England, led by Sir Thomas Kyriel, landing at Cherbourg: but they arrived too late, only totaled four thousand men, and were quickly defeated at Fourmigni by the count of Clermont.[**] This battle, or rather skirmish, was the only action the English fought to defend their territories in France, which they had acquired at such a great cost in lives and resources. Somerset, trapped in Caen with no hope of aid, found it necessary to surrender: Falaise opened its gates, under the condition that the earl of Shrewsbury would be freed: and Cherbourg, the last place in Normandy held by the English, was handed over, completing the conquest of this crucial province within a year by Charles, much to the delight of the local population and his entire kingdom.[***]

     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 21. Grafton, p. 643.

     ** Holing, p. 631.

     *** Grafton, p. 646.
     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 21. Grafton, p. 643.

     ** Holing, p. 631.

     *** Grafton, p. 646.

A like rapid success attended the French arms in Guienne; though the inhabitants of that province were, from long custom, better inclined to the English government. Dunois was despatched thither, and met with no resistance in the field, and very little from the towns. Great improvements had been made during this age in the structure and management of artillery, and none in fortification; and the art of defence was by that means more unequal, than either before or since, to the art of attack. After all the small places about Bordeaux were reduced, that city agreed to submit, if not relieved by a certain time; and as no one in England thought Seriously of these distant concerns, no relief appeared; the place surrendered; and Bayonne being taken soon after, this whole province, which had remained united to England since the accession of Henry II., was, after a period of three centuries, finally swallowed up in the French monarchy.

A similar swift success followed the French forces in Guienne, although the people of that region had traditionally favored English rule. Dunois was sent there and encountered little resistance in the countryside and only minimal opposition from the towns. Significant advancements had been made during this time in the design and use of artillery, but not in fortifications; thus, the defense was, for that reason, more vulnerable than ever before or after to the art of attack. Once all the smaller towns around Bordeaux were taken, the city agreed to surrender if it wasn't relieved by a certain deadline; and since no one in England took these distant matters seriously, no help came. The city capitulated, and Bayonne was captured shortly after, leading to the entire province, which had been under English control since Henry II’s reign, being finally absorbed into the French monarchy after three centuries.

Though no peace or truce was concluded between France and England, the war was in a manner at an end. The English, torn in pieces by the civil dissensions which ensued, made but one feeble effort more for the recovery of Guienne, and Charles, occupied at home in regulating the government, and fencing against the intrigues of his factious son, Lewis the dauphin, scarcely ever attempted to invade them in their island, or to retaliate upon them, by availing himself of their intestine confusions.

Though no peace or truce was made between France and England, the war was effectively over. The English, fragmented by the internal conflicts that followed, made only one weak attempt to reclaim Guienne, while Charles, busy at home managing the government and defending against the schemes of his rebellious son, Lewis the dauphin, hardly ever tried to invade their island or take advantage of their internal chaos.





CHAPTER XXI.





HENRY VI.

1450.

1450.

A WEAK prince, seated on the throne of England, had never failed, how gentle soever and innocent, to be infested with faction, discontent, rebellion, and evil commotions; and as the incapacity of Henry appeared every day in a fuller light, these dangerous consequences began, from past experience, to be universally and justly apprehended Men also of unquiet spirits, no longer employed in foreign wars, whence they were now excluded by the situation of the neighboring states, were the more likely to excite intestine, disorders, and by their emulation, rivalship, and animosities, to tear the bowels of their native country. But though these causes alone were sufficient to breed confusion, there concurred another circumstance of the most dangerous, nature: a pretender to the crown appeared: the tie itself of the weak prince who enjoyed the name of sovereignty, was disputed; and the English were now to pay the severe though late penalty of their turbulence under Richard II., and of their levity in violating, without any necessity or just reason, the lineal succession of their monarchs.

A WEAK prince, sitting on the throne of England, never failed, no matter how gentle or innocent, to be plagued by factions, discontent, rebellion, and unrest; and as Henry’s inability became more apparent with each passing day, these dangerous outcomes began to be universally and justly feared based on past experiences. Men with restless spirits, no longer engaged in foreign wars due to the circumstances of neighboring states, were more likely to stir up internal chaos, and through their rivalries and hostilities, they threatened to tear apart their own country. But even though these reasons alone were enough to create confusion, there was another extremely dangerous factor: a pretender to the crown emerged; the legitimacy of the weak prince who held the title of sovereign was questioned; and the English were now facing a harsh, albeit late, consequence for their instability during Richard II's reign and for their thoughtlessness in violating the rightful succession of their monarchs without any necessity or valid reason.

All the males of the house of Mortimer were extinct; but Anne, the sister of the last earl of Marche, having espoused the earl of Cambridge, beheaded in the reign of Henry V. had transmitted her latent, but not yet forgotten claim to be; on Richard, duke of York. This prince, thus descended by his mother from Philippa, only daughter of the duke of Clarence, second son of Edward III., stood plainly in the order of succession before the king, who derived his descent from the duke of Lancaster, third son of that monarch; and that claim could not, in many respects, have fallen into more dangerous hands man those of the duke of York. Richard was a man of valor and abilities, of a prudent conduct and mild disposition: he had enjoyed an opportunity of displaying these virtues in his government of France; and though recalled from that command by the intrigues and superior interest of the duke of Somerset, he had been sent to suppress a rebellion in Ireland; had succeeded much better in that enterprise than his rival in the defence of Normandy, and had even been able to attach to his person and family the whole Irish nation, whom he was sent to subdue.[*] In the right of his father, he bore the rank of first prince of the blood; and by this station he gave a lustre to his title derived from the family of Mortimer, which, though of great nobility, was equalled by other families in the kingdom, and had been eclipsed by the royal descent of the house of Lancaster. He possessed an immense fortune from the union of so many successions, those of Cambridge and York on the one hand, with those of Mortimer on the other; which last inheritance had before been augmented by a union of the estates of Clarence and Ulster with the patrimonial possessions of the family of Marche. The alliances too of Richard, by his marrying the daughter of Ralph Nevil, earl of Westmoreland, had widely extended his interest among the nobility, and had procured him many connections in that formidable order.

All the males of the Mortimer family were gone; but Anne, the sister of the last earl of Marche, who married the earl of Cambridge—beheaded during Henry V's reign—had passed down her hidden, but not forgotten, claim through her son, Richard, duke of York. This duke descended from Philippa, the only daughter of the duke of Clarence, who was the second son of Edward III., which positioned him clearly in line for the throne ahead of the king, who was descended from the duke of Lancaster, the third son of that monarch. That claim could not have fallen into more dangerous hands than those of the duke of York. Richard was a brave and capable man, known for his wise leadership and gentle character. He had shown these qualities while governing France; though he was recalled due to intrigues and the greater influence of the duke of Somerset, he was sent to put down a rebellion in Ireland. He performed much better in that task than his rival did defending Normandy and even managed to win the loyalty of the entire Irish nation he was sent to conquer. In his father's right, he held the title of the first prince of the blood, enhancing his claim from the Mortimer family, which, despite its nobility, was on par with other prominent families in the kingdom and had been overshadowed by the royal lineage of the house of Lancaster. He had amassed a tremendous fortune through various inheritances, including those of Cambridge and York, along with Mortimer's claims. This last inheritance had previously grown from the combined estates of Clarence and Ulster with the family properties of Marche. Additionally, his marriage to the daughter of Ralph Nevil, earl of Westmoreland, significantly expanded his influence among the nobility and secured many connections in that powerful class.

     * Stowe, p. 387.
* Stowe, p. 387.

The family of Nevil was perhaps at this time the most potent, both from their opulent possessions and from the characters of the men, that has ever appealed in England. For, besides the earl of Westmoreland, and the lords Latimer, Fauconberg, and Abergavenny, the earls of Salisbury and Warwick were of that family, and were of themselves, on many accounts, the greatest noblemen in the kingdom. The earl of Salisbury, brother-in-law to the duke of York, was the eldest son by a second marriage of the earl of Westmoreland; and inherited by his wife, daughter and heir of Montacute, earl of Salisbury, killed before Orleans, the possessions and title of that great family. His eldest son, Richard, had married Anne, the daughter and heir of Beauchamp, earl of Warwick, who died governor of France; and by this alliance he enjoyed the possessions, and had acquired the title, of that other family, one of the most opulent, most ancient, and most illustrious in England. The personal qualities also of these two earls, especially of Warwick enhanced the splendor of their nobility, and increased then influence over the people. This latter nobleman commonly known, from the subsequent events, by the appellation of the “king-maker,” had distinguished himself by his gallantry in the field, by the hospitality of his table, by Ore magnificence, and still more by the generosity, of his expense, and by the spirited and bold manner which attended him in all his actions. The undesigning frankness and openness of his character rendered his conquest over men’s affections the more certain and infallible: his presents were regarded as sure testimonials of esteem and friendship; and his professions as the over-flowings of his genuine sentiments. No less than thirty thousand persons are said to have daily lived at his board In the different manors and castles which he possessed in England: the military men, allured by his munificence and hospitality, as well as by his bravery, were zealously attached to his interests: the people in general bore him an unlimited affection: his numerous retainers were more devoted to his will than to the prince or to the laws: and he was the greatest, as well as the last, of those mighty barons who formerly overawed the crown, and rendered the people incapable of any regular system of civil government.

The Nevil family was probably the most powerful at this time, both because of their wealth and the strong character of its members, more than any other in England. In addition to the Earl of Westmoreland, there were Lords Latimer, Fauconberg, and Abergavenny; the Earls of Salisbury and Warwick were also part of this family and were, in many ways, the most important nobles in the kingdom. The Earl of Salisbury, who was the brother-in-law of the Duke of York, was the eldest son from a second marriage of the Earl of Westmoreland. He inherited the possessions and title of the great Montacute family through his wife, the daughter and heiress of the Earl of Salisbury, who was killed before Orleans. His eldest son, Richard, married Anne, the daughter and heiress of Beauchamp, the Earl of Warwick, who died while serving as governor of France. This marriage brought him the wealth and title of one of the oldest and most prestigious families in England. The personal qualities of these two earls, especially Warwick, added to the grandeur of their nobility and increased their influence over the people. This latter nobleman, known later as the “king-maker,” distinguished himself through his bravery in battle, the hospitality of his home, his wealth, and even more so by his generosity and boldness in all his actions. His genuine openness and honesty made him especially successful in winning people's affection; his gifts were seen as sincere tokens of esteem and friendship, and his words reflected his true feelings. It's said that as many as thirty thousand people dined at his table daily across the various manors and castles he owned in England. Military men were drawn to him by his generosity and bravery, and they were fiercely loyal to his cause. The general public felt a strong affection for him, and his many followers were more loyal to him than to the prince or to the law. He was the greatest, and the last, of those powerful barons who once intimidated the crown and made it difficult for the people to have a stable civil government.

But the duke of York, besides the family of Nevil, had many other partisans among the great nobility. Courtney, earl of Devonshire, descended from a very noble family of that name in France, was attached to his interests: Moubray, duke of Norfolk, had, from his hereditary hatred to the family of Lancaster, embraced the same party: and the discontents which universally prevailed among the people, rendered every combination of the great the more dangerous to the established government.

But the Duke of York, in addition to the Nevil family, had many other supporters among the nobility. Courtney, the Earl of Devonshire, who came from a very prestigious family of that name in France, was on his side: Moubray, the Duke of Norfolk, had embraced the same party out of his longstanding hatred for the Lancaster family: and the widespread discontent among the people made every alliance among the powerful even more threatening to the established government.

Though the people were never willing to grant the supplies necessary for keeping possession of the conquered provinces in France, they repined extremely at the loss of these boasted acquisitions; and fancied, because a sudden irruption could make conquests, that, without steady counsels and a uniform expense, it was possible to maintain them. The voluntary cession of Maine to the queen’s uncle, had made them suspect treachery in the loss of Normandy and Guienne. They still considered Margaret as a French woman, and a latent enemy of the kingdom. And when they saw her father and all her relations active in promoting the success of the French, they could not be persuaded that she, who was all-powerful in the English council, would very zealously oppose them in their enterprises.

Though the people were never willing to provide the resources needed to hold onto the conquered provinces in France, they were very upset about losing these prized territories. They believed that since a sudden invasion could lead to conquests, it was possible to keep them without consistent plans and steady spending. The voluntary handing over of Maine to the queen’s uncle made them suspicious of betrayal regarding the loss of Normandy and Guienne. They still viewed Margaret as a French woman and a hidden enemy of the kingdom. When they saw her father and all her relatives actively supporting the French, they couldn’t be convinced that she, who had so much influence in the English council, would strongly oppose them in their efforts.

But the most fatal blow given to the popularity of the crown and to the interests of the house of Lancaster, was by the assassination of the virtuous duke of Glocester; whose character, had he been alive, would have intimidated the partisans of York; but whose memory, being extremely cherished by the people, served to throw an odium on all his murderers. By this crime the reigning family suffered a double prejudice it was deprived of its firmest support; and it was loaded with all the infamy of that imprudent and barbarous assassination.

But the biggest blow to the popularity of the crown and the interests of the house of Lancaster was the assassination of the virtuous Duke of Gloucester. If he had been alive, his character would have intimidated the supporters of York. Instead, his memory, which was deeply valued by the people, cast shame on all his murderers. This crime caused a double disadvantage for the ruling family: they lost their strongest support and were burdened with all the disgrace of that reckless and brutal assassination.

As the duke of Suffolk was known to have had an active hand in the crime, he partook deeply of the hatred attending it; and the clamors which necessarily rose against him, as prime minister and declared favorite of the queen, were thereby augmented to a tenfold pitch, and became absolutely uncontrollable. The great nobility could ill brook to see a subject exalted above them; much more one who was only great-grandson to a merchant, and who was of a birth so much inferior to theirs. The people complained of his arbitrary measures; which were, in some degree, a necessary consequence of the irregular power then possessed by the prince, but which the least disaffection easily magnified into tyranny. The great acquisitions which he daily made were the object of envy; and as they were gained at the expense of the crown, which was itself reduced to poverty, they appeared on that account, to all indifferent persons, the more exceptionable and invidious.

As the Duke of Suffolk was known to be involved in the crime, he faced a lot of anger because of it. The outcry against him, as the prime minister and the queen's favorite, grew to an uncontrollable level. The powerful nobles couldn't tolerate seeing a subject rise above them, especially one who was just the great-grandson of a merchant and came from a much lower background. The people criticized his harsh decisions, which were partly a result of the irregular power held by the prince at the time, but any hint of discontent easily turned into accusations of tyranny. The significant gains he made daily sparked envy, and since these gains came at the expense of a crown that was itself struggling financially, they seemed even more questionable and resentful to onlookers.

The revenues of the crown, which had long been disproportioned to its power and dignity, had been extremely dilapidated during the minority of Henry;[*] both by the rapacity of the courtiers, which the king’s uncles could not control, and by the necessary expenses of the French war, which had always been very ill supplied by the grants of parliament.

The crown's revenue, which had long been mismatched to its power and status, had drastically declined during Henry's minority; both due to the greed of the courtiers, which the king’s uncles couldn’t manage, and because of the essential costs of the French war, which had always been poorly funded by parliamentary grants.

     *: Cotton, p. 609.
*: Cotton, p. 609.

The royal demesnes were dissipated; and at the same time the king was loaded with a debt of three hundred and seventy-two thousand pounds, a sum so great, that the parliament could never think of discharging it. This unhappy situation forced the ministers upon many arbitrary measures: the household itself could not be supported without stretching to the utmost the right of purveyance, and rendering it a kind of universal robbery upon the people: the public clamor rose high upon this occasion, and no one had the equity to make allowance for the necessity of the king’s situation. Suffolk, once become odious, bore the blame of the whole; and every grievance, in every part of the administration, was universally imputed to his tyranny and injustice.

The royal estates were wasted; and at the same time, the king was burdened with a debt of three hundred and seventy-two thousand pounds, an amount so large that Parliament could never consider clearing it. This unfortunate situation forced the ministers into many drastic measures: the royal household could not be maintained without pushing the limits of the right of purveyance and turning it into a sort of universal theft from the people. Public outcry rose sharply over this, and no one had the fairness to consider the king’s dire circumstances. Suffolk, once he became unpopular, was blamed for everything; and every complaint in every part of the administration was blamed on his tyranny and injustice.

This nobleman, sensible of the public hatred under which he labored, and foreseeing an attack from the commons endeavored to overawe his enemies, by boldly presenting himself to the charge, and by insisting upon his own innocence and even upon his merits, and those of his family, in the public service. He rose in the house of peers; took notice of the clamors propagated against him; and complained that after serving the crown in thirty-four campaigns; after living abroad seventeen years, without once returning to his native country; after losing a father and three brothers in the wars with France; after being himself a prisoner, and purchasing his liberty by a great ransom; it should yet be suspected, that he had been debauched from his allegiance by that enemy whom he had ever opposed with such zeal and fortitude, and that he had betrayed his prince, who had rewarded his services by the highest honors and greatest offices that it was in his power to confer.[*] This speech did not answer the purpose intended. The commons, rather provoked at his challenge, opened their charge against him, and sent up to the peers an accusation of high treason, divided into several articles. They insisted, that he had persuaded the French king to invade England with an armed force, in order to depose the king, and to place on the throne his own son, John de la Pole, whom he intended to marry to Margaret, the only daughter of the late John, duke of Somerset, and to whom, he imagined, he would by that means acquire a title to the crown: that he had contributed to the release of the duke of Orleans, in hopes that that prince would assist King Charles in expelling the English from France, and recovering full possession of his kingdom: that he had afterwards encouraged that monarch to make open war on Normandy and Guienne, and had promoted his conquests by betraying the secrets of England, and obstructing the succors intended to be sent to those provinces; and that he had, without any powers or commission, promised by treaty to cede the province of Maine to Charles of Anjou, and had accordingly ceded it; which proved in the issue the chief cause of the loss of Normandy.[**]

This nobleman, aware of the public hatred directed at him, and anticipating an attack from the common people, tried to intimidate his enemies by boldly facing the accusations and insisting on his own innocence, as well as the merits of himself and his family in serving the public. He spoke in the House of Peers, addressed the outcry against him, and expressed that after serving the crown in thirty-four campaigns, living abroad for seventeen years without returning home, losing a father and three brothers in the wars with France, being taken prisoner and buying his freedom with a hefty ransom, it was outrageous to suspect that he had disloyalty towards the very enemy he had fought against so passionately and courageously, and that he had betrayed his king, who had honored him with the highest titles and greatest offices possible. This speech did not achieve its intended effect. The common people, rather angered by his challenge, launched their accusations against him and brought their charge of high treason to the peers, broken down into several points. They claimed that he had convinced the French king to invade England with an armed force to dethrone the king and place his own son, John de la Pole, on the throne, whom he intended to marry to Margaret, the only daughter of the late John, Duke of Somerset, imagining that would grant him a claim to the crown: that he had aided in the release of the Duke of Orleans, hoping that the prince would help King Charles drive the English out of France and reclaim his kingdom: that he had later encouraged the monarch to wage open war in Normandy and Guienne and had aided his conquests by betraying England's secrets and blocking support meant for those regions; and that he had, without any authority or commission, promised to give the province of Maine to Charles of Anjou, which he then did, a decision that ultimately led to the loss of Normandy.

     * Cotton, p. 641.

     ** Cotton, p. 642. Hall, fol. 157. Holing, p. 631. Grafton,
     p. 607
     * Cotton, p. 641.

     ** Cotton, p. 642. Hall, fol. 157. Holing, p. 631. Grafton,
     p. 607

It is evident, from a review of these articles, that the commons adopted without inquiry all the popular clamors against the duke of Suffolk, and charged him with crimes of which none but the vulgar could seriously believe him guilty. Nothing can be more incredible, than that a nobleman, so little eminent by his birth and character, could think of acquiring the crown to his family, and of deposing Henry by foreign force, and, together with him, Margaret, his patron, a princess of so much spirit and penetration. Suffolk appealed to many noblemen in the house, who knew that he had intended to marry his son to one of the coheirs of the earl of Warwick, and was disappointed in his views only by the death of that lady: and he observed, that Margaret of Somerset could bring to her husband no title to the crown; because she herself was not so much as comprehended in the entail settled by act of parliament. It is easy to account for the loss of Normandy and Guienne, from the situation of affairs in the two kingdoms, without supposing any treachery in the English ministers; and it may safely be affirmed, that greater vigor was requisite to defend these provinces from the arms of Charles VII., than to conquer them at first from his predecessor. It could never be the interest of any English minister to betray and abandon such acquisitions; much less of one who was so well established in his master’s favor, who enjoyed such high honors and ample possessions in his own country, who had nothing to dread but the effects of popular hatred and who could never think, without the most extreme reluctance, of becoming a fugitive and exile in a foreign land. The only article which carries any face of probability, is his engagement for the delivery of Maine to the queen’s uncle: but Suffolk maintained, with great appearance of truth, that this measure was approved of by several at the council table; [*] and it seems hard to ascribe to it, as is done by the commons, the subsequent loss of Normandy and expulsion of the English. Normandy lay open on every side to the invasion of the French: Maine, an inland province, must soon after have fallen without any attack; and as the English possessed in other parts more fortresses than they could garrison or provide for, it seemed no bad policy to contract their force, and to render the defence practicable, by reducing it within a narrower compass.

It’s clear from reviewing these articles that the House of Commons accepted all the popular outcries against the Duke of Suffolk without any real investigation and accused him of crimes that only the uninformed could genuinely believe he committed. It’s hard to believe that a nobleman, who was barely notable by birth or character, could even consider taking the crown for his family and overthrowing Henry with foreign forces, especially when Margaret, his supporter, was such a spirited and sharp-witted princess. Suffolk appealed to many noblemen in the House who knew he had planned to marry his son to one of the co-heirs of the Earl of Warwick, and his plans were only thwarted by that lady's death. He pointed out that Margaret of Somerset couldn't give her husband any claim to the crown because she herself wasn't even included in the title established by an act of Parliament. It’s easy to explain the loss of Normandy and Guienne based on the circumstances in both kingdoms without assuming any betrayal by the English officials; and it’s fair to say that it would have taken more effort to defend those provinces from the armies of Charles VII than it did to initially conquer them from his predecessor. No English official would have had any incentive to betray and abandon such territories, especially not one who was so well-regarded by his king, who held great honors and substantial land in his own country, who had little to fear except public resentment, and who would have been extremely reluctant to become a fugitive and exile in a foreign land. The only thing that seems somewhat plausible is his commitment to hand over Maine to the queen’s uncle. However, Suffolk argued convincingly that this decision was supported by several people at the council table; [*] and it seems unreasonable to attribute the subsequent loss of Normandy and the expulsion of the English to it, as the Commons did. Normandy was vulnerable to French invasion from all sides; Maine, being an inland province, would have fallen soon enough without any attack; and since the English held more fortresses in other areas than they could occupy or defend, it made sense to minimize their forces and make their defense manageable by shrinking it to a smaller area.

     * Cotton, p.643.
* Cotton, p.643.

The commons were probably sensible, that this charge of treason against Suffolk would not bear a strict scrutiny; and they therefore, soon after, sent up against him a new charge of misdemeanors, which they also divided into several articles. They affirmed, among other imputations, that he had procured exorbitant grants from the crown, had embezzled the public money, had conferred offices on improper persons, had perverted justice by maintaining iniquitous causes, and had procured pardons for notorious offenders.[*] The articles are mostly general, but are not improbable; and as Suffolk seems to have been a bad man and a bad minister, it will not be rash in us to think that he was guilty, and that many of these articles could have been proved against him. The court was alarmed at the prosecution of a favorite minister, who lay under such a load of popular prejudices; and an expedient was fallen upon to save him from present ruin. The king summoned all the lords, spiritual and temporal, to his apartment: the prisoner was produced before them, and asked what he could say in his own defence: he denied the charge; but submitted to the king’s mercy: Henry expressed himself not satisfied with regard to the first impeachment for treason; but in consideration of the second for misdemeanors, he declared that, by virtue of Suffolk’s own submission, not by any judicial authority, he banished him the kingdom during five years. The lords remained silent; but as soon as they returned to their own house, they entered a protest, that this sentence should nowise infringe their privileges, and that, if Suffolk had insisted upon his right, and had not voluntarily submitted to the king’s commands, he was entitled to a trial by his peers in parliament.

The public probably realized that the treason charge against Suffolk wouldn't hold up under close examination. So, shortly after, they brought up a new set of misdemeanor charges against him, breaking them down into several points. Among other allegations, they claimed he had secured unreasonable grants from the crown, misappropriated public funds, appointed unsuitable people to positions, corrupted justice by supporting unjust causes, and obtained pardons for well-known criminals. The allegations are mostly vague, but they are believable; and since Suffolk seemed to have been an untrustworthy person and a poor minister, it’s reasonable to think he was guilty and that many of these charges could likely be proven against him. The court was concerned about prosecuting a favored minister who faced such strong public bias, so they came up with a plan to protect him from immediate downfall. The king called all the lords, both spiritual and temporal, to his private quarters: Suffolk was brought before them and asked if he had anything to say in his defense. He denied the charges but accepted the king’s mercy. Henry indicated he wasn’t satisfied with the initial treason accusation, but in light of the second set of misdemeanor charges, he declared that, due to Suffolk’s own submission and not any judicial ruling, he was banished from the kingdom for five years. The lords were quiet; but as soon as they returned to their chamber, they issued a protest stating that this ruling should not undermine their privileges and that if Suffolk had insisted on his rights and hadn’t voluntarily submitted to the king's orders, he was entitled to a trial by his peers in parliament.

It was easy to see, that these irregular proceedings were meant to favor Suffolk, and that, as he still possessed the queen’s confidence, he would, on the first favorable opportunity, be restored to his country, and be reinstated in his former power and credit. A captain of a vessel was therefore employed by his enemies to intercept him in his passage to France: he was seized near Dover; his head struck off on the side of a long-boat; and his body thrown into the sea,[**] No inquiry was made after the actors and accomplices in this atrocious deed of violence.

It was clear that these unusual actions were intended to benefit Suffolk, and since he still had the queen’s trust, he would, at the first good chance, be brought back to his country and regain his previous power and influence. A ship captain was therefore hired by his enemies to stop him on his way to France: he was captured near Dover; his head was chopped off at the side of a long boat; and his body was tossed into the sea.[**] No investigation was conducted into the perpetrators and allies of this brutal act.

     * Cotton, p. 643.

     ** Hall, fol. 158. Hist. Croyland, Contin. p. 525. Stowe, p.
     388. Grafton, p. 610.
     * Cotton, p. 643.

     ** Hall, fol. 158. Hist. Croyland, Contin. p. 525. Stowe, p.
     388. Grafton, p. 610.

The duke of Somerset succeeded to Suffolk’s power in the ministry, and credit with the queen; and as he was the person under whose government the French provinces had been lost, the public, who always judge by the event, soon made him equally the object of their animosity and hatred. The duke of York was absent in Ireland during all these transactions and however it might be suspected that his partisans had excited and supported the prosecution against Suffolk, no immediate ground of complaint could, on that account, lie against him. But there happened, soon after, an incident which roused the jealousy of the court, and discovered to them the extreme danger to which they were exposed from the pretensions of that popular prince.

The Duke of Somerset took over Suffolk's power in the government and had the queen's favor. Since he was in charge when the French territories were lost, the public, who always judge by the outcome, quickly made him a target of their resentment and anger. The Duke of York was in Ireland during all these events, and even though it might have been suspected that his supporters were behind the prosecution of Suffolk, there wasn’t any immediate reason for them to complain about him. However, shortly after, an incident occurred that stirred jealousy at the court and revealed to them the serious threat posed by that popular prince.

The humors of the people, set afloat by the parliamentary impeachment, and by the fall of so great a favorite as Suffolk, broke out in various commotions, which were soon suppressed, but there arose one in Kent which was attended with more dangerous consequences. A man of low condition, one John Cade, a native of Ireland, who had been obliged to fly into France for crimes, observed, on his return to England, the discontents of the people; and he laid on them the foundation of projects which were at first crowned with surprising success. He took the name of John Mortimer; intending, as is supposed, to pass himself for a son of that Sir John Mortimer who had been sentenced to death by parliament, and executed, in the beginning of this reign, without any trial or evidence, merely upon an indictment of high treason given in against him.[*] On the first mention of that popular name, the common people of Kent, to the number of twenty thousand, flocked to Cade’s standard; and he excited their zeal by publishing complaints against the numerous abuses in government, and demanding a redress of grievances. The court, not yet fully sensible of the danger, sent a small force against the rioters, under the command of Sir Humphrey Stafford, who was defeated and slain in an action near Sevenoke;[**] and Cade, advancing with his followers towards London, encamped on Blackheath.

The people's frustrations, sparked by the parliamentary impeachment and the downfall of a beloved figure like Suffolk, led to various riots that were quickly put down. However, one uprising in Kent had more serious consequences. A lowborn man named John Cade, originally from Ireland and who had fled to France for crimes, noticed the people's dissatisfaction upon his return to England. He built on this discontent with plans that initially met with unexpected success. He adopted the name John Mortimer, likely aiming to pass himself off as a son of Sir John Mortimer, who had been sentenced to death by parliament and executed at the beginning of this reign without any trial or evidence, solely based on an indictment of high treason against him.[*] At the first mention of that popular name, about twenty thousand common people from Kent rallied to Cade's banner. He inspired them by voicing complaints about the many abuses in government and demanding justice for their grievances. The court, not yet fully aware of the threat, dispatched a small force against the rioters, led by Sir Humphrey Stafford, who was defeated and killed in a confrontation near Sevenoke;[**] and Cade, advancing with his followers toward London, set up camp on Blackheath.

     * Stowe, p. 364. Cotton, p. 564. This author admires that
     such a piece of injustice should have been committed in
     peaceable times: he might have added, and by such virtuous
     princes as Bedford and Glocester. But it is to be presumed
     that Mortimer was guilty; though his condemnation was highly
     irregular and illegal. The people had at this time a very
     feeble sense of law and a constitution; and power was very
     imperfectly restrained by these limits. When the proceedings
     of a parliament were so irregular it is easy to imagine that
     those of a king would be more so.

     ** Hall, fol. 159. Holing. p, 634.
     * Stowe, p. 364. Cotton, p. 564. This author notes that it’s shocking a wrongful act like this occurred during peaceful times; he could have mentioned that it was done by such honorable rulers as Bedford and Glocester. However, it’s assumed that Mortimer was at fault, even though his trial was highly irregular and unlawful. At that time, people had a very weak understanding of the law and constitution, and power was not effectively limited by these rules. When parliamentary actions were so irregular, it’s easy to picture that the actions of a king would be even more chaotic.

     ** Hall, fol. 159. Holing. p, 634.

Though elated by his victory, he still maintained the appearance of moderation; and sending to the court a plausible list of grievances,[*] he promised that, when these should be redressed, and when Lord Say, the treasurer, and Cromer, sheriff of Kent, should be punished for their malversations, he would immediately lay down his arms. The council, who observed that nobody was willing to fight against men so reasonable in their pretensions, carried the king, for present safety, to Kenilworth; and the city immediately opened its gates to Cade, who maintained, during some time, great order and discipline among his followers. He always led them into the fields during the night-time; and published severe edicts against plunder and violence of every kind: but being obliged, in order to gratify their malevolence against Say and Cromer, to put these men to death without a legal trial,[**] he found that, after the commission of this crime, he was no longer master of their riotous disposition, and that all his orders were neglected.[***] They broke into a rich house, which they plundered; and the citizens, alarmed at this act of violence, shut their gates against them; and being seconded by a detachment of soldiers, sent them by Lord Scales, governor of the Tower, they repulsed the rebels with great slaughter.[****] The Kentish men were so discouraged by the blow, that upon receiving a general pardon from the primate, then chancellor, they retreated towards Rochester, and there dispersed. The pardon was soon after annulled, as extorted by violence: a price was set on Cade’s head,[*****] who was killed by one Iden, a gentleman of Sussex; and many of his followers were capitally punished for their rebellion.

Though excited by his victory, he still acted with restraint; and sending a convincing list of complaints to the court, he promised that once these issues were addressed, and Lord Say, the treasurer, and Cromer, the sheriff of Kent, were punished for their wrongdoing, he would lay down his arms immediately. The council, noticing that no one was willing to fight against such reasonable demands, took the king to Kenilworth for safety. The city then opened its gates to Cade, who maintained a strong sense of order and discipline among his followers for a while. He always led them into the fields at night and issued strict rules against looting and violence of any kind. However, needing to satisfy their anger against Say and Cromer, he executed these men without a legal trial. After committing this act, he realized he no longer had control over their unruly behavior, and his commands were ignored. They broke into a wealthy house and looted it, prompting the citizens, alarmed by this violence, to close their gates against them. With the help of a group of soldiers sent by Lord Scales, the governor of the Tower, they repelled the rebels with significant losses. The Kentish men were so disheartened by this defeat that after receiving a general pardon from the primate, the chancellor at the time, they retreated toward Rochester and dispersed. The pardon was soon revoked, deemed to have been obtained through violence: a bounty was placed on Cade’s head, who was then killed by a gentleman named Iden from Sussex; and many of his followers faced execution for their rebellion.

It was imagined by the court, that the duke of York had secretly instigated Cade to this attempt, in order to try, by that experiment, the dispositions of the people towards his title and family:[*] and as the event had so far succeeded to his wish, the ruling party had greater reason than ever to apprehend the future consequences of his pretensions.

It was thought by the court that the Duke of York had secretly encouraged Cade in this attempt to test the people's feelings about his title and family. And since things had gone more in his favor than expected, the ruling party had even more reason to worry about the potential consequences of his claims.

     * Stowe, p. 388, 389. Holing, p. 633.

     ** Grafton, p. 612.

     *** Hall, fol. 160.

     **** Hist. Croyland, Contin.p. 526.

     ****** Cotton, p. 661.
     * Stowe, p. 388, 389. Holing, p. 633.

     ** Grafton, p. 612.

     *** Hall, fol. 160.

     **** Hist. Croyland, Contin.p. 526.

     ****** Cotton, p. 661.

At the same time they heard that he intended to return from Ireland; and fearing that he meant to bring an armed force along with him, they issued orders, in the king’s name, for opposing him, and for debarring him entrance into England.[*] But the duke refuted his enemies by coming attended with no more than his ordinary retinue: the precautions of the ministers served only to show him their jealousy and malignity against him: he was sensible that his title, by being dangerous to the king, was also become dangerous to himself: he now saw the impossibility of remaining in his present situation, and the necessity of proceeding forward in support of his claim. His partisans, therefore, were instructed to maintain, in all companies, his right by succession, and by the established laws and constitution of the kingdom: these questions became every day more and more the subject of conversation: the minds of men were insensibly sharpened against each other by disputes, before they came to more dangerous extremities: and various topics were pleaded in support of the pretensions of each party.

At the same time, they heard he planned to return from Ireland, and fearing he intended to come back with an armed force, they ordered, in the king's name, to oppose him and prevent him from entering England.[*] However, the duke disproved his enemies by arriving with just his usual entourage. The ministers’ precautions only revealed their jealousy and hostility toward him. He realized that his title, which posed a threat to the king, had also become a threat to himself. He recognized the impossibility of staying in his current position and the need to move forward to support his claim. His supporters were therefore instructed to assert, in all gatherings, his right to succession and the established laws and constitution of the kingdom. These topics increasingly became the focus of conversation. People's minds were gradually sharpened against each other by disputes, before escalating into more dangerous confrontations, and various arguments were made to support the claims of each side.

     * Stowe, p, 394.
* Stowe, p. 394.

The partisans of the house of Lancaster maintained that, though the elevation of Henry IV. might at first be deemed somewhat irregular, and could not be justified by any of those principles on which that prince chose to rest his title, it was yet founded on general consent, was a national act, and was derived from the voluntary approbation of a free people, who, being loosened from their allegiance by the tyranny of the preceding government, were moved by gratitude, as well as by a sense of public interest, to intrust the sceptre into the hands of their deliverer: that, even if that establishment were allowed to be at first invalid, it had acquired solidity by time; the only principle which ultimately gives authority to government, and removes those scruples which the irregular steps attending almost all revolutions, naturally excite in the minds of the people: that the right of succession was a rule admitted only for general good, and for the maintenance of public order; and could never be pleaded to the overthrow of national tranquillity, and the subversion of regular establishments; that the principles of liberty, no less than the maxims of internal peace, were injured by these pretensions of the house of York; and if so many reiterated acts of the legislature, by which the crown was entailed on the present family, were now invalidated, the English must be considered not as a free people, who could dispose of their own government, but as a troop of slaves, who were implicitly transmitted by succession from one master to another that the nation was bound to allegiance under the house of Lancaster by moral no less than by political duty; and were they to infringe those numerous oaths of fealty which they had sworn to Henry and his predecessors, they would thenceforth be thrown loose from all principles, and it would be found difficult ever after to fix and restrain them: that the duke of York himself had frequently done homage to the king as his lawful sovereign, and had thereby, in the most solemn manner, made an indirect renunciation of those claims with which he now dared to disturb the tranquillity of the public: that even though the violation of the rights of blood, made on the deposition of Richard, was perhaps rash and imprudent, it was too late to remedy the mischief; the danger of a disputed succession could no longer be obviated; the people, accustomed to a government which, in the hands of the late king, had been so glorious, and in that of his predecessor, so prudent and salutary, would still ascribe a right to it; by causing multiplied disorders, and by shedding an inundation of blood, the advantage would only be obtained of exchanging one pretender for another; and the house of York itself, if established on the throne, would, on the first opportunity, be exposed to those revolutions, which the giddy spirit excited in the people gave so much reason to apprehend: and that, though the present king enjoyed not the shining talents which had appeared in his father and grandfather, he might still have a son who should be endowed with them; he is himself eminent for the most harmless and inoffensive manners; and if active princes were dethroned on pretence of tyranny, and indolent ones on the plea of incapacity, there would thenceforth remain in the constitution no established rule of obedience to any sovereign.

The supporters of the house of Lancaster argued that, while Henry IV’s rise to power might initially seem somewhat irregular and couldn’t be fully justified by the principles he claimed for his rule, it was nevertheless based on widespread consent, was a national decision, and stemmed from the voluntary approval of a free people. These people, having been freed from their loyalty due to the previous government’s tyranny, were driven by both gratitude and a sense of public interest to hand over the power to their savior. Even if that initial establishment was considered invalid, it had gained legitimacy over time; this is the only principle that ultimately grants authority to a government and dispels the doubts that arise from the irregular steps that accompany most revolutions. The right of succession was a rule accepted only for the common good and the preservation of public order; it could never justify disturbing national peace or overthrowing established governments. The ideals of liberty, as well as the principles of internal peace, were harmed by the claims of the house of York. If the numerous legislative acts that ensured the crown passed down to the current family were now dismissed, the English would no longer be viewed as a free people who could choose their own government but rather as a group of slaves, passed from one master to another. The nation was bound to the house of Lancaster by both moral and political obligation; should they violate the many oaths of loyalty they had sworn to Henry and his forebears, they would then lose all principles, making it difficult to ever stabilize them again. The duke of York had often acknowledged the king as his rightful sovereign and had, in doing so, indirectly renounced the claims he now used to disrupt public peace. Even if the breach of blood rights due to Richard’s deposition was seen as reckless and unwise, it was too late to fix the damage; the harm of a disputed succession was unavoidable. The people, accustomed to a government that, under the late king, had been so commendable and under his predecessor, so wise and beneficial, would still see a claim to that power. By creating widespread chaos and causing a flood of bloodshed, the only result would be swapping one claimant for another. If the house of York were to take the throne, they too would face upheaval due to the capricious spirit stirred within the people. Although the current king might not have the remarkable abilities his father and grandfather had, he might still have a son who could possess them. He is himself known for his gentle and inoffensive demeanor; if active rulers were dethroned for perceived tyranny and inactive ones for supposed incapacity, there would be no consistent rule of obedience to any sovereign left in the constitution.

Those strong topics in favor of the house of Lancaster, were opposed by arguments no less convincing on the side of the house of York. The partisans of this latter family asserted, that the maintenance of order in the succession of princes, far from doing injury to the people, or invalidating their fundamental title to good government, was established only for the purposes of government, and served to prevent those numberless confusions which must ensue, if no rule were followed but the uncertain and disputed views of present convenience and advantage: that the same maxims which insured public peace, were also salutary to national liberty the privileges of the people could only be maintained by the observance of laws; and if no account were made of the rights of the sovereign, it could less be expected that any regard would be paid to the property and freedom of the subject: that it was never too late to correct any pernicious precedent; an unjust establishment, the longer it stood, acquired the greater sanction and validity; it could, with more appearance of reason, be pleaded as an authority for a like injustice; and the maintenance of it, instead of favoring public tranquillity, tended to disjoint every principle by which human society was supported: that usurpers would be happy, if their present possession of power, or their continuance for a few years, could convert them into legal princes; but nothing would be more miserable than the people, if all restraints on violence and ambition were thus removed, and a full scope given to the attempts of every turbulent innovator: that time indeed might bestow solidity on a government whose first foundations were the most infirm; but it required both a long course of time to produce this effect, and the total extinction of those claimants whose title was built on the original principles of the constitution: that the deposition of Richard II., and the advancement of Henry IV., were not deliberate national acts, but the result of the levity and violence of the people, and proceeded from those very defects in human nature which the establishment of political society, and of an order in succession, was calculated to prevent: that the subsequent entails of the crown were a continuance of the same violence and usurpation; they were not ratified by the legislature, since the consent of the rightful king was still wanting; and the acquiescence, first of the family of Mortimer, then of the family of York, proceeded from present necessity, and implied no renunciation of their pretensions that the restoration of the true order of succession could not be considered as a change which familiarized the people to devolutions; but as the correction of a former abuse, which had itself encouraged the giddy spirit of innovation, rebellion, and disobedience: and that, as the original title of Lancaster stood only, in the person of Henry IV., on present convenience, even this principle, unjustifiable as it was when not supported by laws and warranted by the constitution, had now entirely gone over to the other side; nor was there any comparison between a prince utterly unable to sway the sceptre, and blindly governed by corrupt ministers, or by an imperious queen, engaged in foreign and hostile interests and a prince of mature years, of approved wisdom and experience, a native of England, the lineal heir of the crown, who, by his restoration, would replace every thing on ancient foundations.

The strong arguments for the House of Lancaster were met with equally convincing counterarguments from the House of York. Supporters of the latter family claimed that maintaining order in the succession of rulers did not harm the people or invalidate their basic right to good governance; rather, it was established solely to support good governance and to prevent the chaos that would arise if decisions were based solely on the uncertain and contested interests of the moment. They argued that the principles ensuring public peace were also beneficial for national freedom, and the rights of the people could only be protected through adherence to laws. If the rights of the sovereign were disregarded, it was even less likely that the property and freedom of the subjects would be respected. They contended that it was never too late to rectify a harmful precedent; an unjust establishment only gained more legitimacy as time passed, and could be cited as justification for further injustices. The continuation of such an establishment did not promote public peace but instead weakened the very foundations of human society. They pointed out that usurpers would be content if their temporary hold on power could somehow legitimize their rule, but the people would suffer greatly if all checks on violence and ambition were removed, allowing every disruptive innovator to act without restraint. They acknowledged that time might lend stability to a government built on shaky foundations, but this required both a lengthy period and the complete removal of those claims based on the original constitutional principles. They asserted that the deposition of Richard II and the rise of Henry IV were not careful national decisions but rather the outcomes of the people's fickleness and violence, stemming from the same flaws in human nature that political society and orderly succession were meant to curb. They asserted that the subsequent claims to the crown continued this violence and usurpation; they weren’t validated by the legislature since the rightful king’s consent was still missing. The acquiescence of the Mortimer family and later the York family stemmed from immediate necessity without renouncing their claims. They believed that restoring the rightful succession should not be seen as introducing new complexities for the people but rather correcting a prior abuse that had encouraged a reckless spirit of innovation, rebellion, and disobedience. They also pointed out that the original claim of the Lancasters, represented by Henry IV, was based solely on immediate convenience; this principle, unjust as it was without the support of laws and the constitution, had completely shifted to the opposing side. They noted that there was no comparison between a prince unable to govern himself, blindly led by corrupt ministers or a domineering queen focused on foreign conflicts, and a mature prince, wise and experienced, a native of England, directly in line for the crown, who, upon his restoration, would restore everything to its original foundations.

So many plausible arguments could be urged on both sides of this interesting question, that the people were extremely divided in their sentiments; and though the noblemen of greatest power and influence seem to have espoused the party of York, the opposite cause had the advantage of being supported by the present laws, and by the immediate possession of royal authority. There were also many great noblemen in the Lancastrian party, who balanced the power of their antagonists, and kept the nation in suspense between them. The earl of Northumberland adhered to the present government: the earl of Westmoreland, in spite of his connections with the duke of York, and with the family of Nevil, of which he was the head, was brought over to the same party; and the whole north of England, the most warlike part of the kingdom, was, by means of these two potent noblemen, warmly engaged in the interests of Lancaster. Edmund Beaufort, duke of Somerset, and his brother Henry, were great supports of that cause; as were also Henry Holland duke of Exeter, Stafford, duke of Buckingham, the earl of Shrewsbury, the Lords Clifford, Dudley, Scales, Audley, and other noblemen.

So many convincing arguments could be made for both sides of this interesting question that people had very divided opinions. Although the most powerful and influential noblemen seemed to support the York side, the opposing faction had the benefit of being backed by current laws and holding royal authority. There were also many prominent noblemen in the Lancastrian party who countered their opponents’ power and kept the nation in suspense. The Earl of Northumberland supported the current government, while the Earl of Westmoreland, despite his ties to the Duke of York and the Neville family of which he was the head, joined the same side. Together, these two powerful noblemen rallied the entire north of England, the most militaristic region of the kingdom, to the Lancastrian cause. Edmund Beaufort, Duke of Somerset, and his brother Henry were significant supporters of this cause, along with Henry Holland, Duke of Exeter, Stafford, Duke of Buckingham, the Earl of Shrewsbury, and Lords Clifford, Dudley, Scales, Audley, and other noblemen.

While the kingdom was in this situation, it might naturally be expected that so many turbulent barons, possessed of so much independent authority, would immediately have flown to arms, and have decided the quarrel, after their usual manner, by war and battle, under the standards of the contending princes. But there still were many causes which retarded these desperate extremities, and made a long train of faction, intrigue, and cabal, precede the military operations. By the gradual progress of arts in England, as well as in other parts of Europe, the people were now become of some importance; laws were beginning to be respected by them; and it was requisite, by various pretences, previously to reconcile their minds to the overthrow of such an ancient establishment as that of the house of Lancaster, ere their concurrence could reasonably be expected. The duke of York himself, the new claimant, was of a moderate and cautious character, an enemy to violence and disposed to trust rather to time and policy, than to sanguinary measures, for the success of his pretensions. The very imbecility itself of Henry tended to keep the factions in suspense, and make them stand long in awe of each other: it rendered the Lancastrian party unable to strike any violent blow against their enemies; it encouraged the Yorkists to hope that, after banishing the king’s ministers, and getting possession of his person, they might gradually undermine his authority, and be able, without the perilous experiment of a civil war, to change the succession by parliamentary and legal authority.

While the kingdom was in this situation, it was natural to expect that the many turbulent barons, holding so much independent power, would quickly take up arms and resolve the conflict, as they typically did, through war and battle under the banners of the competing princes. However, various factors delayed these drastic actions and led to a lengthy period of factions, intrigue, and plotting before any military operations began. With the gradual advancement of arts in England and across Europe, the people had started to gain importance; they were beginning to respect the laws, and it was necessary, under different pretenses, to first win their support for overturning the long-standing establishment of the Lancaster house before their agreement could be reasonably anticipated. The duke of York, the new claimant, had a moderate and cautious nature; he was against violence and preferred to rely on time and strategy rather than bloodshed to achieve his claims. The very weakness of Henry helped keep the factions in suspense and made them hesitant to act against one another; it left the Lancastrian party unable to deliver any aggressive blows against their opponents and encouraged the Yorkists to believe that, after ousting the king’s ministers and gaining control of him, they could gradually erode his power and, without the risky trial of a civil war, change the succession through parliamentary and legal means.

1451.

1451.

The dispositions which appeared in a parliament assembled soon after the arrival of the duke of York from Ireland, favored these expectations of his partisans, and both discovered an unusual boldness in the commons, and were a proof of the general discontents which prevailed against the administration. The lower house, without any previous inquiry or examination, without alleging any other ground of complaint than common fame, ventured to present a petition against the duke of Somerset, the duchess of Suffolk, the bishop of Chester, Sir John Sutton, Lord Dudley, and several others of inferior rank; and they prayed the king to remove them forever from his person and councils, and to prohibit them from approaching within twelve miles of the court.[*] This was a violent attack, somewhat arbitrary, and supported but by few precedents, against the ministry; yet the king durst not openly oppose it: he replied that, except the lords, he would banish all the others from court during a year, unless he should have occasion for their service in suppressing any rebellion. At the same time he rejected a bill, which had passed both houses, for attainting the late duke of Suffolk, and which, in several of its clauses, discovered a very general prejudice against the measures of the court.

The decisions made in a parliament that gathered shortly after the duke of York returned from Ireland supported the hopes of his supporters, showing an unusual boldness in the commons and reflecting the widespread dissatisfaction with the government. The lower house, without any prior investigation or examination, and without citing any other reason for complaint than public rumor, took the bold step of presenting a petition against the duke of Somerset, the duchess of Suffolk, the bishop of Chester, Sir John Sutton, Lord Dudley, and several others of lesser status. They requested the king to permanently remove these individuals from his presence and his councils, and to prohibit them from coming within twelve miles of the court.[*] This was a forceful and somewhat arbitrary attack on the ministry, with few precedents to back it up; still, the king did not dare to openly challenge it. He responded that, aside from the lords, he would banish everyone else from court for a year unless he needed their help to suppress any rebellion. At the same time, he rejected a bill that had been approved by both houses aimed at condemning the late duke of Suffolk, which revealed a significant bias against the court's actions in several of its clauses.

1452.

1452.

The duke of York, trusting to these symptoms, raised an army of ten thousand men, with which he marched towards London, demanding a reformation of the government, and the removal of the duke of Somerset from all power and authority.[**] He unexpectedly found the gates of the city shut against him; and on his retreating into Kent, he was followed by the king at the head of a superior army; in which several of Richard’s friends, particularly Salisbury and Warwick appeared; probably with a view of mediating between the parties, and of seconding, on occasion, the duke of York’s pretensions.

The Duke of York, believing in these signs, gathered an army of ten thousand men and marched toward London, demanding changes in the government and the removal of the Duke of Somerset from power. He was surprised to find the city gates closed against him; when he retreated to Kent, the king followed him with a larger army. Among them were several of Richard’s allies, especially Salisbury and Warwick, likely aiming to mediate between the two sides and possibly support the Duke of York’s claims if needed.

     * Parl. Hist. vol. ii. p. 263.

     ** Stowe, p. 394.
     * Parl. Hist. vol. ii. p. 263.

     ** Stowe, p. 394.

A parley ensued; Richard still insisted upon the removal of Somerset, and his submitting to a trial in parliament: the court pretended to comply with his demand; and that nobleman was put in arrest: the duke of York was then persuaded to pay his respects to the king in his tent; and, on repeating his charge against the duke of Somerset, he was surprised to see that minister step from behind the curtain, and offer to maintain his innocence. Richard now found that he had been betrayed; that he was in the hands of his enemies; and that it was become necessary, for his own safety, to lower his pretensions. No violence, however, was attempted against him: the nation was not in a disposition to bear the destruction of so popular a prince: he had many friends in Henry’s camp; and his son, who was not in the power of the court, might still be able to revenge his death on all his enemies: he was therefore dismissed; and he retired to his seat of Wigmore, on the borders of Wales.[*]

A meeting took place; Richard continued to push for Somerset's removal and for him to face a trial in parliament. The court pretended to go along with his request, and that nobleman was put under arrest. The Duke of York was then encouraged to pay a visit to the king in his tent; when he repeated his accusations against the Duke of Somerset, he was shocked to see that minister step out from behind the curtain and offer to defend his innocence. Richard realized he had been betrayed; he was at the mercy of his enemies, and he needed to lower his expectations for his own safety. No violence was directed at him, though; the country wasn’t ready to stand for the downfall of such a popular prince. He had many supporters in Henry’s camp, and his son, who was not under the court's control, could still seek revenge for any harm done to him. He was therefore let go and returned to his estate at Wigmore, on the edge of Wales.[*]

While the duke of York lived in this retreat, there happened an incident which, by increasing the public discontents, proved favorable to his pretensions. Several Gascon lords, affectionate to the English government, and disgusted at the new dominion of the French, came to London, and offered to return to their allegiance under Henry.[**]

While the duke of York was staying in this retreat, an event occurred that, by raising public discontent, actually worked in his favor. Several Gascon lords, loyal to the English government and unhappy with the new rule of the French, came to London and expressed their willingness to return to their loyalty under Henry.[**]

1453.

1453.

The earl of Shrewsbury, with a body of eight thousand men, was sent over to support them. Bordeaux opened its gates to him: he made himself master of Fronsac, Castillon, and some other places: affairs began to wear a favorable aspect; but as Charles hastened to resist this dangerous invasion, the fortunes of the English were soon reversed: Shrewsbury, a venerable warrior, above fourscore years of age, fell in battle; his conquests were lost; Bordeaux was again obliged to submit to the French king;[***] and all hopes of recovering the province of Gascony were forever extinguished.

The Earl of Shrewsbury, leading eight thousand men, was sent over to provide support. Bordeaux welcomed him, and he took control of Fronsac, Castillon, and a few other places. Things started to look up, but as Charles rushed to push back against this serious invasion, the fortunes of the English quickly changed. Shrewsbury, a respected warrior over eighty years old, was killed in battle; his gains were lost; Bordeaux was forced to submit to the French king again; and all hopes of reclaiming the province of Gascony were permanently dashed.

     * Grafton, p. 620.

     ** Holing. p. 640.

     *** Polyd. Virg. p. 501. Grafton, p. 623.
     * Grafton, p. 620.

     ** Holing, p. 640.

     *** Polyd. Virg, p. 501. Grafton, p. 623.

Though the English might deem themselves happy to be fairly rid of distant dominions, which were of no use to them, and which they never could defend against the growing power of France, they expressed great discontent on the occasion: and they threw all the blame on the ministry, who had not been able to effect impossibilities. While they were in this disposition, the queen’s delivery of a son, who received the name of Edward, was deemed no joyful incident; and as it removed all hopes of the peaceable succession of the duke of York, who was otherwise, in the right of his father, and by the laws enacted since the accession of the house of Lancaster, next heir to the crown, it had rather a tendency to inflame the quarrel between the parties. But the duke was incapable of violent counsels; and even when no visible obstacle lay between him and the throne, he was prevented by his own scruples from mounting it.

Although the English might feel relieved to be mostly free from distant territories that served them no purpose and that they could never defend against France's growing power, they showed a lot of dissatisfaction at the time. They blamed the government for failing to achieve the impossible. While they were in this mindset, the queen giving birth to a son, who was named Edward, was not seen as a happy event. Instead, it dashed any hopes for a peaceful succession by the duke of York, who, through his father’s lineage and the laws passed since the rise of the Lancaster house, was the next rightful heir to the throne. This development only fueled the conflict between the factions. However, the duke was not inclined to take drastic actions, and even when there were no clear barriers between him and the throne, his own doubts held him back from pursuing it.

1454.

1454.

Henry, always unfit to exercise the government, fell at this time into a distemper, which so far increased his natural imbecility, that it rendered him incapable of maintaining even the appearance of royalty. The queen and the council, destitute of this support, found themselves unable to resist the York party; and they were obliged to yield to the torrent. They sent Somerset to the Tower, and appointed Richard lieutenant of the kingdom, with powers to open and hold a session of parliament.[*]

Henry, who was never fit to rule, fell ill at this time, which worsened his natural weakness and left him unable to even pretend to be a king. Without his support, the queen and the council found themselves unable to stand up to the York faction, and they had to give in to the pressure. They sent Somerset to the Tower and appointed Richard as the lieutenant of the kingdom, granting him the authority to open and hold a session of parliament.[*]

     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 344.
* Rymer, vol. xi. p. 344.

That assembly, also, taking into consideration the state of the kingdom, created him protector during pleasure. Men who thus intrusted sovereign authority to one that had such evident and strong pretensions to the crown, were not surely averse to his taking immediate and full possession of it; yet the duke, instead of pushing them to make further concessions, appeared somewhat timid and irresolute even in receiving the power which was tendered to him. He desired that it might be recorded in parliament, that this authority was conferred on him from their own free motion, without any application on his part: he expressed his hopes that they would assist him in the exercise of it: he made it a condition of his acceptance, that the other lords who were appointed to be of his council, should also accept of the trust, and should exercise it; and he required, that all the powers of his office should be specified and defined by act of parliament. This moderation of Richard was certainly very unusual and very amiable; yet was it attended with bad consequences in the present juncture; and by giving time to the animosities of faction to rise and ferment, it proved the source of all those furious wars and commotions which ensued.

That assembly also took into account the state of the kingdom and made him protector at their discretion. The men who entrusted sovereign power to someone with such clear and strong claims to the crown were likely not against him taking immediate and full possession of it; yet the duke, instead of urging them to make further concessions, seemed somewhat hesitant and uncertain even in accepting the authority that was offered to him. He wanted it to be recorded in parliament that this power was given to him of their own free will, without him asking for it: he expressed hope that they would support him in using it: he made it a condition of his acceptance that the other lords appointed to be on his council should also accept the role and carry it out; and he requested that all the powers of his office be defined and specified by an act of parliament. This restraint from Richard was certainly very unusual and commendable; however, it had negative consequences at the moment, and by giving time for factional animosities to rise and fester, it became the source of all the fierce wars and upheavals that followed.

The enemies of the duke of York soon found it in their power to make advantage of his excessive caution. Henry being so far recovered from his distemper, as to carry the appearance of exercising the royal power, they moved him to resume his authority, to annul the protectorship of the duke to release Somerset from the Tower,[*] and to commit the administration into the hands of that nobleman.

The enemies of the Duke of York quickly realized they could take advantage of his extreme caution. With Henry being well enough to look like he was exercising royal power, they persuaded him to take back control, end the Duke's protectorship, free Somerset from the Tower,[*] and hand over the administration to that nobleman.

1455.

1455.

Richard, sensible of the dangers which might attend his former acceptance of the parliamentary commission, should he submit to the annulling of it, levied an army; but still without advancing any pretensions to the crown. He complained only of the king’s ministers, and demanded a reformation of the government. A battle was fought at St. Albans, in which the Yorkists were superior, and, without suffering any material loss, slew about five thousand of their enemies; among whom were the duke of Somerset, the earl of Northumberland, the earl of Stafford, eldest son of the duke of Buckingham, Lord Clifford, and many other persons of distinction.[**] The king himself fell into the hands of the duke of York, who treated him with great respect and tenderness: he was only obliged (which he regarded as no hardship) to commit the whole authority of the crown into the hands of his rival.

Richard, aware of the dangers that could come from his earlier acceptance of the parliamentary commission if he agreed to have it annulled, gathered an army; however, he did not make any claims to the crown. He only criticized the king’s ministers and called for reform in the government. A battle took place at St. Albans, where the Yorkists came out on top, killing about five thousand of their enemies without suffering any significant losses. Among the dead were the Duke of Somerset, the Earl of Northumberland, the Earl of Stafford, the eldest son of the Duke of Buckingham, Lord Clifford, and many other notable figures. The king himself was captured by the Duke of York, who treated him with great respect and kindness; the king was only required (which he saw as no hardship) to hand over all the authority of the crown to his rival.

     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 361. Holing, p. 642. Grafton, p. 626.

     ** Stowe, p. 309. Holing, p. 643.
     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 361. Holing, p. 642. Grafton, p. 626.

     ** Stowe, p. 309. Holing, p. 643.

This was the first blood spilt in that fatal quarrel which was not finished in less than a course of thirty years, which was signalized by twelve pitched battles, which opened a scene of extraordinary fierceness and cruelty, is computed to have cost the lives of eighty princes of the blood, and almost entirely annihilated the ancient nobility of England. The strong attachments, which, at that time, men of the same kindred bore to each other, and the vindictive spirit, which was considered as a point of honor, rendered the great families implacable in their resentments, and every moment widened the breach between the parties. Yet affairs did not immediately proceed to the last extremities; the nation was kept some time in suspense; the vigor and spirit of Queen Margaret, supporting her small power, still proved a balance to the great authority of Richard, which was checked by his irresolute temper. A parliament, which was soon after assembled, plainly discovered, by the contrariety of their proceedings, the contrariety of the motives by which they were actuated. They granted the Yorkists a general indemnity, and they restored the protectorship to the duke, who, in accepting it, still persevered in all his former precautions; but at the same time they renewed their oaths of fealty to Henry, and fixed the continuance of the protectorship to the majority of his son Edward, who was vested with the usual dignities of prince of Wales, duke of Cornwall, and earl of Chester. The only decisive act passed in this parliament, was a full resumption of all the grants which had been made since the death of Henry V., and which had reduced the crown to great poverty.

This was the first bloodshed in that deadly conflict, which lasted over thirty years and was marked by twelve major battles. It opened a chapter of extreme violence and cruelty, resulting in the deaths of eighty blood-related nobles and nearly wiping out the ancient nobility of England. The strong bonds that people of the same family had back then, along with a vengeful spirit seen as a matter of honor, made the major families unyielding in their grudges and constantly widened the divide between the factions. However, things didn’t immediately escalate to the extreme; the nation remained in uncertainty for a while. Queen Margaret’s determination and support for her limited power counterbalanced Richard’s strong influence, which was tempered by his indecisive nature. A parliament that soon convened revealed, through their conflicting actions, the conflicting motivations driving them. They granted the Yorkists a general pardon and reinstated the dukedom for Richard, who, while accepting it, continued all his previous precautions. At the same time, they renewed their loyalty oaths to Henry and established that the dukedom would last until his son Edward reached adulthood, who held the usual titles of Prince of Wales, Duke of Cornwall, and Earl of Chester. The only significant decision made in this parliament was to completely revoke all grants made since Henry V’s death, which had left the crown in significant financial distress.

1456.

1456.

It was not found difficult to wrest power from hands so little tenacious as those of the duke of York. Margaret, availing herself of that prince’s absence, produced her husband before the house of lords; and as his state of health permitted him at that time to act his part with some tolerable decency, he declared his intentions of resuming the government, and of putting an end to Richard’s authority. This measure, being unexpected, was not opposed by the contrary party; the house of lords, who were many of them disgusted with the late act of resumption, assented to Henry’s proposal; and the king was declared to be reinstated in sovereign authority. Even the duke of York acquiesced in this irregular act of the peers, and no disturbance ensued. But that prince’s claim to the crown was too well known, and the steps which he had taken to promote it were too evident ever to allow sincere trust and confidence to have place between the parties.

It wasn't too hard to take power from someone as unsteady as the Duke of York. Margaret, taking advantage of his absence, brought her husband before the House of Lords. Since he was healthy enough at the time to perform his role reasonably well, he expressed his intention to resume control and end Richard's authority. This unexpected move didn’t face opposition from the opposing party; many in the House of Lords were annoyed with the recent act of resumption and agreed to Henry's proposal. The king was declared restored to sovereign authority. Even the Duke of York accepted this irregular decision by the peers, and there were no disturbances. However, the Duke’s claim to the crown was too well-known, and the actions he had taken to support it were too clear for there to ever be true trust and confidence between the parties.

1457.

1457.

The court retired to Coventry, and invited the duke of York and the earls of Salisbury and Warwick to attend the king’s person. When they were on the road, they received intelligence that designs were formed against their liberties and lives. They immediately separated themselves; Richard withdrew to his castle of Wigmore; Salisbury to Middleham, in Yorkshire, and Warwick to his government of Calais, which had been committed to him after the battle of St. Albans, and which, as it gave him the command of the only regular military force maintained by England, was of the utmost importance in the present juncture. Still, men of peaceable dispositions, and among the rest Bourchier, archbishop of Canterbury, thought it not too late to interpose with their good offices, in order to prevent that effusion of blood, with which the kingdom was threatened; and the awe in which each party stood of the other, rendered the mediation for some time successful. It was agreed that all the great leaders on both sides should meet in London, and be solemnly reconciled.

The court moved to Coventry and invited the Duke of York and the Earls of Salisbury and Warwick to join the king. While traveling, they got word that plans were being made against their freedoms and lives. They quickly split up: Richard went to his castle in Wigmore; Salisbury headed to Middleham in Yorkshire; and Warwick went to his post in Calais, which he had taken on after the battle of St. Albans. This was crucial because it gave him control over the only professional military force in England at that time. Still, some peace-loving individuals, including Bourchier, the Archbishop of Canterbury, believed it wasn't too late to offer their help to prevent the bloodshed threatening the kingdom. The mutual fear between the two sides made this mediation successful for a while. They agreed that all the major leaders from both sides would meet in London and be formally reconciled.

1458.

1458.

The duke of York and his partisans came thither with numerous retinues, and took up their quarters near each other for mutual security. The leaders of the Lancastrian party used the same precaution. The mayor, at the head of five thousand men, kept a strict watch, night and day; and was extremely vigilant in maintaining peace between them.[*]

The Duke of York and his supporters arrived with a large entourage and set up their camps close together for safety. The leaders of the Lancastrian faction took the same precautions. The mayor, leading five thousand men, maintained a constant watch, day and night, and was very attentive to keeping the peace between them.[*]

     * Fabian Chron. anno 1458. The author says that some lords
     brought nine hundred retainers, some six hundred, none less
     than four hundred. See also Grafton, p. 633.
     * Fabian Chron. anno 1458. The author notes that some lords brought nine hundred followers, some six hundred, and none less than four hundred. See also Grafton, p. 633.

Terms were adjusted, which removed not the ground of difference. An outward reconciliation only was procured; and in order to notify this accord to the whole people, a solemn procession to St. Paul’s was appointed, where the duke of York led Queen Margaret, and a leader of one party marched hand in hand with a leader of the opposite. The less real cordiality prevailed, the more were the exterior demonstrations of amity redoubled. But it was evident, that a contest for a crown could not thus be peaceably accommodated; that each party watched only for an opportunity of subverting the other; and that much blood must yet be spilt, ere the nation could be restored to perfect tranquillity, or enjoy a settled and established government.

Terms were changed, but they didn't eliminate the underlying differences. A superficial reconciliation was achieved; to announce this agreement to the entire population, a formal procession to St. Paul’s was organized, where the Duke of York led Queen Margaret, and a leader from one faction walked hand in hand with a leader from the opposing side. The less genuine the goodwill felt, the more the outward displays of friendship increased. However, it was clear that a struggle for the crown couldn't be resolved peacefully; each side was only looking for a chance to undermine the other, and a lot more blood would need to be shed before the nation could find true peace or establish a stable government.

1459.

1459.

Even the smallest accident, without any formed design, was sufficient, in the present disposition of men’s minds, to dissolve the seeming harmony between the parties; and had the intentions of the leaders been ever so amicable they would have found it difficult to restrain the animosity of their followers. One of the king’s retinue insulted one of the earl of Warwick’s: their companions on both sides took part in the quarrel: a fierce combat ensued: the earl apprehended his life to be aimed at: he fled to his government of Calais; and both parties, in every county of England, openly made preparations for deciding the contest by war and arms.

Even the smallest accident, with no bad intentions, was enough, given how people were thinking at the time, to break the apparent harmony between the groups. Even if the leaders had the best of intentions, it would have been hard for them to control the anger of their followers. One of the king’s men insulted one of the earl of Warwick’s men; their friends on both sides joined in the fight. A fierce battle broke out; the earl thought his life was in danger, so he ran to his governorship in Calais. Both groups, all over England, started preparing openly for war to settle the conflict.

The earl of Salisbury, marching to join the duke of York, was overtaken at Blore Heath, on the borders of Staffordshire, by Lord Audley, who commanded much superior forces; and a small rivulet with steep banks ran between the armies. Salisbury here supplied his defect in numbers by stratagem, a refinement of which there occur few instances in the English civil wars, where a headlong courage, more than military conduct, is commonly to be remarked. He feigned a retreat, and allured Audley to follow him with precipitation; but when the van of the royal army had passed the brook, Salisbury suddenly turned upon them; and partly by the surprise, partly by the division, of the enemies’ forces, put this body to rout: the example of flight was followed by the rest of the army: and Salisbury, obtaining a complete victory, reached the general rendezvous of the Yorkists at Ludlow.[*]

The Earl of Salisbury, on his way to join the Duke of York, was caught at Blore Heath, near the border of Staffordshire, by Lord Audley, who had a much larger army. A small stream with steep banks separated the two forces. Here, Salisbury made up for his lack of numbers with strategy, which is rarely seen in the English civil wars, where impulsive bravery is often more common than military skill. He pretended to retreat, luring Audley into chasing him recklessly; but when the front of the royal army crossed the stream, Salisbury suddenly turned on them. Thanks to the element of surprise and the split in the enemy's forces, he managed to rout this group. The rest of the army quickly followed suit and fled. Salisbury achieved a complete victory and made his way to the main meeting point of the Yorkists at Ludlow.[*]

The earl of Warwick brought over to this rendezvous a choice body of veterans from Calais, on whom, it was thought the fortune of the war would much depend; but this reënforcement occasioned, in the issue, the immediate ruin of the duke of York’s party. When the royal army approached, and a general action was every hour expected, Sir Andrew Trollop, who commanded the veterans, deserted to the king in the night-time; and the Yorkists were so dismayed at this instance of treachery, which made every man suspicious of his fellow, that they separated next day without striking a stroke:[**] the duke fled to Ireland: the earl of Warwick, attended by many of the other leaders, escaped to Calais; where his great popularity among all orders of men, particularly among the military, soon drew to him partisans, and rendered his power very formidable. The friends of the house of York in England kept themselves every where in readiness to rise on the first summons from their leaders.

The Earl of Warwick brought a select group of veterans from Calais to this meeting, believing their presence would significantly impact the outcome of the war. However, this reinforcements ultimately led to the swift downfall of the Duke of York's side. When the royal army drew near and a major battle was anticipated at any moment, Sir Andrew Trollop, who was in charge of the veterans, defected to the king during the night. The Yorkists were so shaken by this act of betrayal, making everyone doubt one another, that they scattered the next day without fighting: the duke fled to Ireland, and the Earl of Warwick, along with many other leaders, escaped to Calais. There, his popularity among all classes, especially the military, quickly attracted supporters and made his influence quite powerful. The supporters of the York family in England stayed alert, ready to rise at the first call from their leaders.

1_283_albans_abbey.jpg St. Albans Abbey

1460.

1460.

After meeting with some successes at sea, Warwick landed in Kent, with the earl of Salisbury, and the earl of Marche, eldest son of the duke of York; and being met by the primate, by Lord Cobham, and other persons of distinction, he marched, amidst the acclamations of the people, to London. The city immediately opened its gates to him; and his troops increasing on every day’s march, he soon found himself in a condition to face the royal army, which hastened from Coventry to attack him. The battle was fought at Northampton; and was soon decided against the royalists by the infidelity of Lord Grey of Ruthin, who, commanding Henry’s van, deserted to the enemy during the heat of action, and spread a consternation through the troops. The duke of Buckingham, the earl of Shrewsbury, the Lords Beaumont and Egremont, and Sir William Lucie were killed in the action or pursuit: the slaughter fell chiefly on the gentry and nobility; the common people were spared by orders of the earls of Warwick and Marche.[***]

After achieving some successes at sea, Warwick arrived in Kent, accompanied by the Earl of Salisbury and the Earl of Marche, the eldest son of the Duke of York. They were greeted by the primate, Lord Cobham, and other prominent figures as they marched, to the cheers of the crowd, toward London. The city quickly opened its gates to him, and with each day's march, his troop numbers grew, putting him in a strong position to confront the royal army, which was rushing from Coventry to attack. The battle took place at Northampton and was quickly decided against the royalists due to the betrayal of Lord Grey of Ruthin, who, leading Henry’s front line, defected to the enemy during the heat of the battle, causing panic among the troops. The Duke of Buckingham, the Earl of Shrewsbury, Lords Beaumont and Egremont, and Sir William Lucie were killed in the fighting or the chase; the majority of the casualties were among the gentry and nobility, while the common people were spared by the orders of the Earls of Warwick and Marche.[***]

     * Holingshed, p. 649. Grafton, p. 936.

     ** Holingshed, p. 650. Grafton, p. 537

     *** Stowe, p. 409.
     * Holingshed, p. 649. Grafton, p. 936.

     ** Holingshed, p. 650. Grafton, p. 537

     *** Stowe, p. 409.

Henry himself, that empty shadow of a king, was again taken prisoner; and as the innocence and simplicity of his manners, which bore the appearance of sanctity, had procured him the tender regard of the people,[*] the earl of Warwick and the other leaders took care to distinguish themselves by their respectful demeanor towards him.

Henry himself, that hollow figure of a king, was captured once more; and since his innocent and straightforward behavior, which seemed almost saintly, had earned him the people's affection, the Earl of Warwick and the other leaders made sure to show their respect through their respectful attitude toward him.

A parliament was summoned in the king’s name, and met at Westminster; where the duke soon after appeared from Ireland. This prince had never hitherto advanced openly any claim to the crown: he had only complained of ill ministers, and demanded a redress of grievances; and even in the present crisis, when the parliament was surrounded by his victorious army, he showed such a regard to law and liberty, as is unusual during the prevalence of a party in any civil dissensions; and was still less to be expected in those violent and licentious times. He advanced towards the throne; and being met by the archbishop of Canterbury, who asked him, whether he had yet paid his respects to the king, he replied, that he knew of none to whom he owed that title. He then stood near the throne,[**] and addressing himself to the house of peers, he gave them a deduction of his title by descent, mentioned the cruelties by which the house of Lancaster had paved their way to sovereign power, insisted on the calamities which had attended the government of Henry, exhorted them to return into the right path, by doing justice to the lineal successor, and thus pleaded his cause before them as his natural and legal judges.[***] This cool and moderate manner of demanding a crown intimidated his friends and encouraged his enemies: the lords remained in suspense;[****] and no one ventured to utter a word on the occasion.

A parliament was called in the king’s name and convened at Westminster; shortly after, the duke arrived from Ireland. This prince had never openly claimed the crown before; he had only criticized bad ministers and sought to address grievances. Even in this critical moment, while his victorious army surrounded the parliament, he demonstrated a respect for law and liberty that is rare during civil disputes, especially in those wild and chaotic times. He approached the throne, and when the archbishop of Canterbury asked if he had paid his respects to the king, he replied that he didn’t know anyone to whom he owed that title. He then stood near the throne,[**] and addressing the house of peers, he presented his claim to the title by descent, discussed the cruelties that had helped the house of Lancaster seize power, highlighted the hardships under Henry’s rule, and urged them to correct their course by doing justice to the rightful successor, thus making his plea before them as his natural and legal judges.[***] His calm and moderate approach to claiming the crown intimidated his supporters and emboldened his adversaries: the lords were left uncertain;[****] and no one dared to speak up.

     * Hall, fol. 169. Grafton, p. 195.

     ** Holingshed, p. 650

     *** Cotton, p. 665. Grafton, p. 643.

     **** Holingshed, p. 657. Grafton, p. 645.
     * Hall, fol. 169. Grafton, p. 195.

     ** Holingshed, p. 650

     *** Cotton, p. 665. Grafton, p. 643.

     **** Holingshed, p. 657. Grafton, p. 645.

Richard, who had probably expected that the peers would have invited him to place himself on the throne, was much disappointed at their silence; but desiring them to reflect on what he had proposed to them, he departed the house. The peers took the matter into consideration, with as much tranquillity as if it had been a common subject of debate: they desired the assistance of some considerable members among the commons in their deliberations: they heard in several successive days, the reasons alleged for the duke of York: they even ventured to propose objections to his claim founded on former entails of the crown, and on the oaths of fealty sworn to the house of Lancaster:[*] they also observed that as Richard had all along borne the arms of York, not those of Clarence, he could not claim as successor to the latter family: and after receiving answers to these objections, derived from the violence and power by which the house of Lancaster supported their present possession of the crown, they proceeded to give a decision. Their sentence was calculated, as far as possible, to please both parties: they declared the title of the duke of York to be certain and indefeasible; but in consideration that Henry had enjoyed the crown, without dispute or controversy, during the course of thirty-eight years, they determined that he should continue to possess the title and dignity during the remainder of his life; that the administration of the government, meanwhile, should remain with Richard; that he should be acknowledged the true and lawful heir of the monarchy; that every one should swear to maintain his succession, and it should be treason to attempt his life; and that all former settlements of the crown, in this and the two last reigns, should be abrogated and rescinded.[**] The duke acquiesced in this decision: Henry himself, being a prisoner, could not oppose it: even if he had enjoyed his liberty, he would not probably have felt any violent reluctance against it: and the act thus passed with the unanimous consent of the whole legislative body. Though the mildness of this compromise is chiefly to be ascribed to the moderation of the duke of York, it is impossible not to observe in those transactions visible marks of a higher regard to law, and of a more fixed authority enjoyed by parliament, than has appeared in any former period of English history.

Richard, who likely expected the nobles to invite him to take the throne, was left quite disappointed by their silence. After urging them to think about what he had proposed, he left the house. The nobles considered the matter calmly, as if it were a typical debate topic. They sought the help of some significant members from the Commons in their discussions and listened over several days to the arguments made for the Duke of York. They even dared to raise objections to his claim based on previous entitlements of the crown and the loyalty oaths sworn to the House of Lancaster. They pointed out that since Richard had always carried the arms of York, not those of Clarence, he couldn’t claim to be the successor of the latter family. After reviewing responses to these objections, which centered on the violence and power by which the House of Lancaster maintained its hold on the crown, they moved forward with a decision. Their ruling was designed to satisfy both sides as much as possible: they declared the title of the Duke of York to be certain and undeniable, but since Henry had held the crown without challenge for thirty-eight years, they ruled that he should keep the title and dignity for the rest of his life. Meanwhile, the management of the government would remain with Richard, who would be recognized as the true and lawful heir to the monarchy. Everyone would be required to swear to uphold his succession, and it would be considered treason to threaten his life. Additionally, all previous arrangements regarding the crown from this and the last two reigns would be annulled. The Duke accepted this ruling; Henry, being a prisoner, couldn’t contest it. Even if he had been free, he likely wouldn’t have strongly opposed it. Thus, the act passed with unanimous consent from the entire legislative body. Although the gentleness of this compromise is mainly due to the Duke of York's moderation, it’s clear that these events demonstrated a stronger respect for law and more established authority in Parliament than had been seen in any previous period of English history.

     * Cotton, p. 666.

     ** Cotton, p. 666. Grafton, p. 647.
     * Cotton, p. 666.

     ** Cotton, p. 666. Grafton, p. 647.

It is probable that the duke, without employing either menaces or violence, could have obtained from the commons a settlement more consistent and uniform: but as many, if not all the members of the upper house, had received grants, concession, or dignities, during the last sixty years, when the house of Lancaster was possessed of the government, they were afraid of invalidating their own titles by too sudden and violent an overthrow of that family; and in thus temporizing between the parties, they fixed the throne on a basis upon which it could not possibly stand. The duke, apprehending his chief danger to arise from the genius and spirit of Queen Margaret sought a pretence for banishing her the kingdom: he sent her, in the king’s name, a summons to come immediately to London; intending, in case of her disobedience, to proceed to extremities against her. But the queen needed not this menace to excite her activity in defending the rights of her family. After the defeat at Northampton, she had fled with her infant son to Durham, thence to Scotland; but soon returning, she applied to the northern barons, and employed every motive to procure their assistance. Her affability, insinuation, and address,—qualities in which she excelled,—her caresses, her promises, wrought a powerful effect on every one who approached her: the admiration of her great qualities was succeeded by compassion towards her helpless condition: the nobility of that quarter, who regarded themselves as the most warlike in the kingdom, were moved by indignation to find the southern barons pretend to dispose of the crown and settle the government. And that they might allure the people to their standard, they promised them the spoils of all the provinces on the other side of the Trent. By these means, the queen had collected an army twenty thousand strong, with a celerity which was neither expected by her friends nor apprehended by her enemies.

It’s likely that the duke, without using threats or violence, could have secured a more consistent and uniform agreement from the common people. However, since many, if not all, of the members of the upper house had received grants, concessions, or titles over the last sixty years when the house of Lancaster was in power, they were afraid that a sudden and violent overthrow of that family would invalidate their own titles. By trying to balance the interests of both sides, they set the throne on a foundation that couldn’t possibly hold. The duke, sensing that his biggest threat came from Queen Margaret’s determination and spirit, wanted an excuse to banish her from the kingdom. He sent her, in the king’s name, a summons to come to London immediately, intending to take drastic measures if she disobeyed. But the queen didn’t need this threat to motivate her to defend her family’s rights. After her defeat at Northampton, she had fled with her infant son to Durham, then to Scotland; however, she returned quickly and sought the help of the northern barons, using every means possible to gain their support. Her charm, persuasion, and social skills—areas where she excelled—her affection, and her promises had a strong impact on everyone who met her. People admired her great qualities, which quickly turned into compassion for her vulnerable situation. The nobility in that region, who considered themselves the most battle-ready in the kingdom, were outraged to see the southern barons trying to dictate the crown and establish a government. To attract supporters, they promised the people the spoils from the provinces across the Trent. Through these efforts, the queen gathered an army of twenty thousand, surprising both her supporters and her enemies with how quickly she did it.

The duke of York, informed of her appearance in the north, hastened thither with a body of five thousand men, to suppress, as he imagined, the beginnings of an insurrection; when, on his arrival at Wakefield, he found himself so much outnumbered by the enemy. He threw himself into Sandal Castle, which was situated in the neighborhood; and he was advised by the earl of Salisbury, and other prudent counsellors, to remain in that fortress till his son, the earl of Marche, who was levying forces in the borders of Wales, could advance to his assistance.[*] But the duke, though deficient in political courage, possessed personal bravery in an eminent degree; and notwithstanding his wisdom and experience, he thought that he should be forever disgraced, if, by taking shelter behind walls, he should for a moment resign the victory to a woman.

The Duke of York, hearing about her appearance in the north, rushed there with five thousand men, thinking he could crush what he believed was the start of a rebellion. However, upon arriving in Wakefield, he found himself greatly outnumbered by the enemy. He took refuge in Sandal Castle, which was nearby, and was advised by the Earl of Salisbury and other wise counselors to stay in the fortress until his son, the Earl of Marche, who was gathering troops in the Welsh borders, could come to help him. But the duke, while lacking in political courage, was personally very brave; despite his wisdom and experience, he felt he would be forever shamed if he took cover behind walls and, for even a moment, let a woman claim victory.

     * Stowe, p. 412.
* Stowe, p. 412.

He descended into the plain, and offered battle to the enemy, which was instantly accepted. The great inequality of numbers was sufficient alone to decide the victory; but the queen, by sending a detachment, who fell on the back of the duke’s army, rendered her advantage still more certain and undisputed. The duke himself was killed in the action; and as his body was found among the slain, the head was cut off by Margaret’s orders, and fixed on the gates of York, with a paper crown upon it, in derision of his pretended title. His son, the earl of Rutland, a youth of seventeen, was brought to Lord Clifford; and that barbarian, in revenge of his father’s death, who had perished in the battle of St. Albans, murdered in cool blood, and with his own hands, this innocent prince, whose exterior figure, as well as other accomplishments, are represented by historians as extremely amiable. The earl of Salisbury was wounded and taken prisoner, and immediately beheaded, with several other persons of distinction, by martial law at Pomfret.[*] There fell near three thousand Yorkists in this battle: the duke himself was greatly and justly lamented by his own party; a prince who merited a better fate, and whose errors in conduct proceeded entirely from such qualities as render him the more an object of esteem and affection. He perished in the fiftieth year of his age, and left three sons, Edward, George, and Richard, with three daughters, Anne, Elizabeth, and Margaret.

He went down into the plain and challenged the enemy to battle, which they quickly accepted. The significant difference in numbers was enough to secure victory; however, the queen, by sending a group to attack the back of the duke’s army, made her advantage even more certain and indisputable. The duke himself was killed in the fighting; and when his body was found among the dead, Margaret ordered his head to be cut off and displayed on the gates of York, wearing a paper crown as mockery of his claimed title. His son, the Earl of Rutland, a seventeen-year-old, was captured by Lord Clifford, who, in vengeance for his father's death during the battle of St. Albans, coldly murdered this innocent young prince with his own hands, despite his appearance and qualities being described by historians as very admirable. The Earl of Salisbury was wounded and taken prisoner, then immediately executed along with several other notable figures under martial law at Pomfret.[*] Nearly three thousand Yorkists fell in this battle; the duke was deeply and rightly mourned by his faction, a prince who deserved a better fate, and whose mistakes in leadership stemmed entirely from qualities that made him more deserving of respect and affection. He died at the age of fifty, leaving behind three sons, Edward, George, and Richard, as well as three daughters, Anne, Elizabeth, and Margaret.

1461.

1461.

The queen, after this important victory, divided her army. She sent the smaller division, under Jasper Tudor, earl of Pembroke, half brother to the king, against Edward the new duke of York. She herself marched with the larger division towards London, where the earl of Warwick had been left with the command of the Yorkists. Pembroke was defeated by Edward at Mortimer’s Cross, in Herefordshire, with the loss of near four thousand men: his army was dispersed; he himself escaped by flight; but his father, Sir Owen Tudor, was taken prisoner, and immediately beheaded by Edward’s orders. This barbarous practice, being once begun, was continued by both parties, from a spirit of revenge, which covered itself under the pretence of retaliation.[**]

The queen, after this crucial victory, split her army. She sent the smaller group, led by Jasper Tudor, Earl of Pembroke, who was the king's half-brother, to face Edward, the new Duke of York. She marched with the larger group towards London, where the Earl of Warwick was left in charge of the Yorkists. Pembroke was defeated by Edward at Mortimer’s Cross in Herefordshire, losing nearly four thousand men: his army was scattered; he escaped by fleeing; however, his father, Sir Owen Tudor, was captured and immediately executed on Edward's orders. This brutal practice, once started, was continued by both sides out of a spirit of revenge, which disguised itself as retaliation.[**]

     * Poivd. Virg. p 510.

     ** Holingshed, p. 660. Grafton, p. 650.
     * Poivd. Virg. p 510.

     ** Holingshed, p. 660. Grafton, p. 650.

Margaret compensated this defeat by a victory which she obtained over the earl of Warwick. That nobleman on the approach of the Lancastrians, led out his army, reënforced by a strong body of the Londoners, who were affectionate to his cause; and he gave battle to the queen at St. Albans. While the armies were warmly engaged, Lovelace, who commanded a considerable body of the Yorkists, withdrew from the combat; and this treacherous conduct, of which there are many instances in those civil wars, decided the victory in favor of the queen. About two thousand three hundred of the vanquished perished in the battle and pursuit; and the person of the king fell again into the hands of his own party. This weak prince was sure to be almost equally a prisoner whichever faction had the keeping of him; and scarce any more decorum was observed by one than by the other, in their method of treating him. Lord Bonville, to whose care he had been intrusted by the Yorkists, remained with him after the defeat, on assurances of pardon given him by Henry: but Margaret, regardless of her husband’s promise, immediately ordered the head of that nobleman to be struck off by the executioner.[*] Sir Thomas Kiriel, a brave warrior, who had signalized himself in the French wars, was treated in the same manner.

Margaret made up for this defeat with a victory over the Earl of Warwick. When the Lancastrians approached, he rallied his army, reinforced by a strong group of Londoners who supported his cause, and engaged the queen in battle at St. Albans. While the armies were heavily engaged, Lovelace, who was in command of a significant group of Yorkists, withdrew from the fight; this treacherous action, which was common in those civil wars, turned the tide in favor of the queen. About two thousand three hundred of the defeated were killed in the battle and the pursuit, and the king fell once again into the hands of his own side. This weak king was practically a prisoner regardless of which faction had him, and hardly any more respect was shown by one than the other in how they treated him. Lord Bonville, to whom the Yorkists had entrusted the king, stayed with him after the defeat, assured of a pardon from Henry. However, Margaret, ignoring her husband’s promise, quickly ordered the executioner to behead him. Sir Thomas Kiriel, a brave warrior who had distinguished himself in the French wars, met the same fate.

The queen made no great advantage of this victory: young Edward advanced upon her from the other side; and collecting the remains of Warwick’s army, was soon in a condition of giving her battle with superior forces. She was sensible of her danger, while she lay between the enemy and the city of London; and she found it necessary to retreat with her army to the north.[**]

The queen didn’t gain much from this victory: young Edward came at her from the other side, and by gathering what was left of Warwick’s army, he was soon ready to confront her with greater forces. She realized the threat she was in, stuck between the enemy and the city of London; and she saw that she had to pull back with her army to the north.[**]

     * Holingshed, p. 660.

     ** Grafton, p. 652.
     * Holingshed, p. 660.

     ** Grafton, p. 652.

Edward entered the capital amidst the acclamations of the citizens, and immediately opened a new scene to his party. This prince, in the bloom of youth, remarkable for the beauty of this person, for his bravery, his activity, his affability, and every popular quality, found himself so much possessed of public favor, that, elated with the spirit natural to his age, he resolved no longer to confine himself within those narrow limits which his father had prescribed to himself, and which had been found by experience so prejudicial to his cause. He determined to assume the name and dignity of king; to insist openly on his claim; and thenceforth to treat the opposite party as traitors and rebels to his lawful authority. But as a national consent, or the appearance of it, still seemed, notwithstanding his plausible title, requisite to precede this bold measure, and as the assembling of a parliament might occasion too many delays, and be attended with other inconveniences, he ventured to proceed in a less regular manner, and to put it out of the power of his enemies to throw obstacles in the way of his elevation. His army was ordered to assemble in St. John’s Fields; great numbers of people surrounded them; an harangue was pronounced to this mixed multitude, setting forth the title of Edward, and inveighing against the tyranny and usurpation of the rival family; and the people were then asked whether they would have Henry of Lancaster for king. They unanimously exclaimed against the proposal. It was then demanded whether they would accept of Edward, eldest son of the late duke of York. They expressed their assent by loud and joyful acclamations.[*] A great number of bishops, lords, magistrates, and other persons of distinction were next assembled at Baynard’s Castle, who ratified the popular election; and the new king was on the subsequent day proclaimed in London, by the title of Edward IV.[**]

Edward entered the capital to the cheers of the citizens and immediately opened a new chapter for his party. This young prince, known for his good looks, bravery, energy, friendliness, and all the qualities that endear people to him, found himself so favored by the public that, filled with the confidence typical of his age, he decided not to restrict himself to the narrow boundaries his father had accepted, which had proven harmful to his cause. He resolved to claim the title and dignity of king, to openly assert his claim, and to treat the opposing faction as traitors and rebels to his rightful authority. However, since national consent—or at least, the appearance of it—still seemed necessary before taking such a bold step, and since gathering a parliament could lead to delays and other issues, he chose to take a more direct approach and prevent his enemies from hindering his rise. He ordered his army to gather in St. John’s Fields; a large crowd surrounded them. A speech was delivered to this diverse crowd, emphasizing Edward’s title and denouncing the tyranny and usurpation of the opposing family. They were then asked if they wanted Henry of Lancaster as king. They all shouted against the idea. It was then asked if they would accept Edward, the eldest son of the late Duke of York. They responded with loud and joyful cheers. A large number of bishops, lords, magistrates, and other distinguished persons were then gathered at Baynard’s Castle, who endorsed the popular election. The next day, the new king was proclaimed in London as Edward IV.

In this manner ended the reign of Henry VI., a monarch, who, while in his cradle, had been proclaimed king both of France and England, and who began his life with the most splendid prospects that any prince in Europe had ever enjoyed. The revolution was unhappy for his people, as it was the source of civil wars; but was almost entirely indifferent to Henry himself, who was utterly incapable of exercising his authority, and who, provided he personally met with good usage, was equally easy, as he was equally enslaved, in the hands of his enemies and of his friends. His weakness and his disputed title were the chief causes of the public calamities: but whether his queen and his ministers were not also guilty of some great abuses of power, it is not easy for us at this distance of time to determine: there remain no proofs on record of any considerable violation of the laws, except in the assassination of the duke of Glocester, which was a private crime, formed no precedent, and was but too much of a piece with the usual ferocity and cruelty of the times.

In this way, the reign of Henry VI came to an end, a king who, while still an infant, had been declared the ruler of both France and England, and who started life with the most promising prospects any prince in Europe had ever known. The revolution was unfortunate for his people, as it led to civil wars; however, it hardly affected Henry himself, who was completely unable to wield his power and who, as long as he was treated well, was just as complacent in the hands of his enemies as he was with his friends. His weakness and contested claim to the throne were the main causes of public suffering. But whether his queen and ministers also committed significant abuses of power is difficult for us to judge from this distance; there are no recorded evidences of major legal violations, except for the assassination of the Duke of Gloucester, which was a private crime, set no precedent, and was very much in line with the general brutality of the era.

The most remarkable law which passed in this reign, was that for the due election of members of parliament in counties. After the fall of the feudal system, the distinction of tenures was in some measure lost; and every freeholder, as well those who held of mesne lords, as the immediate tenants of the crown, were by degrees admitted to give their votes at elections. This innovation (for such it may probably be esteemed) was indirectly confirmed by a law of Henry IV.[***] which gave right to such a multitude of electors, as was the occasion of great disorder.

The most significant law passed during this reign was the one governing the proper election of parliament members in counties. After the feudal system collapsed, the distinction between different land tenures faded to some extent; gradually, all freeholders, including those who held land from various lords as well as the direct tenants of the crown, were allowed to vote in elections. This change, likely considered an innovation, received indirect confirmation through a law by Henry IV.[***] This law granted voting rights to a large number of electors, which led to considerable chaos.

     * Stowe, p. 415. Holingshed, p. 661.

     ** Grafton, p. 653.

     *** Statutes at large, 7 Henry IV. ca. 15.
     * Stowe, p. 415. Holingshed, p. 661.

     ** Grafton, p. 653.

     *** Statutes at large, 7 Henry IV. ca. 15.

In the eighth and tenth of this king, therefore, laws were enacted, limiting the electors to such as possessed forty shillings a year in land, free from all burdens within the county.[*] This sum was equivalent to near twenty pounds a year of our present money, and it were to be wished, that the spirit, as well as letter, of this law had been maintained.

In the eighth and tenth years of this king's reign, laws were passed that restricted the electors to those who owned land providing an income of at least forty shillings a year, free from any local obligations.[*] This amount is about twenty pounds a year in today's money, and it would have been great if both the intent and the specifics of this law had been upheld.

The preamble of the statute is remarkable: “Whereas the elections of knights have of late, in many counties of England, been made by outrageous and excessive numbers of people, many of them of small substance and value, yet pretending to a right equal to the best knights and esquires; whereby manslaughters, riots, batteries, and divisions among the gentlemen and other people of the same counties, shall very likely rise and be, unless due remedy be provided in this behalf, etc.” We may learn from these expressions, what an important matter the election of a member of parliament was now become in England: that assembly was beginning in this period to assume great authority: the commons had it much in their power to enforce the execution of the laws; and if they failed of success in this particular, it proceeded less from any exorbitant power of the crown, than from the licentious spirit of the aristocracy, and perhaps from the rude education of the age, and their own ignorance of the advantages resulting from a regular administration of justice.

The preamble of the statute is striking: “Whereas the elections of knights have recently, in many counties of England, been conducted by outrageous and excessive numbers of people, many of whom are of little substance and worth, yet claiming a right equal to the best knights and squires; which could likely lead to manslaughters, riots, assaults, and divisions among the gentlemen and others in those counties, unless proper remedy is provided in this regard, etc.” From these words, we can see how significant the election of a member of parliament had become in England: this assembly was beginning to take on considerable authority during this time. The commons had significant power to enforce the laws, and if they didn’t succeed in this, it was less due to any excessive power of the crown, but rather the reckless spirit of the aristocracy, and perhaps due to the rough education of the era and their own ignorance of the benefits of a proper administration of justice.

When the duke of York, the earls of Salisbury and Warwick, fled the kingdom upon the desertion of their troops, a parliament was summoned at Coventry in 1460, by which they were all attainted. This parliament seems to have been very irregularly constituted, and scarcely deserves the name; insomuch, that an act passed in it, “that all such knights of any county, as were returned by virtue of the king’s letters, without any other election, should be valid; and that no sheriff should, for returning them, incur the penalty of the statute of Henry IV.”[**] All the acts of that parliament were afterwards reversed; “because it was unlawfully summoned, and the knights and barons not duly chosen.”[***]

When the Duke of York, along with the Earls of Salisbury and Warwick, fled the kingdom after their troops deserted them, a parliament was called in Coventry in 1460, which declared them all guilty of treason. This parliament appeared to be very irregularly formed and hardly qualifies as a legitimate assembly; so much so that a law passed during it stated, “that all knights representing any county, who were appointed by the king’s letters without any other election, should be considered valid; and that no sheriff should face penalties under the statute of Henry IV for appointing them.”[**] All the decisions made by that parliament were later overturned “because it was unlawfully convened, and the knights and barons were not properly elected.”[***]

     * Statutes at large, 8 Henry VI. cap. 7. 10 Henry VI. cap.
     2.

     ** Cotton, p. 664.

     *** Statutes at large, 39 Henry VI. cap. 1
     * Statutes at large, 8 Henry VI. chap. 7. 10 Henry VI. chap. 2.

     ** Cotton, p. 664.

     *** Statutes at large, 39 Henry VI. chap. 1

The parliaments in this reign, instead of relaxing their vigilance against the usurpations of the court of Rome, endeavored to enforce the former statutes enacted for that purpose. The commons petitioned, that no foreigner should be capable of any church preferment, and that the patron might be allowed to present anew upon the non-residence of any incumbent:[*] but the king eluded these petitions. Pope Martin wrote him a severe letter against the statute of provisors; which he calls an abominable law, that would infallibly damn every one who observed it.[**] The cardinal of Winchester was legate; and as he was also a kind of prime minister, and immensely rich from the profits of his clerical dignities, the parliament became jealous lest he should extend the papal power; and they protested, that the cardinal should absent himself in all affairs and councils of the king, whenever the pope or see of Rome was touched upon.[***]

The parliaments during this reign, instead of lowering their guard against the overreach of the Roman court, tried to enforce the earlier laws set for that purpose. The commons requested that no foreigner should be eligible for any church position and that the patron should be allowed to make a new presentation if any incumbent was absent:[*] but the king dodged these requests. Pope Martin sent him a harsh letter condemning the statute of provisors, calling it an awful law that would inevitably condemn anyone who followed it.[**] The cardinal of Winchester was the papal legate, and since he also acted as a sort of prime minister and was extremely wealthy from his clerical positions, the parliament grew concerned that he would expand the pope's influence; they demanded that the cardinal refrain from participating in all matters and councils of the king whenever the pope or the Roman church was involved.[***]

Permission was given by parliament to export corn when it was at low prices; wheat at six shillings and eightpence a quarter, money of that age; barley at three shillings and fourpence.[****] It appears from these prices, that corn still remained at near half its present value; though other commodities were much cheaper. The inland commerce of corn was also opened in the eighteenth of the king, by allowing any collector of the customs to grant a license of carrying it from one county to another.[*****] The same year a kind of navigation act was proposed with regard to all places within the Straits; but the king rejected it.[******]

Permission was granted by Parliament to export corn when prices were low: wheat at six shillings and eight pence per quarter, which was typical for that time, and barley at three shillings and four pence. From these prices, it seems that corn was still valued at almost half of what it is now, even though other goods were much cheaper. The domestic trade of corn was also opened in the eighteenth year of the king’s reign by allowing any customs officer to issue a license for transporting it from one county to another. In the same year, a type of navigation act was proposed regarding all areas within the Straits, but the king turned it down.

The first instance of debt contracted upon parliamentary security occurs in this reign.[*******] The commencement of this pernicious practice deserves to be noted; a practice the more likely to become pernicious, the more a nation advances in opulence and credit. The ruinous effects of it are now become apparent, and threaten the very existence of the nation.

The first instance of debt taken on parliamentary security happens during this reign.[*******] It's important to note the start of this harmful practice; a practice that tends to become more damaging as a nation becomes wealthier and more creditworthy. The destructive effects of it are now clear and pose a serious threat to the nation's existence.

     * Cotton, p. 585.

     ** Burnet’s Collection of Records, vol. i. p. 99.

     *** Cotton, p. 593.

     **** Statutes at large, 15 Henry VI. cap. 2. 23 Henry VI. cap.
     6.

     ****** Cotton, p. 626.

     ******* Cotton, p. 593, 614, 638.
     * Cotton, p. 585.

     ** Burnet’s Collection of Records, vol. i. p. 99.

     *** Cotton, p. 593.

     **** Statutes at large, 15 Henry VI, cap. 2; 23 Henry VI, cap. 6.

     ****** Cotton, p. 626.

     ******* Cotton, p. 593, 614, 638.




CHAPTER XXII.

1_286_edward4.jpg  Edward IV.

EDWARD IV.

1461.

1461.

Young Edward, now in his twentieth year, was of a temper well fitted to make his way through such a scene of war, havoc, and devastation, as must conduct him to the full possession of that crown, which he claimed from hereditary right, but which he had assumed from the tumultuary election alone of his own party. He was bold, active, enterprising; and his hardness of heart and severity of character rendered him impregnable to all those movements of compassion which might relax his vigor in the prosecution of the most bloody revenges upon his enemies. The very commencement of his reign gave symptoms of his sanguinary disposition. A tradesman of London, who kept shop at the sign of the Crown, having said that he would make his son heir to the crown; this harmless pleasantry was interpreted to be spoken in derision of Edward’s assumed title; and he was condemned and executed for the offence.[*] Such an act of tyranny was a proper prelude to the events which ensued. The scaffold, as well as the field, incessantly streamed with the noblest blood of England, spilt in the quarrel between the two contending families, whose animosity was now become implacable. The people, divided in their affections, took different symbols of party: the partisans of the house of Lancaster chose the red rose as their mark of distinction;[**] those of York were denominated from the white; and these civil wars were thus known over Europe by the name of the quarrel between the two roses.

Young Edward, now in his twenties, had a personality well-suited to navigate a scene of war, chaos, and destruction, which would lead him to fully claim the crown he believed was his by right of inheritance, but which he had taken solely through the tumultuous election of his own supporters. He was bold, energetic, and enterprising; his hardened heart and strict nature made him immune to any feelings of compassion that could weaken his resolve in seeking bloody revenge against his enemies. From the very start of his reign, signs of his violent nature emerged. A London shopkeeper, who ran a store called the Crown, jokingly claimed he would make his son the heir to the crown; this harmless joke was interpreted as mockery of Edward’s claim to the title, resulting in his condemnation and execution for the offense.[*] Such an act of tyranny set the stage for the events that followed. The scaffold and the battlefield alike were constantly drenched in the noblest blood of England, spilled in the ongoing conflict between the two rival families, whose hatred had now become unyielding. The public, divided in their loyalties, adopted different symbols for their factions: the supporters of the House of Lancaster chose the red rose as their emblem;[**] those of York were known by the white rose; and these civil wars became recognized across Europe as the conflict between the two roses.

     * Habington in Kennet, p. 431.

     ** Grafton, p. 791.
     * Habington in Kennet, p. 431.

     ** Grafton, p. 791.

The license in which Queen Margaret had been obliged to indulge her troops, infused great terror and aversion into the city of London, and all the southern parts of the kingdom; and as she there expected an obstinate resistance, she had prudently retired northwards among her own partisans. The same license, joined to the zeal of faction, soon brought great multitudes to her standard; and she was able, in a few days, to assemble an army sixty thousand strong in Yorkshire. The king and the earl of Warwick hastened, with an army of forty thousand men, to check her progress; and when they reached Pomfret, they despatched a body of troops, under the command of Lord Fitzwalter, to secure the passage of Ferrybridge over the River Are, which lay between them and the enemy. Fitzwalter took possession of the post assigned him; but was not able to maintain it against Lord Clifford, who attacked him with superior numbers. The Yorkists were chased back with great slaughter; and Lord Fitzwalter himself was slain in the action.[*] The earl of Warwick, dreading the consequences of this disaster, at a time when a decisive action was every hour expected, immediately ordered his horse to be brought him, which he stabbed before the whole army; and kissing the hilt of his sword, swore that he was determined to share the fate of the meanest soldier.[**] And to show the greater security, a proclamation was at the same time issued, giving to every one full liberty to retire, but menacing the severest punishment to those who should discover any symptoms of cowardice in the ensuing battle.[***] Lord Falconberg was sent to recover the post which had been lost: he passed the river some miles above Ferrybridge, and falling unexpectedly on Lord Clifford, revenged the former disaster by the defeat of the party and the death of their leader.[****]

The license Queen Margaret had to grant her troops instilled great fear and disgust in the city of London and all across southern England. Anticipating stubborn resistance, she wisely retreated north to join her supporters. This same freedom, combined with factional zeal, soon drew many to her cause, allowing her to gather an army of sixty thousand in Yorkshire within just a few days. The king and the Earl of Warwick hastened with an army of forty thousand men to stop her advance. When they reached Pomfret, they sent a group of troops, led by Lord Fitzwalter, to secure the passage at Ferrybridge over the River Are, which lay between them and the enemy. Fitzwalter took control of the position assigned to him, but was unable to hold it against Lord Clifford, who attacked him with greater numbers. The Yorkists were driven back with heavy losses, and Lord Fitzwalter himself was killed in the skirmish.[*] The Earl of Warwick, fearing the repercussions of this setback at a time when a decisive battle was expected at any moment, immediately ordered his horse to be brought to him, which he stabbed in front of the entire army. He kissed the hilt of his sword and vowed that he was ready to share the fate of the lowliest soldier.[**] To enhance security, a proclamation was issued at the same time, granting everyone the freedom to withdraw but threatening strict punishment for anyone who showed signs of cowardice in the upcoming battle.[***] Lord Falconberg was sent to reclaim the position that had been lost: he crossed the river several miles above Ferrybridge and unexpectedly attacked Lord Clifford, avenging the earlier disaster by defeating the party and killing their leader.[****]

     * W. Wyrcester, p. 489. Hall, fol. 186. Holingshed, p. 664.

     ** Habington, p. 432.

     *** Holingshed, p. 664.

     **** Hist. Croyl. Contin. p. 532.
     * W. Wyrcester, p. 489. Hall, fol. 186. Holingshed, p. 664.

     ** Habington, p. 432.

     *** Holingshed, p. 664.

     **** Hist. Croyl. Contin. p. 532.

The hostile armies met at Touton; and a fierce and bloody battle ensued. While the Yorkists were advancing to the charge, there happened a great fall of snow, which, driving full in the faces of their enemies, blinded them; and this advantage was improved by a stratagem of Lord Falconberg’s. That nobleman ordered some infantry to advance before the line, and, after having sent a volley of flight-arrows, as they were called, amidst the enemy, immediately to retire. The Lancastrians, imagining that they were gotten within reach of the opposite army, discharged all their arrows, which thus fell short of the Yorkists.[*] After the quivers of the enemy were emptied, Edward advanced his line, and did execution with impunity on the dismayed Lancastrians: the bow, however, was soon laid aside, and the sword decided the combat, which ended in a total victory on the side of the Yorkists. Edward issued orders to give no quarter.[**] The routed army was pursued to Tadcaster with great bloodshed and confusion; and above thirty-six thousand men are computed to have fallen in the battle and pursuit:[***] among these were the earl of Westmoreland, and his brother Sir John Nevil, the earl of Northumberland, the Lords Dacres and Welles, and Sir Andrew Trollop.[****] The earl of Devonshire, who was now engaged in Henry’s party, was brought a prisoner to Edward; and was soon after beheaded by martial law at York. His head was fixed on a pole erected over a gate of that city; and the head of Duke Richard and that of the earl of Salisbury were taken down, and buried with their bodies. Henry and Margaret had remained at York during the action, but learning the defeat of their army, and being sensible that no place in England could now afford them shelter, they fled with great precipitation into Scotland. They were accompanied by the duke of Exeter, who, though he had married Edward’s sister, had taken part with the Lancastrians; and by Henry, duke of Somerset, who had commanded in the unfortunate battle of Touton, and who was the son of that nobleman killed in the first battle of St. Albans.

The opposing armies clashed at Touton, resulting in a fierce and bloody battle. As the Yorkists charged, a heavy snowfall began, hitting their enemies directly in the face and blinding them. Lord Falconberg took advantage of this by ordering some infantry to move forward and shoot a volley of arrows at the enemy before quickly retreating. The Lancastrians, thinking they were in range, fired all their arrows, which fell short of the Yorkists. Once the enemy's quivers were empty, Edward moved his troops forward and attacked the confused Lancastrians with little resistance. However, the fight soon shifted from bows to swords, ultimately leading to a complete victory for the Yorkists. Edward commanded that no mercy be shown. The defeated army was chased to Tadcaster, resulting in significant bloodshed and chaos, with over thirty-six thousand men estimated to have died in the battle and the pursuit. Among the casualties were the Earl of Westmoreland, his brother Sir John Nevil, the Earl of Northumberland, Lords Dacres and Welles, and Sir Andrew Trollop. The Earl of Devonshire, who had joined Henry’s side, was captured and quickly executed by martial law in York. His head was displayed on a pole above a city gate, while the heads of Duke Richard and the Earl of Salisbury were removed and buried with their bodies. Henry and Margaret stayed in York during the battle, but upon learning of their army's defeat and realizing that there was no safe haven in England for them, they fled hastily to Scotland. They were accompanied by the Duke of Exeter, who had married Edward’s sister but sided with the Lancastrians, and Henry, Duke of Somerset, who had led the ill-fated battle at Touton and was the son of the nobleman killed in the first battle of St. Albans.

     * Hall, fol. 186.

     ** Habington, p. 432.

     *** Holingshed, p. 665. Grafton, p. 656. Hist. Croyl. Cont.
     p. 533.

     **** Hall, fol. 187. Habington, p. 433.
     * Hall, fol. 186.

     ** Habington, p. 432.

     *** Holingshed, p. 665. Grafton, p. 656. Hist. Croyl. Cont.
     p. 533.

     **** Hall, fol. 187. Habington, p. 433.

Notwithstanding the great animosity which prevailed between the kingdoms, Scotland had never exerted itself with vigor, to take advantage either of the wars which England carried on with France, or of the civil commotions which arose between the contending families. James I., more laudably employed in civilizing his subjects, and taming them to the salutary yoke of law and justice, avoided all hostilities with foreign nations; and though he seemed interested to maintain a balance between France and England, he gave no further assistance to the former kingdom in its greatest distresses, than permitting, and perhaps encouraging, his subjects to enlist in the French service. After the murder of that excellent prince, the minority of his son and successor, James II., and the distractions incident to it, retained the Scots in the same state of neutrality; and the superiority visibly acquired by France, rendered it then unnecessary for her ally to interpose in her defence. But when the quarrel commenced between the houses of York and Lancaster, and became absolutely incurable but by the total extinction of one party, James, who had now risen to man’s estate, was tempted to seize the opportunity, and he endeavored to recover those places which the English had formerly conquered from his ancestors. He laid siege to the Castle of Roxburgh in 1460, and had provided himself with a small train of artillery for that enterprise: but his cannon were so ill framed, that one of them burst as he was firing it, and put an end to his life in the flower of his age. His son and successor, James III., was also a minor on his accession: the usual distractions ensued in the government: the queen dowager, Anne of Gueldres, aspired to the regency: the family of Douglas opposed her pretensions: and Queen Margaret, when she fled into Scotland, found there a people little less divided by faction, than those by whom she had been expelled. Though she pleaded the connections between the royal family of Scotland and the house of Lancaster, by the young king’s grandmother, a daughter of the earl of Somerset, she could engage the Scottish council to go no further than to express their good wishes in her favor; but on her offer to deliver to them immediately the important fortress of Berwick, and to contract her son in marriage with a sister of King James, she found a better reception; and the Scots promised the assistance of their arms to reinstate her family upon the throne.[*] But as the danger from that quarter seemed not very urgent to Edward, he did not pursue the fugitive king and queen into their retreat; but returned to London, where a parliament was summoned for settling the government.

Despite the intense hostility between the kingdoms, Scotland never really made a strong effort to take advantage of the wars England was fighting against France or the civil unrest between the rival families. James I, who was more focused on civilizing his people and bringing them under the beneficial rule of law and justice, avoided any conflicts with foreign nations. While he appeared to want to keep a balance between France and England, he didn’t offer any significant help to France during its toughest times, aside from allowing and maybe encouraging his subjects to join the French military. After the assassination of that great prince, the minority of his son and successor, James II, and the chaos that came with it, kept the Scots in a state of neutrality. The visible advantage that France gained at that time made it unnecessary for its ally to intervene in its defense. But when the conflict broke out between the houses of York and Lancaster, which only seemed resolvable by completely wiping out one side, James, who had now grown into adulthood, was tempted to take advantage of the situation and sought to reclaim the territories that the English had previously taken from his ancestors. He laid siege to Roxburgh Castle in 1460 and had prepared a small artillery unit for this mission; however, his cannons were poorly made, and one of them exploded while he was firing it, ending his life in the prime of his youth. His son and successor, James III, was also a minor when he came to the throne: the usual turmoil followed in the government. The dowager queen, Anne of Gueldres, sought the regency; the Douglas family opposed her claim; and when Queen Margaret fled into Scotland, she found a people just as divided by factions as those from whom she had escaped. Although she appealed to the connections between the Scottish royal family and the house of Lancaster, through the young king’s grandmother, a daughter of the earl of Somerset, she could only get the Scottish council to express their good wishes for her. However, when she offered to hand over the crucial fortress of Berwick immediately and to arrange a marriage between her son and a sister of King James, she received a much warmer response, and the Scots pledged their military support to help restore her family to the throne.[*] But since the threat from that direction didn’t seem urgent to Edward, he did not pursue the fleeing king and queen into their hiding spot, instead returning to London, where a parliament was called to settle the government.

On the meeting of this assembly, Edward found the good effects of his vigorous measure in assuming the crown, as well as of his victory at Touton, by which he had secured it;[**] the parliament no longer hesitated between the two families or proposed any of those ambiguous decisions which could only serve to perpetuate and inflame the animosities of party.

On the day of this assembly, Edward saw the positive impact of his bold decision to take the crown, along with his victory at Touton, which had secured it;[**] the parliament no longer wavered between the two families or suggested any of those unclear resolutions that would only keep the party disputes alive and make them worse.

     * Hall, fol. 137.

     ** Habington, p. 434.
     * Hall, fol. 137.

     ** Habington, p. 434.

They recognized the title of Edward, by hereditary descent, through the family of Mortimer; and declared that he was king by right, from the death of his father, who had also the same lawful title; and that he was in possession of the crown from the day that he assumed the government, tendered to him by the acclamations of the people.[*] They expressed their abhorrence of the usurpation and intrusion of the house of Lancaster, particularly that of the earl of Derby, otherwise called Henry IV.; which, they said, had been attended with every kind of disorder, the murder of the sovereign, and the oppression of the subject. They annulled every grant which had passed in those reigns; they reinstated the king in all the possessions which had belonged to the crown at the pretended deposition of Richard II.; and though they confirmed judicial deeds and the decrees of inferior courts, they reversed all attainders passed in any pretended parliament; particularly the attainder of the earl of Cambridge, the king’s grandfather; as well as that of the earls of Salisbury and Glocester, and of Lord Lumley, who had been forfeited for adhering to Richard II.[**]

They acknowledged Edward's claim to the throne by hereditary descent from the Mortimer family and declared that he was king by right since the death of his father, who held the same legitimate title. They stated he held the crown from the day he took over the government, which was offered to him by the cheers of the people.[*] They expressed their disgust for the usurpation and intrusion of the house of Lancaster, especially that of the Earl of Derby, also known as Henry IV.; which they claimed had caused all kinds of chaos, including the murder of the sovereign and the oppression of the people. They annulled all grants made during those reigns, reinstated the king in all the possessions that had belonged to the crown at the time of Richard II.'s supposed deposition, and while they confirmed judicial deeds and decisions from lower courts, they overturned all attainders imposed by any so-called parliament, particularly the attainder of the Earl of Cambridge, the king's grandfather, as well as those of the Earls of Salisbury and Gloucester, and of Lord Lumley, who had been forfeited for supporting Richard II.[**]

Many of these votes were the result of the usual violence of party: the common sense of mankind, in more peaceable times, repealed them: and the statutes of the house of Lancaster, being the deeds of an established government, and enacted by princes long possessed of authority, have always been held as valid and obligatory. The parliament, however, in subverting such deep foundations, had still the pretence of replacing the government on its ancient and natural basis: but in their subsequent measures, they were more guided by revenge, at least by the views of convenience, than by the maxims of equity and justice. They passed an act of forfeiture and attainder against Henry VI. and Queen Margaret and their infant son Prince Edward: the same act was extended to the dukes of Somerset and Exeter; to the earls of Northumberland, Devonshire, Pembroke, Wilts; to the Viscount Beaumont; the Lords Roos, Nevil, Clifford, Welles, Dacre, Gray of Rugemont, Hungerford; to Alexander Hedie, Nicholas Latimer, Edmond Mountfort, John Heron, and many other persons of distinction.[***]

Many of these votes came from the usual party violence; the common sense of people, during more peaceful times, overturned them. The laws of the house of Lancaster, being the actions of an established government and enacted by princes who held power for a long time, have always been regarded as valid and binding. However, the parliament, while undermining these strong foundations, still pretended to restore the government to its ancient and natural roots. But in their later actions, they were driven more by revenge, or at least by practical considerations, than by principles of fairness and justice. They passed a law of forfeiture and attainder against Henry VI., Queen Margaret, and their young son Prince Edward. This same law was applied to the dukes of Somerset and Exeter, the earls of Northumberland, Devonshire, Pembroke, Wilts, to Viscount Beaumont, and the Lords Roos, Nevil, Clifford, Welles, Dacre, Gray of Rugemont, Hungerford, along with Alexander Hedie, Nicholas Latimer, Edmond Mountfort, John Heron, and many other notable individuals.[***]

     * Cotton, p. 670.

     ** Cotton, p. 672. Statutes at large, 1 Edward IV cap. i.

     *** Cotton, p. 670. W. Wyrcester, p. 490.
     * Cotton, p. 670.

     ** Cotton, p. 672. Statutes at large, 1 Edward IV cap. i.

     *** Cotton, p. 670. W. Wyrcester, p. 490.

The parliament vested the estates of all these attainted persons in the crown, though their sole crime was the adhering to a prince whom every individual of the parliament had long recognized, and whom that very king himself, who was now seated on the throne, had acknowledged and obeyed as his lawful sovereign.

The parliament gave all the estates of these declared traitors to the crown, even though their only crime was supporting a prince that every single member of the parliament had long recognized, and whom the very king now on the throne had himself acknowledged and followed as his rightful sovereign.

The necessity of supporting the government established will more fully justify some other acts of violence, though the method of conducting them may still appear exceptionable. John, earl of Oxford, and his son Aubrey de Vere were detected in a correspondence with Margaret, were tried by martial law before the constable, were condemned and executed.[*] Sir William Tyrrel, Sir Thomas Tudenham, and John Montgomery were convicted in the same arbitrary court; were executed, and their estates forfeited. This introduction of martial law into civil government was a high strain of prerogative; which, were it not for the violence of the times, would probably have appeared exceptionable to a nation so jealous of their liberties as the English were now become.[**] 18 It was impossible but such a great and sudden revolution must leave the roots of discontent and dissatisfaction in the subject, which would require great art, or, in lieu of it, great violence, to extirpate them. The latter was more suitable to the genius of the nation in that uncultivated age.

The need to support the established government would further justify some other violent actions, even if the way they were carried out might still seem questionable. John, Earl of Oxford, and his son Aubrey de Vere were discovered to be in communication with Margaret, were tried by martial law before the constable, found guilty, and executed.[*] Sir William Tyrrel, Sir Thomas Tudenham, and John Montgomery faced the same arbitrary court; they were executed, and their properties were seized. The introduction of martial law into civil government was a significant display of authority; had it not been for the turbulent times, it likely would have seemed unacceptable to a nation as protective of its freedoms as the English had become.[**] 18 It was inevitable that such a significant and abrupt change would leave lingering resentment and dissatisfaction among the people, which would require either considerable skill or, in its absence, great violence to eradicate. The latter was more in line with the character of the nation during that unrefined era.

But the new establishment still seemed precarious and uncertain; not only from the domestic discontents of the people, but from the efforts of foreign powers. Lewis, the eleventh of the name, had succeeded to his father, Charles, in 1460; and was led, from the obvious motives of national interest, to feed the flames of civil discord among such dangerous neighbors, by giving support to the weaker party. But the intriguing and politic genius of this prince was here checked by itself: having attempted to subdue the independent spirit of his own vassals, he had excited such an opposition at home, as prevented him from making all the advantage, which the opportunity afforded, of the dissensions among the English.

But the new government still seemed unstable and uncertain, not just because of the public discontent at home, but also due to the actions of foreign powers. Lewis, the eleventh of his name, became king after his father, Charles, in 1460; and, driven by clear national interests, he fanned the flames of civil conflict among his dangerous neighbors by backing the weaker side. However, the clever and shrewd nature of this prince backfired on him: by trying to suppress the independent spirit of his own vassals, he sparked such resistance at home that it prevented him from fully exploiting the divisions among the English.

1462.

1462.

He sent, however, a small body to Henry’s assistance under Varenne, seneschal of Normandy;[***] who landed in Northumberland, and got possession of the Castle of Alnwick; but as the indefatigable Margaret went in person to France, where she solicited larger supplies and promised Lewis to deliver up Calais, if her family should by his means be restored to the throne of England; he was induced to send along with her a body of two thousand men at arms, which enabled her to take the field, and to make an inroad into England.

He did, however, send a small group to assist Henry, led by Varenne, the seneschal of Normandy; who landed in Northumberland and took over the Castle of Alnwick. Meanwhile, the tireless Margaret traveled to France, where she requested more support and promised Lewis that she would hand over Calais if her family was restored to the throne of England with his help. This persuaded him to send along with her a force of two thousand knights, allowing her to enter the battlefield and invade England.

     * W. Wyrcester, p. 492. Hall, fol. 189 Grafton, p. 658.
     Fabian fol. 215. Fragm. ad finem T. Sproti.

     ** See note R, at the end of the volume.

     **** Monstrelet, vol. iii. p 95.
     * W. Wyrcester, p. 492. Hall, fol. 189 Grafton, p. 658.  
     Fabian fol. 215. Fragm. at the end T. Sproti.

     ** See note R at the end of the volume.

     **** Monstrelet, vol. iii. p 95.

1464.

1464.

Though reënforced by a numerous train of adventurers from Scotland, and by many partisans of the family of Lancaster she received a check at Hedgley-more from Lord Montacute, or Montague, brother to the earl of Warwick, and warden of the east marches between Scotland and England. Montague was so encouraged with this success, that, while a numerous reënforcement was on their march to join him by orders from Edward, he yet ventured, with his own troops alone, to attack the Lancastrians at Hexham; and he obtained a complete victory over them. The duke of Somerset, the Lords Roos and Hungerford, were taken in the pursuit, and immediately beheaded by martial law at Hexham. Summary justice was in like manner executed at Newcastle on Sir Humphrey Nevil, and several other gentlemen. All those who were spared in the field, suffered on the scaffold; and the utter extermination of their adversaries was now become the plain object of the York party; a conduct which received but too plausible an apology from the preceding practice of the Lancastrians.

Though reinforced by a large group of adventurers from Scotland and many supporters of the Lancaster family, she faced a setback at Hedgeley Moor from Lord Montacute, or Montague, the brother of the Earl of Warwick and the warden of the eastern borders between Scotland and England. Encouraged by this success, Montague, while a significant reinforcement was on its way to join him under orders from Edward, took the bold step of attacking the Lancastrians at Hexham with just his own troops. He achieved a complete victory over them. The Duke of Somerset and Lords Roos and Hungerford were captured during the pursuit and quickly executed by martial law at Hexham. Summary justice was similarly meted out in Newcastle to Sir Humphrey Nevil and several other gentlemen. All those who were spared in the field faced execution on the scaffold, and the total elimination of their enemies became the clear goal of the York faction, a course of action that received a troubling justification from the earlier actions of the Lancastrians.

The fate of the unfortunate royal family, after this defeat, was singular. Margaret, flying with her son into a forest, where she endeavored to conceal herself, was beset, during the darkness of the night, by robbers, who, either ignorant or regardless of her quality, despoiled her of her rings and jewels, and treated her with the utmost indignity. The partition of this rich booty raised a quarrel among them; and while their attention was thus engaged, she took the opportunity of making her escape with her son into the thickest of the forest where she wandered for some time, overspent with hunger and fatigue, and sunk with terror and affliction. While in this wretched condition, she saw a robber approach with his naked sword; and finding that she had no means of escape, she suddenly embraced the resolution of trusting entirely for protection to his faith and generosity. She advanced towards him; and presenting to him the young prince, called out to him, “Here, my friend, I commit to your care the safety of your king’s son.” The man, whose humanity and generous spirit had been obscured, not entirely lost, by his vicious course of life, was struck with the singularity of the event, was charmed with the confidence reposed in him, and vowed, not only to abstain from all injury against the princess, but to devote himself entirely to her service.[*] By his means she dwelt some time concealed in the forest, and was at last conducted to the sea-coast, whence she made her escape into Flanders. She passed thence into her father’s court, where she lived several years in privacy and retirement. Her husband was not so fortunate or so dexterous in finding the means of escape. Some of his friends took him under their protection, and conveyed him into Lancashire, where he remained concealed during a twelvemonth; but he was at last detected, delivered up to Edward, and thrown into the Tower.[**] The safety of his person was owing less to the generosity of his enemies, than to the contempt which they had entertained of his courage and his understanding.

The fate of the unfortunate royal family after their defeat was unique. Margaret, fleeing with her son into a forest to hide, was attacked by robbers during the dark of night. They, either unaware of her status or indifferent to it, stripped her of her rings and jewels and treated her with utter disrespect. The division of this valuable loot sparked a fight among them; while they were distracted, she seized the chance to escape with her son into the densest part of the forest, where she wandered for a while, exhausted from hunger and fatigue, overwhelmed with fear and sorrow. In this miserable state, she saw a robber approach with his drawn sword; realizing she had no escape, she suddenly decided to fully trust him for protection. She stepped forward and presented her young son to him, saying, “Here, my friend, I entrust you with the safety of the king’s son.” The man, whose compassion and noble spirit had been dimmed but not entirely extinguished by his life of crime, was moved by the unusual situation and touched by her trust in him. He promised not only to protect the princess but also to dedicate himself entirely to her service.[*] With his help, she stayed hidden in the forest for some time and was eventually taken to the coast, from where she escaped to Flanders. She then entered her father’s court, where she lived in privacy and seclusion for several years. Her husband was not as fortunate or clever in finding a way to escape. Some of his friends took him in and helped him to Lancashire, where he stayed hidden for a year; but in the end, he was discovered, handed over to Edward, and imprisoned in the Tower.[**] The safety of his life was more due to his enemies' underestimation of his courage and intelligence than to their generosity.

The imprisonment of Henry, the expulsion of Margaret, the execution and confiscation of all the most eminent Lancastrians, seemed to give full security to Edward’s government; whose title by blood, being now recognized by parliament, and universally submitted to by the people, was no longer in danger of being impeached by any antagonist. In this prosperous situation, the king delivered himself up, without control, to those pleasures which his youth, his high fortune, and his natural temper invited him to enjoy; and the cares of royalty were less attended to than the dissipation of amusement, or the allurements of passion. The cruel and unrelenting spirit of Edward, though inured to the ferocity of civil wars, was at the same time extremely devoted to the softer passions, which, without mitigating his severe temper, maintained a great influence over him, and shared his attachment with the pursuits of ambition and the thirst of military glory. During the present interval of peace, he lived in the most familiar and sociable manner with his subjects,[***] particularly with the Londoners; and the beauty of his person, as well as the gallantry of his address, which, even unassisted by his royal dignity, would have rendered him acceptable to the fair, facilitated all his applications for their favor.

The imprisonment of Henry, the banishment of Margaret, the execution and confiscation of all the prominent Lancastrians, seemed to secure Edward's government completely; his claim to the throne, now recognized by parliament and accepted by the people, was no longer at risk of being challenged by any rival. In this fortunate situation, the king indulged freely in the pleasures that his youth, his high status, and his personality encouraged him to enjoy; he paid less attention to the responsibilities of royalty than to the distractions of entertainment or the temptations of passion. Although Edward had a cruel and relentless side, shaped by the brutality of civil wars, he was also deeply devoted to softer emotions, which, while not softening his harsh demeanor, greatly influenced him and shared his interests alongside ambition and a desire for military glory. During this peaceful period, he interacted closely and amicably with his subjects, especially the people of London; his good looks and charming demeanor, which would have made him appealing even without his royal status, helped him gain their favor.

     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 96.

     ** Hall, fol. 191. Fragm. ad finem Sproti.

     *** Polyd. Virg. p. 513. Biondi.
     * Monstrelet, vol. iii. p. 96.

     ** Hall, fol. 191. Fragm. at the end of Sproti.

     *** Polyd. Virg. p. 513. Biondi.

This easy and pleasurable course of life augmented every day his popularity among all ranks of men: he was the peculiar favorite of the young and gay of both sexes. The disposition of the English little addicted to jealousy, kept them from taking umbrage at these liberties: and his indulgence in amusements, while it gratified his inclination, was thus become, without design, a means of supporting and securing his government. But as it is difficult to confine the ruling passion within strict rules of prudence, the amorous temper of Edward led him into a snare, which proved fatal to his repose, and to the stability of his throne.

This easy and enjoyable way of life boosted his popularity every day among people of all social classes: he was particularly favored by the young and lively of both genders. The English, who are not very prone to jealousy, didn’t take offense at these freedoms; his indulgence in fun, while satisfying his desires, unintentionally became a way to maintain and secure his rule. However, it's hard to keep strong desires in check with strict rules of caution, and Edward's romantic nature led him into a trap that ultimately jeopardized his peace and the stability of his throne.

Jaqueline of Luxembourg, duchess of Bedford, had, after her husband’s death, so far sacrificed her ambition to love, that she espoused, in second marriage, Sir Richard Woodeville a private gentleman, to whom she bore several children; and among the rest, Elizabeth, who was remarkable for the grace and beauty of her person, as well as for other amiable accomplishments. This young lady had married Sir John Gray of Groby, by whom she had children; and her husband being slain in the second battle of St. Albans, fighting on the side of Lancaster, and his estate being for that reason confiscated, his widow retired to live with her father, at his seat of Grafton, in Northamptonshire. The king came accidentally to the house after a hunting party, in order to pay a visit to the duchess of Bedford; and as the occasion seemed favorable for obtaining some grace from this gallant monarch, the young widow flung herself at his feet, and with many tears entreated him to take pity on her impoverished and distressed children. The sight of so much beauty in affliction strongly affected the amorous Edward; love stole sensibly into his heart under the guise of compassion; and her sorrow, so becoming a virtuous matron, made his esteem and regard quickly correspond to his affection. He raised her from the ground with assurances of favor; he found his passion increase every moment, by the conversation of the amiable object; and he was soon reduced, in his turn, to the posture and style of a supplicant at the feet of Elizabeth. But the lady, either averse to dishonorable love from a sense of duty, or perceiving that the impression which she had made was so deep as to give her hopes of obtaining the highest elevation, obstinately refused to gratify his passion; and all the endearments, caresses, and importunities of the young and amiable Edward proved fruitless against her rigid and inflexible virtue. His passion, irritated by opposition, and increased by his veneration for such honorable sentiments carried him at last beyond all bounds of reason and he offered to share his throne, as well as his heart, with the woman whose beauty of person and dignity of character seemed so well to entitle her to both. The marriage was privately celebrated at Grafton:[**] the secret was carefully kept for some time: no one suspected that so libertine a prince could sacrifice so much to a romantic passion; and there were, in particular, strong reasons, which, at that time, rendered this step, to the highest degree, dangerous and imprudent.

Jaqueline of Luxembourg, Duchess of Bedford, after her husband's death, sacrificed her desire for love so much that she remarried Sir Richard Woodeville, a private gentleman, with whom she had several children, including Elizabeth, who was known for her grace and beauty, as well as other charming qualities. Elizabeth married Sir John Gray of Groby and had children with him; however, after her husband was killed in the second battle of St. Albans while fighting for Lancaster, his estate was confiscated, and she moved back in with her father at his home in Grafton, Northamptonshire. One day, the king happened to visit after a hunting trip to see the Duchess of Bedford, and seeing an opportunity to gain favor with the dashing monarch, the young widow fell at his feet, tearfully pleading with him to help her impoverished and struggling children. The sight of such beauty in distress deeply moved Edward; love crept into his heart disguised as compassion, and her sorrow, so fitting for a virtuous woman, quickly gained his full admiration and respect. He helped her up while promising to support her; his feelings grew stronger with every moment they talked, and soon he found himself in a position of pleading at Elizabeth's feet. However, the lady, whether feeling a sense of duty against dishonorable love or realizing the profound impact she had made—which gave her hopes of reaching a lofty position—stubbornly refused to yield to his feelings. All the affection, tenderness, and persistent attempts of the young and charming Edward were fruitless against her strict and unwavering virtue. His feelings, frustrated by her resistance and fueled by his admiration for her honorable values, eventually pushed him to go beyond reason and he offered to share not only his heart but also his throne with the woman whose beauty and character seemed to deserve both. The marriage took place quietly at Grafton; the secret was carefully maintained for some time, and no one suspected that such a free-spirited prince could sacrifice so much for a romantic attachment, especially since there were significant reasons at that moment that made this decision extremely risky and foolish.

The king, desirous to secure his throne, as well by the prospect of issue as by foreign alliances, had, a little before, determined to make application to some neighboring princess, and he had cast his eye on Bona of Savoy, sister to the queen of France, who, he hoped, would by her marriage insure him the friendship of that power, which was alone both able and inclined to give support and assistance to his rival. To render the negotiation more successful, the earl of Warwick had been despatched to Paris, where the princess then resided; he had demanded Bona in marriage for the king; his proposals had been accepted; the treaty was fully concluded; and nothing remained but the ratification of the terms agreed on, and the bringing over the princess to England.[**] But when the secret of Edward’s marriage broke out, the haughty earl, deeming himself affronted, both by being employed in this fruitless negotiation, and by being kept a stranger to the king’s intentions, who had owed every thing to his friendship, immediately returned to England, inflamed with rage and indignation. The influence of passion over so young a man as Edward, might have served as an excuse for his imprudent conduct, had he deigned to acknowledge his error, or had pleaded his weakness as an apology; but his faulty shame or pride prevented him from so much as mentioning the matter to Warwick; and that nobleman was allowed to depart the court, full of the same ill humor and discontent which he brought to it.

The king, eager to secure his throne through both the possibility of heirs and foreign alliances, had recently decided to seek out a nearby princess for marriage. He focused on Bona of Savoy, the sister of the queen of France, hoping that marrying her would guarantee his friendship with that power, which was the only one both capable and willing to support his rival. To make the negotiations more successful, the earl of Warwick was sent to Paris, where the princess was living; he proposed marriage on behalf of the king, and his offer was accepted. The treaty was fully concluded, and only the ratification of the agreed terms and the transportation of the princess to England remained. However, when the news of Edward's secret marriage surfaced, the proud earl felt insulted—not only for being involved in a useless negotiation but also for being left in the dark about the king's plans, especially after he had done so much for the king due to their friendship. He returned to England, filled with anger and resentment. While Edward's passionate youth might have excused his reckless actions had he acknowledged his mistake or used his inexperience as a defense, his pride and shame kept him from even mentioning the issue to Warwick. Consequently, the nobleman left the court in the same bad mood and dissatisfaction he had arrived with.

     * Hall, fol. 193. Fabian, fol. 216.

     ** Hall, fol. 193. Habington, p. 437. Holingshed, p. 607.
     Grafton, p. 665. Polyd. Virg. p. 513.
     * Hall, p. 193. Fabian, p. 216.

     ** Hall, p. 193. Habington, p. 437. Holinshed, p. 607.
     Grafton, p. 665. Polydore Vergil, p. 513.

1466.

1466.

Every incident now tended to widen the breach between the king and this powerful subject. The queen, who lost not her influence by marriage, was equally solicitous to draw every grace and favor to her own friends and kindred, and to exclude those of the earl, whom she regarded as her mmortal enemy. Her father was created earl of Rivers: he was made treasurer in the room of Lord Mountjoy:[*] he was invested in the office of constable for life; and his son received the survivance of that high dignity.[**] The same young nobleman was married to the only daughter of Lord Scales, enjoyed the great estate of that family, and had the title of Scales conferred upon him. Catharine, the queen’s sister, was married to the young duke of Buckingham, who was a ward of the crown:[***] Mary, another of her sisters espoused William Herbert, created earl of Huntingdon: Anne, a third sister, was given in marriage to the son and heir of Gray, Lord Ruthyn, created earl of Kent.[****] The daughter and heir of the duke of Exeter, who was also the king’s niece, was contracted to Sir Thomas Gray, one of the queen’s sons by her former husband; and as Lord Montague was treating of a marriage between his son and this lady, the preference given to young Gray was deemed an injury and affront to the whole family of Nevil.

Every incident now seemed to widen the gap between the king and this powerful subject. The queen, who maintained her influence despite her marriage, was equally eager to bring every grace and favor to her friends and family while pushing away those of the earl, whom she considered her mortal enemy. Her father was made earl of Rivers; he became treasurer in place of Lord Mountjoy; he was given the title of constable for life, and his son inherited that high position. The same young nobleman married the only daughter of Lord Scales, gained the vast estate of that family, and was granted the title of Scales. Catharine, the queen’s sister, married the young duke of Buckingham, who was a ward of the crown; Mary, another sister, married William Herbert, who was made earl of Huntingdon; and Anne, a third sister, was married to the son and heir of Gray, Lord Ruthyn, who was made earl of Kent. The daughter and heiress of the duke of Exeter, who was also the king’s niece, was promised to Sir Thomas Gray, one of the queen’s sons by her previous husband; and as Lord Montague was discussing a marriage between his son and this lady, the preference shown to young Gray was seen as an insult and offense to the entire Nevil family.

The earl of Warwick could not suffer with patience the least diminution of that credit which he had long enjoyed, and which he thought he had merited by such important services. Though he had received so many grants from the crown, that the revenue arising from them amounted, besides his patrimonial estate, to eighty thousand crowns a year, according to the computation of Philip de Comines,[*****] his ambitious spirit was still dissatisfied, so long as he saw others surpass him in authority and influence with the king.[******] Edward also, jealous of that power which had supported him and which he himself had contributed still higher to exalt, was well pleased to raise up rivals in credit to the earl of Warwick; and he justified, by this political view, his extreme partiality to the queen’s kindred. But the nobility of England, envying the sudden growth of the Woodevilles,[*******] were more inclined to take part with Warwick’s discontent, to whose grandeur they were already accustomed, and who had reconciled them to his superiority by his gracious and popular manners.

The Earl of Warwick couldn’t tolerate even the slightest decline in the reputation he had held for so long, which he believed he had earned through significant services. Although he had received numerous grants from the crown, generating a revenue of eighty thousand crowns a year in addition to his inherited estate, according to Philip de Comines,[*****] his ambitious nature still felt unfulfilled as long as he saw others holding more power and influence with the king.[******] Edward, who was jealous of the power that had helped him and which he himself had elevated, was pleased to create rivals for the Earl of Warwick. He justified this political strategy with his strong favoritism towards the queen’s family. However, the English nobility, resentful of the rapid rise of the Woodvilles,[*******] were more inclined to side with Warwick’s grievances, having already grown accustomed to his grandeur, which he had made acceptable through his charming and approachable demeanor.

     * W. Wyrcester, p. 506.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 505.

     *** Liv. iii. chap. 4.

     **** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 539.

     ****** Polyd. Virg. p. 514.

     ******* Rymer, vol. xi. p. 581.
     * W. Wyrcester, p. 506.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 505.

     *** Liv. iii. chap. 4.

     **** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 539.

     ****** Polyd. Virg. p. 514.

     ******* Rymer, vol. xi. p. 581.

And as Edward obtained from parliament a general resumption of all grants, which he had made since his accession, and which had extremely impoverished the crown,[*] this act, though it passed with some exceptions, particularly one in favor of the earl of Warwick, gave a general alarm to the nobility, and disgusted many, even zealous partisans of the family of York.

And as Edward got parliament to agree to a general cancellation of all grants he had made since becoming king, which had seriously weakened the crown,[*] this decision, although it had a few exceptions, especially one in favor of the Earl of Warwick, raised a general alarm among the nobility and upset many, even committed supporters of the York family.

But the most considerable associate that Warwick acquired to his party, was George, duke of Clarence, the king’s second brother. This prince deemed himself no less injured than the other grandees, by the uncontrolled influence of the queen and her relations; and as his fortunes were still left upon a precarious footing, while theirs were fully established, this neglect, joined to his unquiet and restless spirit, inclined him to give countenance to all the malecontents.[**] The favorable opportunity of gaining him was espied by the earl of Warwick, who offered him in marriage his elder daughter, and coheir of his immense fortunes; a settlement which, as it was superior to any that the king himself could confer upon him, immediately attached him to the party of the earl.[***] Thus an extensive and dangerous combination was insensibly formed against Edward and his ministry. Though the immediate object of the malecontents was not to overturn the throne, it was difficult to foresee the extremities to which they might be carried: and as opposition to government was usually in those ages prosecuted by force of arms, civil convulsions and disorders were likely to be soon the result of these intrigues and confederacies.

But the most significant ally that Warwick gained for his side was George, Duke of Clarence, the king’s second brother. This prince felt just as wronged as the other nobles by the queen and her family's unchecked power; since his own situation was still unstable while theirs was secure, this neglect, combined with his restless nature, led him to support all the discontented. The Earl of Warwick seized the chance to win him over by offering him the hand of his eldest daughter, who was also the co-heir to his vast wealth; this arrangement, being more advantageous than anything the king could provide, quickly aligned him with Warwick's faction. In this way, a broad and dangerous alliance gradually formed against Edward and his government. Although the immediate goal of the dissenters wasn’t to topple the throne, it was hard to predict how far they might go; and because resistance to the government during those times was typically carried out through armed conflict, civil unrest and chaos were likely to soon emerge from these plots and alliances.

     * W. Wyrcester, p. 508.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 511. Hall, fol. 200. Habington, p. 439.
     Holingshed, p. 671. Polyd. Virg. p. 515.

     *** Grafton. p. 873.
     * W. Wyrcester, p. 508.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 511. Hall, fol. 200. Habington, p. 439.
     Holingshed, p. 671. Polyd. Virg. p. 515.

     *** Grafton. p. 873.

While this cloud was gathering at home, Edward carried his views abroad, and endeavored to secure himself against his factious nobility, by entering into foreign alliances. The dark and dangerous ambition of Lewis XI., the more it was known, the greater alarm it excited among his neighbors and vassals; and as it was supported by great abilities, and unrestrained by any principle of faith or humanity, they found no security to themselves but by a jealous combination against him. Philip, duke of Burgundy, was now dead: his rich and extensive dominions were devolved to Charles, his only son, whose martial disposition acquired him the surname of Bold, and whose ambition, more outrageous than that of Lewis, but seconded by less power and policy, was regarded with a more favorable eye by the other potentates of Europe.

While this trouble was brewing at home, Edward took his ideas overseas and tried to protect himself from his rebellious nobles by forming foreign alliances. The dangerous ambition of Louis XI, as more people became aware of it, caused greater concern among his neighbors and subjects. Since it was backed by remarkable skills and lacked any principles of faith or humanity, they felt their only safety lay in banding together against him. Philip, Duke of Burgundy, had just died; his vast and wealthy lands passed on to his only son Charles, who was known for his boldness and earned the nickname The Bold. His ambition was even more extreme than Louis's, but since he had less power and strategy, the other European rulers viewed him with more favor.

The opposition of interests, and still more a natural antipathy of character, produced a declared animosity between these bad princes; and Edward was thus secure of the sincere attachment of either of them, for whom he should choose to declare himself. The duke of Burgundy, being descended by his mother, a daughter of Portugal, from John of Gaunt, was naturally inclined to favor the house of Lancaster:[*] but this consideration was easily overbalanced by political motives; and Charles, perceiving the interests of that house to be extremely decayed in England, sent over his natural brother, commonly called the Bastard of Burgundy, to carry in his name proposals of marriage to Margaret, the king’s sister.

The conflicting interests, along with a natural dislike for each other's personalities, led to a clear hostility between these untrustworthy rulers. Edward was therefore assured of the genuine loyalty from whichever one he decided to support. The duke of Burgundy, being related through his mother, a daughter of Portugal, to John of Gaunt, had a natural inclination to back the house of Lancaster. However, this was quickly overshadowed by political reasons; and Charles, noticing that the Lancaster family's influence was very weak in England, sent his illegitimate brother, known as the Bastard of Burgundy, to propose marriage to Margaret, the king’s sister, on his behalf.

1468.

1468.

The alliance of Burgundy was more popular among the English than that of France; the commercial interests of the two nations invited the princes to a close union; their common jealousy of Lewis was a natural cement between them; and Edward, pleased with strengthening himself by so potent a confederate, soon concluded the alliance, and bestowed his sister upon Charles.[**] A league, which Edward at the same time concluded with the duke of Brittany, seemed both to increase his security, and to open to him the prospect of rivalling his predecessors in those foreign conquests, which, however short-lived and unprofitable, had rendered their reigns so popular and illustrious.[***]

The alliance with Burgundy was more favored by the English than the one with France; the trade interests of both countries encouraged a strong partnership; their mutual rivalry with Lewis naturally brought them together; and Edward, eager to strengthen his position with such a powerful ally, quickly finalized the alliance and married his sister to Charles.[**] At the same time, Edward also formed a league with the duke of Brittany, which seemed to enhance his security and opened up the possibility of competing with his predecessors in foreign conquests that, although brief and not very profitable, had made their reigns so popular and renowned.[***]

     * Comine’s, liv. iii. chap. 4, 6.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 5. Parl. Hist. vol. ii. p. 332.

     *** Hall, fol. 169, 197.
     * Comine's, liv. iii. chap. 4, 6.

     ** W. Wyrcester, p. 5. Parl. Hist. vol. ii. p. 332.

     *** Hall, fol. 169, 197.

1469.

1469.

But whatever ambitious schemes the king might have built on these alliances, they were soon frustrated by intestine commotions, which engrossed all his attention. These disorders probably arose not immediately from the intrigues of the earl of Warwick, but from accident, aided by the turbulent spirit of the age, by the general humor of discontent which that popular nobleman had instilled into the nation, and perhaps by some remains of attachment to the house of Lancaster. The hospital of St. Leonard’s, near York, had received, from an ancient grant of King Athelstane, a right of levying a thrave of corn upon every plough-land in the county; and as these charitable establishments are liable to abuse, the country people complained, that the revenue of the hospital was no longer expended for the relief of the poor, but was secreted by the managers, and employed to their private purposes.

But whatever ambitious plans the king may have had based on these alliances, they were quickly disrupted by internal conflicts that took all his focus. These issues likely didn’t stem directly from the earl of Warwick’s schemes, but rather from chance, fueled by the restless spirit of the time and the general mood of dissatisfaction that this popular nobleman had instilled in the nation, and perhaps by lingering loyalty to the house of Lancaster. The hospital of St. Leonard’s, near York, had received, from an ancient grant of King Athelstane, the right to collect a thrave of corn from every plough-land in the county; and since these charitable institutions can be misused, the local people complained that the hospital's revenue was no longer used to help the poor, but was instead hidden by the managers and used for their own private benefit.

After long repining at the contribution, they refused payment: ecclesiastical and civil censures were issued against them, their goods were distrained, and their persons thrown into jail: till, as their ill humor daily increased, they rose in arms; fell upon the officers of the hospital, whom they put to the sword; and proceeded in a body, fifteen thousand strong, to the gates of York. Lord Montague, who commanded in those parts, opposed himself to their progress; and having been so fortunate in a skirmish as to seize Robert Hulderne, their leader, he ordered him immediately to be led to execution, according to the practice of the times. The rebels, however, still continued in arms; and being soon headed by men of greater distinction: Sir Henry Nevil, son of Lord Latimer, and Sir John Coniers, they advanced southwards, and began to appear formidable to government. Herbert, earl of Pembroke, who had received that title on the forfeiture of Jasper Tudor, was ordered by Edward to march against them at the head of a body of Welshmen; and he was joined by five thousand archers, under the command of Stafford, earl of Devonshire, who had succeeded in that title to the family of Courtney, which had also been attainted. But a trivial difference about quarters having begotten an animosity between these two noblemen, the earl of Devonshire retired with his archers, and left Pembroke alone to encounter the rebels. The two armies approached each other near Banbury; and Pembroke, having prevailed in a skirmish, and having taken Sir John Nevil prisoner, ordered him immediately to be put to death, without any form of process. This execution enraged without terrifying the rebels: they attacked the Welsh army, routed them, put them to the sword without mercy; and having seized Pembroke, they took immediate revenge upon him for the death of their leader. The king, imputing this misfortune to the earl of Devonshire, who had deserted Pembroke, ordered him to be executed in a like summary manner. But these speedy executions, or rather open murders, did not stop there: the northern rebels, sending a party to Grafton, seized the earl of Rivers and his son John; men who had become obnoxious by their near relation to the king, and his partiality towards them: and they were immediately executed by orders from Sir John Coniers.[*]

After a long time of feeling upset about the tax, they refused to pay: church and state punishments were handed down against them, their property was seized, and they were thrown in jail. As their anger grew, they took up arms, attacked the hospital officers, killing them, and headed as a group of fifteen thousand to the gates of York. Lord Montague, who was in charge of that area, tried to stop them; and after successfully capturing their leader, Robert Hulderne, in a skirmish, he ordered him to be executed right away, as was common at the time. However, the rebels continued to fight and soon were led by more prominent figures: Sir Henry Nevil, the son of Lord Latimer, and Sir John Coniers. They moved south and began to pose a significant threat to the government. Edward ordered Herbert, the earl of Pembroke, who had gained his title after Jasper Tudor's fall from grace, to march against them with a group of Welshmen. He was joined by five thousand archers led by Stafford, the earl of Devonshire, who had inherited the title from the Courtney family, which had also lost its standing. However, a minor disagreement over accommodations created tension between the two nobles, causing the earl of Devonshire to pull back with his archers, leaving Pembroke to face the rebels alone. The two armies met near Banbury, and Pembroke won a skirmish, taking Sir John Nevil prisoner. He ordered Sir John to be executed immediately, without any trial. This execution angered rather than intimidated the rebels: they launched an attack on the Welsh army, defeated them, slaughtered them without mercy, and captured Pembroke, avenging their leader's death on him. The king blamed this disaster on the earl of Devonshire for abandoning Pembroke and ordered him to be executed in a similarly hasty manner. But these quick executions, or rather public killings, didn’t stop there: the northern rebels sent a group to Grafton and captured the earl of Rivers and his son John, who were seen as targets due to their close ties to the king and his favoritism towards them. They were promptly executed on the orders of Sir John Coniers.[*]

     * Fabian, fol. 217.
* Fabian, fol. 217.

There is no part of English history since the conquest so obscure, so uncertain, so little authentic or consistent, as that of the wars between the two “roses:” historians differ about many material circumstances; some events of the utmost consequence, in which they almost all agree, are incredible, and contradicted by records;[*] 19 and it is remarkable, that this profound darkness falls upon us just on the eve of the restoration of letters, and when the art of printing was already known in Europe. All we can distinguish with certainty through the deep cloud which covers that period, is a scene of horror and bloodshed: savage manners, arbitrary executions, and treacherous, dishonorable conduct in all parties. There is no possibility, for instance, of accounting for the views and intentions of the earl of Warwick at this time. It is agreed that he resided, together with his son-in-law, the duke of Clarence, in his government of Calais during the commencement of this rebellion; and that his brother Montague acted with vigor against the northern rebels. We may thence presume, that the insurrection had not proceeded from the secret counsels and instigation of Warwick; though the murder committed by the rebels on the earl of Rivers, his capital enemy, forms, on the other hand, a violent presumption against him. He and Clarence came over to England, offered their service to Edward, were received without any suspicion, were intrusted by him in the highest commands,[**] and still persevered in their fidelity. Soon after, we find the rebels quieted and dispersed by a general pardon granted by Edward from the advice of the earl of Warwick: but why so courageous a prince, if secure of Warwick’s fidelity, should have granted a general pardon to men who had been guilty of such violent and personal outrages against him, is not intelligible; nor why that nobleman, if unfaithful, should have endeavored to appease a rebellion of which he was able to make such advantages. But it appears, that after this insurrection, there was an interval of peace, during which the king loaded the family of Nevil with honors and favors of the highest nature: he made Lord Montague a marquis, by the same name: he created his son George duke of Bedford;[***] he publicly declared his intention of marrying that young nobleman to his eldest daughter, Elizabeth, who, as he had yet no sons, was presumptive heir of the crown: yet we find that soon after, being invited to a feast by the archbishop of York, a younger brother of Warwick and Montague, he entertained a sudden suspicion that they intended to seize his person or to murder him: and he abruptly left the entertainment.[****]

There’s no part of English history since the conquest that’s as unclear, uncertain, or inconsistent as the wars between the two “roses.” Historians disagree on many important details; some key events, which almost everyone agrees on, seem unbelievable and contradict historical records;[*] 19 and it’s striking that this deep confusion emerges just before the revival of literature and when the printing press was already known in Europe. The only thing we can clearly see through the thick fog covering that time is a scene of horror and violence: brutal behaviors, arbitrary executions, and deceitful actions from all sides. For example, it’s impossible to understand the intentions and motivations of the Earl of Warwick during this period. It’s agreed that he, along with his son-in-law, the Duke of Clarence, was in his governorship of Calais at the beginning of this rebellion, and that his brother Montague acted decisively against the northern rebels. This suggests that the uprising didn’t arise from Warwick’s secret plans and instigation, although the murder of the Earl of Rivers, his main rival, raises strong suspicions against him. He and Clarence returned to England, offered their services to Edward, were welcomed without suspicion, trusted with top positions,[**] and continued to show loyalty. Shortly after, we see the rebels subdued and scattered by a general pardon granted by Edward at Warwick’s suggestion: but it’s not clear why such a brave king, if he trusted Warwick’s loyalty, would grant a general pardon to those who had committed such violent and personal offenses against him; nor why that nobleman, if disloyal, would try to calm a rebellion he could benefit from. However, it appears that after this uprising, there was a period of peace, during which the king showered the Nevil family with honors and favors: he made Lord Montague a marquis; he created his son George Duke of Bedford;[***] he even announced his intention to marry that young nobleman to his eldest daughter, Elizabeth, who, since he had no sons yet, was the presumed heir to the throne. Yet soon after, when invited to a feast by the Archbishop of York, a younger brother of Warwick and Montague, he suddenly suspected that they intended to capture or kill him: and he abruptly left the gathering.[****]

     * See note S, at the end of the volume.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 647, 649, 650.

     *** Cotton, p. 702.

     **** Fragm. Edward IV. ad fin. Sproti.
     * See note S, at the end of the volume.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 647, 649, 650.

     *** Cotton, p. 702.

     **** Fragm. Edward IV. ad fin. Sproti.

1470.

1470.

Soon after, there broke out another rebellion, which is as unaccountable as all the preceding events; chiefly because no sufficient reason is assigned for it, and because, so far as appears, the family of Nevil had no hand in exciting and fomenting it. It arose in Lincolnshire, and was headed by Sir Robert Welles, son to the lord of that name. The army of the rebels amounted to thirty thousand men; but Lord Welles himself, far from giving countenance to them, fled into a sanctuary, in order to secure his person against the king’s anger or suspicions. He was allured from this retreat by a promise of safety; and was soon after, notwithstanding this assurance, beheaded, along with Sir Thomas Dymoc, by orders from Edward.[*] The king fought a battle with the rebels, defeated them, took Sir Robert Welles and Sir Thomas Launde prisoners, and ordered them immediately to be beheaded.

Soon after, another rebellion broke out, which is just as puzzling as all the previous events; mainly because no good reason is given for it, and it seems like the Nevil family had nothing to do with stirring it up. It started in Lincolnshire and was led by Sir Robert Welles, the son of the lord of that name. The rebel army had around thirty thousand men; however, Lord Welles himself, instead of supporting them, fled to a sanctuary to protect himself from the king’s anger or suspicion. He was lured out of hiding with a promise of safety; yet, despite this assurance, he was soon beheaded, along with Sir Thomas Dymoc, on Edward's orders.[*] The king fought against the rebels, defeated them, captured Sir Robert Welles and Sir Thomas Launde, and ordered them to be executed immediately.

Edward, during these transactions, had entertained so little jealousy of the earl of Warwick or duke of Clarence, that he sent them with commissions of array to levy forces against the rebels:[**] but these malecontents, as soon as they left the court, raised troops in their own name, issued declarations against the government, and complained of grievances, oppressions, and bad ministers. The unexpected defeat of Welles disconcerted all their measures; and they retired northwards into Lancashire, where they expected to be joined by Lord Stanley, who had married the earl of Warwick’s sister. But as that nobleman refused all concurrence with them, and as Lord Montague also remained quiet in Yorkshire, they were obliged to disband their army, and to fly into Devonshire, where they embarked and made sail towards Calais.[***]

Edward, during these events, had been so unconcerned about the earl of Warwick or the duke of Clarence that he sent them with orders to gather forces against the rebels. However, as soon as they left the court, these disgruntled individuals raised troops in their own name, issued statements against the government, and complained about injustices, oppression, and poor leadership. The unexpected defeat of Welles threw a wrench in all their plans, and they retreated north to Lancashire, where they hoped to be joined by Lord Stanley, who was married to the earl of Warwick's sister. But since that nobleman refused to cooperate with them, and Lord Montague also stayed neutral in Yorkshire, they had no choice but to disband their army and flee to Devonshire, where they boarded ships and set sail for Calais.

     * Hall, fol. 204. Fabian, fol. 218. Habington, p. 442.
     Holingshed, p. 674.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 652.

     *** The king offered, by proclamation, a reward of one
     thousand pounds, or one hundred pounds a year in land, to
     any that would seize them. Whence we may learn that land was
     at that time sold for about ten years’ purchase. See Rymer,
     vol. xi. p. 654.
     * Hall, fol. 204. Fabian, fol. 218. Habington, p. 442.
     Holingshed, p. 674.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi. p. 652.

     *** The king announced, through a proclamation, a reward of one thousand pounds or a hundred pounds a year in land to anyone who could capture them. From this, we can infer that land was sold for roughly ten years’ worth of income at that time. See Rymer, vol. xi. p. 654.

The deputy governor, whom Warwick had left at Calais, was one Vaucler, a Gascon, who, seeing the earl return in this miserable condition, refused him admittance; and would not so much as permit the duchess of Clarence to land, though, a few days before, she had been delivered on shipboard of a son, and was at that time extremely disordered by sickness. With difficulty he would allow a few flagons of wine to be carried to the ship for the use of the ladies: but as he was a man of sagacity, and well acquainted with the revolutions to which England was subject, he secretly apologized to Warwick for this appearance of infidelity, and represented it as proceeding entirely from zeal for his service. He said that the fortress was ill supplied with provisions; that he could not depend on the attachment of the garrison; that the inhabitants, who lived by the English commerce, would certainly declare for the established government; that the place was at present unable to resist the power of England on the one hand, and that of the duke of Burgundy on the other; and that, by seeming to declare for Edward, he would acquire the confidence of that prince, and still keep it in his power, when it should become safe and prudent, to restore Calais to its ancient master.[*] It is uncertain whether Warwick was satisfied with this apology, or suspected a double infidelity in Vaucler; but he feigned to be entirely convinced by him; and having seized some Flemish vessels which he found lying off Calais, he immediately made sail towards France.

The deputy governor, whom Warwick had left in Calais, was a guy named Vaucler, a Gascon. When he saw the earl return in such a terrible state, he refused him entry and wouldn’t even let the duchess of Clarence come ashore, even though she had just given birth to a son on the ship a few days earlier and was feeling very unwell. He barely allowed a few flagons of wine to be sent to the ship for the ladies. However, being a savvy man who understood the shifts in England's politics, he secretly apologized to Warwick for this seeming disloyalty, claiming it was purely out of dedication to his cause. He warned that the fortress was poorly supplied with food, that he couldn’t trust the garrison's loyalty, and that the locals, who depended on trade with England, would likely support the established government. He explained that the stronghold wasn't in a position to withstand the power of England on one side and that of the duke of Burgundy on the other. By appearing to support Edward, he could gain that prince's trust, while still keeping the option open to return Calais to its rightful owner when it was safe and wise to do so. It’s unclear whether Warwick accepted this explanation or suspected Vaucler of being double-crossing; but he pretended to be completely convinced. After seizing some Flemish ships he found anchored off Calais, he set sail for France right away.

The king of France, uneasy at the close conjunction between Edward and the duke of Burgundy, received with the greatest demonstrations of regard the unfortunate Warwick,[**] with whom he had formerly maintained a secret correspondence, and whom he hoped still to make his instrument in overturning the government of England, and reëstablishing the house of Lancaster.

The king of France, worried about the close relationship between Edward and the duke of Burgundy, welcomed the unfortunate Warwick with great shows of respect. He had previously kept secret conversations with Warwick and still hoped to use him to help take down the government of England and restore the house of Lancaster.

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 4. Hall, fol. 205.

     ** Polyd. Virg. p. 519.
     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 4. Hall, fol. 205.

     ** Polyd. Virg. p. 519.

No animosity was ever greater than that which had long prevailed between that house and the earl of Warwick. His father had been executed by orders from Margaret: he himself had twice reduced Henry to captivity, had banished the queen, had put to death all their most zealous partisans either in the field or on the scaffold, and had occasioned innumerable ills to that unhappy family. For this reason, believing that such inveterate rancor could never admit of any cordial reconciliation, he had not mentioned Henry’s name when he took arms against Edward; and he rather endeavored to prevail by means of his own adherents, than revive a party which he sincerely hated. But his present distresses and the entreaties of Lewis made him hearken to terms of accommodation; and Margaret being sent for from Angers, where she then resided, an agreement was, from common interest, soon concluded between them. It was stipulated, that Warwick should espouse the cause of Henry, and endeavor to restore him to liberty, and to reëstablish him on the throne; that the administration of the government, during the minority of young Edward, Henry’s son, should be intrusted conjointly to the earl of Warwick and the duke of Clarence; that Prince Edward should marry the Lady Anne, second daughter of that nobleman; and that the crown, in case of the failure of male issue in that prince, should descend to the duke of Clarence, to the entire exclusion of King Edward and his posterity. Never was confederacy, on all sides, less natural, or more evidently the work of necessity: but Warwick hoped, that all former passions of the Lancastrians might be lost in present political views; and that, at worst, the independent power of his family, and the affections of the people, would suffice to give him security, and enable him to exact the full performance of all the conditions agreed on. The marriage of Prince Edward with the Lady Anne was immediately celebrated in France.

No animosity was ever greater than that which had long existed between that house and the Earl of Warwick. His father had been executed on Margaret's orders; he himself had captured Henry twice, banished the queen, killed all their most devoted supporters either in battle or on the scaffold, and caused countless troubles for that unfortunate family. For this reason, believing that such deep-seated hatred could never lead to any real reconciliation, he didn’t mention Henry's name when he took up arms against Edward; instead, he preferred to rely on his own supporters rather than revive a party he genuinely despised. However, his current troubles and Lewis's pleas made him consider terms for peace, and with Margaret called from Angers, where she was living at the time, a mutually beneficial agreement was quickly reached. It was agreed that Warwick would support Henry’s cause and work to restore his freedom and reestablish him on the throne; that the governance, during the minority of young Edward, Henry’s son, would be jointly overseen by the Earl of Warwick and the Duke of Clarence; that Prince Edward would marry Lady Anne, the second daughter of that nobleman; and that the crown, should that prince have no male heirs, would pass to the Duke of Clarence, completely excluding King Edward and his descendants. Never has a coalition been less natural or more clearly born out of necessity: but Warwick hoped that all previous grievances of the Lancastrians might be overshadowed by current political ambitions, and that, at the very least, the independent power of his family and the people's loyalty would be enough to ensure his safety and allow him to demand full adherence to all the agreed terms. The marriage of Prince Edward and Lady Anne was quickly celebrated in France.

Edward foresaw that it would be easy to dissolve an alliance composed of such discordant parts. For this purpose, he sent over a lady of great sagacity and address, who belonged to the train of the duchess of Clarence, and who, under color of attending her mistress, was empowered to negotiate with the duke, and to renew the connections of that prince with his own family.[*] She represented to Clarence, that he had unwarily, to his own ruin, become the instrument of Warwick’s vengeance, and had thrown himself entirely in the power of his most inveterate enemies; that the mortal injuries which the one royal family had suffered from the other, were now past all forgiveness, and no imaginary union of interests could ever suffice to obliterate them; that even if the leaders were willing to forget past offences, the animosity of their adherents would prevent a sincere coalition of parties, and would, in spite of all temporary and verbal agreements, preserve an eternal opposition of measures between them; and that a prince who deserted his own kindred, and joined the murderers of his father, left himself single, without friends, without protection, and would not, when misfortunes inevitably fell upon him, be so much as entitled to any pity or regard from the rest of mankind.

Edward saw that it would be easy to break an alliance made up of such conflicting components. To achieve this, he sent a clever and skilled lady from the duchess of Clarence's entourage, who, while pretending to attend to her mistress, was given the authority to negotiate with the duke and to renew his connection with his own family.[*] She told Clarence that he had unwittingly, to his own detriment, become an instrument of Warwick’s revenge and had completely put himself in the hands of his most bitter enemies; that the serious harms one royal family had inflicted on the other were now beyond forgiveness, and no imagined alliance of interests could ever erase them; that even if the leaders were willing to overlook past offenses, the hostility of their followers would prevent a genuine merging of parties, and would, despite any temporary or verbal agreements, maintain a constant conflict of actions between them; and that a prince who abandoned his own family and sided with the murderers of his father would find himself alone, without friends or protection, and when misfortunes inevitably struck, would not even deserve any sympathy or respect from the rest of humanity.

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 5. Hall, fol. 20*7. Holingshed,
     p. 676.
     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 5. Hall, fol. 20*7. Holingshed,
     p. 676.

Clarence was only one and twenty years of age, and seems to have possessed but a slender capacity; yet could he easily see the force of these reasons; and, upon the promise of forgiveness from his brother, he secretly engaged, on a favorable opportunity, to desert the earl of Warwick, and abandon the Lancastrian party.

Clarence was only twenty-one years old and appeared to have limited abilities; however, he could clearly understand the strength of these arguments. Upon receiving a promise of forgiveness from his brother, he secretly committed to abandoning the Earl of Warwick and leaving the Lancastrian party when the opportunity arose.

During this negotiation, Warwick was secretly carrying on a correspondence of the same nature with his brother, the marquis of Montague, who was entirely trusted by Edward; and like motives produced a like resolution in that nobleman. The marquis, also, that he might render the projected blow the more deadly and incurable, resolved, on his side, to watch a favorable opportunity for committing his perfidy, and still to maintain the appearance of being a zealous adherent to the house of York.

During this negotiation, Warwick was secretly communicating about the same thing with his brother, the Marquis of Montague, who was fully trusted by Edward; and similar reasons led to a similar decision from that nobleman

After these mutual snares were thus carefully laid, the decision of the quarrel advanced apace. Lewis prepared a fleet to escort the earl of Warwick, and granted him a supply of men and money.[*] The duke of Burgundy, on the other hand, enraged at that nobleman for his seizure of the Flemish vessels before Calais, and anxious to support the reigning family in England, with whom his own interests were now connected, fitted out a larger fleet, with which he guarded the Channel: and he incessantly warned his brother-in-law of the imminent perils to which he was exposed. But Edward, though always brave and often active, had little foresight or penetration. He was not sensible of his danger; he made no suitable preparations against the earl of Warwick;[**] he even said that the duke might spare himself the trouble of guarding the seas, and that he wished for nothing more than to see Warwick set foot on English ground.[***] A vain confidence in his own prowess, joined to the immoderate love of pleasure, had made him incapable of all sound reason and reflection.

After these traps were carefully set, the conflict moved forward quickly. Lewis got a fleet ready to escort the Earl of Warwick and provided him with troops and money.[*] The Duke of Burgundy, upset with Warwick for seizing the Flemish ships near Calais and eager to support the ruling family in England, which was now aligned with his own interests, prepared an even larger fleet to guard the Channel. He constantly warned his brother-in-law about the serious dangers he faced. However, Edward, though always brave and often active, lacked foresight and insight. He didn’t realize how much danger he was in; he made no proper preparations against the Earl of Warwick;[**] he even remarked that the duke could stop wasting his time patrolling the seas and that he actually wanted to see Warwick land on English soil.[***] An overconfidence in his own skill, combined with an excessive love for pleasure, had left him incapable of sound judgment and reflection.

The event soon happened, of which Edward seemed so desirous. A storm dispersed the Flemish navy, and left the sea open to Warwick.[****] That nobleman seized the opportunity, and setting sail, quickly landed at Dartmouth with the duke of Clarence, the earls of Oxford and Pembroke, and a small body of troops, while the king was in the north, engaged in suppressing an insurrection which had been raised by Lord Fitz-Hugh, brother-in-law to Warwick.

The event that Edward had been eager for soon took place. A storm scattered the Flemish navy, leaving the sea clear for Warwick. That nobleman took advantage of the situation and set sail, quickly landing at Dartmouth with the Duke of Clarence, the Earls of Oxford and Pembroke, and a small group of troops, while the king was in the north, focused on putting down an uprising led by Lord Fitz-Hugh, who was Warwick's brother-in-law.

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 4. Hall, fol. 207.

     ** Grafton, p. 687.

     *** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 5. Hall, fol. 208.

     **** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 5.
     * Comines, book 3, chapter 4. Hall, page 207.

     ** Grafton, page 687.

     *** Comines, book 3, chapter 5. Hall, page 208.

     **** Comines, book 3, chapter 5.

The scene which ensues resembles more the fiction of a poem or romance than an event in true history. The prodigious popularity of Warwick,[*] the zeal of the Lancastrian party, the spirit of discontent with which many were infected, and the general instability of the English nation, occasioned by the late frequent revolutions, drew such multitudes to his standard, that in a very few days his army amounted to sixty thousand men and was continually increasing. Edward hastened southwards to encounter him; and the two armies approached each other near Nottingham, where a decisive action was every hour expected. The rapidity of Warwick’s progress had incapacitated the duke of Clarence from executing his plan of treachery; and the marquis of Montague had here the opportunity of striking the first blow. He communicated the design to his adherents, who promised him their concurrence: they took to arms in the night-time, and hastened with loud acclamations to Edward’s quarters; the king was alarmed at the noise, and starting from bed, heard the cry of war usually employed by the Lancastrian party. Lord Hastings, his chamberlain, informed him of the danger, and urged him to make his escape by speedy flight from an army where he had so many concealed enemies, and where few seemed zealously attached to his service. He had just time to get on horseback, and to hurry with a small retinue to Lynne, in Norfolk, where he luckily found some ships ready, on board of which he instantly embarked.[**] And after this manner the earl of Warwick, in no longer space than eleven days after his first landing, was left entire master of the kingdom.

The ensuing scene feels more like something out of a poem or a romance than an actual historical event. Warwick’s immense popularity, the enthusiasm of the Lancastrian party, the widespread discontent among many, and the overall instability of England due to recent frequent revolutions attracted so many people to his side that in just a few days, his army grew to sixty thousand men and was still rising. Edward rushed south to confront him; the two armies got closer near Nottingham, where a decisive battle was expected at any moment. Warwick’s swift advance prevented the Duke of Clarence from carrying out his treacherous plan, and the Marquis of Montague saw an opportunity to strike first. He shared his plan with his followers, who promised to back him: they took up arms at night and rushed with loud cheers to Edward's camp. The king was startled by the noise and jumped out of bed, hearing the battle cry commonly used by the Lancastrians. Lord Hastings, his chamberlain, warned him of the danger and urged him to flee quickly from an army filled with hidden enemies, where few seemed truly loyal to him. He barely had time to mount his horse and rush with a small group to Lynne in Norfolk, where he fortunately found some ships ready to go, and he quickly boarded one. And just like that, in only eleven days after his arrival, the Earl of Warwick was left completely in control of the kingdom.

     * Hall, fol. 205.

     ** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 5. Hall, fol. 208.
     * Hall, fol. 205.

     ** Comines, book III, chapter 5. Hall, fol. 208.

But Edward’s danger did not end with his embarkation. The Easterlings or Hanse Towns were then at war both with France and England; and some ships of these people, hovering on the English coast, espied the king’s vessels, and gave chase to them; nor was it without extreme difficulty that he made his escape into the port of Alcmaer, in Holland. He had fled from England with such precipitation, that he had carried nothing of value along with him; and the only reward which he could bestow on the captain of the vessel that brought him over, was a robe lined with sables; promising him an ample recompense if fortune should ever become more propitious to him.[*]

But Edward's troubles didn't end when he boarded the ship. The Easterlings, or Hanse Towns, were at war with both France and England at that time. Some of their ships, hovering off the English coast, spotted the king's vessels and gave chase. It was with great difficulty that he managed to escape to the port of Alcmaer in Holland. He had fled from England in such a hurry that he brought nothing of value with him. The only reward he could give the captain of the ship that rescued him was a robe lined with sables, promising him a generous reward if luck ever turned in his favor.[*]

     * Comines, liv, iii. chap. 5.
* Comines, liv, iii. chap. 5.

It is not likely that Edward could be very fond of presenting himself in this lamentable plight before the duke of Burgundy; and that having so suddenly, after his mighty vaunts, lost all footing in his own kingdom, he could be insensible to the ridicule which must attend him in the eyes of that prince. The duke, on his part, was no less embarrassed how he should receive the dethroned monarch. As he had ever borne a greater affection to the house of Lancaster than to that of York, nothing but political views had engaged him to contract an alliance with the latter; and he foresaw, that probably the revolution in England would now turn this alliance against him, and render the reigning family his implacable and jealous enemy. For this reason, when the first rumor of that event reached him, attended with the circumstance of Edward’s death, he seemed rather pleased with the catastrophe; and it was no agreeable disappointment to find, that he must either undergo the burden of supporting an exiled prince, or the dishonor of abandoning so near a relation. He began already to say, that his connections were with the kingdom of England, not with the king; and it was indifferent to him whether the name of Edward or that of Henry were employed in the articles of treaty. These sentiments were continually strengthened by the subsequent events. Vaucler, the deputy-governor of Calais, though he had been confirmed in his command by Edward, and had even received a pension from the duke of Burgundy on account of his fidelity to the crown, no sooner saw his old master, Warwick, reinstated in authority, than he declared for him, and with great demonstrations of zeal and attachment, put the whole garrison in his livery. And the intelligence which the duke received every day from England, seemed to promise an entire and full settlement in the family of Lancaster.

It's unlikely that Edward would want to show himself in this sad state in front of the Duke of Burgundy. After boasting so much, losing all his power in his own kingdom must make him painfully aware of the ridicule he would face from that prince. The duke, for his part, felt equally awkward about how to treat the dethroned king. He had always had more affection for the House of Lancaster than for York, and his alliance with the latter was only motivated by political reasons. He realized that the shift in power in England could turn this alliance against him, making the current royal family his relentless and jealous enemy. Therefore, when he first heard the rumor about that event, accompanied by the news of Edward's death, he seemed rather pleased with the outcome. It was no pleasant surprise to find that he had to either bear the burden of supporting an exiled prince or face the dishonor of abandoning such a close relative. He started to claim that his connections were with the kingdom of England, not with the king; it didn't matter to him whether the treaty mentioned Edward or Henry. These views were only reinforced by the events that followed. Vaucler, the deputy-governor of Calais, who had been confirmed in his post by Edward and even received a pension from the Duke of Burgundy for his loyalty to the crown, quickly switched allegiance as soon as he saw his former master, Warwick, back in power. He declared his support with great enthusiasm and put the entire garrison in Warwick's colors. The news the duke received daily from England seemed to indicate a complete and stable return of the Lancaster family to power.

Immediately after Edward’s flight had left the kingdom at Warwick’s disposal, that nobleman hastened to London; and taking Henry from his confinement in the Tower, into which he himself had been the chief cause of throwing him, he proclaimed him king with great solemnity. A parliament was summoned in the name of that prince, to meet at Westminster, and as this assembly could pretend to no liberty while surrounded by such enraged and insolent victors, governed by such an impetuous spirit as Warwick, their votes were entirely dictated by the ruling faction. The treaty with Margaret was here fully executed: Henry was recognized as lawful king; but his incapacity for government being avowed, the regency was intrusted to Warwick and Clarence till the majority of Prince Edward; and in default of that prince’s issue, Clarence was declared successor to the crown. The usual business also of reversals went on without opposition: every statute made during the reign of Edward was repealed; that prince was declared to be a usurper; he and his adherents were attainted; and in particular Richard, duke of Glocester, his younger brother: all the attainders of the Lancastrians, the dukes of Somerset and Exeter, the earls of Richmond, Pembroke, Oxford, and Ormond, were reversed; and every one was restored who had lost either honors or fortunes by his former adherence to the cause of Henry.

As soon as Edward's flight had left the kingdom in Warwick’s control, that nobleman rushed to London. He took Henry out of his confinement in the Tower, which he had largely caused by his own actions, and proclaimed him king with great ceremony. A parliament was called in the name of that prince, set to meet at Westminster. However, this assembly had no real freedom while surrounded by such angry and arrogant victors, led by Warwick's impulsive spirit; their decisions were entirely dictated by the ruling faction. The treaty with Margaret was fully implemented: Henry was recognized as the legitimate king, but since his inability to govern was acknowledged, the regency was given to Warwick and Clarence until Prince Edward reached maturity. If that prince had no heirs, Clarence was named successor to the throne. The usual process of reversals also continued without resistance: every law passed during Edward’s reign was repealed; he was declared a usurper; he and his supporters were stripped of their titles; specifically, Richard, Duke of Gloucester, his younger brother, was included. All the attainders against the Lancastrians—the Dukes of Somerset and Exeter, and the Earls of Richmond, Pembroke, Oxford, and Ormond—were overturned, and everyone who had lost titles or wealth for supporting Henry was restored.

The ruling party were more sparing in their executions than was usual after any revolution during those violent times. The only victim of distinction was John Tibetot, earl of Worcester. This accomplished person, born in an age and nation where the nobility valued themselves on ignorance as their privilege, and left learning to monks and schoolmasters, for whom indeed the spurious erudition that prevailed was best fitted, had been struck with the first rays of true science, which began to penetrate from the south, and had been zealous, by his exhortation and example, to propagate the love of letters among his unpolished countrymen. It is pretended, that knowledge had not produced on this nobleman himself the effect which naturally attends it, of humanizing the temper and softening the heart;[*] and that he had enraged the Lancastrians against him by the severities which he exercised upon them during the prevalence of his own party.

The ruling party was more selective in their executions than usual after any revolution during those violent times. The only notable victim was John Tibetot, earl of Worcester. This accomplished individual, born in an age and nation where the nobility prided themselves on their ignorance as a privilege and left learning to monks and teachers—who were indeed the ones best suited to the false scholarship that prevailed—had been inspired by the first rays of true science that started coming from the south. He was eager, through his encouragement and example, to spread the love of literature among his unrefined countrymen. It's said that knowledge had not had the usual effect on this nobleman, which is to humanize one's temperament and soften one's heart; and that he had angered the Lancastrians against him by the harshness he showed them during the dominance of his own faction.

     * Hall, fol. 210. Stowe, p. 422.
* Hall, fol. 210. Stowe, p. 422.

He endeavored to conceal himself after the flight of Edward, but was caught on the top of a tree in the forest of Weybridge, was conducted to London, tried before the earl of Oxford, condemned, and executed. All the other considerable Yorkists either fled beyond sea, or took shelter in sanctuaries, where the ecclesiastical privileges afforded them protection. In London alone it is computed that no less than two thousand persons saved themselves in this manner;[*] and among the rest, Edward’s queen, who was there delivered of a son, called by his father’s name.[**]

He tried to hide after Edward's escape but was caught at the top of a tree in the Weybridge forest, taken to London, tried by the Earl of Oxford, convicted, and executed. All the other prominent Yorkists either fled overseas or sought refuge in sanctuaries, where church privileges protected them. In London alone, it's estimated that at least two thousand people managed to save themselves this way;[*] among them was Edward's queen, who gave birth to a son named after his father.[**]

Queen Margaret, the other rival queen, had not yet appeared in England, but on receiving intelligence of Warwick’s success, was preparing with Prince Edward for her journey. All the banished Lancastrians flocked to her; and, among the rest, the duke of Somerset, son of the duke beheaded after the battle of Hexham. This nobleman, who had long been regarded as the head of the party, had fled into the Low Countries on the discomfiture of his friends; and as he concealed his name and quality, he had there languished in extreme indigence. Philip de Comines tells us,[***] that he himself saw him, as well as the duke of Exeter, in a condition no better than that of a common beggar; till being discovered by Philip, duke of Burgundy, they had small pensions allotted them, and were living in silence and obscurity when the success of their party called them from their retreat. But both Somerset and Margaret were detained by contrary winds from reaching England,[****] till a new revolution in that kingdom, no less sudden and surprising than the former, threw them into greater misery than that from which they had just emerged.

Queen Margaret, the other rival queen, hadn't shown up in England yet, but after hearing about Warwick’s success, she was getting ready to travel with Prince Edward. All the exiled Lancastrians gathered around her, including the Duke of Somerset, the son of the duke who was executed after the battle of Hexham. This nobleman, who had been viewed as the leader of the party for a long time, had fled to the Low Countries after his allies were defeated, and he lived there under a false identity in terrible poverty. Philip de Comines tells us that he saw both him and the Duke of Exeter living in conditions no better than that of a common beggar until they were recognized by Philip, Duke of Burgundy, who arranged for them to receive small pensions. They were living in silence and obscurity when the fortunes of their party pulled them out of hiding. However, both Somerset and Margaret were held back by contrary winds from reaching England until a new, sudden revolution in that kingdom plunged them into even greater misery than what they had just escaped.

Though the duke of Burgundy, by neglecting Edward, and paying court to the established government, had endeavored to conciliate the friendship of the Lancastrians, he found that he had not succeeded to his wish; and the connections between the king of France and the earl of Warwick still held him in great anxiety.[*****] This nobleman, too hastily regarding Charles as a determined enemy, had sent over to Calais a body of four thousand men, who made inroads into the Low Countries;[******] and the duke of Burgundy saw himself in danger of being overwhelmed by the united arms of England and of France. He resolved therefore to grant some assistance to his brother-in-law; but in such a covert manner as should give the least offence possible to the English government.

Though the Duke of Burgundy, by ignoring Edward and cozying up to the established government, tried to win over the Lancastrians, he realized he had not achieved his goal. The connections between the King of France and the Earl of Warwick kept him very worried. This nobleman, too quick to see Charles as a committed foe, had sent a contingent of four thousand men to Calais, who then raided the Low Countries. The Duke of Burgundy felt he was at risk of being overwhelmed by the combined forces of England and France. He decided to provide some support to his brother-in-law, but in a subtle way that would offend the English government as little as possible.

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.

     ** Hall, fol. 210. Stowe, p. 423. Holingshed, p. 677.
     Grafton, p. 690.

     *** Liv. iii. chap. 4.

     **** Grafton, p. 692. Polyd. Virg. p 522.

     ****** Comines, liv, iii. chap. 6.
     * Comines, book III, chapter 7.

     ** Hall, page 210. Stowe, page 423. Holinshed, page 677.
     Grafton, page 690.

     *** Book III, chapter 4.

     **** Grafton, page 692. Polydore Vergil, page 522.

     ****** Comines, book III, chapter 6.

1471.

1471.

He equipped four large vessels, in the name of some private merchants, at Terveer, in Zealand; and causing fourteen ships to be secretly hired from the Easterlings, he delivered this small squadron to Edward, who, receiving also a sum of money from the duke, immediately set sail for England. No sooner was Charles informed of his departure than he issued a proclamation inhibiting all his subjects from giving him countenance or assistance;[*] an artifice which could not deceive the earl of Warwick, but which might serve as a decent pretence, if that nobleman were so disposed, for maintaining friendship with the duke of Burgundy.

He outfitted four large ships, under the name of some private merchants, at Terveer in Zealand. He also secretly hired fourteen ships from the Easterlings and handed this small fleet over to Edward, who, after receiving a sum of money from the duke, set sail for England right away. As soon as Charles learned of his departure, he issued a proclamation preventing all his subjects from giving him support or assistance;[*] a tactic that wouldn't fool the Earl of Warwick, but could serve as a respectable excuse for keeping on good terms with the Duke of Burgundy if the nobleman chose to do so.

Edward, impatient to take revenge on his enemies, and to recover his lost authority, made an attempt to land with his forces, which exceeded not two thousand men, on the coast of Norfolk; but being there repulsed, he sailed northwards, and disembarked at Ravenspur, in Yorkshire. Finding that the new magistrates, who had been appointed by the earl of Warwick, kept the people every where from joining him, he pretended, and even made oath, that he came not to challenge the crown, but only the inheritance of the house of York, which of right belonged to him; and that he did not intend to disturb the peace of the kingdom. His partisans every moment flocked to his standard: he was admitted into the city of York: and he was soon in such a situation as gave him hopes of succeeding in all his claims and pretensions. The marquis of Montague commanded in the northern counties; but from some mysterious reasons, which, as well as many other important transactions in that age, no historian has cleared up, he totally neglected the beginnings of an insurrection which he ought to have esteemed so formidable. Warwick assembled an army at Leicester, with an intention of meeting and of giving battle to the enemy; but Edward, by taking another road, passed him unmolested, and presented himself before the gates of London. Had he here been refused admittance, he was totally undone: but there were many reasons which inclined the citizens to favor him. His numerous friends, issuing from their sanctuaries, were active in his cause; many rich merchants, who had formerly lent him money, saw no other chance for their payment but his restoration; the city dames who had been liberal of their favors to him, and who still retained an affection for this young and gallant prince, swayed their husbands and friends in his favor;[**] and above all, the archbishop of York, Warwick’s brother, to whom the care of the city was committed, had secretly, from unknown reasons, entered into a correspondence with him; and he facilitated Edward’s admission into London.

Edward, eager to get back at his enemies and regain his lost authority, tried to land his forces, which numbered just under two thousand men, on the Norfolk coast. However, after being pushed back, he sailed north and landed at Ravenspur in Yorkshire. Seeing that the new leaders appointed by the Earl of Warwick were keeping people from joining him, he claimed—going so far as to swear—that he had come not to claim the crown, but simply the inheritance of the House of York, which was rightfully his, and that he had no plans to disrupt the kingdom's peace. Supporters quickly rallied to his cause; he was welcomed into the city of York and soon found himself in a position where he felt hopeful about succeeding in his goals. The Marquis of Montague was in charge of the northern counties, but for some unclear reasons, which, like many significant events from that time, are still unexplained by historians, he completely overlooked the emergence of an uprising that he should have considered very serious. Warwick gathered an army at Leicester to confront the enemy, but Edward chose a different route, slipping past him and appearing at the gates of London unchallenged. Had he been denied entry here, it would have meant his total defeat; however, there were many factors that encouraged the citizens to support him. His numerous allies, emerging from hiding, actively worked in his favor; many wealthy merchants who had previously lent him money realized that their only chance of repayment lay in his restoration; city women, who had been generous with their affections towards him and still held a fondness for this young and dashing prince, persuaded their husbands and friends to support him; and most importantly, the Archbishop of York, Warwick’s brother, who was responsible for the city, had secretly established a connection with him for reasons unknown and helped facilitate Edward’s entry into London.

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 6.

     ** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.
     * Comines, book 3, chapter 6.

     ** Comines, book 3, chapter 7.

The most likely cause which can be assigned for those multiplied infidelities, even in the family of Nevil itself, is the spirit of faction, which, when it becomes inveterate, it is very difficult for any man entirely to shake off. The persons who had long distinguished themselves in the York party, were unable to act with zeal and cordiality for the support of the Lancastrians; and they were inclined, by any prospect of favor or accommodation offered them by Edward, to return to their ancient connections. However this may be, Edward’s entrance into London made him master not only of that rich and powerful city, but also of the person of Henry, who, destined to be the perpetual sport of fortune, thus fell again into the hands of his enemies.[*]

The most likely reason for the many betrayals, even within Nevil's own family, is the persistent factional spirit, which is hard for anyone to completely shake off once it takes hold. Those who had long been part of the York party found it impossible to work enthusiastically and genuinely for the Lancastrians; they were tempted, by any hint of favor or deal offered by Edward, to go back to their old alliances. Nonetheless, Edward's arrival in London made him the leader of not just that wealthy and influential city, but also of Henry, who, destined to be a constant victim of fate, once again fell into the hands of his enemies.[*]

It appears not that Warwick, during his short administration, which had continued only six months, had been guilty of any unpopular act, or had anywise deserved to lose that general favor with which he had so lately overwhelmed Edward. But this prince, who was formerly on the defensive, was now the aggressor; and having overcome the difficulties which always attend the beginnings of an insurrection, possessed many advantages above his enemy: his partisans were actuated by that zeal and courage which the notion of an attack inspires his opponents were intimidated for a like reason; every one who had been disappointed in the hopes which he had entertained from Warwick’s elevation, either became a cool friend or an open enemy to that nobleman; and each malecontent, from whatever cause, proved an accession to Edward’s army. The king, therefore, found himself in a condition to face the earl of Warwick; who, being reënforced by his son-in-law the duke of Clarence, and his brother the marquis of Montague, took post at Barnet, in the neighborhood of London. The arrival of Queen Margaret was every day expected, who would have drawn together all the genuine Lancastrians, and have brought a great accession to Warwick’s forces: but this very consideration proved a motive to the earl rather to hurry on a decisive action than to share the victory with rivals and ancient enemies, who, he foresaw, would, in case of success, claim the chief merit in the enterprise.[**]

It seems that during his brief time in power, which lasted only six months, Warwick hadn’t done anything particularly unpopular or deserving of the loss of the widespread support he had recently enjoyed from Edward. However, this prince, who was once on the defensive, had now taken the offensive; having dealt with the usual challenges of starting an uprising, he held several advantages over his enemy. His supporters were fueled by the excitement and bravery that a direct attack generates, while his opponents felt intimidated for the same reason. Anyone who had felt let down by Warwick’s rise became either a lukewarm ally or an outright enemy of the nobleman, and every dissatisfied individual, for whatever reason, added strength to Edward’s forces. Consequently, the king found himself ready to confront the earl of Warwick, who, reinforced by his son-in-law the duke of Clarence and his brother the marquis of Montague, established his position at Barnet, near London. Queen Margaret’s arrival was expected at any moment, which would have gathered all the true Lancastrians and significantly bolstered Warwick’s army. However, this very fact pushed the earl to expedite a decisive battle rather than share the victory with rivals and old enemies, who he anticipated would claim the primary credit for the success if they won.

     * Grafton, p. 702.

     ** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.
     * Grafton, p. 702.

     ** Comines, book iii, chapter 7.

But while his jealousy was always directed towards that side, he overlooked the dangerous infidelity of friends, who lay the nearest to his bosom. His brother Montague, who had lately temporized, seems now to have remained sincerely attached to the interests of his family: but his son-in-law, though bound to him by every tie of honor and gratitude, though he shared the power of the regency, though he had been invested by Warwick in all the honors and patrimony of the house of York, resolved to fulfil the secret engagements which he had formerly taken with his brother, and to support the interests of his own family: he deserted to the king in the night-time, and carried over a body of twelve thousand men along with him.[*] Warwick was now too far advanced to retreat; and as he rejected with disdain all terms of peace offered him by Edward and Clarence, he was obliged to hazard a general engagement. The battle was fought with obstinacy on both sides: the two armies, in imitation of their leaders displayed uncommon valor; and the victory remained long undecided between them. But an accident threw the balance to the side of the Yorkists. Edward’s cognizance was a sun; that of Warwick a star with rays; and the mistiness of the morning rendering it difficult to distinguish them, the earl of Oxford, who fought on the side of the Lancastrians, was by mistake attacked by his friends, and chased off the field of battle.[**] Warwick, contrary to his more usual practice, engaged that day on foot, resolving to show his army that he meant to share every fortune with them; and he was slain in the thickest of the engagement;[***] his brother underwent the same fate; and as Edward had issued orders not to give any quarter, a great and undistinguished slaughter was made in the pursuit. There fell about one thousand five hundred on the side of the victors.

But while his jealousy was always aimed at that side, he ignored the dangerous disloyalty of friends who were closest to him. His brother Montague, who had recently played it safe, now seemed sincerely committed to the family's interests. However, his son-in-law, despite being bound to him by every tie of honor and gratitude, sharing the power of the regency, and being given all the honors and estate of the house of York by Warwick, decided to honor the secret agreements he had made with his brother and support his own family's interests. He deserted to the king at night and brought with him a force of twelve thousand men. Warwick had advanced too far to turn back; and as he turned down with contempt all peace terms offered by Edward and Clarence, he had no choice but to risk a general engagement. The battle was fought fiercely on both sides: both armies, following the example of their leaders, displayed remarkable courage, and the victory was undecided for a long time. But an accident tipped the scales in favor of the Yorkists. Edward’s emblem was a sun; Warwick’s was a star with rays; and the foggy morning made it hard to tell them apart. The Earl of Oxford, fighting on the Lancastrian side, mistakenly came under attack from his own men and was chased off the battlefield. Warwick, breaking from his usual practice, fought that day on foot, determined to show his army that he would share their fate; he was killed in the thick of the fighting; his brother met the same end; and since Edward had ordered no mercy to be given, there was immense and indiscriminate slaughter in the pursuit. About fifteen hundred fell on the victors' side.

The same day on which this decisive battle was fought,[****] Queen Margaret and her son, now about eighteen years of age, and a young prince of great hopes, landed at Weymouth, supported by a small body of French forces.

The same day this crucial battle took place,[****] Queen Margaret and her son, now around eighteen years old and a promising young prince, arrived in Weymouth, backed by a small group of French troops.

     * Grafton, p 700. Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7. Leland’s
     Collect. vol. ii. p. 505.

     ** Habington, p. 449.

     *** Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.

     **** Leland’s Collect, vol. ii. p. 505.
     * Grafton, p 700. Comines, book iii, chapter 7. Leland’s 
     Collection, vol. ii, p. 505.

     ** Habington, p. 449.

     *** Comines, book iii, chapter 7.

     **** Leland’s Collection, vol. ii, p. 505.

When this princess received intelligence of her husband’s captivity, and of the defeat and death of the earl of Warwick, her courage which had supported her under so many disastrous events, here quite left her; and she immediately foresaw all the dismal consequences of this calamity. At first she took sanctuary in the abbey of Beaulieu;[*] but being encouraged by the appearance of Tudor, earl of Pembroke, and Courtney, earl of Devonshire, of the Lords Wenlock and St. John, with other men of rank, who exhorted her still to hope for success, she resumed her former spirit, and determined to defend to the utmost the ruins of her fallen fortunes. She advanced through the counties of Devon, Somerset, and Glocester, increasing her army on each day’s march; but was at last overtaken by the rapid and expeditious Edward, at Tewkesbury, on the banks of the Severn. The Lancastrians were here totally defeated: the earl of Devonshire and Lord Wenlock were killed in the field: the duke of Somerset, and about twenty other persons of distinction, having taken shelter in a church, were surrounded, dragged out, and immediately beheaded: about three thousand of their side fell in battle: and the army was entirely dispersed.

When this princess learned about her husband’s capture and the defeat and death of the earl of Warwick, her courage, which had helped her through so many disastrous events, completely left her; and she instantly foresaw all the terrible consequences of this disaster. At first, she sought refuge in the abbey of Beaulieu; but encouraged by the presence of Tudor, earl of Pembroke, and Courtney, earl of Devonshire, along with the Lords Wenlock and St. John, and other noblemen, who urged her to still hope for success, she regained her previous spirit and decided to fight to the utmost for the remnants of her fallen fortunes. She moved through the counties of Devon, Somerset, and Gloucester, increasing her army with each day’s march; but she was eventually caught up with by the swift and efficient Edward at Tewkesbury, along the banks of the Severn. The Lancastrians were completely defeated here: the earl of Devonshire and Lord Wenlock were killed in the battle: the duke of Somerset and about twenty other notable figures, who had taken refuge in a church, were surrounded, dragged out, and immediately executed: around three thousand of their side fell in combat: and the army was entirely scattered.

Queen Margaret and her son were taken prisoners, and brought to the king, who asked the prince, after an insulting manner, how he dared to invade his dominions. The young prince, more mindful of his high birth than of his present fortune, replied, that he came thither to claim his just inheritance. The ungenerous Edward, insensible to pity, struck him on the face with his gauntlet; and the dukes of Clarence and Glocester, Lord Hastings, and Sir Thomas Gray, taking the blow as a signal for further violence, hurried the prince into the next apartment, and there despatched him with their daggers.[**] Margaret was thrown into the Tower: King Henry expired in that confinement a few days after the battle of Tewkesbury; but whether he died a natural or violent death is uncertain. It is pretended, and was generally believed, that the duke of Glocester killed him with his own hands:[***] but the universal odium which that prince had incurred, inclined perhaps the nation to aggravate his crimes without any sufficient authority.

Queen Margaret and her son were captured and brought before the king, who, in a mocking tone, asked the prince how he had the audacity to invade his territory. The young prince, more aware of his royal lineage than his current situation, replied that he came to claim his rightful inheritance. The heartless Edward, lacking any compassion, struck him in the face with his gauntlet; and the dukes of Clarence and Glocester, along with Lord Hastings and Sir Thomas Gray, took this blow as a cue for more violence, dragging the prince into the next room and killing him with their daggers.[**] Margaret was imprisoned in the Tower. King Henry died there a few days after the battle of Tewkesbury, but it’s unclear whether he died of natural causes or was killed. It’s said, and widely believed, that the duke of Glocester murdered him himself:[***] however, the widespread hatred that prince faced made the nation perhaps exaggerate his crimes without solid evidence.

     * Hall, fol. 219. Habington, p. 451. Grafton, p. 706. Polyd.
     Virg. p. 528.

     ** Hall, fol. 221. Habington, p. 453. Holingshed, p 688.
     Polyd. Virg. p. 530.

     *** Comines. Hall, fol. 228. Grafton, p. 703.
* Hall, page 219. Habington, page 451. Grafton, page 706. Polyd. Virg. page 528.

** Hall, page 221. Habington, page 453. Holingshed, page 688. Polyd. Virg. page 530.

*** Comines. Hall, page 228. Grafton, page 703.

It is certain, however, that Henry’s death was sudden; and though he labored under an ill state of health, this circumstance, joined to the general manners of the age, gave a natural ground, of suspicion; which was rather increased than diminished by the exposing of his body to public view. That precaution served only to recall many similar instances in the English history, and to suggest the comparison.

It’s clear that Henry’s death was unexpected; and even though he was in poor health, this fact, combined with the way people acted at the time, created a natural suspicion. This suspicion was actually heightened, not lessened, by displaying his body for the public to see. That action only reminded people of many similar cases in English history and invited comparisons.

All the hopes of the house of Lancaster seemed now to be utterly extinguished. Every legitimate prince of that family was dead: almost every great leader of the party had perished in battle or on the scaffold: the earl of Pembroke, who was levying forces in Wales, disbanded his army when he received intelligence of the battle of Tewkesbury; and he fled into Brittany with his nephew, the young earl of Richmond.[*] The bastard of Falconberg, who had levied some forces, and had advanced to London during Edward’s absence, was repulsed; his men deserted him; he was taken prisoner and immediately executed:[**] and peace being now fully restored to the nation, a parliament was summoned, which ratified as usual, all the acts of the victor, and recognized his legal authority.

All the hopes of the House of Lancaster seemed completely gone. Every legitimate prince from that family was dead; almost all the major leaders of the party had either died in battle or been executed. The Earl of Pembroke, who was gathering forces in Wales, disbanded his army when he heard about the battle of Tewkesbury and fled to Brittany with his nephew, the young Earl of Richmond.[*] The bastard of Falconberg, who had raised some troops and advanced to London while Edward was away, was pushed back; his men deserted him, and he was captured and executed right away.[**] With peace now fully restored in the country, a parliament was called, which confirmed all the actions of the victor and recognized his legal authority.

     * Habington, p. 454. Polyd. Virg. p. 531.

     ** Holingshed, p. 689, 690, 693. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 554.
     * Habington, p. 454. Polyd. Virg. p. 531.

     ** Holingshed, p. 689, 690, 693. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 554.

But this prince, who had been so firm, and active, and intrepid during the course of adversity, was still unable to resist the allurements of a prosperous fortune; and he wholly devoted himself, as before, to pleasure and amusement, after he became entirely master of his kingdom, and had no longer any enemy who could give him anxiety or alarm. He recovered, however, by this gay and inoffensive course of life, and by his easy, familiar manners, that popularity which, it is natural to imagine, he had lost by the repeated cruelties exercised upon his enemies; and the example also of his jovial festivity served to abate the former acrimony of faction among his subjects, and to restore the social disposition which had been so long interrupted between the opposite parties. All men seemed to be fully satisfied with the present government; and the memory of past calamities served only to impress the people more strongly with a sense of their allegiance, and with the resolution of never incurring any more the hazard of renewing such direful scenes.

But this prince, who had been so strong, active, and fearless during tough times, still couldn’t resist the temptations of a prosperous life. He threw himself, just like before, into pleasure and fun after taking full control of his kingdom and with no enemies left to worry or frighten him. However, his cheerful and harmless way of living, along with his easygoing manners, helped him regain the popularity that one might think he had lost due to the repeated cruelty towards his enemies. His joyful celebrations also helped to ease the previous bitterness between factions among his subjects and restored the social harmony that had been interrupted for so long. Everyone seemed to be completely satisfied with the current government, and memories of past hardships only reinforced their sense of loyalty and their determination to avoid facing such terrible situations again.

1474.

1474.

But while the king was thus indulging himself in pleasure, he was roused from his lethargy by a prospect of foreign conquests, which, it is probable, his desire of popularity, more than the spirit of ambition, had made him covet. Though he deemed himself little beholden to the duke of Burgundy for the reception which that prince had given him during his exile,[*] the political interests of their states maintained still a close connection between them; and they agreed to unite their arms in making a powerful invasion on France. A league was formed, in which Edward stipulated to pass the seas with an army exceeding ten thousand men, and to invade the French territories: Charles promised to join him with all his forces: the king was to challenge the crown of France, and to obtain at least the provinces of Normandy and Guienne; the duke was to acquire Champaigne and some other territories, and to free all his dominions from the burden of homage to the crown of France: and neither party was to make peace without the consent of the other.[**] They were the more encouraged to hope for success from this league, as the count of St. Pol, constable of France, who was master of St. Quintin and other towns on the Somme, had secretly promised to join them; and there were also hopes of engaging the duke of Brittany to enter into the confederacy.

But while the king was busy enjoying himself, he was stirred from his complacency by the prospect of foreign conquests, which he likely desired more for popularity than out of genuine ambition. Although he felt he owed little to the Duke of Burgundy for the welcome he received during his exile,[*] the political ties between their states kept them closely connected; they agreed to join forces to launch a significant invasion of France. A pact was made, in which Edward committed to crossing the sea with an army of over ten thousand men to invade French territory: Charles promised to support him with all his forces. The king would challenge the French crown and aim to secure at least the provinces of Normandy and Guienne; the duke aimed to gain Champagne and other lands, freeing all his territories from the obligation of homage to the French crown: and neither side was to pursue peace without the other's agreement.[**] They were further encouraged by the prospect of success from this alliance, as the Count of St. Pol, the constable of France, who controlled St. Quintin and other towns along the Somme, had secretly pledged to support them; there were also hopes of getting the Duke of Brittany to join the coalition.

The prospect of a French war was always a sure means of making the parliament open their purses, as far as the habits of that age would permit. They voted the king a tenth of rents, or two shillings in the pound; which must have been very inaccurately levied, since it produced only thirty-one thousand four hundred and sixty pounds; and they added to this supply a whole fifteenth, and three quarters of another;[***] but as the king deemed these sums still unequal to the undertaking, he attempted to levy money by way of benevolence, a kind of exaction which, except during the reigns of Henry III. and Richard II., had not been much practised in former times, and which, though the consent of the parties was pretended to be gained, could not be deemed entirely voluntary.[****]

The threat of a war with France always ensured that parliament would loosen their wallets, at least as much as the customs of that time allowed. They granted the king a tenth of rents, or two shillings for every pound, which must have been poorly assessed, as it only brought in thirty-one thousand four hundred and sixty pounds. They also contributed a full fifteenth, plus three-quarters of another;[***] but the king found these amounts still insufficient for the campaign, so he tried to raise funds through benevolence, a sort of forced levy that, except during the reigns of Henry III and Richard II, hadn't been commonly used in earlier times, and which, although it was claimed that consent was given, couldn't really be considered entirely voluntary.[****]

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi p. 806, 807, 808, etc.

     *** Cotton, p. 696, 700. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 558.

     **** Hall, fol. 226. Habington, p. 461. Grafton, p. 719.
     Fabian, fol. 221.
     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 7.

     ** Rymer, vol. xi p. 806, 807, 808, etc.

     *** Cotton, p. 696, 700. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 558.

     **** Hall, fol. 226. Habington, p. 461. Grafton, p. 719.
     Fabian, fol. 221.

The clauses annexed to the parliamentary grant show sufficiently the spirit of the nation in this respect. The money levied by the fifteenth was not to be put into the king’s hands but to be kept in religious houses; and if the expedition into France should not take place, it was immediately to be refunded to the people. After these grants, the parliament was dissolved, which had sitten near two years and a half, and had undergone several prorogations; a practice not very usual at that time in England.

The clauses attached to the parliamentary grant clearly reflect the nation's sentiment on this issue. The funds raised by the fifteenth weren't meant to go directly to the king; instead, they were to be held in religious institutions. If the planned expedition to France didn't happen, the money was to be returned to the people right away. After these grants, parliament was dissolved, having been in session for almost two and a half years with multiple delays, which was quite uncommon in England at that time.

1475.

1475.

The king passed over to Calais with an army of one thousand five hundred men at arms and fifteen thousand archers, attended by all the chief nobility of England, who, prognosticating future successes from the past, were eager to appear on this great theatre of honor.[*] But all their sanguine hopes were damped when they found, on entering the French territories, that neither did the constable open his gates to them, nor the duke of Burgundy bring them the smallest assistance. That prince, transported by his ardent temper, had carried all his armies to a great distance, and had employed them in wars on the frontiers of Germany, and against the duke of Lorraine: and though he came in person to Edward, and endeavored to apologize for this breach of treaty, there was no prospect that they would be able this campaign to make a conjunction with the English. This circumstance gave great disgust to the king, and inclined him to hearken to those advances which Lewis continually made him for an accommodation.

The king moved to Calais with an army of one thousand five hundred knights and fifteen thousand archers, accompanied by the top nobility of England, who were optimistic about future successes based on past victories and eager to showcase their honor. However, their high hopes were crushed when they entered French territory and found that neither the constable opened his gates to them nor the duke of Burgundy provided any assistance. That prince, driven by his strong emotions, had taken all his armies far away, using them in conflicts on the borders of Germany and against the duke of Lorraine. Although he came personally to Edward and tried to apologize for breaking the treaty, there was no chance they would be able to ally with the English this campaign. This situation greatly displeased the king and made him more receptive to the offers that Lewis was constantly making for a peace agreement.

That monarch, more swayed by political views than by the point of honor, deemed no submissions too mean which might free him from enemies who had proved so formidable to his predecessors, and who, united to so many other enemies, might still shake the well-established government of France. It appears from Comines, that discipline was at this time very imperfect among the English; and that their civil wars, though long continued, yet, being always decided by hasty battles, had still left them ignorant of the improvements which the military art was beginning to receive upon the continent.[**]

That monarch, more influenced by political opinions than by matters of honor, considered no act of submission too low if it could free him from enemies who had been so challenging for his predecessors. These enemies, along with many others, still posed a threat to the well-established government of France. According to Comines, discipline among the English at this time was very lacking; their civil wars, although prolonged, were always resolved through quick battles, leaving them unaware of the advancements in military tactics that were starting to develop on the continent.[**]

     * Comines, liv. iv. chap. 5. This author says, (chap. 11,)
     that the king artfully brought over some of the richest of
     his subjects who, he knew, would be soon tired of the war,
     and would promote all proposals of peace, which he foresaw
     would be soon necessary.

     ** Comines, liv. iv. chap. 5.
     * Comines, liv. iv. chap. 5. This author notes, (chap. 11,) that the king cleverly influenced some of his wealthiest subjects who, he knew, would quickly become weary of the war and would support any peace proposals he anticipated would soon be needed.

     ** Comines, liv. iv. chap. 5.

But as Lewis was sensible that the warlike genius of the people would soon render them excellent soldiers, he was far from despising them for their present want of experience; and he employed all his art to detach them from the alliance of Burgundy. When Edward sent him a herald to claim the crown of France, and to carry him a defiance in case of refusal, so far from answering to [*] this bravado in like haughty terms, he replied with great temper, and even made the herald a considerable present:[**] he took afterwards an opportunity of sending a herald to the English camp; and having given him directions to apply to the Lords Stanley and Howard, who, he heard, were friends to peace, he desired the good offices of these noblemen in promoting an accommodation with their master.[***] As Edward was now fallen into like dispositions, a truce was soon concluded on terms more advantageous than honorable to Lewis. He stipulated to pay Edward immediately seventy-five thousand crowns, on condition that he should withdraw his army from France, and promised to pay him fifty thousand crowns a year during their joint lives: it was added, that the dauphin, when of age, should marry Edward’s eldest daughter.[****] In order to ratify this treaty, the two monarchs agreed to have a personal interview; and for that purpose suitable preparations were made at Pecquigni, near Amiens. A close rail was drawn across a bridge in that place, with no larger intervals than would allow the arm to pass; a precaution against a similar accident to that which befell the duke of Burgundy in his conference with the dauphin at Montereau. Edward and Lewis came to the opposite sides; conferred privately together; and having confirmed their friendship, and interchanged many mutual civilities, they soon after parted.[*****]

But as Lewis realized that the warriors' spirit of the people would soon make them great soldiers, he wasn’t dismissive of their current lack of experience. Instead, he used all his skills to pull them away from the alliance with Burgundy. When Edward sent him a herald to claim the crown of France and to deliver a challenge if he refused, Lewis didn’t respond arrogantly. Instead, he replied calmly and even gave the herald a generous gift. He then took the opportunity to send a herald to the English camp; after instructing him to approach Lords Stanley and Howard, who he knew supported peace, he asked for their help in reaching an agreement with their master. Since Edward was now inclined toward similar sentiments, a truce was quickly established that was more favorable than honorable for Lewis. He agreed to pay Edward seventy-five thousand crowns immediately on the condition that he would withdraw his army from France and promised to pay him fifty thousand crowns a year for as long as they both lived. It was also stated that when the dauphin came of age, he would marry Edward’s eldest daughter. To confirm this treaty, both kings planned to meet in person, and arrangements were made at Pecquigni, near Amiens. A narrow rail was set up across a bridge there, with gaps just wide enough for an arm to pass through, as a precaution against a repeat of the incident that happened to the Duke of Burgundy during his meeting with the dauphin at Montereau. Edward and Lewis met on opposite sides, spoke privately, and after solidifying their friendship and exchanging many polite gestures, they soon parted ways.

     * Comines, liv. iv. chap. 5. Hall, fol. 227.

     ** Comines, liv. iv. chap. 7.

     *** Rymer, vol. xii. p. 17.

     **** Comines, liv, iv, chap. 9.

     * Comines, book iv, chapter 5. Hall, page 227.

     ** Comines, book iv, chapter 7.

     *** Rymer, volume xii, page 17.

     **** Comines, book iv, chapter 9.

Lewis was anxious not only to gain the king’s friendship but also that of the nation, and of all the considerable persons in the English court. He bestowed pensions, to the amount of sixteen thousand crowns a year, on several of the kings, favorites; on Lord Hastings two thousand crowns; on Lora Howard and others in proportion; and these great ministers were not ashamed thus to receive wages from a foreign prince. As the two armies, after the conclusion of the truce remained some time in the neighborhood of each other, the English were not only admitted freely into Amiens, where Lewis resided, but had also their charges defrayed, and had wine and victuals furnished them in every inn, without any payment being demanded. They flocked thither in such multitude that once above nine thousand of them were in the town, and they might have made themselves masters of the king’s person; but Lewis, concluding from their jovial and dissolute manner of living, that they had no bad intentions, was careful not to betray the least sign of fear or jealousy. And when Edward, informed of this disorder, desired him to shut the gates against them, he replied, that he would never agree to exclude the English from the place where he resided; but that Edward, if he pleased, might recall them, and place his own officers at the gates of Amiens to prevent their returning.[*]

Lewis was eager to win not just the king’s friendship, but also that of the nation and all the prominent figures in the English court. He granted pensions totaling sixteen thousand crowns a year to several of the king's favorites; two thousand crowns to Lord Hastings; and various amounts to Lora Howard and others. These high-ranking officials were not embarrassed to accept payments from a foreign prince. Since the two armies remained close by each other after the truce, the English were allowed free access into Amiens, where Lewis was staying. Their expenses were covered, and they were provided with wine and food in every inn without any payment required. They gathered in such large numbers that at one point, over nine thousand of them were in the town, and they could have taken control of the king. However, Lewis, seeing their cheerful and carefree behavior, believed they had no bad intentions and was careful not to show any signs of fear or jealousy. When Edward, hearing about this situation, asked him to close the gates against them, he replied that he would never agree to shut out the English from the place where he lived, but that Edward could choose to recall them and station his own officers at the gates of Amiens to keep them from returning.[*]

Lewis’s desire of confirming a mutual amity with England, engaged him even to make imprudent advances, which it cost him afterwards some pains to evade. In the conference at Pecquigni he had said to Edward, that he wished to have a visit from him at Paris; that he would there endeavor to amuse him with the ladies; and that, in case any offences were then committed, he would assign him the cardinal of Bourbon for confessor, who, from fellow-feeling, would not be over and above severe in the penances which he would enjoin. This hint made deeper impression than Lewis intended. Lord Howard, who accompanied him back to Amiens, told him in confidence that, if he were so disposed it would not be impossible to persuade Edward to take a journey with him to Paris, where they might make merry together. Lewis pretended at first not to hear the offer; but on Howard’s repeating it, he expressed his concern that his wars with the duke of Burgundy would not permit him to attend his royal guest, and do him the honors he intended “Edward,” said he privately to Comines, “is a very handsome and a very amorous prince: some lady at Paris may like him as well as he shall do her; and may invite him to return in another manner. It is better that the sea be between us.”[**]

Lewis’s desire to establish a friendly relationship with England led him to make some impulsive suggestions that he later found difficult to backtrack on. During the meeting at Pecquigni, he told Edward that he would love for him to visit him in Paris; he would try to entertain him with the company of ladies, and if anything inappropriate happened, he would appoint the Cardinal of Bourbon as his confessor, who, out of sympathy, wouldn’t be too harsh with the penances he would impose. This suggestion left a deeper impression on Lewis than he intended. Lord Howard, who was traveling back to Amiens with him, confidentially mentioned that if Lewis were interested, it wouldn’t be hard to convince Edward to take a trip to Paris where they could have a good time together. Lewis initially pretended not to acknowledge the offer, but when Howard brought it up again, he expressed his worry that his conflicts with the Duke of Burgundy would prevent him from properly hosting his royal guest. “Edward,” he said privately to Comines, “is a very attractive and passionate prince; some lady in Paris might like him just as much as he will like her, and could invite him back in a different way. It's better that the sea is between us.”

     * Comines, liv. iv. chap. 9. Hall, fol. 233.

     ** Comines, liv. iv. chap. 10. Habington, p. 469.
     * Comines, book 4, chapter 9. Hall, page 233.

     ** Comines, book 4, chapter 10. Habington, page 469.

This treaty did very little honor to either of these monarchs: it discovered the imprudence of Edward, who had taken his measures so ill with his allies, as to be obliged, after such an expensive armament, to return without making any acquisitions adequate to it: it showed the want of dignity in Lewis who, rather than run the hazard of a battle, agreed to subject his kingdom to a tribute, and thus acknowledge the superiority of a neighboring prince possessed of less power and territory than himself. But as Lewis made interest the sole test of honor, he thought that all the advantages of the treaty were on his side, and that he had overreached Edward, by sending him out of France on such easy terms. For this reason he was very solicitous to conceal his triumph; and he strictly enjoined his courtiers never to show the English the least sign of mockery or derision. But he did not himself very carefully observe so prudent a rule: he could not forbear, one day, in the joy of his heart, throwing out some raillery on the easy simplicity of Edward and his council; when he perceived that he was overheard by a Gascon, who had settled in England. He was immediately sensible of his indiscretion; sent a message to the gentleman; and offered him some advantages in his own country, as engaged him to remain in France. “It is but just,” said he, “that I pay the penalty of my talkativeness.”[*]

This treaty didn't do either of these kings any favors: it revealed Edward's poor judgment in managing his alliances, forcing him to return home after a costly military effort without gaining anything worthwhile. It also showed Lewis's lack of dignity, as he chose to pay tribute rather than risk a battle, thus acknowledging the superiority of a neighboring ruler who had less power and land than he did. However, since Lewis prioritized self-interest over honor, he believed that the treaty favored him and that he had outsmarted Edward by sending him back to England on such favorable terms. Because of this, he was eager to hide his victory and ordered his courtiers never to show the English any hint of mockery or scorn. Yet, he himself didn't strictly follow this wise advice: one day, filled with joy, he couldn't resist making a few jokes about Edward's seemingly naïve simplicity and his council. He soon realized a Gascon, who had settled in England, overheard him. Recognizing his mistake, he sent the man a message, offering him some advantages in his homeland to persuade him to stay in France. “I guess it’s only fair,” he said, “that I face the consequences of my talking.”

     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 10.
     * Comines, liv. iii. chap. 10.

The most honorable part of Lewis’s treaty with Edward was the stipulation for the liberty of Queen Margaret, who, though after the death of her husband and son she could no longer be formidable to government, was still detained in custody by Edward. Lewis paid fifty thousand crowns for her ransom; and that princess, who had been so active on the stage of the world, and who had experienced such a variety of fortune, passed the remainder of her days in tranquility and privacy, till the year 1482, when she died; an admirable princess, but more illustrious by her undaunted spirit in adversity, than by her moderation in prosperity. She seems neither to have enjoyed the virtues, nor been subject to the weaknesses, of her sex; and was as much tainted with the ferocity as endowed with the courage of that barbarous age in which she lived.

The most honorable part of Lewis’s treaty with Edward was the agreement for the freedom of Queen Margaret, who, even after the death of her husband and son, was no longer a threat to the government but was still held captive by Edward. Lewis paid fifty thousand crowns for her release, and that princess, who had been so active in the world and had faced such a wide range of fortunes, spent the rest of her life in peace and privacy until her death in 1482. She was an admirable princess, more renowned for her fearless spirit in tough times than for her restraint in good times. She seemed to neither fully possess the virtues nor succumb to the weaknesses typical of her gender; she exhibited as much savagery as she did bravery, reflecting the barbaric age in which she lived.

Though Edward had so little reason to be satisfied with the conduct of the duke of Burgundy, he reserved to that prince a power of acceding to the treaty of Pecquigni: but Charles, when the offer was made him, haughtily replied, that he was able to support himself without the assistance of England, and that he would make no peace with Lewis till three months after Edward’s return into his own country. This prince possessed all the ambition and courage of a conqueror; but being defective in policy and prudence, qualities no less essential, he was unfortunate in all his enterprises; and perished at last in battle against the Swiss;[*] a people whom he despised, and who, though brave and free, had hitherto been in a manner overlooked in the general system of Europe. This event, which happened in the year 1477, produced a great alteration in the views of all the princes, and was attended with consequences which were felt for many generations. Charles left only one daughter, Mary, by his first wife; and this princess, being heir of his opulent and extensive dominions, was courted by all the potentates of Christendom, who contended for the possession of so rich a prize. Lewis, the head of her family, might, by a proper application, have obtained this match for the dauphin, and have thereby united to the crown of France all the provinces of the Low Countries, together with Burgundy, Artois, and Picardy; which would at once have rendered his kingdom an overmate for all its neighbors. But a man wholly interested is as rare as one entirely endowed with the opposite quality; and Lewis, though impregnable to all the sentiments of generosity and friendship, was, on this occasion, carried from the road of true policy by the passions of animosity and revenge. He had imbibed so deep a hatred to the house of Burgundy, that he rather chose to subdue the princess by arms, than unite her to his family by marriage: he conquered the duchy of Burgundy and that part of Picardy which had been ceded to Philip the Good by the treaty of Arras: but he thereby forced the states of the Netherlands to bestow their sovereign in marriage on Maximilian of Austria, son of the emperor Frederick, from whom they looked for protection in their present distresses: and by these means, France lost the opportunity, which she never could recall, of making that important acquisition of power and territory.

Though Edward had little reason to be pleased with the actions of the duke of Burgundy, he still allowed that prince the option to join the treaty of Pecquigni. However, when Charles was offered this opportunity, he arrogantly responded that he could manage on his own without England's help and would not make peace with Lewis until three months after Edward returned to his own country. This prince had all the ambition and bravery of a conqueror, but he lacked the political savvy and discretion that were equally important, leading to failure in all his endeavors. He ultimately died in battle against the Swiss, a people he dismissed, who, despite being brave and free, had largely been ignored in the broader landscape of Europe. This event, which took place in 1477, significantly changed the perspectives of all the princes and had consequences that were felt for generations. Charles left only one daughter, Mary, from his first marriage, and this princess, being the heir to his wealthy and extensive lands, was sought after by all the powerful leaders of Christendom, who vied for such a valuable prize. Lewis, being the head of her family, could have secured a marriage for the dauphin, which would have brought all the provinces of the Low Countries, along with Burgundy, Artois, and Picardy, under the crown of France, making his kingdom a dominant force against all its neighbors. But a person completely self-interested is as rare as one entirely selfless, and Lewis, though resistant to feelings of generosity and friendship, was led away from true political strategy by his emotions of animosity and revenge. He had developed such a deep hatred for the house of Burgundy that he preferred to conquer the princess through force rather than unite her with his family through marriage. He took over the duchy of Burgundy and that part of Picardy that had been granted to Philip the Good by the treaty of Arras, but in doing so, he forced the states of the Netherlands to marry their sovereign to Maximilian of Austria, the son of Emperor Frederick, whom they looked to for protection in their current troubles. Because of these actions, France lost an opportunity that it would never be able to regain, missing out on a crucial acquisition of power and territory.

During this interesting crisis, Edward was no less defective in policy, and was no less actuated by private passions, unworthy of a sovereign and a statesman. Jealousy of his brother Clarence had caused him to neglect the advances which were made of marrying that prince, now a widower, to the heiress of Burgundy;[**] and he sent her proposals of espousing Anthony, earl of Rivers, brother to his queen, who still retained an entire ascendant over him.

During this intriguing crisis, Edward was just as flawed in his policies, driven by personal passions that were unworthy of a king and a leader. His jealousy of his brother Clarence led him to overlook the offers made to marry that prince, now a widower, to the heiress of Burgundy; and he sent proposals for her to marry Anthony, the earl of Rivers, who was his queen’s brother and still had significant influence over him.

     * Comines, liv. v. chap. 8.

     ** Polyd. Virg. Hall, fol. 240. Holingshed, p. 703.
     Habington p. 474. Grafton, p. 742.
     * Comines, liv. v. chap. 8.

     ** Polyd. Virg. Hall, fol. 240. Holingshed, p. 703. Habington p. 474. Grafton, p. 742.

But the match was rejected with disdain;[*] and Edward, resenting this treatment of his brother-in-law, permitted France to proceed without interruption in her conquests over his defenceless ally. Any pretence sufficed him for abandoning himself entirely to indolence and pleasure, which were now become his ruling passions. The only object which divided his attention was the improving of the public revenue, which had been dilapidated by the necessities or negligence of his predecessors; and some of his expedients for that purpose, though unknown to us, were deemed, during the time, oppressive to the people.[**] The detail of private wrongs naturally escapes the notice of history; but an act of tyranny of which Edward was guilty in his own family, has been taken notice of by all writers, and has met with general and deserved censure.

But the match was dismissed with contempt; and Edward, upset by how his brother-in-law was treated, let France continue its conquests over his defenseless ally without any interruption. Any excuse was good enough for him to sink entirely into laziness and pleasure, which had become his main drives. The only thing that grabbed his attention was improving public revenue, which had been wasted by the needs or carelessness of his predecessors; and some of his methods for doing this, though unknown to us, were considered, at the time, burdensome to the people. The specifics of private injustices often go unnoticed in history; however, a tyrannical act committed by Edward against his own family has been mentioned by all writers and has received widespread and justified criticism.

     * Hall, fol. 240.

     ** Hall, p. 241. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p, 559.
     * Hall, fol. 240.

     ** Hall, p. 241. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p, 559.

The duke of Clarence, by all his services in deserting Warwick, had never been able to regain the king’s friendship, which he had forfeited by his former confederacy with that nobleman. He was still regarded at court as a man of a dangerous and a fickle character; and the imprudent openness and violence of his temper, though it rendered him much less dangerous, tended extremely to multiply his enemies, and to incense them against him. Among others, he had had the misfortune to give displeasure to the queen herself, as well as to his brother, the duke of Glocester, a prince of the deepest policy, of the most unrelenting ambition, and the least scrupulous in the means which he employed for the attainment or his ends. A combination between these potent adversaries being secretly formed against Clarence, it was determined to begin by attacking his friends; in hopes that, if he patiently endured this injury, his pusillanimity would dishonor him in the eyes of the public; if he made resistance, and expressed resentment, his passion would betray him into measures which might give them advantages against him. The king, hunting one day in the park of Thomas Burdet, of Arrow, in Warwickshire, had killed a white buck, which was a great favorite of the owner; and Burdet, vexed at the loss, broke into a passion, and wished the horns of the deer in the belly of the person who had advised the king to commit that insult upon him. This natural expression of resentment, which would have been overlooked or forgotten had it fallen from any other person, was rendered criminal and capital in that gentleman, by the friendship in which he had the misfortune to live with the duke of Clarence; he was tried for his life; the judges and jury were found servile enough to condemn him and he was publicly beheaded at Tyburn for this pretended offence.[*] About the same time, one John Stacey, an ecclesiastic, much connected with the duke as well as with Burdet, was exposed to a like iniquitous and barbarous prosecution. This clergyman, being more learned in mathematics and astronomy than was usual in that age, lay under the imputation of necromancy with the ignorant vulgar; and the court laid hold of this popular rumor to effect his destruction. He was brought to his trial for that imaginary crime; many of the greatest peers countenanced the prosecution by their presence; he was condemned, put to the torture, and executed.[**]

The Duke of Clarence, despite all his efforts to abandon Warwick, never managed to win back the king's friendship, which he lost due to his earlier alliance with that nobleman. He was still seen at court as a person who was both dangerous and unpredictable; his reckless openness and violent temper, while making him less threatening, only increased the number of his enemies and fueled their resentment towards him. Among others, he unfortunately displeased the queen and his brother, the Duke of Gloucester, a prince known for his deep cunning, unyielding ambition, and lack of scruples in the methods he used to achieve his goals. A secret alliance formed between these powerful adversaries against Clarence, and they decided to start by attacking his friends, hoping that if he quietly endured the attacks, his cowardice would disgrace him publicly; if he resisted and showed anger, his emotions would lead him to actions that could be used against him. One day, while hunting in the park of Thomas Burdet of Arrow in Warwickshire, the king killed a white buck that was beloved by its owner. Burdet, upset over the loss, erupted in anger and wished that the horns of the deer would end up in the stomach of the person who advised the king to commit such an insult. This natural display of anger, which would have been ignored or forgotten if it had come from anyone else, became a serious offense for Burdet because of his unfortunate friendship with the Duke of Clarence. He was tried for his life; the judges and jury were servile enough to condemn him, and he was publicly executed at Tyburn for this so-called crime. Around the same time, a man named John Stacey, a clergyman with connections to both the duke and Burdet, faced a similar unjust and brutal prosecution. This clergyman, more knowledgeable in mathematics and astronomy than was common for that era, was accused of necromancy by the ignorant public, and the court seized on this popular rumor to bring about his ruin. He was brought to trial for this nonexistent crime; many of the highest-ranking peers supported the prosecution by their presence; he was condemned, tortured, and executed.

The duke of Clarence was alarmed when he found these acts of tyranny exercised on all around him: he reflected on the fate of the good duke of Glocester, in the last reign, who, after seeing the most infamous pretences employed for the destruction of his nearest connections, at last fell himself a victim to the vengeance of his enemies. But Clarence, instead of securing his own life against the present danger by silence and reserve, was open and loud in justifying the innocence of his friends, and in exclaiming against the iniquity of their prosecutors.

The Duke of Clarence was worried when he saw the tyranny being inflicted on those around him. He thought about what happened to the good Duke of Glocester in the previous reign, who ended up being a victim of his enemies after witnessing the most disgraceful excuses used to destroy his closest allies. However, instead of protecting himself from the current danger by keeping quiet and being cautious, Clarence openly defended the innocence of his friends and loudly condemned the wrongdoing of their accusers.

1478.

1478.

The king, highly offended with his freedom, or using that pretence against him, committed him to the Tower,[***] summoned a parliament, and tried him for his life before the house of peers, the supreme tribunal of the nation.

The king, greatly upset with his freedom, or using that excuse against him, locked him up in the Tower,[***] called a parliament, and put him on trial for his life before the House of Lords, the highest court in the nation.

The duke was accused of arraigning public justice, by maintaining the innocence of men who had been condemned in courts of judicature, and or inveighing against the iniquity of the king, who had given orders for their prosecution.[****]

The duke was accused of undermining public justice by defending the innocence of men who had been sentenced in court and speaking out against the wrongdoing of the king, who had ordered their prosecution.[****]

     * Habington, p. 475. Holingshed, p. 703. Sir Thomas More in
     Kennet, p. 498.

     ** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 561.

     *** Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     **** Stowe, p. 430.
     * Habington, p. 475. Holingshed, p. 703. Sir Thomas More in
     Kennet, p. 498.

     ** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 561.

     *** Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     **** Stowe, p. 430.

Many rash expressions were imputed to him, and some, too, reflecting on Edward’s legitimacy; but he was not accused of any overt act of treason; and even the truth of these speeches may be doubted of, since the liberty of judgment was taken from the court, by the king’s appearing personally as his brother’s accuser,[*] and pleading the cause against him. But a sentence of condemnation, even when this extraordinary circumstance had not place, was a necessary consequence, in those times, of any prosecution by the court or the prevailing party; and the duke of Clarence was pronounced guilty by the peers. The house of commons were no less slavish and unjust: they both petitioned for the execution of the duke, and afterwards passed a bill of attainder against him.[**] The measures of the parliament, during that age, furnish us with examples of a strange contrast of freedom and servility: they scruple to grant, and sometimes refuse, to the king the smallest supplies, the most necessary for the support of government, even the most necessary for the maintenance of wars, for which the nation, as well as the parliament itself, expressed great fondness: but they never scruple to concur in the most flagrant act of injustice or tyranny which falls on any individual, however distinguished by birth or merit. These maxims, so ungenerous, so opposite to all principles of good government, so contrary to the practice of present parliaments, are very remarkable in all the transactions of the English history for more than a century after the period in which we are now engaged.

Many hasty remarks were attributed to him, some even questioning Edward's legitimacy; however, he wasn't accused of any direct act of treason. The truth of these statements can be doubted, since the court's freedom to judge was taken away by the king personally appearing as his brother's accuser and arguing against him. Yet, a guilty verdict was almost inevitable during those times whenever someone was prosecuted by the court or the dominant party; the Duke of Clarence was declared guilty by his peers. The House of Commons was equally submissive and unjust: they both called for the duke's execution and later passed a bill of attainder against him. The actions of parliament during that era provide examples of a strange mix of freedom and subservience: they hesitated to grant the king even the smallest amounts of funding crucial for the government's support, including what was needed for wars that the nation and parliament itself were quite keen on. Yet, they never hesitated to agree on the most blatant acts of injustice or tyranny against any individual, no matter how distinguished by birth or achievement. These uncharitable principles, so contrary to good governance and so unlike the practices of modern parliaments, are very notable in all the dealings of English history for more than a century after the time we are currently discussing.

The only favor which the king granted his brother after his condemnation, was to leave him the choice of his death; and he was privately drowned in a butt of malmsey in the Tower; a whimsical choice, which implies that he had an extraordinary passion for that liquor. The duke left two children by the elder daughter of the earl of Warwick; a son, created an earl by his grandfather’s title, and a daughter, afterwards countess of Salisbury. Both this prince and princess were also unfortunate in their end, and died a violent death; a fate which, for many years, attended almost all the descendants of the royal blood in England. There prevails a report, that a chief source of the violent prosecution of the duke of Clarence, whose name was George, was a current prophecy, that the king’s son should be murdered by one, the initial letter of whose name was G.[***] It is not impossible but, in those ignorant times, such a silly reason might have some influence; but it is more probable that the whole story is the invention of a subsequent period, and founded on the murder of these children by the duke of Glocester. Comines remarks, that at that time the English never were without some superstitious prophecy or other, by which they accounted for every event.

The only favor the king granted his brother after his condemnation was letting him choose how he wanted to die; he was secretly drowned in a barrel of malmsey wine in the Tower, a quirky choice that suggests he had a strong liking for that drink. The duke left behind two children with the elder daughter of the Earl of Warwick: a son, who was made an earl by his grandfather’s title, and a daughter, who later became the Countess of Salisbury. Both the prince and princess also met unfortunate ends, dying a violent death, a fate that affected nearly all the descendants of royal blood in England for many years. There's a rumor that a major reason for the intense prosecution of the Duke of Clarence, whose name was George, was a prophecy claiming that the king’s son would be murdered by someone whose name started with G. It’s possible that in those ignorant times, such a silly reason could have had some impact; however, it's more likely that this whole story was created later and based on the murder of these children by the Duke of Gloucester. Comines pointed out that at that time, the English were always influenced by some superstitious prophecy or another to explain every event.

     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     ** Stowe, p. 430. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     *** Hall, fol. 239. Holingshed, p. 703. Grafton, p. 741.
     Polyd. Virg. p. 537. Sir Thomas More in Kennet, p. 497.
     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     ** Stowe, p. 430. Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 562.

     *** Hall, fol. 239. Holingshed, p. 703. Grafton, p. 741.
     Polyd. Virg. p. 537. Sir Thomas More in Kennet, p. 497.

All the glories of Edward’s reign terminated with the civil wars, where his laurels, too, were extremely sullied with blood, violence, and cruelty. His spirit seems afterwards to have been sunk in indolence and pleasure, or his measures were frustrated by imprudence and the want of foresight. There was no object on which he was more intent than to have all his daughters settled by splendid marriages, though most of these princesses were yet in their infancy, and though the completion of his views, it was obvious, must depend on numberless accidents, which were impossible to be foreseen or prevented. His eldest daughter, Elizabeth, was contracted to the dauphin; his second, Cicely, to the eldest son of James III., king of Scotland; his third, Anne, to Philip, only son of Maximilian and the duchess of Burgundy; his fourth, Catharine, to John, son and heir to Ferdinand, king of Arragon, and Isabella, queen of Castile.[*] None of these projected marriages took place; and the king himself saw in his lifetime the rupture of the first, that with the dauphin, for which he had always discovered a peculiar fondness. Lewis, who paid no regard to treaties or engagements, found his advantage in contracting the dauphin to the princess Margaret, daughter of Maximilian, and the king, notwithstanding his indolence, prepared to revenge the indignity.

All the glories of Edward’s reign ended with the civil wars, during which his achievements were heavily tainted by bloodshed, violence, and cruelty. After that, he seemed to become consumed by laziness and pleasure, or his efforts were thwarted by poor judgment and a lack of foresight. He was particularly focused on arranging lavish marriages for all his daughters, even though most of them were still very young, and it was clear that achieving his goals depended on countless unpredictable events that were impossible to foresee or prevent. His eldest daughter, Elizabeth, was engaged to the dauphin; his second daughter, Cicely, to the eldest son of James III, king of Scotland; his third, Anne, to Philip, the only son of Maximilian and the duchess of Burgundy; and his fourth, Catharine, to John, the son and heir to Ferdinand, king of Aragon, and Isabella, queen of Castile.[*] None of these planned marriages occurred, and the king himself witnessed during his lifetime the breakdown of the first one, with the dauphin, for which he had always shown a special fondness. Lewis, who paid no attention to treaties or commitments, took advantage of the situation by marrying the dauphin to Princess Margaret, daughter of Maximilian, and the king, despite his laziness, prepared to seek revenge for this insult.

     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 110.
     * Rymer, vol. xi. p. 110.

1482.

1482.

The French monarch, eminent for prudence as well as perfidy, endeavored to guard against the blow; and by a proper distribution of presents in the court of Scotland, he incited James to make war upon England. This prince, who lived on bad terms with his own nobility, and whose force was very unequal to the enterprise, levied an army; but when he was ready to enter England, the barons, conspiring against his favorites, put them to death without trial; and the army presently disbanded. The duke of Glocester, attended by the duke of Albany, James’s brother, who had been banished his country, entered Scotland at the head of an army, took Berwick, and obliged the Scots to accept of a peace, by which they resigned that fortress to Edward. This success imboldened the king to think more seriously of a French war; but while he was making preparations for that enterprise, he was seized with a distemper, of which he expired in the forty-second year of his age, and the twenty-third of his reign; a prince more splendid and showy than either prudent or virtuous; brave, though cruel; addicted to pleasure, though capable of activity in great emergencies; and less fitted to prevent ills by wise precautions, than to remedy them, after they took place, by his vigor and enterprise. Besides five daughters, this king left two sons; Edward, prince of Wales, his successor, then in his thirteenth year and Richard, duke of York, in his ninth.

The French king, known for his cleverness as well as his deceit, tried to protect himself from danger; and by distributing gifts at the Scottish court, he encouraged James to go to war against England. This king, who had a rocky relationship with his own nobles and whose forces were not strong enough for the challenge, gathered an army. But just as he was about to invade England, the barons, plotting against his favorites, executed them without a trial, and the army quickly fell apart. The Duke of Gloucester, along with the Duke of Albany, James’s exiled brother, entered Scotland with an army, captured Berwick, and forced the Scots to accept a peace treaty that required them to hand over the fortress to Edward. This victory made the king consider going to war with France more seriously; however, while he was preparing for that campaign, he fell ill and died at the age of forty-two, after ruling for twenty-three years. He was a king more impressive and flashy than wise or virtuous; brave yet cruel; fond of pleasure, though capable of action in critical situations; and better at dealing with problems after they arose than in preventing them through careful planning. Besides five daughters, the king left behind two sons: Edward, Prince of Wales, his successor, who was thirteen at the time, and Richard, Duke of York, who was nine.





CHAPTER XXIII.

1_298_edward5.jpg  Edward V.




EDWARD V. AND RICHARD III.

1483.

1483.

During the latter years of Edward IV., the nation having in a great measure forgotten the bloody feuds between the two roses, and peaceably acquiescing in the established government, was agitated only by some court intrigues, which, being restrained by the authority of the king, seemed nowise to endanger the public tranquillity. These intrigues arose from the perpetual rivalship between two parties; one consisting of the queen and her relations, particularly the earl of Rivers, her brother, and the marquis of Dorset, her son; the other composed of the ancient nobility, who envied the sudden growth and unlimited credit of that aspiring family.[*]

During the later years of Edward IV, the country had largely moved on from the bloody conflicts between the two rose factions and was peacefully accepting the established government, with only a few court intrigues causing any stir. However, these intrigues were kept in check by the king’s authority and didn’t seem to threaten public peace. They stemmed from the ongoing rivalry between two groups: one was made up of the queen and her relatives, especially her brother, the Earl of Rivers, and her son, the Marquis of Dorset; the other consisted of the old nobility, who resented the rapid rise and unchecked influence of that ambitious family.

     * Sir Thomas More. p. 481.
     * Sir Thomas More. p. 481.

At the head of this latter party was the duke of Buckingham, a man of very noble birth, of ample possessions, of great alliances, of shining parts; who, though he had married the queen’s sister, was too haughty to act in subserviency to her inclinations, and aimed rather at maintaining an independent influence and authority. Lord Hastings, the chamberlain, was another leader of the same party; and as this nobleman had, by his bravery and activity, as well as by his approved fidelity, acquired the confidence and favor of his master, he had been able, though with some difficulty, to support himself against the credit of the queen. The lords Howard and Stanley maintained a connection with these two noblemen, and brought a considerable accession of influence and reputation to their party. All the other barons, who had no particular dependence on the queen, adhered to the same interest; and the people in general, from their natural envy against the prevailing power, bore great favor to the cause of these noblemen.

At the forefront of this latter group was the Duke of Buckingham, a man of noble lineage, significant wealth, strong connections, and impressive talents. Even though he married the queen's sister, he was too proud to simply follow her wishes, instead aiming to maintain his own influence and authority. Lord Hastings, the chamberlain, was another leader of this faction; his bravery, activity, and proven loyalty had earned him the trust and favor of his king, allowing him to hold his ground against the queen's influence, despite some challenges. Lords Howard and Stanley were allied with these two nobles, adding considerable influence and reputation to their cause. All the other barons who weren’t particularly dependent on the queen also joined their side, and the general public, motivated by their natural envy towards the dominant power, largely supported the cause of these nobles.

But Edward knew that, though he himself had been able to overawe those rival factions, many disorders might arise from their contests during the minority of his son; and he therefore took care, in his last illness, to summon together several of the leaders on both sides, and by composing their ancient quarrels, to provide, as far as possible, for the future tranquillity of the government. After expressing his intentions, that his brother, the duke of Glocester, then absent in the north, should be intrusted with the regency, he recommended to them peace and unanimity during the tender years of his son; represented to them the dangers which must attend the continuance of their animosities; and engaged them to embrace each other with all the appearance of the most cordial reconciliation. But this temporary or feigned agreement lasted no longer than the king’s life; he had no sooner expired, than the jealousies of the parties broke out afresh; and each of them applied, by separate messages, to the duke of Glocester, and endeavored to acquire his favor and friendship.

But Edward knew that, although he had been able to intimidate those rival factions, many problems could arise from their conflicts during his son's minority. Therefore, during his last illness, he made sure to gather several leaders from both sides and, by resolving their long-standing disputes, to secure, as much as possible, the future peace of the government. After expressing his wishes that his brother, the Duke of Gloucester, who was then away in the north, should be given the regency, he urged them to pursue peace and unity during his son's early years. He pointed out the dangers of continuing their hostilities and encouraged them to greet each other with all the signs of sincere reconciliation. However, this temporary or feigned agreement lasted only as long as the king's life; as soon as he passed away, the rivalries reignited, and each faction sent separate messages to the Duke of Gloucester, trying to win his favor and friendship.

This prince, during his brother’s reign, had endeavored to live on good terms with both parties; and his high birth, his extensive abilities, and his great services, had enabled him to support himself without falling into a dependence on either. But the new situation of affairs, when the supreme power was devolved upon him, immediately changed his measures; and he secretly determined to preserve no longer that neutrality which he had hitherto maintained. His exorbitant ambition, unrestrained by any principle either of justice or humanity; made him carry his views to the possession of the crown itself; and as this object could not be attained without the ruin of the queen and her family, he fell, without hesitation, into concert with the opposite party. But being sensible that the most profound dissimulation was requisite for effecting his criminal purposes, he redoubled his professions of zeal and attachment to that princess; and he gained such credit with her as to influence her conduct in a point which, as it was of the utmost importance, was violently disputed between the opposite factions.

This prince, during his brother’s reign, had tried to maintain good relations with both sides; his noble background, impressive skills, and significant contributions allowed him to stand on his own without depending on anyone. However, the new circumstances, with the highest power now in his hands, quickly shifted his strategy; he secretly decided to abandon the neutrality he had upheld until then. His overwhelming ambition, unchecked by any sense of justice or compassion, drove him to pursue the crown itself; since he couldn't achieve this goal without bringing down the queen and her family, he readily aligned himself with the opposing side. Aware that he needed to be extremely deceptive to carry out his sinister plans, he intensified his displays of loyalty and support for the princess; he earned her trust to the extent that he could sway her decisions on a crucial issue that was hotly contested between the two rival factions.

The young king, at the time of his father’s death, resided in the Castle of Ludlow, on the borders of Wales; whither he had been sent, that the influence of his presence might overawe the Welsh, and restore the tranquillity of that country, which had been disturbed by some late commotions. His person was committed to the care of his uncle, the earl of Rivers, the most accomplished nobleman in England, who, having united an uncommon taste for literature[*] to great abilities in business and valor in the field was entitled by his talents, still more than by nearness of blood, to direct the education of the young monarch. The queen, anxious to preserve that ascendant over her son which she had long maintained over her husband, wrote to the earl of Rivers, that he should levy a body of forces, in order to escort the king to London, to protect him during his coronation, and to keep him from falling into the hands of their enemies.[**] The opposite faction, sensible that Edward was now of an age when great advantages could be made of his name and countenance, and was approaching to the age when he would be legally entitled to exert in person his authority, foresaw that the tendency of this measure was to perpetuate their subjection under their rivals; and they vehemently opposed a resolution which they represented as the signal for renewing a civil war in the kingdom. Lord Hastings threatened to depart instantly to his government of Calais:[**] the other nobles seemed resolute to oppose force by force: and as the duke of Glocester, on pretence of pacifying the quarrel, had declared against all appearance of an armed power, which might be dangerous, and was nowise necessary; the queen, trusting to the sincerity of his friendship, and overawed by so violent an opposition, recalled her orders to her brother, and desired him to bring up no greater retinue than should be necessary to support the state and dignity of the young sovereign.[***]

The young king was living in Ludlow Castle on the Wales border when his father died. He had been sent there to ensure his presence would intimidate the Welsh and restore peace in a country that had recently been disturbed by unrest. His uncle, the Earl of Rivers, the most refined nobleman in England, was responsible for his care. Rivers combined a deep appreciation for literature with great skills in business and bravery in battle, making him more qualified by talent than by blood to guide the young king's education. The queen, eager to maintain the influence she had over her son, which she had previously held over her husband, wrote to the Earl of Rivers, asking him to gather troops to escort the king to London for his coronation and protect him from their enemies. The opposing faction realized that Edward was now at an age when his name and presence could be strategically used and that he was nearing the legal age to wield authority himself. They feared this plan would lead to their continued subservience to their rivals and strongly opposed what they saw as a call for renewed civil war. Lord Hastings threatened to leave for his governance in Calais, while other nobles appeared ready to counter force with force. The Duke of Gloucester, pretending to mediate the conflict, had spoken out against any show of armed power, claiming it was unnecessary and potentially dangerous. Trusting in his supposed friendship and feeling pressured by such intense opposition, the queen retracted her orders to her brother and asked him to bring only as many followers as needed to uphold the young monarch's dignity.

     * This nobleman first introduced the noble art of printing
     into England. Caxton was recommended by him to the patronage
     of Edward IV. See Catalogue of Royal and Noble Authors.

     ** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 564, 565.

     *** Sir Thomas More, p. 483.
* This nobleman was the first to bring the art of printing to England. He recommended Caxton to be supported by Edward IV. See Catalogue of Royal and Noble Authors.

** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 564, 565.

*** Sir Thomas More, p. 483.

The duke of Glocester, meanwhile, set out from York, attended by a numerous train of the northern gentry. When he reached Northampton, he was joined by the duke of Buckingham, who was also attended by a splendid retinue; and as he heard that the king was hourly expected on that road, he resolved to await his arrival, under color of conducting him thence in person to London. The earl of Rivers, apprehensive that the place would be too narrow to contain so many attendants, sent his pupil forward by another road to Stony Stratford; and came himself to Northampton, in order to apologize for this measure, and to pay his respects to the duke of Glocester. He was received with the greatest appearance of cordiality: he passed the evening an an amicable manner with Glocester and Buckingham: he proceeded on the road with them next day to join the king: but as he was entering Stony Stratford, he was arrested by orders from the duke of Glocester:[*] Sir Richard Gray, one of the queen’s sons, was at the same time put under a guard, together with Sir Thomas Vaughan, who possessed a considerable office in the king’s household; and all the prisoners were instantly conducted to Pomfret. Glocester approached the young prince with the greatest demonstrations of respect; and endeavored to satisfy him with regard to the violence committed on his uncle and brother: but Edward, much attached to these near relations, by whom he had been tenderly educated, was not such a master of dissimulation as to conceal his displeasure.[**]

The Duke of Gloucester, meanwhile, set out from York, accompanied by a large group of northern nobility. When he arrived in Northampton, he was joined by the Duke of Buckingham, who also had a grand entourage; and since he heard that the king was expected to arrive on that road at any moment, he decided to wait for him, pretending to escort him to London personally. The Earl of Rivers, worried that the location wouldn’t be able to accommodate so many people, sent his student ahead by another route to Stony Stratford; he then came to Northampton to explain his decision and to pay his respects to the Duke of Gloucester. He was welcomed with great warmth: he spent the evening amicably with Gloucester and Buckingham, and the next day he traveled with them on the road to join the king. However, as he was entering Stony Stratford, he was arrested on orders from the Duke of Gloucester: Sir Richard Gray, one of the queen's sons, was also detained at the same time, along with Sir Thomas Vaughan, who held a significant position in the king’s household; all the prisoners were quickly taken to Pomfret. Gloucester approached the young prince with the utmost respect and tried to reassure him about the forcible actions taken against his uncle and brother: but Edward, who was very close to these family members who had raised him with care, was not skilled enough at hiding his feelings to mask his discontent.

The people, however, were extremely rejoiced at this revolution; and the duke was received in London with the loudest acclamations: but the queen no sooner received intelligence of her brother’s imprisonment, than she foresaw that Glocester’s violence would not stop there, and that her own ruin, if not that of all her children, was finally determined. She therefore fled into the sanctuary of Westminster, attended by the marquis of Dorset; and she carried thither the five princesses, together with the duke of York.[***]

The people, however, were incredibly excited about this revolution; and the duke was welcomed in London with the loudest cheers. But as soon as the queen heard about her brother’s imprisonment, she realized that Glocester’s aggression wouldn’t end there, and that her own downfall, if not that of all her children, was inevitable. She then fled to the sanctuary of Westminster, accompanied by the marquis of Dorset; and she took the five princesses and the duke of York with her.

     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 564, 565.

     ** Sir Thomas More.

     *** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 565.
     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 564, 565.

     ** Sir Thomas More.

     *** Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 565.

She trusted that the ecclesiastical privileges, which had formerly, during the total ruin of her husband and family, given her protection against the fury of the Lancastrian faction, would not now be violated by her brother-in-law, while her son was on the throne; and she resolved to await there the return of better fortune. But Glocester, anxious to have the duke of York in his power, proposed to take him by force from the sanctuary; and he represented to the privy council both the indignity put upon the government by the queen’s ill-grounded apprehensions, and the necessity of the young prince’s appearance at the ensuing coronation of his brother. It was further urged, that ecclesiastical privileges were originally intended only to give protection to unhappy men persecuted for their debts or crimes; and were entirely useless to a person who, by reason of his tender age, could lie under the burden of neither, and who, for the same reason, was utterly incapable of claiming security from any sanctuary. But the two archbishops, Cardinal Bourchier, the primate, and Rotherhand, archbishop of York, protesting against the sacrilege of this measure, it was agreed that they should first endeavor to bring the queen to compliance by persuasion, before any violence should be employed against her. These prelates were persons of known integrity and honor; and being themselves entirely persuaded of the duke’s good intentions, they employed every argument, accompanied with earnest entreaties, exhortations, and assurances, to bring her over to the same opinion. She long continued obstinate, and insisted that the duke of York, by living in the sanctuary, was not only secure himself, but gave security to the king, whose life no one would dare to attempt while his successor and avenger remained in safety. But finding that none supported her in these sentiments, and that force, in case of refusal, was threatened by the council, she at last complied, and produced her son to the two prelates. She was here on a sudden struck with a kind of presage of his future fate: she tenderly embraced him; she bedewed him with her tears; and bidding him an eternal adieu, delivered him, with many expressions of regret and reluctance, into their custody.[*]

She believed that the church's privileges, which had previously protected her during the complete downfall of her husband and family from the wrath of the Lancastrian faction, wouldn't now be violated by her brother-in-law while her son was on the throne. She decided to wait there for better times. However, Glocester, eager to seize control of the duke of York, suggested forcibly taking him from the sanctuary. He informed the privy council about the disrespect shown to the government by the queen's unfounded fears and the necessity of the young prince's presence at his brother's upcoming coronation. It was also argued that church privileges were originally meant to protect unfortunate people persecuted for debts or crimes and were completely ineffective for someone who, due to their young age, was burdened by neither and, for the same reason, was unable to claim safety from any sanctuary. But the two archbishops, Cardinal Bourchier, the primate, and Rotherham, archbishop of York, objected to the sacrilege of this plan, and it was agreed that they would first try to persuade the queen to comply before any force was used against her. These archbishops were known for their integrity and honor; fully believing in the duke’s good intentions, they used every argument, along with heartfelt pleas, encouragement, and reassurances, to change her mind. She remained stubborn for a long time, insisting that the duke of York, by staying in the sanctuary, not only ensured his own safety but also guaranteed the king's safety, since no one would dare to act against him while his successor and avenger remained protected. But seeing that no one supported her stance and that the council threatened her with force if she refused, she eventually yielded and presented her son to the two archbishops. In that moment, she was suddenly struck by a premonition of his future: she embraced him tenderly, wept over him, and bidding him an eternal farewell, reluctantly handed him over to their care with many expressions of sorrow.

The duke of Glocester, being the nearest male of the royal family capable of exercising the government, seemed entitled, by the customs of the realm, to the office of protector; and the council, not waiting for the consent of parliament, made no scruple of investing him with that high dignity.[**]

The Duke of Gloucester, as the closest male relative of the royal family able to take charge of the government, appeared to be entitled, according to the traditions of the kingdom, to the role of protector. The council, without waiting for parliament's approval, had no hesitation in granting him that prestigious position.

     * Sir Thomas More, p. 491.

     ** Hist. Croyl. Cont, p. 566.
     * Sir Thomas More, p. 491.

     ** Hist. Croyl. Cont, p. 566.

The general prejudice entertained by the nobility against the queen and her kindred, occasioned this precipitation and irregularity; and no one foresaw any danger to the succession, much less to the lives of the young princes, from a measure so obvious and so natural. Besides that the duke had hitherto been able to cover, by the most profound dissimulation, his fierce and savage nature, the numerous issue of Edward, together with the two children of Clarence, seemed to be an eternal obstacle to his ambition; and it appeared equally impracticable for him to destroy so many persons possessed of a preferable title, and imprudent to exclude them. But a man who had abandoned all principles of honor and humanity, was soon carried by his predominant passion beyond the reach of fear or precaution; and Glocester, having so far succeeded in his views, no longer hesitated in removing the other obstructions which lay between him and the throne. The death of the earl of Rivers, and of the other prisoners detained in Pomfret, was first determined; and he easily obtained the consent of the duke of Buckingham, as well as of Lord Hastings, to this violent and sanguinary measure. However easy it was, in those times, to procure a sentence against the most innocent person, it appeared still more easy to despatch an enemy without any trial or form of process; and orders were accordingly issued to Sir Richard Ratcliffe, a proper instrument in the hands of this tyrant, to cut off the heads of the prisoners. The protector then assailed the fidelity of Buckingham by all the arguments capable of swaying a vicious mind, which knew no motive of action but interest and ambition. He represented that the execution of persons so nearly related to the king, whom that prince so openly professed to love, and whose fate he so much resented, would never pass unpunished; and all the actors in that scene were bound in prudence to prevent the effects of his future vengeance: that it would be impossible to keep the queen forever at a distance from her son, and equally impossible to prevent her from instilling into his tender mind the thoughts of retaliating, by like executions, the sanguinary insults committed on her family: that the only method of obviating these mischiefs was to put the sceptre in the hands of a man of whose friendship the duke might be assured, and whose years and experience taught him to pay respect to merit and to the rights of ancient nobility: and that the same necessity which had carried them so far in resisting the usurpation of these intruders, must justify them in attempting further innovations, and in making, by national consent, a new settlement of the succession. To these reasons he added the offers of great private advantages to the duke of Buckingham; and he easily obtained from him a promise of supporting him in all his enterprises.

The general bias held by the nobility against the queen and her family led to this hasty and irregular situation; no one anticipated any risk to the succession, let alone to the lives of the young princes, from such an obvious and natural move. Besides the fact that the duke had managed to mask his fierce and brutal nature with deep deceit, Edward’s many children, along with Clarence's two kids, seemed to be an insurmountable barrier to his ambition. It appeared not only impractical for him to eliminate so many people with a stronger claim but also unwise to shut them out. However, a man who had cast aside all notions of honor and humanity was soon driven by his overpowering desires beyond the limits of fear or caution; and Glocester, having made progress toward his goals, no longer hesitated to remove the remaining obstacles between him and the throne. The deaths of the Earl of Rivers and the other prisoners held in Pomfret were first decided; he easily secured the agreement of the Duke of Buckingham and Lord Hastings to this brutal and bloody plan. While it was relatively easy at that time to secure a verdict against the most innocent person, it seemed even simpler to eliminate an enemy without any trial or legal process; thus, orders were issued to Sir Richard Ratcliffe, a fitting tool for this tyrant, to behead the prisoners. The protector then attempted to sway Buckingham’s loyalty with all the arguments that might persuade a corrupt mind, one motivated solely by self-interest and ambition. He argued that executing individuals so closely related to the king, whom that prince openly claimed to love and whose fate he deeply resented, would never go unpunished; and that all participants in this plan had a practical duty to prevent the backlash of future vengeance. He pointed out that it would be impossible to keep the queen away from her son forever, and equally impossible to prevent her from planting thoughts of revenge in his young mind, by suggesting similar retaliatory actions against those who had wronged her family. He claimed that the only way to avoid these troubles was to place the scepter in the hands of a man whose loyalty the duke could trust, and who, due to his age and experience, understood the importance of merit and the rights of the established nobility. He argued that the very necessity which had driven them this far in resisting the usurpation by these outsiders justified them in pursuing further changes and in creating a new arrangement for the succession by national agreement. To these reasons, he added promises of significant personal benefits to the Duke of Buckingham, and he easily secured a commitment from him to back all his endeavors.

The duke of Glocester, knowing the importance of gaining Lord Hastings, sounded at a distance his sentiments, by means of Catesby, a lawyer, who lived in great intimacy with that nobleman; but found him impregnable in his allegiance and fidelity to the children of Edward, who had ever honored him with his friendship.[*] He saw, therefore, that there were no longer any measures to be kept with him; and he determined to ruin utterly the man whom he despaired of engaging to concur in his usurpation. On the very day when Rivers, Gray, and Vaughan were executed, or rather murdered, at Poinfret by the advice of Hastings, the protector summoned a council in the Tower; whither that nobleman, suspecting no design against him, repaired without hesitation.

The Duke of Gloucester, understanding how important it was to win over Lord Hastings, discreetly tried to gauge his feelings through Catesby, a lawyer who was very close to Hastings. However, he found Hastings completely loyal to the children of Edward, who had always valued their friendship. Therefore, he realized there was no point in trying to persuade him, and he decided to completely destroy the man he couldn't convince to support his claim to power. On the same day that Rivers, Gray, and Vaughan were executed—essentially murdered—at Pontefract on Hastings’ advice, the protector called a council meeting in the Tower. Hastings, suspecting nothing was amiss, attended without hesitation.

     * Sir Thomas More. p. 493.
     * Sir Thomas More. p. 493.

The duke of Glocester was capable of committing the most bloody and treacherous murders with the utmost coolness and indifference. On taking his place at the council-table, he appeared in the easiest and most jovial humor imaginable. He seemed to indulge himself in familiar conversation with the counsellors, before they should enter on business, and having paid some compliments to Morton, bishop of Ely, on the good and early strawberries which he raised in his garden at Holborn, he begged the favor of having a dish of them, which that prelate immediately despatched a servant to bring to him. The protector then left the council, as if called away by some other business; but soon after returning with an angry and inflamed countenance, he asked them, what punishment those deserved that had plotted against his life, who was so nearly related to the king, and was intrusted with the administration of government. Hastings replied, that they merited the punishment of traitors. “These traitors,” cried the protector, “are the sorceress, my brother’s wife, and Jane Shore, his mistress, with others their associates: see to what a condition they have reduced me by their incantations and witchcraft:” upon which he laid bare his arm, all shrivelled and decayed. But the counsellors, who knew that this infirmity had attended him from his birth, looked on each other with amazement; and, above all, Lord Hastings, who, as he had since Edward’s death engaged in an intrigue with Jane Shore,[*] 20 was naturally anxious concerning the issue of these extraordinary proceedings.

The Duke of Gloucester was capable of committing the most brutal and treacherous murders with complete calmness and indifference. When he sat down at the council table, he appeared to be in the best and most cheerful mood imaginable. He engaged in casual conversation with the council members before they got to business, and after complimenting Morton, the Bishop of Ely, on the delicious and early strawberries he grew in his garden at Holborn, he asked for a dish of them, which the bishop immediately had a servant fetch for him. The protector then left the council as if called away by some urgent matter; but soon after, he returned with an angry and agitated face, and asked them what punishment those should receive who had plotted against his life, being so closely related to the king and entrusted with the administration of government. Hastings replied that they deserved the punishment of traitors. “These traitors,” shouted the protector, “are the sorceress, my brother’s wife, and Jane Shore, his mistress, along with their accomplices: look at the state they have put me in with their spells and witchcraft.” With that, he bared his arm, which was all shriveled and decayed. But the council members, who knew this condition had been with him since birth, looked at each other in disbelief; especially Lord Hastings, who had been involved with Jane Shore since Edward’s death, was understandably worried about the outcome of these unusual events.

    * See note T, at the end of the volume.
* See note T, at the end of the book.

“Certainly, my lord,” said he, “if they be guilty of these crimes, they deserve the severest punishment.” “And do you reply to me,” exclaimed the protector, “with your ifs and your ands? You are the chief abettor of that witch, Shore: you are yourself a traitor; and I swear by St. Paul, that I will not dine before your head be brought me,” He struck the table with his hand: armed men rushed in at the signal: the counsellors were thrown into the utmost consternation: and one of the guards, as if by accident or mistake, aimed a blow with a pole-axe at Lord Stanley, who, aware of the danger, slunk under the table; and though he saved his life, he received a severe wound in the head, in the protector’s presence. Hastings was seized, was hurried away, and instantly beheaded on a timber-log, which lay in the court of the Tower.[*] Two hours after, a proclamation, well penned, and fairly written, was read to the citizens of London, enumerating his offenses, and apologizing to them, from the suddenness of the discovery, for the sudden execution of that nobleman, who was very popular among them; but the saying of a merchant was much talked of on the occasion, who remarked, that the proclamation was certainly drawn by the spirit of prophecy.[**]

“Of course, my lord,” he replied, “if they are guilty of these crimes, they deserve the harshest punishment.” “And you respond to me,” the protector shouted, “with your ifs and your ands? You are the primary supporter of that witch, Shore; you are a traitor yourself; and I swear by St. Paul, I won’t eat until I have your head!” He slammed his hand on the table: armed men rushed in at his signal; the counselors were thrown into a panic; and one of the guards, as if by accident, swung a poleaxe at Lord Stanley, who, aware of the danger, ducked under the table; and although he saved his life, he received a serious head wound in the presence of the protector. Hastings was captured, hurried away, and immediately beheaded on a timber log that lay in the courtyard of the Tower.[*] Two hours later, a well-written proclamation was read to the citizens of London, detailing his offenses and apologizing to them for the sudden execution of that nobleman, who was quite popular among them; but a merchant’s comment was widely discussed at the time, noting that the proclamation was certainly written by the spirit of prophecy.[**]

     * Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 566.

     ** Sir Thomas More, p. 496.
     * Hist Croyl. Cont. p. 566.

     ** Sir Thomas More, p. 496.

Lord Stanley, the archbishop of York, the bishop of Ely, and other counsellors, were committed prisoners in different chambers of the Tower; and the protector, in order to carry on the farce of his accusations, ordered the goods of Jane Shore to be seized; and he summoned her to answer before the council for sorcery and witchcraft. But as no proofs, which could be received even in that ignorant age, were produced against her, he directed her to be tried in the spiritual court for her adulteries and lewdness; and she did penance in a white sheet in St. Paul’s, before the whole people. This lady was born of reputable parents in London, was well educated, and married to a substantial citizen; but unhappily views of interest, more than the maid’s inclinations, had been consulted in the match, and her mind, though framed for virtue, had proved unable to resist the allurements of Edward, who solicited her favors. But while seduced from her duty by this gay and amorous monarch, she still made herself respectable by her other virtues; and the ascendant which her charms and vivacity long maintained over him, was all employed in acts of beneficence and humanity. She was still forward to oppose calumny, to protect the oppressed, to relieve the indigent; and her good offices, the genuine dictates of her heart, never waited the solicitation of presents, or the hopes of reciprocal services. But she lived not only to feel the bitterness of shame imposed on her by this tyrant, but to experience, in old age and poverty, the ingratitude of those courtiers who had long solicited her friendship, and been protected by her credit. No one, among the great multitudes whom she had obliged, had the humanity to bring her consolation or relief; she languished out her life in solitude and indigence; and amidst a court inured to the most atrocious crimes, the frail ties of this woman justified all violations of friendship towards her, and all neglect of former obligations.

Lord Stanley, the archbishop of York, the bishop of Ely, and other advisors were locked up in different rooms of the Tower. The protector, to continue his act of accusations, ordered Jane Shore's belongings to be taken, and he called her to appear before the council for charges of sorcery and witchcraft. But since there was no evidence, even by the standards of that ignorant time, against her, he had her tried in the spiritual court for her adulteries and immorality; she did penance in a white sheet at St. Paul’s in front of the whole crowd. This woman was born to respectable parents in London, well-educated, and married to a well-off citizen; but unfortunately, interests overrode her feelings in the marriage, and although her character was suited for virtue, she couldn't resist the advances of Edward, who pursued her. However, while she was seduced away from her duties by this charming and flirtatious king, she still managed to maintain respect through her other virtues; the influence her beauty and liveliness had over him was used for acts of kindness and compassion. She was always eager to confront slander, protect the vulnerable, and help the needy; her good deeds, driven by genuine compassion, never waited for gifts or the expectation of favors in return. But she lived not only to endure the shame this tyrant imposed on her, but to suffer, in her old age and poverty, the ingratitude of the courtiers who had long sought her friendship and benefited from her influence. Among the countless people she had helped, no one had the decency to offer her comfort or assistance; she spent her days in loneliness and poverty; and amid a court accustomed to the most horrific crimes, the fragile connections of this woman justified all betrayals of friendship towards her and all disregard for past obligations.

These acts of violence, exercised against all the nearest connections of the late king, prognosticated the severest fate to his defenceless children; and after the murder of Hastings, the protector no longer made a secret of his intentions to usurp the crown. The licentious life of Edward, who was not restrained in his pleasures either by honor or prudence, afforded a pretence for declaring his marriage with the queen invalid, and all his posterity illegitimate. It was asserted that, before espousing the lady Elizabeth Gray, he had paid court to the lady Eleanor Talbot, daughter of the earl of Shrewsbury; and being repulsed by the virtue of that lady, he was obliged, ere he could gratify his desires, to consent to a private marriage, without any witnesses, by Stillington, bishop of Bath, who afterwards divulged the secret.[*]

These acts of violence against the close relatives of the late king hinted at a terrible fate for his defenseless children; and after Hastings was murdered, the protector openly showed his intentions to take the crown for himself. Edward's wild lifestyle, which was not held back by honor or common sense, gave him a reason to claim that his marriage to the queen was invalid and that all his children were illegitimate. It was said that before marrying Lady Elizabeth Gray, he had pursued Lady Eleanor Talbot, the daughter of the Earl of Shrewsbury; and after being rejected by her virtue, he had to agree to a private marriage, without any witnesses, by Stillington, the bishop of Bath, who later revealed the secret.[*]

     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 567. Comines. Sir Thomas More, p.
     482.
     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 567. Comines. Sir Thomas More, p. 482.

It was also maintained that the act of attainder passed against the duke of Clarence, had virtually incapacitated his children from succeeding to the crown; and these two families being set aside, the protector remained the only true and legitimate heir of the house of York. But as it would be difficult, if not impossible, to prove the preceding marriage of the late king, and as the rule which excludes the heirs of an attainted blood from private successions was never extended to the crown, the protector resolved to make use of another plea, still more shameful and scandalous. His partisans were taught to maintain, that both Edward IV. and the duke of Clarence were illegitimate; that the duchess of York had received different lovers into her bed, who were the fathers of these children, that, their resemblance to those gallants was a sufficient proof of their spurious birth; and that the duke of Glocester alone, of all her sons, appeared by his features and countenance to be the true offspring of the duke of York. Nothing can be imagined more impudent than this assertion, which threw so foul an imputation on his own mother, a princess of irreproachable virtue, and then alive; yet the place chosen for first promulgating it was the pulpit, before a large congregation, and in the protector’s presence. Dr. Shaw was appointed to preach in St. Paul’s; and having chosen this passage for his text “Bastards lips shall not thrive,” he enlarged on all the topics which could discredit the birth of Edward IV., the duke of Clarence, and of all their children. He then broke out in a panegyric on the duke of Glocester; and exclaimed, “Behold this excellent prince, the express image of his noble father, the genuine descendant of the house of York; bearing no less in the virtues of his mind than in the features of his countenance the character of the gallant Richard, once your hero and favorite: he alone is entitled to your allegiance: he must deliver you from the dominion of all intruders: he alone can restore the lost glory and honor of the nation.” It was previously concerted, that as the doctor should pronounce these words, the duke of Glocester should enter the church; and it was expected that the audience would cry out, “God save King Richard;” which would immediately have been laid hold of as a popular consent, and interpreted to be the voice of the nation; but by a ridiculous mistake, worthy of the whole scene, the duke did not appear till after this exclamation was already recited by the preacher. The doctor was therefore obliged to repeat his rhetorical figure out of its proper place: the audience, less from the absurd conduct of the discourse than from their detestation of these proceedings, kept a profound silence: and the protector and his preacher were equally abashed at the ill success of their stratagem.

It was also argued that the act of attainder against the Duke of Clarence had effectively disqualified his children from inheriting the crown; and with these two families set aside, the protector was left as the only true and legitimate heir of the House of York. However, since it would be difficult, if not impossible, to prove the late king's previous marriage, and since the rule that bars the heirs of an attainted blood from private successions was never applied to the crown, the protector decided to use another, even more shameful and scandalous argument. His supporters were instructed to claim that both Edward IV and the Duke of Clarence were illegitimate; that the Duchess of York had entertained various lovers, who were the true fathers of these children; that their similarity to those men was enough proof of their illegitimate birth; and that the Duke of Gloucester, among all her sons, was the only one whose features and demeanor truly reflected the Duke of York. Nothing could be more audacious than this claim, which cast such a vile accusation on his own mother, a woman of impeccable virtue, who was still alive; yet it was announced from the pulpit to a large crowd, all in the protector’s presence. Dr. Shaw was chosen to preach at St. Paul’s and selected the phrase "Bastards' lips shall not thrive" as his text. He elaborated on all the points that could discredit the legitimacy of Edward IV, the Duke of Clarence, and all their offspring. He then launched into a eulogy for the Duke of Gloucester, exclaiming, “Behold this excellent prince, the very image of his noble father, the true descendant of the House of York; reflecting not only the virtues of his character but also the features of his countenance, the gallant Richard, once your hero and favorite: he alone deserves your loyalty; he must free you from the control of all intruders; he alone can restore the lost glory and honor of the nation.” It had previously been agreed that as the doctor spoke these words, the Duke of Gloucester would enter the church; they expected the crowd to shout, “God save King Richard,” which would have been taken as popular support and seen as the voice of the nation. However, in a comical blunder befitting the entire situation, the duke did not appear until after this exclamation had already been proclaimed by the preacher. The doctor was therefore forced to repeat his rhetorical flourish out of context: the audience, reacting more to the ridiculousness of the event than to their disdain for the proceedings, remained utterly silent; and both the protector and his preacher were equally embarrassed by the failure of their ploy.

But the duke was too far advanced to recede from his criminal and ambitious purpose. A new expedient was tried to work on the people. The mayor, who was brother to Dr. Shaw, and entirely in the protector’s interests, called an assembly of the citizens; where the duke of Buckingham, who possessed some talents for eloquence, harangued them on the protector’s title to the crown, and displayed those numerous virtues of which he pretended that prince was possessed. He next asked them whether they would have the duke for king; and then stopped, in expectation of hearing the cry, “God save King Richard.” He was surprised to observe them silent; and turning about to the mayor, asked him the reason. The mayor replied, that perhaps they did not understand him. Buckingham then repeated his discourse with some variation. enforced the same topics, asked the same question, and was received with the same silence. “I now see the cause,” said the mayor; “the citizens are not accustomed to be harangued by any but their recorder; and know not how to answer a person of your grace’s quality.” The recorder, Fitz-Williams, was then commanded to repeat the substance of the duke’s speech; but the man, who was averse to the office, took care, throughout his whole discourse, to have it understood that he spoke nothing of himself, and that he only conveyed to them the sense of the duke of Buckingham. Still the audience kept a profound silence. “This is wonderful obstinacy,” cried the duke: “express your meaning, my friends, one way or other: when we apply to you on this occasion, it is merely from the regard which we bear to you. The lords and commons have sufficient authority, without your consent, to appoint a king: but I require you here to declare, in plain terms, whether or not you will have the duke of Glocester for your sovereign.” After all these efforts, some of the meanest apprentices, incited by the protector’s and Buckingham’s servants, raised a feeble cry, “God save King Richard:”[*] the sentiments of the nation were now sufficiently declared: the voice of the people was the voice of God: and Buckingham, with the mayor, hastened to Baynard’s Castle, where the protector then resided, that they might make him a tender of the crown.

But the duke was too invested in his criminal and ambitious plans to turn back. They tried a new tactic to influence the people. The mayor, who was Dr. Shaw's brother and fully aligned with the protector's interests, called a meeting of the citizens. There, the duke of Buckingham, who had some talent for speaking, addressed them about the protector’s claim to the crown and highlighted the many virtues he claimed that prince possessed. He then asked them if they would accept the duke as their king, pausing, expecting to hear the shout, “God save King Richard.” He was surprised when they remained silent, and turning to the mayor, asked him why. The mayor replied that perhaps the citizens didn’t understand him. Buckingham repeated his speech with slight variations, enforced the same points, posed the same question, and was met with the same silence. “I see the issue now,” said the mayor; “the citizens aren’t used to being addressed by anyone other than their recorder, and don’t know how to respond to someone of your grace’s status.” The recorder, Fitz-Williams, was then instructed to summarize the duke’s speech; however, he, who was reluctant to take on the task, made it clear throughout that he was only conveying the duke of Buckingham’s message and not speaking for himself. Still, the audience remained silent. “This is incredible stubbornness,” exclaimed the duke: “Express your thoughts, my friends, one way or another: when we approach you on this matter, it’s solely out of respect. The lords and commons have enough authority, without your approval, to choose a king: but I ask you now to state clearly whether you accept the duke of Gloucester as your ruler.” After all these attempts, a few of the lowest apprentices, spurred on by the protector’s and Buckingham’s followers, let out a weak chant, “God save King Richard:”[*] the feelings of the nation were now sufficiently revealed: the voice of the people was the voice of God: and Buckingham, along with the mayor, rushed to Baynard’s Castle, where the protector was residing, to offer him the crown.

     * Sir Thomas More, p. 496.
     * Sir Thomas More, p. 496.

When Richard was told that a great multitude was in the court, he refused to appear to them, and pretended to be apprehensive for his personal safety; a circumstance taken notice of by Buckingham, who observed to the citizens that the prince was ignorant of the whole design. At last he was persuaded to step forth, but he still kept at some distance; and he asked the meaning of their intrusion and importunity. Buckingham told him that the nation was resolved to have him for king: the protector declared his purpose of maintaining his loyalty to the present sovereign, and exhorted them to adhere to the same resolution. He was told that the people had determined to have another prince; and if he rejected their unanimous voice, they must look out for one who would be more compliant. This argument was too powerful to be resisted: he was prevailed on to accept of the crown: and he thenceforth acted as legitimate and rightful sovereign.

When Richard found out that a huge crowd was in the courtyard, he refused to show himself and pretended to be worried about his safety. Buckingham noticed this and pointed out to the citizens that the prince didn't understand what was really going on. Eventually, he was convinced to come out, but he still kept his distance and asked why they were interrupting him so urgently. Buckingham told him that the people wanted him to be king. The protector insisted on staying loyal to the current ruler and urged them to do the same. They told him that the people had decided they wanted another prince, and if he ignored their unanimous call, they would look for someone who would be more agreeable. This argument was too compelling to resist: he was convinced to accept the crown, and from that point on, he acted as the legitimate and rightful sovereign.

This ridiculous force was soon after followed by a scene truly tragical; the murder of the two young princes. Richard gave orders to Sir Robert Brakenbury, constable of the Tower, to put his nephews to death; but this gentleman, who had sentiments of honor, refused to have any hand in the infamous office. The tyrant then sent for Sir James Tyrrel, who promised obedience: and he ordered Brakenbury to resign to this gentleman the keys and government of the Tower for one night. Tyrre, choosing three associates, Slater, Dighton, and Forest, came in the night-time to the door of the chamber where the princes were lodged; and sending in the assassins he bade them execute their commission, while he himself staid without. They found the young princes in bed, and fallen into a profound sleep. After suffocating them with the bolster and pillows, they showed their naked bodies to Tyrrel, who ordered them to be buried at the foot of the stairs, deep in the ground, under a heap of stones.[*] These circumstances were all confessed by the actors in the following reign; and they were never punished for the crime; probably because Henry, whose maxims of government were extremely arbitrary, desired to establish it as a principle, that the commands of the reigning sovereign ought to justify every enormity in those who paid obedience to them. But there is one circumstance not so easy to be accounted for: it is pretended that Richard, displeased with the indecent manner of burying his nephews, whom he had murdered, gave his chaplain orders to dig up the bodies, and to inter them in consecrated ground; and as the man died soon after, the place of their burial remained unknown, and the bodies could never be found by any search which Henry could make for them. Yet in the reign of Charles II., when there was occasion to remove some stones and to dig in the very spot which was mentioned as the place of their first interment, the bones of two persons were there found, which by their size exactly corresponded to the age of Edward and his brother: they were concluded with certainty to be the remains of those princes, and were interred under a marble monument by orders of King Charles.[**] Perhaps Richard’s chaplain had died before he found an opportunity of executing his master’s commands; and the bodies being supposed to be already removed, a diligent search was not made for them by Henry in the place where they had been buried.

This absurd force was soon followed by a truly tragic scene: the murder of the two young princes. Richard ordered Sir Robert Brakenbury, the constable of the Tower, to kill his nephews; however, this man, who had a sense of honor, refused to take part in the heinous act. The tyrant then called Sir James Tyrrel, who promised to follow orders. He directed Brakenbury to hand over the keys and control of the Tower to Tyrrel for one night. Tyrrel, accompanied by three accomplices—Slater, Dighton, and Forest—came to the door of the chamber where the princes were staying at night. He sent the assassins in and instructed them to carry out their task, while he waited outside. They found the young princes asleep in bed. After suffocating them with the cushions and pillows, they presented the bodies to Tyrrel, who ordered them to be buried at the bottom of the stairs, deep underground, under a pile of stones.[*] All these actions were later confessed by the participants during the subsequent reign, and they were never punished for their crime; probably because Henry, whose governance was extremely arbitrary, wanted to establish the principle that the commands of the ruling sovereign should justify any wrongdoing by those who obeyed. However, there's one detail that's hard to explain: it's said that Richard, unhappy with the improper way his murdered nephews were buried, instructed his chaplain to dig up the bodies and bury them in consecrated ground. When the chaplain died soon after, the burial location remained unknown, and Henry was never able to find the bodies despite searching for them. Yet in the reign of Charles II, when some stones were moved and digging occurred at the site supposedly where they were initially buried, the bones of two individuals were discovered, which matched in size to Edward and his brother's ages. They were conclusively identified as the remains of those princes and were interred under a marble monument by King Charles’s orders.[**] Perhaps Richard’s chaplain passed away before he could carry out his master's orders, and since the bodies were thought to have already been moved, Henry did not conduct an extensive search in the location where they had been buried.

     * Sir Thomas More, p. 501.

     ** Kennet, p. 551.
     * Sir Thomas More, p. 501.

     ** Kennet, p. 551.




CHAPTER XXIII.

1_301_richard3.jpg  Richard III.




RICHARD III.

1483.

1483.

The first acts of Richard’s administration were to bestow rewards on those who had assisted him in usurping the crown, and to gain by favors those who, he thought, were best able to support his future government. Thomas Lord Howard was created duke of Norfolk; Sir Thomas Howard, his son, earl of Surrey; Lord Lovel, a viscount by the same name; even Lord Stanley was set at liberty, and made steward of the household. This nobleman had become obnoxious by his first opposition to Richard’s views, and also by his marrying the countess dowager of Richmond, heir of the Somerset family; but sensible of the necessity of submitting to the present government, he feigned such zeal for Richard’s service, that he was received into favor, and even found means to be intrusted with the most important commands by that politic and jealous tyrant.

The first things Richard did in his reign were to reward those who helped him take the throne and to win over those he thought could best support his future rule. Thomas Lord Howard was made duke of Norfolk; Sir Thomas Howard, his son, became earl of Surrey; Lord Lovel was granted the title of viscount; even Lord Stanley was released and appointed steward of the household. This nobleman had become unpopular due to his initial opposition to Richard's plans and by marrying the countess dowager of Richmond, who was the heir to the Somerset family. However, recognizing the need to adapt to the current government, he pretended to be very committed to Richard’s cause, which allowed him to regain favor and even earn trust for important positions from that crafty and wary tyrant.

But the person who, both from the greatness of his services and the power and splendor of his family, was best entitled to favors under the new government, was the duke of Buckingham; and Richard seemed determined to spare no pains or bounty in securing him to his interests. Buckingham was descended from a daughter of Thomas of Woodstock, duke of Glocester, uncle to Richard II.; and by this pedigree he not only was allied to the royal family, but had claims for dignities as well as estates of a very extensive nature. The duke of Glocester, and Henry, earl of Derby, afterwards Henry IV. had married the two daughters and coheirs of Bohun, earl of Hereford, one of the greatest of the ancient barons, whose immense property came thus to be divided into two shares. One was inherited by the family of Buckingham; the other was united to the crown by the house of Lancaster, and, after the attainder of that royal line, was seized, as legally devolved to them, by the sovereigns of the house of York. The duke of Buckingham laid hold of the present opportunity, and claimed the restitution of that portion of the Hereford estate which had escheated to the crown, as well as of the great office of constable, which had long continued by inheritance in his ancestors of that family. Richard readily complied with these demands, which were probably the price stipulated to Buckingham for his assistance in promoting the usurpation. That nobleman was invested with the office of constable; he received a grant of the estate of Hereford;[*] many other dignities and honors were conferred upon him; and the king thought himself sure of preserving the fidelity of a man whose interests seemed so closely connected with those of the present government.

But the person who, due to his impressive services and the power and prestige of his family, was most deserving of favors under the new government was the Duke of Buckingham; and Richard seemed determined to go all out to secure his loyalty. Buckingham was a descendant of a daughter of Thomas of Woodstock, Duke of Gloucester, who was Richard II's uncle. With this lineage, he was not only related to the royal family but also had substantial claims to nobility and extensive estates. The Duke of Gloucester and Henry, Earl of Derby—who later became Henry IV—had married the two daughters and co-heirs of Bohun, Earl of Hereford, one of the most significant ancient barons. His vast property was thus divided into two shares. One share went to the Buckingham family, while the other was brought under the crown by the House of Lancaster. After the downfall of that royal line, it was legally taken over by the York monarchs. The Duke of Buckingham seized the opportunity and claimed the return of his share of the Hereford estate that had lapsed to the crown, as well as the prestigious office of constable, which had been passed down through his ancestors. Richard readily agreed to these demands, likely as the price for Buckingham's support in securing the power grab. That nobleman was appointed as constable, granted the Hereford estate, and received many other titles and honors; and the king believed he was assured of maintaining the loyalty of someone whose interests seemed so aligned with the current government.

     * Dugdale’s Baron. vol. i. p. 168, 169.
     * Dugdale’s Baron. vol. i. p. 168, 169.

But it was impossible that friendship could long remain inviolate between two men of such corrupt minds as Richard and the duke of Buckingham. Historians ascribe their first rupture to the king’s refusal of making restitution of the Hereford estate; but it is certain from records, that he passed a grant for that purpose, and that the full demands of Buckingham were satisfied in this particular. Perhaps Richard was soon sensible of the danger which might ensue from conferring such an immense property on a man of so turbulent a disposition, and afterwards raised difficulties about the execution of his own grant: perhaps he refused some other demands of Buckingham, whom he found it impossible to gratify for his past services: perhaps he resolved, according to the usual maxim of politicians, to seize the first opportunity of ruining this powerful subject, who had been the principal instrument of his own elevation; and the discovery of this intention begat the first discontent in the duke of Buckingham. However this may be, it is certain that the duke, soon after Richard’s accession, began to form a conspiracy against the government, and attempted to overthrow that usurpation which he himself had so zealously contributed to establish.

But it was impossible for friendship to stay intact for long between two men as corrupt as Richard and the Duke of Buckingham. Historians say their first fallout was due to the king’s refusal to return the Hereford estate; however, records show that he granted that request and the full demands of Buckingham were met in this matter. Perhaps Richard quickly realized the risk of giving such a large property to someone with such a volatile personality, and later created obstacles regarding the execution of his own grant. Maybe he denied other requests from Buckingham, who he found impossible to please for his previous services. Perhaps he decided, following the typical strategy of politicians, to look for the first chance to ruin this powerful figure who had been a key player in his rise to power; the uncovering of this plan likely caused the first discontent in the Duke of Buckingham. Regardless, it’s clear that soon after Richard took the throne, the Duke began to plot against the government and tried to overthrow the very usurpation he had passionately helped establish.

Never was there in any country a usurpation more flagrant than that of Richard, or more repugnant to every principle of justice and public interest. His claim was entirely founded on impudent allegations, never attempted to be proved; some of them incapable of proof, and all of their implying scandalous reflections on his own family, and on the persons with whom he was the most nearly connected. His title was never acknowledged by any national assembly, scarcely even by the lowest populace to whom he appealed; and it had become prevalent merely for want of some person of distinction, who might stand forth against him, and give a voice to those sentiments of general detestation which arose in every bosom. Were men disposed to pardon these violations of public right, the sense of private and domestic duty, which is not to be effaced in the most barbarous times, must have, begotten an abhorrence against him; and have represented the murder of the young and innocent princes, his nephews, with whose protection he had been intrusted, in the most odious colors imaginable. To endure such a bloody usurper seemed to draw disgrace upon the nation, and to be attended with immediate danger to every individual who was distinguished by birth, merit, or services. Such was become the general voice of the people; all parties were united in the same sentiments; and the Lancastrians, so long oppressed, and of late so much discredited, felt their blasted hopes again revive, and anxiously expected the consequences of these extraordinary events. The duke of Buckingham, whose family had been devoted to that interest, and who, by his mother, a daughter of Edmund, duke of Somerset, was allied to the house of Lancaster, was easily induced to espouse the cause of this party, and to endeavor the restoring of it to its ancient superiority. Morton, bishop of Ely, a zealous Lancastrian, whom the king had imprisoned, and had afterwards committed to the custody of Buckingham, encouraged these sentiments; and by his exhortations the duke cast his eye towards the young earl of Richmond, as the only person who could free the nation from the tyranny of the present usurper.[*]

Never has there been a more blatant usurpation in any country than Richard's, nor one more against every principle of justice and public interest. His claim relied entirely on brazen allegations that were never proven; some were impossible to prove, and all reflected badly on his own family and those closest to him. No national assembly ever recognized his title, and hardly even the lowest classes he appealed to. It became widely accepted only because there was no notable figure to stand against him and voice the widespread disgust that everyone felt. Even if people were inclined to overlook these breaches of public right, the sense of private and domestic duty, which can't be erased even in the most barbaric conditions, must have created a deep revulsion against him. The murder of the young and innocent princes, his nephews, whom he was supposed to protect, must have appeared in the most atrocious light. Tolerating such a bloody usurper seemed to bring shame upon the nation and posed immediate danger to anyone distinguished by birth, merit, or service. This was the general sentiment among the people; all factions shared these feelings. The Lancastrians, long oppressed and recently discredited, felt their hopes reignite and anxiously awaited the outcomes of these extraordinary events. The Duke of Buckingham, whose family had been loyal to this cause and who was related to the house of Lancaster through his mother, a daughter of Edmund, Duke of Somerset, was easily convinced to support this faction and work towards restoring its former glory. Morton, Bishop of Ely, a devoted Lancastrian whom the king had imprisoned and later placed in Buckingham's custody, fueled these sentiments, and through his encouragement, the duke turned his attention to the young Earl of Richmond as the only person who could liberate the nation from the tyranny of the current usurper.[*]

     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 568.
     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 568.

Henry, earl of Richmond, was at this time detained in a kind of honorable custody by the duke of Brittany; and his descent, which seemed to give him some pretensions to the crown, had been a great object of jealousy both in the late and in the present reign. John, the first duke of Somerset who was grandson of John of Gaunt, by a spurious branch but legitimated by act of parliament, had left only one daughter, Margaret; and his younger brother, Edmund, had succeeded him in his titles, and in a considerable part of his fortune. Margaret had espoused Edmund, earl of Richmond, half brother of Henry VI., and son of Sir Owen Tudor and Catharine of France, relict of Henry V., and she bore him only one son, who received the name of Henry, and who, after his father’s death, inherited the honors and fortune of Richmond. His mother, being a widow, had espoused in second marriage Sir Henry Stafford, uncle to Buckingham, and after the death of that gentleman, had married Lord Stanley; but had no children by either of these husbands; and her son Henry was thus, in the event of her death, the sole heir of all her fortunes. But this was not the most considerable advantage which he had reason to expect from her succession: he would represent the elder branch of the house of Somerset; he would inherit all the title of that family to the crown; and though its claim, while any legitimate branch subsisted of the house of Lancaster, had always been much disregarded, the zeal of faction, after the death of Henry VI., and the murder of Prince Edward, immediately conferred a weight and consideration upon it.

Henry, Earl of Richmond, was at that time being held in a sort of honorable custody by the Duke of Brittany. His lineage, which gave him some claim to the throne, had been a source of jealousy during both the previous and current reigns. John, the first Duke of Somerset, who was the grandson of John of Gaunt, had a illegitimate line that was legitimized by an act of parliament, leaving only one daughter, Margaret. His younger brother, Edmund, inherited his titles and a significant portion of his wealth. Margaret married Edmund, Earl of Richmond, who was the half-brother of Henry VI and the son of Sir Owen Tudor and Catherine of France, the widow of Henry V. They had one son, also named Henry, who, after his father's death, inherited the honors and fortune of Richmond. Margaret, now a widow, married again to Sir Henry Stafford, uncle to Buckingham, and after his death, she married Lord Stanley; however, she had no children with either of these husbands. Thus, her son Henry was the sole heir to all her wealth in the event of her passing. But this wasn't the most significant advantage he could expect from her inheritance: he would represent the senior branch of the Somerset family; he would inherit all their claims to the crown; and although their claim had been largely overlooked while any legitimate Lancaster branch existed, the fervor of factional politics following Henry VI's death and the murder of Prince Edward immediately gave it weight and importance.

Edward IV., finding that all the Lancastrians had turned their attention towards the young earl of Richmond as the object of their hopes, thought him also worthy of his attention; and pursued him into his retreat in Brittany, whither his uncle, the earl of Pembroke, had carried him, after the battle of Tewkesbury, so fatal to his party. He applied to Francis II., duke of Brittany, who was his ally; a weak, but a good prince; and urged him to deliver up this fugitive, who might be the source of future disturbances in England; but the duke, averse to so dishonorable a proposal, would only consent that, for the security of Edward, the young nobleman should be detained in custody; and he received an annual pension from England for the safe keeping or the subsistence of his prisoner. But towards the end of Edward’s reign, when the kingdom was menaced with a war both from France and Scotland, the anxieties of the English court with regard to Henry were much increased; and Edward made a new proposal to the duke, which covered, under the fairest appearances, the most bloody and treacherous intentions. He pretended that he was desirous of gaining his enemy, and of uniting him to his own family by a marriage with his daughter Elizabeth; and he solicited to have him sent over to England, in order to execute a scheme which would redound so much to his advantage. These pretences, seconded, as is supposed, by bribes to Peter Landais, a corrupt minister, by whom the duke was entirely governed, gained credit with the court of Brittany: Henry was delivered into the hands of the English agents, he was ready to embark; when a suspicion of Edward’s real design was suggested to the duke, who recalled his orders, and thus saved the unhappy youth from the imminent danger which hung over him.

Edward IV realized that all the Lancastrians had turned their hopes toward the young Earl of Richmond, so he decided to pay attention to him as well. He chased him down to his hideout in Brittany, where his uncle, the Earl of Pembroke, had taken him after the disastrous Battle of Tewkesbury for their side. Edward approached Francis II, the Duke of Brittany, who was his ally—though he was weak, he was a good prince—and urged him to hand over this fugitive, who could stir up future troubles in England. However, the duke, opposed to such an dishonorable request, only agreed that, to protect Edward, the young nobleman should be kept in custody. He received an annual allowance from England for the safe keeping or subsistence of his prisoner. As Edward’s reign approached its end, and with the kingdom facing threats of war from both France and Scotland, concerns in the English court about Henry increased significantly. Edward then made a new proposal to the duke, disguised with seemingly honorable intentions but actually harboring deadly and treacherous motives. He claimed he wanted to win over his enemy and unite him to his own family by marrying him to his daughter Elizabeth. He requested that Henry be sent to England to carry out a plan that would be highly beneficial to him. These claims, supposedly supported by bribes to Peter Landais, a corrupt minister who completely controlled the duke, gained favor with the court of Brittany. Henry was handed over to English agents and was ready to board, when a suspicion about Edward’s true intentions was raised with the duke, who then rescinded his orders, thus saving the unfortunate young man from the imminent danger he faced.

These symptoms of continued jealousy in the reigning family of England, both seemed to give some authority to Henry’s pretensions, and made him the object of general favor and compassion, on account of the dangers and persecutions to which he was exposed. The universal detestation of Richard’s conduct turned still more the attention of the nation towards Henry; and as all the descendants of the house of York were either women or minors, he seemed to be the only person from whom the nation could expect the expulsion of the odious and bloody tyrant. But notwithstanding these circumstances, which were so favorable to him, Buckingham and the bishop of Ely well knew that there would still be many obstacles in his way to the throne; and that, though the nation had been much divided between Henry VI. and the duke of York, while present possession and hereditary right stood in opposition to each other, yet as soon as these titles were united in Edward IV., the bulk of the people had come over to the reigning family; and the Lancastrians had extremely decayed, both in numbers and in authority. It was therefore suggested by Morton, and readily assented to by the duke, that the only means of overturning the present usurpation, was to unite the opposite factions, by contracting a marriage between the earl of Richmond and the princess Elizabeth, eldest daughter of King Edward, and thereby blending together the opposite pretensions of their families, which had so long been the source of public disorders and convulsions. They were sensible, that the people were extremely desirous of repose after so many bloody and destructive commotions; that both Yorkists and Lancastrians, who now lay equally under oppression, would embrace this scheme with ardor; and that the prospect of reconciling the two parties, which was in itself so desirable an end, would, when added to the general hatred against the present government, render their cause absolutely invincible. In consequence of these views, the prelate, by means of Reginald Bray, steward to the countess of Rich-* *mond, first opened the project of such a union to that lady; and the plan appeared so advantageous for her son, and at the same time so likely to succeed, that it admitted not of the least hesitation. Dr. Lewis, a Welsh physician, who had access to the queen dowager in her sanctuary, carried the proposals to her, and found that revenge for the murder of her brother and of her three sons, apprehensions for her surviving family, and indignation against her confinement, easily overcame all her prejudices against the house of Lancaster, and procured her approbation of a marriage, to which the age and birth, as well as the present situation of the parties, seemed so naturally to invite them. She secretly borrowed a sum of money in the city, sent it over to the earl of Richmond, required his oath to celebrate the marriage as soon as he should arrive in England, advised him to levy as many foreign forces as possible, and promised to join him on his first appearance, with all the friends and partisans of her family.

These signs of ongoing jealousy within the ruling family of England seemed to validate Henry's claims and made him the focus of widespread support and sympathy due to the dangers and persecution he faced. The public's deep disdain for Richard's actions directed even more attention toward Henry, and since all the heirs of the York family were either women or minors, he appeared to be the only person from whom the country could hope for the removal of the despised and ruthless tyrant. However, despite these favorable conditions, Buckingham and the bishop of Ely knew well that Henry would still face many challenges in his quest for the throne. Although the country had been largely divided between Henry VI and the Duke of York when existing claims and hereditary rights were at odds, once those claims merged under Edward IV, the majority of people had rallied behind the reigning family, leading to a significant decline in the Lancastrians' numbers and influence. Thus, Morton suggested, and the duke readily agreed, that the only way to topple the current usurpation was to unite the opposing factions by arranging a marriage between the Earl of Richmond and Princess Elizabeth, the eldest daughter of King Edward, effectively merging the conflicting claims of their families, which had long been the root of public unrest and turmoil. They recognized that the people were eager for peace after so much bloodshed and destruction, and that both Yorkists and Lancastrians, who found themselves equally oppressed, would enthusiastically support this plan. The aspiration to reconcile the two groups, which was itself a highly desirable goal, combined with the widespread resentment against the current government, would make their cause virtually unstoppable. Following this reasoning, the bishop, through Reginald Bray, the steward to the Countess of Richmond, first presented the idea of this union to her, and the proposal seemed so beneficial for her son and likely to succeed that there was no room for hesitation. Dr. Lewis, a Welsh physician with access to the queen dowager in her sanctuary, conveyed the proposals to her and discovered that her desire for revenge for the murder of her brother and three sons, fears for her remaining family, and anger over her confinement easily overcame any biases she held against the house of Lancaster, leading her to approve the marriage, which appeared so fitting given the ages, backgrounds, and current situations of those involved. She secretly borrowed a sum of money in the city, sent it to the Earl of Richmond, required him to promise that he would marry her daughter as soon as he arrived in England, advised him to gather as many foreign troops as he could, and pledged to support him on his first arrival, alongside all the friends and supporters of her family.

The plan being thus laid upon the solid foundations of good sense and sound policy, it was secretly communicated to the principal persons of both parties in all the counties of England; and a wonderful alacrity appeared in every order of men to forward its success and completion. But it was impossible that so extensive a conspiracy could be conducted in so secret a manner, as entirely to escape the jealous and vigilant eye of Richard; and he soon received intelligence, that his enemies, headed by the duke of Buckingham, were forming some design against his authority. He immediately put himself in a posture of defence, by levying troops in the north; and he summoned the duke to appear at court, in such terms as seemed to promise him a renewal of their former amity. But that nobleman, well acquainted with the barbarity and treachery of Richard, replied only by taking arms in Wales, and giving the signal to his accomplices for a general insurrection in all parts of England. But at that very time there happened to fall such heavy rains, so incessant and continued, as exceeded any known in the memory of man; and the Severn, with the other rivers in that neighborhood, swelled to a height which rendered them impassable, and prevented Buckingham from marching into the heart of England to join his associates. The Welshmen, partly moved by superstition at this extraordinary event, partly distressed by famine in their camp, fell off from him; and Buckingham, finding himself deserted by his followers, put on a disguise, and took shelter in the house of Banister, an old servant of his family. But being detected in his retreat, he was brought to the king at Salisbury; and was instantly executed, according to the summary method practised in that age.[*] The other conspirators, who took arms in four different places, at Exeter, at Salisbury, it Newbury, and at Maidstone, hearing of the duke of Buckingham’s misfortunes, despaired of success, and immediately dispersed themselves.

The plan was built on strong common sense and solid policy, and it was secretly shared with key people from both parties across all the counties of England. There was a remarkable eagerness among everyone to support its success and completion. However, it was impossible for such a large conspiracy to be kept completely under wraps without drawing the watchful eye of Richard. He soon found out that his enemies, led by the Duke of Buckingham, were plotting against his authority. He quickly prepared for defense by raising troops in the north and summoned the duke to court, using language that suggested a renewal of their former friendship. But the duke, fully aware of Richard's brutality and treachery, responded by gathering arms in Wales and signaling his allies for a widespread uprising across England. At that same moment, an unprecedented amount of rain fell, far beyond anything anyone could remember. The Severn and other nearby rivers rose to levels that made them unpassable, preventing Buckingham from marching into England to meet up with his supporters. The Welshmen, partly influenced by superstition about this unusual event and partly suffering from hunger in their camp, abandoned him. Realizing he was deserted, Buckingham disguised himself and sought refuge in the home of Banister, an old family servant. However, he was soon discovered and brought to the king in Salisbury, where he was quickly executed, in line with the swift methods of that era. The other conspirators, who had risen up in four different places—Exeter, Salisbury, Newbury, and Maidstone—upon hearing of Buckingham’s downfall, lost hope for success and immediately scattered.

The marquis of Dorset and the bishop of Ely made their escape beyond sea; many others were equally fortunate; several fell into Richard’s hands, of whom he made some examples. His executions seem not to have been remarkably severe; though we are told of one gentleman, William Colingbourne, who suffered under color of this rebellion, but in reality for a distich of quibbling verses which he had composed against Richard and his ministers.[*]

The marquis of Dorset and the bishop of Ely fled overseas; many others were just as lucky. Several were captured by Richard, who made some examples of them. His executions didn’t seem to be particularly harsh; however, there’s a story about a gentleman named William Colingbourne, who was punished under the pretext of this rebellion, but actually for a couple of clever rhymes he wrote against Richard and his advisors.[*]

     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 568.
       The lines were—

          “The Rat, the Cat, and Lovel that Dog,
           Rule all England under the Hog;”
 
     * Hist. Croyl. Cont. p. 568.
       The lines were—

          “The Rat, the Cat, and Lovel that Dog,
           Control all of England under the Hog;”

The earl of Richmond, in concert with his friends, had set sail from St. Malo’s, carrying on board a body of five thousand men, levied in foreign parts; but his fleet being at first driven back by a storm, he appeared not on the coast of England till after the dispersion of all his friends; and he found himself obliged to return to the court of Brittany.

The Earl of Richmond, along with his friends, had set sail from St. Malo with a crew of five thousand men recruited from abroad. However, his fleet was initially forced back by a storm, so he didn't reach the coast of England until after all his friends had scattered. As a result, he had to return to the court of Brittany.

1484.

1484.

The king, every where triumphant, and fortified by this unsuccessful attempt to dethrone him, ventured at last to summon a parliament; a measure which his crimes and flagrant usurpation had induced him hitherto to decline. Though it was natural that the parliament, in a contest of national parties, should always adhere to the victor, he seems to have apprehended, lest his title, founded on no principle, and supported by no party, might be rejected by that assembly. But his enemies being now at his feet, the parliament had no choice left but to recognize his authority, and acknowledge his right to the crown. His only son, Edward, then a youth of twelve years of age, was created prince of Wales: the duties of tonnage and poundage were granted to the king for life; and Richard, in order to reconcile the nation to his government, passed some popular laws, particularly one alluding to the names of Ratcliffe and Catesby; and to Richard’s arms, which were a boar, against the late practice of extorting money on pretence of benevolence.

The king, triumphant everywhere and bolstered by this failed attempt to oust him, finally decided to call a parliament—a step he had avoided until now because of his crimes and blatant usurpation. While it was expected that the parliament, in a clash of national factions, would always side with the victor, he seemed worried that his claim, which was based on no legitimate principle and had no supporting faction, could be rejected by that assembly. However, with his enemies now defeated, the parliament had no option but to accept his authority and recognize his right to the throne. His only son, Edward, who was just twelve years old, was named Prince of Wales. The duties of tonnage and poundage were granted to the king for life, and Richard, in an effort to win over the nation, enacted some popular laws, particularly one concerning Ratcliffe and Catesby, aimed at countering the recent practice of extorting money under the guise of charity, which featured Richard's emblem, a boar.

All the other measures of the king tended to the same object. Sensible that the only circumstance which could give him security, was to gain the confidence of the Yorkists, he paid court to the queen dowager with such art and address, made such earnest protestations of his sincere good-will and friendship, that this princess, tired of confinement, and despairing of any success from her former projects, ventured to leave her sanctuary, and to put herself and her daughters into the hands of the tyrant. But he soon carried further his views for the establishment of his throne. He had married Anne, the second daughter of the earl of Warwick, and widow of Edward, prince of Wales, whom Richard himself had murdered; but this princess having born him but one son, who died about this time, he considered her as an invincible obstacle to the settlement of his fortune, and he was believed to have carried her off by poison; a crime for which the public could not be supposed to have any solid proof, but which the usual tenor of his conduct made it reasonable to suspect. He now thought it in his power to remove the chief perils which threatened his government. The earl of Richmond, he knew, could never be formidable but from his projected marriage with the princess Elizabeth, the true heir of the crown; and he therefore intended, by means of a papal dispensation, to espouse, himself, this princess, and thus to unite in his own family their contending titles. The queen dowager, eager to recover her lost authority, neither scrupled this alliance, which was very unusual in England, and was regarded as incestuous, nor felt any horror at marrying her daughter to the murderer of her three sons and of her brother: she even joined so farther interests with those of the usurper, that she wrote to all her partisans, and among the rest to her son, the marquis of Dorset, desiring them to withdraw from the earl of Richmond; an injury which the earl could never afterwards forgive: the court of Rome was applied to for a dispensation: Richard thought that he could easily defend himself during the interval, till it arrived; and he had afterwards the agreeable prospect of a full and secure settlement. He flattered himself that the English nation, seeing all danger removed of a disputed succession, would then acquiesce under the dominion of a prince who was of mature years, of great abilities, and of a genius qualified for government; and that they would forgive him all the crimes which he had committed in paving his way to the throne.

All the king's other actions aimed at the same goal. Realizing that the only way to secure his position was to gain the Yorkists' trust, he courted the queen dowager with such skill and charm, making sincere promises of goodwill and friendship, that she, weary of being trapped and disillusioned with her previous plans, dared to leave her safe haven and place herself and her daughters in the hands of the tyrant. However, he soon pushed his plans for solidifying his throne even further. He had married Anne, the second daughter of the Earl of Warwick and widow of Edward, Prince of Wales, whom Richard himself had killed; but since this princess had only given him one son, who died around this time, he viewed her as a major obstacle to securing his future, and it was believed he had poisoned her. There was no solid proof of this crime, but his usual behavior made it reasonable to suspect it. He now felt capable of eliminating the main threats to his rule. He knew the Earl of Richmond would only be a serious threat because of his intended marriage to Princess Elizabeth, the rightful heir to the crown; therefore, he planned to marry her himself, with papal approval, aiming to merge their conflicting titles into his own family. The queen dowager, eager to regain her lost power, had no qualms about this alliance, which was quite rare in England and seen as incestuous, nor did she hesitate to marry her daughter to the killer of her three sons and her brother. She even further aligned her interests with those of the usurper by writing to all her supporters, including her son, the Marquis of Dorset, urging them to distance themselves from the Earl of Richmond; a slight the earl could never forgive. The court of Rome was contacted for a dispensation: Richard believed he could easily defend himself while waiting for its arrival, and he then had the pleasing prospect of a complete and secure settlement. He convinced himself that the English people, seeing all threats of a disputed succession removed, would accept the rule of a prince who was of mature age, highly capable, and suited for governance; and that they would overlook all the crimes he had committed to ascend to the throne.

But the crimes of Richard were so horrid and so shocking to humanity, that the natural sentiments of men, without any political or public views, were sufficient to render his government unstable; and every person of probity and honor was earnest to prevent the sceptre from being any longer polluted by that bloody and faithless hand which held it. All the exiles flocked to the earl of Richmond in Brittany, and exhorted him to hasten his attempt for a new invasion, and to prevent the marriage of the princess Elizabeth, which must prove fatal to all his hopes. The earl, sensible of the urgent necessity, but dreading the treachery of Peter Landais, who had entered into a negotiation with Richard for betraying him, was obliged to attend only to his present safety; and he made his escape to the court of France. The ministers of Charles VIII., who had now succeeded to the throne after the death of his father, Lewis, gave him countenance and protection; and being desirous of raising disturbance to Richard, they secretly encouraged the earl in the levies which he made for the support of his enterprise upon England. The earl of Oxford, whom Richard’s suspicions had thrown into confinement, having made his escape, here joined Henry; and inflamed his ardor for the attempt, by a favorable account which he brought of the dispositions of the English nation, and their universal hatred of Richard’s crimes and usurpation.

But Richard's crimes were so horrific and shocking to humanity that the natural feelings of people, without any political motives, were enough to make his rule unstable; and everyone with integrity and honor was eager to prevent the throne from being tainted any longer by that bloody and untrustworthy hand that held it. All the exiles gathered around the Earl of Richmond in Brittany, urging him to quickly launch a new invasion and to stop the marriage of Princess Elizabeth, which would be disastrous for all his hopes. The Earl, aware of the urgent need but fearing the betrayal from Peter Landais, who had started negotiations with Richard to betray him, had to focus solely on his immediate safety and managed to escape to the court of France. The ministers of Charles VIII, who had recently taken the throne after his father's death, supported and protected him; seeking to create trouble for Richard, they quietly encouraged the Earl in his recruitment efforts for his campaign against England. The Earl of Oxford, who Richard's suspicions had imprisoned, escaped and joined Henry, fueling his passion for the campaign with a positive account of the English public's feelings and their widespread disdain for Richard's crimes and usurpation.

1485.

1485.

The earl of Richmond set sail from Harfleur, in Normandy, with a small army of about two thousand men; and after a navigation of six days, he arrived at Milford Haven, in Wales, where he landed without opposition. He directed his course to that part of the kingdom, in hopes that the Welsh, who regarded him as their countryman, and who had been already prepossessed in favor of his cause by means of the duke of Buckingham, would join his standard, and enable him to make head against the established government. Richard, who knew not in what quarter he might expect the invader, had taken post at Nottingham, in the centre of the kingdom; and having given commissions to different persons in the several counties, whom he empowered to oppose his enemy, he purposed in person to fly, on the first alarm, to the place exposed to danger. Sir Rice ap Thomas and Sir Walter Herbert were intrusted with his authority in Wales; but the former immediately deserted to Henry; the second made but feeble opposition to him; and the earl, advancing towards Shrewsbury, received every day some reënforcement from his partisans. Sir Gilbert Talbot joined him with all the vassals and retainers of the family of Shrewsbury: Sir Thomas Bourchier and Sir Walter Hungerford brought their friends to share his fortunes; and the appearance of men of distinction in his camp made already his cause wear a favorable aspect.

The Earl of Richmond set sail from Harfleur in Normandy with a small army of around two thousand men. After six days at sea, he arrived at Milford Haven in Wales, where he landed without any opposition. He headed towards that part of the kingdom, hoping that the Welsh, who saw him as one of their own and had already been swayed to support his cause through the Duke of Buckingham, would join him and help him stand against the established government. Richard, unsure where the invader might strike, had taken a position at Nottingham in the center of the kingdom. He had given commissions to various individuals in different counties, empowering them to resist his enemy, and he planned to rush to the location under threat at the first sign of danger. Sir Rice ap Thomas and Sir Walter Herbert were given his authority in Wales; however, the former immediately defected to Henry, and the latter offered only weak resistance. The Earl advanced toward Shrewsbury, gaining daily reinforcements from his supporters. Sir Gilbert Talbot joined him with all the vassals and retainers of the Shrewsbury family. Sir Thomas Bourchier and Sir Walter Hungerford brought their followers to share in his fortunes, and the presence of notable figures in his camp already gave his cause a promising outlook.

But the danger to which Richard was chiefly exposed, proceeded not so much from the zeal of his open enemies, as from the infidelity of his pretended friends. Scarce any nobleman of distinction was sincerely attached to his cause, except the duke of Norfolk; and all those who feigned the most loyalty were only watching for an opportunity to betray and desert him. But the persons of whom he entertained the greatest suspicion, were Lord Stanley and his brother Sir William, whose connections with the family of Richmond, notwithstanding their professions of attachment to his person, were never entirely forgotten or overlooked by him. When he empowered Lord Stanley to levy forces, he still retained his eldest son, Lord Strange, as a pledge for his fidelity; and that nobleman was, on this account, obliged to employ great caution and reserve in his proceedings. He raised a powerful body of his friends and retainers in Cheshire and Lancashire, but without openly declaring himself: and though Henry had received secret assurances of his friendly intentions, the armies on both sides knew not what to infer from his equivocal behavior. The two rivals at last approached each other, at Bosworth near Leicester; Henry at the head of six thousand men, Richard with an army of above double the number; and a decisive action was every hour expected between them. Stanley, who commanded above seven thousand men, took care to post himself at Atherstone, not far from the hostile camps; and he made such a disposition as enabled him on occasion to join either party. Richard had too much sagacity not to discover his intentions from these movements; but he kept the secret from his own men for fear of discouraging them: he took not immediate revenge on Stanley’s son, as some of his courtiers advised him; because he hoped that so valuable a pledge would induce the father to prolong still further his ambiguous conduct: and he hastened to decide by arms the quarrel with his competitor; being certain that a victory over the earl of Richmond would enable him to take simple revenge on all his enemies, open and concealed.

But the danger Richard faced mainly came not from the enthusiasm of his open enemies but from the disloyalty of his so-called friends. Almost no significant nobleman was genuinely committed to his cause, except for the Duke of Norfolk; all those who pretended loyalty were just waiting for a chance to betray him. The people he was most suspicious of were Lord Stanley and his brother Sir William, whose ties to the Richmond family, despite their claims of loyalty to him, he never completely forgot or overlooked. When he allowed Lord Stanley to raise forces, he still held his eldest son, Lord Strange, as a guarantee of Stanley's loyalty; as a result, Stanley had to be very careful and reserved in his actions. He gathered a strong group of supporters and followers in Cheshire and Lancashire but did so without openly declaring his side. Although Henry had received secret assurances of Stanley's friendly intentions, neither side's armies knew how to interpret his ambiguous behavior. Eventually, the two rivals met at Bosworth near Leicester; Henry led six thousand men while Richard commanded an army of more than double that number, and a decisive battle was expected at any moment. Stanley, who commanded over seven thousand men, positioned himself at Atherstone, not far from the opposing camps, arranging things so that he could align himself with either side if needed. Richard was too astute not to recognize his intentions from these movements, but he kept this knowledge from his own troops to avoid disheartening them; he refrained from taking immediate revenge on Stanley’s son, as some of his advisors suggested, hoping that such a valuable hostage would make Stanley continue his uncertain stance. He rushed to resolve the conflict with his rival through battle, confident that defeating the Earl of Richmond would allow him to take straightforward revenge on all his enemies, both open and hidden.

The van of Richmond’s army, consisting of archers, was commanded by the earl of Oxford: Sir Gilbert Talbot led the right wing; Sir John Savage the left: the earl himself, accompanied by his uncle the earl of Pembroke, placed himself in the main body. Richard also took post in his main body, and intrusted the command of his van to the duke of Norfolk: as his wings were never engaged, we have not learned the names of the several commanders. Soon after the battle began, Lord Stanley, whose conduct in this whole affair discovers great precaution and abilities, appeared in the field, and declared for the earl of Richmond. This measure, which was unexpected to the men, though not to their leaders, had a proportional effect on both armies: it inspired unusual courage into Henry’s soldiers; it threw Richard’s into dismay and confusion. The intrepid tyrant, sensible of his desperate situation, cast his eye around the field, and descrying his rival at no great distance, he drove against him with fury, in hopes that either Henry’s death or his own would decide the victory between them. He killed with his own hands Sir William Brandon, standard-bearer to the earl: he dismounted Sir John Cheyney: he was now within reach of Richmond himself, who declined not the combat, when Sir William Stanley, breaking in with his troops, surrounded Richard, who, fighting bravely to the last moment, was overwhelmed by numbers, and perished by a fate too mild and honorable for his multiplied and detestable enormities. His men every where sought for safety by flight.

The rear of Richmond’s army, made up of archers, was led by the Earl of Oxford: Sir Gilbert Talbot commanded the right wing; Sir John Savage took the left; and the earl himself, along with his uncle the Earl of Pembroke, positioned himself in the main body. Richard also took his place in the main body, handing command of his rear to the Duke of Norfolk. Since his wings were never engaged, we don't have the names of the several commanders. Shortly after the battle started, Lord Stanley, whose actions throughout this whole situation show great caution and skill, appeared on the field and pledged his support to the Earl of Richmond. This move, unexpected for the troops though anticipated by their leaders, had a significant impact on both armies: it instilled unusual courage in Henry’s soldiers and caused dismay and chaos among Richard’s. The fearless tyrant, aware of his dire situation, surveyed the battlefield and spotted his rival not far away. He charged toward him furiously, hoping that either Henry’s death or his own would determine the outcome. He killed Sir William Brandon, the earl’s standard-bearer, with his own hands, and he knocked Sir John Cheyney off his horse. He was now close enough to Richmond himself, who did not shy away from the fight, when Sir William Stanley, coming in with his troops, surrounded Richard. After fighting valiantly until the end, Richard was overwhelmed by sheer numbers and met a fate far too mild and honorable for his numerous and abhorrent crimes. His men everywhere sought safety in flight.

There fell in this battle about four thousand of the vanquished; and among these the duke of Norfolk, Lord Ferrars of Chartley, Sir Richard Ratcliffe, Sir Robert Piercy, and Sir Robert Brackenbury. The loss was inconsiderable on the side of the victors. Sir William Catesby, a great instrument of Richard’s crimes, was taken, and soon after beheaded, with some others, at Leicester. The body of Richard was found in the field, covered with dead enemies, and all besmeared with blood: it was thrown carelessly across a horse; was carried to Leicester amidst the shouts of the insulting spectators; and was interred in the Gray Friars’ church of that place.

In this battle, about four thousand of the defeated were killed, including the Duke of Norfolk, Lord Ferrars of Chartley, Sir Richard Ratcliffe, Sir Robert Piercy, and Sir Robert Brackenbury. The victors suffered only minor losses. Sir William Catesby, a major accomplice in Richard's crimes, was captured and soon beheaded, along with a few others, in Leicester. Richard's body was found on the battlefield, covered with fallen enemies and smeared with blood; it was carelessly thrown over a horse, carried to Leicester amid the taunts of the crowd, and buried in the Gray Friars' church there.

The historians who favor Richard (for even this tyrant has met with partisans among the later writers) maintain, that he was well qualified for government, had he legally obtained it; and that he committed no crimes but such as were necessary to procure him possession of the crown: but this is a poor apology, when it is confessed, that he was ready to commit the most horrid crimes which appeared necessary for that purpose; and it is certain, that all his courage and capacity, qualities in which he really seems not to have been deficient, would never have made compensation to the people for the danger of the precedent, and for the contagious example of vice and murder exalted upon the throne. This prince was of a small stature, humpbacked, and had a harsh, disagreeable countenance; so that his body was in every particular no less deformed than his mind.

The historians who support Richard (even this tyrant has found supporters among later writers) argue that he was well-suited for leadership, had he come to power legally; and that he committed no crimes except those necessary to claim the throne. However, this is a weak justification, considering that he was willing to commit the most atrocious acts he thought necessary for that aim. It's clear that all his bravery and skills—qualities in which he truly didn't seem to be lacking—could never compensate the people for the danger of the precedent he set, nor for the damaging example of vice and murder being elevated to the throne. This king was short, hunchbacked, and had a harsh, unpleasant appearance; in every way, his body was as deformed as his mind.


Thus have we pursued the history of England through a series of many barbarous ages, till we have at last reached the dawn of civility and science, and have the prospect, both of greater certainty in our historical narrations, and of being able to present to the reader a spectacle more worthy of his attention. The want of certainty, however, and of circumstances, is not unlike to be complained of throughout every period of this long narration. This island possesses many ancient historians of good credit, as well as many historical monuments; and it is rare, that the annals of so uncultivated a people as were the English, as well as the other European nations after the decline of Roman learning, have been transmitted to posterity so complete, and with so little mixture of falsehood and of fable. This advantage we owe entirely to the clergy of the church of Rome; who, founding their authority on their superior knowledge, preserved the precious literature of antiquity from a total extinction;[*] 21 and, under shelter of their numerous privileges and immunities, acquired a security by means of the superstition, which they would in vain have claimed from the justice and humanity of those turbulent and licentious ages.

Thus, we have followed the history of England through a long series of barbaric times until we finally reached the beginning of civility and science, and now we have the chance to present both more accurate historical accounts and a narrative that deserves the reader's attention. However, the lack of certainty and details is likely to be a recurring issue throughout this lengthy narrative. This island has many ancient historians of good reputation, as well as numerous historical monuments; it's rare for the records of such an uncultivated people as the English and other European nations after the decline of Roman learning to have been passed down so completely and with so little mix of falsehood and myth. We owe this advantage entirely to the clergy of the Roman Church, who, by establishing their authority based on their greater knowledge, preserved the valuable literature of the past from complete extinction;[*] 21 and, under the protection of their many privileges and immunities, they gained security through the superstition that they would have struggled to obtain from the justice and humanity of those chaotic and lawless times.

     * See note U, at the end of the volume
* See note U, at the end of the volume

Nor is the spectacle altogether unentertaining and uninstructive, which the history of those times presents to us. The view of human manners, in all their variety of appearances, is both profitable and agreeable; and if the aspect in some periods seem horrid and deformed, we may thence learn to cherish with the greater anxiety that science and civility, which has so close a connection with virtue and humanity, and which, as it is a sovereign antidote against superstition, is also the most effectual remedy against vice and disorders of every kind.

The events of that time are certainly not dull or lacking in lessons. Observing human behavior in all its various forms is both useful and enjoyable; and even if some aspects from certain periods appear shocking and ugly, it reminds us to value science and civility even more, as they are closely linked to virtue and humanity. These are powerful antidotes to superstition and the most effective remedies for all kinds of vice and disorder.

The rise, progress, perfection, and decline of art and science, are curious objects of contemplation, and intimately connected with a narration of civil transactions. The events of no particular period can be fully accounted for, but by considering the degrees of advancement which men have reached in those particulars.

The rise, development, mastery, and fall of art and science are interesting topics to think about and are closely linked to the story of societal events. The happenings of any specific time can’t be completely understood without looking at the levels of progress people have achieved in these areas.

Those who cast their eye on the general revolutions of society, will find that, as almost all improvements of the human mind had reached nearly to their state of perfection about the age of Augustus, there was a sensible decline from that point or period; and men thenceforth relapsed gradually into ignorance and barbarism. The unlimited extent of the Roman empire, and the consequent despotism of its monarchs, extinguished all emulation, debased the generous spirits of men, and depressed that noble flame by which all the refined arts must be cherished and enlivened. The military government, which soon succeeded, rendered even the lives and properties of men insecure and precarious; and proved destructive to those vulgar and more necessary arts of agriculture, manufactures, and commerce; and, in the end, to the military art and genius itself, by which alone the immense fabric of the empire could be supported. The irruption of the barbarous nations which soon followed, overwhelmed all human knowledge, which was already far in its decline; and men sunk every age deeper into ignorance, stupidity, and superstition; till the light of ancient science and history had very nearly suffered a total extinction in all the European nations.

Those who look at the overall changes in society will see that almost all advancements in human thought reached their peak around the time of Augustus, after which there was a noticeable decline. From that point on, people gradually fell back into ignorance and barbarism. The vastness of the Roman Empire and the resulting tyranny of its rulers stifled ambition, degraded the noble spirit of people, and dampened the vital passion that supports all the fine arts. The military rule that soon took over made the lives and properties of individuals unsafe and precarious, harming essential activities like farming, manufacturing, and trade; ultimately damaging the very military skill and spirit needed to sustain the massive structure of the Empire. The invasion of barbarian nations that followed overwhelmed the already declining human knowledge, causing people to sink further into ignorance, dullness, and superstition, until the legacy of ancient science and history nearly vanished entirely across Europe.

But there is a point of depression, as well as of exaltation, from which human affairs naturally return in a contrary direction, and beyond which they seldom pass either in their advancement or decline. The period in which the people of Christendom were the lowest sunk in ignorance, and consequently in disorders of every kind, may justly be fixed at the eleventh century, about the age of William the Conqueror; and from that era the sun of science, beginning to reascend, threw out many gleams of light, which preceded the full morning when letters were revived in the fifteenth century. The Danes and other northern people, who had so long infested all the coasts, and even the island parts of Europe, by their depredations, having now learned the arts of tillage and agriculture, found a certain subsistence at home, and were no longer tempted to desert their industry, in order to seek a precarious livelihood by rapine and by the plunder of their neighbors. The feudal governments also, among the more southern nations, were reduced to a kind of system; and though that strange species of civil polity was ill fitted to insure either liberty or tranquillity, it was preferable to the universal license and disorder which had every where preceded it. But perhaps there was no event which tended further to the improvement of the age, than one which has not been much remarked, the accidental finding of a copy of Justinian’s Pandects, about the year 1130, in the town of Amalfi, in Italy.

But there’s a point of both low and high emotion from which human affairs naturally move in the opposite direction, and beyond which they rarely go in their progress or decline. The time when the people of Christendom were at their lowest in ignorance, and therefore in chaos of all kinds, can rightly be set in the eleventh century, around the time of William the Conqueror. From that era, the sun of knowledge began to rise again, casting out many beams of light that preceded the full dawn of the revival of learning in the fifteenth century. The Danes and other northern peoples, who had long plagued the coasts and even the islands of Europe with their raids, having now learned farming and agriculture, found sustenance at home and were no longer tempted to abandon their work for a risky life of theft and plundering their neighbors. The feudal governments among the more southern nations were also organized into a sort of system; and although this strange form of civil government wasn’t well-suited to guarantee either freedom or peace, it was still better than the widespread chaos and disorder that had existed before. But perhaps the most significant event contributing to the improvement of the age, although it hasn’t been widely noted, was the accidental discovery of a copy of Justinian’s Pandects around the year 1130 in the town of Amalfi, Italy.

The ecclesiastics, who had leisure, and some inclination to study, immediately adopted with zeal this excellent system of jurisprudence, and spread the knowledge of it throughout every part of Europe. Besides the intrinsic merit of the performance, it was recommended to them by its original connection with the imperial city of Rome, which, being the seat of their religion, seemed to acquire a new lustre and authority by the diffusion of its laws over the western world. In less than ten years after the discovery of the Pandects, Vacarius, under the protection of Theobald, archbishop of Canterbury, read public lectures of civil law in the university of Oxford; and the clergy every where, by their example as well as exhortation, were the means of diffusing the highest esteem for this new science. That order of men, having large possessions to defend, was in a manner necessitated to turn their studies towards the law; and their properties being often endangered by the violence of the princes and barons, it became their interest to enforce the observance of general and equitable rules, from which alone they could receive protection. As they possessed all the knowledge of the age, and were alone acquainted with the habits of thinking, the practice as well as science of the law fell mostly into their hands: and though the close connection which, without any necessity, they formed between the canon and civil law, begat a jealousy in the laity of England, and prevented the Roman jurisprudence from becoming the municipal law of the country, as was the case in many states of Europe, a great part of it was secretly transferred into the practice of the courts of justice, and the imitation of their neighbors made the English gradually endeavor to raise their own law from its original state of rudeness and imperfection.

The clergy, who had some free time and a bit of interest in studying, eagerly embraced this great system of law and spread its knowledge throughout Europe. Apart from the inherent quality of the work, it was praised for its original ties to the imperial city of Rome, which, being the center of their faith, seemed to gain new prestige and authority with the spread of its laws across the western world. In less than ten years after the discovery of the Pandects, Vacarius, supported by Theobald, the archbishop of Canterbury, began giving public lectures on civil law at the University of Oxford; and the clergy everywhere, through their example and encouragement, helped foster a high regard for this new field. That group, having substantial properties to protect, felt compelled to focus their studies on the law, as their assets were often threatened by the actions of princes and barons, making it in their interest to uphold common and fair rules that could offer them safety. Since they had all the knowledge of their time and were the only ones familiar with legal thinking, they took charge of both the practice and the study of law. Although the unnecessary close link they created between canon and civil law caused some suspicion among the laity in England and prevented Roman law from becoming the official law of the land, as it did in many European countries, a significant portion of it was quietly incorporated into the functioning of the courts, and the influence of their neighbors gradually pushed the English to improve their own legal system from its primitive and flawed beginnings.

It is easy to see what advantages Europe must have reaped by its inheriting at once from the ancients so complete an art, which was also so necessary for giving security to all other arts, and which by refining, and still more by bestowing solidity on the judgment, served as a model to further improvements. The sensible utility of the Roman law, both to public and private interest, recommended the study of it, at a time when the more exalted and speculative sciences carried no charms with them; and thus the last branch of ancient literature which remained uncorrupted, was happily the first transmitted to the modern world. For it is remarkable, that in the decline of Roman learning, when the philosophers were universally infected with superstition and sophistry, and the poets and historians with barbarism, the lawyers, who in other countries are seldom models of science or politeness, were yet able, by the constant study and close imitation of their predecessors, to maintain the same good sense in their decisions and reasonings, and the same purity in their language and expression.

It’s clear what benefits Europe gained from inheriting such a complete art from the ancients, which was crucial for ensuring the security of all other arts. This art not only refined skills but also strengthened judgment, serving as a model for further advancements. The practical value of Roman law, both for public and private interests, made it appealing to study at a time when more lofty and theoretical sciences lacked attraction. Consequently, the last aspect of ancient literature that remained intact was fortunately the first to be passed down to the modern world. It’s noteworthy that during the decline of Roman scholarship, while philosophers were largely affected by superstition and deception, and poets and historians fell into barbarism, the lawyers—who in other countries are rarely seen as paragons of knowledge or civility—were still able, through constant study and close imitation of their forebears, to uphold sound judgment in their decisions and reasoning, as well as maintain purity in their language and expression.

What bestowed an additional merit on the civil law, was the extreme imperfection of that jurisprudence which preceded it among all the European nations, especially among the Saxons or ancient English. The absurdities which prevailed at that time in the administration of justice, may be conceived from the authentic monuments which remain of the ancient Saxon laws; where a pecuniary commutation was received for every crime, where stated prices were fixed for men’s lives and members, where private revenges were authorized for all injuries, where the use of the ordeal, corsnet, and afterwards of the duel, was the received method of proof, and where the judges were rustic freeholders, assembled of a sudden, and deciding a cause from one debate or altercation of the parties. Such a state of society was very little advanced beyond the rude state of nature: violence universally prevailed, instead of general and equitable maxims: the pretended liberty of the times was only an incapacity of submitting to government: and men, not protected by law in their lives and properties, sought shelter, by their personal servitude and attachments, under some powerful chieftain, or by voluntary combinations.

What added to the value of civil law was the severe inadequacy of the legal systems that came before it in all European nations, especially among the Saxons or ancient English. The absurdities that existed at that time in the justice system can be understood from the actual records that survive of the ancient Saxon laws; where a monetary compensation was accepted for every crime, where fixed prices were set for lives and body parts, where personal revenge was permitted for all injuries, where the ordeal, corsnet, and later the duel were accepted methods of proof, and where judges were local landowners who gathered spontaneously and decided cases based on a single discussion or argument between the parties. Such a state of society was only slightly more advanced than a primitive existence: violence was common instead of fair and just principles; the so-called freedom of the times was merely an inability to submit to authority; and people, lacking legal protection for their lives and property, sought safety through personal servitude and loyalty to a powerful leader or through voluntary alliances.

The gradual progress of improvement raised the Europeans somewhat above this uncultivated state; and affairs, in this island particularly, took early a turn which was more favorable to justice and to liberty. Civil employments and occupations soon became honorable among the English: the situation of that people rendered not the perpetual attention to wars so necessary as among their neighbors, and all regard was not confined to the military profession: the gentry, and even the nobility, began to deem an acquaintance with the law a necessary part of education: they were less diverted than afterwards from studies of this kind by other sciences; and in the age of Henry VI., as we are told by Fortescue, there were in the inns of court about two thousand students, most of them men of honorable birth, who gave application to this branch of civil knowledge: a circumstance which proves, that a considerable progress was already made in the science of government, and which prognosticated a still greater.

The gradual progress of improvement lifted Europeans a bit above this uncivilized state; and in this island in particular, things started to shift toward a better respect for justice and liberty. Civil jobs and roles quickly became respectable among the English: the circumstances of the people meant that constant attention to warfare wasn't as necessary as for their neighbors, and focus wasn't solely on the military profession. The gentry, and even the nobility, began to see knowledge of the law as a key part of education. They were less distracted than later generations by other subjects; and during the time of Henry VI, as noted by Fortescue, there were about two thousand students in the inns of court, most of whom were from honorable backgrounds, dedicated to this area of civil knowledge. This reflects significant progress already made in governance and hinted at even greater advancements ahead.

One chief advantage which resulted from the introduction and progress of the arts, was the introduction and progress of freedom; and this consequence affected men both in their personal and civil capacities.

One major benefit that came from the development and advancement of the arts was the emergence and growth of freedom; and this effect influenced people in both their personal and civil lives.

If we consider the ancient state of Europe, we shall find, that the far greater part of the society were every where bereaved of their personal liberty, and lived entirely at the will of their masters. Every one that was not noble, was a slave: the peasants were sold along with the land: the few inhabitants of cities were not in a better condition: even the gentry themselves were subjected to a long train of subordination under the greater barons or chief vassals of the crown; who, though seemingly placed in a high state of splendor, yet, having but a slender protection from law, were exposed to every tempest of the state, and, by the precarious condition in which they lived, paid dearly for the power of oppressing and tyrannizing over their inferiors. The first incident which broke in upon this violent system of government, was the practice, begun in Italy, and imitated in France, of erecting communities and corporations, endowed with privileges and a separate municipal government, which gave them protection against the tyranny of the barons, and which the prince himself deemed it prudent to respect.[*]

If we look at Europe in the past, we’ll see that the vast majority of society lacked personal freedom and lived completely under the control of their masters. Anyone who wasn’t noble was a slave; peasants were sold with the land; and the few city dwellers were in no better position. Even the gentry were subject to a long hierarchy beneath the greater barons or principal vassals of the crown, who, although appearing to live in luxury, had minimal legal protection and were vulnerable to political upheaval. Their unstable situation came at a high cost, as they paid dearly for the ability to oppress and dominate their subordinates. The first disruption to this brutal system of governance occurred with the establishment of communities and corporations, which began in Italy and were copied in France. These entities were granted privileges and a distinct municipal government, offering them protection against the barons’ tyranny, which the prince himself found wise to honor.

     * There appear early symptoms of the jealousy entertained by
     the barons against the progress of the arts, as destructive
     of their licentious power. A law was enacted, 7 Kenry IV.
     chap. 17, prohibiting any one who did not possess twenty
     shillings a year in land from binding his sons apprentices
     to any trade. They found already that the cities began to
     drain the country of the laborers and husbandmen: and did
     not foresee how much the increase of commerce would increase
     the value of their estates. See further, Cotton, p. 179. The
     kings, to encourage the boroughs, granted them this
     privilege, that any villein who had lived a twelvemonth in
     any corporation, and had been of the guild, should be
     thenceforth regarded as free.
* Early signs of jealousy from the barons towards the advancement of the arts emerged, as they saw it as a threat to their unchecked power. A law was passed, 7 Kenry IV. chap. 17, that prohibited anyone without an annual income of twenty shillings from binding their sons as apprentices to any trade. They were already noticing how the cities were starting to drain the countryside of workers and farmers and didn't realize how much the growth of commerce would raise the value of their estates. See further, Cotton, p. 179. To encourage the boroughs, the kings granted them the privilege that any villein who had lived for a year in any corporation and had been part of the guild would thereafter be considered free.

The relaxation of the feudal tenures, and an execution somewhat stricter of the public law, bestowed an independence on vassals which was unknown to their forefathers. And even the peasants themselves, though later than other orders of the state, made their escape from those bonds of villenage or slavery in which they had formerly been retained.

The loosening of feudal obligations and a more rigorous enforcement of public law granted vassals a level of independence that their ancestors had never experienced. Even the peasants, though later than other social classes, broke free from the ties of serfdom or slavery that had previously confined them.

It may appear strange that the progress of the arts, which seems, among the Greeks and Romans, to have daily increased the number of slaves, should, in later times, have proved so general a source of liberty; but this difference in the events proceeded from a great difference in the circumstances which attended those institutions. The ancient barons, obliged to maintain themselves continually in a military posture, and little emulous of elegance or splendor, employed not their villains as domestic servants, much less as manufacturers; but composed their retinue of freemen, whose military spirit rendered the chieftain formidable to his neighbors, and who were ready to attend him in every warlike enterprise. The villains were entirely occupied in the cultivation of their master’s land, and paid their rents either in corn and cattle, and other produce of the farm, or in servile offices, which they performed about the baron’s family, and upon the farms which he retained in his own possession. In proportion as agriculture improved and money increased, it was found that these services, though extremely burdensome to the villain, were of little advantage to the master; and that the produce of a large estate could be much more conveniently disposed of by the peasants themselves, who raised it, than by the landlord or his bailiff, who were formerly accustomed to receive it. A commutation was therefore made of rents for services, and of money-rents for those in kind; and as men, in a subsequent age, discovered that farms were better cultivated where the farmer enjoyed a security in his possession, the practice of granting leases to the peasant began to prevail, which entirely broke the bonds of servitude, already much relaxed from the former practices. After this manner villenage went gradually into disuse throughout the more civilized parts of Europe: the interest of the master, as well as that of the slave, concurred in this alteration. The latest laws which we find in England for enforcing or regulating this species of servitude, were enacted in the reign of Henry VII. And though the ancient statutes on this subject remain still unrepealed by parliament, it appears that before the end of Elizabeth, the distinction of villain and freeman was totally, though insensibly abolished, and that no person remained in the state, to whom the former laws could be applied.

It might seem odd that the advancement of the arts, which seemed to increase the number of slaves among the Greeks and Romans daily, later became such a widespread source of freedom. However, this difference in outcomes stemmed from significant variations in the circumstances surrounding those institutions. The ancient barons, who needed to keep themselves constantly ready for war and cared little for elegance or luxury, did not use their serfs as household servants, let alone as craftsmen; instead, they surrounded themselves with free men whose warrior spirit made the chieftain a force to be reckoned with and who were willing to join him in every military effort. The serfs were fully engaged in farming their master’s land and paid their rents either in grain, livestock, and other farm produce, or through menial tasks they conducted within the baron’s household and on the lands he personally farmed. As agriculture improved and money became more prevalent, it turned out that these services, while very taxing for the serf, offered little benefit to the master. The output of a large estate could be managed much more effectively by the peasants themselves, who produced it, than by the landlord or his steward, who were previously in charge of collecting it. Consequently, a shift occurred from paying rents in services to paying them in money, and as people later realized that farms were better tended when the farmer had security in his ownership, the practice of leasing land to peasants started to take off, which ultimately dismantled the bonds of servitude that had already been greatly loosened compared to previous times. In this way, serfdom gradually fell out of use across the more developed parts of Europe: the interests of both the master and the serf aligned in this change. The last laws we find in England aimed at enforcing or regulating this type of servitude were enacted during the reign of Henry VII. Although the old statutes on this topic still remain in the parliamentary records, it appears that by the end of Elizabeth's reign, the division between serf and free man had been completely, though quietly, abolished, and no one remained in a state to whom the earlier laws could be applied.

Thus personal freedom became almost general in Europe; an advantage which paved the way for the increase of political or civil liberty, and which, even where it was not attended with this salutary effect, served to give the members of the community some of the most considerable advantages of it.

Thus personal freedom became almost universal in Europe; a benefit that laid the groundwork for the growth of political or civil liberty, and which, even when it didn't lead to this positive outcome, still provided community members with some of its most significant advantages.

The constitution of the English government, ever since the invasion of this island by the Saxons, may boast of this pre-eminence, that in no age the will of the monarch was ever entirely absolute and uncontrolled; but in other respects the balance of power has extremely shifted among the several orders of the state; and this fabric has experienced the same mutability that has attended all human institutions.

The structure of the English government, since the Saxons invaded this island, can proudly claim that at no point has the monarch's will been completely absolute and unchecked; however, the distribution of power among the various levels of the state has changed significantly over time, and this system has gone through the same changes that affect all human institutions.

The ancient Saxons, like the other German nations, where each individual was inured to arms, and where the independence of men was secured by a great equality of possessions, seem to have admitted a considerable mixture of democracy into their form of government, and to have been one of the freest nations of which there remains any account in the records of history. After this tribe was settled in England, especially after the dissolution of the heptarchy, the great extent of the kingdom produced a great inequality in property; and the balance seems to have inclined to the side of aristocracy. The Norman conquest threw more authority into the hands of the sovereign, which, however, admitted of great control; though derived less from the general forms of the constitution, which were inaccurate and irregular, than from the independent power enjoyed by each baron in his particular district or province. The establishment of the Great Charter exalted still higher the aristocracy, imposed regular limits on royal power, and gradually introduced some mixture of democracy into the constitution. But even during this period, from the accession of Edward I. to the death of Richard III., the condition of the commons was nowise eligible: a kind of Polish aristocracy prevailed; and though the kings were limited, the people were as yet far from being free. It required the authority almost absolute of the sovereigns, which took place in the subsequent period, to pull down those disorderly and licentious tyrants, who were equally averse from peace and from freedom, and to establish that regular execution of the laws, which, in a following age, enabled the people to erect a regular and equitable plan of liberty. In each of these successive alterations, the only rule of government which is intelligible, or carries any authority with it, is the established practice of the age, and the maxims of administration which are at that time prevalent and universally assented to. Those who, from a pretended respect to antiquity, appeal at every turn to an original plan of the constitution, only cover their turbulent spirit and their private ambition under the appearance of venerable forms; and whatever period they pitch on for their model, they may still be carried back to a more ancient period, where they will find the measures of power entirely different, and where every circumstance, by reason of the greater barbarity of the times, will appear still less worthy of imitation. Above all, a civilized nation like the English, who have happily established the most perfect and most accurate system of liberty that was ever found compatible with government, ought to be cautious in appealing to the practice of their ancestors, or regarding the maxims of uncultivated ages as certain rules for their present conduct. An acquaintance with the ancient periods of their government is chiefly useful, by instructing them to cherish their present constitution, from a comparison or contrast with the condition of those distant times. And it is also curious, by showing them the remote, and commonly faint and disfigured originals of the most finished and most noble institutions, and by instructing them in the great mixture of accident, which commonly concurs with a small ingredient of wisdom and foresight, in erecting the complicated fabric of the most perfect government.

The ancient Saxons, like other Germanic nations, where everyone was trained for battle and where personal freedom was ensured by a fairly equal distribution of resources, seemed to incorporate quite a bit of democracy into their government structure, making them one of the most liberated nations documented in history. Once this tribe settled in England, especially after the end of the heptarchy, the vastness of the kingdom led to a significant disparity in wealth, which tilted the balance toward aristocracy. The Norman conquest centralized more power in the hands of the monarch, though this power was still subject to considerable oversight; it was less a product of the overall constitution, which was unclear and irregular, and more from the independent authority each baron had in their own region. The establishment of the Magna Carta further elevated the aristocracy, set clear boundaries on royal authority, and gradually introduced some democratic elements into the governance structure. However, even during this time, from the beginning of Edward I's reign to Richard III's death, the common people's condition was hardly ideal: a kind of Polish-style aristocracy dominated; and although the kings' powers were limited, the populace was still far from free. It took nearly absolute authority from the monarchs in the later period to eliminate those chaotic and unruly tyrants, who were equally opposed to both peace and freedom, and to set up a consistent enforcement of laws that eventually allowed the people to create a structured and fair system of liberty. In each of these changes, the only clear rule of governance that carries any weight is the established practices of the time and the administrative principles that were then recognized and accepted by all. Those who, under the guise of honoring tradition, often refer back to an original constitutional blueprint simply mask their disruptive tendencies and personal ambitions behind the facade of venerable customs; and whatever era they choose as their model, they can always find older times where power dynamics were wholly different, and where every aspect, due to the greater barbarity of those days, will seem even less worthy of emulation. Above all, a civilized nation like the English, which has successfully created the most complete and precise system of freedom that can coexist with governance, should be careful in invoking the practices of their ancestors or treating the principles from less developed times as definitive guidelines for modern behavior. Understanding the ancient periods of their government is mainly useful for encouraging them to value their current system by comparing it to those distant eras. It is also curious because it reveals the remote, often distorted origins of their most refined and admirable institutions, illustrating the significant role that chance typically plays alongside a small amount of wisdom and foresight in building the complex structure of an ideal government.





NOTES.

1 (return)
[ NOTE A, p. 86. Rymer, vol. ii. p. 26, 845. There cannot be the least question, that the homage usually paid by the kings of Scotland was not for their crown, but for some other territory. The only question remains, what that territory was. It was not always for the earldom of Huntingdon, nor the honor of Penryth; because we find it sometimes done at a time when these possessions were not in the hands of the kings of Scotland. It is probable that the homage was performed in general terms, without any particular specification of territory; and this inaccuracy had proceeded either from some dispute between the two kings about the territory and some opposite claims, which were compromised by the general homage, or from the simplicity of the age, which employed few words in every transaction. To prove this, we need but look into the letter of King Richard, where he resigns the homage of Scotland, reserving the usual homage. His words are, “Sæpedictus W. Rex ligius homo noster deveniat de omnibus terris de quibus antecessores sui antecessorum nostrorum ligii homines fuerunt, et nobis atque hæredibus nostris fidelitatem jurarunt.” Rymer, vol. i. p. 65. These general terms were probably copied from the usual form of the homage itself.

It is no proof that the kings of Scotland possessed no lands or baronies in England, because we cannot find them in the imperfect histories and records of that age. For instance, it clearly appears from another passage of this very letter of Richard, that the Scottish king held lands both in the county of Huntingdon and elsewhere in England; though the earldom of Huntingdon itself was then in the person of his brother David; and we know at present of no other baronies which William held. It cannot be expected that we should now be able to specify all his fees which he either possessed or claimed in England; when it is probable that the two monarchs themselves and their ministers would at that very time have differed in the list: the Scottish king might possess some to which his right was disputed; he might claim others which he did not possess; and neither of the two kings was willing to resign his pretensions by a particular enumeration.

A late author of great industry and learning, but full of prejudices, and of no penetration, Mr. Carte, has taken advantage of the undefined terms of the Scotch homage, and has pretended that it was done for Lothian and Galloway: that is, all the territories of the country now called Scotland, lying south of the Clyde and Forth. But to refute this pretension at once, we need only consider, that if these territories were held in fee of the English kings, there would, by the nature of the feudal law as established in England, have been continual appeals from them to the courts of the lord paramount; contrary to all the histories and records of that age. We find that, as soon as Edward really established his superiority, appeals immediately commenced from all parts of Scotland: and that king, in his writ to the king’s bench, considers them as a necessary consequence of the feudal tenure. Such large territories also would have supplied a considerable part of the English armies, which never could have escaped all the historians. Not to mention that there is not any instance of a Scotch prisoner of war being tried as a rebel, in the frequent hostilities between the kingdoms, where the Scottish armies were chiefly filled from the southern counties.

Mr. Carte’s notion with regard to Galloway, which comprehends, in the language of that age, or rather in that of the preceding, most of the south-west counties of Scotland; his notion, I say, rests on so slight a foundation, that it scarcely merits being refuted. He will have it, (and merely because he will have it,) that the Cumberland, yielded by King Edmund to Malcolm I., meant not only the county in England of that name, but all the territory northwards to the Clyde. But the case of Lothian deserves some more consideration.

It is certain that, in very ancient language, Scotland means only the country north of the Friths of Clyde and Forth. I shall not make a parade of literature to prove it; because I do not find that this point is disputed by the Scots themselves. The southern country was divided into Galloway and Lothian; and the latter comprehended all the south-east counties. This territory was certainly a part of the ancient kingdom of Northumberland, and was entirely peopled by Saxons, who afterwards received a great mixture of Danes among them. It appears from all the English histories, that the whole kingdom of Northumberland paid very little obedience to the Anglo-Saxon monarchs, who governed after the dissolution of the heptarchy; and the northern and remote parts of it seem to have fallen into a kind of anarchy, sometimes pillaged by the Danes, sometimes joining them in their ravages upon other parts of England. The kings of Scotland, lying nearer them, took at last possession of the country, which had scarcely any government; and we are told by Matthew of Westminster, (p. 193,) that King Edgar made a grant of the territory to Kenneth III.; that is, he resigned claims which he could not make effectual, without bestowing on them more trouble and expense than they were worth: for these are the only grants of provinces made by kings; and so ambitious and active a prince as Edgar would never have made presents of any other kind. Though Matthew of Westminster’s authority may appear small with regard to so remote a transaction, yet we may admit it in this case, because Ordericus Vitalis, a good authority, tells us, (p. 701,) that Malcolm acknowledged to William Rufus, that the Conqueror had confirmed to him the former grant of Lothian. But it follows not, because Edgar made this species of grant to Kenneth, that therefore he exacted homage for that territory. Homage, and all the rites of the feudal law, were very little known among the Saxons; and we may also suppose, that the gla’n of Edgar was so antiquated and weak, that, in resigning it, he made no very valuable concession, and Kenneth might well refuse to hold, by so precarious a tenure, a territory which he at present held by the sword. In short, no author says he did homage for it.

The only color indeed of authority for Mr. Carte’s notion is, that Matthew Fans, who wrote in the reign of Henry III., before Edward’s claim of superiority was heard of, says that Alexander III. did homage to Henry III. “pro Laudiano et aliis terris.” See p.555. This word seems naturally to be interpreted Lothian. But, in the first place, Matthew Paris’s testimony, though considerable, will not outweigh that of all the other historians, who say that the Scotch homage was always done for lands in England. Secondly, if the Scotch homage was done in general terms, (as has been already proved,) it is no wonder that historians should differ in their account of the object of it, since it is probable the parties themselves were not fully agreed. Thirdly, there is reason to think that Laudianum in Matthew Paris does not mean the Lothians, now in Scotland. There appears to have been a territory which anciently bore that or a similar name in the north of England. For (1.) the Saxon Chronicle (p.197) says, that Malcolm Kenmure met William Rufus in Lodene, in England. (2.) It is agreed by all historians, that Henry II. only reconquered from Scotland the northern counties of Northumberland, Cumberland, and Westmoreland. See Newbriggs, p.383. Wykes, p.30. Hemingford, p.492, Yet the same country is called by other historians Loidis, comitatus Lodonensis, or some such name. See M. Paris, p.68. M. Westi p.247. Annal. Wayerl. p.159, and Diceto, p.531. (3.) This last-mentioned author, when he speaks of Lothian in Scotland, calls it Loheneis, (p.574,) though he had called the English territory Loidis.

I thought this long note necessary in order to correct Mr. Carte’s mistake, an author whose diligence and industry has given light to many passages of the more ancient English history.]

1 (return)
[ NOTE A, p. 86. Rymer, vol. ii. p. 26, 845. There is no doubt that the tribute typically paid by the kings of Scotland was not for their crown, but for some other land. The only question is, what that land was. It was not always for the earldom of Huntingdon, nor the honor of Penrith; because we see it done at times when these possessions were not held by the kings of Scotland. It’s likely that the tribute was given in general terms, without specific mention of land; this ambiguity may have arisen from a dispute between the two kings about the land and conflicting claims, which were settled by the general homage, or from the simplicity of the time, which used few words in transactions. To prove this, we need only look at King Richard's letter, where he resigns the homage of Scotland while reserving the usual tribute. His words are, “Sæpedictus W. Rex ligius homo noster deveniat de omnibus terris de quibus antecessores sui antecessorum nostrorum ligii homines fuerunt, et nobis atque hæredibus nostris fidelitatem jurarunt.” Rymer, vol. i. p. 65. These general terms were likely taken from the standard form of the homage itself.

It doesn’t prove that the kings of Scotland didn’t own any land or baronies in England simply because we can’t find records of them in the incomplete histories of that time. For example, it is clear from another part of Richard's letter that the Scottish king held lands both in Huntingdon County and other places in England; although the earldom of Huntingdon itself was then held by his brother David; and we currently have no record of other baronies William held. It’s unreasonable to think we could now list all the fees he either owned or claimed in England; it’s likely that the two kings and their advisors would have had different lists at that time: the Scottish king might possess some lands with disputed rights; he could claim others he did not own; and neither king was willing to give up their claims with a detailed inventory.

A recent author of great diligence and scholarship, but full of biases and lacking insight, Mr. Carte, has taken advantage of the vague terms of the Scottish homage and suggested it was for Lothian and Galloway: that is, all the lands in the area now called Scotland, lying south of the Clyde and Forth. But to dismiss this claim outright, we need only note that if these lands were held from the English kings, there would have been ongoing appeals from them to the courts of the lord paramount, which contradicts all the histories and records of that time. We find that once Edward genuinely asserted his superiority, appeals started immediately from all over Scotland: and that king, in his writ to the king’s bench, regards them as a necessary consequence of feudal law. Such large territories would also have made up a significant part of the English armies, which would never have gone unnoticed by historians. Not to mention that there’s no record of a Scottish prisoner of war being tried as a rebel during the frequent conflicts between the kingdoms, where the Scottish armies were primarily drawn from the southern counties.

Mr. Carte’s idea concerning Galloway, which in the language of that time, or perhaps the previous one, included most of the south-west counties of Scotland; his idea, I say, rests on such a flimsy foundation that it hardly deserves refutation. He insists, (and only because he insists,) that the Cumberland, given by King Edmund to Malcolm I., did not just refer to the county in England of that name, but all the land north to the Clyde. However, Lothian deserves a bit more analysis.

It is certain that, in very ancient terms, Scotland meant only the land north of the Friths of Clyde and Forth. I won't parade literature to prove this; because I don’t find that this point is disputed even by the Scots. The southern lands were divided into Galloway and Lothian; and the latter included all the south-east counties. This area was certainly part of the ancient kingdom of Northumberland and was primarily inhabited by Saxons, who later mixed a lot with Danes. It appears from all the English histories that the whole kingdom of Northumberland showed very little loyalty to the Anglo-Saxon kings who governed after the dissolution of the heptarchy; and the northern, remote parts seem to have fallen into a kind of anarchy, sometimes raided by the Danes, sometimes joining them in their attacks on other areas of England. The kings of Scotland, being closer to them, eventually occupied the land, which had very little governance; and we are told by Matthew of Westminster, (p. 193,) that King Edgar granted the territory to Kenneth III.; that is, he surrendered claims that he couldn’t enforce without more trouble and expense than they were worth: for these are the only grants of provinces made by kings; and so ambitious and proactive a prince like Edgar would never have made gifts of any other kind. Although Matthew of Westminster’s authority may seem minor regarding such a distant event, we can accept it here, since Ordericus Vitalis, a reputable source, tells us, (p. 701,) that Malcolm confessed to William Rufus that the Conqueror had confirmed to him the earlier grant of Lothian. However, it does not follow that because Edgar made this type of grant to Kenneth, he required tribute for that territory. Tribute, and all the rituals of feudal law, were little understood among the Saxons; and we can also assume that Edgar's claim was so outdated and weak, that by resigning it, he didn't make a valuable concession, and Kenneth might reasonably refuse to hold, by such an insecure tenure, a territory he currently held by force. In short, no author claims he paid tribute for it.

The only hint of authority for Mr. Carte’s idea is that Matthew Paris, who wrote during the reign of Henry III., before Edward’s claim of superiority came into play, states that Alexander III. did homage to Henry III. “for Laudiano et aliis terris.” See p.555. This term seems to naturally refer to Lothian. However, first, Matthew Paris’s testimony, although significant, will not outweigh that of all the other historians who say that the Scottish homage was always done for lands in England. Secondly, if the Scottish homage was given in general terms, (as has already been established,) it’s not surprising that historians would differ in their accounts of what it referred to, since it’s likely the parties themselves weren't fully in agreement. Thirdly, there’s reason to believe that Laudianum in Matthew Paris does not refer to the Lothians, currently in Scotland. It appears there was a territory that anciently held that or a similar name in the north of England. For (1.) the Saxon Chronicle (p.197) notes that Malcolm Kenmure met William Rufus in Lodene, in England. (2.) All historians agree that Henry II. only reconquered from Scotland the northern counties of Northumberland, Cumberland, and Westmoreland. See Newbriggs, p.383. Wykes, p.30. Hemingford, p.492. Yet the same area is referred to by other historians as Loidis, comitatus Lodonensis, or similar names. See M. Paris, p.68. M. Westi p.247. Annal. Wayerl. p.159, and Diceto, p.531. (3.) This last author, when he discusses Lothian in Scotland, calls it Loheneis, (p.574,) even though he referred to the English land as Loidis.

I found this lengthy note necessary to clarify Mr. Carte’s error, an author whose diligence and industry has illuminated many aspects of the more ancient English history.]

2 (return)
[ NOTE B, p.86. Rymer, vol. ii. p.543. It is remarkable that the English chancellor spoke to the Scotch parliament in the French tongue. This was also the language commonly made use of by all parties on that occasion. I bid, passim. Some of the most considerable among the Scotch, as well as almost all the English barons, were of French origin: they valued themselves upon it; and pretended to despise the language and manners of the island. It is difficult to account for the settlement of so many French families in Scotland; the Bruces, Baliols, St. Glairs, Montgomeries, Somervilles, Gordons, Frasers, Cummins; Colvilles, Umfrevilles, Mowbrays, Hays, Maules, who were not supported there, as in England, by the power of the sword. But the superiority of the smallest civility and knowledge over total ignorance and barbarism, is prodigious.]

2 (return)
[ NOTE B, p.86. Rymer, vol. ii. p.543. It’s interesting that the English chancellor spoke to the Scottish parliament in French. That was the language everyone used at the event. I bid, passim. Many of the prominent Scots, as well as nearly all the English barons, had French roots; they took pride in it and looked down on the language and customs of the island. It’s hard to explain why so many French families settled in Scotland, like the Bruces, Baliols, St. Glairs, Montgomeries, Somervilles, Gordons, Frasers, Cummins, Colvilles, Umfrevilles, Mowbrays, Hays, and Maules, who didn’t have the same military support there as they did in England. However, the advantage of even the smallest courtesy and knowledge over complete ignorance and barbarism is enormous.]

3 (return)
[ NOTE C, p.91. See Rymer, vol. ii. p.533, where Edward writes to the king’s bench to receive appeals from Scotland. He knew the practice to be new and unusual; yet he establishes it as an infallible consequence cf his superiority. We learn also from the same collection, (p. 603,) that immediately upon receiving the homage, he changed the style of his address to the Scotch king, whom he now calk “dilecto et fideli,” instead of “fratri dilecto et fideli,” the appellation which he had always before used to him. See p. 109, 124, 168, 280, 1064. This is a certain proof that he himself was not deceived, as was scarcely indeed possible, but that he was conscious of his usurpation. Yet he solemnly swore afterwards to the justice of his pretensions, when he defended them before Pope Boniface.]

3 (return)
[ NOTE C, p.91. See Rymer, vol. ii. p.533, where Edward writes to the king’s bench to accept appeals from Scotland. He knew this practice was new and unusual; yet he established it as an undeniable result of his superiority. We also learn from the same collection, (p. 603,) that right after receiving the homage, he changed the way he addressed the Scottish king, whom he now called “dilecto et fideli,” instead of “fratri dilecto et fideli,” the title he had always used before. See p. 109, 124, 168, 280, 1064. This clearly shows that he was not fooled, which was hardly possible, but that he was aware of his usurpation. Yet he solemnly swore afterward to the legitimacy of his claims when he defended them before Pope Boniface.]

4 (return)
[ NOTE D, p. 104. Throughout the reign of Edward I., the assent of the commons is not once expressed in any of the enacting clauses; nor in the reigns ensuing, till the 9 Edward III., nor in any of the enacting clauses of 16 Richard II. Nay, even so low as Henry VI., from the beginning till the eighth of his reign, the assent of the commons is not once expressed in any enacting clause. See preface to Ruffhead’s edit, of the Statutes, p. 7. If it should be asserted, that the commons had really given their assent to these statutes, though they are not expressly mentioned, this very omission, proceeding, if you will, from carelessness, is a proof how little they were respected. The commons were so little accustomed to transact public business, that they had no speaker till after the parliament 6 Edward III. See Prynne’s preface to Cotton’s Abridg.: not till the first of Richard II. in the opinion of most antiquaries. The commons were very unwilling to meddle in any state affairs, and commonly either referred themselves to the lords, or desired a select committee of that house to assist them, as appears from Cotton. 5 Edw. III. n. 5; 15 Edw. III. a. 17; 21 Edw. III. n. 5; 47 Edw. III. n. 5; 50 Edw. III. n. 10; 51 Edw. III. n. 18; 1 Rich. II. n. 12; 2 Rich. II. n. 12; 5 Rich. II. n 14; 2 parl. 6 Rich. II. n. 14; parl. 2, 6 Rich. II. n. 8, etc.]

4 (return)
[ NOTE D, p. 104. Throughout the reign of Edward I, the agreement of the commons is never mentioned in any of the enacting clauses; nor in the subsequent reigns, until the 9 Edward III, nor in any of the enacting clauses of 16 Richard II. In fact, even as late as Henry VI, from the start until the eighth year of his reign, the agreement of the commons is not mentioned in any enacting clause. See the preface to Ruffhead’s edition of the Statutes, p. 7. If someone were to claim that the commons had actually given their agreement to these statutes, even though they aren’t explicitly mentioned, this very omission, whether due to carelessness or not, shows how little they were valued. The commons were so unaccustomed to handling public business that they had no speaker until after the parliament of 6 Edward III. See Prynne’s preface to Cotton’s Abridged: not until the first of Richard II, according to most historians. The commons were very reluctant to get involved in any state matters and usually either relied on the lords or requested a select committee from that house to help them, as shown in Cotton. 5 Edw. III. n. 5; 15 Edw. III. a. 17; 21 Edw. III. n. 5; 47 Edw. III. n. 5; 50 Edw. III. n. 10; 51 Edw. III. n. 18; 1 Rich. II. n. 12; 2 Rich. II. n. 12; 5 Rich. II. n 14; 2 parl. 6 Rich. II. n. 14; parl. 2, 6 Rich. II. n. 8, etc.]

5 (return)
[ NOTE E, p. 105. It was very agreeable to the maxims of all the feudal governments, that every order of the state should give their consent to the acts which more immediately concerned them; and as the notion of a political system was not then so well understood, the other orders of the state were often not consulted on these occasions. In this reign, even the merchants, though no public body, granted the king impositions on merchandise, because the first payments came out of their pockets. They did the same in the reign of Edward III.; but the commons had then observed that the people paid these duties, though the merchants advanced them; and they therefore remonstrated against this practice. Cotton’s Abridg. p. 39. The taxes imposed by the knights on the counties were always lighter than those which the burgesses laid on the boroughs; a presumption, that in voting those taxes the knights and burgesses did not form the same house. See Chancellor West’s Inquiry into the Manner of creating Peers, p. 8. But there are so many proofs, that those two orders of representative were long separate, that it is needless to insist on them. Mr. Carte, who had carefully consulted the rolls of parliament, affirms, that they never appear to have been united till the sixteenth of Edward III. See Hist. vol. ii. p,451. But it is certain that this union was not even then final: in 1372, the burgesses acted by themselves, and voted a tax after the knights were dismissed. See Tyrrel, Hist, vol. iii. p. 754, from Rot. Claus. 46 Edward III. n. 9. In 1376, they were the knights alone who passed a vote for the removal of Alice Pierce from the king’s person, if we may credit Walsingham, p. 189. There is an instance of a like kind in the reign of Richard II. Cotton, p.193. The different taxes voted by those two branches of the lower house, naturally kept them separate; but as their petitions had mostly the same object, namely, the redress of grievances, and the support of law and justice both against the crown and the barons, this cause as naturally united them, and was the reason why they at last joined in one house for the despatch of business. The barons had few petitions. Their privileges were of more ancient date. Grievances seldom affected them: they were themselves the chief oppressors. In 1333, the knights by themselves concurred with the bishops and barons in advising the king to stay his journey into Ireland. Here was a petition which regarded a matter of state, and was supposed to be above the capacity of the burgesses. The knights, therefore, acted apart in this petition. See Cotton, Abridg. p. 13. Chief baron Gilbert thinks, that the reason why taxes always began with the commons or burgesses was, that they were limited by the instructions of their boroughs. See Hist, of the Exchequer, p. 37.]

5 (return)
[ NOTE E, p. 105. It was very agreeable to the principles of all feudal governments that every class in society should give their consent to the actions that affected them directly; and since the idea of a political system was not well understood at the time, other classes were often not consulted. During this reign, even the merchants, though not an official group, allowed the king to impose charges on goods because the initial payments came from their own funds. They did the same during Edward III.'s reign; however, the common people noted that while the merchants advanced the payments, it was ultimately the public who bore these costs, leading them to protest the practice. Cotton’s Abridg. p. 39. The taxes imposed by the knights on counties were generally lighter than those set by the burgesses on the boroughs, suggesting that the knights and burgesses did not belong to the same assembly when voting on taxes. See Chancellor West’s Inquiry into the Manner of creating Peers, p. 8. There is ample evidence that these two representative classes remained separate for a long time, so it's unnecessary to elaborate further. Mr. Carte, who meticulously reviewed the parliament records, states that they did not seem to unite until the sixteenth year of Edward III’s reign. See Hist. vol. ii. p.451. However, it is clear that this union was not definitive; in 1372, the burgesses acted independently and approved a tax after the knights had been dismissed. See Tyrrel, Hist, vol. iii. p. 754, from Rot. Claus. 46 Edward III. n. 9. In 1376, it was only the knights who voted to remove Alice Pierce from the king’s presence, according to Walsingham, p. 189. A similar instance occurred during Richard II's reign. Cotton, p.193. The different taxes voted by these two branches of the lower house kept them separate; however, because their petitions mostly focused on similar issues, namely addressing grievances and supporting law and justice against both the crown and the barons, this eventually brought them together and is why they ultimately united in one assembly for the sake of conducting business. The barons had fewer petitions, as their privileges were older and grievances rarely impacted them—they were often the main oppressors. In 1333, the knights, acting on their own, joined the bishops and barons in advising the king to postpone his trip to Ireland. This was a state matter believed to be beyond the capability of the burgesses, prompting the knights to act separately. See Cotton, Abridg. p. 13. Chief baron Gilbert believes that taxes typically began with the commons or burgesses because they were constrained by the mandates of their boroughs. See Hist, of the Exchequer, p. 37.]

6 (return)
[ NOTE F, p. 105. The chief argument from ancient authority, for the opinion that the representatives of boroughs preceded the forty-ninth of Henry in., is the famous petition of the borough of St. Albans, first taken notice of by Selden, and then by Petyt, Brady, Tyrrel, and others. In this petition, presented to the parliament in the reign of Edward II., take town of St. Albans asserts, that though they held “in capite” of the crown, and owed only, for all other service, their attendance in parliament, yet the sheriff had omitted them in his writs; whereas, both in the reign of the king’s father, and all his predecessors, they had always sent members. Now, say the defenders of this opinion, if the commencement of the house of commons were in Henry III.’ reign, this expression could not have been used. But Hadox, in his History of the Exchequer, (p. 522, 523, 524,) has endeavored, and with great reason, to destroy the authority of this petition for the purpose alleged. He asserts, first, that there was no such tenure in England is that of holding by attendance in parliament, instead of all other service. Secondly, that the borough of St. Albans never held of take crown at all, but was always demesne land of the abbot. It is no wonder, therefore, that a petition which advances two falsehoods, should contain one historical mistake, which indeed amounts only to an inaccurate and exaggerated expression; no strange matter in ignorant burgesses of that age. Accordingly, St. Albans continued still to belong to the abbot. It never held of the crown, call after the dissolution of the monasteries. But the assurance of these petition *ers is remarkable. They wanted to shake off the authority of their abbot, and to hold of the king; but were unwilling to pay any services even to the crown; upon which they framed this idle petition, which later writers have made the foundation of so many inferences and conclusions. From the tenor of the petition it appears, that there was a close connection between holding of the crown and being represented in parliament. The latter had scarcely ever place without the former; yet we learn from Tyrell’s Append. vol. iv. that there were some instances to the contrary. It is not improbable that Edward followed the roll of the earl of Leicester, who had summoned, without distinction, all the considerable boroughs of the kingdom; among which there might be some few that did not hold of the crown. Edward also found it necessary to impose taxes on all the boroughs in the kingdom, without distinction. This was a good expedient for augmenting his revenue. We are not to imagine, because the house of commons have since become of great importance, that the first summoning of them would form any remarkable and striking epoch, and be generally known to the people even seventy or eighty years after. So ignorant were the generality of men in that age, that country burgesses would readily imagine an innovation, seemingly so little material, to have existed from time immemorial, because it was beyond their own memory, and perhaps that of their fathers. Even the parliament in the reign of Henry V. say, that Ireland had, from the beginning of time, been subject to the crown of England. (See Brady.) And surely if any thing interests the people above all others, it is war and conquests, with their dates and circumstances]

6 (return)
[ NOTE F, p. 105. The main argument from ancient authority for the view that representatives of boroughs came before the forty-ninth of Henry in is the well-known petition from the borough of St. Albans, which was first noted by Selden, and later by Petyt, Brady, Tyrrel, and others. In this petition, presented to parliament during the reign of Edward II., the town of St. Albans states that although they held “in capite” of the crown and owed only their attendance in parliament as service, the sheriff had left them out of his writs; meanwhile, both during the reign of the king’s father and all his previous predecessors, they had always sent members. The supporters of this view argue that if the origins of the House of Commons were in Henry III.’s reign, this wording could not have been used. However, Hadox, in his History of the Exchequer (p. 522, 523, 524), has reasonably attempted to undermine the authority of this petition for the stated purpose. He claims, first, that there was no such tenure in England as holding by attendance in parliament instead of all other services. Secondly, he argues that the borough of St. Albans never held of the crown but always belonged to the abbot's demesne land. Thus, it’s not surprising that a petition promoting two falsehoods would contain one historical error, which essentially amounts to an imprecise and exaggerated expression—something not uncommon among the uninformed burgesses of that time. Consequently, St. Albans continued to belong to the abbot; it never held of the crown even after the dissolution of the monasteries. Yet, the boldness of these petitioners is noteworthy. They wanted to break away from their abbot’s authority and hold directly from the king but were unwilling to pay any dues to the crown; hence, they crafted this meaningless petition, which later writers have used as the basis for numerous inferences and conclusions. The wording of the petition suggests a strong link between holding from the crown and being represented in parliament. The latter rarely occurred without the former; however, we learn from Tyrell’s Append. vol. iv. that there were some exceptions. It is likely that Edward followed the earl of Leicester's roll, who had called up all the significant boroughs of the kingdom without distinction; among these, there may have been a few that did not hold of the crown. Edward also found it necessary to impose taxes on all boroughs in the kingdom without distinction. This was an effective strategy for increasing his revenue. We should not assume that because the House of Commons has since become very important, the initial summoning of them marked any significant and widely recognized event that people would know about even seventy or eighty years later. The general population was so uninformed in that age that country burgesses could easily think an innovation, seemingly so trivial, had existed since time immemorial because it was beyond their memory and perhaps that of their fathers. Even the parliament during Henry V.’s reign stated that Ireland had been subject to the crown of England since the beginning of time. (See Brady.) And surely, if anything captures the public's interest above all else, it is war and conquests, along with their dates and circumstances.]

7 (return)
[ NOTE G, p. 233. This story of the six burgesses of Calais, like all other extraordinary stories, is somewhat to be suspected; and so much the more as Avesbury, (p. 167,) who is particular in his narration of the surrender of Calais, says nothing of it; and, on the contrary, extols in general the king’s generosity and lenity to the inhabitants. The numberless mistakes of Froissard, proceeding either from negligence, credulity, or love of the marvellous, invalidate very much his testimony, even though he was a contemporary, and though his history was dedicated to Queen Philippa herself. It is a mistake to imagine, that the patrons of dedications read the books, much less vouch for all the contents of them. It is not a slight testimony that should make us give credit to a story so dishonorable to Edward, especially after that proof of his humanity, in allowing a free passage to all the women, children, and infirm people, at the beginning of the siege: at least, it is scarcely to be believed, that, if the story has any foundation, he seriously meant to execute his menaces against the six townsmen of Calais.]

7 (return)
[NOTE G, p. 233. This story about the six burgesses of Calais, like many extraordinary tales, should be approached with skepticism; even more so since Avesbury, (p. 167), who provides a detailed account of Calais' surrender, says nothing about it. Instead, he praises the king’s generosity and leniency towards the residents. The numerous errors made by Froissart, stemming from either carelessness, gullibility, or a flair for the fantastic, seriously undermine his credibility, even though he was a contemporary and dedicated his history to Queen Philippa herself. It’s a mistake to think that the recipients of dedications actually read the books, let alone endorse all their content. It takes more than a flimsy account to convince us of a story that casts Edward in such an unfavorable light, especially given his earlier act of compassion in allowing all women, children, and the elderly to leave freely at the start of the siege. It’s hard to believe that, if there’s any truth to the tale, he truly intended to follow through on his threats against the six townsmen of Calais.]

8 (return)
[ NOTE H, p. 236. There was a singular instance, About this time, of the prevalence of chivalry and gallantry in the nations of Europe. A solemn duel of thirty knights against thirty was fought between Bembrwigh, as Englishman, and Beaumanoir, a Breton, of the party of Charles of Blois, The knights of the two nations came into the field; and before the combat began, Beaumanoir called out, that it would be seen that day who had the fairest mistresses. After a bloody combat, the Bretons prevailed; and gained for their prize, full liberty to boast of their mistresses’ beauty. It is remarkable, that two such famous generals as Sir Robert Knolles and Sir Hugh Calverley drew their swords in this ridiculous contest. See Pere Daniel, vol. ii. p.536, 537, etc. The women not only instigated the champions to those rough, if not bloody frays of tournament, but also frequented the tournaments during all the reign of Edward, whose spirit of gallantry encouraged this practice. See Knyghton, p. 2597.]

8 (return)
[ NOTE H, p. 236. Around this time, there was a unique event highlighting the popularity of chivalry and gallantry in European nations. A notable duel took place, featuring thirty knights from England against thirty knights from Brittany, supporting Charles of Blois. The knights from both sides entered the field, and before the fight began, Beaumanoir proclaimed that the day would prove who had the most beautiful mistresses. After an intense battle, the Breton knights emerged victorious, earning the right to brag about their mistresses’ beauty. It's noteworthy that two renowned leaders, Sir Robert Knolles and Sir Hugh Calverley, participated in this somewhat absurd competition. See Pere Daniel, vol. ii. p.536, 537, etc. Women not only encouraged the champions to engage in these rough, if not deadly, tournament battles, but they also attended the tournaments throughout the reign of Edward, whose sense of gallantry supported this tradition. See Knyghton, p. 2597.]

9 (return)
[ NOTE I, p. 253. This is a prodigious sum, and probably near the half of what the king received from the parliament during the whole course of his reign. It must be remarked, that a tenth and fifteenth (which was always thought a high grant) were, in the eighth year of this reign, fixed at about twenty-nine thousand pounds; there were said to be near thirty thousand sacks of wool exported every year. A sack of wool was at a medium sold for five pounds. Upon these suppositions it would be easy to compute all the parliamentary grants, taking the list as they stand in Tyrrel, vol. iii. p. 780; though somewhat must still be left to conjecture. This king levied more money on his subjects than any of his predecessors; and the parliament frequently complain of the poverty of the people, and the oppressions under which they labored. But it is to be remarked, that a third of the French king’s ransom was yet unpaid when war broke out anew between the two crowns. His son chose rather to employ his money in combating the English, than in enriching them. See Rymer, vol. viii. p. 315.]

9 (return)
[ NOTE I, p. 253. This is an enormous amount, likely close to half of what the king received from parliament throughout his entire reign. It's important to note that a tenth and fifteenth (which were always considered a significant grant) were, in the eighth year of this reign, set at around twenty-nine thousand pounds; it was reported that nearly thirty thousand sacks of wool were exported each year. A sack of wool was typically sold for about five pounds. Based on these assumptions, it would be straightforward to calculate all the parliamentary grants, referring to the list in Tyrrel, vol. iii. p. 780; although some aspects would still rely on speculation. This king collected more money from his subjects than any of his predecessors; and parliament frequently complained about the people's poverty and the burdens they endured. However, it's worth noting that a third of the French king’s ransom was still unpaid when war erupted again between the two crowns. His son preferred to use his funds to fight against the English rather than enrich them. See Rymer, vol. viii. p. 315.]

11 (return)
[ NOTE K, p. 281. In the fifth year of the king, the commons complained of the government about the king’s person, his court, the excessive number of his servants, of the abuses in the chancery, king’s bench, common pleas, exchequer, and of grievous oppressions in the country, by the great multitudes of maintainers of quarrels, (men linked in confederacies together,) who behaved themselves like kings in the country, so as there was very little law or right, and of other things which they said were the cause of the late commotions under Wat Tyler. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 365. This irregular government, which no king and no house of commons had been able to remedy, was the source of the licentiousness of the great, and turbulency of the people, as well as tyranny of the princes. If subjects would enjoy liberty, and kings security, the laws must be executed.

In the ninth of this reign, also the commons discovered an accuracy and a jealousy of liberty, which we should little expect in those rude times. “It was agreed by parliament,” says Cotton, (p.309), “that the subsidy of wools, woolfels, and skins, granted to the king until the time of midsummer then ensuing, should cease from the same time unto the feast of St. Peter ‘ad vincula’ for that thereby the king should be interrupted for claiming such grant as due.” See also Cotton, p. 198.]

11 (return)
[ NOTE K, p. 281. In the fifth year of the king's reign, the common people expressed their grievances regarding the king, his court, the excessive number of his servants, the abuses in the chancery, king’s bench, common pleas, and the exchequer, as well as the serious oppressions in the country caused by the large number of quarrel-makers (men organized in groups) who acted like rulers in the countryside, resulting in very little justice or fairness, along with other issues they claimed led to the recent uprisings under Wat Tyler. Parl. Hist. vol. i. p. 365. This chaotic government, which neither the king nor the house of commons could fix, led to the lawlessness of the powerful, the unrest among the people, and the tyranny of the rulers. For subjects to have liberty and kings to have security, the laws must be enforced.

In the ninth year of this reign, the common people also demonstrated a keen sense of justice and vigilance regarding their freedom, which we would not expect from such turbulent times. “It was agreed by parliament,” says Cotton, (p.309), “that the tax on wools, woolfells, and skins, granted to the king until midsummer, should end at that same time and not continue until the feast of St. Peter 'ad vincula’ so that the king would not be able to claim the grant as a right.” See also Cotton, p. 198.]

12 (return)
[ NOTE L, p. 290. Knyghton, p. 2715, etc. The same author (p. 2680) tells us, that the king, in return to the message, said, that he would not for their desire remove the meanest scullion from his kitchen. This author also tells us, that the king said to the commissioners, when they harangued him, that he saw his subjects were rebellious, and his best way would be to call in the king of France to his aid. But it is plain that all these speeches were either intended by Knyghton merely as an ornament to his history, or are false. For (1.) when the five lords accuse the king’s ministers in the next parliament, and impute to them every rash action of the king, they speak nothing of these replies, which are so obnoxious, were so recent, and are pretended to have been so public. (2.) The king, so far from having any connections at that time with France, was threatened with a dangerous invasion from that kingdom. This story seems to have been taken from the reproaches afterwards thrown out against him, and to have been transferred by the historian to this time, to which they cannot be applied.]

12 (return)
[ NOTE L, p. 290. Knyghton, p. 2715, etc. The same author (p. 2680) tells us that the king responded to the message by saying he wouldn’t remove even the lowest scullion from his kitchen for their sake. This author also mentions that when the commissioners spoke to the king, he remarked that he saw his subjects were rebellious, and that his best option would be to seek help from the king of France. However, it’s clear that all these statements were either meant by Knyghton as embellishments to his history or are inaccurate. For (1.) when the five lords charge the king’s ministers in the following parliament and blame them for every reckless action of the king, they don’t mention these controversial replies, which were supposedly so recent and public. (2.) At that point, rather than having any connections with France, the king was actually facing a serious threat of invasion from that kingdom. This story seems to be drawn from the criticisms later directed at him and has been mistakenly placed in this context where it doesn’t apply.]

13 (return)
[ NOTE M, p. 295. We must except the twelfth article, which accuses Brembre of having cut off the heads of twenty-two prisoners confined for felony or debt, without warrant or process of law; but as it is not conceivable what interest Brembre could have to treat these felons and debtors in such a manner, we may presume that the fact is either false or misrepresented. It was in these men’s power to say any thing against the persons accused. No defence or apology was admitted; all was lawless will and pleasure.

They are also accused of designs to murder the lords; but these accusations either are general, or destroy one another. Sometimes, as in article fifteenth, they intend to murder them by means of the mayor and city of London; sometimes, as in article twenty-eighth, by trial and false inquests; sometimes, as in article twenty-eighth, by means of the king of France, who was to receive Calais for his pains.]

13 (return)
[ NOTE M, p. 295. We should exclude the twelfth article, which claims that Brembre executed twenty-two prisoners held for felony or debt without any legal authority; however, it’s hard to imagine why Brembre would have an interest in treating these felons and debtors in such a way, so we can assume the information is either false or misrepresented. These men had the ability to speak out against those accused. No defense or explanation was allowed; it was all purely arbitrary.

They are also accused of planning to murder the lords; however, these accusations are either vague or contradict each other. Sometimes, as mentioned in article fifteenth, they plan to murder them using the mayor and city of London; other times, as in article twenty-eighth, they intend to do so through a trial and false inquests; and again, as noted in article twenty-eighth, by involving the king of France, who was supposed to receive Calais as compensation for his efforts.]

14 (return)
[ NOTE N, p. 296. In general, the parliament, in those days, never paid a proper regard to Edward’s statute of treasons, though one of the most advantageous laws for the subject that has ever been enacted. In the seventeenth of the king, the dukes of Lancaster and Glocester complain to Richard, that Sir Thomas Talbot, with others of his adherents conspired the death of the said dukes in divers parts of Cheshire, as the same was confessed and well known; and praying that the parliament may judge of the fault. Whereupon the king and the lords in the parliament judged the same fact to be open and high treason; and hereupon they award two writs, the one to the sheriff of York, and the other to the sheriffs of Derby, to take the body of the said Sir Thomas, returnable in the king’s bench in the month of Easter then ensuing. And open proclamation was made in Westminster Hall, that upon the sheriffs return, and at the next coming in of the said Sir Thomas, the said Thomas should be convicted of treason, and incur the loss and pain of the same; and all such as should receive him after the proclamation should incur the same loss and pain. Cotton, p. 354. It is to be observed, that this extraordinary judgment was passed in a time of tranquillity. Though the statute itself of Edward III. reserves a power to the parliament to declare any new species of treason, it is not to be supposed that this power was reserved to the house of lords alone, or that men were to be judged by a law “ex post facto.” At least, if such be the meaning of the clause, it may be affirmed, that men were at that time very ignorant of the first principles of law and justice.]

14 (return)
[ NOTE N, p. 296. Back then, the parliament generally didn’t pay much attention to Edward’s treason statute, even though it was one of the most beneficial laws for the people ever created. In the seventeenth year of the king's reign, the dukes of Lancaster and Glocester told Richard that Sir Thomas Talbot, along with his followers, plotted to kill them in various locations in Cheshire, which was both admitted and widely known. They requested that parliament address the matter. The king and the lords in parliament ruled the act to be open and high treason. They then issued two writs, one to the sheriff of York and the other to the sheriffs of Derby, to capture Sir Thomas, to be returned to the king’s bench by the upcoming Easter. A public announcement was made in Westminster Hall that upon the sheriffs’ return and at the next appearance of Sir Thomas, he would be declared guilty of treason and face the corresponding penalties; anyone who sheltered him after the proclamation would also face the same penalties. Cotton, p. 354. It’s important to note that this unusual ruling was made during a time of peace. While Edward III’s statute grants parliament the power to define new types of treason, it shouldn’t be assumed that this power was limited to the house of lords or that people could be judged by laws applied retroactively. If that is indeed the intent of the clause, it can be said that people at that time were quite unaware of the basic principles of law and justice.]

15 (return)
[ NOTE O, p. 301. In the preceding parliament, the commons had shown a disposition very complaisant to the king; yet there happened an incident in their proceedings which is curious, and shows us the state of the house during that period. The members were either country gentlemen or merchants, who were assembled for a few days, and were entirely unacquainted with business; so that it was easy to lead them astray, and draw them into votes and resolutions very different from their intention. Some petitions concerning the state of the nation were voted: in which, among other things, the house recommended frugality to the king; and for that purpose desired that the court should not be so much frequented as formerly by bishops and ladies. The king was displeased with this freedom; the commons very humbly craved pardon. He was not satisfied unless they would name the mover of the petitions. It happened to be one Haxey, whom the parliament, in order to make atonement, condemned for this offence to die the death of a traitor. But the king, at the desire of the archbishop of Canterbury and the prelates, pardoned him. When a parliament in those times, not agitated by any faction, and being at entire freedom, could be guilty of such monstrous extravagance, it is easy to judge what might be expected from them in more trying situations. See Cotton’s Abridg. p. 361, 362.]

15 (return)
[ NOTE O, p. 301. In the previous parliament, the commons had shown a very accommodating attitude towards the king; however, there was an interesting incident in their proceedings that reflects the state of the house during that time. The members were mostly country gentlemen or merchants, who gathered for just a few days and were completely unfamiliar with parliamentary procedures, making it easy to mislead them and entice them into votes and resolutions that differed from their original intentions. Some petitions regarding the state of the nation were voted on, in which, among other things, the house advised the king to practice frugality; to that end, they requested that the court not be as frequented as it had been before by bishops and ladies. The king was unhappy with this boldness, and the commons humbly asked for forgiveness. He was not satisfied unless they identified the person who proposed the petitions. It turned out to be one Haxey, whom the parliament, in their effort to make amends, condemned to die as a traitor for this offense. However, at the request of the Archbishop of Canterbury and other church leaders, the king pardoned him. When a parliament in those times, not influenced by any factions and having complete freedom, could be guilty of such outrageous behavior, it's easy to predict what might happen in more challenging situations. See Cotton’s Abridg. p. 361, 362.]

16 (return)
[ NOTE P, p. 312. To show how little credit is to be given to this charge against Richard, we may observe, that a law in the 13th Edward III. had been enacted against the continuance of sheriffs for more than one year. But the inconvenience of changes having afterwards appeared, from experience, the commons, in the twentieth of this king, applied; by petition, that the sheriffs might be continued; though that petition had not been enacted into a statute, by reason of other disagreeable circumstances which attended it. See Cotton, p. 361. It was certainly a very moderate exercise of the dispensing power in the king to continue the sheriffs, after he found that that practice would be acceptable to his subjects, and had been applied for by one house of parliament; yet is this made an article of charge against him by the present parliament. See article 18. Walsingham, speaking of a period early in Richard’s minority, says, “But what do acts of parliament signify, when, after they are made, they take no effect, since the king, by the advice of the privy council, takes upon him to alter, or wholly set aside, all those things which by general consent had been ordained in parliament?” If Richard, therefore, exercised the dispensing power, he was warranted by the examples of his uncles and grandfather, and indeed of all his predecessors from the time of Henry III., inclusive.]

16 (return)
[ NOTE P, p. 312. To illustrate how little weight should be given to this accusation against Richard, we can note that a law during the 13th year of Edward III. was established to prevent sheriffs from serving more than one year. However, the problems caused by frequent changes became evident, so the common people, in the twentieth year of this king’s reign, petitioned for the sheriffs to be allowed to continue. Although this petition did not turn into a law due to other unfavorable circumstances surrounding it. See Cotton, p. 361. It was certainly a reasonable use of the king's discretionary power to allow the sheriffs to continue once he recognized that this was favorable to his subjects, and it had been requested by one house of parliament; nonetheless, this is presented as an accusation against him by the current parliament. See article 18. Walsingham, referring to the early days of Richard’s rule, remarks, “But what do laws matter when, once enacted, they have no effect since the king, with advice from the privy council, chooses to change or completely disregard everything decided by the general consent in parliament?” Therefore, if Richard did exercise that power, he was justified by the actions of his uncles, grandfather, and indeed all his predecessors since the time of Henry III.]

17 (return)
[ NOTE Q, p. 318. The following passage in Cotton’s Abridgment (p. 196) shows a strange prejudice against the church and churchmen. “The commons afterwards coming into the parliament, and making their protestation, showed, that for want of good redress about the king’s person in his household, in all his courts, touching maintainers in every county, and purveyors, the commons were daily pilled, and nothing defended against the enemy, and that it should shortly deprive the king and undo the state. Wherefore in the same government they entirely require redress. Whereupon the king appointed sundry bishops, lords, and nobles, to sit in privy council about these matters; who, since that they must begin at the head, and go at the request of the commons, they, in the presence of the king, charged his confessor not to come into the court but upon the four principal festivals.” We should little expect that a popish privy council, in order to preserve the king’s morals, should order his confessor to be kept at a distance from him. This incident happened in the minority of Richard. As the popes had for a long time resided at Avignon, and the majority of the sacred college were Frenchmen, this circumstance naturally increased the aversion of the nation to the papal power; but the prejudice against the English clergy cannot be accounted for from that cause.]

17 (return)
[ NOTE Q, p. 318. The following excerpt from Cotton’s Abridgment (p. 196) reveals a notable bias against the church and its leaders. “When the commons later joined the parliament and made their protest, they expressed that due to a lack of adequate solutions related to the king’s household and his courts, concerning maintainers in every county and purveyors, the commons were constantly being overtaxed, and nothing was being done to defend against enemies, which could soon weaken the king and ruin the state. Consequently, they demanded reforms. In response, the king appointed several bishops, lords, and nobles to sit in a privy council to address these issues; who, since they had to start at the top and act on the commons' request, in the king's presence, instructed his confessor not to come into the court except on the four main feast days.” We wouldn't expect that a Catholic privy council would decide to keep the king's confessor at a distance to protect the king’s morals. This event took place during Richard's minority. Since the popes had long been based in Avignon, and most of the sacred college were French, this situation naturally intensified the country's dislike of papal authority; however, the bias against the English clergy cannot be solely attributed to this.]

18 (return)
[ NOTE R, p. 450. That we may judge how arbitrary a court that of the constable of England was, we may peruse the patent granted to the earl of Rivers in this reign, as it is to be found in Spellman’s Glossary in verb. Constabularius: as also more fully in Rymer, vol. xi. p. 581. Here is a clause of it: “Et ulterius de uberiori gratia nostra eidem comiti de Rivers plenam potestatem damus ad cognoscendum et procedendum, in omnibus et singulis causis et negotiis, de et super crimine lesse majestatis, seu super occasione eseterisque causis quibuscunque per præfatum comitem de Rivers, ut constabularium Angliæ——quæ in curia constabularii Angliæ ab antique, viz, tempore dicti domini Gtilielmi Conquætoris, sen aliquo tempore citra, tractari, audiri examinari, aut decidi consueverant, aut jure debuerant aut clebeni, causasque et negotia prædicta cum omnibus et singulis emergentibus, incidentibus et connexis, audiendum, examinandum, et fine debito terminandum, etiam summarie et de plano, sine strepitu et figura justitiæ, sola facti veritate inspecta, ac etiam manu regia, si opportunum visum fuerit eidem comiti de Rivers, vices nostras, appellatione remots.” The office of constable was perpetual in the monarchy; its jurisdiction was not limited to times of war, as appears from this patent, and as we learn from Spellman; yet its authority was in direct contradiction to Magna Charta; and it is evident, that no regular liberty could subsist with it. It involved a full dictatorial power, continually subsisting in the state. The only check on the crown, besides the want of force to support all its prerogatives, was, that the office of constable was commonly either hereditary or during life, and the person invested with it was, for that reason, not so proper an instrument of arbitrary power in the king. Accordingly the office was suppressed by Henry VIII., the most arbitrary of all the English princes. The practice, however, of exercising martial law still subsisted; and was not abolished till the Petition of Right under Charles I. This was the epoch of true liberty, confirmed by the restoration, and enlarged and secured by the revolution.]

18 (return)
[ NOTE R, p. 450. To understand how arbitrary the court of the constable of England was, we can look at the patent granted to the Earl of Rivers during this reign, which is found in Spellman’s Glossary under the term Constabularius, and more fully in Rymer, vol. xi. p. 581. Here is a part of it: “And furthermore, out of our greater grace, we give the same Earl of Rivers full authority to judge and proceed in all matters and cases regarding the crime of treason, or any other issue that may arise concerning the aforementioned Earl of Rivers, as constable of England—those matters which have traditionally been handled, heard, examined, or decided in the court of the constable of England since the time of the said Lord William the Conqueror, or at any time before, or which ought by law to be treated, and all associated matters arising, incident to, or connected with, are to be heard, examined, and duly concluded, even summarily and directly, without the formality and complexity of justice, based solely on the truth of the facts, and furthermore by royal command, if deemed appropriate by the Earl of Rivers, in our stead, with no appeal.” The office of constable was permanent in the monarchy; its authority was not limited to times of war, as shown in this patent, and as we learn from Spellman; yet its power directly contradicted Magna Carta, and it’s clear that no real freedom could exist with it. It involved complete dictatorial power constantly existing in the state. The only limitation on the crown, apart from the lack of force to uphold all its privileges, was that the position of constable was usually hereditary or held for life, making the person in this role less suitable as an instrument of the king's arbitrary power. Consequently, the office was abolished by Henry VIII, the most arbitrary of all English kings. Nevertheless, the practice of imposing martial law continued and was not overturned until the Petition of Right under Charles I. This marked the beginning of true liberty, which was confirmed by the restoration and further expanded and secured by the revolution.]

19 (return)
[ NOTE S, p. 459. We shall give an instance. Almost all the historians, even Coraines, and the continuator of the Annals of Croyland, assert that Edward was about this time taken prisoner by Clarence and Warwick, and was committed to the custody of the archbishop of York, brother to the earl; but being allowed to take the diversion of hunting by this prelate, he made his escape, and afterwards chased the rebels out of the kingdom. But that all the story is false, appears from Rymer, where we find that the king, throughout all this period, continually exercised his authority, and never was interrupted in his government. On the 7th of March, 1470, he gives a commission of array to Clarence, whom he then imagined a good subject; and on the 23d of the same month, we find him issuing an order for apprehending him, Besides, in the king’s manifesto against the duke and earl, (Claus. 10. Edward IV. m. 7, 8,) where he enumerates all their treasons, he mentions no such fact; he does not so much as accuse them of exciting young Welles’s rebellion; he only says, that they exhorted him to continue in his rebellion. We may judge how smaller facts will be misrepresented by historians, who can in the most material transactions mistake so grossly. There may even some doubt arise with regard to the proposal of marriage made to Bona of Savoy; though almost all the historians concur in it, and the fact be very likely in itself; for there are no traces in Rymer of any such embassy of Warwick’s to France. The chief certainty in this and the preceding reign arises either from public records, or from the notice taken of certain passages by the French historians. On the contrary, for some centuries after the conquest, the French history is not complete without the assistance of English authors. We may conjecture, that the reason of the scarcity of historians during this period, was the destruction of the convents, which ensued so soon after. Copies of the more recent historians not being yet sufficiently dispersed, those histories hare perished.]

19 (return)
[ NOTE S, p. 459. Here's an example. Almost all historians, including Coraines and the person who continued the Annals of Croyland, claim that Edward was captured around this time by Clarence and Warwick, and was placed in the care of the Archbishop of York, the earl's brother. However, he was allowed to go hunting by this archbishop, and he managed to escape and later drove the rebels out of the kingdom. The entire story is proven false by Rymer, where it’s clear that throughout this time, the king continuously exercised his authority and was never interrupted in his rule. On March 7, 1470, he granted a commission of array to Clarence, whom he believed to be a loyal subject; yet on March 23 of the same month, he ordered Clarence's arrest. Furthermore, in the king’s manifesto against the duke and earl (Claus. 10. Edward IV. m. 7, 8), where he lists all their treasonous acts, he doesn’t mention this incident at all; he doesn’t even accuse them of inciting young Welles’s rebellion, merely claiming they encouraged him to persist in his rebellion. This allows us to speculate how smaller events might be misreported by historians who can misinterpret significant events so fundamentally. There’s even some uncertainty regarding the marriage proposal to Bona of Savoy; while most historians agree it occurred, and it seems plausible, Rymer has no records of any such embassy from Warwick to France. The main certainty regarding this and the previous reign comes from public records or mentions of specific events by French historians. In contrast, for several centuries after the conquest, French history often relies on English authors for completeness. We can assume that the lack of historians during this period was due to the destruction of monasteries that happened soon after. Copies of the more recent historians had not yet been widely distributed, leading to the loss of those histories.]

20 (return)
[ NOTE T, p. 490. Sir Thomas More, who has been followed, or rather transcribed, by all the historians of this short reign, says, that Jane Shore had fallen into connections with Lord Hastings; and this account agrees best with the course of the events; but in a proclamation of Richard’s, to be found in Rymer, vol. xii. p. 204, the marquis of Dorset is reproached with these connections. This reproach, however, might have been invented by Richard, or founded only on popular rumor; and is not sufficient to overbalance the authority of Sir Thomas More. The proclamation is remarkable for the hypocritical purity of manners affected by Richard. This bloody and treacherous tyrant upbraids the marquis and others with their gallantries and intrigues as the most terrible enormities.]

20 (return)
[ NOTE T, p. 490. Sir Thomas More, who has been followed, or rather copied, by all the historians of this brief reign, states that Jane Shore became involved with Lord Hastings; and this account aligns best with the sequence of events. However, in a proclamation by Richard, found in Rymer, vol. xii. p. 204, the marquis of Dorset is accused of these associations. This accusation, though, could have been fabricated by Richard or based merely on public gossip, and it doesn't outweigh the credibility of Sir Thomas More. The proclamation is notable for the hypocritical decency that Richard pretends to uphold. This cruel and deceitful tyrant chastises the marquis and others for their affairs and intrigues as if they were the most heinous offenses.]

21 (return)
[ NOTE U, p., 507. Every one that has perused the ancient monkish writers know that, however barbarous their own style, they are full of allusions to the Latin classics, especially the poets. There seems also in those middle ages to have remained many ancient books that are now lost. Maimesbury, who flourished in the reign of Henry I. and King Stephen, quotes Livy’s description of Caesar’s passage over the Rubicon. Fitz-Stephen, who lived in the reign of Henry II., alludes to a passage in the larger history of Sallust. In the collection of letters which passes under the name of Thomas a Becket, we see how familiar all the ancient history and ancient books were to the more ingenious and more dignified churchmen of that time, and consequently how much that order of men must have surpassed all the other members of the society. That prelate and his friends call each other philosophers in all the course of their correspondence, and consider the rest of the world as sunk in total ignorance and barbarism.]

21 (return)
[ NOTE U, p., 507. Anyone who has read the old monkish writers knows that, despite their rough style, they are packed with references to the Latin classics, particularly the poets. It seems that during the Middle Ages, many ancient books that are now lost were still in circulation. Maimesbury, who thrived during the reigns of Henry I and King Stephen, quotes Livy’s account of Caesar crossing the Rubicon. Fitz-Stephen, who lived during Henry II’s reign, mentions a section in Sallust’s larger history. In the collection of letters attributed to Thomas à Becket, we can see how well-versed the more clever and respectable churchmen of that era were in ancient history and literature, indicating they must have far surpassed the rest of society. This bishop and his friends refer to one another as philosophers throughout their correspondence, viewing the rest of the world as entirely ignorant and uncivilized.]

END OF VOL. Ib.

END OF VOL. Ib.






Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!